Examine "Shall i compare thee to a summer day" in a literary concept. Page 487

profileTomy
epdf.tips_literature-to-go.pdf

This page intentionally left blank

Explication

• The Use of Conventional Metaphors for Death in John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” (draft, outline, and fi nal paper) Ch. 30, p. 958

• A Reading of Emily Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light” Ch. 30, p. 962

Paper-in-Progress

• Explication: The Use of Conventional Metaphors for Death in John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” (draft, outline, and fi nal paper) Ch. 30, p. 958

Research Paper

• How William Faulkner’s Narrator Cultivates a Rose for Emily Ch. 32, p. 987

bedfordstmartins.com/rewritinglit

Check out our free and open visual tutorials, reference materials, and support for working with sources.

• VirtuaLit Tutorials for close reading

• AuthorLinks for research

• LitGloss for literary terms

• LitQuizzes for self-testing

• Sample Papers for MLA-style models

• Research and Documentation Online for research

• The Bedford Bibliographer for research

bedfordstmartins.com/videolit

Explore our growing collection of video interviews with today’s writers — on what they read, where they get their ideas, and how they refi ne their craft. Featured authors include T. C. Boyle, Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni, Ha Jin, and Anne Rice.

This page intentionally left blank

Literature to Go

This page intentionally left blank

Literature to Go

MICHAEL MEYER University of Connecticut

BEDFORD / ST. MARTIN’S BOSTON ◆ NEW YORK

For Bedford/St. Martin’s

Executive Editor: Ellen Thibault Developmental Editor: Christina Gerogiannis Production Editor: Lindsay DiGianvittorio Production Supervisor: Jennifer Peterson Senior Marketing Manager: Adrienne Petsick Editorial Assistants: Sophia Snyder, Mallory Moore Production Assistant: Alexis Biasell Copyeditor: Hilly van Loon Senior Art Director: Anna Palchik Text Design: Claire Seng-Niemoeller Cover Design: Donna Lee Dennison Cover Art: Wisconsin and N Street, by Joseph Craig English. Used with permission. Original

illustration altered with permission of the artist. Composition: Glyph International Printing and Binding: Quad/Graphics Taunton

President: Joan E. Feinberg Editorial Director: Denise B. Wydra Editor in Chief: Karen S. Henry Director of Marketing: Karen R. Soeltz Director of Editing, Design, and Production: Susan W. Brown Assistant Director of Editing, Design, and Production: Elise S. Kaiser Managing Editor: Elizabeth M. Schaaf

Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 2010928943

Copyright © 2011 by Bedford/St. Martin’s

All rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording, or otherwise, except as may be expressly permitted by the applicable copyright statutes or in writing by the Publisher.

Manufactured in the United States of America.

4 3 2 1 0 e d c b a

For information, write: Bedford/St. Martin’s, 75 Arlington Street, Boston, MA 02116 (617-399-4000)

ISBN 10: 0–312–62412–3 ISBN 13: 978–0–312–62412–5

Acknowledgments

fiction T. Coraghessan Boyle. “Carnal Knowledge” from Without a Hero by T. Coraghessan Boyle.

Copyright © 1994 by T. Coraghessan Boyle. Used by permission of Viking Penguin, a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.

A. S. Byatt. “Baglady” from Elementals: Stories of Fire and Ice by Antonia Byatt. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. Copyright by Peters Fraser & Dunlop A/A/F Antonia Byatt.

Raymond Carver. “Popular Mechanics” from What We Talk about When We Talk about Love by Raymond Carver. Copyright © 1974, 1976, 1978, 1980, 1981 by Raymond Carver. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

Acknowledgments and copyrights are continued at the back of the book on pages 1013–18, which constitute an extension of the copyright page. It is a violation of the law to reproduce these selections by any means whatsoever without the written permission of the copyright holder.

For My Wife Regina Barreca

About Michael Meyer

Michael Meyer has taught writing and literature courses for more than thirty years — since 1981 at the University of Connecticut and before that at the University of North Carolina at Charlotte and the College of Wil- liam and Mary. In addition to being an experienced teacher, Meyer is a highly regarded literary scholar. His scholarly articles have appeared in distinguished journals such as American Literature, Studies in the American Renaissance, and Virginia Quarterly Review. An internationally recognized authority on Henry David Thoreau, Meyer is a former president of the Thoreau Society and coauthor (with Walter Harding) of The New Thoreau Handbook, a standard reference source. His fi rst book, Several More Lives to Live: Thoreau’s Political Reputation in America, was awarded the Ralph Henry Gabriel Prize by the American Studies Association. He is also the editor of Frederick Douglass: The Narrative and Selected Writings. He has lectured on a variety of American literary topics from Cambridge University to Peking University. His other books for Bedford/St. Martin’s include The Bedford Introduction to Literature, Ninth Edition; The Compact Bedford Introduction to Literature, Eighth Edition; Poetry: An Introduction, Sixth Edition; and Think- ing and Writing about Literature, Second Edition.

Preface for Instructors

Literature to Go is the long-trusted anthology, The Bedford Introduction to Literature, sized and priced to go. Created in response to instructors’ re- quests for an essential version of the full-length book — with a selection of literature that refl ects the classic canon and the new — Literature to Go is a brief and inexpensive collection of stories, poems, and plays, supported by class-tested, reliable pedagogy and unique features that bring literature to life for students. The hope is that the engaging selections and accessible instruction in Literature to Go will inspire students to become lifelong read- ers of imaginative literature, as well as more thoughtful and skillful writers. The text is designed to accommodate many different teaching styles and is fl exibly organized into four parts focusing on fi ction, poetry, drama, and critical thinking and writing. Creative chapters on the elements of litera- ture appear at the beginning of each genre section and cover such concepts as character, setting, confl ict, and tone, along with plenty of examples. Addi- tionally, case studies on major authors, including Flannery O’Connor and William Shakespeare, reveal writers as real people and literature as a living art form. And a unique, in-depth chapter on poet Billy Collins, created in collaboration with the poet himself, gives students an intimate look into the creative process of one of America’s most popular contemporary poets. In addition to offering literature from many periods, cultures, and diverse voices, including today’s wittiest writers, the book is also a surpris- ingly complete guide to close reading, critical thinking, and thoughtful writ- ing. Following the genre sections, the fourth part of Literature to Go provides detailed instruction on these crucial skills. Sample student papers and hun- dreds of assignments appear in the text, giving students the support they need. And two new online resources — Re:Writing for Literature, with lots of help for reading and writing about literature; and VideoCentral: Literature, a growing collection of exclusive interviews with today’s authors — offer even more options for teaching, learning, and enjoying literature.

FEATURES OF L ITER ATURE TO GO A wide and well-balanced selection of literature — sized and priced to go

34 stories, 202 poems, and 12 plays represent a variety of periods, nation- alities, cultures, styles, and voices — from the serious to the humorous, and from the traditional to the contemporary. Each selection has been

vii

viii preface for instructors

chosen for its appeal to students and for its effectiveness in demonstrat- ing the elements, signifi cance, and pleasures of literature. Canonical works by Ernest Hemingway, John Keats, Susan Glas pell, and many others are generously represented. In addition, there are many contemporary selections from writers such as Nilaja Sun, Ian McEwan, and Tim O’Brien, as well as a rich sampling of works by writers from other cultures. These selections ap pear throughout the anthology.

Many options for teaching and learning about literature

In an effort to make literature come to life for students, and the course a plea- sure to teach for instructors, Literature to Go offers these innovative features:

Perspectives on literature Intriguing documents — including critical essays, interviews, and contextual images — appear throughout the book to stimulate class discussion and writing.

Connections between “popular” and “literary” culture The poetry and drama introductions incorporate examples from popular culture, effectively introducing students to the literary elements of a given genre through what

they already know. For example, students are introduced to the elements of poetry through greeting card verse and song lyrics by Bruce Springsteen and to elements of drama through a television script from Seinfeld. Lively visuals throughout the anthology present images that demonstrate how literature is woven into the fabric of popular culture and art. These images help students recognize the imprint of literature on their everyday lives.

Case studies that treat authors in depth Each genre section includes a chapter that focuses closely on a major literary fi gure. Chapters on Flannery O’Connor, Billy Collins, and William Shakespeare are complemented by biographi- cal introductions (with author photographs),

critical perspectives, cultural documents (such as letters and draft manuscript pages), and images that serve to con- textualize the works. A vari- ety of critical thinking and writing questions follow the selections to stim ulate stu- dent responses. All these sup- plementary materials engage

From Chapter 9: “A Study of Flannery O’Connor.”

preface for instructors ix

students more fully with the writers and their works.

An in-depth chapter on Billy Collins — created with Billy Collins

Collins presents fi ve of his own poems in Chapter 20 alongside his own insights — written specifi cally for Michael Meyer’s anthologies — into each work, and shares photographs and pages from his notebooks. This case study reinforces Meyer’s empha- sis on poetry as a living, changing art form. Students will enjoy the oppor- tunity to have a major poet speak directly to them, in Collins’s one-of-a- kind style, about how he writes, why he writes, and the kinds of surprises that occur along the way.

Plenty of help with reading, writing, and research

Critical reading* Advice on how to read literature ap pears at the begin- ning of each genre section. Sample Close Readings of selections, in cluding Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour” (Fiction), William Hathaway’s “Oh, Oh” (Poetry), and Susan Glas pell’s Trifl es (Drama), provide analyses of the language, images, and other literary elements at work in these selections. Interpretive an notations clearly show students the pro cess of close reading and provide examples of the kind of critical thinking that leads to strong academic writing. Later in the book, Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process,” provides more instruction on how to read a work closely, annotate a text, take notes, keep a reading journal, and develop a topic into a the- sis, with a section on arguing persuasively about literature. An Index of Terms appears at the back of the book, and a glossary provides thorough explanations of more than two hundred terms central to the study of literature.

Kate Chopin (1851–1904)

The Story of an Hour 1894

Knowing that Mrs. Mallard was afflicted with a heart trouble, great care was taken to break to her as gently as possible the news of her husband’s death.

It was her sister Josephine who told her, in broken sen- tences; veiled hints that revealed in half concealing. Her hus- band’s friend Richards was there, too, near her. It was he who had been in the newspaper office when intelligence of the rail- road disaster was received, with Brently Mallard’s name lead- ing the list of “killed.” He had only taken the time to assure himself of its truth by a second telegram, and had hastened to forestall any less careful, less tender friend in bearing the sad message.

Sh did h h h h d h

The title could point to the brevity of the story — only 23 short paragraphs — or to the decisive nature of what happens in a very short period of time. Or both.

Mrs. Mallard’s first name, (Louise) is not given until paragraph 17, yet her sister Josephine is named immediately. This em- phasizes Mrs. Mal- lard’s married identity.

Given the nature of the cause of Mrs. Mallard death at the story’s end, it’s worth noting the ambiguous description that she “was afflicted with a heart trouble.” Is this one of Chopin’s

A Sample Close Reading

From Chapter 20, “A Study of Billy Collins: The Author Refl ects on Five Poems.”

*A reference chart on the book’s inside front cover outlines all of the book’s help for reading and writing about literature.

x preface for instructors

The writing and research process Five chapters (28–32) cover every step of the writing pro cess — from generating topics to documenting sources — while sample student papers model the results. Of these chapters, three — “Writing about Fiction” (29), “Writing about Poetry” (30), and “Writing about Drama” (31) — focus on genre-specifi c writing assignments. Six sample student papers — all with MLA-style documentation — model how to analyze and argue about literature and how to support ideas by citing examples. The papers are integrated throughout the book, as are “Questions for Writing” units that guide students through par- ticular writing tasks: reading and writing responsively, developing a topic into a revised thesis, and writing about multiple works by an author. Chapter 32, “The Literary Research Paper,” offers detailed advice for fi nding, evaluating, and incorporating sources in a paper and includes current, detailed MLA documentation guidelines.

Questions for critical reading and writing Hundreds of questions and assignments — “Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing,” “Connections to Other Selections,” “First Response” prompts, and “Cre- ative Re sponse” assignments — spark students’ interest, sharpen their thinking, and improve their reading, discussion, and writing skills.

Literature to Go e-Book: The fi rst electronic anthology for literature

Bedford/St. Martin’s is pleased to introduce the Literature to Go e-Book, the fi rst electronic anthology for the literature course. Are you moving away from print books? Or perhaps want to supplement your course with digital material? The e-Book for Literature to Go includes all of the print book’s instruction and nearly all of the literature. It’s easy to use, environmentally sound, and nicely priced.

• To order the e-Book, packaged for fi ve dollars with the student edition of the print book, use package ISBN-10: 0-312-55777-9 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-55777-5.

Bonnie Katz

Professor Quiello

English 109–2

October 26, 2010

A Reading of Emily Dickinson’s

“There’s a certain Slant of light”

Because Emily Dickinson did not provide titles for her poetry, editors

follow the customary practice of using the first line of a poem as its title.

However, a more appropriate title for “There’s a certain Slant of light,” one

that suggests what the speaker in the poem is most concerned about, can be

drawn from the poem’s last line, which ends with “the look of Death” (Dickin-

son, line 16). Although the first line begins with an image of light, nothing

bright, carefree, or cheerful appears in the poem. Instead, the predominant

mood and images are darkened by a sense of despair resulting from the

speaker’s awareness of death.

In the first stanza, the “certain Slant of light” is associated with “Win-

ter Afternoons” (2), a phrase that connotes the end of a day, a season, and

even life itself. Such light is hardly warm or comforting. Not a ray or beam,

this slanting light suggests something unusual or distorted and creates in the

speaker a certain slant on life that is consistent with the cold, dark mood that

winter afternoons can produce. Like the speaker, most of us have seen and felt

this sort of light: it “oppresses” (3) and pervades our sense of things when we

encounter it. Dickinson uses the senses of hearing and touch as well as sight

to describe the overwhelming oppressiveness that the speaker experiences.

The light is transformed into sound by a simile that tells us it is “like the Heft

/ Of Cathedral Tunes” (3–4). Moreover, the “Heft” of that sound -- the slow,

solemn measures of tolling church bells and organ music--weighs heavily on

our spirits. Through the use of shifting imagery, Dickinson evokes a kind of

spiritual numbness that we keenly feel and perceive through our senses.

By associating the winter light with “Cathedral Tunes,” Dickinson lets

us know that the speaker is concerned about more than the weather. What-

ever it is that “oppresses” is related by connotation to faith, mortality, and

Katz 1

Thesis providing overview of explication

Line-by-line explication of first stanza, focusing on connotations of words and imagery, in relation to mood and meaning of poem as a whole; supported with refer- ences to the text

A sample student explication on Emily Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light” includes parenthetical citations and a Works Cited page.

preface for instructors xi

• To purchase the e-Book as a standalone item (without the print book), use ISBN-10: 0-312-55242-4 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-55242-8.

• To order the e-Book in CourseSmart format (as a PDF), use ISBN- 10: 0-312-55240-8 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-55240-4.

YOU GET MORE DIGITAL CHOICES FOR LITER ATURE TO GO Literature to Go doesn’t stop with a book. Online, you’ll fi nd plenty of free and open resources to help students get even more out of the book and your course. You’ll also fi nd convenient instructor resources, and even a nationwide community of teachers. To learn more about or order any of the products below, contact your Bedford/St. Martin’s sales representative, e-mail sales support (sales_support@bfwpub .com), or visit the Web site at bedfordstmartins.com/meyertogo/ catalog.

xii preface for instructors

New! Re:Writing for Literature: Free and open resources

Send students to our best free and open resources (no codes required), or upgrade to an expanding collection of premium digital resources at bedfordstmartins.com/rewritinglit.

Students will fi nd easy-to-access visual tutorials, reference materials, and support for working with sources.

• VirtuaLit Tutorials for Close Reading (Fiction, Poetry, and Drama) • AuthorLinks and Biographies • Quizzes on Literary Works • A Glossary of Literary Terms • MLA-style sample student papers • Help for fi nding and citing sources, including Diana Hacker’s

Research and Documentation Online

New! VideoCentral: Literature: Interviews with today’s writers

VideoCentral: Literature — a Bedford/St. Martin’s production created with writer and teacher Peter Berkow — is a growing collection of more than fi fty video interviews with today’s writers, talking about their craft. Your students can hear from Ha Jin on how he uses humor and tension in his writing, Anne Rice on how she advances plot through dialogue, Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni on how she writes from experience, and T. C. Boyle on how he creates memorable voices. Related assignments and activities

preface for instructors xiii

help students get the most out of these instructive videos and apply what they learn to their own thinking and writing.

To package VideoCentral: Litera- ture, free with student copies of Literature to Go, use pack- age ISBN-10: 0-312-54620-3 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-54620-5.

Instructor Resources: bedfordstmartins.com/ meyertogo/catalog

You have a lot to do in your course. Bedford/St. Martin’s wants to make it easy for you to fi nd the support you need — and to get it quickly.

Resources for Teaching Literature to Go is available as a print manual or as a PDF that can be downloaded from the Bedford/St. Martin’s online catalog. This manual supports every selection in the book and has something to offer new and experienced instructors. Resources include commentary, biographical information, additional writing assign- ments, further connections among the selections, and tips from instruc- tors who have taught with Michael Meyer’s anthologies. For the PDF, go to bedfordstmartins.com/meyertogo/catalog. To order the print edition, use ISBN-10: 0-312-66697-7 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-66697-2.

Teaching Central offers the entire list of Bedford/St. Martin’s print and online professional resources in one place. You’ll fi nd landmark refer- ence works, sourcebooks on pedagogical issues, award-winning collec- tions, and practical advice for the classroom — all free for instructors and available through the Student Center or at bedfordstmartins.com/ meyertogo/catalog.

Literature Aloud is a two-CD set of audio recordings featuring celebrated writers and actors reading stories, poems, and selected scenes included in Michael Meyer’s anthologies. This resource is free to instructors who adopt Literature to Go. To order the CD set, use ISBN-10: 0-312-43011-6 or ISBN-13: 978-0-312-43011-5.

The Bedford/St. Martin’s Video & DVD Library offers selected videos and DVDs of plays and stories included in Literature to Go, and is avail- able to qualifi ed adopters of the anthology. To learn more, contact your Bedford/St. Martin’s sales representative or e-mail sales support (sales_ [email protected]).

xiv preface for instructors

Literary Reprints Titles in the Case Studies in Contemporary Criti- cism series, Bedford Cultural Edition series, and the Bedford Shake- speare series can be shrink-wrapped with Literature to Go for instructors who want to teach longer works in conjunction with the anthology. (For a complete list of available titles, visit bedfordstmartins.com/ meyertogo/catalog.)

TradeUp

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS This book has benefi ted from the ideas, suggestions, and corrections of scores of careful readers who helped transform various stages of an evolv- ing manuscript into a fi nished book and into subsequent editions. I remain grateful to those I have thanked in previous prefaces, particularly the late Robert Wallace of Case Western Reserve University. In addition, many instructors who used the eighth edition of The Bedford Introduction to Literature responded to a questionnaire for the book. For their valuable comments and advice I am grateful to Sandra Allen-Kearney, Lincoln Park Academy; Jon W. Brooks, Okaloosa-Walton College; David Brumbley, Salisbury University; Robert Caughey, Torrey Pines High School; S. Elaine Craghead, Massachusetts Maritime Academy; Robert W. Croft, Gaines- ville State College; Allen Culpepper, Manatee Community College; Samir Dayal, Bentley College; Cheryl DeLacretaz, Dripping Springs High School; Janice Forgione, Salisbury University; Bernadette Gambino, University of North Florida; Sinceree Renee Gunn, University of Alabama in Hunts- ville; Cathy Henrichs, Pikes Peak Community College; Susan Hopkirk,

TradeUp Get 50% off all trade titles when packaged with your textbook!

Add more value and choice to your students’ learning experiences by packaging their Bedford / St. Martin’s textbook with one of a thousand titles from our sister publishers such as Farrar, Straus and Giroux and St. Martin’s Press — at a discount of 50% off the regular price.

preface for instructors xv

Middle Tennessee State University; Mary Lee Stephenson Huffer, Lake Sumter Community College; Michelle Green Jimmerson, Louisiana Tech University; Sharon Johnston, Spokane Virtual Learning/Spokane Public Schools; Tamara Kuzmenkov, Tacoma Community College; Catherine Shanon Lawson, Pikes Peak Community College; Manuel Martinez, Santa Fe Community College; Sarah McIntosh, Santa Fe Community College; Jim McKeown, McLennan Community College; Julie Moore, Green River Community College; Larry Moss, Young Men’s Academy for Academic and Civic Development at MacArthur South; Angelina Northrip-Rivera, Missouri State University; David Pink, Rock Valley College; Deidre D. Price, Okaloosa-Walton College; Katharine Purcell, Trident Technical Col- lege; Karin Russell, Keiser University; Holly Schoenecker, Milwaukee Area Technical College; Beth Shelton, Paris Junior College; Karen Stewart, Norwich University; John A. Stoler, University of Texas at San Antonio; James D. Suderman, Okaloosa-Walton College; Becky Talk; Gregory J. Underwood, Pearl River Community College — Forrest County Center; and Marva Webb, Clinton High School. I would also like to give special thanks to the following instructors who contributed teaching tips to Resources for Teaching Literature to Go: Sandra Adickes, Winona State University; Helen J. Aling, Northwestern College; Sr. Anne Denise Brenann, College of Mt. St. Vincent; Robin Calitri, Merced College; James H. Clemmer, Austin Peay State University; Robert Croft, Gainesville College; Thomas Edwards, Westbrook College; Elizabeth Kleinfeld, Red Rocks Community College; Olga Lyles, Uni- versity of Nevada; Timothy Peters, Boston University; Catherine Rusco, Muskegon Community College; Robert M. St. John, DePaul University; Richard Stoner, Broome Community College; Nancy Veiga, Modesto Junior College; Karla Walters, University of New Mexico; and Joseph Zeppetello, Ulster Community College. I am also indebted to those who cheerfully answered questions and generously provided miscellaneous bits of information. What might have seemed to them like inconsequential conversations turned out to be important leads. Among these friends and colleagues are Raymond Anselment, Barbara Campbell, Ann Charters, Karen Chow, John Chris- tie, Eleni Coundouriotis, Irving Cummings, William Curtin, Patrick Hogan, Lee Jacobus, Thomas Jambeck, Bonnie Januszewski-Ytuarte, Greta Little, George Monteiro, Brenda Murphy, Joel Myerson, Rose Qui- ello, Thomas Recchio, William Sheidley, Stephanie Smith, Milton Stern, Kenneth Wilson, and the dedicated reference librarians at the Homer Babbidge Library, University of Connecticut. I am particularly happy to acknowledge the tactful help of Roxanne Cody, owner of R. J. Julia Book- sellers in Madison, Connecticut, whose passion for books authorizes her as the consummate matchmaker for writers, readers, and titles. It’s a wonder that somebody doesn’t call the cops. I continue to be grateful for what I have learned from teaching my students and for the many student papers I have received over the years

xvi preface for instructors

that I have used in various forms to serve as good and accessible mod- els of student writing. I am also indebted to Stefanie Wortman for her extensive work on Resources for Teaching literature to go. At Bedford/St. Martin’s, my debts once again require more time to ack- nowledge than the deadline allows. Charles H. Christensen and Joan E. Feinberg initiated The Bedford Introduction to Literature and launched it with their intelligence, energy, and sound advice. This book has also ben- efi ted from the savvy insights of Denise Wydra and Steve Scipione. Ear- lier editions were shaped by editors Karen Henry, Kathy Retan, Alanya Harter, Aron Keesbury, and Ellen Thibault; their work was as fi rst rate as it was essential. As development editor for Literature to Go, Christina Gerogiannis expertly kept the book on track and made the journey a pleasure to the end; her valuable contributions richly remind me of how fortunate I am to be a Bedford/St. Martin’s author. Stephanie Naudin, associate editor, energetically developed the book’s instructor’s manual, and Sophia Snyder, editorial assistant, gracefully handled a variety of editorial tasks. Permissions were deftly arranged by Kalina Hintz, Arthur Johnson, Martha Friedman, and Susan Doheny. The diffi cult tasks of production were skillfully managed by Lindsay DiGianvittorio, whose attention to details and deadlines was essential to the completion of this project. Hilly van Loon provided careful copyediting, and Laura Dewey and Arthur Johnson did meticulous proofreading. I thank all of the people at Bedford/St. Martin’s — including Donna Dennison, who designed the cover, and Adrienne Petsick, the marketing manager — who helped to make this formidable project a manageable one. Finally, I am grateful to my sons Timothy and Matthew for all kinds of help, but mostly I’m just grateful they’re my sons. And for making all the difference, I thank my wife, Regina Barreca.

Brief Contents

Resources for Reading and Writing about Literature inside front cover

Preface for Instructors vii

Introduction: Reading Imaginative Literature 1

FICT ION 7

The Elements of Fiction 9 1. Reading Fiction 11 2. Plot 44 3. Character 64 4. Setting 115 5. Point of View 135 6. Symbolism 178 7. Theme 199 8. Style, Tone, and Irony 223

Fiction in Depth 255 9. A Study of Flannery O’Connor 257

A Collection of Stories 277 10. Stories for Further Reading 279

POETRY 339

The Elements of Poetry 341 11. Reading Poetry 343 12. Word Choice, Word Order, and Tone 375 13. Images 399 14. Figures of Speech 412 15. Symbol, Allegory, and Irony 428

xvii

xviii brief contents

16. Sounds 447 17. Patterns of Rhythm 464 18. Poetic Forms 481 19. Open Form 507

Poetry in Depth 523 20. A Study of Billy Collins: The Author Refl ects on Five Poems 525 21. A Thematic Case Study: Humor and Satire 550

A Collection of Poems 559 22. Poems for Further Reading 561

DR AMA 589

The Study of Drama 591 23. Reading Drama 593 24. Sophocles and Greek Drama 632 25. William Shakespeare and Elizabethan Drama 687 26. Henrik Ibsen and Modern Drama 788

A Collection of Plays 849 27. Plays for Further Reading 851

CRIT ICAL THINKING AND WRIT ING 927

28. Reading and the Writing Process 929 29. Writing about Fiction 942 30. Writing about Poetry 950 31. Writing about Drama 965 32. The Literary Research Paper 973

Glossary of Literary Terms 991

Index of First Lines 1019

Index of Authors and Titles 1023

Index of Terms 1034

Contents

Resources for Reading and Writing about Literature inside front cover

Preface for Instructors vii

Introduction: Reading Imaginative Literature 1 The Nature of Literature 1

Emily Dickinson • A NARROW FELLOW IN THE GRASS 2

The Value of Literature 3 The Changing Literary Canon 5

FICT ION 7

The Elements of Fiction 9

1. Reading Fiction 11 Reading Fiction Responsively 11

Kate Chopin • THE STORY OF AN HOUR 13 A young woman reacts to news of her husband’s death. “She had loved him — sometimes. Often she had not. What did it matter!”

a sample close reading An Annotated Section of Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour” 15 a sample student paper Differences in Responses to Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour” 18

Explorations and Formulas 22 A Comparison of Two Stories 28

Karen van der Zee • FROM A SECRET SORROW 28 “Shut up and listen to me! . . . He was still breathing hard and he looked at her with stormy blue eyes.” A young couple debates their future, Harlequin romance style.

Gail Godwin • A SORROWFUL WOMAN 37 What happens when you’re a wife and mother — but it turns out that’s not what you really wanted?

xix

xx contents

2. Plot 44 Edgar Rice Burroughs • FROM TARZAN OF THE APES 46 Two wild creatures battle over a woman. “Against the long canines of the ape was pitted the thin blade of the man’s knife.”

Alice Walker • THE FLOWERS 53 A young girl gathers fl owers, farther from home than usual. “It seemed gloomy in the little cove. . . . The air was damp, the silence close and deep.”

William Faulkner • A ROSE FOR EMILY 55 In a tale that Faulkner called a ghost story, a woman breaks from traditions of the old South — mysteriously and gruesomely.

3. Character 64 Charles Dickens • FROM HARD TIMES 65 “Facts alone are wanted in life.” No one can take the joy out of learning like Dickens’s Mr. Gradgrind.

May-lee Chai • SAVING SOURDI 69 In the Killing Fields of Cambodia, Sourdi saves her sister Nea. Now in the U.S., Nea wants to save her sister’s happiness.

Herman Melville • BARTLEBY, THE SCRIVENER 85 “I would prefer not to.” The classic story of the most resistant offi ce worker in literature.

4. Setting 115 Ernest Hemingway • SOLDIER’S HOME 117 A young man comes home from war, detached from emotion and the values of those who want him to make something of himself.

Fay Weldon • IND AFF, OR OUT OF LOVE IN SARAJEVO 124 “I love you with inordinate affection!” A graduate student and her married professor travel to the Balkans to make a decision.

A. S. Byatt • BAGLADY 131 A morning of shopping in a luxurious mall in the Far East does not go well for Daphne Gulver-Robinson.

5. Point of View 135 Third-Person Narrator 136 First-Person Narrator 137

Anton Chekhov • THE LADY WITH THE PET DOG 139 “Anna Sergeyevna and he loved each other. . . . Fate itself had meant them for one another, and they could not understand why he had a wife and she a husband.”

Alice Munro • AN OUNCE OF CURE 168 A teenage girl’s fi rst experience with a broken heart leads to catastrophic consequences.

contents xxi

6. Symbolism 178

Ralph Ellison • BATTLE ROYAL 184 A young black man is humiliated, bloodied, and awarded a scholarship as he sets out on a path toward identity and equality in a racist society.

Peter Meinke • THE CRANES 196 People make many promises to the ones they love. Sometimes, there is no turning back.

7. Theme 199 Guy de Maupassant • THE NECKLACE 202 All Mathilde Loisel wants is a pretty necklace for the ball. When she borrows one from a friend, however, things do not go as expected.

Stephen Crane • THE BRIDE COMES TO YELLOW SKY 209 In this commentary on the Wild West, things change with the marriage of the lone marshal of a gunslinging town.

Dagoberto Gilb • LOVE IN L.A. 219 A man driving an unregistered, uninsured ’58 Buick dreams and deceives on the Hollywood Freeway.

8. Style, Tone, and Irony 223 Style 223 Tone 225 Irony 225

Raymond Carver • POPULAR MECHANICS 227 With extreme economy, Carver tells the story of a troubled family’s tug-of-war.

Susan Minot • LUST 229 “The more girls a boy has, the better. . . . For a girl, with each boy it’s as though a petal gets plucked each time.” A woman chronicles her early sexual encounters.

T. Coraghessan Boyle • CARNAL KNOWLEDGE 237 How far will a man go for love? “The turkeys must have sensed that something was up — from behind the long white windowless wall, there arose a watchful gabbling.”

Fiction in Depth 255

9. A Study of Flannery O’Connor 257 A Brief Biography and Introduction 258

Flannery O’Connor • A GOOD MAN IS HARD TO FIND 261 A southern grandmother weighs in on the “goodness” of one of literature’s most famous ex-convicts.

xxii contents

perspectives on o’connor Flannery O’Connor • On the Use of Exaggeration and Distortion 274 Josephine Hendin • On O’Connor’s Refusal to “Do Pretty” 274 Claire Katz • The Function of Violence in O’Connor’s Fiction 275 Time Magazine • On A Good Man Is Hard to Find 276

A Collection of Stories 277

10. Stories for Further Reading 279 Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni • CLOTHES 280 A young Indian woman sees her marriage, her move to America, and even her wardrobe (and a California 7-Eleven) in terms of possibility.

Nathaniel Hawthorne • THE BIRTHMARK 289 An eighteenth-century scientist seeks to obliterate imperfection.

James Joyce • EVELINE 302 How much should an obedient daughter sacrifi ce to fulfi ll her duty to her family and home?

Jamaica Kincaid • GIRL 306 “Always eat your food in such a way that it won’t turn someone else’s stomach.” A critical mother subjects her daughter to a long list of advice.

Ian McEwan • THE USE OF POETRY 308 When a science major meets a beautiful English student, he decides poetry might have some use after all.

Tim O’Brien • HOW TO TELL A TRUE WAR STORY 318 “If a story seems moral, do not believe it. . . . You can tell a true war story by its abso- lute and uncompromising allegiance to obscenity and evil.”

E. Annie Proulx • 55 MILES TO THE GAS PUMP 329 A brief, startling story of a rancher and his wife.

Mark Twain • THE STORY OF THE GOOD LITTLE BOY 330 Obedience is not exactly celebrated in this story about being too good.

John Updike • A & P 334 “In walks these three girls in nothing but bathing suits.” A teenaged Sammy makes a gallant move that changes his life.

POETRY 339

The Elements of Poetry 341

11. Reading Poetry 343 Reading Poetry Responsively 343

Lisa Parker • SNAPPING BEANS 344

Robert Hayden • THOSE WINTER SUNDAYS 345

John Updike • DOG’S DEATH 346

contents xxiii

The Pleasure of Words 347 William Hathaway • OH, OH 348

a sample close reading An Annotated Version of William Hathaway’s “Oh, Oh” 348

Robert Francis • CATCH 350 a sample student analysis Tossing Metaphors Together in Robert Francis’s “Catch” 351

Elizabeth Bishop • THE FISH 355

Philip Larkin • A STUDY OF READING HABITS 357

Robert Morgan • MOUNTAIN GRAVEYARD 358

E. E. Cummings • l(a 359

Anonymous • WESTERN WIND 360

Regina Barreca • NIGHTTIME FIRES 361 suggestions for approaching poetry 362

Billy Collins • INTRODUCTION TO POETRY 364

Poetry in Popular Forms 364 Helen Farries • MAGIC OF LOVE 366

John Frederick Nims • LOVE POEM 366

Bruce Springsteen • YOU’RE MISSING 368

Poems for Further Study 369 Alberto Ríos • SENIORS 369

Li Ho • A BEAUTIFUL GIRL COMBS HER HAIR 370

Peter Pereira • ANAGRAMMER 371

Robert Frost • DESIGN 372

Mary Oliver • THE POET WITH HIS FACE IN HIS HANDS 373

12. Word Choice, Word Order, and Tone 375 Word Choice 375

Diction 375

Denotations and Connotations 377

Randall Jarrell • THE DEATH OF THE BALL TURRET GUNNER 378

Word Order 380 Tone 380

Katharyn Howd Machan • HAZEL TELLS LAVERNE 380

Martín Espada • LATIN NIGHT AT THE PAWNSHOP 381

Paul Laurence Dunbar • TO A CAPTIOUS CRITIC 382

Diction and Tone in Four Love Poems 382 Robert Herrick • TO THE VIRGINS, TO MAKE MUCH OF TIME 383

Andrew Marvell • TO HIS COY MISTRESS 384

xxiv contents

Ann Lauinger • MARVELL NOIR 387

Sharon Olds • LAST NIGHT 388

Poems for Further Study 389 Thomas Hardy • THE CONVERGENCE OF THE TWAIN 389

David R. Slavitt • TITANIC 391

Gwendolyn Brooks • WE REAL COOL 391

Joan Murray • WE OLD DUDES 392

Louis Simpson • IN THE SUBURBS 393

Emily Dickinson • SOME KEEP THE SABBATH GOING TO CHURCH — 393

John Keats • ODE ON A GRECIAN URN 394

Poets at Play 396 Billy Collins • TAKING OFF EMILY DICKINSON’S CLOTHES 396

Joan Murray • TAKING OFF BILLY COLLINS’ CLOTHES 397

postcard: Billy Collins • TO JOAN MURRAY 398

13. Images 399 Poetry’s Appeal to the Senses 399

William Carlos Williams • POEM 400

Walt Whitman • CAVALRY CROSSING A FORD 400

Theodore Roethke • ROOT CELLAR 401

Matthew Arnold • DOVER BEACH 402

Jimmy Santiago Baca • GREEN CHILE 404

Poems for Further Study 405 Amy Lowell • THE POND 405

William Blake • LONDON 405

Emily Dickinson • WILD NIGHTS — WILD NIGHTS! 406

Wilfred Owen • DULCE ET DECORUM EST 407

Sally Croft • HOME-BAKED BREAD 408

John Keats • TO AUTUMN 409

Ezra Pound • IN A STATION OF THE METRO 411

14. Figures of Speech 412 William Shakespeare • FROM MACBETH (ACT V, SCENE V ) 413

Simile and Metaphor 414 Margaret Atwood • YOU FIT INTO ME 414

Emily Dickinson • PRESENTIMENT — IS THAT LONG SHADOW — ON THE LAWN — 415

contents xxv

Other Figures 416 Edmund Conti • PRAGMATIST 416

Dylan Thomas • THE HAND THAT SIGNED THE PAPER 417

Janice Townley Moore • TO A WASP 418

J. Patrick Lewis • THE UNKINDEST CUT 420

Poems for Further Study 420 Gary Snyder • HOW POETRY COMES TO ME 420

Ernest Slyman • LIGHTNING BUGS 421

Judy Page Heitzman • THE SCHOOLROOM ON THE SECOND FLOOR OF THE KNITTING MILL 421

William Wordsworth • LONDON, 1802 422

Robert Frost • FIRE AND ICE 423

John Donne • A VALEDICTION: FORBIDDING MOURNING 423

Linda Pastan • MARKS 425

Kay Ryan • HAILSTORM 425

Elaine Magarrell • THE JOY OF COOKING 426

15. Symbol, Allegory, and Irony 428 Symbol 428

Robert Frost • ACQUAINTED WITH THE NIGHT 429

Allegory 431 Edgar Allan Poe • THE HAUNTED PALACE 431

Irony 433 Edwin Arlington Robinson • RICHARD CORY 433

Kenneth Fearing • AD 434

E. E. Cummings • NEXT TO OF COURSE GOD AMERICA I 435

Stephen Crane • A MAN SAID TO THE UNIVERSE 436

Poems for Further Study 437 Bob Hicok • MAKING IT IN POETRY 437

Kevin Pierce • PROOF OF ORIGIN 437

Carl Sandburg • BUTTONS 438

Wallace Stevens • ANECDOTE OF THE JAR 438

Jim Tilley • RICHTER 7.8 439

William Stafford • TRAVELING THROUGH THE DARK 440

Alden Nowlan • THE BULL MOOSE 441

Julio Marzán • ETHNIC POETRY 442

James Merrill • CASUAL WEAR 443

xxvi contents

Robert Browning • MY LAST DUCHESS 444

William Blake • THE CHIMNEY SWEEPER 445

16. Sounds 447 Listening to Poetry 447

John Updike • PLAYER PIANO 448

May Swenson • A NOSTY FRIGHT 449

Emily Dickinson • A BIRD CAME DOWN THE WALK — 450

Galway Kinnell • BLACKBERRY EATING 452

Rhyme 453 Richard Armour • GOING TO EXTREMES 453

Robert Southey • FROM “THE CATARACT OF LODORE” 454

Sound and Meaning 457 Gerard Manley Hopkins • GOD’S GRANDEUR 457

Poems for Further Study 458 Lewis Carroll (Charles Lutwidge Dodgson) • JABBERWOCKY 458

Emily Dickinson • I HEARD A FLY BUZZ — WHEN I DIED — 459

Robert Frost • STOPPING BY WOODS ON A SNOWY EVENING 460

John Donne • SONG 461

Paul Humphrey • BLOW 462

Robert Francis • THE PITCHER 462

Helen Chasin • THE WORD PLUM 463

17. Patterns of Rhythm 464 Some Principles of Meter 464

Walt Whitman • FROM “SONG OF THE OPEN ROAD” 465

William Wordsworth • MY HEART LEAPS UP 468 suggestions for scanning a poem 469

Timothy Steele • WAITING FOR THE STORM 470

William Butler Yeats • THAT THE NIGHT COME 470

Poems for Further Study 471 Alfred, Lord Tennyson • BREAK, BREAK, BREAK 471

Alice Jones • THE FOOT 472

Rita Dove • FOX TROT FRIDAYS 473

Robert Herrick • DELIGHT IN DISORDER 474

Ben Jonson • STILL TO BE NEAT 474

William Blake • THE LAMB 475

William Blake • THE TYGER 476

contents xxvii

Carl Sandburg • CHICAGO 477

Robert Frost • “OUT, OUT — ” 478

Theodore Roethke • MY PAPA’S WALTZ 479

18. Poetic Forms 481 Some Common Poetic Forms 482

A. E. Housman • LOVELIEST OF TREES, THE CHERRY NOW 482

Robert Herrick • UPON JULIA’S CLOTHES 483

Sonnet 484

John Keats • ON FIRST LOOKING INTO CHAPMAN’S HOMER 485

William Wordsworth • THE WORLD IS TOO MUCH WITH US 486

William Shakespeare • SHALL I COMPARE THEE TO A SUMMER’S DAY? 487

William Shakespeare • MY MISTRESS’ EYES ARE NOTHING LIKE THE SUN 487

Edna St. Vincent Millay • I WILL PUT CHAOS INTO FOURTEEN LINES 488

Molly Peacock • DESIRE 489

Mark Jarman • UNHOLY SONNET 489

X. J. Kennedy • “THE PURPOSE OF TIME IS TO PREVENT EVERYTHING FROM HAPPENING AT ONCE” 490

Villanelle 491

Dylan Thomas • DO NOT GO GENTLE INTO THAT GOOD NIGHT 491

Sestina 492

Florence Cassen Mayers • ALL-AMERICAN SESTINA 492

Epigram 493

Samuel Taylor Coleridge • WHAT IS AN EPIGRAM? 494

A. R. Ammons • COWARD 494

David McCord • EPITAPH ON A WAITER 494

Paul Laurence Dunbar • THEOLOGY 494

Limerick 495

Anonymous • THERE WAS A YOUNG LADY NAMED BRIGHT 495

Laurence Perrine • THE LIMERICK’S NEVER AVERSE 495

Haiku 496

Matsuo Bash–o • UNDER CHERRY TREES 496

Carolyn Kizer • AFTER BASH – O 496

Sonia Sanchez • C’MON MAN HOLD ME 496

Elegy 497

Theodore Roethke • ELEGY FOR JANE 497

Brendan Galvin • AN EVEL KNIEVEL ELEGY 498

xxviii contents

Ode 499

Percy Bysshe Shelley • ODE TO THE WEST WIND 499

Baron Wormser • LABOR 502

Parody 503

Blanche Farley • THE LOVER NOT TAKEN 503 perspective Elaine Mitchell • Form 504

Picture Poem 505

Michael McFee • IN MEDIAS RES 505

19. Open Form 507 E. E. Cummings • IN JUST- 507

Walt Whitman • FROM “I SING THE BODY ELECTRIC” 508

Louis Jenkins • THE PROSE POEM 510

Galway Kinnell • AFTER MAKING LOVE WE HEAR FOOTSTEPS 511

Kelly Cherry • ALZHEIMER’S 512

William Carlos Williams • THE RED WHEELBARROW 513

Marilyn Nelson Waniek • EMILY DICKINSON’S DEFUNCT 513

Julio Marzán • THE TRANSLATOR AT THE RECEPTION FOR LATIN AMERICAN WRITERS 514

Anonymous • THE FROG 515

Julia Alvarez • QUEENS, 1963 515

Tato Laviera • AMERÍCAN 517

Peter Meinke • THE ABC OF AEROBICS 519

Found Poem 520

Donald Justice • ORDER IN THE STREETS 520

Poetry in Depth 523

20. A Study of Billy Collins: The Author Refl ects on Five Poems 525 A Brief Biography and an Introduction to His Work 526

introduction: Billy Collins • “HOW DO POEMS TRAVEL?” 531

poem: Billy Collins • OSSO BUCO 532

essay: Billy Collins • ON WRITING “OSSO BUCO” 533

poem: Billy Collins • NOSTALGIA 534

essay: Billy Collins • ON WRITING “NOSTALGIA” 535

poem: Billy Collins • QUESTIONS ABOUT ANGELS 537

essay: Billy Collins • ON WRITING “QUESTIONS ABOUT ANGELS” 538

poem: Billy Collins • LITANY 539

essay: Billy Collins • ON WRITING “LITANY” 540

contents xxix

poem: Billy Collins • BUILDING WITH ITS FACE BLOWN OFF 541 perspective (interview) On “Building with Its Face Blown Off ”: Michael Meyer Interviews Billy Collins 542

facsimile: Billy Collins • DRAFT MANUSCRIPT PAGE OF “BUSY DAY” 546 suggested topics for longer papers 547 questions for writing about an author in depth 548

21. A Thematic Case Study: Humor and Satire 550 Fleur Adcock • THE VIDEO 551

John Ciardi • SUBURBAN 552

Howard Nemerov • WALKING THE DOG 552

Linda Pastan • JUMP CABLING 553

Peter Schmitt • FRIENDS WITH NUMBERS 554

Martín Espada • THE COMMUNITY COLLEGE REVISES ITS CURRICULUM IN RESPONSE TO CHANGING DEMOGRAPHICS 555

Thomas Lux • COMMERCIAL LEECH FARMING TODAY 555

X. J. Kennedy • ON A YOUNG MAN’S REMAINING AN UNDERGRADUATE FOR TWELVE YEARS 557

A Collection of Poems 559

22. Poems for Further Reading 561 William Blake • INFANT SORROW 561

Robert Burns • A RED, RED ROSE 561

George Gordon, Lord Byron • SHE WALKS IN BEAUTY 562

Lucille Clifton • THIS MORNING (FOR THE GIRLS OF EASTERN HIGH SCHOOL) 563

Samuel Taylor Coleridge • KUBLA KHAN: OR, A VISION IN A DREAM 563

Emily Dickinson • BECAUSE I COULD NOT STOP FOR DEATH — 565

Emily Dickinson • HE FUMBLES AT YOUR SOUL 565

Emily Dickinson • I FELT A FUNERAL, IN MY BRAIN 566

Emily Dickinson • I STARTED EARLY — TOOK MY DOG — 566

Emily Dickinson • MY LIFE HAD STOOD — A LOADED GUN — 567

John Donne • THE APPARITION 568

John Donne • THE FLEA 568

T. S. Eliot • THE LOVE SONG OF J. ALFRED PRUFROCK 569

Robert Frost • MENDING WALL 573

Robert Frost • THE ROAD NOT TAKEN 574

Thomas Hardy • HAP 574

Gerard Manley Hopkins • PIED BEAUTY 575

A. E. Housman • TO AN ATHLETE DYING YOUNG 575

xxx contents

Langston Hughes • HARLEM 576

Ben Jonson • TO CELIA 577

John Keats • LA BELLE DAME SANS MERCI 577

John Keats • WRITTEN IN DISGUST OF VULGAR SUPERSTITION 579

Emma Lazarus • THE NEW COLOSSUS 579

John Milton • WHEN I CONSIDER HOW MY LIGHT IS SPENT 580

Christina Georgina Rossetti • SOME LADIES DRESS IN MUSLIN FULL AND WHITE 580

Siegfried Sassoon • “THEY” 581

William Shakespeare • THAT TIME OF YEAR THOU MAYST IN ME BEHOLD 581

William Shakespeare • WHEN, IN DISGRACE WITH FORTUNE AND MEN’S EYES 581

Percy Bysshe Shelley • OZYMANDIAS 582

Alfred, Lord Tennyson • ULYSSES 582

Alfred, Lord Tennyson • TEARS, IDLE TEARS 584

Walt Whitman • WHEN I HEARD THE LEARN’D ASTRONOMER 585

William Carlos Williams • THIS IS JUST TO SAY 585

William Wordsworth • A SLUMBER DID MY SPIRIT SEAL 586

William Wordsworth • THE SOLITARY REAPER 586

William Wordsworth • MUTABILITY 587

William Butler Yeats • LEDA AND THE SWAN 587

DR AMA 589

The Study of Drama 591

23. Reading Drama 593 Reading Drama Responsively 593

Susan Glaspell • TRIFLES 595 Did Mrs. Wright kill her husband? While the men investigate, Mrs. Peters and Mrs. Hale reach their own conclusions.

a sample close reading An Annotated Section of Susan Glaspell’s Trifles 606

Elements of Drama 607 Joan Ackermann • QUIET TORRENTIAL SOUND 612 Two sisters in their thirties order at a café: one a hot fudge sundae and a Diet Coke, the other a decaf. In short order, the conversation turns to appetites.

Drama in Popular Forms 619 Larry David • “THE PITCH,” A SEINFELD EPISODE 622 Are our lives just a series of insignifi cant, mundane events? Of episodes in which nothing happens?

contents xxxi

24. Sophocles and Greek Drama 632 Theatrical Conventions of Greek Drama 633 Tragedy 636

Sophocles • OEDIPUS THE KING 639 In the greatest of the surviving Greek tragedies, a hero sets out to discover the truth about himself.

25. William Shakespeare and Elizabethan Drama 687 Shakespeare’s Theater 689 The Range of Shakespeare’s Drama: History, Comedy, and Tragedy 693 A Note on Reading Shakespeare 696

William Shakespeare • OTHELLO, THE MOOR OF VENICE 698 Jealousy proves to be the downfall of a Moorish general in this tragedy of love, betrayal, friendship, and race.

26. Henrik Ibsen and Modern Drama 788 Realism 788 Theatrical Conventions of Modern Drama 790

Henrik Ibsen • A DOLL HOUSE 792 “Yes, whatever you say, Torvald.” Can a nineteenth-century wife break from her dominating husband?

A Collection of Plays 849

27. Plays for Further Reading 851 Sharon E. Cooper • MISTAKEN IDENTITY 852 A Hindu lesbian and a clueless American go on a blind date.

David Henry Hwang • TRYING TO FIND CHINATOWN 857 “What — you think if I deny the importance of my race, I’m nobody?” Two young men have very different ideas about what makes us who we are.

Jane Martin • RODEO 864 When a closely knit community is corrupted in the name of progress and profi t, can it recover?

Jane Anderson • THE REPRIMAND 868 Mim and Rhona work through their professional power struggle. Sort of.

Nilaja Sun • NO CHILD . . . 905 When Ms. Sun arrives to direct a play with the worst class in school, her funny and frank students are more than a little skeptical.

xxxii contents

CRIT ICAL THINKING AND WRIT ING 927

28. Reading and the Writing Process 929 The Purpose and Value of Writing about Literature 929 Reading the Work Closely 930 Annotating the Text and Journal Note Taking 930

Annotated Text 931

Journal Note 931

Choosing a Topic 932 Developing a Thesis 933 Arguing about Literature 934 Organizing a Paper 935 Writing a Draft 936

Writing the Introduction and Conclusion 937

Using Quotations 937

Revising and Editing 939 questions for writing: a revision checklist 939

Types of Writing Assignments 941

29. Writing about Fiction 942 From Reading to Writing 942

questions for responsive reading and writing 943 Analysis 945

a sample student analysis John Updike’s “A&P” as a State of Mind 945

30. Writing about Poetry 950 From Reading to Writing 950

questions for responsive reading and writing 951

Explication 952

A Sample Paper-in-Progress 953 Mapping a Poem 953

John Donne • DEATH BE NOT PROUD 954

Asking Questions about the Elements 954 a sample fi rst response First Response to John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” 954

Organizing Your Thoughts 955 a sample informal outline Proposed Outline for Paper on John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” 956

contents xxxiii

The Elements and Theme 957 fi nal paper: a sample explication The Use of Conventional Metaphors for Death in John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” 957

A Sample Student Explication 961 A Reading of Emily Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light” 961

Emily Dickinson • THERE’S A CERTAIN SLANT OF LIGHT 961

31. Writing about Drama 965 From Reading to Writing 965

questions for responsive reading and writing 966 Comparison and Contrast 968

32. The Literary Research Paper 973 Choosing a Topic 974 Finding Sources 975

Electronic Sources 975

Evaluating Sources and Taking Notes 976 Developing a Thesis and Organizing the Paper 977 Revising 978 Documenting Sources and Avoiding Plagiarism 978

The List of Works Cited 980 Parenthetical References 985

a sample student research paper How William Faulkner’s Narrator Cultivates a Rose for Emily 986

Glossary of Literary Terms 991

Index of First Lines 1019

Index of Authors and Titles 1023

Index of Terms 1034

This page intentionally left blank

1

THE NATURE OF LITER ATURE Literature does not lend itself to a single tidy definition because the mak- ing of it over the centuries has been as complex, unwieldy, and natural as life itself. Is literature everything that has been written, from ancient prayers to graffiti? Does it include songs and stories that were not written down until many years after they were recited? Does literature include the television scripts from Seinfeld as well as Shakespeare’s King Lear? Is litera- ture only writing that has permanent value and continues to move people? Must literature be true or beautiful or moral? Should it be socially useful? Although these kinds of questions are not conclusively answered in this book, they are implicitly raised by the stories, poems, and plays included here. No definition of literature, particularly a brief one, is likely to satisfy everyone because definitions tend to weaken and require qualification when confronted by the uniqueness of individual works. In this context it is worth recalling Herman Melville’s humorous use of a definition of a whale in Moby-Dick (1851). In the course of the novel, Mel- ville presents his imaginative and symbolic whale as inscrutable, but he begins with a quota tion from Georges Cuvier, a French naturalist who defines a whale in his nineteenth-century study The Animal Kingdom this

INTRODUCTION

Reading Imaginative Literature

© Jerry Bauer.

Literature has been the salvation of the damned; literature has inspired and guided lovers, routed despair, and can perhaps . . . save the world.

— JOHN CHEEVER

2 reading imaginative literature

way: “The whale is a mammiferous animal without hind feet.” Cuvier’s description is technically correct, of course, but there is little wisdom in it. Melville under stood that the reality of the whale (which he describes as the “un graspable phantom of life”) cannot be caught by isolated facts. If the full meaning of the whale is to be understood, it must be sought on the open sea of experience, where the whale itself is, rather than in exclusionary definitions. Facts and definitions are helpful; however, they do not always reveal the whole truth. Despite Melville’s reminder that a definition can be too limiting and even comical, it is useful for our purposes to describe literature as a fiction consisting of carefully arranged words designed to stir the imagination. Stories, poems, and plays are fictional. They are made up — imagined — even when based on actual historic events. Such imaginative writing differs from other kinds of writing because its purpose is not primarily to transmit facts or ideas. Imaginative literature is a source more of pleasure than of infor- mation, and we read it for basically the same reasons we listen to music or view a dance: enjoyment, delight, and satisfaction. Like other art forms, imaginative literature offers pleasure and usually attempts to convey a perspective, mood, feeling, or experience. Writers transform the facts the world provides — people, places, and objects — into experiences that suggest meanings. Consider, for example, the difference between the following factual de scription of a snake and a poem on the same subject. Here is Webster’s Eleventh New Collegiate Dictionary’s definition:

any of numerous limbless scaled reptiles (suborder Serpentes syn. Ophidia) with a long tapering body and with salivary glands often modified to produce venom which is injected through grooved or tubular fangs.

Contrast this matter-of-fact definition with Emily Dickinson’s poetic evocation of a snake in “A narrow Fellow in the Grass”:

A narrow Fellow in the Grass Occasionally rides — You may have met Him — did you not His notice sudden is —

The Grass divides as with a Comb — 5 A spotted shaft is seen — And then it closes at your feet And opens further on —

He likes a Boggy Acre A floor too cool for Corn — 10 Yet when a Boy, and Barefoot — I more than once at Noon

Have passed, I thought, a Whip lash Unbraiding in the Sun

the value of literature 3

When stooping to secure it 15 It wrinkled, and was gone —

Several of Nature’s People I know, and they know me — I feel for them a transport Of cordiality — 20

But never met this Fellow Attended, or alone Without a tighter breathing And Zero at the Bone —

The dictionary provides a succinct, anatomical description of what a snake is, while Dickinson’s poem suggests what a snake can mean. The defi nition offers facts; the poem offers an experience. The dictionary would probably allow someone who had never seen a snake to sketch one with reasonable accuracy. The poem also provides some vivid subjec- tive descriptions — for example, the snake dividing the grass “as with a Comb” — yet it offers more than a picture of serpentine movements. The poem conveys the ambivalence many people have about snakes — the kind of feeling, for example, so evident on the faces of visitors viewing the snakes at a zoo. In the poem there is both a fascination with and a horror of what might be called snakehood; this combination of feelings has been coiled in most of us since Adam and Eve. A good deal more could be said about the numbing fear that under- cuts the affection for nature at the beginning of this poem, but the point here is that imaginative literature gives us not so much the full, fac- tual proportions of the world as some of its experiences and meanings. Instead of de fining the world, literature encourages us to try it out in our imaginations.

THE VALUE OF LITER ATURE Mark Twain once shrewdly observed that a person who chooses not to read has no advantage over a person who is unable to read. In industri- alized societies today, however, the question is not who reads, because nearly everyone can and does, but what is read. Why should anyone spend precious time with literature when there is so much reading material available that provides useful information about everything from the daily news to personal computers? Why should a literary art- ist’s imagination compete for attention that could be spent on the firm realities that constitute everyday life? In fact, national best-seller lists much less often include collections of stories, poems, or plays than they do cookbooks and, not surprisingly, diet books. Although such fare may be filling, it doesn’t stay with you. Most people have other appetites too.

4 reading imaginative literature

Certainly one of the most important values of literature is that it nourishes our emotional lives. An effective literary work may seem to speak directly to us, especially if we are ripe for it. The inner life that good writers reveal in their characters often gives us glimpses of some portion of ourselves. We can be moved to laugh, cry, tremble, dream, ponder, shriek, or rage with a character by simply turning a page instead of turning our lives upside down. Although the experience itself is imag- ined, the emotion is real. That’s why the final chapters of a good adven- ture novel can make a reader’s heart race as much as a 100-yard dash or why the repressed love of Hester Prynne in The Scarlet Letter by Nathaniel Hawthorne is painful to a sympathetic reader. Human emotions speak a universal language regardless of when or where a work was written. In addition to appealing to our emotions, literature broadens our perspectives on the world. Most of the people we meet are pretty much like ourselves, and what we can see of the world even in a lifetime is astonishingly limited. Literature allows us to move beyond the inevitable boundaries of our own lives and culture because it introduces us to people different from ourselves, places remote from our neighborhoods, and times other than our own. Reading makes us more aware of life’s possibilities as well as its subtleties and ambiguities. Put simply, people who read literature experience more life and have a keener sense of a common human identity than those who do not. It is true, of course, that many people go through life without reading imaginative literature, but that is a loss rather than a gain. They may find themselves troubled by the same kinds of questions that reveal Daisy Buchanan’s restless, vague discontentment in F. Scott Fitzgerald’s The Great Gatsby: “What’ll we do with ourselves this afternoon?” cried Daisy, “and the day after that, and the next thirty years?” Sometimes students mistakenly associate literature more with school than with life. Accustomed to reading it in order to write a paper or pass an examination, students may perceive such reading as a chore instead of a pleasurable opportunity, something considerably less important than studying for the “practical” courses that prepare them for a career. The study of literature, however, is also practical because it engages you in the kinds of problem solving important in a variety of fields, from phi- losophy to science and technology. The interpretation of literary texts requires you to deal with uncertainties, value judgments, and emotions; these are unavoidable aspects of life. People who make the most significant contributions to their profes- sions — whether in business, engineering, teaching, or some other area — tend to be challenged rather than threatened by multiple possibilities. Instead of retreating to the way things have always been done, they bring freshness and creativity to their work. F. Scott Fitzgerald once astutely described the “test of a first-rate intelligence” as “the ability to hold two opposed ideas in the mind at the same time, and still retain the ability to function.” People with such intelligence know how to read situations,

the changing literary canon 5

shape questions, interpret details, and evaluate competing points of view. Equipped with a healthy respect for facts, they also understand the value of pursuing hunches and exercising their imaginations. Reading literature encourages a suppleness of mind that is helpful in any discipline or work. Once the requirements for your degree are completed, what ultimately matters are not the courses listed on your transcript but the sensibili- ties and habits of mind that you bring to your work, friends, family, and, indeed, the rest of your life. A healthy economy changes and grows with the times; people do too if they are prepared for more than simply filling a job description. The range and variety of life that literature affords can help you to interpret your own experiences and the world in which you live. To discover the insights that literature reveals requires careful reading and sensitivity. One of the purposes of a college introduction to literature class is to cultivate the analytic skills necessary for reading well. Class discussions often help establish a dialogue with a work that perhaps otherwise would not speak to you. Analytic skills can also be developed by writing about what you read. Writing is an effective means of clarifying your responses and ideas because it requires you to account for the author’s use of language as well as your own. This book is based on two premises: that reading literature is pleasurable and that reading and understanding a work sensitively by thinking, talking, or writing about it increases the pleasure of the experience of it. Understanding its basic elements — such as point of view, symbol, theme, tone, irony, and so on — is a prerequisite to an informed appre- ciation of literature. This kind of understanding allows you to perceive more in a literary work in much the same way that a spectator at a ten- nis match sees more if he or she understands the rules and conventions of the game. But literature is not simply a spectator sport. The analytic skills that open up literature also have their uses when you watch a tele- vision program or film and, more important, when you attempt to sort out the significance of the people, places, and events that constitute your own life. Literature enhances and sharpens your perceptions. What could be more lastingly practical as well as satisfying?

THE CHANGING LITER ARY CANON Perhaps the best reading creates some kind of change in us: We see more clearly; we’re alert to nuances; we ask questions that previously didn’t occur to us. Henry David Thoreau had that sort of reading in mind when he remarked in Walden that the books he valued most were those that caused him to date “a new era in his life from the reading.” Readers are sometimes changed by literature, but it is also worth noting that the life of a literary work can also be affected by its readers. Melville’s Moby-Dick, for example, was not valued as a classic until the 1920s, when critics res- cued the novel from the obscurity of being cataloged in many libraries

6 reading imaginative literature

(including Yale’s) not under fiction but under cetology, the study of whales. In deed, many writers contemporary to Melville who were impor- tant and popular in the nineteenth century — William Cullen Bryant, Henry Wads worth Longfellow, and James Russell Lowell, to name a few — are now mostly unread; their names appear more often on elemen- tary schools built early in this century than in anthologies. Clearly, liter- ary reputations and what is valued as great literature change over time and in the eyes of readers. Such changes have steadily accelerated as the literary canon — those works considered by scholars, critics, and teachers to be the most impor- tant to read and study — has undergone a significant series of shifts. Writers who previously were overlooked, undervalued, neglected, or stu- diously ignored have been brought into focus in an effort to create a more diverse literary canon, one that recognizes the contributions of the many cultures that make up American society. Since the 1960s, for example, some critics have reassessed writings by women who had been left out of the standard literary traditions dominated by male writers. Many more female writers are now read alongside the male writers who traditionally populated literary history. Hence, a reader of Mark Twain and Stephen Crane is now just as likely to encounter Kate Chopin in a literary anthol- ogy. Until fairly recently, Chopin was mostly regarded as a minor local colorist of Louisiana life. In the 1960s, however, the feminist movement helped to establish her present reputation as a significant voice in Ameri- can literature owing to the feminist concerns so compellingly artic ulated by her female characters. This kind of enlargement of the canon also resulted from another reform movement of the 1960s. The civil rights movement sensitized literary critics to the political, moral, and aesthetic necessity of rediscovering African American literature, and more recently Asian and Hispanic writers have been making their way into the canon. Moreover, on a broader scale the canon is being revised and enlarged to include the works of writers from parts of the world other than the West, a development that reflects the changing values, concerns, and complexi- ties of recent decades, when literary landscapes have shifted as dramati- cally as the political boundaries of much of the world.

No semester’s reading list — or anthology — can adequately or accurately echo all the new voices competing to be heard as part of the mainstream literary canon, but recent efforts to open up the canon attempt to sensi- tize readers to the voices of women, minorities, and writers from all over the world. This development has not occurred without its urgent advo- cates or passionate dissenters. It’s no surprise that issues about race, gen- der, and class often get people off the fence and on their feet. Al though what we regard as literature — whether it’s called great, classic, or canoni- cal — continues to generate debate, there is no question that such con- troversy will continue to reflect readers’ values as well as the writers they admire.

F I C T I O N

This page intentionally left blank

9

1. Reading Fiction 11

2. Plot 44

3. Character 64

4. Setting 115

5. Point of View 135

6. Symbolism 178

7. Theme 199

8. Style, Tone, and Irony 223

The Elements of Fiction

9

This page intentionally left blank

READING FICT ION RESPONSIVELY Reading a literary work responsively can be an intensely demanding activity. Henry David Thoreau — about as intense and demanding a reader and writer as they come — insists that “books must be read as deliberately and reservedly as they were written.” Thoreau is right about the necessity for a conscious, sustained involvement with a literary work. Imaginative literature does demand more from us than, say, browsing through People magazine in a dentist’s waiting room, but Thoreau makes the process sound a little more daunting than it really is. For when we respond to the demands of responsive reading, our efforts are usually rewarded with pleasure as well as understanding. Careful, deliberate reading — the kind that engages a reader’s imagination as it calls forth the writer’s — is a means of exploration that can take a reader outside whatever circumstance or experience previously defi ned his or her world. Just as we respond moment by moment to people and situations in our lives, we also respond to literary works as we read them, though we may

11

1 Reading Fiction

To seek the source, the impulse of a story is like tearing a fl ower to pieces for wantonness.

— KATE CHOPIN

What we do might be done in solitude and with great desperation, but it tends to produce exactly the opposite. It tends to produce community and in many people hope and joy.

— JUNOT DÍAZ © Scott Lituchy/Star Ledger/ corbis.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 12 reading fiction

not be fully aware of how we are affected at each point along the way. The more conscious we are of how and why we respond to works in par- ticular ways, the more likely we are to be imaginatively engaged in our reading. In a very real sense both the reader and the author create the liter- ary work. How a reader responds to a story, poem, or play will help to determine its meaning. The author arranges the various elements that constitute his or her craft — elements such as plot, character, setting, point of view, symbolism, theme, and style, which you will be examin- ing in subsequent chapters — but the author cannot completely control the reader’s response any more than a person can absolutely predict how a remark or action will be received by a stranger, a friend, or even a family member. Few authors tell readers how to respond. Our sympa- thy, anger, confusion, laughter, sadness, or whatever the feeling might be is left up to us to experience. Writers may have the talent to evoke such feelings, but they don’t have the power and authority to enforce them. Because of the range of possible responses produced by imagina- tive literature, there is no single, correct, defi nitive response or inter- pretation. There can be readings that are wrongheaded or foolish, and some readings are better than others — that is, more responsive to a work’s details and more persuasive — but that doesn’t mean there is only one possible reading of a work. Experience tells us that different people respond differently to the same work. Consider, for example, how often you’ve heard Melville’s Moby-Dick described as one of the greatest American novels. This, how- ever, is how a reviewer in New Monthly Magazine described the book when it was published in 1851: It is “a huge dose of hyperbolical slang, maudlin sentimentalism and tragic-comic bubble and squeak.” Melville surely did not intend or desire this response; but there it is, and it was not a singu- lar, isolated reaction. This reading — like any reading — was infl uenced by the values, assumptions, and expectations that the readers brought to the novel from both previous readings and life experiences. The reviewer’s refusal to take the book seriously may have caused him to miss the boat from the perspective of many other readers of Moby-Dick, but it indicates that even “classics” (perhaps especially those kinds of works) can generate disparate readings. Consider the following brief story by Kate Cho- pin, a writer whose fi ction (like Melville’s) sometimes met with indifference or hostility in her own time. As you read, keep track of your responses to the cen- tral character, Mrs. Mallard. Write down your feelings about her in a substantial paragraph when you fi nish the story. Think, for example, about how you respond to the emotions she expresses concerning news of her husband’s death. What do you think of her feelings about mar- riage? Do you think you would react the way she does under similar circumstances?

WEB Explore contexts for Kate Chopin and approaches to this story at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

chopin / the story of an hour 13

Kate Chopin (1851–1904)

The Story of an Hour 1894

Knowing that Mrs. Mallard was affl icted with a heart trouble, great care was taken to break to her as gently as possible the news of her husband’s death. It was her sister Josephine who told her, in broken sentences; veiled hints that revealed in half concealing. Her husband’s friend Richards was there, too, near her. It was he who had been in the newspaper offi ce when intelligence of the railroad disaster was received, with Brently Mallard’s name leading the list of “killed.” He had only taken the time to assure himself of its truth by a second telegram, and had hastened to forestall any less careful, less tender friend in bearing the sad message. She did not hear the story as many women have heard the same, with a paralyzed inability to accept its signifi cance. She wept at once, with sudden, wild abandonment, in her sister’s arms. When the storm of grief had spent itself she went away to her room alone. She would have no one follow her. There stood, facing the open window, a comfortable, roomy arm- chair. Into this she sank, pressed down by a physical exhaustion that haunted her body and seemed to reach into her soul. She could see in the open square before her house the tops of trees that were all aquiver with the new spring life. The delicious breath of rain was in the air. In the street below a peddler was crying his wares. The notes of a distant song which some one was singing reached her faintly, and countless sparrows were twittering in the eaves. There were patches of blue sky showing here and there through the clouds that had met and piled one above the other in the west facing her window. She sat with her head thrown back upon the cushion of the chair, quite motionless, except when a sob came up into her throat and shook her, as a child who has cried itself to sleep continues to sob in its dreams. She was young, with a fair, calm face, whose lines bespoke repression and even a certain strength. But now there was a dull stare in her eyes, whose gaze was fi xed away off yonder on one of those patches of blue sky. It was not a glance of refl ection, but rather indicated a suspension of intelligent thought. There was something coming to her and she was waiting for it, fearfully. What was it? She did not know; it was too subtle and elusive to name. But she felt it, creeping out of the sky, reaching toward her through the sounds, the scents, the color that fi lled the air. Now her bosom rose and fell tumultuously. She was beginning to recognize this thing that was approaching to possess her, and she was

5

10

14 reading fiction

striving to beat it back with her will — as powerless as her two white slen- der hands would have been. When she abandoned herself a little whispered word escaped her slightly parted lips. She said it over and over under her breath: “free, free, free!” The vacant stare and the look of terror that had followed it went from her eyes. They stayed keen and bright. Her pulses beat fast, and the coursing blood warmed and relaxed every inch of her body. She did not stop to ask if it were or were not a monstrous joy that held her. A clear and exalted perception enabled her to dismiss the sug- gestion as trivial. She knew that she would weep again when she saw the kind, tender hands folded in death; the face that had never looked save with love upon her, fi xed and gray and dead. But she saw beyond that bitter moment a long procession of years to come that would belong to her absolutely. And she opened and spread her arms out to them in welcome. There would be no one to live for her during those coming years; she would live for herself. There would be no powerful will bending hers in that blind persistence with which men and women believe they have a right to impose a private will upon a fellow-creature. A kind intention or a cruel intention made the act seem no less a crime as she looked upon it in that brief moment of illumination. And yet she had loved him — sometimes. Often she had not. What did it matter! What could love, the unsolved mystery, count for in face of this possession of self-assertion which she suddenly recognized as the strongest impulse of her being! “Free! Body and soul free!” she kept whispering. Josephine was kneeling before the closed door with her lips to the keyhole, imploring for admission. “Louise, open the door! I beg; open the door — you will make yourself ill. What are you doing, Louise? For heaven’s sake open the door.” “Go away. I am not making myself ill.” No; she was drinking in a very elixir of life through that open window. Her fancy was running riot along those days ahead of her. Spring days, and summer days, and all sorts of days that would be her own. She breathed a quick prayer that life might be long. It was only yesterday she had thought with a shudder that life might be long. She arose at length and opened the door to her sister’s importunities. There was a feverish triumph in her eyes, and she carried herself unwit- tingly like a goddess of Victory. She clasped her sister’s waist, and together they descended the stairs. Richards stood waiting for them at the bottom. Some one was opening the front door with a latchkey. It was Brently Mallard who entered, a little travel-stained, composedly carrying his grip- sack and umbrella. He had been far from the scene of accident, and did not even know there had been one. He stood amazed at Josephine’s pierc- ing cry; at Richards’ quick motion to screen him from the view of his wife. But Richards was too late.

15

20

chopin / the story of an hour 15

When the doctors came they said she had died of heart disease — of joy that kills.

A SAMPLE CLOSE READING An Annotated Section of “The Story of an Hour”

Even as you read a story for the fi rst time, you can highlight passages, circle or underline words, and write responses in the margins. Subse- quent readings will yield more insights once you begin to understand how various elements such as plot, characterization, and wording build toward the conclusion and what you perceive to be the story’s central ideas. The following annotations for the fi rst eleven paragraphs of “The Story of an Hour” provide a perspective written by someone who had read the work several times. Your own approach might, of course, be quite different — as the sample paper that follows the annotated passage amply demonstrates.

Kate Chopin (1851–1904)

The Story of an Hour 1894

Knowing that Mrs. Mallard was affl icted with a heart trouble, great care was taken to break to her as gently as possible the news of her husband’s death. It was her sister Josephine who told her, in broken sentences; veiled hints that revealed in half concealing. Her husband’s friend Richards was there, too, near her. It was he who had been in the newspaper offi ce when intelligence of the railroad disaster was received, with Brently Mallard’s name leading the list of “killed.” He had only taken the time to assure himself of its truth by a second telegram, and had hastened to forestall any less careful, less tender friend in bearing the sad message. She did not hear the story as many women have heard the same, with a paralyzed inability to accept its signifi cance. She wept at once, with sudden, wild aban- donment, in her sister’s arms. When the storm of grief had spent itself she went away to her room alone. She would have no one follow her. There stood, facing the open window, a comfort- able, roomy armchair. Into this she sank, pressed down by a physical exhaustion that haunted her body and seemed to reach into her soul.

The title could point to the brevity of the story — only 23 short paragraphs — or to the decisive nature of what happens in a very short period of time. Or both.

Mrs. Mallard’s fi rst name (Louise) is not given until para- graph 17, yet her sister Josephine is named immediately. This emphasizes Mrs. Mallard’s married identity.

Given the nature of the cause of Mrs. Mallard’s death at the story’s end, it’s worth noting the ambiguous description that she “was affl icted with a heart trouble.” Is this one of Chopin’s (rather than Jose- phine’s) “veiled hints”?

When Mrs. Mallard weeps with “wild abandonment,” the reader is again confronted with an ambiguous phrase: she grieves in an overwhelming manner yet seems to express relief at being abandoned by Brently’s death.

16 reading fiction

She could see in the open square before her house the tops of trees that were all aquiver with the new spring life. The delicious breath of rain was in the air. In the street below a peddler was crying his wares. The notes of a dis- tant song which some one was singing reached her faintly, and countless sparrows were twittering in the eaves. There were patches of blue sky showing here and there through the clouds that had met and piled one above the other in the west facing her window. She sat with her head thrown back upon the cush- ion of the chair, quite motionless, except when a sob came up into her throat and shook her, as a child who has cried itself to sleep continues to sob in its dreams. She was young, with a fair, calm face, whose lines bespoke repression and even a certain strength. But now there was a dull stare in her eyes, whose gaze was fi xed away off yonder on one of those patches of blue sky. It was not a glance of refl ection, but rather indicated a sus- pension of intelligent thought. There was something coming to her and she was waiting for it, fearfully. What was it? She did not know; it was too subtle and elusive to name. But she felt it, creeping out of the sky, reaching toward her through the sounds, the scents, the color that fi lled the air. Now her bosom rose and fell tumultuously. She was beginning to recognize this thing that was approaching to possess her, and she was striving to beat it back with her will — as powerless as her two white slender hands would have been. When she abandoned herself a little whispered word escaped her slightly parted lips. She said it over and over under her breath: “free, free, free!” The vacant stare and the look of terror that had followed it went from her eyes. They stayed keen and bright. Her pulses beat fast, and the coursing blood warmed and relaxed every inch of her body. . . .

Do you fi nd Mrs. Mallard a sympathetic character? Some readers think that she is callous, selfi sh, and unnatural — even monstrous — because she ecstatically revels in her newly discovered sense of freedom so soon after learning of her husband’s presumed death. Others read her as a victim of her inability to control her own life in a repressive, male- dominated society. Is it possible to hold both views simultaneously, or are they mutually exclusive? Are your views in any way infl uenced by your being male or female? Does your age affect your perception? What

These 3 paragraphs create an increas- ingly “open” atmosphere that leads to the “delicious” outside where there are inviting sounds and “patches of blue sky.” There’s a defi nite tension between the inside and outside worlds.

Though still stunned by grief, Mrs. Mallard begins to feel a change come over her owing to her growing awareness of a world outside her room.

What that change is remains “too subtle and elusive to name.”

Mrs. Mallard’s confl icted struggle is described in pas- sionate, physical terms as if she is “possess[ed]” by a lover she is “powerless” to resist.

Once she has “aban- doned” herself (see the “abandonment” in paragraph 3), the reader realizes that her love is to be “free, free, free.” Her recognition is evident in the “coursing blood [that] warmed and relaxed every inch of her body.”

5

10

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... chopin / the story of an hour 17

about your social and economic background? Does your nationality, race, or religion in any way shape your attitudes? Do you have particular views about the institution of marriage that inform your assessment of Mrs. Mallard’s character? Have other reading experiences — perhaps a familiarity with some of Chopin’s other stories — predisposed you one way or another to Mrs. Mallard? Understanding potential infl uences might be useful in determin- ing whether a particular response to Mrs. Mallard is based primarily on the story’s details and their arrangement or on an overt or a subtle bias that is brought to the story. If you unconsciously project your beliefs and assumptions onto a literary work, you run the risk of distorting it to accommodate your prejudice. Your feelings can be a reliable guide to interpretation, but you should be aware of what those feelings are based on. Often specifi c questions about literary works cannot be answered defi nitively. For example, Chopin does not explain why Mrs. Mallard suffers a heart attack at the end of this story. Is the shock of seeing her “dead” husband simply too much for this woman “affl icted with a heart trouble”? Does she die of what the doctors call a “joy that kills” because she is so glad to see her husband? Is she so profoundly guilty about feeling “free” at her husband’s expense that she has a heart attack? Is her death a kind of willed suicide in reaction to her loss of freedom? Your answers to these questions will depend on which details you emphasize in your interpretation of the story and the kinds of perspectives and values you bring to it. If, for example, you read the story from a feminist perspective, you would be likely to pay close attention to Chopin’s comments about marriage in paragraph 14. Or if you read the story as an oblique attack on the insensitivity of physicians of the period, you might want to fi nd out whether Chopin

WEB

more help with close reading Close readings of Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour,” Nathaniel Hawthorne’s “Young Goodman Brown,” and Jamaica Kincaid’s “Girl” are available at Re:Writing for Litera- ture (www.bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit). Each story is annotated with critical interpretations and explanations of the literary elements at work.

18 reading fiction

wrote elsewhere about doctors (she did) and compare her comments with historic sources. Reading responsively makes you an active participant in the pro- cess of creating meaning in a literary work. The experience that you and the author create will most likely not be identical to another reader’s encounter with the same work, but then that’s true of nearly any experi- ence you’ll have, and it is part of the pleasure of reading. Indeed, talking and writing about literature is a way of sharing responses so that they can be enriched and deepened.

A SAMPLE STUDENT PAPER Differences in Responses to Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour”

The paper on the next page was written in response to an assignment that called for a three- to four-page discussion of how different readers might interpret Mrs. Mallard’s character.

a sample student paper 19

Villa 1

Wally Villa

Professor Brian

English 210

March 12, 2010

Differences in Responses to

Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour”

Kate Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour” appears merely to explore a woman’s

unpredictable reaction to her husband’s assumed death and reappearance, but

actually Chopin offers Mrs. Mallard’s bizarre story to reveal problems that are

inherent in the institution of marriage. By offering this depiction of a marriage

that stifles the woman to the point that she celebrates the death of her kind

and loving husband, Chopin challenges her readers to examine their own views

of marriage and relationships between men and women. Each reader’s judgment

of Mrs. Mallard and her behavior inevitably stems from his or her own personal

feelings about marriage and the influences of societal expectations. Readers

of differing genders, ages, and marital experiences are, therefore, likely to

react differently to Chopin’s startling portrayal of the Mallards’ marriage, and

that certainly is true of my response to the story compared to my father’s and

grandmother’s responses.

Marriage often establishes boundaries between people that make them

unable to communicate with each other. The Mallards’ marriage was evidently

crippled by both their inability to talk to one another and Mrs. Mallard’s

conviction that her marriage was defined by a “powerful will bending hers in

that blind persistence with which men and women believe they have a right to

impose a private will upon a fellow-creature” (14). Yet she does not recognize

that it is not just men who impose their will upon women and that the problems

inherent in marriage affect men and women equally. To me, Mrs. Mallard is

a somewhat sympathetic character, and I appreciate her longing to live out

the “years to come that would belong to her absolutely” (14). However, I also

believe that she could have tried to improve her own situation somehow, either

by reaching out to her husband or by abandoning the marriage altogether.

Chopin uses Mrs. Mallard’s tragedy to illuminate aspects of marriage that are

harmful and, in this case, even deadly. Perhaps the Mallards’ relationship should

be taken as a warning to others: sacrificing one’s own happiness in order to

satisfy societal expectations can poison one’s life and even destroy entire

families.

Thesis providing writer’s interpreta- tion of story’s purpose

Introduction setting up other reader responses discussed later in paper

Analysis of story’s portrayal of marriage, with textual evidence

Analysis of character and plot, connecting with story’s purpose

20 reading fiction

Villa 2

When my father read “The Story of an Hour,” his reaction to Mrs. Mallard

was more antagonistic than my own. He sees Chopin’s story as a timeless

“battle of the sexes,” serving as further proof that men will never really be able

to understand what it is that women want. Mrs. Mallard endures an obviously

unsatisfying marriage without ever explaining to her husband that she feels

trapped and unfulfilled. Mrs. Mallard dismisses the question of whether or

not she is experiencing a “monstrous joy” (14) as trivial, but my father does

not think that this is a trivial question. He believes Mrs. Mallard is guilty of a

monstrous joy because she selfishly celebrates the death of her husband without

ever having allowed him the opportunity to understand her feelings. He believes

that, above all, Brently Mallard should be seen as the most victimized character

in the story. Mr. Mallard is a good, kind man, with friends who care about him

and a marriage that he thinks he can depend on. He “never looked save with

love” (14) upon his wife, his only “crime” (14) was his presence in the house,

and yet he is the one who is bereaved at the end of the story, for reasons he

will never understand. Mrs. Mallard’s passion for her newly discovered freedom is

perhaps understandable, but according to my father, Mr. Mallard is the character

most deserving of sympathy.

Maybe not surprisingly, my grandmother’s interpretation of “The Story

of an Hour” was radically different from both mine and my father’s. My

grandmother was married in 1936 and widowed in 1959 and therefore can

identify with Chopin’s characters, who live at the turn of the century. Her

first reaction, aside from her unwavering support for Mrs. Mallard and her

predicament, was that this story demonstrates the differences between the ways

men and women related to each other a century ago and the way they relate

today. Unlike my father, who thinks Mrs. Mallard is too passive, my grandmother

believes that Mrs. Mallard doesn’t even know that she is feeling repressed until

after she is told that Brently is dead. In 1894, divorce was so scandalous and

stigmatized that it simply wouldn’t have been an option for Mrs. Mallard, and

so her only way out of the marriage would have been one of their deaths. Being

relatively young, Mrs. Mallard probably considered herself doomed to a long

life in an unhappy marriage. My grandmother also feels that, in spite of all we

know of Mrs. Mallard’s feelings about her husband and her marriage, she still

manages to live up to everyone’s expectations of her as a woman both in life

and in death. She is a dutiful wife to Brently, as she is expected to be. She

weeps “with sudden, wild abandonment” when she hears the news of his death;

Contrasting summary and analysis of another reader’s response

Contrasting summary and analysis of another reader’s response

Cultural and historical background providing context for response and story itself

Analysis supported with textual evidence

a sample student paper 21

Villa 3

she locks herself in her room to cope with her new situation, and she has a fatal

heart attack upon seeing her husband arrive home. Naturally the male doctors

would think that she died of the “joy that kills” (15)—nobody could have

guessed that she was unhappy with her life, and she would never have wanted

them to know.

Interpretations of “The Story of an Hour” seem to vary according to the

gender, age, and experience of the reader. While both male and female readers

can certainly sympathize with Mrs. Mallard’s plight, female readers—as was

evident in our class discussions—seem to relate more easily to her predicament

and are quicker to exonerate her of any responsibility for her unhappy situation.

Conversely, male readers are more likely to feel compassion for Mr. Mallard,

who loses his wife for reasons that will always remain entirely unknown to him.

Older readers probably understand more readily the strength of social forces

and the difficulty of trying to deny societal expectations concerning gender

roles in general and marriage in particular. Younger readers seem to feel that

Mrs. Mallard is too passive and that she could have improved her domestic

life immeasurably if she had taken the initiative to either improve or end her

relationship with her husband. Ultimately, how each individual reader responds

to Mrs. Mallard’s story reveals his or her own ideas about marriage, society, and

how men and women communicate with each other.

Villa 4

Work Cited

Chopin, Kate. “The Story of an Hour.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston:

Bedford/St. Martin’s, 2011. 13–15. Print.

Conclusion summariz- ing reader responses explored in the paper

22 reading fiction

Before beginning your own writing assignment on fi ction, you should review Chapter 29, “Writing about Fiction,” as well as Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process,” which provides a step-by-step expla- nation of how to choose a topic, develop a thesis, and organize various types of writing assignments. If you use outside sources, you should also be familiar with the conventional documentation procedures described in Chapter 32, “The Literary Research Paper.”

EXPLOR ATIONS AND FORMUL AS Each time we pick up a work of fi ction, go to the theater, or turn on the television, we have a trace of the same magical expectation that can be heard in the voice of a child who begs, “Tell me a story.” Human beings have enjoyed stories ever since they learned to speak. Whatever the motive for creating stories — even if simply to delight or instruct — the basic human impulse to tell and hear stories existed long before the develop- ment of written language. Myths about the origins of the world and leg- ends about the heroic exploits of demigods were among the earliest forms of storytelling to develop into oral traditions, which were eventually writ- ten down. These narratives are the ancestors of the stories we read on the printed page today. The stories that appear in anthologies for college students are gener- ally chosen for their high literary quality. Such stories can affect us at the deepest emotional level, reveal new insights into ourselves or the world, and stretch us by exercising our imaginations. The following chapters on plot, character, setting, and the other elements of literature are designed to provide the terms and concepts that can help you understand how a work of fi ction achieves its effects and meanings. It is worth acknowledg- ing, however, that many people buy and read fi ction that is quite differ- ent from the stories usually anthologized in college texts. What about all those paperbacks with exciting, colorful covers near the cash registers in shopping malls and corner drugstores? These books, known as formula fiction, are the adventure, western, detective, science fi ction, and romance novels that entertain millions of readers annually. What makes them so popular? What do their characters, plots, and themes offer readers that accounts for the tre- mendous sales of stories with titles like Caves of Doom, Silent Scream, Colt .45, and Forbidden Ecstasy? Many of the writers included in this book have enjoyed wide popularity and written best-sellers, but there are more readers of formula fi ction than there are readers of Ernest Hemingway, William Faulkner, or Joyce Carol Oates, to name only a few. Formula novels do provide entertainment, of course, but that makes them no different from serious stories, if entertainment means pleasure. Any of the stories in this or any other anthology can be read for pleasure.

explorations and formulas 23

Formula fi ction, though, is usually characterized as escape litera- ture. There are sensible reasons for this description. Adventure stories about soldiers of fortune are eagerly read by men who live pretty aver- age lives doing ordinary jobs. Romance novels about attractive young women falling in love with tall, dark, handsome men are read mostly by women who dream themselves out of their familiar existences. The excitement, violence, and passion that such stories provide are a kind of reprieve from everyday experience. And yet readers of serious fi ction may also use it as a refuge, a lib- eration from monotony and boredom. Mark Twain’s humorous stories have, for example, given countless hours of pleasurable relief to readers who would rather spend time in Twain’s light and funny world than in their own. Others might prefer the terror of Edgar Allan Poe’s fi ction or the painful predicament of two lovers in a Joyce Carol Oates story. Although the specifi c elements of formula fi ction differ depending on the type of story, some basic ingredients go into all westerns, mys- teries, adventures, science fi ction, and romances. From the very start, a reader can anticipate a happy ending for the central character, with whom he or she will identify. There may be suspense, but no matter what or how many the obstacles, complications, or near defeats, the hero or heroine succeeds and reaffi rms the values and attitudes the reader brings to the story. Virtue triumphs, love conquers all, honesty is the best pol- icy, and hard work guarantees success. Hence, the villains are corralled, the wedding vows are exchanged, the butler confesses, and gold is dis- covered at the last moment. The visual equivalents of such formula sto- ries are readily available at movie theaters and in television series. Some are better than others, but all are relatively limited by the writer’s goal of giving an audience what will sell. Although formula fi ction may not offer many surprises, it provides pleasure to a wide variety of readers. College professors, for example, are just as likely to be charmed by formula stories as anyone else. Readers of serious fi ction who revel in exploring more challenging imaginative worlds can also enjoy formulaic stories, which offer little more than an image of the world as a simple place in which our assumptions and desires are confi rmed. The familiarity of a given formula is emotionally satisfying because we are secure in our expectations of it. We know at the start of a Sherlock Holmes story that the mystery will be solved by that famous detective’s relentless scientifi c analysis of the clues, but we take pleasure in seeing how Holmes unravels the mystery before us. Similarly, we know that James Bond’s wit, grace, charm, courage, and skill will ulti- mately prevail over the diabolic schemes of eccentric villains, but we vol- unteer for the mission anyway. Perhaps that happens for the same reason that we climb aboard a roller coaster: No matter how steep and sharp the curves, we stay on a track that is both exciting and safe. Although excitement, adventure, mystery, and romance are major routes to escape in formula fi ction,

24 reading fiction

most of us make that trip only temporarily, for a little relaxation and fun. Momentary relief from our everyday concerns is as healthy and desirable as an occasional daydream or fantasy. Such reading is a form of play because we — like spectators of or participants in a game — experi- ence a formula of excitement, tension, and then release that can fasci- nate us regardless of how many times the game is played.

Many publishers of formula fi ction — such as romance, adventure, or detective stories — issue a set number of new novels each month. Readers can buy them in stores or subscribe to them through the mail. These same publishers send “tip sheets” on request to authors who want to write for a particular series. The details of the formula differ from one series to another, but each tip sheet covers the basic elements that go into a story. The following composite tip sheet summarizes the typical advice offered by publishers of romance novels. These are among the most pop- ular titles published in the United States; it has been estimated that four out of every ten paperbacks sold are romance novels. The categories and the tone of the language in this composite tip sheet are derived from a number of publishers and provide a glimpse of how formula fi ction is written and what the readers of romance novels are looking for in their escape literature.

A Composite of a Romance Tip Sheet

Plot

The story focuses on the growing relationship between the heroine and hero. After a number of complications, they discover lasting love and make a permanent commitment to each other in marriage. The plot should move quickly. Background information about the heroine should be kept to a minimum. The hero should appear as early as possible (pref- erably in the fi rst chapter and no later than the second), so that the hero’s and heroine’s feelings about each other are in the foreground as they cope with misperceptions that keep them apart until the fi nal pages of the story. The more tension created by their uncertainty about each other’s love, the greater the excitement and anticipation for the reader. Love is the major interest. Do not inject murder, extortion, inter- national intrigue, hijacking, horror, or supernatural elements into the plot. Controversial social issues and politics, if mentioned at all, should never be allowed a signifi cant role. Once the heroine and hero meet, they should clearly be interested in each other, but that interest should be complicated by some kind of misunderstanding. He, for example, might fi nd her too ambitious, an opportunist, cold, or fl irtatious; or he might assume that she is attached to someone else. She might think he is haughty, snobbish, power hungry, indifferent, or contemptuous of her.

explorations and formulas 25

The reader knows what they do not: that eventually these obstacles will be overcome. Interest is sustained by keeping the lovers apart until very near the end so that the reader will stay with the plot to see how they get together.

Heroine The heroine is a modern American woman between the ages of nineteen and twenty-eight who refl ects today’s concerns. The story is told in the third person from her point of view. She is attractive and nicely dressed but not glamorous; glitter and sophistication should be reserved for the other woman (the heroine’s rival for the hero), whose fl ashiness will compare unfavorably with the heroine’s modesty. When the hero- ine does dress up, however, her beauty should be stunningly apparent. Her trim fi gure is appealing but not abundant; a petite healthy appear- ance is desirable. Both her looks and her clothes should be generously detailed. Her personality is spirited and independent without being pushy or stubborn because she knows when to give in. Although sensitive, she doesn’t cry every time she is confronted with a problem (though she might cry in private moments). A sense of humor is helpful. Because she is on her own, away from parents (usually deceased) or other pro- tective relationships, she is self-reliant as well as vulnerable. The story may begin with her on the verge of an important decision about her life. She is clearly competent but not entirely certain of her own qualities. She does not take her attractiveness for granted or realize how much the hero is drawn to her. Common careers for the heroine include executive secretary, nurse, teacher, interior designer, assistant manager, department store buyer, travel agent, or struggling photographer (no menial work). She can also be a doctor, lawyer, or other professional. Her job can be described in some detail and made exciting, but it must not dominate her life. Although she is smart, she is not extremely intellectual or defi ned by her work. Often she meets the hero through work, but her major con- cerns center on love, marriage, home, and family. White wine is okay, but she never drinks alone — or uses drugs. She may be troubled, frustrated, threatened, and momentarily thwarted in the course of the story, but she never totally gives in to despair or desperation. She has strengths that the hero recognizes and admires.

Hero

The hero should be about ten years older than the heroine and can be foreign or American. He needn’t be handsome in a traditional sense, but he must be strongly masculine. Always tall and well built (not brawny or thick) and usually dark, he looks as terrifi c in a three-piece suit as he does in sports clothes. His clothes refl ect good taste and an affl uent

5

26 reading fiction

life-style. Very successful professionally and fi nancially, he is a man in charge of whatever work he’s engaged in (fi nancier, doctor, publisher, architect, business executive, airline pilot, artist, etc.). His wealth is man- ifested in his sophistication and experience. His past may be slightly mysterious or shrouded by some painful moment (perhaps with a woman) that he doesn’t want to discuss. What- ever the circumstance — his wife’s death or divorce are common — it was not his fault. Avoid chronic problems such as alcoholism, drug addic- tion, or sexual dysfunctions. To others he may appear moody, angry, unpredictable, and explosively passionate, but the heroine eventually comes to realize his warm, tender side. He should be attractive not only as a lover but also as a potential husband and father.

Secondary Characters

Because the major interest is in how the heroine will eventually get together with the hero, the other characters are used to advance the action. There are three major types: (1) The Other Woman: Her vices serve to accent the virtues of the hero- ine; immediately beneath her glamorous sophistication is a deceptive, selfi sh, mean-spirited, rapacious predator. She may seem to have the hero in her clutches, but she never wins him in the end. (2) The Other Man: He usually falls into two types: (a) the decent sort who is there when the hero isn’t around and (b) the selfi sh sort who schemes rather than loves. Neither is a match for the hero. (3) Other Characters: Like furniture, they fi ll in the background and are useful for positioning the hero and heroine. These characters are familiar types such as the hero’s snobbish aunt, the heroine’s troubled younger siblings, the loyal friend, or the offi ce gossip. They should be realistic, but they must not be allowed to obscure the emphasis on the lovers. The hero may have children from a previous marriage, but they should rarely be seen or heard. It’s usually simpler and better not to include them.

Setting

The setting is usually contemporary. Romantic, exciting places are best: New York City, London, Paris, Rio, the mountains, the ocean — wherever it is exotic and love’s possibilities are the greatest. Marriage may take the heroine and hero to a pretty suburb or small town.

Love Scenes

The hero and heroine may make love before marriage. The choice will depend largely on the heroine’s sensibilities and circumstances. She should refl ect modern attitudes. If the lovers do engage in premarital sex, it should be made clear that neither is promiscuous, especially the her- oine. Even if their relationship is consummated before marriage, their

10

explorations and formulas 27

lovemaking should not occur until late in the story. There should be at least several passionate scenes, but complications, misunderstandings, and interruptions should keep the couple from actually making love until they have made a fi rm commitment to each other. Descriptions should appeal to the senses; however, detailed, graphic close-ups are unaccept- able. Passion can be presented sensually but not clinically; the lovemaking should be seen through a soft romantic lens. Violence and any out-of-the- way sexual acts should not even be hinted at. No coarse language.

Writing

Avoid extremely complex sentences, very long paragraphs, and lengthy descriptions. Use concise, vivid details to create the heroine’s world. Be sure to include full descriptions of the hero’s and heroine’s physical fea- tures and clothes. Allow the reader to experience the romantic mood sur- rounding the lovers. Show how the heroine feels; do not simply report her feelings. Dialogue should sound like ordinary conversation, and the overall writing should be contemporary English without slang, diffi cult foreign expressions, strange dialects, racial epithets, or obscenities (hell, damn, and a few other mild swears are all right).

Length

55,000 to 65,000 words in ten to twelve chapters.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Given the expectations implied by the tip sheet, what generalizations can you make about those likely to write for- mula fi ction? Does the tip sheet change the way you think about romantic fi ction or other kinds of formula fi ction?

2. Who is the intended audience for this type of romance? Try to describe the audience in detail: How does a romance novel provide escape for these readers?

3. Why should the hero be “about ten years older than the heroine”? If he is divorced, why is it signifi cant that “it was not his fault”?

4. Why do you think the hero and heroine are kept apart by complica- tions until the end of the story? Does the outline of the plot sound familiar to you or remind you of any other stories?

5. Why do you think restrictions are placed on the love scenes? 6. Why are “extremely complex sentences, very long paragraphs, and

lengthy descriptions” discouraged? 7. Explain how the tip sheet confi rms traditional views of male and

female roles in society. Does it accommodate any broken traditions? 8. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a scene for a formula romance, or

read the excerpt from Edgar Rice Burroughs’s Tarzan of the Apes (p. 46) and try an adventure scene.

15

28 reading fiction

A COMPARISON OF TWO STORIES Each of the following contemporary pieces of fi ction is about a woman who experiences deep sorrow. The fi rst, from A Secret Sorrow by Karen van der Zee, is an excerpt from a romance by Harlequin Books, a major publisher of formula fi ction that has sold well over a billion copies of its romance titles — enough for about 20 percent of the world’s popu- lation. The second piece, Gail Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman,” is a complete short story that originally appeared in Esquire; it is not a for- mula story. Read each selection carefully and look for evidence of formulaic writing in the chapters from A Secret Sorrow. Pay particular attention to the advice on plotting and characterization offered in the composite tip sheet. As you read Godwin’s short story, think about how it is different from van der Zee’s excerpt; note also any similarities. The questions that follow the stories should help you consider how the experiences of read- ing the two are different.

Karen van der Zee (b. 1947)

Born and raised in Holland, Karen van der Zee lives in the United States, where she has become a successful romance writer, contrib- uting more than thirty novels to the popular Harlequin series. This excerpt consists of the fi nal two chapters of A Secret Sorrow. This is what has happened so far: The central charac- ter, Faye, is recuperating from the psychologi- cal effects of a serious car accident in which she received a permanent internal injury. After the accident, she quits her job and breaks her engagement to Greg. She moves into her brother Chuck’s house and falls in love with Kai, a visiting Texan and good friend of her brother. At the end of Chapter 10, Kai insists on knowing why she will not marry him and asks, “Who is Doctor Jaworski?”

From A Secret Sorrow 1981

Chapter Eleven

Faye could feel the blood drain from her face and for one horrifying moment she thought she was going to faint right in Kai’s arms. The room tilted and everything swirled around in a wild madman’s dance.

By permission of the author.

van der zee / a secret sorrow 29

She clutched at him for support, fi ghting for control, trying to focus at some point beyond his shoulder. Slowly, everything steadied. “I . . . I don’t know him,” she murmured at last. “I . . .” He reached in the breast pocket of his shirt, took out a slip of paper, and held it out for her to see. One glance and Faye recognized it as the note from Doctor Martin with Doctor Jaworski’s name scrawled on it, thickly underlined. “How did you get that?” Her voice was a terrifi ed whisper. She was still holding on, afraid she would fall if she let go. “I found it on the fl oor in my bedroom. It must have fallen out of your wallet along with everything else on Saturday morning.” Yes — oh God! Her legs were shaking so badly, she knew it was only his arms that kept her from falling. “Who is Doctor Jaworski, Faye?” His voice was patiently persistent. “I . . . he . . .” Her voice broke. “Let me go, please let me go.” She felt as if she were suffocating in his embrace and she struggled against him, feebly, but it was no use. “He’s a psychiatrist, isn’t he?” His voice was gentle, very gentle, and she looked up at him in stunned surprise. He knew, oh God, he knew. She closed her eyes, a helpless sense of inevitability engulfi ng her. “You know,” she whispered. “How do you know?” “Simple. Two minutes on the phone to Chicago.” He paused. “Doc- tor Martin — was he one of the doctors who treated you at the hospital?” “Yes.” “Why did he give you Doctor Jaworski’s name? Did he want you to make an appointment with him?” “Yes.” Despondency overtook her. There was no going back now. No escape from the truth. No escape from his arms. Resistance faded and she felt numbed and lifeless. It didn’t matter any more. Nothing mattered. “Did you?” Kai repeated. “Did I what?” “See him — Doctor Jaworski.” “No.” “Why did Doctor Martin want you to see a psychiatrist?” “I . . .” Faye swallowed miserably. “It’s . . . it’s therapy for grieving . . . mourning.” She made a helpless gesture with her hand. “When people lose a . . . a wife, or husband for instance, they go through a more or less predictable pattern of emotions . . .” She gave him a quick glance, then looked away. “Like denial, anger. . . .” “. . . depression, mourning, acceptance,” Kai fi nished for her, and she looked back at him in surprise. “Yes.” His mouth twisted in a little smile. “I’m not totally ignorant about subjects other than agronomy.” There was a momentary pause as he scrutinized her face. “Why did you need that kind of therapy, Faye?”

5

10

15

20

30 reading fiction

And then it was back again, the resistance, the revolt against his probing questions. She stiffened in defense — her whole body growing rigid with instinctive rebellion. “It’s none of your business!” “Oh, yes, it is. We’re talking about our life together. Your life and mine.” She strained against him, hands pushing against his chest. “Let me go! Please let me go!” Panic changed into tears. She couldn’t take his nearness any more, the feel of his hard body touching hers, the strength of him. “No, Faye, no. You’re going to tell me. Now. I’m not letting you go until you’ve told me everything. Everything, you hear?” “I can’t!” she sobbed. “I can’t!” “Faye,” he said slowly, “you’ll have to. You told me you love me, but you don’t want to marry me. You have given me no satisfactory reasons, and I’ll be damned if I’m going to accept your lack of explanations.” “You have no right to demand an explanation!” “Oh, yes, I have. You’re part of me, Faye. Part of my life.” “You talk as if you own me!” She was trembling, struggling to get away from him. She couldn’t stand there, so close to him with all the pent-up despair inside her, the anger, the fear of what she knew not how to tell him. His hands were warm and strong on her back, holding her steady. Then, with one hand, he tilted back her head and made her look at him. “You gave me your love — I own that,” he said softly. “True loving involves commitment, vulnerability, trust. Don’t you trust me, Faye?” New tears ran silently down her cheeks. “If I told you,” she blurted out, “you wouldn’t . . . you wouldn’t . . .” “I wouldn’t what?” “You wouldn’t want me any more!” The words were wrenched from her in blind, agonizing grief. “You wouldn’t want me any more!” He shook his head incredulously. “What makes you think you can make that decision for me? Do you have so little trust in my love for you?” Faye didn’t answer, couldn’t answer. Through a mist of tears he was nothing but a blur in front of her eyes. “What is so terrible that you can’t tell me?” She shrank inwardly, as if shriveling away in pain. “Let me go,” she whispered. “Please let me go and I’ll tell you.” After a moment’s hesitation Kai released her. Faye backed away from him, feeling like a terrifi ed animal. She stood with her back against the wall, glad for the support, her whole body shaking. She took a deep breath and wiped her face dry with her hand. “I’m afraid . . . afraid to marry you.” “Afraid?” He looked perplexed. “Afraid of what? Of me? Of marriage?” Faye closed her eyes, taking another deep breath. “I can’t be what you want me to be. We can’t have the kind of life you want.” She looked

25

30

35

40

45

van der zee / a secret sorrow 31

at him, standing only a few feet away, anguish tearing through her. “I’m so afraid . . . you’ll be disappointed,” she whispered. “Oh God, Faye,” he groaned, “I love you.” He came toward her and panic surged through her as he held her against the wall, his hands reaching up to catch her face between them. “Don’t,” she whispered. “Please, don’t touch me.” But it was no use. His mouth came down on hers and he kissed her with a hard, desperate passion. “I love you,” he said huskily. “I love you.” Faye wrenched her face free from his hands. “Don’t touch me! Please don’t touch me!” She was sobbing now, her words barely audible. Her knees gave way and her back slid down along the wall until she crumpled on to the fl oor, face in her hands. Kai took a step backward and pulled her up. “Stand up, Faye. For God’s sake stand up!” He held her against the wall and she looked at him, seeing every line in his dark face, the intense blue of his eyes, and knew that this was the moment, that there was no more waiting. And Kai knew it too. His eyes held hers locked in unrelenting demand. “Why should I be disappointed, Faye? Why?” Her heart was thundering in her ears and it seemed as if she couldn’t breathe, as if she were going to drown. “Because . . . because I can’t give you children! Because I can’t get pregnant! I can’t have babies! That’s why!” Her voice was an agonized cry, torn from the depths of her misery. She yanked down his arms that held her locked against the wall and moved away from him. And then she saw his face. It was ashen, gray under his tan. He stared at her as if he had never seen her before. “Oh my God, Faye . . .” His voice was low and hoarse. “Why didn’t you tell me, why . . .” Faye heard no more. She ran out the door, snatching her bag off the chair as she went by. The only thought in her mind was to get away — away from Kai and what was in his eyes. She reached for Kai’s spare set of car keys in her bag, doing it instinc- tively, knowing she couldn’t walk home alone in the dark. How she man- aged to get the keys in the door lock and in the ignition she never knew. Somehow, she made it home. The phone rang as Faye opened the front door and she heard Chuck answer it in the kitchen. “She’s just got in,” he said into the mouthpiece, smiling at Faye as she came into view. He listened for a moment, nodded. “Okay, fi ne with me.” Faye turned and walked up the stairs, taking deep breaths to calm her shattered nerves. Kai hadn’t wasted any time checking up on her. She didn’t care what he was telling Chuck, but she wasn’t going to stand there listening to a one-sided conversation. But only a second later Chuck was behind her on the stairs.

50

55

60

32 reading fiction

“Kai wanted to know whether you’d arrived safely.” “I did, thank you,” she said levelly, her voice surprisingly steady. “I take it you ran out and took off with his car?” “Did he say that?” “No. He was worried about you. He wanted to make sure you went home.” He sounded impatient, and she couldn’t blame him. She was making life unbearable for everyone around her. Everybody worried about her. Everybody loved her. Everything should be right. Only it wasn’t. “Well, I’m home now, and I’m going to bed. Good night.” “Good night, Faye.” Faye lay in bed without any hope of sleep. Mechanically she started to sort through her thoughts and emotions, preparing mentally for the next confrontation. There would be one, she didn’t doubt it for a moment. But she needed time — time to clear her head, time to look at everything in a reasonable, unemotional way. It was a temptation to run — get in the car and keep driving, but it would be a stupid thing to do. There was no place for her to go, and Kai would fi nd her, no matter what. If there was one thing she knew about Kai it was his stubbornness and his persistence. She had to stick it out, right here, get it over with, deal with it. Only she didn’t know how. She lay listening to the stillness, just a few sounds here and there — the house creaking, a car somewhere in the distance, a dog barking. She had to think, but her mind refused to cooperate. She had to think, decide what to say to Kai the next time she saw him, but she couldn’t think, she couldn’t think. And then, as she heard the door open in the silence, the quiet foot- steps coming up the stairs, she knew it was too late, that time had run out. Without even knocking he came into her room and walked over to the bed. She could feel the mattress sag as his weight came down on it. Her heart was pounding like a sledgehammer, and then his arms came around her and he drew her against him. “Faye,” he said quietly, “please marry me.” “No,” she said thickly. “No.” She could feel him stiffen against her and she released herself from his arms and slid off the bed. She switched on the light and stood near the window, far from the bed, far from Kai. “I don’t expect you to play the gentleman, I don’t expect you to throw out a life of dreams just for the sake of chivalry. You don’t have to marry me, Kai.” She barely recognized her own voice. It was like the cool calm sound of a stranger, unemotional, cold. “You don’t have to marry me,” she repeated levelly, giving him a steady look. Her words were underlined by the silence that followed, a silence loaded with a strange, vibrating energy, a force in itself, fi lling the room. Kai rose to his feet, slowly, and the face that looked at her was like that of a stranger, a dangerous, angry stranger. Never before had she seen him so angry, so full of hot, fuming fury.

65

70

75

van der zee / a secret sorrow 33

“Shut up,” he said in a low, tight voice. “Shut up and stop playing the martyr!” The sound of his voice and the words he said shocked Faye into silence. She stared at him open-mouthed, and then a slow, burning anger arose inside her. “How dare you! How . . .” He strode toward her and took her upper arms and shook her. “Shut up and listen to me! What the hell are you thinking? What the hell did you expect me to do when you told me? You throw me a bomb and then walk out on me! What did you expect my reaction to be? Was I supposed to stay cool and calm and tell you it didn’t matter? Would you have mar- ried me then? Well, let me tell you something! It matters! It matters to me! I am not apologizing for my reaction!” He paused, breathing hard. “You know I always wanted children, but what in God’s name makes you think you’re the only one who has the right to feel bad about it? I have that right too, you hear! I love you, dammit, and I want to marry you, and if we can’t have children I have all the right in the world to feel bad about it!” He stopped talking. He was still breathing hard and he looked at her with stormy blue eyes. Faye felt paralyzed by his tirade and she stared at him, incapable of speech. She couldn’t move, she couldn’t think. “Why do you think I want you for my wife?” he continued on a calmer note. “Because you’re some kind of baby factory? What kind of man do you think I am? I love you, not your procreating ability. So we have a problem. Well, we’ll learn to deal with it, one way or another.” There was another silence, and still Faye didn’t speak, and she real- ized she was crying, soundlessly, tears slowly dripping down her cheeks. She was staring at his chest, blindly, not knowing what to think, not thinking at all. He lifted her chin, gently. “Look at me, Faye.” She did, but his face was only a blur. “Faye, we’re in this together — you and I. Don’t you see that? It’s not just your problem, it’s ours.” “No,” she whispered. “No!” She shook her head wildly. “You have a choice, don’t you see that? You don’t have to marry me. You could marry someone else and have children of your own.” “Oh, God, Faye,” he groaned, “you’re wrong. Don’t you know? Don’t you see? I don’t have a choice. I never did have a choice, or a chance. Not since I met you and fell in love with you. I don’t want anybody else, don’t you understand that? I want you, only you.” She wanted to believe it, give in to him. Never before had she wanted anything more desperately than she wanted to give in to him now. But she couldn’t, she couldn’t. . . . She closed her eyes, briefl y, fi ghting for reason, common sense. “Kai, I . . . I can’t live all my life with your regret and your disappoint- ment. Every time we see some pregnant woman, every time we’re with

80

85

90

34 reading fiction

somebody else’s children I’ll feel I’ve failed you! I . . .” Her voice broke and new sobs came unchecked. He held her very tightly until she calmed down and then he put her from him a little and gave her a dark, compelling look. “It’s not my regret, or my disappointment,” he said with quiet emphasis. “It’s ours. We’re not talking about you or me. We’re talking about us. I love you, and you love me, and that’s the starting point, that comes fi rst. From then on we’re in it together.” Faye moved out of his arms, away from him, but her legs wouldn’t carry her and she sank into a chair. She covered her face with her hands and tried desperately to stop the crying, to stop the tears from coming and coming as if they would never end. “How . . . how can I ever believe it?” “Because I’m asking you to,” he said quietly. He knelt in front of her, took her hands away from her wet face. “Look at me, Faye. No other woman can give me what you can — yourself, your love, your warmth, your sense of humor. All the facets of your personality that make up the fi nal you. I’ve known other women, Faye, but none of them have ever stirred in me any feelings that come close to what I feel for you. You’re an original, remember? There’s no replacement for an original. There are only copies, and I don’t want a copy. To me you’re special, and you’ll have to believe it, take it on faith. That’s what love is all about.” He was holding her hands in his, strong brown hands, and she was looking down on them, fi ghting with herself, fi ghting with everything inside her to believe what he was saying, to accept it, to give in to it. Leaning forward, Kai kissed her gently on the mouth and smiled. “It’s all been too much too soon for you, hasn’t it? You never really got a chance to get over the shock, and when I fell in love with you it only made things worse.” He smiled ruefully and Faye was surprised at his insight. “Yes,” she said. “It all happened too fast.” “Bad timing. If only we could have met later, after you’d sorted it all out in your mind, then it would never have been such a crisis.” She looked at him doubtfully. “It wouldn’t have changed the facts.” “No, but it might have changed your perspective.” Would it have? she wondered. Could she ever feel confi dent and secure in her worth as a woman? Or was she at this moment too emo- tionally bruised to accept that possibility? “I don’t understand,” he said, “why I never guessed what was wrong. Now that I know, it all seems so obvious.” He looked at her thoughtfully. “Faye,” he said gently, “I want you to tell me exactly what happened to you, what Doctor Martin told you.” She stared at him, surprised a little. A thought stirred in the back of her mind. Greg. He had never even asked. The why and the what had not interested him. But Kai, he wanted to know. She swallowed nervously and began the story, slowly, word for word, everything Doctor Martin

95

100

105

van der zee / a secret sorrow 35

had said. And he listened, quietly, not interrupting. “So you see,” she said at last, “we don’t have to hope for any miracles either.” “We’ll make our own miracles,” he said, and smiled. “Come here,” he said then, “kiss me.” She did, shyly almost, until he took over and lifted her up and car- ried her to the bed. He looked down on her, eyes thoughtful. “I won’t pretend I understand your feelings about this, the feelings you have about yourself as a woman, but I’ll try.” He paused for a moment. “Faye,” he said then, speaking with slow emphasis, “don’t ever, not for a single moment, think that you’re not good enough for me. You’re the best there is, Faye, the very best.” His mouth sought hers and he kissed her with gentle reassurance at fi rst, then with rising ardor. His hands moved over her body, touching her with sensual, intimate caresses. “You’re my woman, Faye, you’re mine . . .” Her senses reeled. She could never love anyone like she loved him. No one had ever evoked in her this depth of emotion. This was real, this was forever. Kai wanted her as much as ever. No chivalry, this, no game of pretense, she was very sure of that. And when he lifted his face and looked at her, it was all there in his eyes and the wonder of it fi lled her with joy. “Do you believe me now?” he whispered huskily. “Do you believe I love you and want you and need you?” She nodded wordlessly, incapable of uttering a sound. “And do you love me?” Again she nodded, her eyes in his. “Okay, then.” In one smooth fl owing movement he got to his feet. He crossed to the closet, opened it, and took out her suitcases. He put one on the end of the bed and began to pile her clothes in it, taking arm- fuls out of the closet. Faye watched incredulously. “What are you doing?” she managed at last. Kai kept on moving around, opening drawers, taking out her things, fi lling the suitcase until it could hold no more. “Get dressed. We’re going home.” “Home . . . ?” For a moment he stopped and he looked at her with a deep blue glit- ter in his eyes. “Yes, home — where you belong. With me, in my house, in my bed, in my arms.” “Oh, Kai,” she said tremulously, smiling suddenly. “It’s midnight!” His eyes were very dark. “I’ve waited long enough, I’m not waiting any more. You’re coming with me, now. And I’m not letting you out of my sight until we’re safely married. I don’t want you getting any crazy ideas about running off to save me from myself, or some such notion.” Her throat was dry. “Please, let’s not rush into it! Let’s think about it fi rst!”

110

115

120

36 reading fiction

Calmly he zipped up the full suitcase, swung it off the bed, and put it near the door. “I’m not rushing into anything,” he said levelly. “I’ve wanted to marry you for quite a while, remember?” He crossed to the bed, sat down next to her, and put his arm around her. “Faye, I wish you wouldn’t worry so. I’m not going to change my mind. And I haven’t shelved my hopes for a family, either.” There was a brief silence. “When we’re ready to have kids, we’ll have them. We’ll adopt them. There are orphanages the world over, full of children in need of love and care. We’ll do whatever it takes. We’ll get them, one way or another.” Faye searched his face, faint hope fl ickering deep inside her. “Would you want that?” “Why not?” “I don’t know, really. I thought you . . . it isn’t the same.” “No,” he said levelly, “it isn’t. Adoption is a different process from pregnancy and birth, but the kids will be ours just the same and we’ll love them no less.” “Yes,” she said, “yes.” And suddenly it seemed as if a light had been turned on inside her, as if suddenly she could see again, a future with Kai, a future with children. A bronzed hand lifted her face. “Look, Faye, I’ll always be sorry. I’ll always be sorry not to see you pregnant, not to see you with a big stom- ach knowing you’re carrying my child, but I’ll live.” Faye lowered her eyes and tears threatened again. With both his hands he cupped her face. “Look at me, Faye. I want you to stop thinking of yourself as a machine with a defect. You’re not a damaged piece of merchandise, you hear? You’re a living, breathing human being, a warm-blooded female, and I love you.” Through a haze of tears she looked at him, giving a weak smile. “I love you too.” She put her arms around him and he heaved an unsteady breath. “Faye,” he said huskily, “you’re my fi rst and only choice.”

Chapter Twelve

Kai and Faye had their family, two girls and a boy. They came to them one at a time, from faraway places, with small faces and large dark eyes full of fear. In their faces Faye could read the tragedies of war and death and poverty. They were hungry for love, hungry for nourishment and care. At night they woke in terror, screaming, their memories alive in sleep. Time passed, and in the low white ranch house under the blue skies of Texas they fl ourished like the crops in the fi elds. They grew tall and straight and healthy and the fear in their dark eyes faded. Like their father they wore jeans and boots and large-brimmed hats, and they rode horses and played the guitar. They learned to speak English with a Southern twang.

125

130

135

godwin / a sorrowful woman 37

One day Kai and Faye watched them as they played in the garden, and joy and gratitude overfl owed in Faye’s heart. Life was good and fi lled with love. “They’re all ours,” she said. Even now after all these years she some- times still couldn’t believe it was really so. Kai smiled at her. His eyes, still very blue, crinkled at the corners. “Yes, and you’re all mine.” “They don’t even look like us,” she said. “Not even a tiny little bit.” No blondes, no redheads. Taking her in his arms, Kai kissed her. “They’re true originals, like their mother. I wouldn’t want it any other way.” There was love in his embrace and love in his words and in her heart there was no room now for doubt, no room for sorrow. Sometimes in the night he would reach for her and she would wake to his touch, his hands on her breast, her stomach, searching. In the warm darkness of their bed she would come to him and they would hold each other close and she knew he had been dreaming. She knew the dream. She was walking away from him, calling out that she couldn’t marry him, the words echoing all around. “I can’t marry you! I can’t marry you!” And Kai was standing there watching her go, ter- rifi ed, unable to move, his legs frozen to the ground. He wanted to fol- low her, keep her from leaving, but his legs wouldn’t move. Kai had told her of the dream, of the panic that clutched at him as he watched her walk out of his life. And always he would wake and search for her in the big bed, and she knew of only one way to reassure him. And in the warm afterglow of lovemaking, their bodies close to- gether, she knew that to him she was everything, to him she was the only woman, beautiful, complete, whole.

Gail Godwin (b. 1937)

Born in Birmingham, Alabama, Gail God- win was educated at the University of North Carolina and the University of Iowa, where she earned a Ph.D. in English in 1971. She is a full-time writer who has won grants from the National Endowment for the Arts, the Guggenheim Foundation, and the American Institute for the Arts and Letters. Among her novels are Glass People (1971), A Mother and Two Daughters (1981), The Finishing School (1985), Evensong (1999), and Queen of the Underworld (2006). Her short stories have been collected in several volumes including Dream Children (1976) and Mr. Bedford and the Muses (1983). © Jerry Bauer.

140

145

38 reading fiction

A Sorrowful Woman 1971

Once upon a time there was a wife and mother one too many times

One winter evening she looked at them: the husband durable, receptive, gentle; the child a tender golden three. The sight of them made her so sad and sick she did not want to see them ever again. She told the husband these thoughts. He was attuned to her; he understood such things. He said he understood. What would she like him to do? “If you could put the boy to bed and read him the story about the monkey who ate too many bananas, I would be grateful.” “Of course,” he said. “Why, that’s a pleasure.” And he sent her off to bed. The next night it happened again. Putting the warm dishes away in the cupboard, she turned and saw the child’s gray eyes approving her movements. In the next room was the man, his chin sunk in the open collar of his favorite wool shirt. He was dozing after her good supper. The shirt was the gray of the child’s trusting gaze. She began yelping without tears, retching in between. The man woke in alarm and carried her in his arms to bed. The boy followed them up the stairs, saying, “It’s all right, Mommy,” but this made her scream. “Mommy is sick,” the father said, “go wait for me in your room.” The husband undressed her, abandoning her only long enough to root beneath the eiderdown for her fl annel gown. She stood naked except for her bra, which hung by one strap down the side of her body; she had not the impetus to shrug it off. She looked down at the right nipple, shriveled with chill, and thought, How absurd, a vertical bra. “If only there were instant sleep,” she said, hiccuping, and the husband bundled her into the gown and went out and came back with a sleeping draught guaranteed swift. She was to drink a little glass of cognac followed by a big glass of dark liquid and afterwards there was just time to say Thank you and could you get him a clean pair of pajamas out of the laundry, it came back today. The next day was Sunday and the husband brought her breakfast in bed and let her sleep until it grew dark again. He took the child for a walk, and when they returned, red-cheeked and boisterous, the father made supper. She heard them laughing in the kitchen. He brought her up a tray of buttered toast, celery sticks, and black bean soup. “I am the luckiest woman,” she said, crying real tears. “Nonsense,” he said. “You need a rest from us,” and went to prepare the sleeping draught, fi nd the child’s pajamas, select the story for the night. She got up on Monday and moved about the house till noon. The boy, delighted to have her back, pretended he was a vicious tiger and fol- lowed her from room to room, growling and scratching. Whenever she came close, he would growl and scratch at her. One of his sharp little claws ripped her fl esh, just above the wrist, and together they paused to watch a thin red line materialize on the inside of her pale arm and spill

5

godwin / a sorrowful woman 39

over in little beads. “Go away,” she said. She got herself upstairs and locked the door. She called the husband’s offi ce and said, “I’ve locked myself away from him. I’m afraid.” The husband told her in his richest voice to lie down, take it easy, and he was already on the phone to call one of the baby-sitters they often employed. Shortly after, she heard the girl let herself in, heard the girl coaxing the frightened child to come and play. After supper several nights later, she hit the child. She had known she was going to do it when the father would see. “I’m sorry,” she said, collapsing on the fl oor. The weeping child had run to hide. “What has happened to me, I’m not myself anymore.” The man picked her tenderly from the fl oor and looked at her with much concern. “Would it help if we got, you know, a girl in? We could fi x the room downstairs. I want you to feel freer,” he said, understanding these things. “We have the money for a girl. I want you to think about it.” And now the sleeping draught was a nightly thing, she did not have to ask. He went down to the kitchen to mix it, he set it nightly beside her bed. The little glass and the big one, amber and deep rich brown, the fl annel gown and the eiderdown. The man put out the word and found the perfect girl. She was young, dynamic, and not pretty. “Don’t bother with the room, I’ll fi x it up myself.” Laughing, she employed her thousand energies. She painted the room white, fed the child lunch, read edifying books, raced the boy to the mailbox, hung her own watercolors on the fresh-painted walls, made spinach souffl é, cleaned a spot from the mother’s coat, made them all laugh, danced in stocking feet to music in the white room after read- ing the child to sleep. She knitted dresses for herself and played chess with the husband. She washed and set the mother’s soft ash-blonde hair and gave her neck rubs, offered to. The woman now spent her winter afternoons in the big bedroom. She made a fi re in the hearth and put on slacks and an old sweater she had loved at school, and sat in the big chair and stared out the window at snow-ridden branches, or went away into long novels about other people moving through other winters. The girl brought the child in twice a day, once in the later afternoon when he would tell of his day, all of it tumbling out quickly because there was not much time, and before he went to bed. Often now, the man took his wife to dinner. He made a courtship ceremony of it, inviting her beforehand so she could get used to the idea. They dressed and were beautiful together again and went out into the frosty night. Over candle- light he would say, “I think you are better, you know.” “Perhaps I am,” she would murmur. “You look . . . like a cloistered queen,” he said once, his voice breaking curiously. One afternoon the girl brought the child into the bedroom. “We’ve been out playing in the park. He found something he wants to give you, a surprise.” The little boy approached her, smiling mysteriously. He placed

10

40 reading fiction

his cupped hands in hers and left a live dry thing that spat brown juice in her palm and leapt away. She screamed and wrung her hands to be rid of the brown juice. “Oh, it was only a grasshopper,” said the girl. Nimbly she crept to the edge of the curtain, did a quick knee bend, and reclaimed the creature, led the boy competently from the room. “The girl upsets me,” said the woman to her husband. He sat frown- ing on the side of the bed he had not entered for so long. “I’m sorry, but there it is.” The husband stroked his creased brow and said he was sorry too. He really did not know what they would do without that treasure of a girl. “Why don’t you stay here with me in bed,” the woman said. Next morning she fi red the girl who cried and said, “I loved the little boy, what will become of him now?” But the mother turned away her face and the girl took down the watercolors from the walls, sheathed the records she had danced to, and went away. “I don’t know what we’ll do. It’s all my fault, I know. I’m such a bur- den, I know that.” “Let me think. I’ll think of something.” (Still understanding these things.) “I know you will. You always do,” she said. With great care he rearranged his life. He got up hours early, did the shopping, cooked the breakfast, took the boy to nursery school. “We will manage,” he said, “until you’re better, however long that is.” He did his work, collected the boy from the school, came home and made the supper, washed the dishes, got the child to bed. He managed everything. One evening, just as she was on the verge of swallowing her draught, there was a timid knock on her door. The little boy came in wearing his pajamas. “Daddy has fallen asleep on my bed and I can’t get in. There’s not room.” Very sedately she left her bed and went to the child’s room. Things were much changed. Books were rearranged, toys. He’d done some new drawings. She came as a visitor to her son’s room, wakened the father and helped him to bed. “Ah, he shouldn’t have bothered you,” said the man, leaning on his wife. “I’ve told him not to.” He dropped into his own bed and fell asleep with a moan. Meticulously she undressed him. She folded and hung his clothes. She covered his body with the bedclothes. She fl icked off the light that shone in his face. The next day she moved her things into the girl’s white room. She put her hairbrush on the dresser; she put a note pad and pen beside the bed. She stocked the little room with cigarettes, books, bread, and cheese. She didn’t need much. At fi rst the husband was dismayed. But he was receptive to her needs. He understood these things. “Perhaps the best thing is for you to follow it through,” he said. “I want to be big enough to contain whatever you must do.” All day long she stayed in the white room. She was a young queen, a virgin in a tower; she was the previous inhabitant, the girl with all the

15

20

godwin / a sorrowful woman 41

energies. She tried these personalities on like costumes, then discarded them. The room had a new view of streets she’d never seen that way before. The sun hit the room in late afternoon and she took to brush- ing her hair in the sun. One day she decided to write a poem. “Perhaps a sonnet.” She took up her pen and pad and began working from words that had lately lain in her mind. She had choices for the sonnet, ABAB or ABBA for a start. She pondered these possibilities until she tottered into a larger choice: she did not have to write a sonnet. Her poem could be six, eight, ten, thirteen lines, it could be any number of lines, and it did not even have to rhyme. She put down the pen on top of the pad. In the evenings, very briefl y, she saw the two of them. They knocked on her door, a big knock and a little, and she would call Come in, and the husband would smile though he looked a bit tired, yet somehow this tiredness suited him. He would put her sleeping draught on the bedside table and say, “The boy and I have done all right today,” and the child would kiss her. One night she tasted for the fi rst time the power of his baby spit. “I don’t think I can see him anymore,” she whispered sadly to the man. And the husband turned away, but recovered admirably and said, “Of course, I see.” So the husband came alone. “I have explained to the boy,” he said. “And we are doing fi ne. We are managing.” He squeezed his wife’s pale arm and put the two glasses on her table. After he had gone, she sat look- ing at the arm. “I’m afraid it’s come to that,” she said. “Just push the notes under the door; I’ll read them. And don’t forget to leave the draught outside.” The man sat for a long time with his head in his hands. Then he rose and went away from her. She heard him in the kitchen where he mixed the draught in batches now to last a week at a time, storing it in a corner of the cupboard. She heard him come back, leave the big glass and the little one outside on the fl oor. Outside her window the snow was melting from the branches, there were more people on the streets. She brushed her hair a lot and seldom read anymore. She sat in her window and brushed her hair for hours, and saw a boy fall off his new bicycle again and again, a dog chasing a squirrel, an old woman peek slyly over her shoulder and then extract a parcel from a garbage can. In the evening she read the notes they slipped under her door. The child could not write, so he drew and sometimes painted his. The notes were painstaking at fi rst; the man and boy offering the fi nal strength of their day to her. But sometimes, when they seemed to have had a bad day, there were only hurried scrawls. One night, when the husband’s note had been extremely short, lov- ing but short, and there had been nothing from the boy, she stole out of her room as she often did to get more supplies, but crept upstairs

25

30

42 reading fiction

instead and stood outside their doors, listening to the regular breathing of the man and boy asleep. She hurried back to her room and drank the draught. She woke earlier now. It was spring, there were birds. She listened for sounds of the man and the boy eating breakfast; she listened for the roar of the motor when they drove away. One beautiful noon, she went out to look at her kitchen in the daylight. Things were changed. He had bought some new dish towels. Had the old ones worn out? The canisters seemed closer to the sink. She got out fl our, baking powder, salt, milk (he bought a different brand of butter), and baked a loaf of bread and left it cooling on the table. The force of the two joyful notes slipped under her door that eve- ning pressed her into the corner of the little room; she had hardly space to breathe. As soon as possible, she drank the draught. Now the days were too short. She was always busy. She woke with the fi rst bird. Worked till the sun set. No time for hair brushing. Her fi n- gers raced the hours. Finally, in the nick of time, it was fi nished one late afternoon. Her veins pumped and her forehead sparkled. She went to the cupboard, took what was hers, closed herself into the little white room and brushed her hair for a while. The man and boy came home and found: fi ve loaves of warm bread, a roast stuffed turkey, a glazed ham, three pies of different fi llings, eight molds of the boy’s favorite custard, two weeks’ supply of fresh-laundered sheets and shirts and towels, two hand-knitted sweaters (both of the same gray color), a sheath of marvelous watercolor beasts accompanied by mad and fanciful stories nobody could ever make up again, and a tab- let full of love sonnets addressed to the man. The house smelled redo- lently of renewal and spring. The man ran to the little room, could not contain himself to knock, fl ung back the door. “Look, Mommy is sleeping,” said the boy. “She’s tired from doing all our things again.” He dawdled in a stream of the last sun for that day and watched his father roll tenderly back her eyelids, lay his ear softly to her breast, test the delicate bones of her wrist. The father put down his face into her fresh-washed hair. “Can we eat the turkey for supper?” the boy asked.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How did you respond to the excerpt from A Secret Sorrow and to “A Sorrowful Woman”? Do you like one more than the other? Is one of the women — Faye or Godwin’s unnamed wife — more likable than the other?

2. Describe what you found appealing in each story. Can you point to passages in both that strike you as especially well written or interest- ing? Was there anything in either story that did not appeal to you? Why?

35

godwin / a sorrowful woman 43

3. How do the two women’s attitudes toward family life differ? How does that difference constitute the problem in each story?

4. How would you describe the theme — the central point and mean- ing — in each story?

5. To what extent might “A Sorrowful Woman” be regarded as an unro- mantic sequel to A Secret Sorrow?

6. Can both stories be read a second or third time and still be interest- ing? Why or why not?

7. Explain how you think a romance formula writer would end “A Sor- rowful Woman,” or write the ending yourself.

8. Contrast what marriage means in the two stories.

44

Never mistake motion for action. — ERNEST HEMINGWAY

I put a group of characters in some sort of predicament, and then watch them try to work themselves free. My job isn’t to help them work their way free, or manipulate them to safety — those are jobs which require the noisy jackhammer of plot — but to watch what happens and then write it down.

— STEPHEN KING

Created by a writer’s imagination, a work of fiction need not be factual or historically accurate. Although actual people, places, and events may be included in fiction, facts are not as important as is the writer’s use of them. We can learn much about Russian life in the early part of the nineteenth century from Leo Tolstoy’s War and Peace, but that histori- cal information is incidental to Tolstoy’s exploration of human nature. Tolstoy, like most successful writers, makes us accept as real the world in his novel no matter how foreign it may be to our own reality. One of the ways a writer achieves this accep- tance and engagement — and one of a writer’s few obli- gations — is to interest us in what is happening in the story. We are carried into the writer’s fictional world by the plot. Plot is the author’s arrangement of incidents in a story. It is the organizing principle that controls the order of events. This structure is, in a sense, what remains after a writer edits out what is irrelevant to

2 Plot

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

Alex Gotfryd/corbis.

burroughs / tarzan of the apes 45

the story being told. What is told takes on meaning as it is brought into focus by a skillful writer who selects and orders the events that consti- tute the story’s plot. Events can be presented in a variety of orders. A chronological arrangement begins with what happens first, then sec- ond, and so on, until the last incident is related. The events in William Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily,” however, are not arranged in chrono- logical order because that would give away the story’s surprise ending; instead, Faulkner moves back and forth between the past and present to provide information that leads up to the final startling moment (which won’t be given away here either; the story begins on p. 55). Some stories begin at the end and then lead up to why or how events worked out as they did. If you read the first paragraph of Ralph Ellison’s “Battle Royal” (p. 184), you’ll find an example of this arrangement that will make it difficult for you to stop reading. Stories can also begin in the middle of things (the Latin term for this common plot strategy is in medias res). In this kind of plot we enter the story on the verge of some important moment. John Updike’s “A & P” (p. 334) begins with the nar- rator, a teenager working at a checkout counter in a supermarket, telling us: “In walks these three girls in nothing but bathing suits.” Right away we are brought into the middle of a situation that will ultimately create the conflict in the story. Another common strategy is the flashback, a device that informs us about events that happened before the opening scene of a work. Nearly all of Ellison’s “Battle Royal” takes the form of a flashback as the nar- rator recounts how his identity as a black man was shaped by the cir- cumstances that attended a high-school graduation speech he delivered twenty years earlier in a hotel ballroom before a gathering of the town’s leading white citizens, most of whom were “quite tipsy.” Whatever the plot arrangement, you should be aware of how the writer’s conscious ordering of events affects your responses to the action.

Edgar Rice Burroughs (1875–1950)

A great many stories share a standard plot pattern. The following excerpt from Edgar Rice Burroughs’s novel Tarzan of the Apes provides a conven- tional plot pattern in which the character, an imagined person in the story, is confronted with a problem leading to a climactic struggle that is followed by a resolution of the problem. The elements of a conventional plot are easily recognizable to readers familiar with fast-paced, action- packed mysteries, spy thrillers, westerns, or adventure stories. These page-turners are carefully plotted so that the reader is swept up by the action. Burroughs’s novel, published in 1914 and the first of a series of enor- mously popular Tarzan books and films, charts the growth to manhood of a child raised in the African jungle by great apes. Tarzan struggles

46 plot

5

to survive his primitive beginnings and to reconcile what he has learned in the jungle with his equally powerful instincts to be a civilized human being. One of the more exciting moments in Tarzan’s develop- ment is his final confrontation with his old enemy, Terkoz, a huge tyrannical ape that has kidnapped Jane, a pretty nineteen-year- old from Baltimore, Maryland, who has accompanied her father on an expedition to the jungle. In the chapter preceding this excerpt, Tarzan falls in love with Jane and writes this pointed, if not eloquent, note to her: “I am Tarzan of the Apes. I want you. I am yours. You are mine.” Just as he finishes the note, he hears “the agonized screams of a woman” and rushes to their source to find Esmeralda, Jane’s maid, hysterical with fear and grief. She reports that Jane, the fair and gentle embodiment of civilization in the story, has been carried off by a gorilla. Here is the first half of the next chapter, which illustrates how Burroughs plots the sequence of events so that the emphasis is on physical action.

From Tarzan of the Apes 1914

From the time Tarzan left the tribe of great anthropoids in which he had been raised, it was torn by continual strife and discord. Terkoz proved a cruel and capricious king, so that, one by one, many of the older and weaker apes, upon whom he was particularly prone to vent his brutish nature, took their families and sought the quiet and safety of the far interior. But at last those who remained were driven to desperation by the continued truculence of Terkoz, and it so happened that one of them recalled the parting admonition of Tarzan: “If you have a chief who is cruel, do not do as the other apes do, and attempt, any one of you, to pit yourself against him alone. But, instead, let two or three or four of you attack him together. Then, if you will do this, no chief will dare to be other than he should be, for four of you can kill any chief who may ever be over you.” And the ape who recalled this wise counsel repeated it to several of his fellows, so that when Terkoz returned to the tribe that day he found a warm reception awaiting him. There were no formalities. As Terkoz reached the group, five huge, hairy beasts sprang upon him.

Special Collection, Rare Books, Burroughs Memorial Collection, University of Louisville.

10

15

burroughs / tarzan of the apes 47

At heart he was an arrant coward, which is the way with bullies among apes as well as among men; so he did not remain to fight and die, but tore himself away from them as quickly as he could and fled into the sheltering boughs of the forest. Two more attempts he made to rejoin the tribe, but on each occa- sion he was set upon and driven away. At last he gave it up, and turned, foaming with rage and hatred, into the jungle. For several days he wandered aimlessly, nursing his spite and look- ing for some weak thing on which to vent his pent anger. It was in this state of mind that the horrible, manlike beast, swing- ing from tree to tree, came suddenly upon two women in the jungle. He was right above them when he discovered them. The first inti- mation Jane Porter had of his presence was when the great hairy body dropped to the earth beside her, and she saw the awful face and the snarling, hideous mouth thrust within a foot of her. One piercing scream escaped her lips as the brute hand clutched her arm. Then she was dragged toward those awful fangs which yawned at her throat. But ere they touched that fair skin another mood claimed the anthropoid. The tribe had kept his women. He must find others to replace them. This hairless white ape would be the first of his new household, and so he threw her roughly across his broad, hairy shoulders and leaped back into the trees, bearing Jane away. Esmeralda’s scream of terror had mingled once with that of Jane, and then, as was Esmeralda’s manner under stress of emergency which required presence of mind, she swooned. But Jane did not once lose consciousness. It is true that that awful face, pressing close to hers, and the stench of the foul breath beating upon her nostrils, paralyzed her with terror; but her brain was clear, and she comprehended all that transpired. With what seemed to her marvelous rapidity the brute bore her through the forest, but still she did not cry out or struggle. The sudden advent of the ape had confused her to such an extent that she thought now that he was bearing her toward the beach. For this reason she conserved her energies and her voice until she could see that they had approached near enough to the camp to attract the succor she craved. She could not have known it, but she was being borne farther and farther into the impenetrable jungle. The scream that had brought Clayton and the two older men stum- bling through the undergrowth had led Tarzan of the Apes straight to where Esmeralda lay, but it was not Esmeralda in whom his interest cen- tered, though pausing over her he saw that she was unhurt. For a moment he scrutinized the ground below and the trees above, until the ape that was in him by virtue of training and environment,

48 plot

20

25

30

combined with the intelligence that was his by right of birth, told his wondrous woodcraft the whole story as plainly as though he had seen the thing happen with his own eyes. And then he was gone again into the swaying trees, following the high-flung spoor which no other human eye could have detected, much less translated. At boughs’ ends, where the anthropoid swings from one tree to another, there is most to mark the trail, but least to point the direction of the quarry; for there the pressure is downward always, toward the small end of the branch, whether the ape be leaving or entering a tree. Nearer the center of the tree, where the signs of passage are fainter, the direction is plainly marked. Here, on this branch, a caterpillar has been crushed by the fugi- tive’s great foot, and Tarzan knows instinctively where that same foot would touch in the next stride. Here he looks to find a tiny particle of the demolished larva, ofttimes not more than a speck of moisture. Again, a minute bit of bark has been upturned by the scraping hand, and the direction of the break indicates the direction of the passage. Or some great limb, or the stem of the tree itself has been brushed by the hairy body, and a tiny shred of hair tells him by the direction from which it is wedged beneath the bark that he is on the right trail. Nor does he need to check his speed to catch these seemingly faint records of the fleeing beast. To Tarzan they stand out boldly against all the myriad other scars and bruises and signs upon the leafy way. But strongest of all is the scent, for Tarzan is pursuing up the wind, and his trained nostrils are as sensi- tive as a hound’s. There are those who believe that the lower orders are specially endowed by nature with better olfactory nerves than man, but it is merely a matter of development. Man’s survival does not hinge so greatly upon the perfection of his senses. His power to reason has relieved them of many of their duties, and so they have, to some extent, atrophied, as have the muscles which move the ears and scalp, merely from disuse. The muscles are there, about the ears and beneath the scalp, and so are the nerves which transmit sensations to the brain, but they are underdeveloped because they are not needed. Not so with Tarzan of the Apes. From early infancy his survival had depended upon acuteness of eyesight, hearing, smell, touch, and taste far more than upon the more slowly developed organ of reason. The least developed of all in Tarzan was the sense of taste, for he could eat luscious fruits, or raw flesh, long buried, with almost equal apprecia- tion; but in that he differed but slightly from more civilized epicures. Almost silently the ape-man sped on in the track of Terkoz and his prey, but the sound of his approach reached the ears of the fleeing beast and spurred it on to greater speed.

35

40

45

burroughs / tarzan of the apes 49

Three miles were covered before Tarzan overtook them, and then Terkoz, seeing that further flight was futile, dropped to the ground in a small open glade, that he might turn and fight for his prize or be free to escape unhampered if he saw that the pursuer was more than a match for him. He still grasped Jane in one great arm as Tarzan bounded like a leopard into the arena which nature had provided for this primeval- like battle. When Terkoz saw that it was Tarzan who pursued him, he jumped to the conclusion that this was Tarzan’s woman, since they were of the same kind — white and hairless — and so he rejoiced at this opportunity for double revenge upon his hated enemy. To Jane the strange apparition of this godlike man was as wine to sick nerves. From the description which Clayton and her father and Mr. Philan- der had given her, she knew that it must be the same wonderful creature who had saved them, and she saw in him only a protector and a friend. But as Terkoz pushed her roughly aside to meet Tarzan’s charge, and she saw the great proportions of the ape and the mighty muscles and the fierce fangs, her heart quailed. How could any vanquish such a mighty antagonist? Like two charging bulls they came together, and like two wolves sought each other’s throat. Against the long canines of the ape was pit- ted the thin blade of the man’s knife. Jane — her lithe, young form flattened against the trunk of a great tree, her hands tight pressed against her rising and falling bosom, and her eyes wide with mingled horror, fascination, fear, and admiration — watched the primordial ape battle with the primeval man for possession of a woman — for her. As the great muscles of the man’s back and shoulders knotted beneath the tension of his efforts, and the huge biceps and forearm held at bay those mighty tusks, the veil of centuries of civilization and culture were swept from the blurred vision of the Baltimore girl. When the long knife drank deep a dozen times of Terkoz’s heart’s blood, and the great carcass rolled lifeless upon the ground, it was a pri- meval woman who sprang forward with outstretched arms toward the primeval man who had fought for her and won. And Tarzan? He did what no red-blooded man needs lessons in doing. He took his woman in his arms and smothered her upturned, panting lips with kisses. For a moment Jane lay there with half-closed eyes. For a moment — the first in her young life — she knew the meaning of love. But as suddenly as the veil had been withdrawn it dropped again, and an outraged conscience suffused her face with its scarlet mantle, and a mortified woman thrust Tarzan of the Apes from her and buried her face in her hands.

50 plot

50

Tarzan had been surprised when he had found the girl he had learned to love after a vague and abstract manner a willing prisoner in his arms. Now he was surprised that she repulsed him. He came close to her once more and took hold of her arm. She turned upon him like a tigress, striking his great breast with her tiny hands. Tarzan could not understand it. A moment ago, and it had been his intention to hasten Jane back to her people, but that little moment was lost now in the dim and distant past of things which were but can never be again, and with it the good intention had gone to join the impossible. Since then Tarzan of the Apes had felt a warm, lithe form close pressed to his. Hot, sweet breath against his cheek and mouth had fanned a new flame to life within his breast, and perfect lips had clung to his in burning kisses that had seared a deep brand into his soul — a brand which marked a new Tarzan. Again he laid his hand upon her arm. Again she repulsed him. And then Tarzan of the Apes did just what his first ancestor would have done. He took his woman in his arms and carried her into the jungle.

This episode begins with exposition, the background information the reader needs to make sense of the situation in which the characters are placed. The first eight paragraphs let us know that Terkoz has been overthrown as leader of the ape tribe and that he is roaming the jungle “looking for some weak thing on which to vent his pent anger.” This exposition is in the form of a flashback. (Recall that the previous chapter ended with Esmeralda’s report of the kidnapping; now we will see what happened.) Once this information supplies a context for the characters, the plot gains momentum with the rising action, a complication that intensifies the situation: Terkoz, looking for a victim, discovers the vulnerable Esmeralda and Jane. His first impulse is to kill Jane, but his “mood” changes when he remembers that he has no woman of his own after hav- ing been forced to leave the tribe (more exposition). Hence, there is a further complication in the rising action when he decides to carry her off. Just when it seems that the situation could not get any worse, it does. The reader is invited to shudder even more than if Terkoz had made a meal of Jane because she may have to endure the “awful face,” “foul breath,” and lust of this beast. When Tarzan finally catches up to Terkoz, the conflict of this epi- sode fully emerges. Tarzan must save the woman he loves by defeating his long-standing enemy. Terkoz seeks to achieve a “double revenge” by killing Tarzan and taking his woman. Terkoz’s assumption that Jane is Tarzan’s woman is a foreshadowing, a suggestion of what is yet to come.

burroughs / tarzan of the apes 51

In this conflict Tarzan is the protagonist or hero, the central character who engages our interest and empathy. Protagonist is often a more use- ful term than hero or heroine, however, because the central character of a story can be despicable as well as heroic. Terkoz is the antagonist, the force that opposes the protagonist. The battle between Tarzan and Terkoz creates suspense because the reader is made anxious about what is going to happen. Burroughs makes certain that the reader will worry about the outcome by having Jane wonder, “How could any vanquish such a mighty antagonist?” If we are caught up in the moment, we watch the battle, as Jane does, with “mingled horror, fascination, fear, and admiration” to see what will happen next. The moment of greatest emotional tension, the climax, occurs when Tarzan kills Terkoz. Tarzan’s victory is the reso- lution of the conflict, also known as the dénouement (a French word meaning the “untying of the knot”). This could have been the conclu- sion to the episode except that Jane and Tarzan simultaneously dis- cover their “primeval” selves sexually drawn to each other. Burroughs resolves one conflict — the battle with Terkoz — but then immediately creates another by raising the question of what a respectable profes- sor’s daughter from Baltimore is doing in the sweaty arms of a panting, half-naked man. For a brief moment the cycle of conflict, suspense, and resolution begins again as Jane passionately kisses Tarzan; then her “outraged con- science” causes her to regain her sense of propriety and she pushes him away. Although Tarzan succeeds in the encounter with Terkoz, he is not successful with Jane. However, Burroughs creates suspense for a third time at the very end of the episode, when the “new Tarzan,” having been transformed by this sexual awakening, “took his woman in his arms and carried her into the jungle.” What will he do next? Despite the nov- el’s implausibility (beginning with the premise that apes could raise a human child) and its heavy use of coincidences (not the least of which is Tarzan’s donning a loincloth for the first time only four pages before he meets Jane), the story is difficult to put down. The plot swings us swiftly and smoothly from incident to incident, even if there is an occasional interruption, such as Burroughs’s discussion of evolution, in the flow of the action. The primary conflict that Tarzan experiences in his battle with Ter- koz is external. External conflict is popular in adventure stories because the protagonist’s physical struggles with a formidable foe or the ever- present dangers of a dense jungle echoing wild screams provide plenty of excitement. External conflicts may place the protagonist in opposition to another individual, nature, or society. Tarzan’s battle with societal values begins the moment he instinctively takes Jane in his arms to carry her off into the jungle. He will learn that an individual’s conflict with society can be as frustrating as it is complex, which is why so many plots in serious

52 plot

fiction focus on this conflict. It can be seen, to cite only two examples, in a mysterious stranger’s alienation from a materialistic culture in Herman Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85) and in a young black man’s struggle with racism in Ellison’s “Battle Royal” (p. 184). Conflict may also be internal; in such a case some moral or psycho- logical issue must be resolved within the protagonist. Inner conflicts frequently accompany external ones, as in Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38). Godwin’s story is quiet and almost uneventful com- pared with Tarzan of the Apes. The conflict, though puzzling, is more significant in “A Sorrowful Woman” because that story subtly explores some troubling issues that cannot be resolved simply by “huge biceps” or a “lithe, young form.” The protagonist struggles with both inter- nal and external forces. We are not told why she withdraws from her considerate husband and beautiful son. There is no exposition to explain why she is hopelessly “sad and sick” of them. There is no read- ily identifiable antagonist in her way, but there are several possibilities. Her antagonist is some part of herself that cannot find satisfaction in playing the roles of wife and mother, yet her husband and child also seem to bear some of the responsibility, as does the domestic environ- ment that defines her. Although Burroughs makes enormous demands on Tarzan to survive the perils of the jungle, the author makes few demands on the reader. In part, that’s why Tarzan of the Apes is so much fun: We sit back while Tarzan does all the work, struggling heroically through all the conflicts Burroughs has planted along his jungle paths. Godwin’s story, in contrast, illustrates that there are other kinds of plots, less depen- dent on action but equally full of conflict. This kind of reading is more demanding, but ultimately often more satisfying, because as we confront conflicts in serious fiction we read not only absorbing stories but also ourselves. We are invited not to escape life but to look long and hard at it. Although serious fiction can be as diverting and pleasurable as most standard action-packed plots, serious fiction offers an additional important element: a perspective on experience that reflects rather than deflects life. The two stories that follow — Alice Walker’s “The Flowers” and Wil- liam Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily” — are remarkable for the different kinds of tension produced in each by a subtle use of plot.

Alice Walker (b. 1944)

Novelist, poet, and political activist, Alice Walker was born in 1944 to Minnie Tallulah Grant Walker and Willie Lee Walker, sharecroppers in Eatonton, Georgia. Walker started her collegiate career at Spelman Col- lege in Atlanta, but graduated from Sarah Lawrence College in New York in 1965. After teaching history in Mississippi, she won a fellowship from

walker / the flowers 53

5

the Radcliffe Institute and went on to teach at Wellesley College, where she pioneered one of the first women’s studies courses in the coun- try. Walker has published several volumes of poetry, including Once (1968), Revolutionary Petunias and Other Poems (1973), Horses Make a Landscape Look More Beautiful (1984), Col- lected Poems (2005), and a book of essays, Liv- ing by the Word (1988). Her numerous works of fiction include In Love and Trouble: Stories of Black Women (1973), The Temple of My Familiar (1989), The Complete Stories (1994), By the Light of My Father’s Smile (1998), Possessing the Secret of Joy (1998), Now Is the Time to Open Your Heart (2004), and The Color Purple (1982), which was made into a major motion picture. The acclaim for her novel Meridian (1982) won her a Guggen- heim Fellowship.

The Flowers 1973

It seemed to Myop as she skipped lightly from hen house to pigpen to smokehouse that the days had never been as beautiful as these. The air held a keenness that made her nose twitch. The harvesting of the corn and cotton, peanuts and squash, made each day a golden surprise that caused excited little tremors to run up her jaws. Myop carried a short, knobby stick. She struck out at random at chickens she liked, and worked out the beat of a song on the fence around the pigpen. She felt light and good in the warm sun. She was ten, and nothing existed for her but her song, the stick clutched in her dark brown hand, and the tat-de-ta-ta-ta of accompaniment. Turning her back on the rusty boards of her family’s sharecropper cabin, Myop walked along the fence till it ran into the stream made by the spring. Around the spring, where the family got drinking water, silver ferns and wildflowers grew. Along the shallow banks pigs rooted. Myop watched the tiny white bubbles disrupt the thin black scale of soil and the water that silently rose and slid away down the stream. She had explored the woods behind the house many times. Often, in late autumn, her mother took her to gather nuts among the fallen leaves. Today she made her own path, bouncing this way and that way, vaguely keeping an eye out for snakes. She found, in addition to various com- mon but pretty ferns and leaves, an armful of strange blue flowers with velvety ridges and a sweet-suds bush full of the brown, fragrant buds. By twelve o’clock, her arms laden with sprigs of her findings, she was a mile or more from home. She had often been as far before, but the

Courtesy of Jean Weisinger.

54 plot

strangeness of the land made it not as pleasant as her usual haunts. It seemed gloomy in the little cove in which she found herself. The air was damp, the silence close and deep. Myop began to circle back to the house, back to the peacefulness of the morning. It was then she stepped smack into his eyes. Her heel became lodged in the broken ridge between brow and nose, and she reached down quickly, unafraid, to free herself. It was only when she saw his naked grin that she gave a little yelp of surprise. He had been a tall man. From feet to neck covered a long space. His head lay beside him. When she pushed back the leaves and layers of earth and debris Myop saw that he’d had large white teeth, all of them cracked or broken, long fingers, and very big bones. All his clothes had rotted away except some threads of blue denim from his overalls. The buckles of the overalls had turned green. Myop gazed around the spot with interest. Very near where she’d stepped into the head was a wild pink rose. As she picked it to add to her bundle she noticed a raised mound, a ring, around the rose’s root. It was the rotted remains of a noose, a bit of shredding plowline, now blending benignly into the soil. Around an overhanging limb of a great spreading oak clung another piece. Frayed, rotted, bleached, and frazzled — barely there — but spinning restlessly in the breeze. Myop laid down her flowers. And the summer was over.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do you interpret the final line of the story? What is the effect of the brevity of that sentence?

2. Describe the atmosphere and tone of the first three paragraphs. What emotions do they produce concerning Myop’s childhood?

3. How might paragraph 5 be described as an example of foreshadowing? 4. What is the conflict in the story? What is its climax? Is there a resolu-

tion to the conflict? Explain. 5. What do you think is the central point of this story? 6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Discuss the significance of

Myop’s experience and that of the narrator in Ralph Ellison’s “Battle Royal” (p. 184).

William Faulkner (1897–1962)

Born into an old Mississippi family that had lost its influence and wealth during the Civil War, William Faulkner lived nearly all his life in the South writing about Yoknapatawpha County, an imagined Mis- sissippi county similar to his home in Oxford. Among his novels based

faulkner / a rose for emily 55

on this fictional location are The Sound and the Fury (1929), As I Lay Dying (1930), Light in August (1932), and Absalom, Absalom! (1936). Although his writings are regional in their emphasis on local social history, his con- cerns are broader. In his 1950 acceptance speech for the Nobel Prize for Literature, he insisted that the “problems of the human heart in conflict with itself . . . alone can make good writing because only that is worth writing about, worth the agony and the sweat.” This commitment is evident in his novels and in The Collected Stories of Wil- liam Faulkner (1950).

A Rose for Emily 1931

I

When Miss Emily Grierson died, our whole town went to her funeral: the men through a sort of respectful affection for a fallen monument, the women mostly out of curiosity to see the inside of her house, which no one save an old manservant — a combined gardener and cook — had seen in at least ten years. It was a big, squarish frame house that had once been white, deco- rated with cupolas and spires and scrolled balconies in the heavily light- some style of the seventies, set on what had once been our most select street. But garages and cotton gins had encroached and obliterated even the august names of that neighborhood; only Miss Emily’s house was left, lifting its stubborn and coquettish decay above the cotton wagons and the gasoline pumps — an eyesore among eyesores. And now Miss Emily had gone to join the representatives of those august names where they lay in the cedar-bemused cemetery among the ranked and anony- mous graves of Union and Confederate soldiers who fell at the battle of Jefferson. Alive, Miss Emily had been a tradition, a duty, and a care; a sort of hereditary obligation upon the town, dating from that day in 1894 when Colonel Sartoris, the mayor — he who fathered the edict that no Negro woman should appear on the streets without an apron — remitted her taxes, the dispensation dating from the death of her father on into perpetuity. Not that Miss Emily would have accepted charity. Colonel Sartoris invented an involved tale to the effect that Miss Emily’s father had loaned money to the town, which the town, as a matter of business,

Courtesy of the Colfi eld Collection, Southern Media Archive, University of Mississippi. Special Collections.

56 plot

5

10

preferred this way of repaying. Only a man of Colonel Sartoris’ genera- tion and thought could have invented it, and only a woman could have believed it. When the next generation, with its more modern ideas, became may- ors and aldermen, this arrangement created some little dissatisfaction. On the first of the year they mailed her a tax notice. February came, and there was no reply. They wrote her a formal letter, asking her to call at the sheriff’s office at her convenience. A week later the mayor wrote her himself, offering to call or to send his car for her, and received in reply a note on paper of an archaic shape, in a thin, flowing calligraphy in faded ink, to the effect that she no longer went out at all. The tax notice was also enclosed, without comment. They called a special meeting of the Board of Aldermen. A deputa- tion waited upon her, knocked at the door through which no visitor had passed since she ceased giving china-painting lessons eight or ten years earlier. They were admitted by the old Negro into a dim hall from which a stairway mounted into still more shadow. It smelled of dust and disuse — a close, dank smell. The Negro led them into the parlor. It was furnished in heavy, leather-covered furniture. When the Negro opened the blinds of one window, they could see that the leather was cracked; and when they sat down, a faint dust rose sluggishly about their thighs, spinning with slow motes in the single sun-ray. On a tar- nished gilt easel before the fireplace stood a crayon portrait of Miss Emily’s father. They rose when she entered — a small, fat woman in black, with a thin gold chain descending to her waist and vanishing into her belt, lean- ing on an ebony cane with a tarnished gold head. Her skeleton was small and spare; perhaps that was why what would have been merely plump- ness in another was obesity in her. She looked bloated, like a body long submerged in motionless water, and of that pallid hue. Her eyes, lost in the fatty ridges of her face, looked like two small pieces of coal pressed into a lump of dough as they moved from one face to another while the visitors stated their errand. She did not ask them to sit. She just stood in the door and listened quietly until the spokesman came to a stumbling halt. Then they could hear the invisible watch ticking at the end of the gold chain. Her voice was dry and cold. “I have no taxes in Jefferson. Colonel Sartoris explained it to me. Perhaps one of you can gain access to the city records and satisfy yourselves.” “But we have. We are the city authorities, Miss Emily. Didn’t you get a notice from the sheriff, signed by him?” “I received a paper, yes,” Miss Emily said. “Perhaps he considers him- self the sheriff . . . I have no taxes in Jefferson.” “But there is nothing on the books to show that, you see. We must go by the —” “See Colonel Sartoris. I have no taxes in Jefferson.”

faulkner / a rose for emily 57

15

20

25

“But, Miss Emily —” “See Colonel Sartoris.” (Colonel Sartoris had been dead almost ten years.) “I have no taxes in Jefferson. Tobe!” The Negro appeared. “Show these gentlemen out.”

II

So she vanquished them, horse and foot, just as she had vanquished their fathers thirty years before about the smell. That was two years after her father’s death and a short time after her sweetheart — the one we believed would marry her — had deserted her. After her father’s death she went out very little; after her sweetheart went away, people hardly saw her at all. A few of the ladies had the temerity to call, but were not received, and the only sign of life about the place was the Negro man — a young man then — going in and out with a market basket. “Just as if a man — any man — could keep a kitchen properly,” the ladies said; so they were not surprised when the smell developed. It was another link between the gross, teeming world and the high and mighty Griersons. A neighbor, a woman, complained to the mayor, Judge Stevens, eighty years old. “But what will you have me do about it, madam?” he said. “Why, send her word to stop it,” the woman said. “Isn’t there a law?” “I’m sure that won’t be necessary,” Judge Stevens said. “It’s probably just a snake or a rat that nigger of hers killed in the yard. I’ll speak to him about it.” The next day he received two more complaints, one from a man who came in diffident deprecation. “We really must do something about it, Judge. I’d be the last one in the world to bother Miss Emily, but we’ve got to do something.” That night the Board of Aldermen met — three gray- beards and one younger man, a member of the rising generation. “It’s simple enough,” he said. “Send her word to have her place cleaned up. Give her a certain time to do it in, and if she don’t . . .” “Dammit, sir,” Judge Stevens said, “will you accuse a lady to her face of smelling bad?” So the next night, after midnight, four men crossed Miss Emily’s lawn and slunk about the house like burglars, sniffing along the base of the brickwork and at the cellar openings while one of them performed a regular sowing motion with his hand out of a sack slung from his shoul- der. They broke open the cellar door and sprinkled lime there, and in all the outbuildings. As they recrossed the lawn, a window that had been dark was lighted and Miss Emily sat in it, the light behind her, and her upright torso motionless as that of an idol. They crept quietly across the lawn and into the shadow of the locusts that lined the street. After a week or two the smell went away. That was when people had begun to feel really sorry for her. People in our town, remembering how old lady Wyatt, her great-aunt, had gone

58 plot

30

completely crazy at last, believed that the Griersons held themselves a little too high for what they really were. None of the young men were quite good enough for Miss Emily and such. We had long thought of them as a tableau, Miss Emily a slender figure in white in the back- ground, her father a spraddled silhouette in the foreground, his back to her and clutching a horsewhip, the two of them framed by the back- flung front door. So when she got to be thirty and was still single, we were not pleased exactly, but vindicated; even with insanity in the fam- ily she wouldn’t have turned down all of her chances if they had really materialized. When her father died, it got about that the house was all that was left to her; and in a way, people were glad. At last they could pity Miss Emily. Being left alone, and a pauper, she had become humanized. Now she too would know the old thrill and the old despair of a penny more or less. The day after his death all the ladies prepared to call at the house and offer condolence and aid, as is our custom. Miss Emily met them at the door, dressed as usual and with no trace of grief on her face. She told them that her father was not dead. She did that for three days, with the ministers calling on her, and the doctors, trying to persuade her to let them dispose of the body. Just as they were about to resort to law and force, she broke down, and they buried her father quickly. We did not say she was crazy then. We believed she had to do that. We remembered all the young men her father had driven away, and we knew that with nothing left, she would have to cling to that which had robbed her, as people will.

III

She was sick for a long time. When we saw her again, her hair was cut short, making her look like a girl, with a vague resemblance to those angels in colored church windows — sort of tragic and serene. The town had just let the contracts for paving the sidewalks, and in the summer after her father’s death they began the work. The con- struction company came with niggers and mules and machinery, and a foreman named Homer Barron, a Yankee — a big, dark, ready man, with a big voice and eyes lighter than his face. The little boys would follow in groups to hear him cuss the niggers, and the niggers singing in time to the rise and fall of picks. Pretty soon he knew everybody in town. When- ever you heard a lot of laughing anywhere about the square, Homer Bar- ron would be in the center of the group. Presently we began to see him and Miss Emily on Sunday afternoons driving in the yellow-wheeled buggy and the matched team of bays from the livery stable. At first we were glad that Miss Emily would have an interest, because the ladies all said, “Of course a Grierson would not think seriously of a Northerner, a day laborer.” But there were still others, older people,

faulkner / a rose for emily 59

35

40

who said that even grief could not cause a real lady to forget noblesse oblige° — without calling it noblesse oblige. They just said, “Poor Emily. Her kinsfolk should come to her.” She had some kin in Alabama; but years ago her father had fallen out with them over the estate of old lady Wyatt, the crazy woman, and there was no communication between the two families. They had not even been represented at the funeral. And as soon as the old people said, “Poor Emily,” the whispering began. “Do you suppose it’s really so?” they said to one another. “Of course it is. What else could . . .” This behind their hands; rustling of craned silk and satin behind jalousies closed upon the sun of Sunday afternoon as the thin, swift clop-clop-clop of the matched team passed: “Poor Emily.” She carried her head high enough — even when we believed that she was fallen. It was as if she demanded more than ever the recognition of her dignity as the last Grierson; as if it had wanted that touch of earthi- ness to reaffirm her imperviousness. Like when she bought the rat poi- son, the arsenic. That was over a year after they had begun to say “Poor Emily,” and while the two female cousins were visiting her. “I want some poison,” she said to the druggist. She was over thirty then, still a slight woman, though thinner than usual, with cold, haughty black eyes in a face the flesh of which was strained across the temples and about the eye-sockets as you imagine a lighthouse-keeper’s face ought to look. “I want some poison,” she said. “Yes, Miss Emily. What kind? For rats and such? I’d recom —” “I want the best you have. I don’t care what kind.” The druggist named several. “They’ll kill anything up to an elephant. But what you want is —” “Arsenic,” Miss Emily said. “Is that a good one?” “Is . . . arsenic? Yes, ma’am. But what you want —” “I want arsenic.” The druggist looked down at her. She looked back at him, erect, her face like a strained flag. “Why, of course,” the druggist said. “If that’s what you want. But the law requires you to tell what you are going to use it for.” Miss Emily just stared at him, her head tilted back in order to look him eye for eye, until he looked away and went and got the arsenic and wrapped it up. The Negro delivery boy brought her the package; the druggist didn’t come back. When she opened the package at home there was written on the box, under the skull and bones: “For rats.”

IV

So the next day we all said, “She will kill herself ”; and we said it would be the best thing. When she had first begun to be seen with Homer Bar- ron, we had said, “She will marry him.” Then we said, “She will persuade

noblesse oblige: The obligation of people of high social position.

60 plot

45

him yet,” because Homer himself had remarked — he liked men, and it was known that he drank with the younger men in the Elks’ Club — that he was not a marrying man. Later we said, “Poor Emily” behind the jal- ousies as they passed on Sunday afternoon in the glittering buggy, Miss Emily with her head high and Homer Barron with his hat cocked and a cigar in his teeth, reins and whip in a yellow glove. Then some of the ladies began to say that it was a disgrace to the town and a bad example to the young people. The men did not want to interfere, but at last the ladies forced the Baptist minister — Miss Emily’s people were Episcopal — to call upon her. He would never divulge what happened during that interview, but he refused to go back again. The next Sunday they again drove about the streets, and the following day the minister’s wife wrote to Miss Emily’s relations in Alabama. So she had blood-kin under her roof again and we sat back to watch developments. At first nothing happened. Then we were sure that they were to be married. We learned that Miss Emily had been to the jeweler’s and ordered a man’s toilet set in silver, with the letters H. B. on each piece. Two days later we learned that she had bought a complete outfit of men’s clothing, including a nightshirt, and we said, “They are married.” We were really glad. We were glad because the two female cousins were even more Grierson than Miss Emily had ever been. So we were not surprised when Homer Barron — the streets had been finished some time since — was gone. We were a little disappointed that there was not a public blowing-off, but we believed that he had gone on to prepare for Miss Emily’s coming, or to give her a chance to get rid of the cousins. (By that time it was a cabal, and we were all Miss Emily’s allies to help circumvent the cousins.) Sure enough, after another week they departed. And, as we had expected all along, within three days Homer Barron was back in town. A neighbor saw the Negro man admit him at the kitchen door at dusk one evening. And that was the last we saw of Homer Barron. And of Miss Emily for some time. The Negro man went in and out with the market basket, but the front door remained closed. Now and then we would see her at a window for a moment, as the men did that night when they sprinkled the lime, but for almost six months she did not appear on the streets. Then we knew that this was to be expected too; as if that quality of her father which had thwarted her woman’s life so many times had been too virulent and too furious to die. When we next saw Miss Emily, she had grown fat and her hair was turning gray. During the next few years it grew grayer and grayer until it attained an even pepper-and-salt iron-gray, when it ceased turning. Up to the day of her death at seventy-four it was still that vigorous iron-gray, like the hair of an active man. From that time on her front door remained closed, save for a period of six or seven years, when she was about forty, during which she gave lessons in china-painting. She fitted up a studio in one of the

faulkner / a rose for emily 61

50

55

downstairs rooms, where the daughters and granddaughters of Colo- nel Sartoris’ contemporaries were sent to her with the same regularity and in the same spirit that they were sent to church on Sundays with a twenty-five-cent piece for the collection plate. Meanwhile her taxes had been remitted. Then the newer generation became the backbone and the spirit of the town, and the painting pupils grew up and fell away and did not send their children to her with boxes of color and tedious brushes and pictures cut from the ladies’ magazines. The front door closed upon the last one and remained closed for good. When the town got free postal delivery, Miss Emily alone refused to let them fasten the metal numbers above her door and attach a mailbox to it. She would not lis- ten to them. Daily, monthly, yearly we watched the Negro grow grayer and more stooped, going in and out with the market basket. Each December we sent her a tax notice, which would be returned by the post office a week later, unclaimed. Now and then we would see her in one of the downstairs windows — she had evidently shut up the top floor of the house — like the carven torso of an idol in a niche, looking or not looking at us, we could never tell which. Thus she passed from generation to generation — dear, inescapable, impervious, tranquil, and perverse. And so she died. Fell ill in the house filled with dust and shadows, with only a doddering Negro man to wait on her. We did not even know she was sick; we had long since given up trying to get information from the Negro. He talked to no one, probably not even to her, for his voice had grown harsh and rusty, as if from disuse. She died in one of the downstairs rooms, in a heavy walnut bed with a curtain, her gray head propped on a pillow yellow and moldy with age and lack of sunlight.

V

The Negro met the first of the ladies at the front door and let them in, with their hushed, sibilant voices and their quick, curious glances, and then he disappeared. He walked right through the house and out the back and was not seen again. The two female cousins came at once. They held the funeral on the second day, with the town coming to look at Miss Emily beneath a mass of bought flowers, with the crayon face of her father musing pro- foundly above the bier and the ladies sibilant and macabre; and the very old men — some in their brushed Confederate uniforms — on the porch and the lawn, talking of Miss Emily as if she had been a contemporary of theirs, believing that they had danced with her and courted her per- haps, confusing time with its mathematical progression, as the old do, to whom all the past is not a diminishing road but, instead, a huge meadow which no winter ever quite touches, divided from them now by the nar- row bottle-neck of the most recent decade of years.

62 plot

60

Already we knew that there was one room in that region above stairs which no one had seen in forty years, and which would have to be forced. They waited until Miss Emily was decently in the ground before they opened it. The violence of breaking down the door seemed to fill this room with pervading dust. A thin, acrid pall as of the tomb seemed to lie every- where upon this room decked and furnished as for a bridal: upon the valance curtains of faded rose color, upon the rose-shaded lights, upon the dressing table, upon the delicate array of crystal and the man’s toilet things backed with tarnished silver, silver so tarnished that the mono- gram was obscured. Among them lay a collar and tie, as if they had just been removed, which, lifted, left upon the surface a pale crescent in the dust. Upon a chair hung the suit, carefully folded; beneath it the two mute shoes and the discarded socks. The man himself lay in the bed. For a long while we just stood there, looking down at the profound and fleshless grin. The body had apparently once lain in the attitude of an embrace, but now the long sleep that outlasts love, that conquers even the grimace of love, had cuckolded him. What was left of him, rotted beneath what was left of the nightshirt, had become inextricable from the bed in which he lay; and upon him and upon the pillow beside him lay that even coating of the patient and biding dust. Then we noticed that in the second pillow was the indentation of a head. One of us lifted something from it, and leaning forward, that faint and invisible dust dry and acrid in the nostrils, we saw a long strand of iron-gray hair.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How might this story be rewritten as a piece of for- mula fiction? You could write it as a romance, detective, or horror story — whatever strikes your fancy. Does Faulkner’s version have ele- ments of formulaic fiction?

2. What is the effect of the final paragraph of the story? How does it contribute to your understanding of Emily? Why is it important that we get this information last rather than at the beginning of the story?

3. Contrast the order of events as they happen in the story with the order in which they are told. How does this plotting create interest and suspense?

4. Faulkner uses a number of gothic elements in this plot: the imposing decrepit house, the decayed corpse, and the mysterious secret hor- rors connected with Emily’s life. How do these elements forward the plot and establish the atmosphere?

5. In what sense does the narrator’s telling of the story serve as “A Rose for Emily”? Why do you think the narrator uses we rather than I?

faulkner / a rose for emily 63

6. Explain how Emily’s reasons for murdering Homer are related to her personal history and to the ways she handled previous conflicts.

7. Discuss how Faulkner’s treatment of the North and South contrib- utes to the meaning of the story.

8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Contrast Faulkner’s ordering of events with Tim O’Brien’s “How to Tell a True War Story” (p. 318). How does each author’s arrangement of incidents create different effects on the reader?

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...

64

When I find a well-drawn character in fiction or biography, I generally take a warm personal interest in him, for the reason that I have known him before — met him on the river.

— MARK TWAIN

Character is essential to plot. Without characters Burroughs’s Tarzan of the Apes would be a travelogue through the jungle and Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily” little more than a faded history of a sleepy town in the South. If stories were depopulated, the plots would disappear because characters and plots are interrelated. A dangerous jungle is important only because we care what effect it has on a character. Characters are influenced by events just as events are shaped by characters. Tarzan’s physical strength is the result of his growing up in the jungle, and his strength, along with his inherited intelligence, allows him to be mas- ter there. The methods by which a writer creates people in a story so that they seem actually to exist are called characterization. Huck Finn never lived, yet those who have read Mark Twain’s novel about his adventures along the Mississippi River feel as if they know him. A good writer gives us the illusion that a character is real, but we should also remember that a char- acter is not an actual person but instead has been created by the author. Though we might walk out of a room in which Huck Finn’s Pap talks racist nonsense, we would not throw away the book in a similar fit of anger. This illusion of reality is the magic that allows us to move beyond the circumstances of our own lives into a writer’s fictional world, where we can encounter every- one from royalty to paupers, murderers, lovers, cheaters,

3 Character

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

dickens / hard times 65

martyrs, artists, destroyers, and, nearly always, some part of ourselves. To understand our response to a story, we should be able to recognize the methods of characterization the author uses.

Charles Dickens (1812–1870)

Charles Dickens is well known for creating characters who have stepped off the pages of his fictions into the imaginations and memo- ries of his readers. His characters are successful not because readers might have encountered such people in their own lives, but because his characterizations are vivid and convincing. He manages to make strange and eccentric people appear familiar. The following excerpt from Hard Times is the novel’s entire first chapter. In it Dickens introduces and characterizes a school principal addressing a classroom full of children.

From Hard Times 1854

“Now, what I want is, Facts. Teach these boys and girls nothing but Facts. Facts alone are wanted in life. Plant nothing else, and root out everything else. You can only form the minds of reasoning animals upon Facts: nothing else will ever be of any service to them. This is the prin- ciple on which I bring up my own children, and this is the principle on which I bring up these children. Stick to Facts, sir!” The scene was a plain, bare, monotonous vault of a schoolroom, and the speaker’s square forefinger emphasized his observations by underscoring every sentence with a line on the schoolmaster’s sleeve. The emphasis was helped by the speaker’s square wall of a forehead, which had his eyebrows for its base, while his eyes found commodious cellarage in two dark caves, overshadowed by the wall. The emphasis was helped by the speaker’s mouth, which was wide, thin, and hard set. The emphasis was helped by the speaker’s voice, which was inflexible, dry, and dictatorial. The emphasis was helped by the speaker’s hair, which bristled on the skirts of his bald head, a plantation of firs to keep the wind from its shining surface, all covered with knobs, like the crust of a plum pie, as if the head had scarcely warehouse-room for the hard facts stored inside. The speaker’s obstinate carriage, square coat, square legs, square shoulders — nay, his very neckcloth, trained to take him by the throat with an unaccommodating grasp, like a stubborn fact, as it was — all helped the emphasis.

© National Portrait Gallery, London.

66 character

“In this life, we want nothing but Facts, sir; nothing but Facts!” The speaker, and the schoolmaster, and the third grown person present, all backed a little, and swept with their eyes the inclined plane of little vessels then and there arranged in order, ready to have imperial gallons of facts poured into them until they were full to the brim.

Dickens withholds his character’s name until the beginning of the sec- ond chapter; he calls this fact-bound educator Mr. Gradgrind. Authors sometimes put as much time and effort into naming their characters as parents invest in naming their children. Names can be used to indicate qualities that the writer associates with the characters. Mr. Gradgrind is precisely what his name suggests. The “schoolmaster” employed by Gradgrind is Mr. M’Choakumchild. Pronounce this name aloud and you have the essence of this teacher’s educational philosophy. In Nathaniel Hawthorne’s The Scarlet Letter, Chillingworth is cold and relentless in his single-minded quest for revenge. The innocent and youthful protagonist in Herman Melville’s Billy Budd is nipped in the bud by the evil Clag- gart, whose name simply sounds unpleasant. Of course, not every name is suggestive of the qualities a character may embody, but it is frequently worth determining what is in a name. The only way to tell whether a name reveals character is to look at the other information the author supplies about the character. We eval- uate fictional characters in much the same way we understand people in our own lives. By piecing together bits of information, we create a context that allows us to interpret their behavior. We can predict, for instance, that an acquaintance who is a chronic complainer is not likely to have anything good to say about a roommate. We interpret words and actions in the light of what we already know about someone, and that is why keeping track of what characters say (and how they say it) along with what they do (and don’t do) is important. Authors reveal characters by other means too. Physical descriptions can indicate important inner qualities; disheveled clothing, a crafty smile, or a blush might communicate as much as or more than what a character says. Characters can also be revealed by the words and actions of others who respond to them. In literature, moreover, we have one great advantage that life cannot offer; a work of fiction can give us access to a person’s thoughts. Although in Herman Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85) we learn about Bartleby primarily through descriptive details, words, actions, and his relationships with the other characters, Melville allows us to enter the lawyer’s consciousness. Authors have two major methods of presenting characters: showing and telling. Characters shown in dramatic situations reveal themselves indirectly by what they say and do. In the first paragraph of the excerpt from Hard Times, Dickens shows us some of Gradgrind’s utilitarian edu- cational principles by having him speak. We can infer the kind of per- son he is from his reference to boys and girls as “reasoning animals,”

dickens / hard times 67

but we are not told what to think of him until the second paragraph. It would be impossible to admire Gradgrind after reading the physical description of him and the school that he oversees. The adjectives in the second paragraph make the author’s evaluation of Gradgrind’s val- ues and personality clear: Everything about him is rigidly “square”; his mouth is “thin, and hard set”; his voice is “inflexible, dry, and dictato- rial”; and he presides over a “plain, bare, monotonous vault of a school- room.” Dickens directly lets us know how to feel about Gradgrind, but he does so artistically. Instead of simply being presented with a state- ment that Gradgrind is destructively practical, we get a detailed and amusing description. We can contrast Dickens’s direct presentation in this paragraph with the indirect showing that Gail Godwin uses in “A Sorrowful Woman.” Godwin avoids telling us how we should think about the char- acters. Their story includes little description and no evaluations or inter- pretations by the author. To determine the significance of the events, the reader must pay close attention to what the characters say and do. Like Godwin, many twentieth-century authors favor showing over telling because showing allows readers to discover the meanings, which modern authors are often reluctant to impose on an audience for whom fixed meanings and values are not as strong as they once were. However, most writers continue to reveal characters by telling as well as showing when the technique suits their purposes — when, for example, a minor char- acter must be sketched economically or when a long time has elapsed, causing changes in a major character. Telling and showing complement each other. Characters can be convincing whether they are presented by telling or showing, provided their actions are motivated. There must be reasons for how they behave and what they say. If adequate motivation is offered, we can understand and find plausible their actions no matter how bizarre. In “A Rose for Emily” (p. 55), Faulkner makes Emily Grierson’s intimacy with a corpse credible by preparing us with information about her father’s death along with her inability to leave the past and live in the present. Emily turns out to be consistent. Although we are surprised by the ending of the story, the behavior it reveals is compatible with her temperament. Some kinds of fiction consciously break away from our expectations of traditional realistic stories. Consistency, plausibility, and motivation are not very useful concepts for understanding and evaluating character- izations in modern absurdist literature, for instance, in which characters are often alienated from themselves and their environment in an irra- tional world. In this world there is no possibility for traditional heroic action; instead we find an antihero who has little control over events. Yossarian from Joseph Heller’s Catch-22 is an example of a protagonist who is thwarted by the absurd terms on which life offers itself to many twentieth-century characters.

68 character

In most stories we expect characters to act plausibly and in ways con- sistent with their personalities, but that does not mean that characters cannot develop and change. A dynamic character undergoes some kind of change because of the action of the plot. Huck Finn’s view of Jim, the runaway slave in Mark Twain’s novel, develops during their experiences on the raft. Huck discovers Jim’s humanity and, therefore, cannot betray him because Huck no longer sees his companion as merely the property of a white owner. On the other hand, Huck’s friend, Tom Sawyer, is a static character because he does not change. He remains interested only in high adventure, even at the risk of Jim’s life. As static characters often do, Tom serves as a foil to Huck; his frivolous concerns are contrasted with Huck’s serious development. A foil helps to reveal by contrast the distinctive qualities of another character. The extent to which a character is developed is another means by which character can be analyzed. The novelist E. M. Forster coined the terms flat and round to distinguish degrees of character development. A flat character embodies one or two qualities, ideas, or traits that can be readily described in a brief summary. For instance, Mr. M’Choakumchild in Dickens’s Hard Times stifles students instead of encouraging them to grow. Flat characters tend to be one-dimensional. They are readily acces- sible because their characteristics are few and simple; they are not cre- ated to be psychologically complex. Some flat characters are immediately recognizable as stock charac- ters. These stereotypes are particularly popular in formula fiction, televi- sion programs, and action movies. Stock characters are types rather than individuals. The poor but dedicated writer falls in love with a hard-work- ing understudy, who gets nowhere because the corrupt producer favors his boozy, pampered mistress for the leading role. Characters such as these — the loyal servant, the mean stepfather, the henpecked husband, the dumb blonde, the sadistic army officer, the dotty grandmother — are prepackaged; they lack individuality because their authors have, in a sense, not imaginatively created them but simply summoned them from a ware- house of clichés and social prejudices. Stock characters can become fresh if a good writer makes them vivid, interesting, or memorable, but too often a writer’s use of these stereotypes is simply weak characterization. Round characters are more complex than flat or stock characters. Round characters have more depth and require more attention. They may surprise us or puzzle us. Although they are more fully developed, round characters are also more difficult to summarize because we are aware of competing ideas, values, and possibilities in their lives. As a flat character, Huck Finn’s alcoholic, bigoted father is clear to us; we know that Pap is the embodiment of racism and irrationality. But Huck is con- siderably less predictable because he struggles with what Twain calls a “sound heart and a deformed conscience.” In making distinctions between flat and round characters, you must understand that an author’s use of a flat character — even as a

chai / saving sourdi 69

protagonist — does not necessarily represent an artistic flaw. Moreover, both flat and round characters can be either dynamic or static. Each plot can be made most effective by its own special kind of characterization. Terms such as round and flat are helpful tools to use to determine what we know about a character, but they are not an infallible measurement of the quality of a story. The next two stories — May-lee Chai’s “Saving Sourdi” and Herman Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener” — offer character studies worthy of close analysis. As you read them, notice the methods of characterization used to bring each to life.

May-lee Chai

May-lee Chai, the first of her family to be born in the United States, is a San Francisco author and gradu- ate of Yale University. Chai has worked as a reporter for the Asso- ciated Press and taught creative writing at San Francisco State University, the University of Wyo- ming, and Amherst College. She is the author of My Lucky Face (2001), a novel about a woman’s marriage in contemporary China; Glamorous Asians: Short Stories and Essays (2004); and coauthor, with her father, Winberg Chai, of The Girl from Purple Mountain (2002), a family mem- oir about her grandparents’ journey from China to America. Hapa Girl: A Memoir (2007) describes the bigotry her family encounters in rural South Dakota.

Saving Sourdi 2001

Once, when my older sister, Sourdi, and I were working alone in our fam- ily’s restaurant, just the two of us and the elderly cook, some men got drunk and I stabbed one of them. I was eleven. I don’t remember where Ma had gone that night. But I remember we were tired and it was late. We were one of the only restaurants that stayed open past nine in those days. The men had been growing louder, until they were our only customers, and, finally, one of them staggered up and put his arm across Sourdi’s shoulders. He called her his “China doll,” and his friends hooted at this. Sourdi looked distressed and tried to remove his arm, but he held her tighter. She said, “Please,” in her incense-sweet voice, and he smiled and said, “Say it again nice and I might just have to give you a kiss.”

Courtesy of Jason Doiy.

70 character

5

10

15

That summer we’d just moved to South Dakota. After all the crummy jobs Ma had had to take in Texas, where we’d first come to the U.S., where our sponsors lived, we were so proud to be working in our own restaurant. When we moved to South Dakota, I thought we’d find the real America, the one where we were supposed to be, not the hot sweaty America where we lived packed together in an apartment with bars on the windows on a street where angry boys in cars played loud music and shot guns at each other in the night. The summer we moved to join my uncle’s family to run the Silver Palace, I was certain we would at last find the life we deserved. Now I was panicked. I wanted Ma to be there. Ma would know what to do. She always did. I stood there, chewing my nails, wishing I could make them go away. The men’s voices were so loud in my ears, I was drowning in the sound. I ran into the kitchen. I had this idea to get the cook and the cleaver, but the first thing that caught my eye was this little paring knife on the counter next to a bowl of oranges. I grabbed the knife and ran back out to Sourdi. “Get away from my sister!” I shouted, waving the paring knife. The men were silent for about three seconds, then they burst into laughter. I charged and stabbed the man in the sleeve. In a movie or a television show this kind of scene always unfolds in slow motion, but everything happened so fast. I stabbed the man, Sourdi jumped free, Ma came rushing in the front door waving her arms. “Omi- god! What happen?” “Jesus Christ!” The man shook his arm as though it were on fire, but the paring knife was stuck in the fabric of his jeans jacket. I thought Ma would take care of everything now. And I was right, she did, but not the way I had imagined. She started apologizing to the man, and she helped him take off his jacket. She made Sourdi get the first-aid kit from the bathroom, “Quick! Quick!” Ma even tried to put some ointment on his cut, but he just shrugged her off. I couldn’t believe it. I wanted to take the knife back and stab myself. That’s how I felt when I heard her say, “No charge, on the house,” for their dinner, despite the $50-worth of pitchers they’d had. Ma grabbed me by the shoulders. “Say you sorry. Say it.” I pressed my lips firmly together and hung my head. Then she slapped me. I didn’t start crying until after the men had left. “But, Ma,” I said, “he was hurting Sourdi!” “Then why Sourdi not do something?” Ma twisted my ear. “You not thinking. That your problem. You always not think!” Afterwards, Sourdi said I was lucky. The knife had only grazed the man’s skin. They could have sued us. They could have pressed charges. “I don’t care!” I hissed then. “I shoulda killed him! I shoulda killed that sucker!”

chai / saving sourdi 71

20

25

30

Sourdi’s face changed. I’d never seen my sister look like that. Not ever. Especially not at me. I was her favorite. But she looked then the way I felt inside. Like a big bomb was ticking behind her eyes. We were sitting together in the bathroom. It was late at night, and everyone else was asleep. Sometimes we locked ourselves in the bath- room then, just the two of us, so we could talk about things like boys at school or who was the cutest actor on television shows we liked or how we felt when our family fought, when Uncle and Auntie yelled at each other, or when Ma grew depressed and smoked too much and looked at us as though she wished we’d never been born. This night, however, Sourdi looked at me grimly. “Oh, no, Nea. Don’t ever say that. Don’t ever talk like that.” I was going to smile and shrug and say something like “I was just kid- ding,” but something inside me couldn’t lie tonight. I crossed my arms over my flat chest, and I stuck out my lower lip, like I’d seen the tough girls at school do. “Anyone mess like that with me, I’m gonna kill him!” Sourdi took me by the shoulders then and shook me so hard I thought she was going to shake my head right off my body. She wouldn’t stop even after I started to cry. “Stop, stop!” I begged. “I’ll be good! I promise, I’ll be good!” Finally, she pushed me away from her and sat on the toilet, with her head in her hands. Although she’d been the one hurting me, she looked as though she’d been beaten up, the way she sat like that, her shoulders hunched over her lap, as though she were trying to make herself disappear. “I was trying to protect you,” I said through my tears. “I was trying to save you. You’re so stupid! I should just let that man diss you!” Sourdi’s head shot up and I could see that she had no patience left. Her eyes were red and her nostrils flared. She stood up and I took a step back quickly. I thought she was going to grab me and shake me again, but this time she just put her hand on my arm. “They could take you away. The police, they could put you in a foster home. All of us.” A chill ran through my whole body, like a live current. We all knew about foster homes. Rudy Gutierrez in third grade was taken away from his parents after the teacher noticed some bruises on his back. He’d tried to shoplift some PayDays from the 7-Eleven and got caught. When his dad got home that weekend, he let him have it. But after the school nurse took a look at him, Rudy was taken away from his parents and sent to live in a foster home. His parents couldn’t speak English so good and didn’t know what was happening until too late. Anyway, what kind of lawyer could they afford? We heard later from his cousin in Mrs. Chang’s homeroom that Rudy’s foster-dad had molested him. The cousin said Rudy ran away from that home, but he got caught. At any rate, none of us ever saw him again. “You want to go to a foster home?” Sourdi asked me. “No,” I whispered. “Then don’t be so stupid!”

72 character

35

40

I started crying again, because I realized Sourdi was right. She kissed me on the top of my head and hugged me to her. I leaned my head against her soft breasts that had only recently emerged from her chest and pretended that I was a good girl and that I would always obey her. What I didn’t tell Sourdi was that I was still a wicked girl. I was glad I’d stabbed that man. I was crying only because life was so unfair.

We used to say that we’d run away, Sourdi and me. When we were older. After she graduated. She’d be my legal guardian. We’d go to California to see the stars. Paris. London. Cambodia even, to light incense for the bones of our father. We’d earn money working in Chinese restaurants in every country we visited. We had enough experience; it had to be worth something. We’d lie awake all night whispering back and forth. I’d climb into Sourdi’s bed, claiming that I couldn’t sleep, curling into a ball beside my older sister, the smell of her like salt and garlic and a sweet scent that emanated directly from her skin. Sometimes I’d stroke Sourdi’s slick hair, which she plaited into a thick wet braid so that it would be wavy in the morning. I would stay awake all night, pinching the inside of Sour- di’s arm, the soft flesh of her thigh, to keep my sister from falling asleep and leaving me alone. When she first started seeing Duke, I used to think of him as some- thing like a bookmark, just holding a certain space in her life until it was time for her to move on. I never thought of him as a fork in the road, dividing my life with Sourdi from Sourdi’s life with men. In those days, I didn’t understand anything.

Ma had hired Duke to wash dishes at the Palace that first summer. At first, we paid him no mind. He was just this funny-looking white kid, hair that stuck up straight from his head when he wasn’t wearing his silly baseball cap backwards, skinny as a stalk of bamboo, long legs and long arms that seemed to move in opposition to each other. Chopstick- boy I called him, just to be mean. He took it as a compliment. I could see why he fell in love with Sourdi. My sister was beautiful. Really beautiful, not like the girls in magazines with their pale, pinched faces, pink and powdery, brittle girls. Sourdi looked like a statue that had been rescued from the sea. She was smooth where I had angles and soft where I was bone. Sourdi’s face was round, her nose low and wide, her eyes crescent-shaped like the quarter moon, her hair sleek as sea- weed. Her skin was a burnished cinnamon color. Looking at Sourdi, I could pretend I was beautiful, too. She had so much to spare. At first, Duke and Sourdi only talked behind the Palace, pretending to take a break from the heat of the kitchen. I caught them looking at the stars together. The first time they kissed, I was there, too. Duke was giving us a ride after school in his pickup. He had the music on loud and the windows

chai / saving sourdi 73

45

50

55

were open. It was a hot day for October, and the wind felt like a warm ocean that we could swim in forever. He was going to drop us off at the Palace, but then Duke said he had something to show us, and we circled around the outskirts of town, taking the gravel road that led to the open fields, beyond the highway where the cattle ranches lay. Finally, he pulled off the gravel road and parked. “You want us to look at cows?” I asked impatiently, crossing my arms. He laughed at me then and took Sourdi by the hand. We hiked through a ditch to the edge of an empty cornfield long since harvested, the stubble of cornstalks poking up from the black soil, pale and bone- like. The field was laced with a barbed-wire fence to keep the cattle in, though I couldn’t see any cows at all. The whole place gave me the creeps. Duke held the strands of barbed wire apart for Sourdi and me and told us to crawl under the fence. “Just trust me,” he said. We followed him to a spot in the middle of the field. “It’s the center of the world,” Duke said. “Look.” And he pointed back to where we’d come from, and suddenly I realized the rest of the world had disappeared. The ground had appeared level, but we must have walked into a tiny hollow in the plains, because from where we stood there was only sky and field for as far as our eyes could see. We could no longer see the road or Duke’s pickup, our town, or even the green smudge of cottonwoods that grew along the Yankton River or the distant hills of Nebraska. There was nothing over- head, either; the sky was unbroken by clouds, smooth as an empty rice bowl. “It’s just us here,” Duke said. “We’re alone in the whole universe.” All at once, Sourdi began to breathe funny. Her face grew pinched, and she wiped at her eyes with the back of her hand. “What’s wrong?” Duke asked stupidly. Then Sourdi was running wildly. She took off like an animal startled by a gunshot. She was trying to head back to the road, but she tripped over the cornstalks and fell onto her knees. She started crying for real. I caught up to her first — I’ve always been a fast runner. As Duke approached, I put my arms around Sourdi. “I thought you’d like it,” Duke said. “We’re city girls,” I said, glaring at him. “Why would we like this hick stuff?” “I’m sorry,” Sourdi whispered. “I’m so sorry.” “What are you sorry for? It’s his fault!” I pointed out. Now Duke was kneeling next to Sourdi. He tried to put his arm over her shoulder, too. I was going to push him away, when Sourdi did some- thing very surprising. She put both her arms around his neck and leaned against him, while Duke said soft, dumb-sounding things that I couldn’t quite hear. Then they were kissing. I was so surprised, I stared at them before I forced myself to look away. Then I was the one who felt like running, screaming, for the road.

74 character

60

65

On the way back to the Palace, Duke and Sourdi didn’t talk, but they held hands. The worst part was I was sitting between them. Ma didn’t seem to notice anything for a while, but then with Ma it was always hard to know what she was thinking, what she knew and what she didn’t. Sometimes she seemed to go through her days like she was made of stone. Sometimes she erupted like a volcano. Uncle fired Duke a few weeks later. He said it was because Duke had dropped a tray of dishes. It was during the Saturday lunch rush when Sourdi and I weren’t working and couldn’t witness what had happened. “He’s a clumsy boy,” Ma agreed after work that night, when we all sat around in the back booths and ate our dinner. Sourdi didn’t say anything. She knew Ma knew. She kept seeing Duke, of course. They were both juniors, and there was only one high school in town. Now when I crept into Sourdi’s bed at night, when she talked about running away, she meant Duke and her. I was the one who had to pipe up that I was coming with them, too. What we didn’t know was that Ma was making plans as well.

Uncle first introduced his friend Mr. Chhay in the winter. I’d had a strange dream the night before. I hadn’t remembered it at all until Mr. Chhay walked into the Palace, with his hangdog face and his suit like a salesman’s. He sat in a corner booth with Uncle and, while they talked, he shredded a napkin, then took the scraps of paper and rolled them between his thumb and index finger into a hundred tiny red balls. He left them in the ashtray, like a mountain of fish eggs. Seeing them, I remembered my dream. I was swimming in the ocean. I was just a small child, but I wasn’t afraid at all. The sea was liquid turquoise, the sunlight yellow as gold against my skin. Fish were swimming alongside me. I could see through the clear water to the bottom of the sea. The fish were schooling around me and below me, and they brushed against my feet when I kicked the water. Their scales felt like bones scraping my toes. I tried to push them away, but the schools grew more dense, until I was swimming amongst them under the waves. The fish began to spawn around me and soon the water was cloudy with eggs. I tried to break through the film, but the eggs clung to my skin. The water darkened as we entered a sea of kelp. I pushed against the dark slippery strands like Sourdi’s hair. I realized I was pushing against my sister, wrapped in the kelp, suspended just below the surface of the water. Then I woke up. I thought about that dream seeing that old guy Mr. Chhay with Uncle and I knew they were up to no good. I wanted to warn Sourdi, but she seemed to understand without my having to tell her anything. Uncle called over to her and introduced her to his friend. But Sourdi wouldn’t even look at Mr. Chhay. She kept her eyes lowered, though he tried to smile and talk to her. She whispered so low in reply that no one

chai / saving sourdi 75

70

75

could understand a word she said. I could tell the man was disappointed when he left. His shoulders seemed barely able to support the weight of his jacket. Mr. Chhay wrote letters to Uncle, to Ma. He thanked them for their hospitality and enclosed pictures of his business and his house, plus a formal portrait of himself looking ridiculous in another suit, standing in front of some potted plants, his hair combed over the bald spot in the middle of his head. The next time he came to visit the Palace, he brought gifts. A giant Chinese vase for Ma, Barbie dolls for my younger sisters and cousin, a Christian music cassette tape for me, and a bright red leather purse for Sourdi. Ma made Sourdi tell him thank you. And that was all she said to him. But this old guy was persistent. He took us all out to eat at a steakhouse once. He said he wanted to pay back Uncle for some good deed he’d done a long time ago when they both first came to America. I could have told him, Sourdi hated this kind of food. She preferred Mexican, tacos, not this Midwest cowboy stuff. But Ma made us all thank him. “Thank you, Mr. Chhay,” we said dutifully. He’d smiled so all his yel- low teeth showed at once. “Oh, please, call me Older Brother,” he said. It was the beginning of the end. I should have fought harder then. I should have stabbed this man, too.

I saw Duke at Sourdi’s wedding. She invited him for the ceremony proper, the reception, too, but he didn’t show up until the end. I almost didn’t see him at all. He was slouching through the parking lot of St. Agnes, wearing his best hightops and the navy-blue suit that his mother had insisted upon buying for graduation. I wasn’t used to him looking like a teenage undertaker, but I recognized his loping gait immediately. That afternoon of Sourdi’s wedding, he was holding a brown bag awkwardly behind his back, as if trying to conceal the fact that he was drinking as conspicuously as possible. I was standing inside the bingo hall, before the row of squat win- dows, my back turned to the festivities, the exploding flash capturing the tipsy toasts, the in-laws singing off-key to the rented karaoke machine. Then it really became too much to bear, and I had to escape the ter- rible heat, the flickering fluorescent lights. I slipped from the church into the ferocious March wind and gave it my best shot, running across the hard lawn, but the too-tight heels pinched my toes and the stiff taf- feta bodice of the cotton-candy-pink bridesmaid’s dress might as well have been a vise around my rib cage. I had intended to make it off church property, run to the empty field that stretched low and dark all the way to the horizon, but I only made it to the end of the walk near the rectory before vomiting into Sister Kevin’s over-tended tulip patch.

76 character

80

85

90

Duke came over and sat on his haunches beside me, while I puked. I let him hold back my hair, while the wedding cake and wine cooler that I’d tried poured from my mouth. Finally, I spat a few times to clear my mouth, then sat back on my rear end. After a few minutes, I could take a sip from Duke’s beer. We didn’t talk. I took out the pack of cigarettes I’d stolen from Ma’s purse and lit one. It took five puffs before I could mask the taste of bile and sugar. The wind was blowing fiercely from the northwest, whipping my hair about my face like a widow’s veil, throwing dust from the parking lot around us like wedding rice. After a long while, Duke stood up and walked back down the side- walk lined with yellow daffodils. He walked bow-legged, like all the boys in our town, farmers’ sons, no matter how cool Duke tried to be. I bur- ied my head in my arms and watched him from under one polyester- covered armpit as he climbed back into his pickup and pulled away with a screech. As he left the parking lot, he tossed the brown bag with the empty bottle of Bud out the window. It fell into the street, where it rolled and rolled until it disappeared into a ditch. Ma liked Sourdi’s husband. He had a steady job, a house. She didn’t mind he was so old and Sourdi just eighteen when they married. In her eyes, eighteen was a good age to start a family. “I was younger than Sourdi when I get married,” Ma liked to say. When Sourdi sent pictures home for the holidays, Ma ooohed and aaahed as though they were winning lottery tickets. My sister and her old husband in front of a listing Christmas tree, a pile of presents at their feet. Then, the red-faced baby sprawled on a pink blanket on the living room carpet, drooling in its shiny high chair, slumped in its Snugli like a rock around Sourdi’s neck. “Look. Sony,” Ma pointed at the big-screen television in the back- ground of the New Year’s pictures. “Sourdi say they got all new washer/ dryer, too. Maytag.” When I looked at my sister’s pictures, I could see that she looked tired. Sourdi always said that Ma used to be a very brave woman. She also said that Ma used to be a beautiful woman who liked to have her hair fixed in salons, who wore pretty dresses and knew how to dance in all the fashionable styles. I don’t remember this mother. I remember the mother who worked two jobs for us.

I might never have seen Duke again if it were not for Sourdi’s strange phone call one Saturday evening nearly two years after her wedding. I was fourteen and a half. At first, I hadn’t recognized my older sister’s voice. “Who is this?” I demanded, thinking: heavy breathing, prank caller.

chai / saving sourdi 77

95

100

105

110

“Who d’you think?” Sourdi was crying, a tiny crimped sound that barely crept out of the receiver. Then her voice steadied with anger and grew familiar. “Is Ma there?” “What’s the matter? What happened?” “Just let me speak to Ma, O.K.?” There was a pause, as Sourdi blew her nose. “Tell her it’s important.” I lured Ma from the TV room without alerting my younger sisters. Ma paced back and forth in the kitchen between the refrigerator and the stove, nodding and muttering, “Mmm, mmm, uh-hmm.” I could just hear the tinny squeak of Sourdi’s panicked voice. I sat on the floor, hugging my knees, in the doorway to the hall, just out of Ma’s line of sight. Finally, Ma said, in the tone normally reserved for refusing service to the unruly or arguing with a customer who had a complaint, “It’s always like this. Every marriage is hard. Sometimes there is nothing you can do —” Then Ma stopped pacing. “Just minute,” she said and she took the phone with her into the bathroom, shutting the door firmly behind her. When she came out again, twenty-two minutes later, she ignored me completely. She set the phone back on the counter without saying a word. “So?” I prompted. “I’m tired.” Ma rubbed her neck with one hand. “Just let me rest. You girls, it’s always something. Don’t let your old mother rest.” She yawned extravagantly. She claimed she was too tired to watch any more TV. She had to go to bed, her eyes just wouldn’t stay open. I tried calling Sourdi, but the phone only rang and rang. The next morning, Sunday, I called first thing, but then he picked up, my sister’s husband. “Oh, is this Nea?” he said, so cheerfully it was obvious he was hiding something. “Yes, I’d like to speak to my sister.” “I’m sorry, Little Sister.” I just hated when he called me that. “My wife is out right now. But I’ll tell her you called. She’ll be sorry she missed you.” It was eight o’clock in the morning, for Chrissake. “Oh, thank you,” I said, sweet as pie. “How’s the baby?” “So well!” Then he launched into a long explanation about his daugh- ter’s eating habits, her rather average attempts to crawl, the simple words she was trying to say. For all I knew, Sourdi could have been right there, fixing his breakfast, washing his clothes, cleaning up his messes. I thought of my sister’s voice in my ear, the tiny sound like something breaking. It was all I could do to disguise the disdain in my voice. “Be sure to tell Sourdi to call back. Ma found that recipe she wanted. That special delicious recipe she was looking for. I can’t tell you what it is, Ma’s secret recipe, but you’ll really be surprised.”

78 character

115

120

125

“Oh, boy,” the jerk said. “I didn’t know about any secret recipe.” “That’s why it’s a secret.” I hung up. I couldn’t breathe. My chest hurt. I could feel my swollen heart pressing against my ribs. The next afternoon, I tried calling back three more times, but no one answered. At work that evening, Ma was irritable. She wouldn’t look me in the eyes when I tried to get her attention. Some little kid spilled his Coke into a perfectly good plate of House Special Prawns and his parents insisted they be given a new order — and a new Coke — on the house. There was a minor grease fire around quarter to nine — the smoke alarms all went off at the same time — and then the customers started complaining about the cold, too, once we had opened all the doors and windows to clear the air. Fairly average as far as disasters went, but they put Ma in a sour mood. Ma was taking a cigarette break out back by the dumpsters, smoke curling from her nostrils, before I could corner her. She wasn’t in the mood to talk, but after the nicotine fix took hold, she didn’t tell me to get back to work, either. I asked Ma if I could have a smoke. She didn’t get angry. She smiled in her tired way, the edges of her mouth twitching upwards just a little, and said, “Smoking will kill you.” Then she handed me her pack. “Maybe Sourdi should come back home for a while,” I suggested. “She’s a married woman. She has her own family now.” “She’s still part of our family.” Ma didn’t say anything, just tilted her head back and blew smoke at the stars, so I continued, “Well, don’t you think she might be in trouble? She was crying, you know. It’s not like Sourdi.” My voice must have slipped a tad, just enough to sound disrespectful, because Ma jerked up- right, took the cigarette out of her mouth and glared at me. “What you think? You so smart? You gonna tell me what’s what?” Ma threw her cigarette onto the asphalt. “You not like your sister. Your sister know how to bear things!” She stormed back into the kitchen, and Ma ignored me for the rest of the evening.

I called Sourdi one more time, after Ma and my sisters had gone to bed and I finally had the kitchen to myself, the moon spilling from the window onto the floor in a big, blue puddle. I didn’t dare turn on the lights. This time, my sister answered. “Mmm. . . . Hello?” “Sourdi?” “What time is it?” “Sssh.” My heart beat so loudly, I couldn’t hear my own voice. “How are you doing?” “Oh, we’re fine. The baby, she’s doing real good. She’s starting to talk —”

chai / saving sourdi 79

130

135

140

145

150

“No, no, no. I mean, what happened the other night?” “What?” Another voice now, low, a man’s voice, just beneath the snow on the line. Then suddenly a shriek. “Uh-oh. I just woke her up.” Sourdi’s voice grew fainter as she spoke to him: “Honey, can you check the baby’s diaper?” Then she said to me, “I have to go. The baby, she’s hungry, you know.” “Let him handle it. I have to talk to you a minute, O.K.? Just don’t go, Sourdi. What’s going on? What did you say to Ma?” Sourdi sighed, like a balloon losing its air. “Oh . . . nothing. Look, I really have to go. Talk to you later, Nea.” She hung up. I called back in twenty minutes, surely long enough to change a dia- per, but the phone only rang forlornly, ignored.

I considered taking Ma’s car, but then Ma wouldn’t be able to get to work and I wasn’t sure how long I needed to be gone. Then I thought of Duke. Even though it was far too late in the night, I called Duke. He was still in town, two years after graduation. I’d heard he was working as a mechanic at the Standard station. I found his number in the phone book. “It’s Nea. Pick up your phone, Duke,” I hissed into his machine. “It’s an emergency!” “Nea?!” He was yawning. “My God. What time is it?” “Duke! It’s important! It’s Sourdi, she’s in trouble.” There was a pause while I let him absorb all this. “You have to drive me to Des Moines. We have to get her.” “What happened?” “Look, I don’t have time to explain. We have to go tonight. It’s an emergency. A matter of life and death.” “Did you call the police?” “Don’t be stupid. Sourdi would never call the cops. She loves that jerk.” “What?” Duke whispered, “Her husband, he beat her up?” “Duke, I told you, I can’t say anything right now. But you have to help me.” He agreed to meet me at the corner, where there’d be no chance Ma could hear his truck. I’d be waiting.

It was freezing. The wind stung my cheeks, which wasn’t a good sign. Could be rain coming, or worse, snow. Even when the roads were clear, it was a good six-hour drive. I didn’t want to think how long it would take if we ran into a late-season blizzard. There was the roar of a souped-up engine and then a spray of gravel. Snoop Doggy Dogg growled over the wind. “Duke! What took you?”

80 character

155

160

165

170

175

He put his hand over the door, barring me from climbing up. “You want me to help or not?” “Don’t joke.” I pulled myself inside and then made Duke back up rather than run in front of the house. Just in case Ma woke up. “How come your Ma didn’t want to come?” “She doesn’t know.” “Sourdi didn’t want to worry her?” “Mmm.” There was no point trying to shout above Snoop Dogg. He was obviously tired. When Duke was tired, he turned his music up even louder than normal. I’d forgotten that. Now the bass under- neath the rap was vibrating in my bones. But at least he did as I asked and took off toward the highway. Soon the squat buildings of town, the used-car lots on the route in from the interstate with their flapping colored flags, and the metal storage units of the Sav-U-Lot passed from view, and there was nothing before us but the black sky and the highway and the patches of snow on the shoulders glowing briefly in the wake of the headlights.

I must have fallen asleep, though I don’t remember feeling tired. I was standing on the deck of a boat in an inky ocean, trying to read the stars, but every time I found one constellation, the stars began to blink and fade. I squinted at them, but the stars would not stay in place. Then my head snapped forward as the pickup careened off the shoulder. The pickup landed in a ditch. Metal glittered in the headlights; the fields on this side of the highway were strung with barbed wire. We got out by sacrificing our jackets, stuffing them under the back tires until we had enough traction to slide back onto the pavement. I insisted upon driving. “I got my license,” I lied. “And I’m not tired at all.” Duke settled into the passenger seat, his arms folded across his chest, his head tilted back, preparing to go to sleep again. “D’ya think she’ll be happy to see me?” he said out of the blue. “Sourdi sent me a Christmas card with a picture of the baby. Looks just like. . . . But I didn’t write back or nothing. She probably thought I was angry. She mad at me, you think?” “Sourdi’s never mad at anybody.” “She must be mad at her husband if she wants you to come get her.” “She doesn’t know we’re coming.” “What!” “I didn’t have time to explain to her.” “You’re not running away from home, are you?” Duke’s eyes nar- rowed and his voice grew slow as if he thought he was suddenly being clever. “Yeah, I’m running away to Des Moines.”

chai / saving sourdi 81

180

185

Once upon a time, in another world, a place almost unimaginable to me sitting in the pickup with Madonna singing “Lucky Star” on the radio, Sourdi had walked across a minefield, carrying me on her back. She was nine and I was four. Because she’d told me, I could see it all clearly, better than if I actually remembered: the startled faces of people who’d tripped a mine, their limbs in new arrangements, the bones peeking through the earth. Sourdi had said it was safest to step on the bodies; that way you knew a mine was no longer there. This was nothing I would ever tell Duke. It was our own personal story, just for Sourdi and me to share. Nobody’s business but ours. I would walk on bones for my sister, I vowed. I would put my bare feet on rotting flesh. I would save Sourdi.

We found the house in West Des Moines after circling for nearly an hour through the identical streets with their neat lawns and boxy houses and chain link fences. I refused to allow Duke to ask for directions from any of the joggers or the van that sputtered by, delivering the Register. He figured people in the neighborhood would know, just ask where the Oriental family lived. I told him to go to hell. Then we didn’t talk for a while. But as soon as we found Locust Street, I recognized the house. I knew it was Sourdi’s even though it had been painted a different color since the last set of pictures. The lace undercurtains before the cheerful flowered draperies, the flourishing plants in the windows, next to little trinkets, figurines in glass that caught the light. Every space crammed with something sweet. The heater in Duke’s truck began to make a high-pitched, sick-cat whine as we waited, parked across the street, staring at Sourdi’s house. “So, are we going to just sit here?” “Shh,” I said irritably. “Just wait a minute.” Somehow I had imagined that Sourdi would sense our presence, the curtains would stir, and I’d only have to wait a moment for my sister to come running out the front door. But we sat patiently, shivering, staring at Sourdi’s house. Nothing moved. “Her husband’s home,” I said stupidly. “He hasn’t gone to work yet.” “He wouldn’t dare try anything. Not with the both of us here. We should just go and knock.” “They’re probably still asleep.” “Nea, what’s the matter with you? What are you afraid of all of a sudden?” I’d had it with Duke. He just didn’t understand anything. I hopped out of the truck and ran through the icy air, my arms wrapped around my body. The sidewalk was slick beneath my sneakers, still damp from the ditch, and I slid onto my knees on the driveway. My right hand broke the fall. A sharp jagged pain shot up to my elbow and stayed there, throb- bing. I picked myself up and ran limping to the door and rang.

82 character

190

195

200

No one answered for a minute, and then it was him. “What on earth? Nea!” Sourdi’s husband was dressed for work, but he hadn’t shaved yet. He looked even older than I remembered, his thin- ning hair flat across his skull, his bloodshot eyes and swollen lids still heavy from sleep. He might have been handsome once, decades ago, but I saw no evidence of it now. He held the door open and I slipped into the warmth without even removing my shoes first. “How did you get here? Is your mother coming, too?” My eyes started to water, the transition from cold to heat. Slowly the room came into focus. It was a mess. Baby toys on the carpet, shoes in a pile by the door, old newspapers scattered on an end table anchored by a bowl of peanut shells. The TV was blaring somewhere, and a baby was crying. Sourdi emerged from the kitchen, dressed in a bright pink sweat- suit emblazoned with the head of Minnie Mouse, pink slippers over her feet, the baby on her hip. She had a bruise across her cheekbone and the purple remains of a black eye. Sourdi didn’t say anything for a few seconds as she stared at me, blinking, her mouth falling open. “Where’s Ma?” “Home.” “Oh, no.” Sourdi’s face crumpled. “Is everything all right?” I couldn’t believe how dense my sister had become. We used to be able to communicate without words. “Everything’s fine . . . at home. Of course.” I tried to give her a look so that she’d understand that I had come to rescue her, but Sourdi stood rigidly in place in the doorway to the kitchen, her mouth twitching, puzzled. “Please, Little Sister, sit down,” her husband said. “Let me make you some tea.” Someone banged on the front door, three times. Before I could begin to feel annoyed that Duke couldn’t even wait five minutes, that he just had to ruin everything, my sister’s husband opened the door again. I didn’t bother to turn, instead I watched Sourdi’s eyes widen and her wide mouth pucker into an O as she gasped, “Duke!” “What’s goin’ on?” Duke said. Then everyone stared at me with such identical expressions of non- comprehension that I had to laugh. Then I couldn’t stop, because I hadn’t slept and it was so cold and my nose was running and I didn’t have any Kleenex. “I said, what the hell is going on?” Duke repeated. Sourdi’s husband approached Duke. He smiled. “You must be Nea’s —” But by now, Duke had seen Sourdi’s bruises. His mouth twisted into a sneer. “You bastard! I oughtta —” He punched Sourdi’s hus- band in the nose. Sourdi screamed, her husband bent over double. Duke drew back his fist again, but Sourdi ran forward and grabbed him. She was punching him on the chest, “Out! Out! You! I’ll call the

chai / saving sourdi 83

205

210

215

220

police!” She tried to claw him with her nails, but Duke threw his arms up around his head. Sourdi’s husband stood up. Blood gushed from his nose all over his white shirt and tie. “Come on!” I said stupidly. “Come on, Sourdi, let’s go!” But it was pretty obvious that she didn’t want to leave. The baby began shrieking. I started crying, too. After everyone had calmed down, Duke went down the street to the 7-Eleven to get a bag of ice for Mr. Chhay, who kept saying “I’m fine, don’t worry,” even though his nose had turned a deep scarlet and was starting to swell. It turned out Sourdi’s husband hadn’t beaten her up. An economy- size box of baby wipes had fallen off the closet shelf and struck her full in the eye. While Mr. Chhay went into the bedroom to change his clothes, I sat with Sourdi in the kitchen as she tried to get the squawling baby to eat its breakfast. “Nea, what’s wrong with you?” “What’s wrong with me? Don’t you get it? I was trying to help you!” Sourdi sighed as the baby spat a spoonful of the glop onto the table. “I’m a married woman. I’m not just some girl anymore. I have my own family. You understand that?” “You were crying.” I squinted at my sister. “I heard you.” “I’m gonna have another baby, you know. That’s a big step. That’s a big thing.” She said this as though it explained everything. “You sound like an old lady. You’re only twenty, for Chrissake. You don’t have to live like this. Ma is wrong. You can be anything, Sourdi.” Sourdi pinched her nose between two fingers. “Everything’s gonna be fine. We just had a little argument, but it’s O.K. We had a good talk. He understands now. I’m still gonna go to school. I haven’t changed my mind. After the baby gets a little bigger, I mean, both babies. Maybe when they start preschool.” Just then her husband came back into the kitchen. He had to use the phone to call work. His face looked like a gargoyle’s. Sourdi looked at me then, so disappointed. I knew what she was thinking. She had grown up, and I had merely grown unworthy of her love. After Duke got back with the ice, he and Sourdi’s husband shook hands. Duke kept saying, “Gosh, I’m so sorry,” and Mr. Chhay kept repeating, “No problem, don’t worry.” Then Sourdi’s husband had to go. We followed him to the driveway. My sister kissed him before he climbed into his Buick. He rolled down the window, and she leaned in and kissed him again. I turned away. I watched Duke standing in the doorway, holding the baby in his arms, cooing at its face. In his tough wannabe clothes, the

84 character

225

230

super-wide jeans and his fancy sneakers and the chain from his wallet to his belt loops, he looked surprisingly young.

Sourdi lent us some blankets and matching his-and-hers Donald and Daisy Duck sweatshirts for the trip back, since our coats were still wet and worthless. “Don’t tell Ma I was here, O.K.?” I begged Sourdi. “We’ll be home by afternoon. She’ll just think I’m with friends or something. She doesn’t have to know, O.K.?” Sourdi pressed her full lips together into a thin line and nodded in a way that seemed as though she were answering a different question. And I knew that I couldn’t trust my sister to take my side anymore. As we pulled away from Sourdi’s house, the first icy snowflakes began to fall across the windshield. Sourdi stood in the driveway with the baby on her hip. She waved to us as the snow swirled around her like ashes. She had made her choice, and she hadn’t chosen me.

Sourdi told me a story once about a magic serpent, the Naga, with a mouth so large, it could swallow people whole. Our ancestors carved Naga into the stones of Angkor Wat to scare away demons. Sourdi said people used to believe they could come alive in times of great evil and protect the temples. They could eat armies. I wished I was a Naga. I would have swallowed the whole world in one gulp. But I have no magic powers. None whatsoever.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does your response to Nea develop over the course of the story? Is she a dynamic or a static character?

2. Explain how Nea and Sourdi serve as character foils to one another. 3. Discuss whether you think Duke is a flat or a round character. 4. What is the effect of the story’s being told from Nea’s perspective?

How might the story be different if it were told from the mother’s point of view?

5. Do you think Mr. Chhay is a good or bad husband? 6. How does the information about Nea and Sourdi’s trip through the

minefield affect your understanding of Nea’s relationship with her sister?

7. Comment on the title. Why wouldn’t an alternative like “Nea the Troublemaker” be appropriate?

8. connection to another selection. Compare the character- ization of Nea in “Saving Sourdi” and of Sammy in John Updike’s “A & P” (p. 334). In what sense do both characters see themselves as rescuers?

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 85

Herman Melville (1819–1891)

Hoping to improve his distressed financial situation, Herman Melville left New York and went to sea as a young common sailor. He returned to become an uncommon writer. His experiences at sea became the basis for his early novels: Typee (1846), Omoo (1847), Mardi (1849), Redburn (1849), and White-Jacket (1850). Ironically, with the publication of his mas- terpiece, Moby-Dick (1851), Melville lost the popular success he had enjoyed with his ear- lier books because his readers were not ready for its philosophical complexity. Although he wrote more, Melville’s works were read less and slipped into obscurity. His final short novel, Billy Budd, was not published until the 1920s, when critics rediscovered him. In “Bartleby, the Scrivener,” Melville presents a quiet clerk in a law office whose baffling “passive resistance” disrupts the life of his employer, a man who attempts to make sense of Bartleby’s refusal to behave reasonably.

Bartleby, the Scrivener 1853

A Story of Wall Street

I am a rather elderly man. The nature of my avocations, for the last thirty years, has brought me into more than ordinary contact with what would seem an interesting and somewhat singular set of men, of whom, as yet, nothing, that I know of, has ever been written — I mean, the law-copyists, or scriveners. I have known very many of them, professionally and pri- vately, and, if I pleased, could relate diverse histories, at which good- natured gentlemen might smile, and sentimental souls might weep. But I waive the biographies of all other scriveners, for a few passages in the life of Bartleby, who was a scrivener, the strangest I ever saw, or heard of. While, of other law-copyists, I might write the complete life, of Bartleby nothing of that sort can be done. I believe that no materials exist, for a full and satisfactory biography of this man. It is an irreparable loss to literature. Bartleby was one of those beings of whom nothing is ascer- tainable, except from the original sources, and, in his case, those are very small. What my own astonished eyes saw of Bartleby, that is all I know of him, except, indeed, one vague report, which will appear in the sequel. Ere introducing the scrivener, as he first appeared to me, it is fit I make some mention of myself, my employés, my business, my cham- bers, and general surroundings, because some such description is

Library of Congress, Prints and Photographs Division.

86 character

5

indispensable to an adequate understanding of the chief character about to be presented. Imprimis:° I am a man who, from his youth upwards, has been filled with a profound conviction that the easiest way of life is the best. Hence, though I belong to a profession proverbially energetic and nervous, even to turbulence, at times, yet nothing of that sort have I ever suffered to invade my peace. I am one of those unambitious lawyers who never address a jury, or in any way draw down public applause; but, in the cool tranquillity of a snug retreat, do a snug business among rich men’s bonds, and mortgages, and title-deeds. All who know me, consider me an eminently safe man. The late John Jacob Astor,° a personage little given to poetic enthusiasm, had no hesitation in pronouncing my first grand point to be prudence; my next, method. I do not speak it in vanity, but simply record the fact, that I was not unemployed in my profession by the late John Jacob Astor; a name which, I admit, I love to repeat; for it hath a rounded and orbicular sound to it, and rings like unto bullion. I will freely add, that I was not insensible to the late John Jacob Astor’s good opinion. Some time prior to the period at which this little history begins, my avocations had been largely increased. The good old office, now extinct in the State of New York, of a Master in Chancery, had been conferred upon me. It was not a very arduous office, but very pleasantly remunerative. I seldom lose my temper; much more seldom indulge in dangerous indignation at wrongs and outrages; but I must be permit- ted to be rash here and declare, that I consider the sudden and violent abrogation of the office of Master in Chancery, by the new Constitu- tion, as a —— premature act; inasmuch as I had counted upon a life- lease of the profits, whereas I only received those of a few short years. But this is by the way. My chambers were up stairs, at No. — Wall Street. At one end, they looked upon the white wall of the interior of a spacious skylight shaft, penetrating the building from top to bottom. This view might have been considered rather tame than other- wise, deficient in what landscape painters call “life.” But, if so, the view from the other end of my chambers offered, at least, a contrast, if noth- ing more. In that direction, my windows commanded an unobstructed view of a lofty brick wall, black by age and everlasting shade; which wall required no spyglass to bring out its lurking beauties, but, for the benefit of all near-sighted spectators, was pushed up to within ten feet of my window-panes. Owing to the great height of the surrounding buildings, and my chambers being on the second floor, the interval between this wall and mine not a little resembled a huge square cistern. At the period just preceding the advent of Bartleby, I had two persons as copyists in my employment, and a promising lad as an

Imprimis: In the first place. John Jacob Astor (1763–1848): An enormously wealthy American capitalist.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 87

office-boy. First, Turkey; second, Nippers; third, Ginger Nut. These may seem names, the like of which are not usually found in the Directory. In truth, they were nicknames, mutually conferred upon each other by my three clerks, and were deemed expressive of their respective persons or characters. Turkey was a short, pursy Englishman, of about my own age — that is, somewhere not far from sixty. In the morning, one might say, his face was of a fine florid hue, but after twelve o’clock, merid- ian — his dinner hour — it blazed like a grate full of Christmas coals; and continued blazing — but, as it were, with a gradual wane — till six o’clock, p.m., or thereabouts; after which, I saw no more of the propri- etor of the face, which, gaining its meridian with the sun, seemed to set with it, to rise, culminate, and decline the following day, with the like regularity and undiminished glory. There are many singular coinci- dences I have known in the course of my life, not the least among which was the fact, that, exactly when Turkey displayed his fullest beams from his red and radiant countenance, just then, too, at that critical moment, began the daily period when I considered his business capaci- ties as seriously disturbed for the remainder of the twenty-four hours. Not that he was absolutely idle, or averse to business then; far from it. The difficulty was, he was apt to be altogether too energetic. There was a strange, inflamed, flurried, flighty recklessness of activity about him. He would be incautious in dipping his pen into his inkstand. All his blots upon my documents were dropped there after twelve o’clock, meridian. Indeed, not only would he be reckless, and sadly given to making blots in the afternoon, but, some days, he went further, and was rather noisy. At such times, too, his face flamed with augmented blazonry, as if can- nel coal had been heaped on anthracite. He made an unpleasant racket with his chair; spilled his sand-box; in mending his pens, impatiently split them all to pieces, and threw them on the floor in a sudden pas- sion; stood up, and leaned over his table, boxing his papers about in a most indecorous manner, very sad to behold in an elderly man like him. Nevertheless, as he was in many ways a most valuable person to me, and all the time before twelve o’clock, meridian, was the quickest, steadiest creature, too, accomplishing a great deal of work in a style not easily to be matched — for these reasons, I was willing to overlook his eccen- tricities, though, indeed, occasionally, I remonstrated with him. I did this very gently, however, because, though the civilest, nay, the blandest and most reverential of men in the morning, yet, in the afternoon, he was disposed, upon provocation, to be slightly rash with his tongue — in fact, insolent. Now, valuing his morning services as I did, and resolved not to lose them — yet, at the same time, made uncomfortable by his inflamed ways after twelve o’clock — and being a man of peace, unwill- ing by my admonitions to call forth unseemly retorts from him, I took upon me, one Saturday noon (he was always worse on Saturdays) to hint to him, very kindly, that, perhaps, now that he was growing old, it might be well to abridge his labors; in short, he need not come to

88 character

10

my chambers after twelve o’clock, but, dinner over, had best go home to his lodgings, and rest himself till tea-time. But no; he insisted upon his afternoon devotions. His countenance became intolerably fervid, as he oratorically assured me — gesticulating with a long ruler at the other end of the room — that if his services in the morning were useful, how indispensable, then, in the afternoon? “With submission, sir,” said Turkey, on this occasion, “I consider myself your right-hand man. In the morning I but marshal and deploy my columns; but in the afternoon I put myself at their head, and gal- lantly charge the foe, thus” — and he made a violent thrust with the ruler. “But the blots, Turkey,” intimated I. “True; but, with submission, sir, behold these hairs! I am getting old. Surely, sir, a blot or two of a warm afternoon is not to be severely urged against gray hairs. Old age — even if it blot the page — is honorable. With submission, sir, we both are getting old.” This appeal to my fellow-feeling was hardly to be resisted. At all events, I saw that go he would not. So, I made up my mind to let him stay, resolving, nevertheless, to see to it that, during the afternoon, he had to do with my less important papers. Nippers, the second on my list, was a whiskered, sallow, and, upon the whole, rather piratical-looking young man, of about five-and-twenty. I always deemed him the victim of two evil powers — ambition and indi- gestion. The ambition was evinced by a certain impatience of the duties of a mere copyist, an unwarrantable usurpation of strictly professional affairs such as the original drawing up of legal documents. The indiges- tion seemed betokened in an occasional nervous testiness and grinning irritability, causing the teeth to audibly grind together over mistakes committed in copying; unnecessary maledictions, hissed, rather than spoken, in the heat of business; and especially by a continual discontent with the height of the table where he worked. Though of a very inge- nious mechanical turn, Nippers could never get this table to suit him. He put chips under it, blocks of various sorts, bits of pasteboard, and at last went so far as to attempt an exquisite adjustment, by final pieces of folded blotting-paper. But no invention would answer. If, for the sake of easing his back, he brought the table-lid at a sharp angle well up towards his chin, and wrote there like a man using the steep roof of a Dutch house for his desk, then he declared that it stopped the circu- lation in his arms. If now he lowered the table to his waistbands, and stooped over it in writing, then there was a sore aching in his back. In short, the truth of the matter was, Nippers knew not what he wanted. Or, if he wanted anything, it was to be rid of a scrivener’s table alto- gether. Among the manifestations of his diseased ambition was a fond- ness he had for receiving visits from certain ambiguous-looking fellows in seedy coats, whom he called his clients. Indeed, I was aware that not only was he, at times, considerable of a ward-politician, but he occasion- ally did a little business at the justices’ courts, and was not unknown on

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 89

the steps of the Tombs.° I have good reason to believe, however, that one individual who called upon him at my chambers, and who, with a grand air, he insisted was his client, was no other than a dun, and the alleged title-deed, a bill. But, with all his failings, and the annoyances he caused me, Nippers, like his compatriot Turkey, was a very useful man to me; wrote a neat, swift hand; and, when he chose, was not deficient in a gentlemanly sort of deportment. Added to this, he always dressed in a gentlemanly sort of way; and so, incidentally, reflected credit upon my chambers. Whereas, with respect to Turkey, I had much ado to keep him from being a reproach to me. His clothes were apt to look oily, and smell of eating-houses. He wore his pantaloons very loose and baggy in summer. His coats were execrable, his hat not to be handled. But while the hat was a thing of indifference to me, inasmuch as his natural civility and deference, as a dependent Englishman, always led him to doff it the moment he entered the room, yet his coat was another matter. Concern- ing his coats, I reasoned with him; but with no effect. The truth was, I suppose, that a man with so small an income could not afford to sport such a lustrous face and a lustrous coat at one and the same time. As Nippers once observed, Turkey’s money went chiefly for red ink. One winter day, I presented Turkey with a highly respectable-looking coat of my own — a padded gray coat, of a most comfortable warmth, and which buttoned straight up from the knee to the neck. I thought Turkey would appreciate the favor, and abate his rashness and obstreperousness of afternoons. But no; I verily believe that buttoning himself up in so downy and blanket-like a coat had a pernicious effect upon him — upon the same principle that too much oats are bad for horses. In fact, pre- cisely as a rash, restive horse is said to feel his oats, so Turkey felt his coat. It made him insolent. He was a man whom prosperity harmed. Though, concerning the self-indulgent habits of Turkey, I had my own private surmises, yet, touching Nippers, I was well persuaded that, whatever might be his faults in other respects, he was, at least, a tem- perate young man. But indeed, nature herself seemed to have been his vintner, and, at his birth, charged him so thoroughly with an irritable, brandy-like disposition, that all subsequent potations were needless. When I consider how, amid the stillness of my chambers, Nippers would sometimes impatiently rise from his seat, and stooping over his table, spread his arms wide apart, seize the whole desk, and move it, and jerk it, with a grim, grinding motion on the floor, as if the table were a perverse voluntary agent, intent on thwarting and vexing him, I plainly perceive that, for Nippers, brandy-and-water were altogether superfluous. It was fortunate for me that, owing to its peculiar cause — indiges- tion — the irritability and consequent nervousness of Nippers were mainly observable in the morning, while in the afternoon he was comparatively mild. So that, Turkey’s paroxysms only coming on about twelve o’clock,

the Tombs: A jail in New York City.

90 character

15

I never had to do with their eccentricities at one time. Their fits relieved each other, like guards. When Nippers’ was on, Turkey’s was off; and vice versa. This was a good natural arrangement, under the circumstances. Ginger Nut, the third on my list, was a lad, some twelve years old. His father was a carman, ambitious of seeing his son on the bench instead of a cart, before he died. So he sent him to my office, as stu- dent at law, errand-boy, cleaner, and sweeper, at the rate of one dollar a week. He had a little desk to himself, but he did not use it much. Upon inspection, the drawer exhibited a great array of the shells of various sorts of nuts. Indeed, to this quick-witted youth, the whole noble sci- ence of the law was contained in a nutshell. Not the least among the employments of Ginger Nut, as well as one which he discharged with the most alacrity, was his duty as cake and apple purveyor for Turkey and Nippers. Copying lawpapers being proverbially a dry, husky sort of business, my two scriveners were fain to moisten their mouths very often with Spitzenbergs, to be had at the numerous stalls nigh the Cus- tom House and Post Office. Also, they sent Ginger Nut very frequently for that peculiar cake — small, flat, round, and very spicy — after which he had been named by them. Of a cold morning, when business was but dull, Turkey would gobble up scores of these cakes, as if they were mere wafers — indeed, they sell them at the rate of six or eight for a penny — the scrape of his pen blending with the crunching of the crisp particles in his mouth. Of all the fiery afternoon blunders and flurried rashness of Turkey, was his once moistening a ginger-cake between his lips, and clapping it on to a mortgage, for a seal. I came within an ace of dismissing him then. But he mollified me by making an oriental bow, and saying — “With submission, sir, it was generous of me to find you in statio- nery on my own account.” Now my original business — that of a conveyancer and title hunter, and drawer-up of recondite documents of all sorts — was considerably increased by receiving the Master’s office. There was now great work for scriveners. Not only must I push the clerks already with me, but I must have additional help. In answer to my advertisement, a motionless young man one morn- ing stood upon my office threshold, the door being open, for it was summer. I can see that figure now — pallidly neat, pitiably respectable, incurably forlorn! It was Bartleby. After a few words touching his qualifications, I engaged him, glad to have among my corps of copyists a man of so singularly sedate an aspect, which I thought might operate beneficially upon the flighty temper of Turkey, and the fiery one of Nippers. I should have stated before that ground-glass folding-doors divided my premises into two parts, one of which was occupied by my scriveners, the other by myself. According to my humor, I threw open these doors, or closed them. I resolved to assign Bartleby a corner by the folding-doors,

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 91

20

but on my side of them, so as to have this quiet man within easy call, in case any trifling thing was to be done. I placed his desk close up to a small side-window in that part of the room, a window which originally had afforded a lateral view of certain grimy brickyards and bricks, but which, owing to subsequent erections, commanded at present no view at all, though it gave some light. Within three feet of the panes was a wall, and the light came down from far above, between two lofty build- ings, as from a very small opening in a dome. Still further to a satisfac- tory arrangement, I procured a high green folding screen, which might entirely isolate Bartleby from my sight, though not remove him from my voice. And thus, in a manner, privacy and society were conjoined. At first, Bartleby did an extraordinary quantity of writing. As if long famishing for something to copy, he seemed to gorge himself on my documents. There was no pause for digestion. He ran a day and night line, copying by sunlight and by candle-light. I should have been quite delighted with his application, had he been cheerfully industrious. But he wrote on silently, palely, mechanically. It is, of course, an indispensable part of a scrivener’s business to ver- ify the accuracy of his copy, word by word. Where there are two or more scriveners in an office, they assist each other in this examination, one reading from the copy, the other holding the original. It is a very dull, wearisome, and lethargic affair. I can readily imagine that, to some san- guine temperaments, it would be altogether intolerable. For example, I cannot credit that the mettlesome poet, Byron, would have contentedly sat down with Bartleby to examine a law document of, say five hundred pages, closely written in a crimpy hand. Now and then, in the haste of business, it had been my habit to assist in comparing some brief document myself, calling Turkey or Nippers for this purpose. One object I had, in placing Bartleby so handy to me behind the screen, was, to avail myself of his services on such trivial occa- sions. It was on the third day, I think, of his being with me, and before any necessity had arisen for having his own writing examined, that, being much hurried to complete a small affair I had in hand, I abruptly called to Bartleby. In my haste and natural expectancy of instant compli- ance, I sat with my head bent over the original on my desk, and my right hand sideways, and somewhat nervously extended with the copy, so that, immediately upon emerging from his retreat, Bartleby might snatch it and proceed to business without the least delay. In this very attitude did I sit when I called to him, rapidly stating what it was I wanted him to do — namely, to examine a small paper with me. Imagine my surprise, nay, my consternation, when, without mov- ing from his privacy, Bartleby, in a singularly mild, firm voice, replied, “I would prefer not to.” I sat awhile in perfect silence, rallying my stunned faculties. Imme- diately it occurred to me that my ears had deceived me, or Bartleby had entirely misunderstood my meaning. I repeated my request in the

92 character

25

30

35

clearest tone I could assume; but in quite as clear a one came the previ- ous reply, “I would prefer not to.” “Prefer not to,” echoed I, rising in high excitement, and crossing the room with a stride. “What do you mean? Are you moonstruck? I want you to help me compare this sheet here — take it,” and I thrust it towards him. “I would prefer not to,” said he. I looked at him steadfastly. His face was leanly composed; his gray eye dimly calm. Not a wrinkle of agitation rippled him. Had there been the least uneasiness, anger, impatience, or impertinence in his manner; in other words, had there been anything ordinarily human about him, doubtless I should have violently dismissed him from the premises. But as it was, I should have as soon thought of turning my pale plaster-of-paris bust of Cicero out of doors. I stood gazing at him awhile, as he went on with his own writing, and then reseated myself at my desk. This is very strange, thought I. What had one best do? But my business hurried me. I concluded to forget the matter for the present, reserving it for my future leisure. So, calling Nippers from the other room, the paper was speedily examined. A few days after this, Bartleby concluded four lengthy documents, being quadruplicates of a week’s testimony taken before me in my High Court of Chancery. It became necessary to examine them. It was an important suit, and great accuracy was imperative. Having all things arranged, I called Turkey, Nippers, and Ginger Nut, from the next room, meaning to place the four copies in the hands of my four clerks, while I should read from the original. Accordingly, Turkey, Nippers, and Ginger Nut had taken their seats in a row, each with his document in his hand, when I called to Bartleby to join this interesting group. “Bartleby! quick, I am waiting.” I heard a slow scrape of his chair legs on the uncarpeted floor, and soon he appeared standing at the entrance of his hermitage. “What is wanted?” said he, mildly. “The copies, the copies,” said I, hurriedly. “We are going to examine them. There” — and I held towards him the fourth quadruplicate. “I would prefer not to,” he said, and gently disappeared behind the screen. For a few moments I was turned into a pillar of salt, standing at the head of my seated column of clerks. Recovering myself, I advanced towards the screen, and demanded the reason for such extraordinary conduct. “Why do you refuse?” “I would prefer not to.” With any other man I should have flown outright into a dreadful passion, scorned all further words, and thrust him ignominiously from my presence. But there was something about Bartleby that not only strangely disarmed me, but, in a wonderful manner, touched and discon- certed me. I began to reason with him.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 93

40

45

50

“These are your own copies we are about to examine. It is labor sav- ing to you, because one examination will answer for your four papers. It is common usage. Every copyist is bound to help examine his copy. Is it not so? Will you not speak? Answer!” “I prefer not to,” he replied in a flute-like tone. It seemed to me that, while I had been addressing him, he carefully revolved every statement that I made; fully comprehended the meaning; could not gainsay the irresistible conclusion; but, at the same time, some paramount consider- ation prevailed with him to reply as he did. “You are decided, then, not to comply with my request — a request made according to common usage and common sense?” He briefly gave me to understand, that on that point my judgment was sound. Yes: his decision was irreversible. It is not seldom the case that, when a man is browbeaten in some unprecedented and violently unreasonable way, he begins to stagger in his own plainest faith. He begins, as it were, vaguely to surmise that, won- derful as it may be, all the justice and all the reason is on the other side. Accordingly, if any disinterested persons are present, he turns to them for some reinforcement for his own faltering mind. “Turkey,” said I, “what do you think of this? Am I not right?” “With submission, sir,” said Turkey, in his blandest tone, “I think that you are.” “Nippers,” said I, “what do you think of it?” “I think I should kick him out of the office.” (The reader of nice perceptions will have perceived that, it being morning, Turkey’s answer is couched in polite and tranquil terms, but Nippers replies in ill-tempered ones. Or, to repeat a previous sentence, Nippers’ ugly mood was on duty, and Turkey’s off.) “Ginger Nut,” said I, willing to enlist the smallest suffrage in my behalf, “what do you think of it?” “I think, sir, he’s a little luny,” replied Ginger Nut, with a grin. “You hear what they say,” said I, turning towards the screen, “come forth and do your duty.” But he vouchsafed no reply. I pondered a moment in sore perplexity. But once more business hurried me. I determined again to postpone the consideration of this dilemma to my future leisure. With a little trouble we made out to examine the papers without Bartleby, though at every page or two Turkey deferentially dropped his opinion, that this proceed- ing was quite out of the common; while Nippers, twitching in his chair with a dyspeptic nervousness, ground out, between his set teeth, occa- sional hissing maledictions against the stubborn oaf behind the screen. And for his (Nippers’) part, this was the first and the last time he would do another man’s business without pay. Meanwhile Bartleby sat in his hermitage, oblivious to everything but his own peculiar business there.

94 character

55

60

Some days passed, the scrivener being employed upon another lengthy work. His late remarkable conduct led me to regard his ways narrowly. I observed that he never went to dinner; indeed, that he never went anywhere. As yet I had never, of my personal knowledge, known him to be outside of my office. He was a perpetual sentry in the corner. At about eleven o’clock though, in the morning, I noticed that Ginger Nut would advance toward the opening in Bartleby’s screen, as if silently beckoned thither by a gesture invisible to me where I sat. The boy would then leave the office, jingling a few pence, and reappear with a handful of ginger-nuts, which he delivered in the hermitage, receiving two of the cakes for his trouble. He lives, then, on ginger-nuts, thought I; never eats a dinner, properly speaking; he must be a vegetarian, then, but no; he never eats even veg- etables, he eats nothing but ginger-nuts. My mind then ran on in reveries concerning the probable effects upon the human constitution of living entirely on ginger-nuts. Ginger-nuts are so called, because they contain ginger as one of their peculiar constituents, and the final flavoring one. Now, what was ginger? A hot, spicy thing. Was Bartleby hot and spicy? Not at all. Ginger, then, had no effect upon Bartleby. Probably he pre- ferred it should have none. Nothing so aggravates an earnest person as a passive resistance. If the individual so resisted be of a not inhumane temper, and the resisting one perfectly harmless in his passivity, then, in the better moods of the former, he will endeavor charitably to construe to his imagination what proves impossible to be solved by his judgment. Even so, for the most part, I regarded Bartleby and his ways. Poor fellow! thought I, he means no mischief; it is plain he intends no insolence; his aspect sufficiently evinces that his eccentricities are involuntary. He is useful to me. I can get along with him. If I turn him away, the chances are he will fall in with some less indulgent employer, and then he will be rudely treated, and perhaps driven forth miserably to starve. Yes. Here I can cheaply pur- chase a delicious self-approval. To befriend Bartleby; to humor him in his strange wilfulness, will cost me little or nothing, while I lay up in my soul what will eventually prove a sweet morsel for my conscience. But this mood was not invariable with me. The passiveness of Bartleby some- times irritated me. I felt strangely goaded on to encounter him in new opposition — to elicit some angry spark from him answerable to my own. But, indeed, I might as well have essayed to strike fire with my knuckles against a bit of Windsor soap. But one afternoon the evil impulse in me mastered me, and the following little scene ensued: “Bartleby,” said I, “when those papers are all copied, I will compare them with you.” “I would prefer not to.” “How? Surely you do not mean to persist in that mulish vagary?” No answer. I threw open the folding-doors nearby, and turning upon Turkey and Nippers, exclaimed:

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 95

65

70

75

80

“Bartleby a second time says, he won’t examine his papers. What do you think of it, Turkey?” It was afternoon, be it remembered. Turkey sat glowing like a brass boiler; his bald head steaming; his hands reeling among his blotted papers. “Think of it?” roared Turkey. “I think I’ll just step behind his screen, and black his eyes for him!” So saying, Turkey rose to his feet and threw his arms into a pugi- listic position. He was hurrying away to make good his promise, when I detained him, alarmed at the effect of incautiously rousing Turkey’s combativeness after dinner. “Sit down, Turkey,” said I, “and hear what Nippers has to say. What do you think of it, Nippers? Would I not be justified in immediately dis- missing Bartleby?” “Excuse me, that is for you to decide, sir. I think his conduct quite unusual, and, indeed, unjust, as regards Turkey and myself. But it may only be a passing whim.” “Ah,” exclaimed I, “you have strangely changed your mind, then — you speak very gently of him now.” “All beer,” cried Turkey; “gentleness is effects of beer — Nippers and I dined together to-day. You see how gentle I am, sir. Shall I go and black his eyes?” “You refer to Bartleby, I suppose. No, not to-day, Turkey,” I replied; “pray, put up your fists.” I closed the doors, and again advanced towards Bartleby. I felt addi- tional incentives tempting me to my fate. I burned to be rebelled against again. I remembered that Bartleby never left the office. “Bartleby,” said I, “Ginger Nut is away; just step around to the Post Office, won’t you?” (it was but a three minutes’ walk) “and see if there is anything for me.” “I would prefer not to.” “You will not?” “I prefer not.” I staggered to my desk, and sat there in a deep study. My blind inveteracy returned. Was there any other thing in which I could procure myself to be ignominiously repulsed by this lean, penniless wight? — my hired clerk? What added thing is there, perfectly reasonable, that he will be sure to refuse to do? “Bartleby!” No answer. “Bartleby,” in a louder tone. No answer. “Bartleby,” I roared. Like a very ghost, agreeably to the laws of magical invocation, at the third summons, he appeared at the entrance of his hermitage. “Go to the next room, and tell Nippers to come to me.”

96 character

85

“I prefer not to,” he respectfully and slowly said, and mildly disappeared. “Very good, Bartleby,” said I, in a quiet sort of serenely-severe self- possessed tone, intimating the unalterable purpose of some terrible ret- ribution very close at hand. At the moment I half intended something of the kind. But upon the whole, as it was drawing towards my dinner- hour, I thought it best to put on my hat and walk home for the day, suf- fering much from perplexity and distress of mind. Shall I acknowledge it? The conclusion of this whole business was, that it soon became a fixed fact of my chambers, that a pale young scriv- ener, by the name of Bartleby, had a desk there; that he copied for me at the usual rate of four cents a folio (one hundred words); but he was permanently exempt from examining the work done by him, that duty being transferred to Turkey and Nippers, out of compliment, doubtless, to their superior acuteness; moreover, said Bartleby was never, on any account, to be dispatched on the most trivial errand of any sort; and that even if entreated to take upon him such a matter, it was generally under- stood that he would “prefer not to” — in other words, that he would refuse point-blank. As days passed on, I became considerably reconciled to Bartleby. His steadiness, his freedom from all dissipation, his incessant industry (except when he chose to throw himself into a standing revery behind his screen), his great stillness, his unalterableness of demeanor under all circum- stances, made him a valuable acquisition. One prime thing was this — he was always there — first in the morning, continually through the day, and the last at night. I had a singular confidence in his honesty. I felt my most precious papers perfectly safe in his hands. Sometimes, to be sure, I could not, for the very soul of me, avoid falling into sudden spasmodic passions with him. For it was exceeding difficult to bear in mind all the time those strange peculiarities, privileges, and unheard-of exemptions, forming the tacit stipulations on Bartleby’s part under which he remained in my office. Now and then, in the eagerness of dispatching pressing business, I would inadvertently summon Bartleby, in a short, rapid tone, to put his finger, say, on the incipient tie of a bit of red tape with which I was about compressing some papers. Of course, from behind the screen the usual answer, “I prefer not to,” was sure to come; and then, how could a human creature, with the common infirmities of our nature, refrain from bitterly exclaiming upon such perverseness — such unreasonableness? However, every added repulse of this sort which I received only tended to lessen the probability of my repeating the inadvertence. Here it must be said, that, according to the custom of most legal gentlemen occupying chambers in densely populated law buildings, there were several keys to my door. One was kept by a woman residing in the attic, which person weekly scrubbed and daily swept and dusted my apartments. Another was kept by Turkey for convenience sake. The third I sometimes carried in my own pocket. The fourth I knew not who had.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 97

90

Now, one Sunday morning I happened to go to Trinity Church, to hear a celebrated preacher, and finding myself rather early on the ground I thought I would walk round to my chambers for a while. Luckily I had my key with me; but upon applying it to the lock, I found it resisted by something inserted from the inside. Quite surprised, I called out; when to my consternation a key was turned from within; and thrusting his lean visage at me, and holding the door ajar, the apparition of Bartleby appeared, in his shirt-sleeves, and otherwise in a strangely tattered desha- bille, saying quietly that he was sorry, but he was deeply engaged just then, and — preferred not admitting me at present. In a brief word or two, he moreover added, that perhaps I had better walk round the block two or three times, and by that time he would probably have concluded his affairs. Now, the utterly unsurmised appearance of Bartleby, tenanting my law-chambers of a Sunday morning, with his cadaverously gentlemanly nonchalance, yet withal firm and self-possessed, had such a strange effect upon me, that incontinently I slunk away from my own door, and did as desired. But not without sundry twinges of impotent rebellion against the mild effrontery of this unaccountable scrivener. Indeed, it was his wonderful mildness chiefly, which not only disarmed me, but unmanned me, as it were. For I consider that one, for the time, is sort of unmanned when he tranquilly permits his hired clerk to dictate to him, and order him away from his own premises. Furthermore, I was full of uneasiness as to what Bartleby could possibly be doing in my office in his shirt- sleeves, and in an otherwise dismantled condition of a Sunday morning. Was anything amiss going on? Nay, that was out of the question. It was not to be thought of for a moment that Bartleby was an immoral person. But what could he be doing there? — copying? Nay again, whatever might be his eccentricities, Bartleby was an eminently decorous person. He would be the last man to sit down to his desk in any state approaching to nudity. Besides, it was Sunday; and there was something about Bartleby that forbade the supposition that he would by any secular occupation violate the proprieties of the day. Nevertheless, my mind was not pacified; and full of a restless curios- ity, at last I returned to the door. Without hindrance I inserted my key, opened it, and entered. Bartleby was not to be seen. I looked round anx- iously, peeped behind his screen; but it was very plain that he was gone. Upon more closely examining the place, I surmised that for an indefinite period Bartleby must have ate, dressed, and slept in my office, and that too without plate, mirror, or bed. The cushioned seat of a rickety old sofa in one corner bore the faint impress of a lean, reclining form. Rolled away under his desk, I found a blanket; under the empty grate, a black- ing box and brush; on a chair, a tin basin, with soap and a ragged towel; in a newspaper a few crumbs of ginger-nuts and a morsel of cheese. Yes, thought I, it is evident enough that Bartleby has been making his home here, keeping bachelor’s hall all by himself. Immediately then the

98 character

thought came sweeping across me, what miserable friendlessness and loneliness are here revealed! His poverty is great; but his solitude, how horrible! Think of it. Of a Sunday, Wall Street is deserted as Petra;° and every night of every day it is an emptiness. This building, too, which of week-days hums with industry and life, at nightfall echoes with sheer vacancy, and all through Sunday is forlorn. And here Bartleby makes his home; sole spectator of a solitude which he has seen all populous — a sort of innocent and transformed Marius brooding among the ruins of Carthage?° For the first time in my life a feeling of overpowering stinging mel- ancholy seized me. Before, I had never experienced aught but a not unpleasing sadness. The bond of a common humanity now drew me irresistibly to gloom. A fraternal melancholy! For both I and Bartleby were sons of Adam. I remembered the bright silks and sparkling faces I had seen that day, in gala trim, swan-like sailing down the Mississippi of Broadway; and I contrasted them with the pallid copyist, and thought to myself, Ah, happiness courts the light, so we deem the world is gay; but misery hides aloof, so we deem that misery there is none. These sad fan- cyings — chimeras, doubtless, of a sick and silly brain — led on to other and more special thoughts, concerning the eccentricities of Bartleby. Presentiments of strange discoveries hovered round me. The scrivener’s pale form appeared to me laid out, among uncaring strangers, in its shiv- ering winding-sheet. Suddenly I was attracted by Bartleby’s closed desk, the key in open sight left in the lock. I mean no mischief, seek the gratification of no heartless curiosity, thought I; besides, the desk is mine, and its contents, too, so I will make bold to look within. Everything was methodically arranged, the papers smoothly placed. The pigeon-holes were deep, and removing the files of documents, I groped into their recesses. Presently I felt something there, and dragged it out. It was an old bandanna handkerchief, heavy and knotted. I opened it, and saw it was a saving’s bank. I now recalled all the quiet mysteries which I had noted in the man. I remembered that he never spoke but to answer; that, though at intervals he had considerable time to himself, yet I had never seen him reading — no, not even a newspaper; that for long periods he would stand looking out, at his pale window behind the screen, upon the dead brick wall; I was quite sure he never visited any refectory or eating-house; while his pale face clearly indicated that he never drank beer like Turkey; or tea and cof- fee even, like other men; that he never went anywhere in particular that I could learn; never went out for a walk, unless, indeed, that was the case at

Petra: An ancient Arabian city whose ruins were discovered in 1812. Marius . . . of Carthage: Gaius Marius (157–86 B.C.), an exiled Roman general, sought refuge in the African city-state of Carthage, which was destroyed by the Romans in the Third Punic War.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 99

95

100

present; that he had declined telling who he was, or whence he came, or whether he had any relatives in the world; that though so thin and pale, he never complained of ill-health. And more than all, I remembered a certain unconscious air of pallid — how shall I call it? — of pallid haughtiness, say, or rather an austere reserve about him, which had positively awed me into my tame compliance with his eccentricities, when I had feared to ask him to do the slightest incidental thing for me, even though I might know, from his long-continued motionlessness, that behind his screen he must be standing in one of those dead-wall reveries of his. Revolving all these things, and coupling them with the recently discovered fact, that he made my office his constant abiding place and home, and not forgetful of his morbid moodiness; revolving all these things, a prudential feeling began to steal over me. My first emotions had been those of pure melancholy and sincerest pity; but just in propor- tion as the forlornness of Bartleby grew and grew to my imagination, did that same melancholy merge into fear, that pity into repulsion. So true it is, and so terrible, too, that up to a certain point the thought or sight of misery enlists our best affections; but, in certain special cases, beyond that point it does not. They err who would assert that invariably this is owing to the inherent selfishness of the human heart. It rather proceeds from a certain hopelessness of remedying excessive and organic ill. To a sensitive being, pity is not seldom pain. And when at last it is perceived that such pity cannot lead to effectual succor, common sense bids the soul be rid of it. What I saw that morning persuaded me that the scriv- ener was the victim of innate and incurable disorder. I might give alms to his body; but his body did not pain him; it was his soul that suffered, and his soul I could not reach. I did not accomplish the purpose of going to Trinity Church that morning. Somehow, the things I had seen disqualified me for the time from church-going. I walked homeward, thinking what I would do with Bartleby. Finally, I resolved upon this — I would put certain calm questions to him the next morning, touching his history, etc., and if he declined to answer them openly and unreservedly (and I supposed he would prefer not), then to give him a twenty dollar bill over and above whatever I might owe him, and tell him his services were no longer required; but that if in any other way I could assist him, I would be happy to do so, especially if he desired to return to his native place, wherever that might be, I would willingly help to defray the expenses. Moreover, if, after reaching home, he found himself at any time in want of aid, a letter from him would be sure of a reply. The next morning came. “Bartleby,” said I, gently calling to him behind his screen. No reply. “Bartleby,” said I, in a still gentler tone, “come here; I am not going to ask you to do anything you would prefer not to do — I simply wish to speak to you.”

100 character

105

110

115

Upon this he noiselessly slid into view. “Will you tell me, Bartleby, where you were born?” “I would prefer not to.” “Will you tell me anything about yourself?” “I would prefer not to.” “But what reasonable objection can you have to speak to me? I feel friendly towards you.” He did not look at me while I spoke, but kept his glance fixed upon my bust of Cicero, which, as I then sat, was directly behind me, some six inches above my head. “What is your answer, Bartleby?” said I, after waiting a considerable time for a reply, during which his countenance remained immovable, only there was the faintest conceivable tremor of the white attenuated mouth. “At present I prefer to give no answer,” he said, and retired into his hermitage. It was rather weak in me I confess, but his manner, on this occasion, nettled me. Not only did there seem to lurk in it a certain calm disdain, but his perverseness seemed ungrateful, considering the undeniable good usage and indulgence he had received from me. Again I sat ruminating what I should do. Mortified as I was at his behavior, and resolved as I had been to dismiss him when I entered my office, nevertheless I strangely felt something superstitious knocking at my heart, and forbidding me to carry out my purpose, and denouncing me for a villain if I dared to breathe one bitter word against this forlor- nest of mankind. At last, familiarly drawing my chair behind his screen, I sat down and said: “Bartleby, never mind, then, about revealing your his- tory; but let me entreat you, as a friend, to comply as far as may be with the usages of this office. Say now, you will help to examine papers tomor- row or next day: in short, say now, that in a day or two you will begin to be a little reasonable: — say so, Bartleby.” “At present I would prefer not to be a little reasonable,” was his mildly cadaverous reply. Just then the folding-doors opened, and Nippers approached. He seemed suffering from an unusually bad night’s rest, induced by severer indigestion than common. He overheard those final words of Bartleby. “Prefer not, eh?” gritted Nippers — “I’d prefer him, if I were you, sir,” addressing me — “I’d prefer him; I’d give him preferences, the stubborn mule! What is it, sir, pray, that he prefers not to do now?” Bartleby moved not a limb. “Mr. Nippers,” said I, “I’d prefer that you would withdraw for the present.” Somehow, of late, I had got into the way of involuntarily using this word “prefer” upon all sorts of not exactly suitable occasions. And I trembled to think that my contact with the scrivener had already and seriously affected me in a mental way. And what further and deeper

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 101

120

125

130

aberration might it not yet produce? This apprehension had not been without efficacy in determining me to summary measures. As Nippers, looking very sour and sulky, was departing, Turkey blandly and deferentially approached. “With submission, sir,” said he, “yesterday I was thinking about Bar- tleby here, and I think that if he would but prefer to take a quart of good ale every day, it would do much towards mending him, and enabling him to assist in examining his papers.” “So you have got the word, too,” said I, slightly excited. “With submission, what word, sir?” asked Turkey, respectfully crowding himself into the contracted space behind the screen, and by so doing, making me jostle the scrivener. “What word, sir?” “I would prefer to be left alone here,” said Bartleby, as if offended at being mobbed in his privacy. “That’s the word, Turkey,” said I — “that’s it.” “Oh, prefer? oh yes — queer word. I never use it myself. But, sir, as I was saying, if he would but prefer —” “Turkey,” interrupted I, “you will please withdraw.” “Oh certainly, sir, if you prefer that I should.” As he opened the folding-door to retire, Nippers at his desk caught a glimpse of me, and asked whether I would prefer to have a certain paper copied on blue paper or white. He did not in the least roguishly accent the word “prefer.” It was plain that it involuntarily rolled from his tongue. I thought to myself, surely I must get rid of a demented man, who already has in some degree turned the tongues, if not the heads of myself and clerks. But I thought it prudent not to break the dismission at once. The next day I noticed that Bartleby did nothing but stand at his window in his dead-wall revery. Upon asking him why he did not write, he said that he had decided upon doing no more writing. “Why, how now? what next?” exclaimed I, “do no more writing?” “No more.” “And what is the reason?” “Do you not see the reason for yourself?” he indifferently replied. I looked steadfastly at him, and perceived that his eyes looked dull and glazed. Instantly it occurred to me, that his unexampled diligence in copying by his dim window for the first few weeks of his stay with me might have temporarily impaired his vision. I was touched. I said something in condolence with him. I hinted that of course he did wisely in abstaining from writing for a while; and urged him to embrace that opportunity of taking wholesome exercise in the open air. This, however, he did not do. A few days after this, my other clerks being absent, and being in a great hurry to dispatch certain letters by the mail, I thought that, having nothing else earthly to do, Bartleby would surely be less inflexible than usual, and carry these letters to the Post Office. But he blankly declined. So, much to my inconvenience, I went myself.

102 character

135

140

145

Still added days went by. Whether Bartleby’s eyes improved or not, I could not say. To all appearance, I thought they did. But when I asked him if they did, he vouchsafed no answer. At all events, he would do no copying. At last, in replying to my urgings, he informed me that he had permanently given up copying. “What!” exclaimed I; “suppose your eyes should get entirely well — better than ever before — would you not copy then?” “I have given up copying,” he answered, and slid aside. He remained as ever, a fixture in my chamber. Nay — if that were possible — he became still more of a fixture than before. What was to be done? He would do nothing in the office; why should he stay there? In plain fact, he had now become a millstone to me, not only useless as a necklace, but afflictive to bear. Yet I was sorry for him. I speak less than truth when I say that, on his own account, he occasioned me uneasiness. If he would but have named a single relative or friend, I would instantly have written, and urged their taking the poor fellow away to some conve- nient retreat. But he seemed alone, absolutely alone in the universe. A bit of wreck in the mid-Atlantic. At length, necessities connected with my business tyrannized over all other considerations. Decently as I could, I told Bartleby that in six days’ time he must unconditionally leave the office. I warned him to take measures, in the interval, for procuring some other abode. I offered to assist him in this endeavor, if he himself would but take the first step towards a removal. “And when you finally quit me, Bartleby,” added I, “I shall see that you go not away entirely unprovided. Six days from this hour, remember.” At the expiration of that period, I peeped behind the screen, and lo! Bartleby was there. I buttoned up my coat, balanced myself; advanced slowly towards him, touched his shoulder, and said, “The time has come; you must quit this place; I am sorry for you; here is money; but you must go.” “I would prefer not,” he replied, with his back still towards me. “You must.” He remained silent. Now I had an unbounded confidence in this man’s common hon- esty. He had frequently restored to me sixpences and shillings carelessly dropped upon the floor, for I am apt to be very reckless in such shirt- button affairs. The proceeding, then, which followed will not be deemed extraordinary. “Bartleby,” said I, “I owe you twelve dollars on account; here are thirty-two, the odd twenty are yours — Will you take it?” and I handed the bills towards him. But he made no motion. “I will leave them here, then,” putting them under a weight on the table. Then taking my hat and cane and going to the door, I tranquilly turned and added — “After you have removed your things from these offices, Bartleby, you will of course lock the door — since every one is now

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 103

150

gone for the day but you — and if you please, slip your key underneath the mat, so that I may have it in the morning. I shall not see you again; so good-bye to you. If, hereafter, in your new place of abode, I can be of any service to you, do not fail to advise me by letter. Good-bye, Bartleby, and fare you well.” But he answered not a word; like the last column of some ruined temple, he remained standing mute and solitary in the middle of the otherwise deserted room. As I walked home in a pensive mood, my vanity got the better of my pity. I could not but highly plume myself on my masterly management in getting rid of Bartleby. Masterly I call it, and such it must appear to any dispassionate thinker. The beauty of my procedure seemed to consist in its perfect quietness. There was no vulgar bullying, no bravado of any sort, no choleric hectoring, and striding to and fro across the apartment, jerking out vehement commands for Bartleby to bundle himself off with his beggarly traps. Nothing of the kind. Without loudly bidding Bartleby depart — as an inferior genius might have done — I assumed the ground that depart he must; and upon that assumption built all I had to say. The more I thought over my procedure, the more I was charmed with it. Nevertheless, next morning, upon awakening, I had my doubts — I had somehow slept off the fumes of vanity. One of the coolest and wisest hours a man has, is just after he awakes in the morning. My procedure seemed as sagacious as ever — but only in theory. How it would prove in practice — there was the rub. It was truly a beautiful thought to have assumed Bartleby’s departure; but, after all, that assumption was simply my own, and none of Bartleby’s. The great point was, not whether I had assumed that he would quit me, but whether he would prefer to do so. He was more a man of preferences than assumptions. After breakfast, I walked down town, arguing the probabilities pro and con. One moment I thought it would prove a miserable failure, and Bartleby would be found all alive at my office as usual; the next moment it seemed certain that I should find his chair empty. And so I kept veer- ing about. At the corner of Broadway and Canal Street, I saw quite an excited group of people standing in earnest conversation. “I’ll take odds he doesn’t,” said a voice as I passed. “Doesn’t go? — done!” said I, “put up your money.” I was instinctively putting my hand in my pocket to produce my own, when I remembered that this was an election day. The words I had overheard bore no reference to Bartleby, but to the success or non-success of some candidate for the mayoralty. In my intent frame of mind, I had, as it were, imagined that all Broadway shared in my excitement, and were debating the same question with me. I passed on, very thankful that the uproar of the street screened my momentary absent-mindedness. As I had intended, I was earlier than usual at my office door. I stood listening for a moment. All was still. He must be gone. I tried the knob. The door was locked. Yes, my procedure had worked to a charm;

104 character

155

160

he indeed must be vanished. Yet a certain melancholy mixed with this: I was almost sorry for my brilliant success. I was fumbling under the door mat for the key, which Bartleby was to have left there for me, when accidentally my knee knocked against a panel, producing a summoning sound, and in response a voice came to me from within — “Not yet; I am occupied.” It was Bartleby. I was thunderstruck. For an instant I stood like the man who, pipe in mouth, was killed one cloudless afternoon long ago in Virginia, by summer lightning; at his own warm open window he was killed, and remained leaning out there upon the dreamy afternoon, till some one touched him, when he fell. “Not gone!” I murmured at last. But again obeying that wondrous ascendancy which the inscrutable scrivener had over me, and from which ascendancy, for all my chafing, I could not completely escape, I slowly went down stairs and out into the street, and while walking round the block, considered what I should next do in this unheard-of perplexity. Turn the man out by an actual thrusting I could not; to drive him away by calling him hard names would not do; calling in the police was an unpleasant idea; and yet, permit him to enjoy his cadaverous triumph over me — this, too, I could not think of. What was to be done? or, if nothing could be done, was there anything further that I could assume in the matter? Yes, as before I had prospectively assumed that Bartleby would depart, so now I might retrospectively assume that departed he was. In the legitimate carrying out of this assumption, I might enter my office in a great hurry, and pretending not to see Bartleby at all, walk straight against him as if he were air. Such a proceeding would in a sin- gular degree have the appearance of a home-thrust. It was hardly possible that Bartleby could withstand such an application of the doctrine of assumption. But upon second thoughts the success of the plan seemed rather dubious. I resolved to argue the matter over with him again. “Bartleby,” said I, entering the office, with a quietly severe expression, “I am seriously displeased. I am pained, Bartleby. I had thought better of you. I had imagined you of such a gentlemanly organization, that in any delicate dilemma a slight hint would suffice — in short, an assumption. But it appears I am deceived. Why,” I added, unaffectedly starting, “you have not even touched that money yet,” pointing to it, just where I had left it the evening previous. He answered nothing. “Will you, or will you not, quit me?” I now demanded in a sudden passion, advancing close to him. “I would prefer not to quit you,” he replied, gently emphasizing the not. “What earthly right have you to stay here? Do you pay any rent? Do you pay my taxes? Or is this property yours?” He answered nothing.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 105

165

“Are you ready to go on and write now? Are your eyes recovered? Could you copy a small paper for me this morning? or help examine a few lines? or step round to the Post Office? In a word, will you do any- thing at all, to give a coloring to your refusal to depart the premises?” He silently retired into his hermitage. I was now in such a state of nervous resentment that I thought it but prudent to check myself at present from further demonstrations. Bartleby and I were alone. I remembered the tragedy of the unfortunate Adams and the still more unfortunate Colt° in the solitary office of the latter; and how poor Colt, being dreadfully incensed by Adams, and imprudently permitting himself to get wildly excited, was at unawares hurried into his fatal act — an act which certainly no man could possi- bly deplore more than the actor himself. Often it had occurred to me in my ponderings upon the subject that had that altercation taken place in the public street, or at a private residence, it would not have terminated as it did. It was the circumstance of being alone in a solitary office, up stairs, of a building entirely unhallowed by humanizing domestic asso- ciations — an uncarpeted office, doubtless, of a dusty, haggard sort of appearance — this it must have been, which greatly helped to enhance the irritable desperation of the hapless Colt. But when this old Adam of resentment rose in me and tempted me concerning Bartleby, I grappled him and threw him. How? Why, simply by recalling the divine injunction: “A new commandment give I unto you, that ye love one another.” Yes, this it was that saved me. Aside from higher considerations, charity often operates as a vastly wise and pru- dent principle — a great safeguard to its possessor. Men have commit- ted murder for jealousy’s sake, and anger’s sake, and hatred’s sake, and selfishness’ sake, and spiritual pride’s sake; but no man, that ever I heard of, ever committed a diabolical murder for sweet charity’s sake. Mere self-interest, then, if no better motive can be enlisted, should, especially with high-tempered men, prompt all beings to charity and philanthropy. At any rate, upon the occasion in question, I strove to drown my exasper- ated feelings towards the scrivener by benevolently construing his con- duct. Poor fellow, poor fellow! thought I, he don’t mean anything; and besides, he has seen hard times, and ought to be indulged. I endeavored, also, immediately to occupy myself, and at the same time to comfort my despondency. I tried to fancy, that in the course of the morning, at such time as might prove agreeable to him, Bartleby, of his own free accord, would emerge from his hermitage and take up some decided line of march in the direction of the door. But no. Half- past twelve o’clock came; Turkey began to glow in the face, overturn his inkstand, and become generally obstreperous; Nippers abated down

Adams . . . Colt: Samuel Adams was killed by John C. Colt, brother of the gun maker, during a quarrel in 1842. After a sensational court case, Colt committed suicide just before he was to be hanged.

106 character

170

into quietude and courtesy; Ginger Nut munched his noon apple; and Bartleby remained standing at his window in one of his profoundest dead-wall reveries. Will it be credited? Ought I to acknowledge it? That afternoon I left the office without saying one further word to him. Some days now passed, during which, at leisure intervals I looked a little into “Edwards on the Will,” and “Priestley on Necessity.”° Under the circumstances, those books induced a salutary feeling. Gradually I slid into the persuasion that these troubles of mine, touching the scriv- ener, had been all predestined from eternity, and Bartleby was billeted upon me for some mysterious purpose of an all-wise Providence, which it was not for a mere mortal like me to fathom. Yes, Bartleby, stay there behind your screen, thought I; I shall persecute you no more; you are harmless and noiseless as any of these old chairs; in short, I never feel so private as when I know you are here. At last I see it, I feel it; I penetrate to the predestined purpose of my life. I am content. Others may have loftier parts to enact; but my mission in this world, Bartleby, is to furnish you with office-room for such period as you may see fit to remain. I believe that this wise and blessed frame of mind would have con- tinued with me, had it not been for the unsolicited and uncharitable remarks obtruded upon me by my professional friends who visited the rooms. But thus it often is, that the constant friction of illiberal minds wears out at last the best resolves of the more generous. Though to be sure, when I reflected upon it, it was not strange that people entering my office should be struck by the peculiar aspect of the unaccountable Bartleby, and so be tempted to throw out some sinister observations concerning him. Sometimes an attorney, having business with me, and calling at my office, and finding no one but the scrivener there, would undertake to obtain some sort of precise information from him touch- ing my whereabouts; but without heeding his idle talk, Bartleby would remain standing immovable in the middle of the room. So after contem- plating him in that position for a time, the attorney would depart, no wiser than he came. Also, when a reference was going on, and the room full of lawyers and witnesses, and business driving fast, some deeply-occupied legal gentleman present, seeing Bartleby wholly unemployed, would request him to run round to his (the legal gentleman’s) office and fetch some papers for him. Thereupon, Bartleby would tranquilly decline, and yet remain idle as before. Then the lawyer would give a great stare, and turn to me. And what could I say? At last I was made aware that all through the circle of my professional acquaintance, a whisper of wonder was running round, having reference to the strange creature I kept at my office. This worried me very much. And as the idea came upon me of

“Edwards . . . Necessity”: Jonathan Edwards, in Freedom of the Will (1754), and Joseph Priestley, in Doctrine of Philosophical Necessity (1777), both argued that human beings do not have free will.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 107

175

his possibly turning out a long-lived man, and keeping occupying my chambers, and denying my authority; and perplexing my visitors; and scandalizing my professional reputation; and casting a general gloom over the premises; keeping soul and body together to the last upon his savings (for doubtless he spent but half a dime a day), and in the end perhaps outlive me, and claim possession of my office by right of his perpetual occupancy: as all these dark anticipations crowded upon me more and more, and my friends continually intruded their relentless remarks upon the apparition in my room; a great change was wrought in me. I resolved to gather all my faculties together, and forever rid me of this intolerable incubus. Ere revolving any complicated project, however, adapted to this end, I first simply suggested to Bartleby the propriety of his permanent depar- ture. In a calm and serious tone, I commended the idea to his careful and mature consideration. But, having taken three days to meditate upon it, he apprised me, that his original determination remained the same; in short, that he still preferred to abide with me. What shall I do? I now said to myself, buttoning up my coat to the last button. What shall I do? what ought I to do? what does conscience say I should do with this man, or, rather, ghost. Rid myself of him, I must; go, he shall. But how? You will not thrust him, the poor, pale, passive mortal — you will not thrust such a helpless creature out of your door? you will not dishonor yourself by such cruelty? No, I will not, I cannot do that. Rather would I let him live and die here, and then mason up his remains in the wall. What, then, will you do? For all your coaxing, he will not budge. Bribes he leaves under your own paper-weight on your table; in short, it is quite plain that he prefers to cling to you. Then something severe, something unusual must be done. What! surely you will not have him collared by a constable, and commit his innocent pallor to the common jail? And upon what ground could you procure such a thing to be done? — a vagrant, is he? What! he a vagrant, a wanderer, who refuses to budge? It is because he will not be a vagrant, then, that you seek to count him as a vagrant. That is too absurd. No visible means of support: there I have him. Wrong again: for indubitably he does support himself, and that is the only unanswerable proof that any man can show of his possessing the means so to do. No more, then. Since he will not quit me, I must quit him. I will change my offices; I will move elsewhere, and give him fair notice, that if I find him on my new premises I will then proceed against him as a common trespasser. Acting accordingly, next day I thus addressed him: “I find these chambers too far from the City Hall; the air is unwholesome. In a word, I propose to remove my offices next week, and shall no longer require your services. I tell you this now, in order that you may seek another place.” He made no reply, and nothing more was said. On the appointed day I engaged carts and men, proceeded to my chambers, and having but little furniture, everything was removed in

108 character

180

185

190

a few hours. Throughout, the scrivener remained standing behind the screen, which I directed to be removed the last thing. It was withdrawn; and, being folded up like a huge folio, left him the motionless occupant of a naked room. I stood in the entry watching him a moment, while something from within me upbraided me. I re-entered, with my hand in my pocket — and — and my heart in my mouth. “Good-bye, Bartleby; I am going — good-bye, and God some way bless you; and take that,” slipping something in his hand. But it dropped upon the floor, and then — strange to say — I tore myself from him whom I had so longed to be rid of. Established in my new quarters, for a day or two I kept the door locked, and started at every footfall in the passages. When I returned to my rooms, after any little absence, I would pause at the threshold for an instant, and attentively listen, ere applying my key. But these fears were needless. Bartleby never came nigh me. I thought all was going well, when a perturbed-looking stranger vis- ited me, inquiring whether I was the person who had recently occupied rooms at No. — Wall Street. Full of forebodings, I replied that I was. “Then, sir,” said the stranger, who proved a lawyer, “you are respon- sible for the man you left there. He refuses to do any copying; he refuses to do anything; he says he prefers not to; and he refuses to quit the premises.” “I am very sorry, sir,” said I, with assumed tranquillity, but an inward tremor, “but, really, the man you allude to is nothing to me — he is no rela- tion or apprentice of mine, that you should hold me responsible for him.” “In mercy’s name, who is he?” “I certainly cannot inform you. I know nothing about him. Formerly I employed him as a copyist; but he has done nothing for me now for some time past.” “I shall settle him, then — good morning, sir.” Several days passed, and I heard nothing more; and, though I often felt a charitable prompting to call at the place and see poor Bartleby, yet a certain squeamishness, of I know not what, withheld me. All is over with him, by this time, thought I, at last, when, through another week, no further intelligence reached me. But, coming to my room the day after, I found several persons waiting at my door in a high state of nervous excitement. “That’s the man — here he comes,” cried the foremost one, whom I recognized as the lawyer who had previously called upon me alone. “You must take him away, sir, at once,” cried a portly person among them, advancing upon me, and whom I knew to be the landlord of No. — Wall Street. “These gentlemen, my tenants, cannot stand it any lon- ger; Mr. B ——,” pointing to the lawyer, “has turned him out of his room, and he now persists in haunting the building generally, sitting upon the

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 109

195

200

205

210

banisters of the stairs by day, and sleeping in the entry by night. Every- body is concerned; clients are leaving the offices; some fears are enter- tained of a mob; something you must do, and that without delay.” Aghast at this torrent, I fell back before it, and would fain have locked myself in my new quarters. In vain I persisted that Bartleby was nothing to me — no more than to any one else. In vain — I was the last person known to have anything to do with him, and they held me to the terrible account. Fearful, then, of being exposed in the papers (as one person present obscurely threatened), I considered the matter, and, at length, said, that if the lawyer would give me a confidential interview with the scrivener, in his (the lawyer’s) own room, I would, that after- noon, strive my best to rid them of the nuisance they complained of. Going up stairs to my old haunt, there was Bartleby silently sitting upon the banister at the landing. “What are you doing here, Bartleby?” said I. “Sitting upon the banister,” he mildly replied. I motioned him into the lawyer’s room, who then left us. “Bartleby,” said I, “are you aware that you are the cause of great trib- ulation to me, by persisting in occupying the entry after being dismissed from the office?” No answer. “Now one of two things must take place. Either you must do some- thing, or something must be done to you. Now what sort of business would you like to engage in? Would you like to re-engage in copying for some one?” “No; I would prefer not to make any change.” “Would you like a clerkship in a dry-goods store?” “There is too much confinement about that. No, I would not like a clerkship; but I am not particular.” “Too much confinement,” I cried, “why, you keep yourself confined all the time!” “I would prefer not to take a clerkship,” he rejoined, as if to settle that little item at once. “How would a bar-tender’s business suit you? There is no trying of the eyesight in that.” “I would not like it at all; though, as I said before, I am not particular.” His unwonted wordiness inspirited me. I returned to the charge. “Well, then, would you like to travel through the country collecting bills for the merchants? That would improve your health.” “No, I would prefer to be doing something else.” “How, then, would going as a companion to Europe, to entertain some young gentleman with your conversation — how would that suit you?” “Not at all. It does not strike me that there is anything definite about that. I like to be stationary. But I am not particular.”

110 character

215

“Stationary you shall be, then,” I cried, now losing all patience, and, for the first time in all my exasperating connection with him, fairly flying into a passion. “If you do not go away from these premises before night, I shall feel bound — indeed, I am bound — to — to quit the premises myself!” I rather absurdly concluded, knowing not with what possible threat to try to frighten his immobility into compliance. Despairing of all further efforts, I was precipitately leaving him, when a final thought occurred to me — one which had not been wholly unindulged before. “Bartleby,” said I, in the kindest tone I could assume under such exciting circumstances, “will you go home with me now — not to my office, but my dwelling — and remain there till we can conclude upon some convenient arrangement for you at our leisure? Come, let us start now, right away.” “No: at present I would prefer not to make any change at all.” I answered nothing; but, effectually dodging every one by the sud- denness and rapidity of my flight, rushed from the building, ran up Wall Street towards Broadway, and, jumping into the first omnibus, was soon removed from pursuit. As soon as tranquillity returned, I distinctly per- ceived that I had now done all that I possibly could, both in respect to the demands of the landlord and his tenants, and with regard to my own desire and sense of duty, to benefit Bartleby, and shield him from rude persecution. I now strove to be entirely care-free and quiescent; and my conscience justified me in the attempt; though, indeed, it was not so suc- cessful as I could have wished. So fearful was I of being again hunted out by the incensed landlord and his exasperated tenants, that, surrender- ing my business to Nippers, for a few days, I drove about the upper part of the town and through the suburbs, in my rockaway; crossed over to Jersey City and Hoboken, and paid fugitive visits to Manhattanville and Astoria. In fact, I almost lived in my rockaway for the time. When again I entered my office, lo, a note from the landlord lay upon the desk. I opened it with trembling hands. It informed me that the writer had sent to the police, and had Bartleby removed to the Tombs as a vagrant. Moreover, since I knew more about him than any one else, he wished me to appear at that place, and make a suitable statement of the facts. These tidings had a conflicting effect upon me. At first I was indignant; but, at last, almost approved. The landlord’s energetic, sum- mary disposition, had led him to adopt a procedure which I do not think I would have decided upon myself; and yet, as a last resort, under such peculiar circumstances, it seemed the only plan. As I afterwards learned, the poor scrivener, when told that he must be conducted to the Tombs, offered not the slightest obstacle, but, in his pale, unmoving way, silently acquiesced. Some of the compassionate and curious by-standers joined the party; and headed by one of the constables arm-in-arm with Bartleby, the silent procession filed its way through all the noise, and heat, and joy of the roaring thoroughfares at noon.

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 111

220

225

230

The same day I received the note, I went to the Tombs, or, to speak more properly, the Halls of Justice. Seeking the right officer, I stated the purpose of my call, and was informed that the individual I described was, indeed, within. I then assured the functionary that Bartleby was a perfectly honest man, and greatly to be compassionated, however unac- countably eccentric. I narrated all I knew, and closed by suggesting the idea of letting him remain in as indulgent confinement as possible, till something less harsh might be done — though, indeed, I hardly knew what. At all events, if nothing else could be decided upon, the almshouse must receive him. I then begged to have an interview. Being under no disgraceful charge, and quite serene and harmless in all his ways, they had permitted him freely to wander about the prison, and, especially, in the inclosed grass-platted yards thereof. And so I found him there, standing all alone in the quietest of the yards, his face towards a high wall, while all around, from the narrow slits of the jail windows, I thought I saw peering out upon him the eyes of murderers and thieves. “Bartleby!” “I know you,” he said, without looking round — “and I want nothing to say to you.” “It was not I that brought you here, Bartleby,” said I, keenly pained at his implied suspicion. “And to you, this should not be so vile a place. Nothing reproachful attaches to you by being here. And see, it is not so sad a place as one might think. Look, there is the sky, and here is the grass.” “I know where I am,” he replied, but would say nothing more, and so I left him. As I entered the corridor again, a broad meat-like man, in an apron, accosted me, and, jerking his thumb over his shoulder, said — “Is that your friend?” “Yes.” “Does he want to starve? If he does, let him live on the prison fare, that’s all.” “Who are you?” asked I, not knowing what to make of such an unofficially speaking person in such a place. “I am the grub-man. Such gentlemen as have friends here, hire me to provide them with something good to eat.” “Is this so?” said I, turning the turnkey. He said it was. “Well, then,” said I, slipping some silver into the grub-man’s hands (for so they called him), “I want you to give particular attention to my friend there; let him have the best dinner you can get. And you must be as polite to him as possible.” “Introduce me, will you?” said the grub-man, looking at me with an expression which seemed to say he was all impatience for an opportunity to give a specimen of his breeding.

112 character

235

240

245

Thinking it would prove of benefit to the scrivener, I acquiesced; and, asking the grub-man his name, went up with him to Bartleby. “Bartleby, this is a friend; you will find him very useful to you.” “Your sarvant, sir, your sarvant,” said the grub-man, making a low salutation behind his apron. “Hope you find it pleasant here, sir; nice grounds — cool apartments — hope you’ll stay with us some time — try to make it agreeable. What will you have for dinner to-day?” “I prefer not to dine to-day,” said Bartleby, turning away. “It would disagree with me; I am unused to dinners.” So saying, he slowly moved to the other side of the inclosure, and took up a position fronting the deadwall. “How’s this?” said the grub-man, addressing me with a stare of astonishment. “He’s odd, ain’t he?” “I think he is a little deranged,” said I, sadly. “Deranged? deranged is it? Well, now, upon my word, I thought that friend of yourn was a gentleman forger; they are always pale and genteel- like, them forgers. I can’t help pity ’em — can’t help it, sir. Did you know Monroe Edwards?” he added, touchingly, and paused. Then, laying his hand piteously on my shoulder, sighed, “he died of consumption at Sing-Sing. So you weren’t acquainted with Monroe?” “No, I was never socially acquainted with any forgers. But I cannot stop longer. Look to my friend yonder. You will not lose by it. I will see you again.” Some few days after this, I again obtained admission to the Tombs, and went through the corridors in quest of Bartleby; but without finding him. “I saw him coming from his cell not long ago,” said a turnkey, “may be he’s gone to loiter in the yards.” So I went in that direction. “Are you looking for the silent man?” said another turnkey, passing me. “Yonder he lies — sleeping in the yard there. ’Tis not twenty minutes since I saw him lie down.” The yard was entirely quiet. It was not accessible to the common prisoners. The surrounding walls, of amazing thickness, kept off all sounds behind them. The Egyptian character of the masonry weighed upon me with its gloom. But a soft imprisoned turf grew under foot. The heart of the eternal pyramids, it seemed, wherein, by some strange magic, through the clefts, grass-seed, dropped by birds, had sprung. Strangely huddled at the base of the wall, his knees drawn up, and lying on his side, his head touching the cold stones, I saw the wasted Bar- tleby. But nothing stirred. I paused; then went close up to him; stooped over, and saw that his dim eyes were open; otherwise he seemed pro- foundly sleeping. Something prompted me to touch him. I felt his hand, when a tingling shiver ran up my arm and down my spine to my feet. The round face of the grub-man peered upon me now. “His dinner is ready. Won’t he dine to-day, either? Or does he live without dining?”

melville / bartleby, the scrivener 113

250 “Lives without dining,” said I, and closed the eyes. “Eh! — He’s asleep, ain’t he?” “With kings and counselors,”° murmured I. There would seem little need for proceeding further in this history. Imagination will readily supply the meagre recital of poor Bartleby’s interment. But, ere parting with the reader, let me say, that if this little narrative has sufficiently interested him, to awaken curiosity as to who Bartleby was, and what manner of life he led prior to the present narra- tor’s making his acquaintance, I can only reply, that in such curiosity I fully share, but am wholly unable to gratify it. Yet here I hardly know whether I should divulge one little item of rumor, which came to my ear a few months after the scrivener’s decease. Upon what basis it rested, I could never ascertain; and hence, how true it is I cannot now tell. But, inasmuch as this vague report has not been without a certain suggestive interest to me, however sad, it may prove the same with some others; and so I will briefly mention it. The report was this: that Bartleby had been a subordinate clerk in the Dead Letter Office at Washington, from which he had been suddenly removed by a change in the administration. When I think over this rumor, hardly can I express the emotions which seize me. Dead letters! does it not sound like dead men? Conceive a man by nature and misfortune prone to a pallid hopelessness, can any business seem more fitted to heighten it than that of continually handling these dead letters, and assorting them for the flames? For by the cart-load they are annually burned. Sometimes from out the folded paper the pale clerk takes a ring — the finger it was meant for, perhaps, moulders in the grave; a bank-note sent in swiftest charity — he whom it would relieve, nor eats nor hungers any more; pardon for those who died despairing; hope for those who died unhoping; good tidings for those who died stifled by unrelieved calamities. On errands of life, these letters speed to death. Ah, Bartleby! Ah, humanity!

“With kings and counselors”: From Job 3:13–14: “then had I been at rest, / With kings and counselors of the earth, / which built desolate places for themselves.”

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the lawyer’s description of himself serve to characterize him? Why is it significant that he is a lawyer? Are his understandings and judgments about Bartleby and himself always sound?

2. Why do you think Turkey, Nippers, and Ginger Nut are introduced to the reader before Bartleby?

3. Describe Bartleby’s physical characteristics. How is his physical description a foreshadowing of what happens to him?

4. How does Bartleby’s “I would prefer not to” affect the routine of the lawyer and his employees?

5. What is the significance of the subtitle: “A Story of Wall Street”?

114 character

6. Who is the protagonist? Whose story is it? 7. Does the lawyer change during the story? Does Bartleby? Who is

the antagonist? 8. What motivates Bartleby’s behavior? Why do you think Melville

withholds the information about the Dead Letter Office until the end of the story? Does this background adequately explain Bartleby?

9. Does Bartleby have any lasting impact on the lawyer? 10. Do you think Melville sympathizes more with Bartleby or with the

lawyer? 11. Describe the lawyer’s changing attitudes toward Bartleby. 12. Consider how this story could be regarded as a kind of protest with

nonnegotiable demands. 13. Discuss the story’s humor and how it affects your response to

Bartleby. 14. Trace your emotional reaction to Bartleby as he is revealed in the

story. 15. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare Bartleby’s with-

drawal from life with that of the protagonist in Gail Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38). Why does each character choose death?

115

My role is to look at the world, get a true, not an idealized vision of it and hand it over to you in fi ctional form.

— FAY WELDON

Setting is the context in which the action of a story occurs. The major elements of setting are time, place, and the social environment that frames the characters. These elements establish the world in which the characters act. In most stories they also serve as more than backgrounds and furnishings. If we are sensitive to the contexts provided by setting, we are better able to understand the behavior of the characters and the significance of their actions. It may be tempting to read quickly through a writer’s descriptions and ignore the details of the setting once a geo- graphic location and a historic period are established. But if you read a story so impatiently, the significance of the setting may slip by you. That kind of reading is similar to traveling on interstate highways: A lot of ground gets covered, but very little is seen along the way. If we ask why a writer chooses to include certain details in a work, then we are likely to make connections that relate the details to some larger purpose, such as the story’s meaning. The final scene in Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38) occurs in the spring, an ironic time for the action to be set because instead of rebirth for the pro- tagonist there is only death. There is usually a reason for placing a story in a particular time or location. Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85), for example, takes on

4 Setting

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

116 setting

meaning as Bartle by’s “dead-wall reveries” begin to reflect his shattered vision of life. He is surrounded by walls. A folding screen separates him from others in the office; he is isolated. The office window faces walls; there is no view to re lieve the deadening work. Bartleby faces a wall at the prison where he dies; the final wall is death. As the subtitle indicates, this is “A Story of Wall Street.” Unless the geographic location or the physi- cal details of a story are used merely as necessary props, they frequently shed light on character and action. All offices have walls, but Melville transforms the walls into an an tagonist that represents the limitations Bartleby sees and feels all around him but does not speak of. Time, location, and the physical features of a setting can all be rel- evant to the overall purpose of a story. So too is the social environment in which the characters are developed. In Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily” (p. 55) the changes in her southern town serve as a foil for Emily’s tena- cious hold on a lost past. She is regarded as a “fallen monument,” as old- fashioned and peculiar as the “stubborn and coquettish decay” of her house. Neither she nor her house fits into the modern changes that are paving and transforming the town. Without the social context, this story would be mostly an account of a bizarre murder rather than an explora- tion of the conflicts Faulkner associated with the changing South. Set- ting enlarges the meaning of Emily’s actions. Not every story uses setting as a means of revealing mood, idea, mean- ing, or characters’ actions. Some stories have no particularly significant setting. It is entirely possible to envision a story in which two characters speak to each other about a conflict between them and little or no men- tion is made of the time or place they inhabit. If, however, a shift in setting would make a serious difference to our understanding of a story, then the setting is probably an important element in the work. Consider how different “Bartleby, the Scrivener” would be if it were set in a relaxed, pleasant, sunny town in the South rather than in the grinding, limiting materialism of Wall Street. Bartleby’s withdrawal from life would be less comprehensible and meaningful in such a setting. The setting is integral to that story. The following three stories — Ernest Hemingway’s “Soldier’s Home,” Fay Weldon’s “IND AFF, or Out of Love in Sarajevo,” and A. S. Byatt’s “Baglady” — include settings that serve to shape their meanings.

Ernest Hemingway (1899–1961)

In 1918, a year after graduating from high school in Oak Park, Illinois, Ernest Hemingway volunteered as an ambulance driver in World War I. At the Italian front, he was seriously wounded. This experience haunted him and many of the characters in his short stories and novels. In Our Time (1925) is a collection of short stories, including “Soldier’s Home,” that reflect some of Hemingway’s own attempts to readjust to life back

hemingway / soldier’s home 117

home after the war. The Sun Also Rises (1926), A Farewell to Arms (1929), and For Whom the Bell Tolls (1940) are also about war and its impact on people’s lives. Hemingway courted vio- lence all his life in war, the bullring, the box- ing ring, and big-game hunting. When he was sixty-two years old and terminally ill with can- cer, he committed suicide. “Soldier’s Home” takes place in a small town in Oklahoma; the war, however, is never distant from the pro- tagonist’s mind as he struggles to come home again.

Soldier’s Home 1925

Krebs went to the war from a Methodist col- lege in Kansas. There is a picture which shows him among his fraternity brothers, all of them wearing exactly the same height and style col- lar. He enlisted in the Marines in 1917 and did not return to the United States until the second division returned from the Rhine in the summer of 1919. There is a picture which shows him on the Rhine with two German girls and another corporal. Krebs and the corporal look too big for their uniforms. The German girls are not beautiful. The Rhine does not show in the picture. By the time Krebs returned to his home town in Oklahoma the greeting of heroes was over. He came back much too late. The men from the town who had been drafted had all been welcomed elaborately on their return. There had been a great deal of hysteria. Now the reaction had set in. People seemed to think it was rather ridiculous for Krebs to be getting back so late, years after the war was over. At first Krebs, who had been at Belleau Wood, Soissons, the Cham- pagne, St. Mihiel, and in the Argonne° did not want to talk about the war at all. Later he felt the need to talk but no one wanted to hear about it. His town had heard too many atrocity stories to be thrilled by actuali- ties. Krebs found that to be listened to at all he had to lie, and after he had done this twice he, too, had a reaction against the war and against talk- ing about it. A distaste for everything that had happened to him in the war set in because of the lies he had told. All of the times that had been able to make him feel cool and clear inside himself when he thought of them; the times so long back when he had done the one thing, the only

Belleau Wood . . . Argonne: Sites of battles in World War I in which American troops were instrumental in pushing back the Germans.

Courtesy of the Ernest Hemingway Photographic Collection, John Fitzgerald Kennedy Library, Boston.

118 setting

5

10

thing for a man to do, easily and naturally, when he might have done something else, now lost their cool, valuable quality and then were lost themselves. His lies were quite unimportant lies and consisted in attributing to himself things other men had seen, done, or heard of, and stating as facts certain apocryphal incidents familiar to all soldiers. Even his lies were not sensational at the pool room. His acquaintances, who had heard detailed accounts of German women found chained to machine guns in the Argonne forest and who could not comprehend, or were barred by their patriotism from interest in, any German machine gunners who were not chained, were not thrilled by his stories. Krebs acquired the nausea in regard to experience that is the result of untruth or exaggeration, and when he occasionally met another man who had really been a soldier and they talked a few minutes in the dress- ing room at a dance he fell into the easy pose of the old soldier among other soldiers: that he had been badly, sickeningly frightened all the time. In this way he lost everything. During this time, it was late summer, he was sleeping late in bed, getting up to walk down town to the library to get a book, eating lunch at home, reading on the front porch until he became bored, and then walking down through the town to spend the hottest hours of the day in the cool dark of the pool room. He loved to play pool. In the evening he practiced on his clarinet, strolled down town, read, and went to bed. He was still a hero to his two young sisters. His mother would have given him breakfast in bed if he had wanted it. She often came in when he was in bed and asked him to tell her about the war, but her attention always wandered. His father was noncommittal. Before Krebs went away to the war he had never been allowed to drive the family motor car. His father was in the real estate business and always wanted the car to be at his command when he required it to take clients out into the country to show them a piece of farm property. The car always stood outside the First National Bank building where his father had an office on the second floor. Now, after the war, it was still the same car. Nothing was changed in the town except that the young girls had grown up. But they lived in such a complicated world of already defined alliances and shifting feuds that Krebs did not feel the energy or the courage to break into it. He liked to look at them, though. There were so many good-looking young girls. Most of them had their hair cut short. When he went away only little girls wore their hair like that or girls that were fast. They all wore sweaters and shirt waists with round Dutch col- lars. It was a pattern. He liked to look at them from the front porch as they walked on the other side of the street. He liked to watch them walk- ing under the shade of the trees. He liked the round Dutch collars above their sweaters. He liked their silk stockings and flat shoes. He liked their bobbed hair and the way they walked.

hemingway / soldier’s home 119

15

When he was in town their appeal to him was not very strong. He did not like them when he saw them in the Greek’s ice cream parlor. He did not want them themselves really. They were too complicated. There was something else. Vaguely he wanted a girl but he did not want to have to work to get her. He would have liked to have a girl but he did not want to have to spend a long time getting her. He did not want to get into the intrigue and the politics. He did not want to have to do any courting. He did not want to tell any more lies. It wasn’t worth it. He did not want any consequences. He did not want any conse- quences ever again. He wanted to live alone without consequences. Besides he did not really need a girl. The army had taught him that. It was all right to pose as though you had to have a girl. Nearly everybody did that. But it wasn’t true. You did not need a girl. That was the funny thing. First a fellow boasted how girls mean nothing to him, that he never thought of them, that they could not touch him. Then a fellow boasted that he could not get along without girls, that he had to have them all the time, that he could not go to sleep without them. That was all a lie. It was all a lie both ways. You did not need a girl unless you thought about them. He learned that in the army. Then sooner or later you always got one. When you were really ripe for a girl you always got one. You did not have to think about it. Sooner or later it would come. He had learned that in the army. Now he would have liked a girl if she had come to him and not wanted to talk. But here at home it was all too complicated. He knew he could never get through it all again. It was not worth the trouble. That was the thing about French girls and German girls. There was not all this talking. You couldn’t talk much and you did not need to talk. It was simple and you were friends. He thought about France and then he began to think about Germany. On the whole he had liked Germany bet- ter. He did not want to leave Germany. He did not want to come home. Still, he had come home. He sat on the front porch. He liked the girls that were walking along the other side of the street. He liked the look of them much better than the French girls or the Ger- man girls. But the world they were in was not the world he was in. He would like to have one of them. But it was not worth it. They were such a nice pattern. He liked the pattern. It was exciting. But he would not go through all the talking. He did not want one badly enough. He liked to look at them all, though. It was not worth it. Not now when things were getting good again. He sat there on the porch reading a book on the war. It was a history and he was reading about all the engagements he had been in. It was the most interesting reading he had ever done. He wished there were more maps. He looked forward with a good feeling to reading all the really good histories when they would come out with good detail maps. Now he was really learning about the war. He had been a good soldier. That made a difference.

120 setting

20

25

30

35

40

One morning after he had been home about a month his mother came into his bedroom and sat on the bed. She smoothed her apron. “I had a talk with your father last night, Harold,” she said, “and he is willing for you to take the car out in the evenings.” “Yeah?” said Krebs, who was not fully awake. “Take the car out? Yeah?” “Yes. Your father has felt for some time that you should be able to take the car out in the evenings whenever you wished but we only talked it over last night.” “I’ll bet you made him,” Krebs said. “No. It was your father’s suggestion that we talk the matter over.” “Yeah. I’ll bet you made him,” Krebs sat up in bed. “Will you come down to breakfast, Harold?” his mother said. “As soon as I get my clothes on,” Krebs said. His mother went out of the room and he could hear her frying some- thing downstairs while he washed, shaved, and dressed to go down into the dining-room for breakfast. While he was eating breakfast his sister brought in the mail. “Well, Hare,” she said. “You old sleepyhead. What do you ever get up for?” Krebs looked at her. He liked her. She was his best sister. “Have you got the paper?” he asked. She handed him the Kansas City Star and he shucked off its brown wrapper and opened it to the sporting page. He folded the Star open and propped it against the water pitcher with his cereal dish to steady it, so he could read while he ate. “Harold,” his mother stood in the kitchen doorway, “Harold, please don’t muss up the paper. Your father can’t read his Star if it’s been mussed.” “I won’t muss it,” Krebs said. His sister sat down at the table and watched him while he read. “We’re playing indoor over at school this afternoon,” she said. “I’m going to pitch.” “Good,” said Krebs. “How’s the old wing?” “I can pitch better than lots of the boys. I tell them all you taught me. The other girls aren’t much good.” “Yeah?” said Krebs. “I tell them all you’re my beau. Aren’t you my beau, Hare?” “You bet.” “Couldn’t your brother really be your beau just because he’s your brother?” “I don’t know.” “Sure you know. Couldn’t you be my beau, Hare, if I was old enough and if you wanted to?” “Sure. You’re my girl now.” “Am I really your girl?”

hemingway / soldier’s home 121

45

50

55

60

65

70

“Sure.” “Do you love me?” “Uh, huh.” “Will you love me always?” “Sure.” “Will you come over and watch me play indoor?” “Maybe.” “Aw, Hare, you don’t love me. If you loved me, you’d want to come over and watch me play indoor.” Krebs’s mother came into the dining-room from the kitchen. She carried a plate with two fried eggs and some crisp bacon on it and a plate of buckwheat cakes. “You run along, Helen,” she said. “I want to talk to Harold.” She put the eggs and bacon down in front of him and brought in a jug of maple syrup for the buckwheat cakes. Then she sat down across the table from Krebs. “I wish you’d put down the paper a minute, Harold,” she said. Krebs took down the paper and folded it. “Have you decided what you are going to do yet, Harold?” his mother said, taking off her glasses. “No,” said Krebs. “Don’t you think it’s about time?” His mother did not say this in a mean way. She seemed worried. “I hadn’t thought about it,” Krebs said. “God has some work for everyone to do,” his mother said. “There can be no idle hands in His Kingdom.” “I’m not in His Kingdom,” Krebs said. “We are all of us in His Kingdom.” Krebs felt embarrassed and resentful as always. “I’ve worried about you so much, Harold,” his mother went on. “I know the temptations you must have been exposed to. I know how weak men are. I know what your own dear grandfather, my own father, told us about the Civil War and I have prayed for you. I pray for you all day long, Harold.” Krebs looked at the bacon fat hardening on his plate. “Your father is worried, too,” his mother went on. “He thinks you have lost your ambition, that you haven’t got a definite aim in life. Char- ley Simmons, who is just your age, has a good job and is going to be married. The boys are all settling down; they’re all determined to get somewhere; you can see that boys like Charley Simmons are on their way to being really a credit to the community.” Krebs said nothing. “Don’t look that way, Harold,” his mother said. “You know we love you and I want to tell you for your own good how matters stand. Your father does not want to hamper your freedom. He thinks you should be allowed to drive the car. If you want to take some of the nice girls out

122 setting

75

80

85

90

95

riding with you, we are only too pleased. We want you to enjoy yourself. But you are going to have to settle down to work, Harold. Your father doesn’t care what you start in at. All work is honorable as he says. But you’ve got to make a start at something. He asked me to speak to you this morning and then you can stop in and see him at his office.” “Is that all?” Krebs said. “Yes. Don’t you love your mother, dear boy?” “No,” Krebs said. His mother looked at him across the table. Her eyes were shiny. She started crying. “I don’t love anybody,” Krebs said. It wasn’t any good. He couldn’t tell her, he couldn’t make her see it. It was silly to have said it. He had only hurt her. He went over and took hold of her arm. She was crying with her head in her hands. “I didn’t mean it,” he said. “I was just angry at something. I didn’t mean I didn’t love you.” His mother went on crying. Krebs put his arm on her shoulder. “Can’t you believe me, mother?” His mother shook her head. “Please, please, mother. Please believe me.” “All right,” his mother said chokily. She looked up at him. “I believe you, Harold.” Krebs kissed her hair. She put her face up to him. “I’m your mother,” she said. “I held you next to my heart when you were a tiny baby.” Krebs felt sick and vaguely nauseated. “I know, Mummy,” he said. “I’ll try and be a good boy for you.” “Would you kneel and pray with me, Harold?” his mother asked. They knelt down beside the dining-room table and Krebs’s mother prayed. “Now, you pray, Harold,” she said. “I can’t,” Krebs said. “Try, Harold.” “I can’t.” “Do you want me to pray for you?” “Yes.” So his mother prayed for him and then they stood up and Krebs kissed his mother and went out of the house. He had tried so to keep his life from being complicated. Still, none of it had touched him. He had felt sorry for his mother and she had made him lie. He would go to Kansas City and get a job and she would feel all right about it. There would be one more scene maybe before he got away. He would not go down to his father’s office. He would miss that one. He wanted his life to go smoothly. It had just gotten going that way. Well, that was all over now, anyway. He would go over to the schoolyard and watch Helen play indoor baseball.

weldon / ind aff 123

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. The title, “Soldier’s Home,” focuses on the setting. Do you have a clear picture of Krebs’s home? Describe it, filling in missing details from your associations of home, Krebs’s routine, or anything else you can use.

2. What does the photograph of Krebs, the corporal, and the German girls reveal?

3. Belleau Wood, Soissons, the Champagne, St. Mihiel, and the Argonne were the sites of fierce and bloody fighting. What effect have these battles had on Krebs? Why do you think he won’t talk about them to the people at home?

4. Why does Krebs avoid complications and consequences? How has the war changed his attitudes toward work and women? How is his hometown different from Germany and France? What is the conflict in the story?

5. Why do you think Hemingway refers to the protagonist as Krebs rather than Harold? What is the significance of his sister calling him “Hare”?

6. How does Krebs’s mother embody the community’s values? What does Krebs think of those values?

7. What is the resolution to Krebs’s conflict? 8. Comment on the appropriateness of the story’s title. 9. Explain how Krebs’s war experiences are present throughout the

story even though we get no details about them. 10. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Contrast the attitudes toward

patriotism implicit in this story with those in Tim O’Brien’s “How to Tell a True War Story” (p. 318). How do the stories’ settings help to account for the differences between them?

Fay Weldon (b. 1933)

Born in England and raised in New Zealand, Fay Weldon graduated from St. Andrew’s University in Scotland. She wrote advertis- ing copy for various companies and was a propaganda writer for the British Foreign Office before turning to fiction. She has writ- ten novels, short stories, plays, and radio scripts. In 1971 her script for an episode of Upstairs, Downstairs won an award from the Society of Film and Television Arts. She has written more than a score of novels, including The Fat Woman’s Joke (1967), Down Among the Women (1971), Praxis (1978), The Life and Loves © Jerry Bauer.

124 setting

5

of a She-Devil (1983), Life Force (1991), The Bulgari Connection (2001), She May Not Leave (2005), and The Stepmother’s Diary (2008), and an equal number of plays and scripts. Her collections of short stories include Moon over Minneapolis (1992), Wicked Women (American edition, 1997), A Hard Time to Be a Father (1998), and Nothing to Wear and Nowhere to Hide (2002). Weldon often uses ironic humor to portray carefully drawn female characters coming to terms with the facts of their lives.

IND AFF 1988 or Out of Love in Sarajevo

This is a sad story. It has to be. It rained in Sarajevo, and we had expected fine weather. The rain filled up Sarajevo’s pride, two footprints set into a pavement which mark the spot where the young assassin Princip stood to shoot the Archduke Franz Ferdinand and his wife. (Don’t forget his wife: everyone forgets his wife, the archduchess.) That was in the summer of 1914. Sarajevo is a pretty town, Balkan style, mountain-rimmed. A broad, swift, shallow river runs through its center, carrying the mountain snow away, arched by many bridges. The one nearest the two footprints has been named the Princip Bridge. The young man is a hero in these parts. Not only does he bring in the tourists — look, look, the spot, the very spot! — but by his action, as everyone knows, he lit a spark which fired the timber which caused World War I which crumbled the Austro-Hungarian Empire, the crumbling of which made modern Yugoslavia possible. Forty million dead (or was it thirty?) but who cares? So long as he loved his country. The river, they say, can run so shallow in the summer it’s known derisively as “the wet road.” Today, from what I could see through the sheets of falling rain, it seemed full enough. Yugoslavian streets are always busy — no one stays home if they can help it (thus can an indecent shortage of housing space create a sociable nation) and it seemed as if by common consent a shield of bobbing umbrellas had been erected two meters high to keep the rain off the streets. It just hadn’t worked around Princip’s corner. “Come all this way,” said Peter, who was a professor of classical his- tory, “and you can’t even see the footprints properly, just two undistin- guished puddles.” Ah, but I loved him. I shivered for his disappointment. He was supervising my thesis on varying concepts of morality and duty in the early Greek States as evidenced in their poetry and drama. I was dependent upon him for my academic future. He said I had a good mind but not a first-class mind and somehow I didn’t take it as an insult. I had a feeling first-class minds weren’t all that good in bed. Sarajevo is in Bosnia, in the center of Yugoslavia, that group- ing of unlikely states, that distillation of languages into the phonetic

weldon / ind aff 125

reasonableness of Serbo-Croatian. We’d sheltered from the rain in an ancient mosque in Serbian Belgrade; done the same in a monastery in Croatia; now we spent a wet couple of days in Sarajevo beneath other people’s umbrellas. We planned to go on to Montenegro, on the coast, where the fish and the artists come from, to swim and lie in the sun, and recover from the exhaustion caused by the sexual and moral torments of the last year. It couldn’t possibly go on raining forever. Could it? Satel- lite pictures showed black clouds swishing gently all over Europe, over the Balkans, into Asia — practically all the way from Moscow to London, in fact. It wasn’t that Peter and myself were being singled out. No. It was raining on his wife, too, back in Cambridge.

Peter was trying to decide, as he had been for the past year, between his wife and myself as his permanent life partner. To this end we had gone away, off the beaten track, for a holiday; if not with his wife’s blessing, at least with her knowledge. Were we really, truly suited? We had to be sure, you see, that this was more than just any old professor-student romance; that it was the Real Thing, because the longer the indecision went on the longer Mrs. Piper would be left dangling in uncertainty and distress. They had been married for twenty-four years; they had stopped loving each other a long time ago, of course — but there would be a fearful per- sonal and practical upheaval entailed if he decided to leave permanently and shack up, as he put it, with me. Which I certainly wanted him to do. I loved him. And so far I was winning hands down. It didn’t seem much of a contest at all, in fact. I’d been cool and thin and informed on the seat next to him in a Zagreb theater (Mrs. Piper was sweaty and only liked telly); was now eager and anxious for social and political instruc- tion in Sarajevo (Mrs. Piper spat in the face of knowledge, he’d once told me); and planned to be lissome (and I thought topless but I hadn’t quite decided: this might be the area where the age difference showed) while I splashed and shrieked like a bathing belle in the shallows of the Mon- tenegrin coast. (Mrs. Piper was a swimming coach: I imagined she smelt permanently of chlorine.) In fact so far as I could see, it was no contest at all between his wife and myself. But Peter liked to luxuriate in guilt and indecision. And I loved him with an inordinate affection. Princip’s prints are a meter apart, placed as a modern cop on a train- ing shoot-out would place his feet — the left in front at a slight outward angle, the right behind, facing forward. There seemed great energy focused here. Both hands on the gun, run, stop, plant the feet, aim, fire! I could see the footprints well enough, in spite of Peter’s complaint. They were clear enough to me.

We went to a restaurant for lunch, since it was too wet to do what we loved to do: that is, buy bread, cheese, sausage, wine, and go off some- where in our hired car, into the woods or the hills, and picnic and make

126 setting

10

15

20

love. It was a private restaurant — Yugoslavia went over to a mixed capi- talist-communist economy years back, so you get either the best or worst of both systems, depending on your mood — that is to say, we knew we would pay more but be given a choice. We chose the wild boar. “Probably ordinary pork soaked in red cabbage water to darken it,” said Peter. He was not in a good mood. Cucumber salad was served first. “Everything in this country comes with cucumber salad,” com- plained Peter. I noticed I had become used to his complaining. I sup- posed that when you had been married a little you simply wouldn’t hear it. He was forty-six and I was twenty-five. “They grow a lot of cucumber,” I said. “If they can grow cucumbers,” Peter then asked, “why can’t they grow mange-tout°?” It seemed a why-can’t-they-eat-cake sort of argument to me, but not knowing enough about horticulture not to be outflanked if I debated the point, I moved the subject on to safer ground. “I suppose Princip’s action couldn’t really have started World War I,” I remarked. “Otherwise, what a thing to have on your conscience! One little shot and the deaths of thirty million.” “Forty,” he corrected me. Though how they reckon these things and get them right I can’t imagine. “Of course he didn’t start the war. That’s just a simple tale to keep the children quiet. It takes more than an assas- sination to start a war. What happened was that the buildup of political and economic tensions in the Balkans was such that it had to find some release.” “So it was merely the shot that lit the spark that fired the timber that started the war, et cetera?” “Quite,” he said. “World War I would have had to have started sooner or later.” “A bit later or a bit sooner,” I said, “might have made the difference of a million or so; if it was you on the battlefield in the mud and the rain you’d notice; exactly when they fired the starting-pistol; exactly when they blew the final whistle. Is that what they do when a war ends; blow a whistle? So that everyone just comes in from the trenches.” But he wasn’t listening. He was parting the flesh of the soft collapsed orangey-red pepper which sat in the middle of his cucumber salad; he was carefully extracting the pips. His nan had once told him they could never be digested, would stick inside and do terrible damage. I loved him for his dexterity and patience with his knife and fork. I’d finished my salad yonks ago, pips and all. I was hungry. I wanted my wild boar. Peter might be forty-six, but he was six foot two and grizzled and muscled with it, in a dark-eyed, intelligent, broad-jawed kind of way. I adored him. I loved to be seen with him. “Muscular academic, not weedy academic” as my younger sister Clare once said. “Muscular academic is

mange-tout: A sugar pea or bean (French).

weldon / ind aff 127

25

just a generally superior human being: everything works well from the brain to the toes. Weedy academic is when there isn’t enough vital energy in the person, and the brain drains all the strength from the other parts.” Well, Clare should know. Clare is only twenty-three, but of the superior human variety kind herself, vividly pretty, bright and competent — some- where behind a heavy curtain of vibrant red hair, which she only parts for effect. She had her first degree at twenty. Now she’s married to a Har- vard professor of economics seconded to the United Nations. She can even cook. I gave up competing yonks ago. Though she too is capable of self-deception. I would say her husband was definitely of the weedy aca- demic rather than the muscular academic type. And they have to live in Brussels. The archduke’s chauffeur had lost his way, and was parked on the corner trying to recover his nerve when Princip came running out of a café, planted his feet, aimed, and fired. Princip was nineteen — too young to hang. But they sent him to prison for life and, since he had TB to begin with, he only lasted three years. He died in 1918, in an Austrian prison. Or perhaps it was more than TB: perhaps they gave him a hard time, not learning till later, when the Austro-Hungarian Empire collapsed, that he was a hero. Poor Princip, too young to die — like so many other millions. Dying for love of a country. “I love you,” I said to Peter, my living man, progenitor already of three children by his chlorinated, swimming-coach wife. “How much do you love me?” “Inordinately! I love you with inordinate affection.” It was a joke between us. Ind Aff! “Inordinate affection is a sin,” he’d told me. “According to the Wes- leyans. John Wesley° himself worried about it to such a degree he ended up abbreviating it in his diaries, Ind Aff. He maintained that what he felt for young Sophy, the eighteen-year-old in his congregation, was not Ind Aff, which bears the spirit away from God towards the flesh: he insisted that what he felt was a pure and spiritual, if passionate, concern for her soul.” Peter said now, as we waited for our wild boar, and he picked over his pepper, “Your Ind Aff is my wife’s sorrow, that’s the trouble.” He wanted, I knew, one of the long half-wrangles, half soul-sharings that we could keep going for hours, and led to piercing pains in the heart which could only be made better in bed. But our bedroom at the Hotel Europa was small and dark and looked out into the well of the building — a punishment room if ever there was one. (Reception staff did sometimes take against us.) When Peter had tried to change it in his quasi-Serbo-Croatian, they’d shrugged their Bosnian shoulders and pretended not to understand, so we’d decided to put up with it. I did not fancy pushing hard single beds together — it seemed easier not to have the pain in the heart in the first

John Wesley (1703–1791): English religious leader and founder of Methodism.

128 setting

30

35

place. “Look,” I said, “this holiday is supposed to be just the two of us, not Mrs. Piper as well. Shall we talk about something else?”

Do not think that the archduke’s chauffeur was merely careless, an ineffi- cient chauffeur, when he took the wrong turning. He was, I imagine, in a state of shock, fright, and confusion. There had been two previous attempts on the archduke’s life since the cavalcade had entered town. The first was a bomb which got the car in front and killed its driver. The second was a shot fired by none other than young Princip, which had missed. Princip had vanished into the crowd and gone to sit down in a corner café and ordered coffee to calm his nerves. I expect his hand trembled at the best of times — he did have TB. (Not the best choice of assassin, but no doubt those who arrange these things have to make do with what they can get.) The archduke’s chauffeur panicked, took the wrong road, realized what he’d done, and stopped to await rescue and instructions just outside the café where Princip sat drinking his coffee. “What shall we talk about?” asked Peter, in even less of a good mood. “The collapse of the Austro-Hungarian Empire?” I suggested. “How does an empire collapse? Is there no money to pay the military or the police, so everyone goes home? Or what?” He liked to be asked questions. “The Hungro-Austrarian Empire,” said Peter to me, “didn’t so much collapse as fail to exist any more. War destroys social organizations. The same thing happened after World War II. There being no organized bod- ies left between Moscow and London — and for London read Washing- ton, then as now — it was left to these two to put in their own puppet governments. Yalta, 1944. It’s taken the best part of forty-five years for nations of West and East Europe to remember who they are.” “Austro-Hungarian,” I said, “not Hungro-Austrarian.” “I didn’t say Hungro-Austrarian,” he said. “You did,” I said. “Didn’t,” he said. “What the hell are they doing about our wild boar? Are they out in the hills shooting it?” My sister Clare had been surprisingly understanding about Peter. When I worried about him being older, she pooh-poohed it; when I wor- ried about him being married, she said, “Just go for it, sister. If you can unhinge a marriage, it’s ripe for unhinging, it would happen sooner or later, it might as well be you. See a catch, go ahead and catch! Go for it!” Princip saw the archduke’s car parked outside, and went for it. Sec- ond chances are rare in life: they must be responded to. Except perhaps his second chance was missing in the first place? Should he have taken his cue from fate, and just sat and finished his coffee, and gone home to his mother? But what’s a man to do when he loves his country? Fate delivered the archduke into his hands: how could he resist it? A parked car, a uniformed and medaled chest, the persecutor of his country — how could Princip not, believing God to be on his side, but see this as His intervention, push his coffee aside and leap to his feet?

weldon / ind aff 129

40

45

Two waiters stood idly by and watched us waiting for our wild boar. One was young and handsome in a mountainous Bosnian way — flashing eyes, hooked nose, luxuriant black hair, sensuous mouth. He was about my age. He smiled. His teeth were even and white. I smiled back, and instead of the pain in the heart I’d become accustomed to as an erotic sensation, now felt, quite violently, an associated yet different pang which got my lower stomach. The true, the real pain of Ind Aff! “Fancy him?” asked Peter. “No,” I said. “I just thought if I smiled the wild boar might come quicker.” The other waiter was older and gentler: his eyes were soft and kind. I thought he looked at me reproachfully. I could see why. In a world which for once, after centuries of savagery, was finally full of young men, unslaughtered, what was I doing with this man with thinning hair? “What are you thinking of?” Professor Piper asked me. He liked to be in my head. “How much I love you,” I said automatically, and was finally aware how much I lied. “And about the archduke’s assassination,” I went on, to cover the kind of tremble in my head as I came to my senses, “and let’s not forget his wife, she died too — how can you say World War I would have happened anyway. If Princip hadn’t shot the archduke, something else, some undisclosed, unsuspected variable, might have come along and defused the whole political/military situation, and neither World War I nor II ever happened. We’ll just never know, will we?” I had my passport and my travelers’ checks with me. (Peter felt it was less confusing if we each paid our own way.) I stood up, and took my raincoat from the peg. “Where are you going?” he asked, startled. “Home,” I said. I kissed the top of his head, where it was balding. It smelt gently of chlorine, which may have come from thinking about his wife so much, but might merely have been that he’d taken a shower that morning. (“The water all over Yugoslavia, though safe to drink, is unusually chlorinated”: Guide Book.) As I left to catch a taxi to the air- port the younger of the two waiters emerged from the kitchen with two piled plates of roasted wild boar, potatoes duchesse, and stewed peppers. (“Yugoslavian diet is unusually rich in proteins and fats”: Guide Book.) I could tell from the glisten of oil that the food was no longer hot, and I was not tempted to stay, hungry though I was. Thus fate — or was it Bos- nian willfulness? — confirmed the wisdom of my intent. And that was how I fell out of love with my professor, in Sarajevo, a city to which I am grateful to this day, though I never got to see very much of it, because of the rain. It was a silly sad thing to do, in the first place, to confuse mere pass- ing academic ambition with love: to try and outdo my sister Clare. (Pro- fessor Piper was spiteful, as it happened, and did his best to have my thesis refused, but I went to appeal, which he never thought I’d dare, and

130 setting

won. I had a first-class mind after all.) A silly sad episode, which I regret. As silly and sad as Princip, poor young man, with his feverish mind, his bright tubercular cheeks, and his inordinate affection for his country, pushing aside his cup of coffee, leaping to his feet, taking his gun in both hands, planting his feet, aiming, and firing — one, two, three shots — and starting World War I. The first one missed, the second got the wife (never forget the wife), and the third got the archduke and a whole generation, and their children, and their children’s children, and on and on forever. If he’d just hung on a bit, there in Sarajevo, that June day, he might have come to his senses. People do, sometimes quite quickly.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Do you agree with Weldon’s first line, “This is a sad story”? Explain why or why not.

2. How does the rain establish the mood for the story in the first five paragraphs?

3. Characterize Peter. What details concerning him reveal his personality?

4. Describe the narrator’s relationship with Peter. How do you think he regards her? Why is she attracted to him?

5. Why is Sarajevo important for the story’s setting? What is the effect of having the story of Princip’s assassination of the Archduke Franz Ferdinand and his wife woven through the plot?

6. Describe Mrs. Piper. Though she doesn’t appear in the story, she does have an important role. What do you think her role is?

7. What is “Ind Aff ”? Why is it an important element of this story? 8. What is the significance of the two waiters (paras. 38–41)? How do

they af fect the narrator? 9. Why does the narrator decide to go home (para. 46)? Do you think

she makes a reasoned or an impulsive decision? Explain why you think so.

A. S. Byatt (b. 1936)

A(ntonia) S(usan) Byatt was born in Yorkshire, England, and studied at Cambridge University, Bryn Mawr College, and Oxford University. A major fi ction writer and essayist, Byatt taught at University College, London, until her early retirement in 1983. She regularly contributes her critical expertise to London newspapers as well as to BBC radio and television. Among her novels are The Virgin in the Garden (1978), Still Life

byatt / baglady 131

5

(1985), Possession (winner of the Booker Prize, 1990), Babel Tower (1996), Biogra- pher’s Tale (2000), and The Children’s Book (2009). Her short story collections include Sugar and Other Stories (1987), The Matisse Stories (1993), The Djinn in the Nightingale’s Eye (1994), Elementals: Stories of Fire and Ice (1998), from which “Baglady” is reprinted, and Little Black Book of Stories (2003).

Baglady 1998

“And then,” says Lady Scroop brightly, “the Company will send cars to take us all to the Good Fortune Shopping Mall. I understand that it is a real Aladdin’s Cave of Treasures, where we can all fi nd prezzies for everyone and all sorts of little indulgences for ourselves, and in per- fect safety: the entrances to the Mall are under constant surveillance, sad, but necessary in these diffi cult days.” Daphne Gulver-Robinson looks round the breakfast table. It is beautifully laid with peach-coloured damask, bronze cutlery, and little fl oating gardens in lacquered dishes of waxy fl owers that emit gusts of perfume. The directors of Doolittle Wind Quietus are in a meeting. Their wives are breakfasting together under the eye of Lady Scroop, the chairman’s wife. It is Lord Scroop’s policy to encourage his directors to travel with their wives. Especially in the Far East, and especially since the fi gures about AIDS began to be drawn to his attention. Most of the wives are elegant, with silk suits and silky legs and exquisitely cut hair. They chat mutedly, swapping recipes for chutney and horror stories about nannies, staring out of the amber glass wall of the Precious Jade Hotel at the dimpling sea. Daphne Gulver-Robinson is older than most of them, and dowdier, although her husband, Rollo, has less power than most of the other directors. She has tried to make herself attractive for this jaunt and has lost ten pounds and had her hands manicured; but now she sees the other ladies, she knows it is not enough. Her style is seated tweed, and stout shoes, and bird’s- nest hair. “You don’t want me on this trip,” she said to Rollo when told about it. “I’d better stay and mind the donkeys and the geese and the fantails as usual, and you can have a good time, as usual, in those exotic places.” “Of course I don’t want you,” said Rollo. “That is, of course I want you, but I do know you’re happier with the geese and the donkeys and pigs and things. But Scroop will think it’s very odd, I’m very odd, if you don’t come. He gets bees in his bonnet. You’ll like the shopping; the

Courtesy of Michael Trevillion.

132 setting

10

ladies do a lot of shopping, I believe. You might like the other wives,” he fi nished, not hopefully. “I didn’t like boarding-school,” Daphne said. “I don’t see what that has to do with it,” Rollo said. There is a lot Rollo doesn’t see. Doesn’t want to see and doesn’t see. Lady Scroop tells them they may scatter in the Mall as much as they like as long as they are all back at the front entrance at noon precisely. “We have all packed our bags, I hope,” she says, “though I have left time on the schedule for adjustments to make space for any goodies we may fi nd. And then there will be a delicious lunch at the Pink Pearl Café and then we leave at two-forty-fi ve sharp for the airport and on to Sydney.” The ladies pack into the cars. Daphne Gulver-Robinson is next to the driver of her Daimler, a place of both comfort and isolation. They swoop silently through crowded streets, isolated by bullet-proof glass from the smells and sounds of the Orient. The Mall is enormous and not beautiful. Some of the ladies have been in post-modern pink and peppermint Malls in San Diego, some have been in snug, glittering underground tunnels in Canadian winters, some have shopped in crystal palaces in desert land- scapes, with tinkling fountains and splashing streams. The Good Fortune Shopping Mall resembles an army barracks or a prison block, but it is not for the outside they have come, and they hasten to trip inside, like hens looking for worms, jerking and clucking, Daphne Gulver-Robinson thinks malevolently, as none of them waits for her. She synchronizes her watch with the driver, and goes in alone, between the sleepy soldiers with machine-guns and the uniformed police with their revolvers and little sticks. Further away, along the walls of the Mall, are little groups and gangs of human fl otsam and jetsam, gathered with bags and bottles around little fi res of cowdung or cardboard. There is a no-man’s-land, swept clean, between them and the police. She is not sure she likes shopping. She looks at her watch, and won- ders how she will fi ll the two hours before the rendezvous. She walks rather quickly past rows of square shop-fronts, glittering with gilt and silver, shining with pearls and opals, shimmering with lacquer and silk. Puppets and shadow-puppets mop and mow, paperbirds hop on threads, paper dragons and monstrous goldfi sh gape and dangle. She covers the fi rst fl oor, or one rectangular arm of the fi rst fl oor, ascends a fl ight of stairs and fi nds herself on another fl oor, more or less the same, except for a few windows full of sober suiting, run of American-style T-shirts, an area of bonsai trees. She stops to look at the trees, remembering her gar- den, and thinks of buying a particularly shapely cherry. But how could it go to Sydney, how return to Norfolk, would it even pass customs? She has slowed down now and starts looking. She comes to a corner, gets into a lift, goes up, gets out, fi nds herself on a higher, sunnier, emp- tier fl oor. There are fewer shoppers. She walks along one whole “street” where she is the only shopper, and is taken by a display of embroi- dered silk cushion-covers. She goes in, and turns over a heap of about a

byatt / baglady 133

15

hundred, quick, quick, chrysanthemums, cranes, peach-blossom, blue- tits, mountain tops. She buys a cover with a circle of embroidered fi sh, red and gold and copper, because it is the only one of its kind, perhaps a rarity. When she looks in her shopping bag, she cannot fi nd her camera, although she is sure it was there when she set out. She buys a jade egg on the next fl oor, and some lacquered chopsticks, and a mask with a white furious face for her student daughter. She is annoyed to see a whole win- dow full of the rare fi shes, better embroidered than the one in the bag. She follows a sign saying CAFÉ but cannot fi nd the café, though she trots on, faster now. She does fi nd a ladies’ room, with cells so small they are hard to squeeze into. She restores her make-up there: she looks hot and blowzy. Her lipstick has bled into the soft skin round her mouth. Hair- pins have sprung out. Her nose and eyelids shine. She looks at her watch, and thinks she should be making her way back to the entrance. Time has passed at surprising speed. Signs saying EXIT appear with great frequency and lead to fi re-escape- like stairways and lifts, which debouch only in identical streets of boxed shopfronts. They are designed, she begins to think, to keep you inside, to direct you past even more shops, in search of a hidden, deliberately elu- sive way out. She runs a little, trotting quicker, toiling up concrete stair- ways, clutching her shopping. On one of these stairways a heel breaks off one of her smart shoes. After a moment she takes off both, and puts them in her shopping bag. She hobbles on, on the concrete, sweating and panting. She dare not look at her watch, and then does. The time of the rendezvous is well past. She thinks she might call the hotel, opens her handbag, and fi nds that her purse and credit cards have mysteriously disappeared. There is nowhere to sit down: she stands in the Mall, going through and through her handbag, long after it is clear that the things have vanished. Other things, dislodged, have to be retrieved from the dusty ground. Her fountain-pen has gone too, Rollo’s present for their twenti- eth wedding anniversary. She begins to run quite fast, so that huge holes spread in the soles of her stockings, which in the end split, and begin to work their way over her feet and up her legs in wrinkles like fl aking skin. She looks at her watch; the packing-time and the “delicious lunch” are over: it is almost time for the airport car. Her bladder is bursting, but she must go on, and must go down, the entrance is down. It is in this way that she discovers that the Good Fortune Mall extends maybe as far into the earth as into the sky, excavated identical caverns of shopfronts, jade, gold, silver, silk, lacquer, watches, suiting, bonsai trees and masks and puppets. Lifts that say they are going down go only up. Stairwells are windowless: ground level cannot be found. The plane has now taken off with or without the directors and ladies of Doo- little Wind Quietus. She takes time out in another concrete and stainless- steel lavatory cubicle, and then looks at the watch, whose face has become a whirl of terror. Only now it is merely a compressed circle of pink skin,

134 setting

20

25

shiny with sweat. Her watch, too, has gone. She utters faint little moaning sounds, and then an experimental scream. No one appears to hear or see her, neither strolling shoppers, deafened by Walkmans or by propriety, or by fear of the strange, nor shopkeepers, watchful in their cells. Nevertheless, screaming helps. She screams again, and then screams and screams into the thick, bustling silence. A man in a brown overall brings a policeman in a reinforced hat, with a gun and a stick. “Help me,” says Daphne. “I am an English lady, I have been robbed, I must get home.” “Papers,” says the policeman. She looks in the back pocket of her handbag. Her passport, too, has gone. There is nothing. “Stolen. All stolen,” she says. “People like you,” says the policeman, “not allowed in here.” She sees herself with his eyes, a baglady, dirty, unkempt, with a bag full of somebody’s shopping, a tattered battery-hen. “My husband will come and look for me,” she tells the policeman. If she waits, if she stays in the Mall, he will, she thinks. He must. She sees herself sitting with the fl otsam and jetsam beyond the swept no- man’s-land outside. “I’m not moving,” she says, and sits down heavily. She has to stay in the Mall. The policeman prods her with his little stick. “Move, please.” It is more comfortable sitting down. “I shall stay here for ever if necessary,” she says. She cannot imagine anyone coming. She cannot imagine getting out the Good Fortune Mall.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain whether you think Daphne Gulver-Robinson is a sympathetic character.

2. Describe the antagonist. What is the confl ict? Is it resolved? 3. Can Lady Scroop, Rollo, and the policeman be accurately labeled as

stock characters? 4. How do your feelings about Daphne Gulver-Robinson develop over

the course of the story? 5. Why do you suppose Byatt names the shopping center Good For-

tune Mall? 6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Explain how “Baglady” and

Stephen Crane’s “The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky” (p. 209) both explore large cultural issues in their plots.

135

It is not necessary to portray many characters. The center of gravity should be in two persons: him and her.

— ANTON CHEKHOV

Because one of the pleasures of reading fiction consists of seeing the world through someone else’s eyes, it is easy to overlook the eyes that control our view of the plot, characters, and setting. Point of view refers to who tells us the story and how it is told. What we know and how we feel about the events in a story are shaped by the author’s choice of a point of view. The teller of a story, the narrator, inevitably affects our understanding of the characters’ actions by filtering what is told through his or her own perspective. The narrator should not be confused with the author who has created the narrative voice because the two are usually distinct (more on this point later). If the narrative voice is changed, the story will change. Consider, for example, how different “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85) would be if Melville had chosen to tell the story from Bartleby’s point of view instead of the lawyer’s. With Bartleby as narrator, much of the mystery concern- ing his behavior would be lost. The peculiar force of his saying “I would prefer not to” would be lessened amid all the other things he would have to say as narrator. Moreover, the lawyer’s reaction — puzzled, upset, out- raged, and finally sympathetic to Bartleby — would be lost too. It would be entirely possible, of course, to write a story from Bartleby’s point of view, but it would not be the story Melville wrote.

5 Point of View

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 136 point of view

The possible ways of telling a story are many, and more than one point of view can be worked into a single story. However, the various points of view that storytellers draw on can be conveniently grouped into two broad categories: (1) the third-person narrator and (2) the first- person narrator. The third-person narrator uses he, she, or they to tell the story and does not participate in the action. The first-person narrator uses I and is a major or minor participant in the action. A second-person narrator, you, is possible but rarely used because of the awkwardness in thrusting the reader into the story, as in “You are minding your own business on a park bench when a drunk steps out of the bushes and demands your lunch bag.” Let’s look now at the most important and most often used varia- tions within first- and third-person narrations.

THIRD-PERSON NARR ATOR (Nonpart icipant ) 1. Omniscient (the narrator takes us inside the character[s]) 2. Limited omniscient (the narrator takes us inside one or two characters) 3. Objective (the narrator is outside the character[s])

No type of third-person narrator appears as a character in a story. The omniscient narrator is all-knowing. From this point of view, the narrator can move from place to place and pass back and forth through time, slipping into and out of characters as no human being possibly could in real life. This narrator can report the characters’ thoughts and feelings as well as what they say and do. In the excerpt from Tarzan of the Apes (p. 46), Burroughs’s narrator tells us about events concern- ing Terkoz in another part of the jungle that long preceded the battle between Terkoz and Tarzan. We also learn Tarzan’s and Jane’s inner thoughts and emotions during the episode. And Burroughs’s narrator describes Terkoz as “an arrant coward” and a bully, thereby evaluat- ing the character for the reader. This kind of intrusion is called edito- rial omniscience. In contrast, narration that allows characters’ actions and thoughts to speak for themselves is known as neutral omniscience. Most modern writers use neutral omniscience so that readers can reach their own conclusions. The limited omniscient narrator is much more confined than the omni- scient narrator. With limited omniscience the author very often restricts the narrator to the single perspective of either a major or a minor character. Sometimes a narrator can see into more than one character, particularly in a longer work that focuses, for example, on two characters alternately from one chapter to the next. Short stories, however, frequently are restricted

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

first-person narrator (participant) 137

by length to a single character’s point of view. The way people, places, and events appear to that character is the way they appear to the reader. The reader has access to the thoughts and feelings of the characters revealed by the narrator, but neither the reader nor the narrator has access to the inner lives of any of the other characters in the story. The events in James Joyce’s “Eveline” (p. 302) are viewed entirely through the protagonist’s eyes. She unifies the story by being present through all the action. In Hemingway’s “Soldier’s Home” (p. 117), a limited omniscient narration is the predominant point of view. Krebs’s thoughts and reac- tion to being home from the war are made available to the reader by the narrator, who tells us that Krebs “felt embarrassed and resentful” or “sick and vaguely nauseated” by the small-town life he has reen- tered. Occasionally, however, Hemingway uses an objective point of view when he dramatizes particularly tense moments in a detached imper- sonal manner between Krebs and his mother. In the following excerpt, Hemingway’s narrator shows us Krebs’s feelings instead of telling us what they are. Krebs’s response to his mother’s concerns is presented without comment. The external details of the scene reveal his inner feelings.

“I’ve worried about you so much, Harold,” his mother went on. “I know the temptations you must have been exposed to. I know how weak men are. I know what your own dear grandfather, my own father, told us about the Civil War and I have prayed for you. I pray for you all day long, Harold.” Krebs looked at the bacon fat hardening on his plate. “Your father is worried, too,” his mother went on. “He thinks you have lost your ambition, that you haven’t got a definite aim in life. Charley Simmons, who is just your age, has a good job and is going to be married. The boys are all settling down; they’re all determined to get somewhere; you can see that boys like Charley Simmons are on their way to being really a credit to the community.” Krebs said nothing. “Don’t look that way, Harold. . . .”

When Krebs looks at the bacon fat, we can see him cooling and harden- ing too. Hemingway does not describe the expression on Krebs’s face, yet we know it is a look that disturbs his mother as she goes on about what she thinks she knows. Krebs and his mother are clearly tense and upset; the de tails, action, and dialogue reveal that without the narrator telling the reader how each character feels.

FIRST-PERSON NARR ATOR (Par t icipant ) 1. Major character 2. Minor character

138 point of view

With a first-person narrator, the I presents the point of view of only one character’s consciousness. The reader is restricted to the percep- tions, thoughts, and feelings of that single character. This is Melville’s technique with the lawyer in “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85). Everything learned about the characters, action, and plot comes from the unnamed lawyer. Bartleby remains a mystery because we are limited to what the lawyer knows and reports. The lawyer cannot explain what Bartleby means because he does not entirely know himself. Melville’s use of the first person encourages us to identify with the lawyer’s confused reaction to Bartleby so that we pay attention not only to the scrivener but to the lawyer’s response to him. We are as perplexed as the lawyer and share his effort to make sense of Bartleby. The lawyer is an unreliable narrator, whose interpretation of events is different from the author’s. We cannot entirely accept the lawyer’s assessment of Bartleby because we see that the lawyer’s perceptions are not totally to be trusted. Melville does not expect us, for example, to agree with the lawyer’s suggestion that the solution to Bartleby’s situa- tion might be to “entertain some young gentleman with your conversa- tion” on a trip to Europe. Given Bartleby’s awful silences, this absurd suggestion reveals the lawyer’s superficial understanding. The lawyer’s perceptions frequently do not coincide with those Melville expects his readers to share. Hence the lawyer’s unreliability preserves Bartleby’s mysterious nature while revealing the lawyer’s sensibilities. The point of view is artistically appropriate for Melville’s purposes because the eyes through which we perceive the plot, characters, and setting are also the subject of the story. Narrators can be unreliable for a variety of reasons: They might lack self-knowledge, like Melville’s lawyer, or they might be innocent and inex- perienced, like Ralph Ellison’s young narrator in “Battle Royal” (p. 184). Youthful innocence frequently characterizes a naive narrator such as Mark Twain’s Huck Finn or Holden Caulfield, J. D. Salinger’s twentieth- century version of Huck in The Catcher in the Rye. These narrators lack the sophistication to interpret accurately what they see; they are unreli- able because the reader must go beyond their understanding of events to comprehend the situations described. Huck and Holden describe their respective social environments, but the reader, with more experience, supplies the critical perspective that each boy lacks. In “Battle Royal” that perspective is supplemented by Ellison’s dividing the narration between the young man who experiences events and the mature man who reflects back on those events. Few generalizations can be made about the advantages or disadvan- tages of using a specific point of view. What can be said with confidence, however, is that writers choose a point of view to achieve particular effects because point of view determines what we know about the char- acters and events in a story. We should, therefore, be aware of who is tell- ing the story and whether the narrator sees things clearly and reliably.

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 139

Anton Chekhov (1860–1904)

Born in a small town in Russia, Anton Chekhov gave up the career his medical degree prepared him for in order to devote himself to writing. His concentration on realistic detail in the hundreds of short stories he published has had an impor- tant influence on fiction writing. Mod- ern drama has also been strengthened by his plays, among them these classics: The Seagull (1896), Uncle Vanya (1899), The Three Sisters (1901), and The Cherry Orchard (1904). Chekhov was a close observer of people in ordinary situations who struggle to live their lives as best they can. They are not very often completely successful. Chek- hov’s compassion, however, makes their failures less significant than their humanity. In “The Lady with the Pet Dog,” love is at the heart of a struggle that begins in Yalta, a resort town on the Black Sea.

The Lady with the Pet Dog 1899 TRANSLATED BY AVRAHM YARMOLINSKY (1947)

I

A new person, it was said, had appeared on the esplanade: a lady with a pet dog. Dmitry Dmitrich Gurov, who had spent a fortnight at Yalta and had got used to the place, had also begun to take an interest in new arrivals. As he sat in Vernet’s confectionery shop, he saw, walking on the esplanade, a fair-haired young woman of medium height, wearing a beret; a white Pomeranian was trotting behind her. And afterwards he met her in the public garden and in the square several times a day. She walked alone, always wearing the same beret and always with the white dog; no one knew who she was and everyone called her simply “the lady with the pet dog.”

© Austrian Archives/corbis.

140 point of view

5

“If she is here alone without husband or friends,” Gurov reflected, “it wouldn’t be a bad thing to make her acquaintance.” He was under forty, but he already had a daughter twelve years old, and two sons at school. They had found a wife for him when he was very young, a student in his second year, and by now she seemed half as old again as he. She was a tall, erect woman with dark eyebrows, stately and dignified and, as she said of herself, intellectual. She read a great deal, used simplified spelling in her letters, called her husband, not Dmitry, but Dimitry, while he privately considered her of limited intelligence, narrow-minded, dowdy, was afraid of her, and did not like to be at home. He had begun being unfaithful to her long ago — had been unfaithful to her often and, probably for that reason, almost always spoke ill of women, and when they were talked of in his presence used to call them “the inferior race.” It seemed to him that he had been sufficiently tutored by bitter experience to call them what he pleased, and yet he could not have lived without “the inferior race” for two days together. In the company of men he was bored and ill at ease, he was chilly and uncommunicative with them; but when he was among women he felt free, and knew what to speak to them about and how to comport himself; and even to be silent with them was no strain on him. In his appearance, in his character, in his whole makeup there was something attractive and elusive that dis- posed women in his favor and allured them. He knew that, and some force seemed to draw him to them, too. Oft-repeated and really bitter experience had taught him long ago that with decent people — particularly Moscow people — who are irres- olute and slow to move, every affair which at first seems a light and charming adventure inevitably grows into a whole problem of extreme complexity, and in the end a painful situation is created. But at every new meeting with an interesting woman this lesson of experience seemed to slip from his memory, and he was eager for life, and everything seemed so simple and diverting. One evening while he was dining in the public garden the lady in the beret walked up without haste to take the next table. Her expres- sion, her gait, her dress, and the way she did her hair told him that she belonged to the upper class, that she was married, that she was in Yalta for the first time and alone, and that she was bored there. The stories told of the immorality in Yalta are to a great extent untrue; he despised them, and knew that such stories were made up for the most part by persons who would have been glad to sin themselves if they had had the chance; but when the lady sat down at the next table three paces from him, he recalled these stories of easy conquests, of trips to the moun- tains, and the tempting thought of a swift, fleeting liaison, a romance with an unknown woman of whose very name he was ignorant suddenly took hold of him.

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 141

10

15

He beckoned invitingly to the Pomeranian, and when the dog approached him, shook his finger at it. The Pomeranian growled; Gurov threatened it again. The lady glanced at him and at once dropped her eyes. “He doesn’t bite,” she said and blushed. “May I give him a bone?” he asked; and when she nodded he inquired affably, “Have you been in Yalta long?” “About five days.” “And I am dragging out the second week here.” There was a short silence. “Time passes quickly, and yet it is so dull here!” she said, not look- ing at him. “It’s only the fashion to say it’s dull here. A provincial will live in Belyov or Zhizdra and not be bored, but when he comes here it’s ‘Oh, the dullness! Oh, the dust!’ One would think he came from Granada.” She laughed. Then both continued eating in silence, like strangers, but after dinner they walked together and there sprang up between them the light banter of people who are free and contented, to whom it does not matter where they go or what they talk about. They walked and talked of the strange light on the sea: the water was a soft, warm, lilac color, and there was a golden band of moonlight upon it. They talked of how sultry it was after a hot day. Gurov told her that he was a native of Moscow, that he had studied languages and literature at the university, but had a post in a bank; that at one time he had trained to become an opera singer but had given it up, that he owned two houses in Moscow. And he learned from her that she had grown up in Petersburg, but had lived in S —— since her marriage two years previously, that she was going to stay in Yalta for about another month, and that her husband, who needed a rest, too, might perhaps come to fetch her. She was not certain whether her husband was a member of a Government Board or served on a Zemstvo Council,° and this amused her. And Gurov learned too that her name was Anna Sergeyevna. Afterwards in his room at the hotel he thought about her — and was certain that he would meet her the next day. It was bound to happen. Getting into bed he recalled that she had been a schoolgirl only recently, doing lessons like his own daughter; he thought how much timidity and angularity there was still in her laugh and her manner of talking with a stranger. It must have been the first time in her life that she was alone in a setting in which she was followed, looked at, and spoken to for one secret purpose alone, which she could hardly fail to guess. He thought of her slim, delicate throat, her lovely gray eyes. “There’s something pathetic about her, though,” he thought, and dropped off.

Zemstvo Council: A district council.

142 point of view

20

25

II

A week had passed since they had struck up an acquaintance. It was a holiday. It was close indoors, while in the street the wind whirled the dust about and blew people’s hats off. One was thirsty all day, and Gurov often went into the restaurant and offered Anna Sergeyevna a soft drink or ice cream. One did not know what to do with oneself. In the evening when the wind had abated they went out on the pier to watch the steamer come in. There were a great many people walking about the dock; they had come to welcome someone and they were car- rying bunches of flowers. And two peculiarities of a festive Yalta crowd stood out: the elderly ladies were dressed like young ones and there were many generals. Owing to the choppy sea, the steamer arrived late, after sunset, and it was a long time tacking about before it put in at the pier. Anna Ser- geyevna peered at the steamer and the passengers through her lorgnette as though looking for acquaintances, and whenever she turned to Gurov her eyes were shining. She talked a great deal and asked questions jerk- ily, forgetting the next moment what she had asked; then she lost her lorgnette in the crush. The festive crowd began to disperse; it was now too dark to see peo- ple’s faces; there was no wind any more, but Gurov and Anna Sergeyevna still stood as though waiting to see someone else come off the steamer. Anna Sergeyevna was silent now, and sniffed her flowers without look- ing at Gurov. “The weather has improved this evening,” he said. “Where shall we go now? Shall we drive somewhere?” She did not reply. Then he looked at her intently, and suddenly embraced her and kissed her on the lips, and the moist fragrance of her flowers enveloped him; and at once he looked round him anxiously, wondering if anyone had seen them. “Let us go to your place,” he said softly. And they walked off together rapidly. The air in her room was close and there was the smell of the perfume she had bought at the Japanese shop. Looking at her, Gurov thought: “What encounters life offers!” From the past he preserved the memory of carefree, good-natured women whom love made gay and who were grate- ful to him for the happiness he gave them, however brief it might be; and of women like his wife who loved without sincerity, with too many words, affectedly, hysterically, with an expression that it was not love or passion that engaged them but something more significant; and of two or three others, very beautiful, frigid women, across whose faces would suddenly flit a rapacious expression — an obstinate desire to take from life more than it could give, and these were women no longer young, capricious, unreflecting, domineering, unintelligent, and when Gurov

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 143

30

35

40

grew cold to them their beauty aroused his hatred, and the lace on their lingerie seemed to him to resemble scales. But here there was the timidity, the angularity of inexperienced youth, a feeling of awkwardness; and there was a sense of embarrass- ment, as though someone had suddenly knocked at the door. Anna Ser- geyevna, “the lady with the pet dog,” treated what had happened in a peculiar way, very seriously, as though it were her fall — so it seemed, and this was odd and inappropriate. Her features drooped and faded, and her long hair hung down sadly on either side of her face; she grew pen- sive and her dejected pose was that of a Magdalene in a picture by an old master. “It’s not right,” she said. “You don’t respect me now, you first of all.” There was a watermelon on the table. Gurov cut himself a slice and began eating it without haste. They were silent for at least half an hour. There was something touching about Anna Sergeyevna; she had the purity of a well-bred, naive woman who has seen little of life. The single candle burning on the table barely illumined her face, yet it was clear that she was unhappy. “Why should I stop respecting you, darling?” asked Gurov. “You don’t know what you’re saying.” “God forgive me,” she said, and her eyes filled with tears. “It’s terrible.” “It’s as though you were trying to exonerate yourself.” “How can I exonerate myself? No. I am a bad, low woman; I despise myself and I have no thought of exonerating myself. It’s not my husband but myself I have deceived. And not only just now; I have been deceiving myself for a long time. My husband may be a good, honest man, but he is a flunkey! I don’t know what he does, what his work is, but I know he is a flunkey! I was twenty when I married him. I was tormented by curiosity; I wanted something better. ‘There must be a different sort of life,’ I said to myself. I wanted to live! To live, to live! Curiosity kept eating at me — you don’t understand it, but I swear to God I could no longer control myself; something was going on in me: I could not be held back. I told my hus- band I was ill, and came here. And here I have been walking about as though in a daze, as though I were mad; and now I have become a vulgar, vile woman whom anyone may despise.” Gurov was already bored with her; he was irritated by her naive tone, by her repentance, so unexpected and so out of place; but for the tears in her eyes he might have thought she was joking or play-acting. “I don’t understand, my dear,” he said softly. “What do you want?” She hid her face on his breast and pressed close to him. “Believe me, believe me, I beg you,” she said, “I love honesty and purity, and sin is loathsome to me; I don’t know what I’m doing. Simple people say, ‘The Evil One has led me astray.’ And I may say of myself now that the Evil One has led me astray.” “Quiet, quiet,” he murmured.

144 point of view

45

50

He looked into her fixed, frightened eyes, kissed her, spoke to her softly and affectionately, and by degrees she calmed down, and her gaiety returned; both began laughing. Afterwards when they went out there was not a soul on the espla- nade. The town with its cypresses looked quite dead, but the sea was still sounding as it broke upon the beach; a single launch was rocking on the waves and on it a lantern was blinking sleepily. They found a cab and drove to Oreanda. “I found out your surname in the hall just now: it was written on the board — von Dideritz,” said Gurov. “Is your husband German?” “No; I believe his grandfather was German, but he is Greek Ortho- dox himself.” At Oreanda they sat on a bench not far from the church, looked down at the sea, and were silent. Yalta was barely visible through the morning mist; white clouds rested motionlessly on the mountaintops. The leaves did not stir on the trees, cicadas twanged, and the monoto- nous muffled sound of the sea that rose from below spoke of the peace, the eternal sleep awaiting us. So it rumbled below when there was no Yalta, no Oreanda here; so it rumbles now, and it will rumble as indiffer- ently and as hollowly when we are no more. And in this constancy, in this complete indifference to the life and death of each of us, there lies, per- haps, a pledge of our eternal salvation, of the unceasing advance of life upon earth, of unceasing movement towards perfection. Sitting beside a young woman who in the dawn seemed so lovely, Gurov, soothed and spellbound by these magical surroundings — the sea, the mountains, the clouds, the wide sky — thought how everything is really beautiful in this world when one reflects: everything except what we think or do ourselves when we forget the higher aims of life and our own human dignity. A man strolled up to them — probably a guard — looked at them and walked away. And this detail, too, seemed so mysterious and beautiful. They saw a steamer arrive from Feodosia, its lights extinguished in the glow of dawn. “There is dew on the grass,” said Anna Sergeyevna, after a silence. “Yes, it’s time to go home.” They returned to the city. Then they met every day at twelve o’clock on the esplanade, lunched and dined together, took walks, admired the sea. She complained that she slept badly, that she had palpitations, asked the same questions, troubled now by jealousy and now by the fear that he did not respect her sufficiently. And often in the square or the public garden, when there was no one near them, he suddenly drew her to him and kissed her pas- sionately. Complete idleness, these kisses in broad daylight exchanged furtively in dread of someone’s seeing them, the heat, the smell of the sea, and the continual flitting before his eyes of idle, well-dressed, well- fed people, worked a complete change in him; he kept telling Anna Ser- geyevna how beautiful she was, how seductive, was urgently passionate;

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 145

55

60

he would not move a step away from her, while she was often pensive and continually pressed him to confess that he did not respect her, did not love her in the least, and saw in her nothing but a common woman. Almost every evening rather late they drove somewhere out of town, to Oreanda or to the waterfall; and the excursion was always a success, the scenery invariably impressed them as beautiful and magnificent. They were expecting her husband, but a letter came from him saying that he had eye-trouble, and begging his wife to return home as soon as possible. Anna Sergeyevna made haste to go. “It’s a good thing I am leaving,” she said to Gurov. “It’s the hand of Fate!” She took a carriage to the railway station, and he went with her. They were driving the whole day. When she had taken her place in the express, and when the second bell had rung, she said, “Let me look at you once more — let me look at you again. Like this.” She was not crying but was so sad that she seemed ill, and her face was quivering. “I shall be thinking of you — remembering you,” she said. “God bless you; be happy. Don’t remember evil against me. We are parting for- ever — it has to be, for we ought never to have met. Well, God bless you.” The train moved off rapidly, its lights soon vanished, and a minute later there was no sound of it, as though everything had conspired to end as quickly as possible that sweet trance, that madness. Left alone on the platform, and gazing into the dark distance, Gurov listened to the twang of the grasshoppers and the hum of the telegraph wires, feeling as though he had just waked up. And he reflected, musing, that there had now been another episode or adventure in his life, and it, too, was at an end, and nothing was left of it but a memory. He was moved, sad, and slightly remorseful: this young woman whom he would never meet again had not been happy with him; he had been warm and affection- ate with her, but yet in his manner, his tone, and his caresses there had been a shade of light irony, the slightly coarse arrogance of a happy male who was, besides, almost twice her age. She had constantly called him kind, exceptional, high-minded; obviously he had seemed to her differ- ent from what he really was, so he had involuntarily deceived her. Here at the station there was already a scent of autumn in the air; it was a chilly evening. “It is time for me to go north, too,” thought Gurov as he left the platform. “High time!”

III

At home in Moscow the winter routine was already established: the stoves were heated, and in the morning it was still dark when the chil- dren were having breakfast and getting ready for school, and the nurse would light the lamp for a short time. There were frosts already. When

146 point of view

the first snow falls, on the first day the sleighs are out, it is pleasant to see the white earth, the white roofs; one draws easy, delicious breaths, and the season brings back the days of one’s youth. The old limes and birches, white with hoar-frost, have a good-natured look; they are closer to one’s heart than cypresses and palms, and near them one no longer wants to think of mountains and the sea. Gurov, a native of Moscow, arrived there on a fine frosty day, and when he put on his fur coat and warm gloves and took a walk along Petrovka, and when on Saturday night he heard the bells ringing, his recent trip and the places he had visited lost all charm for him. Little by little he became immersed in Moscow life, greedily read three news- papers a day, and declared that he did not read the Moscow papers on principle. He already felt a longing for restaurants, clubs, formal dinners, anniversary celebrations, and it flattered him to entertain distinguished lawyers and actors, and to play cards with a professor at the physicians’ club. He could eat a whole portion of meat stewed with pickled cabbage and served in a pan, Moscow style. A month or so would pass and the image of Anna Sergeyevna, it seemed to him, would become misty in his memory, and only from time to time he would dream of her with her touching smile as he dreamed of others. But more than a month went by, winter came into its own, and everything was still clear in his memory as though he had parted from Anna Sergeyevna only yesterday. And his memories glowed more and more vividly. When in the evening stillness the voices of his chil- dren preparing their lessons reached his study, or when he listened to a song or to an organ playing in a restaurant, or when the storm howled in the chimney, suddenly everything would rise up in his memory: what had happened on the pier and the early morning with the mist on the mountains, and the steamer coming from Feodosia, and the kisses. He would pace about his room a long time, remembering and smiling; then his memories passed into reveries, and in his imagination the past would mingle with what was to come. He did not dream of Anna Sergeyevna, but she followed him about everywhere and watched him. When he shut his eyes he saw her before him as though she were there in the flesh; and she seemed to him lovelier, younger, tenderer than she had been, and he imagined himself a finer man than he had been in Yalta. Of evenings she peered out at him from the bookcase, from the fireplace, from the cor- ner — he heard her breathing, the caressing rustle of her clothes. In the street he followed the women with his eyes, looking for someone who resembled her. Already he was tormented by a strong desire to share his memories with someone. But in his home it was impossible to talk of his love, and he had no one to talk to outside; certainly he could not confide in his tenants or in anyone at the bank. And what was there to talk about? He hadn’t loved her then, had he? Had there been anything beautiful, poeti- cal, edifying, or simply interesting in his relations with Anna Sergeyevna?

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 147

65

70

75

And he was forced to talk vaguely of love, of women, and no one guessed what he meant; only his wife would twitch her black eyebrows and say, “The part of a philanderer does not suit you at all, Dimitry.” One evening, coming out of the physicians’ club with an official with whom he had been playing cards, he could not resist saying: “If you only knew what a fascinating woman I became acquainted with at Yalta!” The official got into his sledge and was driving away, but turned suddenly and shouted: “Dmitry Dmitrich!” “What is it?” “You were right this evening: the sturgeon was a bit high.” These words, so commonplace, for some reason moved Gurov to indignation, and struck him as degrading and unclean. What savage manners, what mugs! What stupid nights, what dull, humdrum days! Frenzied gambling, gluttony, drunkenness, continual talk always about the same things! Futile pursuits and conversations always about the same topics take up the better part of one’s time, the better part of one’s strength, and in the end there is left a life clipped and wingless, an absurd mess, and there is no escaping or getting away from it — just as though one were in a madhouse or a prison. Gurov, boiling with indignation, did not sleep all night. And he had a headache all the next day. And the following nights too he slept badly; he sat up in bed, thinking, or paced up and down his room. He was fed up with his children, fed up with the bank; he had no desire to go any- where or to talk of anything. In December during the holidays he prepared to take a trip and told his wife he was going to Petersburg to do what he could for a young friend — and he set off for S —— . What for? He did not know, himself. He wanted to see Anna Sergeyevna and talk with her, to arrange a rendez- vous if possible. He arrived at S —— in the morning, and at the hotel took the best room, in which the floor was covered with gray army cloth, and on the table there was an inkstand, gray with dust and topped by a figure on horseback, its hat in its raised hand and its head broken off. The porter gave him the necessary information: von Dideritz lived in a house of his own on Staro-Goncharnaya Street, not far from the hotel: he was rich and lived well and kept his own horses; everyone in the town knew him. The porter pronounced the name: “Dridiritz.” Without haste Gurov made his way to Staro-Goncharnaya Street and found the house. Directly opposite the house stretched a long gray fence studded with nails. “A fence like that would make one run away,” thought Gurov, look- ing now at the fence, now at the windows of the house. He reflected: this was a holiday, and the husband was apt to be at home. And in any case, it would be tactless to go into the house and dis- turb her. If he were to send her a note, it might fall into her husband’s

148 point of view

80

85

hands, and that might spoil everything. The best thing was to rely on chance. And he kept walking up and down the street and along the fence, waiting for the chance. He saw a beggar go in at the gate and heard the dogs attack him; then an hour later he heard a piano, and the sound came to him faintly and indistinctly. Probably it was Anna Sergeyevna playing. The front door opened suddenly, and an old woman came out, followed by the familiar white Pomeranian. Gurov was on the point of calling to the dog, but his heart began beating violently, and in his excitement he could not remember the Pomeranian’s name. He kept walking up and down, and hated the gray fence more and more, and by now he thought irritably that Anna Sergeyevna had forgot- ten him, and was perhaps already diverting herself with another man, and that that was very natural in a young woman who from morning till night had to look at that damn fence. He went back to his hotel room and sat on the couch for a long while, not knowing what to do, then he had dinner and a long nap. “How stupid and annoying all this is!” he thought when he woke and looked at the dark windows: it was already evening. “Here I’ve had a good sleep for some reason. What am I going to do at night?” He sat on the bed, which was covered with a cheap gray blanket of the kind seen in hospitals, and he twitted himself in his vexation: “So there’s your lady with the pet dog. There’s your adventure. A nice place to cool your heels in.” That morning at the station a playbill in large letters had caught his eye. The Geisha was to be given for the first time. He thought of this and drove to the theater. “It’s quite possible that she goes to first nights,” he thought. The theater was full. As in all provincial theaters, there was a haze above the chandelier, the gallery was noisy and restless; in the front row, before the beginning of the performance the local dandies were standing with their hands clasped behind their backs; in the Governor’s box the Governor’s daughter, wearing a boa, occupied the front seat, while the Governor himself hid modestly behind the portiere and only his hands were visible; the curtain swayed; the orchestra was a long time tuning up. While the audience were coming in and taking their seats, Gurov scanned the faces eagerly. Anna Sergeyevna, too, came in. She sat down in the third row, and when Gurov looked at her his heart contracted, and he understood clearly that in the whole world there was no human being so near, so precious, and so important to him; she, this little, undistinguished woman, lost in a provincial crowd, with a vulgar lorgnette in her hand, filled his whole life now, was his sorrow and his joy, the only happiness that he now desired for himself, and to the sounds of the bad orchestra, of the miserable local violins, he thought how lovely she was. He thought and dreamed. A young man with small side-whiskers, very tall and stooped, came in with Anna Sergeyevna and sat down beside her; he nodded his head

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 149

90

95

at every step and seemed to be bowing continually. Probably this was the husband whom at Yalta, in an excess of bitter feeling, she had called a flunkey. And there really was in his lanky figure, his side-whiskers, his small bald patch, something of a flunkey’s retiring manner; his smile was mawkish, and in his buttonhole there was an academic badge like a wait- er’s number. During the first intermission the husband went out to have a smoke; she remained in her seat. Gurov, who was also sitting in the orchestra, went up to her and said in a shaky voice, with a forced smile: “Good evening!” She glanced at him and turned pale, then looked at him again in horror, unable to believe her eyes, and gripped the fan and the lorgnette tightly together in her hands, evidently trying to keep herself from faint- ing. Both were silent. She was sitting, he was standing, frightened by her distress and not daring to take a seat beside her. The violins and the flute that were being tuned up sang out. He suddenly felt frightened: it seemed as if all the people in the boxes were looking at them. She got up and went hurriedly to the exit; he followed her, and both of them walked blindly along the corridors and up and down stairs, and figures in the uniforms prescribed for magistrates, teachers, and officials of the Department of Crown Lands, all wearing badges, flitted before their eyes, as did also ladies, and fur coats on hangers; they were conscious of drafts and the smell of stale tobacco. And Gurov, whose heart was beating vio- lently, thought: “Oh, Lord! Why are these people here and this orchestra!” And at that instant he suddenly recalled how when he had seen Anna Sergeyevna off at the station he had said to himself that all was over between them and that they would never meet again. But how dis- tant the end still was! On the narrow, gloomy staircase over which it said “To the Amphi- theatre,” she stopped. “How you frightened me!” she said, breathing hard, still pale and stunned. “Oh, how you frightened me! I am barely alive. Why did you come? Why?” “But do understand, Anna, do understand —” he said hurriedly, under his breath. “I implore you, do understand —” She looked at him with fear, with entreaty, with love; she looked at him intently, to keep his features more distinctly in her memory. “I suffer so,” she went on, not listening to him. “All this time I have been thinking of nothing but you; I live only by the thought of you. And I wanted to forget, to forget; but why, oh, why have you come?” On the landing above them two high school boys were looking down and smoking, but it was all the same to Gurov; he drew Anna Sergeyevna to him and began kissing her face and her hands. “What are you doing, what are you doing!” she was saying in horror, pushing him away. “We have lost our senses. Go away today; go away at

150 point of view

100

105

once — I conjure you by all that is sacred, I implore you — People are com- ing this way!” Someone was walking up the stairs. “You must leave,” Anna Sergeyevna went on in a whisper. “Do you hear, Dmitry Dmitrich? I will come and see you in Moscow. I have never been happy; I am unhappy now, and I never, never shall be happy, never! So don’t make me suffer still more! I swear I’ll come to Moscow. But now let us part. My dear, good, precious one, let us part!” She pressed his hand and walked rapidly downstairs, turning to look round at him, and from her eyes he could see that she really was unhappy. Gurov stood for a while, listening, then when all grew quiet, he found his coat and left the theater.

IV

And Anna Sergeyevna began coming to see him in Moscow. Once every two or three months she left S —— , telling her husband that she was going to consult a doctor about a woman’s ailment from which she was suffering —— and her husband did and did not believe her. When she arrived in Moscow she would stop at the Slavyansky Bazar Hotel, and at once send a man in a red cap to Gurov. Gurov came to see her, and no one in Moscow knew of it. Once he was going to see her in this way on a winter morning (the messenger had come the evening before and not found him in). With him walked his daughter, whom he wanted to take to school: it was on the way. Snow was coming down in big wet flakes. “It’s three degrees above zero,° and yet it’s snowing,” Gurov was say- ing to his daughter. “But this temperature prevails only on the surface of the earth; in the upper layers of the atmosphere there is quite a different temperature.” “And why doesn’t it thunder in winter, papa?” He explained that, too. He talked, thinking all the while that he was on his way to a rendezvous, and no living soul knew of it, and probably no one would ever know. He had two lives: an open one, seen and known by all who needed to know it, full of conventional truth and conven- tional falsehood, exactly like the lives of his friends and acquaintances; and another life that went on in secret. And through some strange, per- haps accidental, combination of circumstances, everything that was of interest and importance to him, everything that was essential to him, everything about which he felt sincerely and did not deceive himself, everything that constituted the core of his life, was going on concealed from others; while all that was false, the shell in which he hid to cover the truth — his work at the bank, for instance, his discussions at the club, his references to the “inferior race,” his appearances at anniversary

three degrees above zero: On the Celsius scale; about thirty-eight degrees Fahrenheit.

chekhov / the lady with the pet dog 151

110

115

celebrations with his wife — all that went on in the open. Judging others by himself, he did not believe what he saw, and always fancied that every man led his real, most interesting life under cover of secrecy as under cover of night. The personal life of every individual is based on secrecy, and perhaps it is partly for that reason that civilized man is so nervously anxious that personal privacy should be respected. Having taken his daughter to school, Gurov went on to the Slavy- ansky Bazar Hotel. He took off his fur coat in the lobby, went upstairs, and knocked gently at the door. Anna Sergeyevna, wearing his favorite gray dress, exhausted by the journey and by waiting, had been expecting him since the previous evening. She was pale, and looked at him without a smile, and he had hardly entered when she flung herself on his breast. Their kiss was a long, lingering one, as though they had not seen one another for two years. “Well, darling, how are you getting on there?” he asked. “What news?” “Wait; I’ll tell you in a moment — I can’t speak.” She could not speak; she was crying. She turned away from him, and pressed her handkerchief to her eyes. “Let her have her cry; meanwhile I’ll sit down,” he thought, and he seated himself in an armchair. Then he rang and ordered tea, and while he was having his tea she remained standing at the window with her back to him. She was crying out of sheer agitation, in the sorrowful consciousness that their life was so sad; that they could only see each other in secret and had to hide from people like thieves! Was it not a broken life? “Come, stop now, dear!” he said. It was plain to him that this love of theirs would not be over soon, that the end of it was not in sight. Anna Sergeyevna was growing more and more attached to him. She adored him, and it was unthinkable to tell her that their love was bound to come to an end some day; besides, she would not have believed it! He went up to her and took her by the shoulders, to fondle her and say something diverting, and at that moment he caught sight of himself in the mirror. His hair was already beginning to turn gray. And it seemed odd to him that he had grown so much older in the last few years, and lost his looks. The shoulders on which his hands rested were warm and heaving. He felt compassion for this life, still so warm and lovely, but probably already about to begin to fade and wither like his own. Why did she love him so much? He always seemed to women different from what he was, and they loved in him not himself, but the man whom their imagina- tion created and whom they had been eagerly seeking all their lives; and afterwards, when they saw their mistake, they loved him nevertheless. And not one of them had been happy with him. In the past he had met women, come together with them, parted from them, but he had never

152 point of view

120

once loved; it was anything you please, but not love. And only now when his head was gray he had fallen in love, really, truly — for the first time in his life. Anna Sergeyevna and he loved each other as people do who are very close and intimate, like man and wife, like tender friends; it seemed to them that Fate itself had meant them for one another, and they could not understand why he had a wife and she a husband; and it was as though they were a pair of migratory birds, male and female, caught and forced to live in different cages. They forgave each other what they were ashamed of in their past, they forgave everything in the present, and felt that this love of theirs had altered them both. Formerly in moments of sadness he had soothed himself with what- ever logical arguments came into his head, but now he no longer cared for logic; he felt profound compassion, he wanted to be sincere and tender. “Give it up now, my darling,” he said. “You’ve had your cry; that’s enough. Let us have a talk now, we’ll think up something.” Then they spent a long time taking counsel together, they talked of how to avoid the necessity for secrecy, for deception, for living in differ- ent cities, and not seeing one another for long stretches of time. How could they free themselves from these intolerable fetters? “How? How?” he asked, clutching his head. “How?” And it seemed as though in a little while the solution would be found, and then a new and glorious life would begin; and it was clear to both of them that the end was still far off, and that what was to be most complicated and difficult for them was only just beginning.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Consider the following assessment of the story: “No excuses can be made for the lovers’ adulterous affair. They behave selfishly and irresponsibly. They are immoral — and so is the story.” Explain what you think Chekhov’s response to this view would be, given his treatment of the lovers. How does this compare with your own views?

2. Why is it significant that the setting of this story is a resort town? How does the vacation atmosphere affect the action?

3. What does Gurov’s view of women reveal about him? Why does he regard them as an “inferior race”?

4. What do we learn about Gurov’s wife and Anna’s husband? Why do you think Chekhov includes this exposition? How does it affect our view of the lovers?

5. When and why do Gurov’s feelings about Anna begin to change? Is he really in love with her?

6. What is the effect of having Gurov as the central consciousness? How would the story be different if it were told from Anna’s perspective?

oates / the lady with the pet dog 153

7. Based on your understanding of the characterizations of Gurov and Anna, consider the final paragraph of the story and summarize what you think will happen to them.

This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library.

Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...STMartinsH_FM-B.qxd 12/22/06 1:36 PM Page xxviii

user
Zone de texte
This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library. Text continues on page 168.

168 point of view

Alice Munro (b. 1931)

Alice Munro began writing in her teens in the small rural town of Wingham, Ontario. She published her fi rst story in 1950 when she was a student at Western Ontario Uni- versity. Munro’s fi rst book, Dance of the Happy Shades, was published in 1968, and she went on to publish a number of acclaimed short story collections including Lives of Girls and Women (1971), Something I’ve Been Meaning to Tell You (1974), The Beggar Maid (1978), The Moons of Jupiter (1982), The Prog- ress of Love (1986), Friend of My Youth (1990), Open Secrets (1994), The Love of a Good Woman (1998), Vintage Munro (2004), The View from Castle Rock (2006), and Too Much Happiness (2009). She has been the recip- ient of the Governor General’s Award (Canada’s highest literary prize), the Marian Engel Prize, and the Canada Council Molson Prize. Often dealing with the “emotional reality” of her characters, Munro’s stories have appeared in The New Yorker, The Atlantic Monthly, Grand Street, Made- moiselle, and The Paris Review.

An Ounce of Cure 1968

My parents didn’t drink. They weren’t rabid about it, and in fact I remem- ber that when I signed the pledge in grade seven, with the rest of that superbly if impermanently indoctrinated class, my mother said, “It’s just nonsense and fanaticism, children of that age.” My father would drink a beer on a hot day, but my mother did not join him, and — whether accidentally or symbolically — this drink was always consumed outside the house. Most of the people we knew were the same way, in the small town where we lived. I ought not to say that it was this which got me into diffi culties, because the diffi culties I got into were a faithful expres- sion of my own incommodious nature — the same nature that caused my mother to look at me, on any occasion which traditionally calls for

Maclean’s Rich Chard/Canadian Press Images.

munro / an ounce of cure 169

feelings of pride and maternal accomplishment (my departure for my fi rst formal dance, I mean, or my hellbent preparations for a descent on college) with an expression of brooding and fascinated despair, as if she could not possibly expect, did not ask, that it should go with me as it did with other girls; the dreamed-of spoils of daughters — orchids, nice boys, diamond rings — would be borne home in due course by the daughters of her friends, but not by me; all she could do was hope for a lesser rather than a greater disaster — an elopement, say, with a boy who could never earn his living, rather than an abduction into the White Slave trade. But ignorance, my mother said, ignorance, or innocence if you like, is not always such a fi ne thing as people think and I am not sure it may not be dangerous for a girl like you; then she emphasized her point, as she had a habit of doing, with some quotation which had an innocent pomposity and odor of mothballs. I didn’t even wince at it, knowing full well how it must have worked wonders with Mr. Berryman. The evening I baby-sat for the Berrymans must have been in April. I had been in love all year, or at least since the fi rst week in September, when a boy named Martin Collingwood had given me a surprised, appre- ciative, and rather ominously complacent smile in the school assembly. I never knew what surprised him; I was not looking like anybody but me; I had an old blouse on and my home-permanent had turned out badly. A few weeks after that he took me out for the fi rst time, and kissed me on the dark side of the porch — also, I ought to say, on the mouth; I am sure it was the fi rst time anybody had ever kissed me effectively, and I know that I did not wash my face that night or the next morning, in order to keep the imprint of those kisses intact. (I showed the most painful banal- ity in the conduct of this whole affair, as you will see.) Two months, and a few amatory stages later, he dropped me. He had fallen for the girl who played opposite him in the Christmas production of Pride and Prejudice. I said I was not going to have anything to do with that play, and I got another girl to work on Makeup in my place, but of course I went to it after all, and sat down in front with my girl friend Joyce, who pressed my hand when I was overcome with pain and delight at the sight of Mr. Darcy° in white breeches, silk waistcoat, and sideburns. It was surely see- ing Martin as Darcy that did it for me; every girl is in love with Darcy anyway, and the part gave Martin an arrogance and male splendor in my eyes which made it impossible to remember that he was simply a high-school senior, passably good-looking and of medium intelligence (and with a reputation slightly tainted, at that, by such preferences as the Drama Club and the Cadet Band ) who happened to be the fi rst boy, the fi rst really presentable boy, to take an interest in me. In the last act they gave him a chance to embrace Elizabeth (Mary Bishop, with a sallow complexion and no fi gure, but big vivacious eyes) and during this realis- tic encounter I dug my nails bitterly into Joyce’s sympathetic palm.

Darcy: The hero of Pride and Prejudice by Jane Austen (1775–1817).

170 point of view

5 That night was the beginning of months of real, if more or less self-infl icted, misery for me. Why is it a temptation to refer to this sort of thing lightly, with irony, with amazement even, at fi nding oneself involved with such preposterous emotions in the unaccountable past? That is what we are apt to do, speaking of love; with adolescent love, of course, it’s practically obligatory; you would think we sat around, dull afternoons, amusing ourselves with these tidbit recollections of pain. But it really doesn’t make me feel very gay — worse still, it doesn’t really surprise me — to remember all the stupid, sad, half-ashamed things I did, that people in love always do. I hung around the places where he might be seen, and then pretended not to see him; I made absurdly roundabout approaches, in conversation, to the bitter pleasure of casu- ally mentioning his name. I day-dreamed endlessly; in fact if you want to put it mathematically, I spent perhaps ten times as many hours think- ing about Martin Collingwood — yes, pining and weeping for him — as I ever spent with him; the idea of him dominated my mind relentlessly and, after a while, against my will. For if at fi rst I had dramatized my feelings, the time came when I would have been glad to escape them; my well-worn daydreams had become depressing and not even temporarily consoling. As I worked my math problems I would torture myself, quite mechanically and helplessly, with an exact recollection of Martin kissing my throat. I had an exact recollection of everything. One night I had an impulse to swallow all the aspirins in the bathroom cabinet, but stopped after I had taken six.

My mother noticed that something was wrong and got me some iron pills. She said, “Are you sure everything is going all right at school?” School! When I told her that Martin and I had broken up all she said was, “Well so much the better for that. I never saw a boy so stuck on himself.” “Martin has enough conceit to sink a battleship,” I said morosely and went upstairs and cried. The night I went to the Berrymans was a Saturday night. I baby- sat for them quite often on Saturday nights because they liked to drive over to Baileyville, a much bigger, livelier town about twenty miles away, and perhaps have supper and go to a show. They had been living in our town only two or three years — Mr. Berryman had been brought in as plant manager of the new door-factory — and they remained, I suppose by choice, on the fringes of its society; most of their friends were young- ish couples like themselves, born in other places, who lived in new ranch- style houses on a hill outside town where we used to go tobogganing. This Saturday night they had two other couples in for drinks before they all drove over to Baileyville for the opening of a new supper-club; they were all rather festive. I sat in the kitchen and pretended to do Latin. Last night had been the Spring Dance at the high school. I had not gone, since the only boy who had asked me was Millerd Crompton, who asked so many girls that he was suspected of working his way through the whole

munro / an ounce of cure 171

10

class alphabetically. But the dance was held in the Armories, which was only half a block away from our house; I had been able to see the boys in dark suits, the girls in long pale formals under their coats, passing gravely under the street-lights, stepping around the last patches of snow. I could even hear the music and I have not forgotten to this day that they played “Ballerina,” and — oh, song of my aching heart — “Slow Boat to China.” Joyce had phoned me up this morning and told me in her hushed way (we might have been discussing an incurable disease I had) that yes, M.C. had been there with M.B., and she had on a formal that must have been made out of somebody’s old lace tablecloth, it just hung. When the Berrymans and their friends had gone I went into the liv- ing room and read a magazine. I was mortally depressed. The big softly lit room, with its green and leaf-brown colors, made an uncluttered set- ting for the development of the emotions, such as you would get on a stage. At home the life of the emotions went on all right, but it always seemed to get buried under the piles of mending to be done, the iron- ing, the children’s jigsaw puzzles and rock collections. It was the sort of house where people were always colliding with one another on the stairs and listening to hockey games and Superman on the radio. I got up and found the Berrymans’ “Danse Macabre” and put it on the record player and turned out the living-room lights. The curtains were only partly drawn. A street light shone obliquely on the window- pane, making a rectangle of thin dusty gold, in which the shadows of bare branches moved, caught in the huge sweet winds of spring. It was a mild black night when the last snow was melting. A year ago all this — the music, the wind and darkness, the shadows of the branches — would have given me tremendous happiness; when they did not do so now, but only called up tediously familiar, somehow humiliatingly personal thoughts, I gave up my soul for dead and walked into the kitchen and decided to get drunk. No, it was not like that. I walked into the kitchen to look for a coke or something in the refrigerator, and there on the front of the counter were three tall beautiful bottles, all about half full of gold. But even after I had looked at them and lifted them to feel their weight I had not decided to get drunk; I had decided to have a drink. Now here is where my ignorance, my disastrous innocence, comes in. It is true that I had seen the Berrymans and their friends drinking their highballs as casually as I would drink a coke, but I did not apply this attitude to myself. No; I thought of hard liquor as something to be taken in extremities, and relied upon for extravagant results, one way or another. My approach could not have been less casual if I had been the Little Mermaid drinking the witch’s crystal potion. Gravely, with a glance at my set face in the black window above the sink, I poured a little whisky from each of the bottles (I think now there were two brands of rye and an expensive Scotch) until I had my glass full. For I had never in my life seen anyone pour a drink and I had no idea that people frequently

172 point of view

15

diluted their liquor with water, soda, et cetera, and I had seen that the glasses the Berrymans’ guests were holding when I came through the liv- ing room were nearly full. I drank it off as quickly as possible. I set the glass down and stood looking at my face in the window, half expecting to see it altered. My throat was burning, but I felt nothing else. It was very disappointing, when I had worked myself up to it. But I was not going to let it go at that. I poured another full glass, then fi lled each of the bottles with water to approximately the level I had seen when I came in. I drank the second glass only a little more slowly than the fi rst. I put the empty glass down on the counter with care, perhaps feeling in my head a rustle of things to come, and went and sat down on a chair in the living room. I reached up and turned on a fl oor lamp beside the chair, and the room jumped on me.

When I say I was expecting extravagant results I do not mean that I was expecting this. I had thought of some sweeping emotional change, an upsurge of gaiety and irresponsibility, a feeling of lawlessness and escape, accompanied by a little dizziness and perhaps a tendency to giggle out loud. I did not have in mind the ceiling spinning like a great plate some- body had thrown at me, nor the pale green blobs of the chairs swelling, con- verging, disintegrating, playing with me a game full of enormous senseless inanimate malice. My head sank back; I closed my eyes. And at once opened them, opened them wide, threw myself out of the chair and down the hall and reached — thank God, thank God! — the Berrymans’ bathroom, where I was sick everywhere, everywhere, and dropped like a stone. From this point on I have no continuous picture of what happened; my memories of the next hour or two are split into vivid and improbable segments, with nothing but murk and uncertainty between. I do remem- ber lying on the bathroom fl oor looking sideways at the little six-sided white titles, which lay together in such an admirable and logical pattern, seeing them with the brief broken gratitude and sanity of one who has just been torn to pieces with vomiting. Then I remember sitting on the stool in front of the hall phone, asking weakly for Joyce’s number. Joyce was not home. I was told by her mother (a rather rattlebrained woman, who didn’t seem to notice a thing the matter — for which I felt weakly, mechanically grateful) that she was at Kay Stringer’s house. I didn’t know Kay’s number so I just asked the operator; I felt I couldn’t risk looking down at the telephone book. Kay Stringer was not a friend of mine but a new friend of Joyce’s. She had a vague reputation for wildness and a long switch of hair, very oddly, though naturally, colored — from soap-yellow to caramel brown. She knew a lot of boys more exciting than Martin Collingwood, boys who had quit school or been imported into town to play on the hockey team. She and Joyce rode around in these boys’ cars, and sometimes went with them — having lied of course to their mothers — to the Gay-la dance hall on the highway north of town.

munro / an ounce of cure 173

20

I got Joyce on the phone. She was very keyed-up, as she always was with boys around, and she hardly seemed to hear what I was saying. “Oh, I can’t tonight,” she said. “Some kids are here. We’re going to play cards. You know Bill Kline? He’s here. Ross Armour —” “I’m sick,” I said trying to speak distinctly; it came out an inhuman croak. “I’m drunk. Joyce!” Then I fell off the stool and the receiver dropped out of my hand and banged for a while dismally against the wall. I had not told Joyce where I was, so after thinking about it for a moment she phoned my mother, and using the elaborate and unneces- sary subterfuge that young girls delight in, she found out. She and Kay and the boys — there were three of them — told some story about where they were going to Kay’s mother, and got into the car and drove out. They found me still lying on the broadloom carpet in the hall; I had been sick again, and this time I had not made it to the bathroom. It turned out that Kay Stringer, who arrived on this scene only by accident, was exactly the person I needed. She loved a crisis, particularly one like this, which had a shady and scandalous aspect and which must be kept secret from the adult world. She became excited, aggressive, effi - cient; that energy which was termed wildness was simply the overfl ow of a great female instinct to manage, comfort, and control. I could hear her voice coming at me from all directions, telling me not to worry, tell- ing Joyce to fi nd the biggest coffeepot they had and make it full of coffee (strong coffee, she said), telling the boys to pick me up and carry me to the sofa. Later, in the fog beyond my reach, she was calling for a scrub-brush. Then I was lying on the sofa, covered with some kind of crocheted throw they had found in the bedroom. I didn’t want to lift my head. The house was full of the smell of coffee. Joyce came in, looking very pale; she said that the Berryman kids had wakened up but she had given them a cookie and told them to go back to bed, it was all right; she hadn’t let them out of their room and she didn’t believe they’d remember. She said that she and Kay had cleaned up the bathroom and the hall though she was afraid there was still a spot on the rug. The coffee was ready. I didn’t understand anything very well. The boys had turned on the radio and were going through the Berrymans’ record collection; they had it out on the fl oor. I felt there was something odd about this but I could not think what it was. Kay brought me a huge breakfast mug full of coffee. “I don’t know if I can,” I said. “Thanks.” “Sit up,” she said briskly, as if dealing with drunks was an every- day business for her, I had no need to feel myself important (I met, and recognized, that tone of voice years later, in the maternity ward.) “Now drink,” she said. I drank and at the same time realized that I was wearing only my slip. Joyce and Kay had taken off my blouse and skirt. They had brushed off the skirt and washed out the blouse, since it was nylon; it was hanging in the bathroom. I pulled the throw up under my arms and Kay laughed. She got everybody coffee. Joyce brought in the coffeepot

174 point of view

25

30

and on Kay’s instruction she kept fi lling my cup whenever I drank from it. Somebody said to me with interest, “You must have really wanted to tie one on.” “No,” I said rather sulkily, obediently drinking my coffee. “I only had two drinks.” Kay laughed, “Well it certainly gets to you, I’ll say that. What time do you expect they’ll be back?” she said. “Late. After one I think.” “You should be all right by that time. Have some more coffee.” Kay and one of the boys began dancing to the radio. Kay danced very sexily, but her face had the gently superior and indulgent, rather cold look it had when she was lifting me up to drink the coffee. The boy was whispering to her and she was smiling, shaking her head. Joyce said she was hungry, and she went out to the kitchen to see what there was — potato chips or crackers, or something like that, that you could eat without making too noticeable a dint. Bill Kline came over and sat on the sofa beside me and patted my legs through the crocheted throw. He didn’t say anything to me, just patted my legs and looked at me with what seemed to me a very stupid, half sick, absurd, and alarming expres- sion. I felt very uncomfortable; I wondered how it had ever got around that Bill Kline was so good looking, with an expression like that. I moved my legs nervously and he gave me a look of contempt, not ceasing to pat me. Then I scrambled off the sofa, pulling the throw around me, with the idea of going to the bathroom to see if my blouse was dry. I lurched a little when I started to walk, and for some reason — probably to show Bill Kline that he had not panicked me — I immediately exaggerated this, and calling out, “Watch me walk a straight line!” I lurched and stumbled, to the accompaniment of everyone’s laughter, towards the hall. I was standing in the archway between the hall and the living room when the knob of the front door turned with a small matter-of-fact click and everything became silent behind me except the radio of course and the crocheted throw inspired by some delicate malice of its own slithered down around my feet and there — oh, delicious moment in a well-organized farce! — there stood the Berrymans, Mr. and Mrs., with expressions on their faces as appropriate to the occasion as any old-fashioned director of farces could wish. They must have been preparing those expressions, of course; they could not have produced them in the fi rst moment of shock; with the noise we were making, they had no doubt heard us as soon as they got out of the car; for the same reason, we had not heard them. I don’t think I ever knew what brought them home so early — a headache, an argument — and I was not really in a position to ask.

Mr. Berryman drove me home. I don’t remember how I got into that car, or how I found my clothes and put them on, or what kind of a good- night, if any, I said to Mrs. Berryman. I don’t remember what happened to my friends, though I imagine they gathered up their coats and fl ed,

munro / an ounce of cure 175

covering up the ignominy of their departure with a mechanical roar of defi ance. I remember Joyce with a box of crackers in her hand, saying that I had become terribly sick from eating — I think she said sauerkraut — for supper, and that I had called them for help. (When I asked her later what they made of this she said, “It wasn’t any use. You reeked.”) I remember also her saying, “Oh, no, Mr. Berryman I beg of you, my mother is a ter- ribly nervous person I don’t know what the shock might do to her. I will go down on my knees to you if you like but you must not phone my mother.” I have no picture of her down on her knees — and she would have done it in a minute — so it seems this threat was not carried out. Mr. Berryman said to me, “Well I guess you know your behav- ior tonight is a pretty serious thing.” He made it sound as if I might be charged with criminal negligence or something worse. “It would be very wrong of me to overlook it,” he said. I suppose that besides being angry and disgusted with me, he was worried about taking me home in this condition to my strait-laced parents, who could always say I got the liquor in his house. Plenty of Temperance people would think that enough to hold him responsible, and the town was full of Temperance people. Good relations with the town were very important to him from a business point of view. “I have an idea it wasn’t the fi rst time,” he said. “If it was the fi rst time, would a girl be smart enough to fi ll three bottles up with water? No. Well in this case, she was smart enough, but not smart enough to know I could spot it. What do you say to that?” I opened my mouth to answer and although I was feeling quite sober the only sound that came out was a loud, desolate-sounding giggle. He stopped in front of our house. “Light’s on,” he said. “Now go in and tell your parents the straight truth. And if you don’t, remember I will.” He did not mention paying me for my baby-sitting services of the evening and the subject did not occur to me either. I went into the house and tried to go straight upstairs but my mother called to me. She came into the front hall, where I had not turned on the light, and she must have smelled me at once for she ran forward with a cry of pure amazement, as if she had seen somebody falling, and caught me by the shoulders as I did indeed fall down against the banister, over- whelmed by my fantastic lucklessness, and I told her everything from the start, not omitting even the name of Martin Collingwood and my fl irta- tion with the aspirin bottle, which was a mistake. On Monday morning my mother took the bus over to Baileyville and found the liquor store and bought a bottle of Scotch whisky. Then she had to wait for a bus back, and she met some people she knew and she was not quite able to hide the bottle in her bag; she was furious with herself for not bringing a proper shopping-bag. As soon as she got back she walked out to the Berrymans’; she had not even had lunch. Mr. Ber- ryman had not gone back to the factory. My mother went in and had a talk with both of them and made an excellent impression and then

176 point of view

35

Mr. Berryman drove her home. She talked to them in the forthright and unemotional way she had, which was always agreeably surprising to people prepared to deal with a mother, and she told them that although I seemed to do well enough at school I was extremely backward — or per- haps eccentric — in my emotional development. I imagine that this anal- ysis of my behavior was especially effective with Mrs. Berryman, a great reader of Child Guidance books. Relations between them warmed to the point where my mother brought up a specifi c instance of my diffi culties, and disarmingly related the whole story of Martin Collingwood. Within a few days it was all over town and the school that I had tried to commit suicide over Martin Collingwood. But it was already all over school and the town that the Berrymans had come home on Saturday night to fi nd me drunk, staggering, wearing nothing but my slip, in a room with three boys, one of whom was Bill Kline. My mother had said that I was to pay for the bottle she had taken the Berrymans out of my baby-sitting earnings, but my clients melted away like the last April snow, and it would not be paid for yet if newcomers to town had not moved in across the street in July, and needed a baby sitter before they talked to any of their neighbors. My mother also said that it had been a great mistake to let me go out with boys and that I would not be going out again until well after my sixteenth birthday, if then. This did not prove to be a concrete hardship at all, because it was at least that long before anybody asked me. If you think that news of the Berrymans adventure would put me in demand for whatever gambols and orgies were going on in and around that town, you could not be more mistaken. The extraordinary publicity which attended my fi rst debauch may have made me seem marked for a special kind of ill luck, like the girl whose illegitimate baby turns out to be triplets: nobody wants to have anything to do with her. At any rate I had at the same time one of the most silent telephones and positively the most sinful reputa- tion in the whole high school. I had to put up with this until the next fall, when a fat blonde girl in grade ten ran away with a married man and was picked up two months later, living in sin — though not with the same man — in the city of Saulte Ste. Marie. Then everybody forgot about me. But there was a positive, a splendidly unexpected, result of this affair: I got completely over Martin Collingwood. It was not only that he at once said, publicly, that he had always thought I was a nut; where he was concerned I had no pride, and my tender fancy could have found a way around that, a month, a week, before. What was it that brought me back into the world again? It was the terrible and fascinating reality of my disaster; it was the way things happened. Not that I enjoyed it; I was a self-conscious girl and I suffered a good deal from all this exposure. But the development of events on that Saturday night — that fascinated me; I felt that I had had a glimpse of the shameless, marvelous, shattering absurdity with which the plots of life, though not of fi ction, are impro- vised. I could not take my eyes off it.

munro / an ounce of cure 177

And of course Martin Collingwood wrote his Senior Matric that June, and went away to the city to take a course at a school for Morti- cians, as I think it is called, and when he came back he went into his uncle’s undertaking business. We lived in the same town and we would hear most things that happened to each other but I do not think we met face to face or saw one another, except at a distance, for years. I went to a shower for the girl he married, but then everybody went to every- body else’s showers. No, I do not think I really saw him again until I came home after I had been married several years, to attend a relative’s funeral. Then I saw him; not quite Mr. Darcy but still very nice-looking in those black clothes. And I saw him looking over at me with an expres- sion as close to a reminiscent smile as the occasion would permit, and I knew that he had been surprised by a memory either of my devotion or my little buried catastrophe. I gave him a gentle, uncomprehending look in return. I am a grown-up woman now; let him unbury his own catastrophes.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. In what ways does the fi rst-person narrator portray herself as a typical teenager? Why isn’t the characterization of her correctly described as stereotypical?

2. Discuss the narrator’s sense of humor. How does her humor affect your attitude toward her?

3. Describe the differences in perspective and sensibilities between the teenager who experiences the events in the story and the adult who recounts them.

4. How does the narrator’s drunken baby-sitting episode affect her rep- utation? What does this reveal about her and the town?

5. How convincing are the narrator’s descriptions of the effects of alco- hol upon her? Cite specifi c passages to illustrate your points.

6. How would you describe the confl ict in the story? How is it resolved? 7. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. In an essay discuss the narra-

tors’ humor in Munro’s “An Ounce of Cure” and John Updike’s “A & P” (p. 334). How does the humor affect your response to each narrator?

178

Now mind, I recognize no dichotomy between art and protest.

— RALPH ELLISON

A symbol is a person, object, or event that suggests more than its literal meaning. This basic definition is simple enough, but the use of symbol in literature makes some students slightly nervous because they tend to regard it as a booby trap, a hidden device that can go off during a seem- ingly harmless class discussion. “I didn’t see that when I was reading the story” is a frequently heard comment. This sort of surprise and recog- nition is both natural and common. Most readers go through a story for the first time getting their bearings, figuring out what is happening to whom and so on. Patterns and significant details often require a sec- ond or third reading before they become evident — before a symbol sheds light on a story. Then the details of a work may suddenly fit together, and its meaning may be reinforced, clarified, or enlarged by the symbol. Symbolic meanings are usually embedded in the texture of a story, but they are not “hidden”; instead, they are carefully placed. Reading between the lines (where there is only space) is unnecessary. What is needed is a careful consideration of the elements of the story, a sensitivity to its lan- guage, and some common sense. Common sense is a good place to begin. Symbols appear all around us; anything can be given symbolic significance. Without symbols our lives would be stark and vacant. Awareness of a writer’s use of symbols is not all that different from the kinds of perceptions and interpretations that allow us to make sense of our daily lives. We know, for example, that a ring used in a wedding is more than just a piece of jewelry because it suggests the unity and intimacy of a closed circle. The bride’s gown may be white be cause we tend to associate innocence and purity with

6 Symbolism

symbolism 179

that color. Or consider the meaning of a small polo pony sewn on a shirt or some other article of clothing. What started as a company trademark has gathered around it a range of meanings suggesting everything from quality and money to preppiness and silliness. The ring, the white gown, and the polo pony trademark are symbolic because each has meanings that go beyond its specific qualities and functions. Symbols such as these that are widely recognized by a society or culture are called conventional symbols. The Christian cross, the Star of David, a swastika, or a nation’s flag all have meanings understood by large groups of people. Certain kinds of experiences also have traditional meanings in Western cultures. Winter, the setting sun, and the color black suggest death, while spring, the rising sun, and the color green evoke images of youth and new beginnings. (It is worth noting, how- ever, that individual cultures sometimes have their own conventions; some Eastern cultures associate white rather than black with death and mourning. And obviously the polo pony trademark would mean noth- ing to anyone totally unfamiliar with American culture.) These broadly shared symbolic meanings are second nature to us. Writers use conventional symbols to reinforce meanings. Kate Chopin, for example, emphasizes the spring setting in “The Story of an Hour” (p. 13) as a way of suggesting the renewed sense of life that Mrs. Mallard feels when she thinks herself free from her husband. A literary symbol can include traditional, conventional, or public meanings, but it may also be established internally by the total context of the work in which it appears. In “Soldier’s Home” (p. 117), Hemingway does not use Krebs’s family home as a conventional symbol of safety, comfort, and refuge from the war. Instead, Krebs’s home becomes sym- bolic of pro vincial, erroneous presuppositions compounded by blind innocence, sentimentality, and smug middle-class respectability. The symbolic meaning of his home reveals that Krebs no longer shares his family’s and town’s view of the world. Their notions of love, the value of a respectable job, and a be lief in God seem to him petty, com- plicated, and meaningless. The signifi cance of Krebs’s home is deter- mined by the events within the story, which reverse and subvert the traditional associations readers might bring to it. Krebs’s interactions with his family and the people in town reveal what home has come to mean to him. A literary symbol can be a setting, character, action, object, name, or anything else in a work that maintains its literal significance while suggesting other meanings. Symbols cannot be restricted to a single meaning; they are suggestive rather than definitive. Their evocation of multiple meanings allows a writer to say more with less. Symbols are economical devices for evoking complex ideas without having to resort to painstaking explanations that would make a story more like an essay than an experience. The many walls in Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener”

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins .com/ rewritinglit.

180 symbolism

(p. 85) cannot be re duced to one idea. They have multiple meanings that unify the story. The walls are symbols of the deadening, dehumanizing, restrictive repetitiveness of the office routine, as well as of the confining, materialistic sensibilities of Wall Street. They suggest whatever limits and thwarts human aspirations, including death itself. We don’t know precisely what shatters Bartleby’s will to live, but the walls in the story, through their symbolic suggestiveness, indicate the nature of the limita- tions that cause the scrive ner to slip into hopelessness and his “dead- wall reveries.” When a character, object, or incident indicates a single, fixed mean- ing, the writer is using allegory rather than symbol. Whereas symbols have literal functions as well as multiple meanings, the primary focus in allegory is on the abstract idea called forth by the concrete object. John Bunyan’s Pilgrim’s Progress, published during the seventeenth century, is a classic example of allegory because the characters, action, and setting have no existence beyond their abstract meanings. Bunyan’s purpose is to teach his readers the exemplary way to salvation and heaven. The pro- tagonist, named Christian, flees the City of Destruction in search of the Celestial City. Along the way he encounters characters who either help or hinder his spiritual journey. Among them are Mr. Worldly Wiseman, Faithful, Prudence, Piety, and a host of others named after the virtues or vices they display. These characters, places, and actions exist solely to illustrate religious doctrine. Allegory tends to be definitive rather than suggestive. It drives meaning into a corner and keeps it there. Most modern writers prefer the exploratory nature of symbol to the reductive nature of pure allegory. Stories often include symbols that you may or may not perceive on a first reading. Their subtle use is a sign of a writer’s skill in weaving symbols into the fabric of the characters’ lives. Symbols may sometimes escape you, but that is probably better than finding symbols where only literal meanings are intended. Allow the text to help you determine whether a symbolic reading is appropriate. By keeping track of the total context of the story, you should be able to decide whether your reading is reasonable and consistent with the other facts; plenty of lemons in literature yield no symbolic mean- ing even if they are squeezed. Be sensitive to the meanings that the author associates with people, places, objects, and actions. You may not associate home with provincial innocence as Hemingway does in “Soldier’s Home,” but a close reading of the story will permit you to see how and why he constructs that symbolic meaning. If you treat stories like people — with tact and care — they ordinarily are accessible and enjoyable. The next stories — Ralph Ellison’s “Battle Royal” and Peter Meinke’s “The Cranes” — rely on symbols to convey meanings that go far be yond the specific incidents described in their plots.

181

182 symbolism

ellison / battle royal 183

Ralph Ellison (1914–1994)

Born in Oklahoma and educated at the Tuskegee Institute in Ala- bama, where he studied music, Ralph Ellison gained his reputa- tion as a writer on the strength of his only published novel, Invis- ible Man (1952). He also published some scattered short stories and two collections of essays, Shadow and Act (1964) and Going to the Ter- ritory (1986). Although his writing was not extensive, it is important

Library of Congress, Prints and Photographs Division.

184 symbolism

because Ellison wrote about race relations in the context of universal human concerns. Invisible Man is the story of a young black man who moves from the South to the North and discovers what it means to be black in America. “Battle Royal,” published in 1947 as a short story, be came the first chapter of Invisible Man. It concerns the beginning of the protagonist’s long struggle for an adult identity in a world made corrupt by racial prejudice.

Battle Royal 1947

It goes a long way back, some twenty years. All my life I had been looking for something, and everywhere I turned someone tried to tell me what it was. I accepted their answers too, though they were often in contradic- tion and even self-contradictory. I was naive. I was looking for myself and asking everyone except myself questions which I, and only I, could answer. It took me a long time and much painful boomeranging of my expectations to achieve a realization everyone else appears to have been born with: That I am nobody but myself. But first I had to discover that I am an invisible man! And yet I am no freak of nature, nor of history. I was in the cards, other things having been equal (or unequal) eighty-five years ago. I am not ashamed of my grandparents for having been slaves. I am only ashamed of myself for having at one time been ashamed. About eighty- five years ago they were told that they were free, united with others of our country in everything pertaining to the common good, and, in every- thing social, separate like the fingers of the hand. And they believed it. They exulted in it. They stayed in their place, worked hard, and brought up my father to do the same. But my grandfather is the one. He was an odd old guy, my grandfather, and I am told I take after him. It was he who caused the trouble. On his deathbed he called my father to him and said, “Son, after I’m gone I want you to keep up the good fight. I never told you, but our life is a war and I have been a traitor all my born days, a spy in the enemy’s country ever since I gave up my gun back in the Reconstruction. Live with your head in the lion’s mouth. I want you to overcome ’em with yeses, undermine ’em with grins, agree ’em to death and destruction, let ’em swoller you till they vomit or bust wide open.” They thought the old man had gone out of his mind. He had been the meekest of men. The younger children were rushed from the room, the shades drawn and the flame of the lamp turned so low that it sputtered on the wick like the old man’s breathing. “Learn it to the young-uns,” he whispered fiercely; then he died. But my folks were more alarmed over his last words than over his dying. It was as though he had not died at all, his words caused so much anxiety. I was warned emphatically to forget what he had said and, indeed, this is the first time it has been mentioned outside the family

ellison / battle royal 185

5

circle. It had a tremendous effect upon me, however. I could never be sure of what he meant. Grandfather had been a quiet old man who never made any trouble, yet on his deathbed he had called himself a traitor and a spy, and he had spoken of his meekness as a dangerous activity. It became a constant puzzle which lay unanswered in the back of my mind. And whenever things went well for me I remembered my grandfa- ther and felt guilty and uncomfortable. It was as though I was carrying out his advice in spite of myself. And to make it worse, everyone loved me for it. I was praised by the most lily-white men of the town. I was consid- ered an example of desirable conduct — just as my grandfather had been. And what puzzled me was that the old man had defined it as treachery. When I was praised for my conduct I felt a guilt that in some way I was doing something that was really against the wishes of the white folks, that if they had understood they would have desired me to act just the opposite, that I should have been sulky and mean, and that that really would have been what they wanted, even though they were fooled and thought they wanted me to act as I did. It made me afraid that some day they would look upon me as a traitor and I would be lost. Still I was more afraid to act any other way because they didn’t like that at all. The old man’s words were like a curse. On my graduation day I delivered an oration in which I showed that humility was the secret, indeed, the very essence of progress. (Not that I believed this — how could I, remembering my grandfather? — I only believed that it worked.) It was a great success. Everyone praised me and I was invited to give the speech at a gather- ing of the town’s leading white citizens. It was a triumph for our whole community. It was in the main ballroom of the leading hotel. When I got there I discovered that it was on the occasion of a smoker, and I was told that since I was to be there anyway I might as well take part in the battle royal to be fought by some of my schoolmates as part of the entertainment. The battle royal came first. All of the town’s big shots were there in their tuxedoes, wolfing down the buffet foods, drinking beer and whiskey and smoking black cigars. It was a large room with a high ceiling. Chairs were arranged in neat rows around three sides of a portable boxing ring. The fourth side was clear, revealing a gleaming space of polished floor. I had some mis- givings over the battle royal, by the way. Not from a distaste for fighting, but because I didn’t care too much for the other fellows who were to take part. They were tough guys who seemed to have no grandfather’s curse worrying their minds. No one could mistake their toughness. And besides, I suspected that fighting a battle royal might detract from the dignity of my speech. In those pre-invisible days I visualized myself as a potential Booker T. Washington. But the other fellows didn’t care too much for me either, and there were nine of them. I felt superior to them in my way, and I didn’t like the manner in which we were all crowded together into the servants’ elevator. Nor did they like my being there. In

186 symbolism

fact, as the warmly lighted floors flashed past the elevator we had words over the fact that I, by taking part in the fight, had knocked one of their friends out of a night’s work. We were led out of the elevator through a rococo hall into an ante- room and told to get into our fighting togs. Each of us was issued a pair of boxing gloves and ushered out into the big mirrored hall, which we entered looking cautiously about us and whispering, lest we might acci- dentally be heard above the noise of the room. It was foggy with cigar smoke. And already the whiskey was taking effect. I was shocked to see some of the most important men of the town quite tipsy. They were all there — bankers, lawyers, judges, doctors, fire chiefs, teachers, merchants. Even one of the more fashionable pastors. Something we could not see was going on up front. A clarinet was vibrating sensuously and the men were standing up and moving eagerly forward. We were a small tight group, clustered together, our bare upper bodies touching and shining with anticipatory sweat; while up front the big shots were becoming increasingly excited over something we still could not see. Suddenly I heard the school superintendent, who had told me to come, yell, “Bring up the shines, gentlemen! Bring up the little shines!” We were rushed up to the front of the ballroom, where it smelled even more strongly of tobacco and whiskey. Then we were pushed into place. I al most wet my pants. A sea of faces, some hostile, some amused, ringed around us, and in the center, facing us, stood a magnificent blonde — stark naked. There was dead silence. I felt a blast of cold air chill me. I tried to back away, but they were behind me and around me. Some of the boys stood with lowered heads, trembling. I felt a wave of irrational guilt and fear. My teeth chattered, my skin turned to goose flesh, my knees knocked. Yet I was strongly attracted and looked in spite of myself. Had the price of looking been blindness, I would have looked. The hair was yellow like that of a circus kewpie doll, the face heavily pow- dered and rouged, as though to form an abstract mask, the eyes hollow and smeared a cool blue, the color of a baboon’s butt. I felt a desire to spit upon her as my eyes brushed slowly over her body. Her breasts were firm and round as the domes of East Indian temples, and I stood so close as to see the fine skin texture and beads of pearly perspiration glistening like dew around the pink and erected buds of her nipples. I wanted at one and the same time to run from the room, to sink through the floor, or go to her and cover her from my eyes and the eyes of the others with my body; to feel the soft thighs, to caress her and destroy her, to love her and murder her, to hide from her, and yet to stroke where below the small American flag tattooed upon her belly her thighs formed a capital V. I had a notion that of all in the room she saw only me with her imper- sonal eyes. And then she began to dance, a slow sensuous movement; the smoke of a hundred cigars clinging to her like the thinnest of veils. She seemed like a fair bird-girl girdled in veils calling to me from the angry surface of

ellison / battle royal 187

10

some gray and threatening sea. I was transported. Then I became aware of the clarinet playing and the big shots yelling at us. Some threatened us if we looked and others if we did not. On my right I saw one boy faint. And now a man grabbed a silver pitcher from a table and stepped close as he dashed ice water upon him and stood him up and forced two of us to support him as his head hung and moans issued from his thick bluish lips. Another boy began to plead to go home. He was the largest of the group, wearing dark red fighting trunks much too small to conceal the erection which projected from him as though in answer to the insinuat- ing low-registered moaning of the clarinet. He tried to hide himself with his boxing gloves. And all the while the blonde continued dancing, smiling faintly at the big shots who watched her with fascination, and faintly smiling at our fear. I noticed a certain merchant who followed her hungrily, his lips loose and drooling. He was a large man who wore diamond studs in a shirtfront which swelled with the ample paunch underneath, and each time the blonde swayed her undulating hips he ran his hand through the thin hair of his bald head and, with his arms upheld, his posture clumsy like that of an intoxicated panda, wound his belly in a slow and obscene grind. This creature was completely hypnotized. The music had quick- ened. As the dancer flung herself about with a detached expression on her face, the men began reaching out to touch her. I could see their beefy fingers sink into the soft flesh. Some of the others tried to stop them as she began to move around the floor in graceful circles, as they gave chase, slipping and sliding over the polished floor. It was mad. Chairs went crashing, drinks were spilt, as they ran laughing and howling after her. They caught her just as she reached a door, raised her from the floor, and tossed her as college boys are tossed at a hazing, and above her red, fixed- smiling lips I saw the terror and disgust in her eyes, almost like my own terror and that which I saw in some of the other boys. As I watched, they tossed her twice and her soft breasts seemed to flatten against the air and her legs flung wildly as she spun. Some of the more sober ones helped her to escape. And I started off the floor, heading for the anteroom with the rest of the boys. Some were still crying in hysteria. But as we tried to leave we were stopped and ordered to get into the ring. There was nothing to do but what we were told. All ten of us climbed under the ropes and allowed ourselves to be blindfolded with broad bands of white cloth. One of the men seemed to feel a bit sympathetic and tried to cheer us up as we stood with our backs against the ropes. Some of us tried to grin. “See that boy over there?” one of the men said. “I want you to run across at the bell and give it to him right in the belly. If you don’t get him, I’m going to get you. I don’t like his looks.” Each of us was told the same. The blindfolds were put on. Yet even then I had been going over my speech. In my mind each word was as bright as flame. I felt the cloth pressed into place, and frowned so that it would be loosened when I relaxed.

188 symbolism

15

20

But now I felt a sudden fit of blind terror. I was unused to darkness. It was as though I had suddenly found myself in a dark room filled with poisonous cottonmouths. I could hear the bleary voices yelling insis- tently for the battle royal to begin. “Get going in there!” “Let me at that big nigger!” I strained to pick up the school superintendent’s voice, as though to squeeze some security out of that slightly more familiar sound. “Let me at those black sonsabitches!” someone yelled. “No, Jackson, no!” another voice yelled. “Here, somebody, help me hold Jack.” “I want to get at that ginger-colored nigger. Tear him limb from limb,” the first voice yelled. I stood against the ropes trembling. For in those days I was what they called ginger-colored, and he sounded as though he might crunch me between his teeth like a crisp ginger cookie. Quite a struggle was going on. Chairs were being kicked about and I could hear voices grunting as with a terrific effort. I wanted to see, to see more desperately than ever before. But the blindfold was tight as a thick skin-puckering scab and when I raised my gloved hands to push the lay- ers of white aside a voice yelled, “Oh, no you don’t, black bastard! Leave that alone!” “Ring the bell before Jackson kills him a coon!” someone boomed in the sudden silence. And I heard the bell clang and the sound of the feet scuffling forward. A glove smacked against my head. I pivoted, striking out stiffly as someone went past, and felt the jar ripple along the length of my arm to my shoulder. Then it seemed as though all nine of the boys had turned upon me at once. Blows pounded me from all sides while I struck out as best I could. So many blows landed upon me that I wondered if I were not the only blindfolded fighter in the ring, or if the man called Jackson hadn’t succeeded in getting me after all. Blindfolded, I could no longer control my motions. I had no dignity. I stumbled about like a baby or a drunken man. The smoke had become thicker and with each new blow it seemed to sear and further restrict my lungs. My saliva became like hot bitter glue. A glove connected with my head, filling my mouth with warm blood. It was everywhere. I could not tell if the moisture I felt upon my body was sweat or blood. A blow landed hard against the nape of my neck. I felt myself going over, my head hitting the floor. Streaks of blue light filled the black world behind the blindfold. I lay prone, pretending that I was knocked out, but felt myself seized by hands and yanked to my feet. “Get going, black boy! Mix it up!” My arms were like lead, my head smarting from blows. I man- aged to feel my way to the ropes and held on, trying to catch my breath. A glove landed in my mid-section and I went over again, feeling as though the smoke had become a knife jabbed into my guts. Pushed this way and

ellison / battle royal 189

25

that by the legs milling around me, I finally pulled erect and discovered that I could see the black, sweat-washed forms weaving in the smoky- blue at mosphere like drunken dancers weaving to the rapid drumlike thuds of blows. Everyone fought hysterically. It was complete anarchy. Everybody fought everybody else. No group fought together for long. Two, three, four, fought one, then turned to fight each other, were themselves attacked. Blows landed below the belt and in the kidney, with the gloves open as well as closed, and with my eye partly opened now there was not so much terror. I moved carefully, avoiding blows, although not too many to attract attention, fighting from group to group. The boys groped about like blind, cautious crabs crouching to protect their mid- sections, their heads pulled in short against their shoulders, their arms stretched nervously before them, with their fists testing the smoke-filled air like the knobbed feelers of hypersensitive snails. In one corner I glimpsed a boy violently punching the air and heard him scream in pain as he smashed his hand against a ring post. For a second I saw him bent over holding his hand, then going down as a blow caught his unpro- tected head. I played one group against the other, slipping in and throw- ing a punch then stepping out of range while pushing the others into the melee to take the blows blindly aimed at me. The smoke was agonizing and there were no rounds, no bells at three minute intervals to relieve our exhaustion. The room spun round me, a swirl of lights, smoke, sweating bodies surrounded by tense white faces. I bled from both nose and mouth, the blood spattering upon my chest. The men kept yelling, “Slug him, black boy! Knock his guts out!” “Uppercut him! Kill him! Kill that big boy!” Taking a fake fall, I saw a boy going down heavily beside me as though we were felled by a single blow, saw a sneaker-clad foot shoot into his groin as the two who had knocked him down stumbled upon him. I rolled out of range, feeling a twinge of nausea. The harder we fought the more threatening the men became. And yet, I had begun to worry about my speech again. How would it go? Would they recognize my ability? What would they give me? I was fighting automatically when suddenly I noticed that one after another of the boys was leaving the ring. I was surprised, filled with panic, as though I had been left alone with an unknown danger. Then I understood. The boys had arranged it among themselves. It was the custom for the two men left in the ring to slug it out for the winner’s prize. I discovered this too late. When the bell sounded two men in tux- edoes leaped into the ring and removed the blindfold. I found myself facing Tatlock, the biggest of the gang. I felt sick at my stomach. Hardly had the bell stopped ringing in my ears than it clanged again and I saw him moving swiftly toward me. Thinking of nothing else to do I hit him smash on the nose. He kept coming, bringing the rank sharp violence of stale sweat. His face was a black blank of a face, only his eyes alive — with

190 symbolism

30

35

hate of me and aglow with a feverish terror from what had happened to us all. I became anxious. I wanted to deliver my speech and he came at me as though he meant to beat it out of me. I smashed him again and again, taking his blows as they came. Then on a sudden impulse I struck him lightly and as we clinched, I whispered, “Fake like I knocked you out, you can have the prize.” “I’ll break your behind,” he whispered hoarsely. “For them?” “For me, sonofabitch!” They were yelling for us to break it up and Tatlock spun me half around with a blow, and as a joggled camera sweeps in a reeling scene, I saw the howling red faces crouching tense beneath the cloud of blue- gray smoke. For a moment the world wavered, unraveled, flowed, then my head cleared and Tatlock bounced before me. That fluttering shadow before my eyes was his jabbing left hand. Then falling forward, my head against his damp shoulder, I whispered, “I’ll make it five dollars more.” “Go to hell!” But his muscles relaxed a trifle beneath my pressure and I breathed, “Seven?” “Give it to your ma,” he said, ripping me beneath the heart. And while I still held him I butted him and moved away. I felt myself bombarded with punches. I fought back with hopeless despera- tion. I wanted to deliver my speech more than anything else in the world, because I felt that only these men could judge truly my ability, and now this stupid clown was ruining my chances. I began fighting carefully now, moving in to punch him and out again with my greater speed. A lucky blow to his chin and I had him going too — until I heard a loud voice yell, “I got my money on the big boy.” Hearing this, I almost dropped my guard. I was confused: Should I try to win against the voice out there? Would not this go against my speech, and was not this a moment for humility, for nonresistance? A blow to my head as I danced about sent my right eye popping like a jack-in-the-box and settled my dilemma. The room went red as I fell. It was a dream fall, my body languid and fastidious as to where to land, until the floor became impatient and smashed up to meet me. A moment later I came to. An hypnotic voice said FIVE em phatically. And I lay there, hazily watching a dark red spot of my own blood shaping itself into a butterfly, glistening and soaking into the soiled gray world of the canvas. When the voice drawled TEN I was lifted up and dragged to a chair. I sat dazed. My eye pained and swelled with each throb of my pounding heart and I wondered if now I would be allowed to speak. I was wringing wet, my mouth still bleeding. We were grouped along the wall now. The other boys ignored me as they congratulated Tatlock and speculated as to how much they would be paid. One boy whimpered over his smashed

ellison / battle royal 191

40

45

50

hand. Looking up front, I saw attendants in white jackets rolling the por- table ring away and placing a small square rug in the vacant space sur- rounded by chairs. Perhaps, I thought, I will stand on the rug to deliver my speech. Then the M.C. called to us, “Come on up here boys and get your money.” We ran forward to where the men laughed and talked in their chairs, waiting. Everyone seemed friendly now. “There it is on the rug,” the man said. I saw the rug covered with coins of all dimensions and a few crumpled bills. But what excited me, scattered here and there, were the gold pieces. “Boys, it’s all yours,” the man said. “You get all you grab.” “That’s right, Sambo,” a blond man said, winking at me confidentially. I trembled with excitement, forgetting my pain. I would get the gold and the bills, I thought. I would use both hands. I would throw my body against the boys nearest me to block them from the gold. “Get down around the rug now,” the man commanded, “and don’t anyone touch it until I give the signal.” “This ought to be good,” I heard. As told, we got around the square rug on our knees. Slowly the man raised his freckled hand as we followed it upward with our eyes. I heard, “These niggers look like they’re about to pray!” Then, “Ready,” the man said. “Go!” I lunged for a yellow coin lying on the blue design of the carpet, touching it and sending a surprised shriek to join those rising around me. I tried frantically to remove my hand but could not let go. A hot, violent force tore through my body, shaking me like a wet rat. The rug was electrified. The hair bristled up on my head as I shook myself free. My muscles jumped, my nerves jangled, writhed. But I saw that this was not stopping the other boys. Laughing in fear and embarrassment, some were holding back and scooping up the coins knocked off by the painful contortions of the others. The men roared above us as we struggled. “Pick it up, goddamnit, pick it up!” someone called like a bass- voiced parrot. “Go on, get it!” I crawled rapidly around the floor, picking up the coins, trying to avoid the coppers and to get greenbacks and the gold. Ignoring the shock by laughing, as I brushed the coins off quickly, I discovered that I could contain the electricity — a contradiction, but it works. Then the men began to push us onto the rug. Laughing embarrassedly, we struggled out of their hands and kept after the coins. We were all wet and slippery and hard to hold. Suddenly I saw a boy lifted into the air, glistening with sweat like a circus seal, and dropped, his wet back landing flush upon the charged rug, heard him yell and saw him literally dance upon his back, his elbows beating a frenzied tattoo upon the floor, his muscles twitching like the flesh of a horse stung by many flies. When he finally rolled off, his face was gray and no one stopped him when he ran from the floor amid booming laughter.

192 symbolism

55

60

“Get the money,” the M.C. called. “That’s good hard American cash!” And we snatched and grabbed, snatched and grabbed. I was care- ful not to come too close to the rug now, and when I felt the hot whis- key breath descend upon me like a cloud of foul air I reached out and grabbed the leg of a chair. It was occupied and I held on desperately. “Leggo, nigger! Leggo!” The huge face wavered down to mine as he tried to push me free. But my body was slippery and he was too drunk. It was Mr. Colcord, who owned a chain of movie houses and “entertainment palaces.” Each time he grabbed me I slipped out of his hands. It became a real struggle. I feared the rug more than I did the drunk, so I held on, surprising myself for a moment by trying to topple him upon the rug. It was such an enormous idea that I found myself actually carrying it out. I tried not to be obvi- ous, yet when I grabbed his leg, trying to tumble him out of the chair, he raised up roaring with laughter, and, looking at me with soberness dead in the eye, kicked me viciously in the chest. The chair leg flew out of my hand and I felt myself going and rolled. It was as though I had rolled through a bed of hot coals. It seemed a whole century would pass before I would roll free, a century in which I was seared through the deepest levels of my body to the fearful breath within me and the breath seared and heated to the point of explosion. It’ll all be over in a flash, I thought as I rolled clear. It’ll all be over in a flash. But not yet, the men on the other side were waiting, red faces swol- len as though from apoplexy as they bent forward in their chairs. Seeing their fingers coming toward me I rolled away as a fumbled football rolls off the receiver’s fingertips, back into the coals. That time I luckily sent the rug sliding out of place and heard the coins ringing against the floor and the boys scuffling to pick them up and the M.C. calling, “All right, boys, that’s all. Go get dressed and get your money.” I was limp as a dish rag. My back felt as though it had been beaten with wires. When we had dressed the M.C. came in and gave us each five dollars, except Tatlock, who got ten for being last in the ring. Then he told us to leave. I was not to get a chance to deliver my speech, I thought. I was going out into the dim alley in despair when I was stopped and told to go back. I returned to the ballroom, where the men were pushing back their chairs and gathering in groups to talk. The M.C. knocked on a table for quiet. “Gentlemen,” he said, “we almost forgot an important part of the program. A most serious part, gentlemen. This boy was brought here to deliver a speech which he made at his graduation yesterday . . .” “Bravo!” “I’m told that he is the smartest boy we’ve got out there in Green- wood. I’m told that he knows more big words than a pocket-sized dictionary.” Much applause and laughter.

ellison / battle royal 193

65

70

75

“So now, gentlemen, I want you to give him your attention.” There was still laughter as I faced them, my mouth dry, my eye throbbing. I began slowly, but evidently my throat was tense, because they began shouting, “Louder! Louder!” “We of the younger generation extol the wisdom of that great leader and educator,” I shouted, “who first spoke these flaming words of wis- dom: ‘A ship lost at sea for many days suddenly sighted a friendly ves- sel. From the mast of the unfortunate vessel was seen a signal: “Water, water; we die of thirst!” The answer from the friendly vessel came back: “Cast down your bucket where you are.” The captain of the distressed vessel, at last heeding the injunction, cast down his bucket, and it came up full of fresh sparkling water from the mouth of the Amazon River.’ And like him I say, and in his words, ‘To those of my race who depend upon bettering their condition in a foreign land, or who underesti- mate the importance of cultivating friendly relations with the Southern white man, who is his next-door neighbor, I would say: “Cast down your bucket where you are” — cast it down in making friends in every manly way of the people of all races by whom we are surrounded . . .’” I spoke automatically and with such fervor that I did not realize that the men were still talking and laughing until my dry mouth, filling up with blood from the cut, almost strangled me. I coughed, wanting to stop and go to one of the tall brass, sand-filled spittoons to relieve myself, but a few of the men, especially the superintendent, were listening and I was afraid. So I gulped it down, blood, saliva, and all, and continued. (What powers of endurance I had during those days! What enthusiasm! What a belief in the rightness of things!) I spoke even louder in spite of the pain. But still they talked and still they laughed, as though deaf with cotton in dirty ears. So I spoke with greater emotional emphasis. I closed my ears and swallowed blood until I was nauseated. The speech seemed a hundred times as long as before, but I could not leave out a single word. All had to be said, each memorized nuance considered, rendered. Nor was that all. Whenever I uttered a word of three or more syl lables a group of voices would yell for me to repeat it. I used the phrase “social responsi- bility” and they yelled: “What’s that word you say, boy?” “Social responsibility,” I said. “What?” “Social . . .” “Louder.” “. . . responsibility.” “More!” “Respon —” “Repeat!” “— sibility.” The room filled with the uproar of laughter until, no doubt, dis- tracted by having to gulp down my blood, I made a mistake and yelled

194 symbolism

80

85

90

95

100

a phrase I had often seen denounced in newspaper editorials, heard debated in private. “Social . . .” “What?” they yelled. “. . . equality —” The laughter hung smokelike in the sudden stillness. I opened my eyes, puzzled. Sounds of displeasure filled the room. The M.C. rushed forward. They shouted hostile phrases at me. But I did not understand. A small dry mustached man in the front row blared out, “Say that slowly, son!” “What, sir?” “What you just said!” “Social responsibility, sir,” I said. “You weren’t being smart, were you, boy?” he said, not unkindly. “No, sir!” “You sure that about ‘equality’ was a mistake?” “Oh, yes, sir,” I said. “I was swallowing blood.” “Well, you had better speak more slowly so we can understand. We mean to do right by you, but you’ve got to know your place at all times. All right, now, go on with your speech.” I was afraid. I wanted to leave but I wanted also to speak and I was afraid they’d snatch me down. “Thank you, sir,” I said, beginning where I had left off, and having them ignore me as before. Yet when I finished there was a thunderous applause. I was surprised to see the superintendent come forth with a package wrapped in white tissue paper, and, gesturing for quiet, address the men. “Gentlemen, you see that I did not overpraise this boy. He makes a good speech and some day he’ll lead his people in the proper paths. And I don’t have to tell you that that is important in these days and times. This is a good, smart boy, and so to encourage him in the right direction, in the name of the Board of Education I wish to present him a prize in the form of this . . .” He paused, removing the tissue paper and revealing a gleaming calf- skin brief case. “. . . in the form of this first-class article from Shad Whitmore’s shop.” “Boy,” he said, addressing me, “take this prize and keep it well. Con- sider it a badge of office. Prize it. Keep developing as you are and some day it will be filled with important papers that will help shape the des- tiny of your people.” I was so moved that I could hardly express my thanks. A rope of bloody saliva forming a shape like an undiscovered continent drooled upon the leather and I wiped it quickly away. I felt an importance that I had never dreamed. “Open it and see what’s inside,” I was told.

ellison / battle royal 195

105

My fingers a-tremble, I complied, smelling the fresh leather and finding an official-looking document inside. It was a scholarship to the state col- lege for Negroes. My eyes filled with tears and I ran awkwardly off the floor. I was overjoyed; I did not even mind when I discovered that the gold pieces I had scrambled for were brass pocket tokens advertising a certain make of automobile. When I reached home everyone was excited. Next day the neighbors came to congratulate me. I even felt safe from grandfather, whose death- bed curse usually spoiled my triumphs. I stood beneath his photograph with my brief case in hand and smiled triumphantly into his stolid black peasant’s face. It was a face that fascinated me. The eyes seemed to follow everywhere I went. That night I dreamed I was at a circus with him and that he refused to laugh at the clowns no matter what they did. Then later he told me to open my brief case and read what was inside and I did, finding an official envelope stamped with the state seal; and inside the envelope I found another and another, endlessly, and I thought I would fall of weariness. “Them’s years,” he said. “Now open that one.” And I did and in it I found an engraved document containing a short message in letters of gold. “Read it,” my grandfather said. “Out loud!” “To Whom It May Concern,” I intoned. “Keep This Nigger-Boy Running.” I awoke with the old man’s laughter ringing in my ears. (It was a dream I was to remember and dream again for many years after. But at that time I had no insight into its meaning. First I had to attend college.)

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss how the protagonist’s expectations are similar to what has come to be known as the American dream — the assumption that ambition, hard work, perseverance, intelligence, and virtue always lead to success.

2. How does the first paragraph of the story sum up the conflict that the narrator confronts? In what sense is he “invisible”?

3. What is the symbolic significance of the naked blonde? What details reveal that she represents more than a sexual tease in the story?

4. How does the battle in the boxing ring and the scramble for money afterward suggest the kind of control whites have over blacks in the story?

5. How can the dream at the end of the story be related to the major incidents that precede it?

6. Given the grandfather’s advice, explain how “meekness” can be a “dangerous activity” and a weapon against oppression.

7. Imagine the story as told from a third-person point of view. How would this change the story? Do you think the story would be more

196 symbolism

5

or less effective told from a third-person point of view? Explain your answer.

8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare and contrast Elli- son’s view of the South with William Faulk ner’s in “A Rose for Emily” (p. 55).

Peter Meinke (b. 1932)

Born in Brooklyn, New York, Peter Meinke was educated at Hamilton College (B.A., 1955), the University of Michigan (M.A., 1961), and the Uni- versity of Minnesota (Ph.D., 1965). He has taught literature and creative writing at a number of schools, including Hamline University, Eckerd Col- lege, and Old Dominion University. Though Meinke is primarily a poet, he has also published two collections of short stories: Piano Tuner (1986), which won the Flannery O’Connor Award, and Unheard Music (2007). In a 1990 interview in Clockwatch Review, Meinke discussed the similarities he sees between short stories and poetry: “I think that certainly poetry and short stories are more alike than short stories and novels, because that’s the main decision — leaving out the boffo endings, leaving out conversa- tions that are extraneous. There’s a big empty spot around poems and short stories, certainly. That’s the thing they have very strongly in com- mon.” “The Cranes” is a fine example of the kind of literary economy that Meinke believes poetry and short stories often share.

The Cranes 1987

“Oh!” she said, “what are those, the huge white ones?” Along the marshy shore two tall and stately birds, staring motionless toward the Gulf, tow- ered above the bobbing egrets and scurrying plovers. “Well, I can’t believe it,” he said. “I’ve been coming here for years and never saw one.” “But what are they? Don’t make me guess or anything; it makes me feel dumb.” They leaned forward in the car, and the shower curtain spread over the front seat crackled and hissed. “They’ve got to be whooping cranes, nothing else so big.” One of the birds turned gracefully, as if to acknowledge the old Dodge parked alone in the tall grasses. “See the black legs and black wingtips? Big! Why don’t I have my binoculars?” He looked at his wife and smiled. “Well,” he continued after a while, “I’ve seen enough birds. But whooping cranes, they’re rare. Not many left.” “They’re lovely. They make the little birds look like clowns.” “I could use a few clowns,” he said. “A few laughs never hurt anybody.” “Are you all right?” She put a hand on his thin arm. “I feel I’m responsible. Maybe this is the wrong thing.”

meinke / the cranes 197

10

15

20

25

30

“God, no!” His voice changed. “No way. I can’t smoke, can’t drink martinis, no coffee, no candy. I not only can’t leap buildings in a single bound, I can hardly get up the goddamn stairs.” She was smiling. “Do you remember the time you drank nine marti- nis and asked that young priest to step outside and see whose side God was on?” “What a jerk I was! How have you put up with me all this time?” “Oh no! I was proud of you. You were so funny, and that priest was a snot.” “Now you tell me.” The cranes were moving slowly over a small hill- ock, wings opening and closing like bellows. “It’s all right. It’s enough,” he said again. “How old am I anyway, 130?” “Really,” she said, “it’s me. Ever since the accident it’s been one thing after another. I’m just a lot of trouble to everybody.” “Let’s talk about something else,” he said. “Do you want to listen to the radio? How about turning on that preacher station so we can throw up?” “No,” she said, “I just want to watch the birds. And listen to you.” “You must be pretty tired of that.” She turned her head from the window and looked into his eyes. “I never got tired of listening to you. Never.” “Well, that’s good,” he said. “It’s just that when my mouth opens, your eyes tend to close.” “They do not!” she said, and began to laugh, but the laugh turned into a cough and he had to pat her on the back until she stopped. They leaned back in silence and looked toward the Gulf stretching out beyond the horizon. In the distance, the water looked like metal, still and hard. “I wish they’d court,” he said. “I wish we could see them court, the cranes. They put on a show. He bows like Nijinksy and jumps straight up in the air.” “What does she do?” “She lies down and he lands on top of her.” “No,” she said, “I’m serious.” “Well, I forget. I’ve never seen it. But I do remember that they mate for life and live a long time. They’re probably older than we are. Their feathers are falling out and their kids never write.” She was quiet again. He turned in his seat, picked up an object wrapped in a plaid towel, and placed it between them in the front. “Here’s looking at you, kid,” he said. “Do they really mate for life? I’m glad — they’re so beautiful.” “Yep. Audubon said that’s why they’re almost extinct: a failure of imagination.” “I don’t believe that,” she said. “I think there’ll always be whooping cranes.” “Why not?” he said. “I wish the children were more settled. I keep thinking it’s my fault.”

198 symbolism

35

40

“You think everything’s your fault. Nicaragua. Ozone depletion. Nothing is your fault. They’ll be fine, and anyway, they’re not children anymore. Kids are different today, that’s all. You were terrific.” He paused. “You were terrific in ways I couldn’t tell the kids about.” “I should hope not.” She laughed and began coughing again, but held his hand when he reached over. When the cough subsided they sat quietly, looking down at their hands as if they were objects in a museum. “I used to have pretty hands,” she said. “I remember.” “Do you? Really?” “I remember everything,” he said. “You always forgot everything.” “Well, now I remember.” “Did you bring something for your ears?” “No, I can hardly hear anything, anyway.” But he turned his head at a sudden squabble among the smaller birds. The cranes were stepping delicately away from the commotion. “I’m tired,” she said. “Yes.” He leaned over and kissed her, barely touching her lips. “Tell me,” he said, “did I really drink nine martinis?” But she had already closed her eyes and only smiled. Outside, the wind ruffled the bleached-out grasses, and the birds in the white glare seemed almost transparent. The hull of the car gleamed beetle-like — dull and somehow sinister in its metallic isolation. Suddenly, the two cranes plunged upward, their great wings beating the air and their long slender necks pointed like arrows toward the sun.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What happens at the end of “The Cranes”? What do you think this story is about?

2. Point to incidences of suspenseful foreshadowing and discuss how they affect your understanding of the plot. Were you aware of the foreshadowing elements on a first reading or only after subsequent readings?

3. How might the cranes be read as both conventional and literary sym- bols in this story?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Consider how symbols con- vey the central meanings of “The Cranes” and of either Kate Cho- pin’s “The Story of an Hour” (p. 13) or Gail Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38).

199

To produce a mighty book, you must choose a mighty theme.

— HERMAN MELVILLE, from Moby-Dick, 1851

Theme is the central idea or meaning of a story. It provides a unifying point around which the plot, characters, setting, point of view, symbols, and other elements of a story are organized. In some works the theme is explicitly stated. Nathaniel Hawthorne’s “Wakefield,” for example, begins with the author telling the reader that the point of his story is “done up neatly, and condensed into the final sentence.” Most modern writers, however, present their themes implicitly (as Hawthorne does in the majority of his stories), so determining the underlying mean- ing of a work often requires more effort than it does from the reader of “Wakefield.” One reason for the difficulty is that the theme is fused into the elements of the story, and these must be carefully examined in relation to one another as well as to the work as a whole. But then that’s the value of determining the theme, for it requires a close analysis of all the elements of a work. Such a close reading often results in sharper insights into this overlooked character or that seemingly unrelated inci- dent. Accounting for the details and seeing how they fit together result in greater understanding of the story. Themes are not always easy to express, but some principles can aid you in articulating the central meaning of a work. First distinguish between the theme of a story and its subject. They are not equivalents.

7 Theme

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 200 theme

Many stories share identical subjects, such as fate, death, innocence, youth, loneliness, racial prejudice, and disillusionment. Karen van der Zee’s “A Secret Sorrow” (p. 28) and Gail Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38) both focus on marriage. Yet each story usually makes its own statement about the subject and expresses a different view of life. Although readers may differ in their interpretations of a story, that does not mean that any interpretation is valid. If we were to assert that Krebs’s dissatisfactions in Hemingway’s “Soldier’s Home” (p. 117) could be readily eliminated by his settling down to marriage and a decent job (his mother’s solution), we would have missed Hemingway’s purposes in writing the story; we would have failed to see how Krebs’s war experi- ences have caused him to reexamine the assumptions and beliefs that previously nurtured him but now seem unreal to him. We would have to ignore much in the story in order to arrive at such a reading. To be valid, the statement of the theme should be responsive to the details of the story. It must be based on evidence within the story rather than solely on experiences, attitudes, or values the reader brings to the work — such as personally knowing a war veteran who successfully adjusted to civilian life after getting a good job and marrying. Familiarity with the subject matter of a story can certainly be an aid to interpretation, but it should not get in the way of seeing the author’s perspective. Sometimes readers too hastily conclude that a story’s theme always consists of a moral, some kind of lesson that is dramatized by the vari- ous elements of the work. There are stories that do this — Hawthorne’s “Wakefield,” for example. Here are the final sentences in his story about a middle-aged man who drops out of life for twenty years:

He has left us much food for thought, a portion of which shall lend its wisdom to a moral, and be shaped into a figure. Amid the seeming confusion of our mysterious world, individuals are so nicely adjusted to a system, and systems to one another and to a whole, that, by stepping aside for a moment, a man exposes himself to a fearful risk of losing his place forever. Like Wakefield, he may become, as it were, the Outcast of the Universe.

Most stories, however, do not include such direct caveats about the conduct of life. A tendency to look for a lesson in a story can produce a reductive and inaccurate formulation of its theme.

In fact, a good many stories go beyond tradi- tional moral values to explore human behavior instead of condemning or endorsing it. Chekhov’s treatment of the adulterous affair between Gurov and Anna in “The Lady with the Pet Dog” (p. 139) portrays a love that is valuable and true despite the conventional moral codes it violates.

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

theme 201

There is no precise formula that can take you to the center of a story’s meaning and help you to articulate it. However, several strategies are practical and useful once you have read the story. Apply these pointers during a second or third reading:

1. Pay attention to the title of the story. It often provides a lead to a major symbol or to the subject around which the theme develops (Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman,” p. 38).

2. Look for details in the story that have potential for symbolic meanings. Careful consideration of names, places, objects, minor characters, and incidents can lead you to the central meaning — for example, think of the stripper in Ellison’s “Battle Royal” (p. 184). Be especially attentive to elements you did not understand on the first reading.

3. Decide whether the protagonist changes or develops some important insight as a result of the action. Carefully examine any generalizations the protagonist or narrator makes about the events in the story.

4. When you formulate the theme of the story in your own words, write it down in one or two complete sentences that make some point about the subject matter. Revenge may be the subject of a story, but its theme should make a statement about revenge: “Instead of providing satisfaction, revenge defeats the best in one’s self ” is one possibility.

5. Be certain that your expression of the theme is a generalized statement rather than a specific description of particular people, places, and incidents in the story. Contrast the preceding statement of a theme on revenge with this too-specific one: “In Nathaniel Hawthorne’s The Scarlet Letter, Roger Chillingworth loses his humanity owing to his single-minded attempts to punish Arthur Dimmesdale for fathering a child with Chillingworth’s wife, Hester.” Hawthorne’s theme is not restricted to a single fictional character named Chillingworth but to anyone whose life is ruined by revenge.

6. Be wary of using clichés as a way of stating theme. They tend to short- circuit ideas instead of generating them. It may be tempting to resort to something like “Love conquers all” as a statement of the theme of Chekhov’s “The Lady with the Pet Dog” (p. 139); however, even the slightest second thought reveals how much more ambiguous the ending of that story is.

7. Be aware that some stories emphasize theme less than others. Stories that have as their major purpose adventure, humor, mystery, or terror may have little or no theme. In Edgar Allan Poe’s “The Pit and the Pendulum,” for example, the protagonist is not used to condemn torture; instead, he becomes a sensitive gauge to measure the pain and horror he endures at the hands of his captors.

What is most valuable about articulating the theme of a work is the process by which the theme is determined. Ultimately, the theme is expressed by the story itself and is inseparable from the experience of

202 theme

reading the story. Tim O’Brien’s explanation of “How to Tell a True War Story” (p. 318) is probably true of most kinds of stories: “In a true war story, if there’s a moral [or theme] at all, it’s like the thread that makes the cloth. You can’t tease it out. You can’t extract the meaning without unraveling the deeper meaning.” Describing the theme should not be a way to consume a story, to be done with it. It is a means of clarifying our thinking about what we’ve read and probably felt intuitively. Guy de Maupassant’s “The Necklace,” Stephen Crane’s “The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky,” and Dagoberto Gilb’s “Love in L.A.” are three sto- ries whose themes emerge from the authors’ skillful use of plot, charac- ter, setting, and symbol.

Guy de Maupassant (1850–1893)

Born in Normandy, France, Guy de Maupassant studied law for a short time before joining the army to serve in the Franco-Prussian War (1870– 1871). After the war, he worked as a civil servant in Paris but quit his job in 1880 to devote himself to writing. During the 1880s, he published nearly three hundred stories, six novels, and several plays. His stories are famous for their modern compactness and their freedom from authorial digressions and neatly tied-up moral endings. “The Necklace,” perhaps Maupassant’s best-known story, has intrigued generations of readers.

The Necklace 1884 TRANSLATED BY MARJORIE LAURIE

She was one of those pretty and charming girls who are sometimes, as if by a mistake of destiny, born in a family of clerks. She had no dowry, no expectations, no means of being known, understood, loved, wedded by any rich and distinguished man; and she let herself be married to a little clerk at the Ministry of Public Instructions. She dressed plainly because she could not dress well, but she was as unhappy as though she had really fallen from her proper station, since with women there is neither caste nor rank: and beauty, grace, and charm act instead of family and birth. Natural fi neness, instinct for what is ele- gant, suppleness of wit, are the sole hierarchy, and make from women of the people the equals of the very greatest ladies. She suffered ceaselessly, feeling herself born for all the delicacies and all the luxuries. She suffered from the poverty of her dwelling, from the wretched look of the walls, from the worn-out chairs, from the ugliness of the curtains. All those things, of which another woman of her rank would never even have been conscious, tortured her and made her angry. The sight of the little Breton peasant, who did her humble housework, aroused in her regrets which were despairing, and distracted dreams. She

maupassant / the necklace 203

5

10

15

thought of the silent antechambers hung with Oriental tapestry, lit by tall bronze candelabra, and of the two great footmen in knee breeches who sleep in the big armchairs, made drowsy by the heavy warmth of the hot air stove. She thought of the long salons fi tted up with ancient silk, of the delicate furniture carrying priceless curiosities, and of the coquettish perfumed boudoirs made for talks at fi ve o’clock with intimate friends, with men famous and sought after, whom all women envy and whose attention they all desire. When she sat down to dinner, before the round table covered with a tablecloth three days old, opposite her husband, who uncovered the soup tureen and declared with an enchanted air, “Ah, the good pot-au-feul! I don’t know anything better than that,” she thought of dainty dinners, of shining silverware, of tapestry which peopled the walls with ancient per- sonages and with strange birds fl ying in the midst of a fairy forest; and she thought of delicious dishes served on marvelous plates, and of the whispered gallantries which you listen to with a sphinxlike smile, while you are eating the pink fl esh of a trout or the wings of a quail. She had no dresses, no jewels, nothing. And she loved nothing but that; she felt made for that. She would so have liked to please, to be envied, to be charming, to be sought after. She had a friend, a former schoolmate at the convent, who was rich, and whom she did not like to go and see any more, because she suffered so much when she came back. But one evening, her husband returned home with a triumphant air, and holding a large envelope in his hand. “There,” said he. “Here is something for you.” She tore the paper sharply, and drew out a printed card which bore these words: “The Minister of Public Instruction and Mme. Georges Rampon- neau request the honor of M. and Mme. Loisel’s company at the palace of the Ministry on Monday evening, January eighteenth.” Instead of being delighted, as her husband hoped, she threw the invitation on the table with disdain, murmuring: “What do you want me to do with that?” “But, my dear, I thought you would be glad. You never go out, and this is such a fi ne opportunity. I had awful trouble to get it. Everyone wants to go; it is very select, and they are not giving many invitations to clerks. The whole offi cial world will be there.” She looked at him with an irritated glance, and said, impatiently: “And what do you want me to put on my back?” He had not thought of that; he stammered: “Why, the dress you go to the theater in. It looks very well, to me.” He stopped, distracted, seeing his wife was crying. Two great tears descended slowly from the corners of her eyes toward the corners of her mouth. He stuttered: “What’s the matter? What’s the matter?”

204 theme

20

25

30

35

40

45

But, by violent effort, she had conquered her grief, and she replied, with a calm voice, while she wiped her wet cheeks: “Nothing. Only I have no dress and therefore I can’t go to this ball. Give your card to some colleague whose wife is better equipped than I.” He was in despair. He resumed: “Come, let us see, Mathilde. How much would it cost, a suitable dress, which you could use on other occasions. Something very simple?” She refl ected several seconds, making her calculations and wonder- ing also what sum she could ask without drawing on herself an immedi- ate refusal and a frightened exclamation from the economical clerk. Finally, she replied, hesitatingly: “I don’t know exactly, but I think I could manage it with four hun- dred francs.” He had grown a little pale, because he was laying aside just that amount to buy a gun and treat himself to a little shooting next summer on the plain of Nanterre, with several friends who went to shoot larks down there, of a Sunday. But he said: “All right. I will give you four hundred francs. And try to have a pretty dress.” The day of the ball drew near, and Mme. Loisel seemed sad, uneasy, anx- ious. Her dress was ready, however. Her husband said to her one evening: “What is the matter? Come, you’ve been so queer these last three days.” And she answered: “It annoys me not to have a single jewel, not a single stone, nothing to put on. I shall look like distress. I should almost rather not go at all.” He resumed: “You might wear natural fl owers. It’s very stylish at this time of the year. For ten francs you can get two or three magnifi cent roses.” She was not convinced. “No; there’s nothing more humiliating than to look poor among other women who are rich.” But her husband cried: “How stupid you are! Go look up your friend Mme. Forestier, and ask her to lend you some jewels. You’re quite thick enough with her to do that.” She uttered a cry of joy: “It’s true. I never thought of it.” The next day she went to her friend and told of her distress. Mme. Forestier went to a wardrobe with a glass door, took out a large jewelbox, brought it back, opened it, and said to Mme. Loisel: “Choose, choose, my dear.” She saw fi rst of all some bracelets, then a pearl necklace, then a Vene- tian cross, gold and precious stones of admirable workmanship. She tried on the ornaments before the glass, hesitated, could not make up her mind to part with them, to give them back. She kept asking:

maupassant / the necklace 205

50

55

60

“Haven’t you any more?” “Why, yes. Look. I don’t know what you like.” All of a sudden she discovered, in a black satin box, a superb neck- lace of diamonds, and her heart began to beat with an immoderate desire. Her hands trembled as she took it. She fastened it around her throat, outside her high-necked dress, and remained lost in ecstasy at the sight of herself. Then she asked, hesitating, fi lled with anguish: “Can you lend me that, only that?” “Why, yes, certainly.” She sprang upon the neck of her friend, kissed her passionately, then fl ed with her treasure. The day of the ball arrived. Mme. Loisel made a great success. She was prettier than them all, elegant, gracious, smiling, and crazy with joy. All the men looked at her, asked her name, endeavored to be intro- duced. All the attachés of the Cabinet wanted to waltz with her. She was remarked by the minister himself. She danced with intoxication, with passion, made drunk by plea- sure, forgetting all, in the triumph of her beauty, in the glory of her suc- cess, in a sort of cloud of happiness composed of all this homage, of all this admiration, of all these awakened desires, and of that sense of com- plete victory which is so sweet to a woman’s heart. She went away about four o’clock in the morning. Her husband had been sleeping since midnight, in a little deserted anteroom, with three other gentlemen whose wives were having a good time. He threw over her shoulders the wraps which he had brought, modest wraps of com- mon life, whose poverty contrasted with the elegance of the ball dress. She felt this, and wanted to escape so as not to be remarked by the other women, who were enveloping themselves in costly furs. Loisel held her back. “Wait a bit. You will catch cold outside. I will go and call a cab.” But she did not listen to him, and rapidly descended the stairs. When they were in the street they did not fi nd a carriage; and they began to look for one, shouting after the cabmen whom they saw passing by at a distance. They went down toward the Seine, in despair, shivering with cold. At last they found on the quay one of those ancient noctambulant coupés° which, exactly as if they were ashamed to show their misery during the day, are never seen round Paris until after nightfall. It took them to their door in the Rue des Martyrs, and once more, sadly, they climbed up homeward. All was ended, for her. And as to him, he refl ected that he must be at the Ministry at ten o’clock. She removed the wraps which covered her shoulders before the glass, so as once more to see herself in all her glory. But suddenly she uttered a cry. She no longer had the necklace around her neck!

coupés: Closed four-wheeled carriages.

206 theme

65

70

75

80

85

90

Her husband, already half undressed, demanded: “What is the matter with you?” She turned madly toward him. “I have — I have — I’ve lost Mme. Forestier’s necklace.” He stood up, distracted. “What! — how? — impossible!” And they looked in the folds of her dress, in the folds of her cloak, in her pockets, everywhere. They did not fi nd it. He asked: “You’re sure you had it on when you left the ball?” “Yes, I felt it in the vestibule of the palace.” “But if you had lost it in the street we should have heard it fall. It must be in the cab.” “Yes. Probably. Did you take his number?” “No. And you, didn’t you notice it?” “No.” They looked, thunderstruck, at one another. At last Loisel put on his clothes. “I shall go back on foot,” he said, “over the whole route which we have taken to see if I can fi nd it.” And he went out. She sat waiting on a chair in her ball dress, without strength to go to bed, overwhelmed, without fi re, without a thought. Her husband came back about seven o’clock. He had found nothing. He went to Police Headquarters, to the newspaper offi ces, to offer a reward; he went to the cab companies — everywhere, in fact, whither he was urged by the least suspicion of hope. She waited all day, in the same condition of mad fear before this ter- rible calamity. Loisel returned at night with a hollow, pale face; he had discovered nothing. “You must write to your friend,” said he, “that you have broken the clasp of her necklace and that you are having it mended. That will give us time to turn round.” She wrote at his dictation. At the end of a week they had lost all hope. And Loisel, who had aged fi ve years, declared: “We must consider how to replace that ornament.” The next day they took the box which had contained it, and they went to the jeweler whose name was found within. He consulted his books. “It was not I, madame, who sold that necklace; I must simply have furnished the case.” Then they went from jeweler to jeweler, searching for a necklace like the other, consulting their memories, sick both of them with chagrin and anguish.

maupassant / the necklace 207

95

100

They found, in a shop at the Palais Royal, a string of diamonds which seemed to them exactly like the one they looked for. It was worth forty thousand francs. They could have it for thirty-six. So they begged the jeweler not to sell it for three days yet. And they made a bargain that he should buy it back for thirty-four thousand francs, in case they found the other one before the end of February. Loisel possessed eighteen thousand francs which his father had left him. He would borrow the rest. He did borrow, asking a thousand francs of one, fi ve hundred of another, fi ve louis here, three louis there. He gave notes, took up ruinous obligations, dealt with usurers and all the race of lenders. He compro- mised all the rest of his life, risked his signature without even knowing if he could meet it; and, frightened by the pains yet to come, by the black misery which was about to fall upon him, by the prospect of all the phys- ical privation and of all the moral tortures which he was to suffer, he went to get the new necklace, putting down upon the merchant’s coun- ter thirty-six thousand francs. When Mme. Loisel took back the necklace, Mme. Forestier said to her, with a chilly manner: “You should have returned it sooner; I might have needed it.” She did not open the case, as her friend had so much feared. If she had detected the substitution, what would she have thought, what would she have said? Would she not have taken Mme. Loisel for a thief? Mme. Loisel now knew the horrible existence of the needy. She took her part, moreover, all of a sudden, with heroism. That dreadful debt must be paid. She would pay it. They dismissed their servant; they changed their lodgings; they rented a garret under the roof. She came to know what heavy housework meant and the odious cares of the kitchen. She washed the dishes, using her rosy nails on the greasy pots and pans. She washed the dirty linen, the shirts, and the dishcloths, which she dried upon a line; she carried the slops down to the street every morning, and carried up the water, stopping for breath at every landing. And, dressed like a woman of the people, she went to the fruiterer, the grocer, the butcher, her basket on her arm, bargaining, insulted, defending her miserable money sou by sou. Each month they had to meet some notes, renew others, obtain more time. Her husband worked in the evening making a fair copy of some tradesman’s accounts, and late at night he often copied manuscript for fi ve sous a page. And this life lasted for ten years. At the end of ten years, they had paid everything, everything, with the rates of usury, and the accumulations of the compound interest. Mme. Loisel looked old now. She had become the woman of impov- erished households — strong and hard and rough. With frowsy hair, skirts

208 theme

105

110

115

120

125

askew, and red hands, she talked loud while washing the fl oor with great swishes of water. But sometimes, when her husband was at the offi ce, she sat down near the window, and she thought of that gay evening of long ago, of that ball where she had been so beautiful and so fêted. What would have happened if she had not lost the necklace? Who knows? Who knows? How life is strange and changeful! How little a thing is needed for us to be lost or to be saved? But, one Sunday, having gone to take a walk in the Champs Elysées to refresh herself from the labor of the week, she suddenly perceived a woman who was leading a child. It was Mme. Forestier, still young, still beautiful, still charming. Mme. Loisel felt moved. Was she going to speak to her? Yes, certainly. And now that she had paid, she was going to tell her all about it. Why not? She went up. “Good-day, Jeanne.” The other, astonished to be familiarly addressed by this plain good- wife, did not recognize her at all, and stammered. “But—madam!—I do not know—you must be mistaken.” “No. I am Mathilde Loisel.” Her friend uttered a cry. “Oh, my poor Mathilde! How you are changed!” “Yes, I have had days hard enough, since I have seen you, days wretched enough—and that because of you!” “Of me? How so?” “Do you remember that diamond necklace which you lent me to wear at the ministerial ball?” “Yes. Well?” “Well, I lost it.” “What do you mean? You brought it back.” “I brought you back another just like it. And for this we have been ten years paying. You can understand that it was not easy for us, who had nothing. At last it is ended, and I am very glad.” Mme. Forestier had stopped. “You say that you bought a necklace of diamonds to replace mine?” “Yes. You never noticed it, then! They were very like.” And she smiled with a joy which was proud and naive at once. Mme. Forestier, strongly moved, took her two hands. “Oh, my poor Mathilde! Why, my necklace was paste. It was worth at most fi ve hundred francs!”

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. After reading the fi rst fi ve paragraphs of the story, how do you feel about Mme. Loisel? Do you like her or not? Why? Does your opinion of her change by the end of the story?

2. What is the confl ict in the story?

crane / the bride comes to yellow sky 209

3. Locate the climax in the story. Is there a resolution to the confl ict? Explain.

4. What role does French society play in the story? 5. How well does paragraph 105 sum up the point of the story? What do

you think is the story’s theme? 6. Does this story have a moral? If so, what is it, and is it stated explic-

itly or merely implied? 7. What do you think is Mme. Loisel’s response to Mme. Forestier’s tell-

ing her that the necklace was merely paste? Write a conclusion to the story that describes her response.

8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing the ending of “The Necklace” with that of Raymond Carver’s “Popular Mechanics” (p. 227). What is the effect of the ending on your reading of each story?

Stephen Crane (1871–1900)

Born in Newark, New Jersey, Stephen Crane attended Lafayette College and Syracuse Uni- versity and then worked as a freelance jour- nalist in New York City. He wrote newspaper pieces, short stories, poems, and novels for his entire, brief adult life. His first book, Maggie: A Girl of the Streets (1893), is a story about New York slum life and prostitution. His most famous novel, The Red Badge of Courage (1895), gives readers a vivid, convincing re-creation of Civil War battles, even though Crane had never been to war. However, Crane was per- sonally familiar with the American West, where he traveled as a reporter. “The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky” includes some of the ingredients of a typical popular western — a confrontation between a marshal and a drunk who shoots up the town.

The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky 1898

I

The great Pullman was whirling onward with such dignity of motion that a glance from the window seemed simply to prove that the plains of Texas were pouring eastward. Vast flats of green grass, dull-hued spaces of mesquit and cactus, little groups of frame houses, woods of light and

© Bettmann/corbis.

210 theme

5

10

tender trees, all were sweeping into the east, sweeping over the horizon, a precipice. A newly married pair had boarded this coach at San Antonio. The man’s face was reddened from many days in the wind and sun, and a direct result of his new black clothes was that his brick-colored hands were constantly performing in a most conscious fashion. From time to time he looked down respectfully at his attire. He sat with a hand on each knee, like a man waiting in a barber’s shop. The glances he devoted to other passengers were furtive and shy. The bride was not pretty, nor was she very young. She wore a dress of blue cashmere, with small reservations of velvet here and there, and with steel buttons abounding. She continually twisted her head to regard her puff sleeves, very stiff, straight, and high. They embarrassed her. It was quite apparent that she had cooked, and that she expected to cook, dutifully. The blushes caused by the careless scrutiny of some pas- sengers as she had entered the car were strange to see upon this plain, under-class countenance, which was drawn in placid, almost emotion- less lines. They were evidently very happy. “Ever been in a parlor-car before?” he asked, smiling with delight. “No,” she answered; “I never was. It’s fine, ain’t it?” “Great! And then after a while we’ll go forward to the diner, and get a big lay-out. Finest meal in the world. Charge a dollar.” “Oh, do they?” cried the bride. “Charge a dollar? Why, that’s too much — for us — ain’t it, Jack?” “Not this trip, anyhow,” he answered bravely. “We’re going to go the whole thing.” Later he explained to her about the trains. “You see, it’s a thousand miles from one end of Texas to the other; and this train runs right across it, and never stops but four times.” He had the pride of an owner. He pointed out to her the dazzling fittings of the coach; and in truth her eyes opened wider as she contemplated the sea-green figured velvet, the shining brass, silver, and glass, the wood that gleamed as darkly brilliant as the surface of a pool of oil. At one end a bronze figure sturdily held a support for a separated chamber, and at convenient places on the ceiling were frescoes in olive and silver. To the minds of the pair, their surroundings reflected the glory of their marriage that morning in San Antonio; this was the environment of their new estate; and the man’s face in particular beamed with an ela- tion that made him appear ridiculous to the negro porter. This individ- ual at times surveyed them from afar with an amused and superior grin. On other occasions he bullied them with skill in ways that did not make it exactly plain to them that they were being bullied. He subtly used all the manners of the most unconquerable kind of snobbery. He oppressed them; but of this oppression they had small knowledge, and they speed- ily forgot that infrequently a number of travelers covered them with

crane / the bride comes to yellow sky 211

15

stares of derisive enjoyment. Historically there was supposed to be some- thing infinitely humorous in their situation. “We are due in Yellow Sky at 3:42,” he said, looking tenderly into her eyes. “Oh, are we?” she said, as if she had not been aware of it. To evince surprise at her husband’s statement was part of her wifely amiability. She took from a pocket a little silver watch; and as she held it before her, and stared at it with a frown of attention, the new husband’s face shone. “I bought it in San Anton’ from a friend of mine,” he told her gleefully. “It’s seventeen minutes past twelve,” she said, looking up at him with a kind of shy and clumsy coquetry. A passenger, noting this play, grew excessively sardonic, and winked at himself in one of the numerous mirrors. At last they went to the dining-car. Two rows of negro waiters, in glowing white suits, surveyed their entrance with the interest, and also the equanimity, of men who had been forewarned. The pair fell to the lot of a waiter who happened to feel pleasure in steering them through their meal. He viewed them with the manner of a fatherly pilot, his counte- nance radiant with benevolence. The patronage, entwined with the ordi- nary deference, was not plain to them. And yet, as they returned to their coach, they showed in their faces a sense of escape. To the left, miles down a long purple slope, was a little ribbon of mist where moved the keening Rio Grande. The train was approaching it at an angle, and the apex was Yellow Sky. Presently it was apparent that, as the distance from Yellow Sky grew shorter, the husband became commensurately restless. His brick-red hands were more insistent in their prominence. Occasionally he was even rather absent-minded and far-away when the bride leaned forward and addressed him. As a matter of truth, Jack Potter was beginning to find the shadow of a deed weigh upon him like a leaden slab. He, the town marshal of Yellow Sky, a man known, liked, and feared in his corner, a prominent person, had gone to San Antonio to meet a girl he believed he loved, and there, after the usual prayers, had actually induced her to marry him, without consulting Yellow Sky for any part of the transaction. He was now bring- ing his bride before an innocent and unsuspecting community. Of course people in Yellow Sky married as it pleased them in accor- dance with a general custom; but such was Potter’s thought of his duty to his friends, or of their idea of his duty, or of an unspoken form which does not control men in these matters, that he felt he was heinous. He had committed an extraordinary crime. Face to face with this girl in San Antonio, and spurred by his sharp impulse, he had gone headlong over all the social hedges. At San Antonio he was like a man hidden in the dark. A knife to sever any friendly duty, any form, was easy to his hand in that remote city. But the hour of Yellow Sky — the hour of daylight — was approaching.

212 theme

20

25

30

He knew full well that his marriage was an important thing to his town. It could only be exceeded by the burning of the new hotel. His friends could not forgive him. Frequently he had reflected on the advis- ability of telling them by telegraph, but a new cowardice had been upon him. He feared to do it. And now the train was hurrying him toward a scene of amazement, glee, and reproach. He glanced out of the window at the line of haze swinging slowly in toward the train. Yellow Sky had a kind of brass band, which played painfully, to the delight of the populace. He laughed without heart as he thought of it. If the citizens could dream of his prospective arrival with his bride, they would parade the band at the station and escort them, amid cheers and laughing congratulations, to his adobe home. He resolved that he would use all the devices of speed and plains- craft in making the journey from the station to his house. Once within that safe citadel, he could issue some sort of vocal bulletin, and then not go among the citizens until they had time to wear off a little of their enthusiasm. The bride looked anxiously at him. “What’s worrying you, Jack?” He laughed again. “I’m not worrying, girl; I’m only thinking of Yel- low Sky.” She flushed in comprehension. A sense of mutual guilt invaded their minds and developed a finer tenderness. They looked at each other with eyes softly aglow. But Potter often laughed the same nervous laugh; the flush upon the bride’s face seemed quite permanent. The traitor to the feelings of Yellow Sky narrowly watched the speed- ing landscape. “We’re nearly there,” he said. Presently the porter came and announced the proximity of Pot- ter’s home. He held a brush in his hand, and, with all his airy superiority gone, he brushed Potter’s new clothes as the latter slowly turned this way and that way. Potter fumbled out a coin and gave it to the porter, as he had seen others do. It was a heavy and muscle-bound business, as that of a man shoeing his first horse. The porter took their bag, and as the train began to slow they moved forward to the hooded platform of the car. Presently the two engines and their long string of coaches rushed into the station of Yellow Sky. “They have to take water here,” said Potter, from a constricted throat and in mournful cadence, as one announcing death. Before the train stopped his eye had swept the length of the platform, and he was glad and astonished to see there was none upon it but the station-agent, who, with a slightly hurried and anxious air, was walking toward the water- tanks. When the train had halted, the porter alighted first, and placed in position a little temporary step. “Come on, girl,” said Potter, hoarsely. As he helped her down they each laughed on a false note. He took the bag from the negro, and bade

crane / the bride comes to yellow sky 213

35

his wife cling to his arm. As they slunk rapidly away, his hang-dog glance perceived that they were unloading the two trunks, and also that the station-agent, far ahead near the baggage-car, had turned and was running toward him, making gestures. He laughed, and groaned as he laughed, when he noted the first effect of his marital bliss upon Yellow Sky. He gripped his wife’s arm firmly to his side, and they fled. Behind them the porter stood, chuckling fatuously.

II

The California express on the Southern Railway was due at Yellow Sky in twenty-one minutes. There were six men at the bar of the Weary Gentleman saloon. One was a drummer° who talked a great deal and rapidly; three were Texans who did not care to talk at that time; and two were Mexican sheep-herders, who did not talk as a general practice in the Weary Gentleman saloon. The barkeeper’s dog lay on the board walk that crossed in front of the door. His head was on his paws, and he glanced drowsily here and there with the constant vigilance of a dog that is kicked on occasion. Across the sandy street were some vivid green grass-plots, so wonderful in appearance, amid the sands that burned near them in a blazing sun, that they caused a doubt in the mind. They exactly resembled the grass mats used to represent lawns on the stage. At the cooler end of the railway station, a man without a coat sat in a tilted chair and smoked his pipe. The fresh-cut bank of the Rio Grande circled near the town, and there could be seen beyond it a great plum-colored plain of mesquit. Save for the busy drummer and his companions in the saloon, Yel- low Sky was dozing. The new-comer leaned gracefully upon the bar, and recited many tales with the confidence of a bard who has come upon a new field. “ — and at the moment that the old man fell downstairs with the bureau in his arms, the old woman was coming up with two scuttles of coal, and of course — ” The drummer’s tale was interrupted by a young man who suddenly appeared in the open door. He cried: “Scratchy Wilson’s drunk, and has turned loose with both hands.” The two Mexicans at once set down their glasses and faded out of the rear entrance of the saloon. The drummer, innocent and jocular, answered: “All right, old man. S’pose he has? Come in and have a drink, anyhow.” But the information had made such an obvious cleft in every skull in the room that the drummer was obliged to see its importance. All had become instantly solemn. “Say,” said he, mystified, “what is this?” His three companions made the introductory gesture of eloquent speech; but the young man at the door forestalled them.

drummer: Traveling salesman.

214 theme

40

45

50

55

“It means, my friend,” he answered, as he came into the saloon, “that for the next two hours this town won’t be a health resort.” The barkeeper went to the door, and locked and barred it; reach- ing out of the window, he pulled in heavy wooden shutters, and barred them. Immediately a solemn, chapel-like gloom was upon the place. The drummer was looking from one to another. “But, say,” he cried, “what is this, anyhow? You don’t mean there is going to be a gun-fight?” “Don’t know whether there’ll be a fight or not,” answered one man, grimly; “but there’ll be some shootin’ — some good shootin’.” The young man who had warned them waved his hand. “Oh, there’ll be a fight fast enough, if any one wants it. Anybody can get a fight out there in the street. There’s a fight just waiting.” The drummer seemed to be swayed between the interest of a for- eigner and a perception of personal danger. “What did you say his name was?” he asked. “Scratchy Wilson,” they answered in chorus. “And will he kill anybody? What are you going to do? Does this hap- pen often? Does he rampage around like this once a week or so? Can he break in that door?” “No; he can’t break down that door,” replied the barkeeper. “He’s tried it three times. But when he comes you’d better lay down on the floor, stranger. He’s dead sure to shoot at it, and a bullet may come through.” Thereafter the drummer kept a strict eye upon the door. The time had not yet called for him to hug the floor, but, as a minor precaution, he sidled near the wall. “Will he kill anybody?” he said again. The men laughed low and scornfully at the question. “He’s out to shoot, and he’s out for trouble. Don’t see any good in experimentin’ with him.” “But what do you do in a case like this? What do you do?” A man responded: “Why, he and Jack Potter — ” “But,” in chorus the other men interrupted, “Jack Potter’s in San Anton’.” “Well, who is he? What’s he got to do with it?” “Oh, he’s the town marshal. He goes out and fights Scratchy when he gets on one of these tears.” “Wow!” said the drummer, mopping his brow. “Nice job he’s got.” The voices had toned away to mere whisperings. The drummer wished to ask further questions, which were born of an increasing anx- iety and bewilderment; but when he attempted them, the men merely looked at him in irritation and motioned him to remain silent. A tense waiting hush was upon them. In the deep shadows of the room their eyes shone as they listened for sounds from the street. One man made three gestures at the barkeeper; and the latter, moving like a ghost, handed him a glass and a bottle. The man poured a full glass of whisky,

crane / the bride comes to yellow sky 215

60

and set down the bottle noiselessly. He gulped the whisky in a swallow, and turned again toward the door in immovable silence. The drummer saw that the barkeeper, without a sound, had taken a Winchester from beneath the bar. Later he saw this individual beckoning to him, so he tiptoed across the room. “You better come with me back of the bar.” “No thanks,” said the drummer, perspiring; “I’d rather be where I can make a break for the back door.” Whereupon the man of bottles made a kindly but peremptory ges- ture. The drummer obeyed it, and, finding himself seated on a box with his head below the level of the bar, balm was laid upon his soul at sight of various zinc and copper fittings that bore a resemblance to armor- plate. The barkeeper took a seat comfortably upon an adjacent box. “You see,” he whispered, “this here Scratchy Wilson is a wonder with a gun — a perfect wonder; and when he goes on the war-trail, we hunt our holes — naturally. He’s about the last one of the old gang that used to hang out along the river here. He’s a terror when he’s drunk. When he’s sober he’s all right — kind of simple — wouldn’t hurt a fly — nicest fellow in town. But when he’s drunk — whoo!” There were periods of stillness. “I wish Jack Potter was back from San Anton’,” said the barkeeper. “He shot Wilson up once — in the leg — and he would sail in and pull out the kinks in this thing.” Presently they heard from a distance the sound of a shot, followed by three wild yowls. It instantly removed a bond from the men in the darkened saloon. There was a shuffling of feet. They looked at each other. “Here he comes,” they said.

III

A man in a maroon-colored flannel shirt, which had been purchased for purposes of decoration, and made principally by some Jewish women on the East Side of New York, rounded a corner and walked into the middle of the main street of Yellow Sky. In either hand the man held a long, heavy, blue-black revolver. Often he yelled, and these cries rang through a semblance of a deserted village, shrilly flying over the roofs in a volume that seemed to have no relation to the ordinary vocal strength of a man. It was as if the surrounding stillness formed the arch of a tomb over him. These cries of ferocious challenge rang against walls of silence. And his boots had red tops with gilded imprints, of the kind beloved in winter by little sledding boys on the hillsides of New England. The man’s face flamed in a rage begot of whisky. His eyes, rolling, and yet keen for ambush, hunted the still doorways and windows. He walked with the creeping movement of the midnight cat. As it occurred to him, he roared menacing information. The long revolvers in his hands were as easy as straws; they were removed with an electric swiftness. The little fingers of each hand played sometimes in a musician’s way. Plain

216 theme

65

70

from the low collar of the shirt, the cords of his neck straightened and sank, straightened and sank, as passion moved him. The only sounds were his terrible invitations. The calm adobes preserved their demeanor at the passing of this small thing in the middle of the street. There was no offer of fight — no offer of fight. The man called to the sky. There were no attractions. He bellowed and fumed and swayed his revolvers here and everywhere. The dog of the barkeeper of the Weary Gentleman saloon had not appreciated the advance of events. He yet lay dozing in front of his mas- ter’s door. At sight of the dog, the man paused and raised his revolver humorously. At sight of the man, the dog sprang up and walked diago- nally away, with a sullen head, and growling. The man yelled, and the dog broke into a gallop. As it was about to enter the alley, there was a loud noise, a whistling, and something spat the ground directly before it. The dog screamed, and, wheeling in terror, galloped headlong in a new direction. Again there was a noise, a whistling, and sand was kicked viciously before it. Fear-stricken, the dog turned and flurried like an ani- mal in a pen. The man stood laughing, his weapons at his hips. Ultimately the man was attracted by the closed door of the Weary Gentleman saloon. He went to it and, hammering with a revolver, demanded drink. The door remaining imperturbable, he picked a bit of paper from the walk, and nailed it to the framework with a knife. He then turned his back contemptuously upon this popular resort and, walking to the opposite side of the street and spinning there on his heel quickly and lithely, fired at the bit of paper. He missed it by a half inch. He swore at himself, and went away. Later he comfortably fusilladed the windows of his most intimate friend. The man was playing with this town; it was a toy for him. But still there was no offer of fight. The name of Jack Potter, his ancient antagonist, entered his mind, and he concluded that it would be a glad thing if he should go to Potter’s house, and by bombardment induce him to come out and fight. He moved in the direction of his desire, chanting Apache scalp-music. When he arrived at it, Potter’s house presented the same still front as had the other adobes. Taking up a strategic position, the man howled a challenge. But this house regarded him as might a great stone god. It gave no sign. After a decent wait, the man howled further challenges, mingling with them wonderful epithets. Presently there came the spectacle of a man churning himself into deepest rage over the immobility of a house. He fumed at it as the win- ter wind attacks a prairie cabin in the North. To the distance there should have gone the sound of a tumult like the fighting of two hundred Mexicans. As necessity bade him, he paused for breath or to reload his revolvers.

crane / the bride comes to yellow sky 217

75

80

IV

Potter and his bride walked sheepishly and with speed. Sometimes they laughed together shamefacedly and low. “Next corner, dear,” he said finally. They put forth the efforts of a pair walking bowed against a strong wind. Potter was about to raise a finger to point the first appearance of the new home when, as they circled the corner, they came face to face with a man in a maroon-colored shirt, who was feverishly pushing car- tridges into a large revolver. Upon the instant the man dropped his revolver to the ground and, like lightning, whipped another from its hol- ster. The second weapon was aimed at the bridegroom’s chest. There was a silence. Potter’s mouth seemed to be merely a grave for his tongue. He exhibited an instinct to at once loosen his arm from the woman’s grip, and he dropped the bag to the sand. As for the bride, her face had gone as yellow as old cloth. She was a slave to hideous rites, gaz- ing at the apparitional snake. The two men faced each other at a distance of three paces. He of the revolver smiled with a new and quiet ferocity. “Tried to sneak up on me,” he said. “Tried to sneak up on me!” His eyes grew more baleful. As Potter made a slight movement, the man thrust his revolver venomously forward. “No, don’t you do it, Jack Pot- ter. Don’t you move a finger toward a gun just yet. Don’t you move an eyelash. The time has come for me to settle with you and I’m goin’ to do it my own way, and loaf along with no interferin’. So if you don’t want a gun bent on you, just mind what I tell you.” Potter looked at his enemy. “I ain’t got a gun on me, Scratchy,” he said. “Honest, I ain’t.” He was stiffening and steadying, but yet some- where at the back of his mind a vision of the Pullman floated: the sea- green figured velvet, the shining brass, silver, and glass, the wood that gleamed as darkly brilliant as the surface of a pool of oil — all the glory of marriage, the environment of the new estate. “You know I fight when it comes to fighting, Scratchy Wilson; but I ain’t got a gun on me. You’ll have to do all the shootin’ yourself.” His enemy’s face went livid. He stepped forward, and lashed his weapon to and fro before Potter’s chest. “Don’t you tell me you ain’t got no gun on you, you whelp. Don’t tell me no lie like that. There ain’t a man in Texas ever seen you without no gun. Don’t take me for no kid.” His eyes blazed with light, and his throat worked like a pump. “I ain’t takin’ you for no kid,” answered Potter. His heels had not moved an inch backward. “I’m takin’ you for a damn fool. I tell you I ain’t got a gun, and I ain’t. If you’re goin’ to shoot me up, you better begin now; you’ll never get a chance like this again.” So much enforced reasoning had told on Wilson’s rage; he was calmer. “If you ain’t got a gun, why ain’t you got a gun?” he sneered. “Been to Sunday-school?”

218 theme

85

90

“I ain’t got a gun because I’ve just come from San Anton’ with my wife. I’m married,” said Potter. “And if I’d thought there was going to be any galoots like you prowling around when I brought my wife home, I’d had a gun, and don’t you forget it.” “Married!” said Scratchy, not at all comprehending. “Yes, married. I’m married,” said Potter, distinctly. “Married?” said Scratchy. Seemingly for the first time, he saw the drooping, drowning woman at the other man’s side. “No!” he said. He was like a creature allowed a glimpse of another world. He moved a pace backward, and his arm, with the revolver, dropped to his side. “Is this the lady?” he asked. “Yes; this is the lady,” answered Potter. There was another period of silence. “Well,” said Wilson at last, slowly, “I s’pose it’s all off now.” “It’s all off if you say so, Scratchy. You know I didn’t make the trouble.” Potter lifted his valise. “Well, I ’low it’s off, Jack,” said Wilson. He was looking at the ground. “Married!” He was not a student of chivalry; it was merely that in the pres- ence of this foreign condition he was a simple child of the earlier plains. He picked up his starboard revolver, and, placing both weapons in their hol- sters, he went away. His feet made funnel-shaped tracks in the heavy sand.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Think of a western you’ve read or seen: any of Larry McMurtry’s books would work, such as Lonesome Dove or Evening Star. Compare and contrast the setting, characters, action, and theme in Crane’s story with your western.

2. What is the nature of the conflict Marshal Potter feels on the train in Part I? Why does he feel that he committed a “crime” in bringing home a bride to Yellow Sky?

3. What is the function of the “drummer,” the traveling salesman, in Part II?

4. What is the significance of the setting? 5. Is Scratchy Wilson too drunk, comical, and ineffective to be a sympa-

thetic character? What is the meaning of his conceding that “I s’pose it’s all off now” at the end of Part IV? Is he a dynamic or a static character?

6. What details seem to support the story’s theme? Consider, for ex- ample, the descriptions of the bride’s clothes and Scratchy Wilson’s shirt and boots.

7. Explain why the heroes in western stories are rarely married and why Crane’s use of marriage is central to his theme.

8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing Crane’s use of suspense with William Faulkner’s in “A Rose for Emily” (p. 55).

gilb / love in l.a. 219

Dagoberto Gilb (b. 1950)

Born in Los Angeles, Dagoberto Gilb was a journeyman carpenter who considered both Los Angeles and El Paso to be home. Gilb’s fiction has been published in a variety of journals including The Threepenny Review, ZYZZYVA, and American Short Fiction. His sto- ries — collected in The Magic of Blood (1993), from which “Love in L.A.” is taken, and Woodcuts of Women (2001) — often reflect his experiences as a worker moving between Los Angeles and El Paso. In 1994 he published his first novel, The Last Known Residence of Mickey Acuña, and in 2003 he published a collection of essays, Gritos. He has also edited Hecho en Tejas: An Anthology of Texas Mexican Literature (2006).

Love in L.A. 1993

Jake slouched in a clot of near motionless traffic, in the peculiar gray of concrete, smog, and early morning beneath the overpass of the Hol- lywood Freeway on Alvarado Street. He didn’t really mind because he knew how much worse it could be trying to make a left onto the onramp. He certainly didn’t do that every day of his life, and he’d assure anyone who’d ask that he never would either. A steady occupation had its advan- tages and he couldn’t deny thinking about that too. He needed an FM radio in something better than this ’58 Buick he drove. It would have crushed velvet interior with electric controls for the L.A. summer, a nice warm heater and defroster for the winter drives at the beach, a cruise control for those longer trips, mellow speakers front and rear of course, windows that hum closed, snuffing out that nasty exterior noise of free- ways. The fact was that he’d probably have to change his whole style. Exotic colognes, plush, dark nightclubs, maitais and daiquiris, necklaced ladies in satin gowns, misty and sexy like in a tequila ad. Jake could imag- ine lots of possibilities when he let himself, but none that ended up with him pressed onto a stalled freeway. Jake was thinking about this freedom of his so much that when he glimpsed its green light he just went ahead and stared bye bye to the steadily employed. When he turned his head the same direction his wind- shield faced, it was maybe one second too late. He pounced the brake pedal and steered the front wheels away from the tiny brakelights but the smack was unavoidable. Just one second sooner and it would only have been close. One second more and he’d be crawling up the Toyota’s

© Bret Brookshire.

220 theme

5

10

15

trunk. As it was, it seemed like only a harmless smack, much less solid than the one against his back bumper. Jake considered driving past the Toyota but was afraid the traffic ahead would make it too difficult. As he pulled up against the curb a few carlengths ahead, it occurred to him that the traffic might have helped him get away too. He slammed the car door twice to make sure it was closed fully and to give himself another second more, then toured front and rear of his Buick for damage on or near the bumpers. Not an impres- sionable scratch even in the chrome. He perked up. Though the car’s beauty was secondary to its ability to start and move, the body and paint were clean except for a few minor dings. This stood out as one of his few clearcut accomplishments over the years. Before he spoke to the driver of the Toyota, whose looks he could see might present him with an added complication, he signaled to the driver of the car that hit him, still in his car and stopped behind the Toyota, and waved his hands and shook his head to let the man know there was no problem as far as he was concerned. The driver waved back and started his engine. “It didn’t even scratch my paint,” Jake told her in that way of his. “So how you doin? Any damage to the car? I’m kinda hoping so, just so it takes a little more time and we can talk some. Or else you can give me your phone number now and I won’t have to lay my regular b.s. on you to get it later.” He took her smile as a good sign and relaxed. He inhaled her scent like it was clean air and straightened out his less than new but not unhip clothes. “You’ve got Florida plates. You look like you must be Cuban.” “My parents are from Venezuela.” “My name’s Jake.” He held out his hand. “Mariana.” They shook hands like she’d never done it before in her life. “I really am sorry about hitting you like that.” He sounded genu- ine. He fondled the wide dimple near the cracked taillight. “It’s amaz- ing how easy it is to put a dent in these new cars. They’re so soft they might replace waterbeds soon.” Jake was confused about how to pro- ceed with this. So much seemed so unlikely, but there was always pos- sibility. “So maybe we should go out to breakfast somewhere and talk it over.” “I don’t eat breakfast.” “Some coffee then.” “Thanks, but I really can’t.” “You’re not married, are you? Not that that would matter that much to me. I’m an openminded kinda guy.” She was smiling. “I have to get to work.” “That sounds boring.” “I better get your driver’s license,” she said.

gilb / love in l.a. 221

20

25

30

35

Jake nodded, disappointed. “One little problem,” he said. “I didn’t bring it. I just forgot it this morning. I’m a musician,” he exaggerated greatly, “and, well, I dunno, I left my wallet in the pants I was wearing last night. If you have some paper and a pen I’ll give you my address and all that.” He followed her to the glove compartment side of her car. “What if we don’t report it to the insurance companies? I’ll just get it fixed for you.” “I don’t think my dad would let me do that.” “Your dad? It’s not your car?” “He bought it for me. And I live at home.” “Right.” She was slipping away from him. He went back around to the back of her new Toyota and looked over the damage again. There was the trunk lid, the bumper, a rear panel, a taillight. “You do have insurance?” she asked, suspicious, as she came around the back of the car. “Oh yeah,” he lied. “I guess you better write the name of that down too.” He made up a last name and address and wrote down the name of an insurance company an old girlfriend once belonged to. He considered giving a real phone number but went against that idea and made one up. “I act too,” he lied to enhance the effect more. “Been in a couple of movies.” She smiled like a fan. “So how about your phone number?” He was rebounding maturely. She gave it to him. “Mariana, you are beautiful,” he said in his most sincere voice. “Call me,” she said timidly. Jake beamed. “We’ll see you, Mariana,” he said holding out his hand. Her hand felt so warm and soft he felt like he’d been kissed. Back in his car he took a moment or two to feel both proud and sad about his performance. Then he watched the rear view mirror as Mari- ana pulled up behind him. She was writing down the license plate num- bers on his Buick, ones that he’d taken off a junk because the ones that belonged to his had expired so long ago. He turned the ignition key and revved the big engine and clicked into drive. His sense of freedom swelled as he drove into the now moving street traffic, though he couldn’t stop the thought about that FM stereo radio and crushed velvet interior and the new car smell that would even make it better.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Is “Love in L.A.” a love story? Try to argue that it is. (If the story ended with paragraph 37, how would your interpretation of the story be affected?)

2. What is the effect of setting the story’s action in a Los Angeles traffic jam below the Hollywood Freeway?

222 theme

3. Characterize Jake. What do his thoughts in the first two paragraphs reveal about him? About how old do you think he is?

4. Describe how Jake responds to Mariana when he introduces him- self to her, especially in paragraph 12. What does his behavior reveal about his character?

5. Explain how their respective cars serve to characterize Jake and Mariana.

6. What does the final paragraph reveal about each character? 7. In a sentence or two write down what you think the story’s theme is.

How does the title contribute to that theme? 8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare and contrast the

themes in “Love in L.A.” and Fay Weldon’s “IND AFF, or Out of Love in Sarajevo” (p. 124).

223

I like it when there is some feeling of threat or sense of menace in short stories. I think a little menace is fine to have in a story.

— RAYMOND CARVER

ST YLE Style is a concept that everyone understands on some level because in its broadest sense it refers to the particular way in which anything is made or done. Style is everywhere around us. The world is saturated with styles in cars, clothing, buildings, teaching, dancing, music, politics — in any- thing that reflects a distinctive manner of expression or design. Consider, for example, how a tune sung by the Beatles differs from the same tune performed by a string orchestra. There’s no mistaking the two styles. Authors also have different characteristic styles. Style refers to the distinctive manner in which a writer arranges words to achieve particu- lar effects. That arrangement includes individual word choices and mat- ters such as the length of sentences, their structure and tone, and the use of irony. Diction refers to a writer’s choice of words. Because different words evoke different associations in a reader’s mind, the writer’s choice of words is crucial in controlling a reader’s response. The diction must be appropriate for the characters and the situations in which the author places them. Consider how inappropriate it would have been if Mel- ville had had Bartleby respond to the lawyer’s requests with “Hell no!” instead of “I would prefer not to.” The word prefer and the tentativeness

8 Style, Tone, and Irony

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 224 style, tone, and irony

of would help reinforce the scrivener’s mildness, his dignity, and even his seeming reasonableness — all of which frustrate the lawyer’s efforts to get rid of him. Bartleby, despite his passivity, seems to be in control of the situation. If he were to shout “Hell no!” he would appear angry, aggressive, desperate, and too informal, none of which would fit with his solemn, conscious decision to die. Melville makes the lawyer the desperate party by carefully choosing Bartleby’s words. Sentence structure is another element of a writer’s style. Heming- way’s terse, economical sentences are frequently noted and readily per- ceived. Here are the concluding sentences of Hemingway’s “Soldier’s Home” (p. 117), in which Krebs decides to leave home:

He had tried so to keep his life from being complicated. Still, none of it had touched him. He had felt sorry for his mother and she had made him lie. He would go to Kansas City and get a job and she would feel all right about it. There would be one more scene maybe before he got away. He would not go down to his father’s office. He would miss that one. He wanted his life to go smoothly. It had just gotten going that way. Well, that was all over now, anyway. He would go over to the schoolyard and watch Helen play indoor baseball.

Hemingway expresses Krebs’s thought the way Krebs thinks. The style avoids any “complicated” sentence structures. Seven of the eleven sentences begin with the word He. There are no abstractions or qualifications. We feel as if we are listening not only to what Krebs thinks but to how he thinks. The style reflects his firm determination to make, one step at a time, a clean, unobstructed break from his family and the entangling complications they would impose on him. Contrast this straightforward style with Vladimir Nabokov’s descrip- tion of a woman in his short story “The Vane Sisters.” The sophisticated narrator teaches French literature at a women’s college and is as obser- vant as he is icily critical of the woman he describes in this passage:

Her fingernails were gaudily painted, but badly bitten and not clean. Her lovers were a silent young photographer with a sudden laugh and two older men, brothers, who owned a small printing establishment across the street. I wondered at their tastes whenever I glimpsed, with a secret shudder, the higgledy-piggledy striation of black hairs that showed all along her pale shins through the nylon of her stockings with the scientific distinctness of a preparation flattened under glass; or when I felt, at her every movement, the dullish, stalish, not particularly conspicuous but all-pervading and depressing emanation that her sel- dom bathed flesh spread from under weary perfumes and creams.

This portrait — etched with a razor blade — is restrained but devas- tating. Hemingway’s and Nabokov’s uses of language are very different, yet each style successfully fuses what is said with how it is said. We could write summaries of both passages, but our summaries, owing to their

WEB Explore the literary element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

irony 225

styles, would not have the same effect as the originals. And that makes all the difference.

TONE Style reveals tone, the author’s implicit attitude toward the people, places, and events in a story. When we speak, tone is conveyed by our voice inflections, our wink of an eye, or some other gesture. A professor who says “You’re going to fail the next exam” may be indicating concern, frustration, sympathy, alarm, humor, or indifference, depending on the tone of voice. In a literary work that spoken voice is unavailable; instead we must rely on the context in which a statement appears to interpret it correctly. In Chopin’s “The Story of an Hour” (p. 13), for example, we can determine that the author sympathizes with Mrs. Mallard despite the fact that her grief over her husband’s assumed death is mixed with joy. Though Mrs. Mallard thinks she’s lost her husband, she experiences relief because she feels liberated from an oppressive male-dominated life. That’s why she collapses when she sees her husband alive at the end of the story. Chopin makes clear by the tone of the final line (“When the doctors came they said she had died of heart disease — of joy that kills”) that the men misinterpret both her grief and joy, for in the larger context of Mrs. Mallard’s emotions we see, unlike the doctors, that her death may well have been caused not by a shock of joy but by an overwhelming recognition of her lost freedom. We discover that through the tone. This stylistic technique is frequently an important element for interpreting a story. An insensitivity to tone can lead a reader astray in determining the theme of a work. Regardless of who is speaking in a story, it is wise to listen for the author’s voice too.

IRONY One of the enduring themes in literature is that things are not always what they seem to be. What we see — or think we see — is not always what we get. The unexpected complexity that often surprises us in life — what Herman Melville in Moby-Dick called the “universal thump” — is fertile ground for writers of imaginative literature. They cultivate that ground through the use of irony, a device that reveals a reality different from what appears to be true. Verbal irony consists of a person saying one thing but meaning the opposite. If a student driver smashes into a parked car and the angry instructor turns to say “You sure did well today,” the statement is an example of verbal irony. What is meant is not what is said. Verbal irony that is calculated to hurt someone by false praise is commonly known as

226 style, tone, and irony

sarcasm. In literature, however, verbal irony is usually not openly aggres- sive; instead, it is more subtle and restrained though no less intense. In Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” (p. 38), a woman retreats from her family because she cannot live in the traditional role that her hus- band and son expect of her. When the husband tries to be sympathetic about her withdrawal from family life, the narrator tells us three times that “he understood such things” and that in “understanding these things” he tried to be patient by “[s]till understanding these things.” The narrator’s repetition of these phrases constitutes verbal irony because they call attention to the fact that the husband doesn’t understand his wife at all. His “understanding” is really only a form of condescension that represents part of her problem rather than a solution. Situational irony exists when there is an incongruity between what is expected to happen and what actually happens. For instance, at the climactic showdown between Marshal Potter and Scratchy Wilson in Crane’s “The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky” (p. 209), there are no gunshots, only talk — and what subdues Wilson is not Potter’s strength and her- oism but the fact that the marshal is now married. To take one more example, the protagonist in Godwin’s “A Sorrowful Woman” seems, by traditional societal standards, to have all that a wife and mother could desire in a family, but, given her needs, that turns out not to be enough to sustain even her life, let alone her happiness. In each of these instances the ironic situation creates a distinction between appearances and reali- ties and brings the reader closer to the central meaning of the story. As you read Raymond Carver’s “Popular Mechanics,” Susan Minot’s “Lust,” and T. Coraghessan Boyle’s “Carnal Knowledge,” pay attention to the authors’ artful use of style, tone, and irony to convey meanings.

Raymond Carver (1938–1988)

Born in 1938 in Clatskanie, Oregon, to working-class parents, Carver grew up in Yakima, Washington, was edu- cated at Humboldt State College in California, and did graduate work at the University of Iowa. He mar- ried at age nineteen and during his college years worked at a series of low-paying jobs to help support his family. These difficult years eventu- ally ended in divorce. He taught at a number of universities, among them the University of California, Berkeley; the University of Iowa; the Univer- sity of Texas, El Paso; and Syracuse

© Marion Ettlinger.

carver / popular mechanics 227

5

10

15

20

University. Carver’s collections of stories include Will You Please Be Quiet, Please? (1976); What We Talk about When We Talk about Love (1981), from which “Popular Mechanics” is taken; Cathedral (1984); and Where I’m Calling From: New and Selected Stories (1988). Though extremely brief, “Popular Mechanics” describes a stark domestic situation with a startling conclusion.

Popular Mechanics 1981

Early that day the weather turned and the snow was melting into dirty water. Streaks of it ran down from the little shoulder-high window that faced the backyard. Cars slushed by on the street outside, where it was getting dark. But it was getting dark on the inside too. He was in the bedroom pushing clothes into a suitcase when she came to the door. I’m glad you’re leaving! I’m glad you’re leaving! she said. Do you hear? He kept on putting his things into the suitcase. Son of a bitch! I’m so glad you’re leaving! She began to cry. You can’t even look me in the face, can you? Then she noticed the baby’s picture on the bed and picked it up. He looked at her and she wiped her eyes and stared at him before turning and going back to the living room. Bring that back, he said. Just get your things and get out, she said. He did not answer. He fastened the suitcase, put on his coat, looked around the bedroom before turning off the light. Then he went out to the living room. She stood in the doorway of the little kitchen, holding the baby. I want the baby, he said. Are you crazy? No, but I want the baby. I’ll get someone to come by for his things. You’re not touching this baby, she said. The baby had begun to cry and she uncovered the blanket from around his head. Oh, oh, she said, looking at the baby. He moved toward her. For God’s sake! she said. She took a step back into the kitchen. I want the baby. Get out of here! She turned and tried to hold the baby over in a corner behind the stove. But he came up. He reached across the stove and tightened his hands on the baby. Let go of him, he said.

228 style, tone, and irony

25

30

35

Get away, get away! she cried. The baby was red-faced and screaming. In the scuffle they knocked down a flowerpot that hung behind the stove. He crowded her into the wall then, trying to break her grip. He held on to the baby and pushed with all his weight. Let go of him, he said. Don’t, she said. You’re hurting the baby, she said. I’m not hurting the baby, he said. The kitchen window gave no light. In the near-dark he worked on her fisted fingers with one hand and with the other hand he gripped the screaming baby up under an arm near the shoulder. She felt her fingers being forced open. She felt the baby going from her. No! she screamed just as her hands came loose. She would have it, this baby. She grabbed for the baby’s other arm. She caught the baby around the wrist and leaned back. But he would not let go. He felt the baby slipping out of his hands and he pulled back very hard. In this manner, the issue was decided.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss the story’s final lines. What is the “issue” that is “decided”?

2. Though there is little description of the setting in this story, how do the few details that are provided help to establish the tone?

3. How do small actions take on larger significance in the story? Con- sider the woman picking up the baby’s picture and the knocked- down flowerpot.

4. Why is this couple splitting up? Do we know? Does it matter? Explain your response.

5. Discuss the title of the story. The original title was “Mine.” Which do you think is more effective?

6. Explain how Carver uses irony to convey theme. 7. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare Carver’s style with

Ernest Hemingway’s in “Soldier’s Home” (p. 117).

Susan Minot (b. 1956)

Born and raised in Massachusetts, Susan Minot earned a B.A. at Brown University and an M.F.A. at Columbia University. Before devoting her- self full-time to writing, Minot worked as an assistant editor at Grand Street magazine. Her stories have appeared in The Atlantic, Harper’s, The New Yorker, Mademoiselle, and Paris Review. Her short stories have been

minot / lust 229

5

collected in Lust and Other Stories (1989), and she has published four novels — Monkeys (1986), Folly (1992), Evening (1998), and Rap- ture (2002), as well as one volume of poetry, Poems 4 A.M. (2002).

Lust 1984

Leo was from a long time ago, the first one I ever saw nude. In the spring before the Hell- mans filled their pool, we’d go down there in the deep end, with baby oil, and like that. I met him the first month away at board- ing school. He had a halo from the campus light behind him. I flipped.

Roger was fast. In his illegal car, we drove to the reservoir, the radio blaring, talking fast, fast, fast. He was always going for my zipper. He got kicked out sophomore year.

By the time the band got around to playing “Wild Horses,” I had tasted Bruce’s tongue. We were clicking in the shadows on the other side of the amplifier, out of Mrs. Donovan’s line of vision. It tasted like salt, with my neck bent back, because we had been dancing so hard before.

Tim’s line: “I’d like to see you in a bathing suit.” I knew it was his line when he said the exact same thing to Annie Hines.

You’d go on walks to get off campus. It was raining like hell, my sweater as sopped as a wet sheep. Tim pinned me to a tree, the woods light brown and dark brown, a white house half hidden with the lights already on. The water was as loud as a crowd hissing. He made certain comments about my forehead, about my cheeks.

We started off sitting at one end of the couch and then our feet were squished against the armrest and then he went over to turn off the TV and came back after he had taken off his shirt and then we slid onto the floor and he got up again to close the door, then came back to me, a body waiting on the rug.

You’d try to wipe off the table or to do the dishes and Willie would untuck your shirt and get his hands up under in front, standing behind you, making puffy noises in your ear.

Courtesy of Dinah Minot Hubley.

230 style, tone, and irony

10

15

20

He likes it when I wash my hair. He covers his face with it and if I start to say something, he goes, “Shush.”

For a long time, I had Philip on the brain. The less they noticed you, the more you got them on the brain.

My parents had no idea. Parents never really know what’s going on, especially when you’re away at school most of the time. If she met them, my mother might say, “Oliver seems nice” or “I like that one” without much of an opinion. If she didn’t like them, “He’s a funny fellow, isn’t he?” or “Johnny’s perfectly nice but a drink of water.” My father was too shy to talk to them at all unless they played sports and he’d ask them about that.

The sand was almost cold underneath because the sun was long gone. Eben piled a mound over my feet, patting around my ankles, the ghostly surf rumbling behind him in the dark. He was the first person I ever knew who died, later that summer, in a car crash. I thought about it for a long time.

“Come here,” he says on the porch. I go over to the hammock and he takes my wrist with two fingers. “What?” He kisses my palm then directs my hand to his fly.

Songs went with whichever boy it was. “Sugar Magnolia” was Tim, with the line “Rolling in the rushes/down by the riverside.” With “Dark- ness Darkness,” I’d picture Philip with his long hair. Hearing “Under My Thumb” there’d be the smell of Jamie’s suede jacket.

We hid in the listening rooms during study hall. With a record cover over the door’s window, the teacher on duty couldn’t look in. I came out flushed and heady and back at the dorm was surprised how red my lips were in the mirror.

One weekend at Simon’s brother’s, we stayed inside all day with the shades down, in bed, then went out to Store 24 to get some ice cream. He stood at the magazine rack and read through MAD while I got butter- scotch sauce, craving something sweet.

I could do some things well. Some things I was good at, like math or painting or even sports, but the second a boy put his arm around me, I forgot about wanting to do anything else, which felt like a relief at first until it became like sinking into a muck.

It was different for a girl.

minot / lust 231

25

30

When we were little, the brothers next door tied up our ankles. They held the door of the goat house and wouldn’t let us out till we showed them our underpants. Then they’d forget about being after us and when we played whiffle ball, I’d be just as good as they were.

Then it got to be different. Just because you have on a short skirt, they yell from the cars, slowing down for a while, and if you don’t look, they screech off and call you a bitch.

“What’s the matter with me?” they say, point-blank. Or else, “Why won’t you go out with me? I’m not asking you to get married,” about to get mad.

Or it’d be, trying to be reasonable, in a regular voice, “Listen, I just want to have a good time.” So I’d go because I couldn’t think of something to say back that wouldn’t be obvious, and if you go out with them, you sort of have to do something.

I sat between Mack and Eddie in the front seat of the pickup. They were having a fight about something. I’ve a feeling about me.

Certain nights you’d feel a certain surrender, maybe if you’d had wine. The surrender would be forgetting yourself and you’d put your nose to his neck and feel like a squirrel, safe, at rest, in a restful dream. But then you’d start to slip from that and the dark would come in and there’d be a cave. You make out the dim shape of the windows and feel yourself become a cave, filled absolutely with air, or with a sadness that wouldn’t stop.

Teenage years. You know just what you’re doing and don’t see the things that start to get in the way.

Lots of boys, but never two at the same time. One was plenty to keep you in a state. You’d start to see a boy and something would rush over you like a fast storm cloud and you couldn’t possibly think of anyone else. Boys took it differently. Their eyes perked up at any little number that walked by. You’d act like you weren’t noticing.

The joke was that the school doctor gave out the pill like aspirin. He didn’t ask you anything. I was fifteen. We had a picture of him in assembly, holding up an IUD shaped like a T. Most girls were on the pill, if anything, because they couldn’t handle a diaphragm. I kept the dial in my top drawer like my mother and thought of her each time I tipped out the yellow tablets in the morning before chapel.

232 style, tone, and irony

35

40

If they were too shy, I’d be more so. Andrew was nervous. We stayed up with his family album, sharing a pack of Old Golds. Before it got light, we turned on the TV. A man was explaining how to plant seedlings. His mouth jerked to the side in a tic. Andrew thought it was a riot and kept imitating him. I laughed to be polite. When we finally dozed off, he dared to put his arm around me, but that was it.

You wait till they come to you. With half fright, half swagger, they stand one step down. They dare to touch the button on your coat then lose their nerve and quickly drop their hand so you — you’d do anything for them. You touch their cheek.

The girls sit around in the common room and talk about boys, smoking their heads off. “What are you complaining about?” says Jill to me when we talk about problems. “Yeah,” says Giddy. “You always have a boyfriend.” I look at them and think, As if.

I thought the worst thing anyone could call you was a cock-teaser. So, if you flirted, you had to be prepared to go through with it. Sleeping with someone was perfectly normal once you had done it. You didn’t really worry about it. But there were other problems. The problems had to do with something else entirely.

Mack was during the hottest summer ever recorded. We were rent- ing a house on an island with all sorts of other people. No one slept dur- ing the heat wave, walking around the house with nothing on which we were used to because of the nude beach. In the living room, Eddie lay on top of a coffee table to cool off. Mack and I, with the bedroom door open for air, sweated and sweated all night. “I can’t take this,” he said at three a.m. “I’m going for a swim.” He and some guys down the hall went to the beach. The heat put me on edge. I sat on a cracked chest by the open window and smoked and smoked till I felt even worse, waiting for something — I guess for him to get back.

One was on a camping trip in Colorado. We zipped our sleeping bags together, the coyotes’ hysterical chatter far away. Other couples murmured in other tents. Paul was up before sunrise, starting a fire for breakfast. He wasn’t much of a talker in the daytime. At night, his hand leafed about in the hair at my neck.

There’d be times when you overdid it. You’d get carried away. All the next day, you’d be in a total fog, delirious, absent-minded, crossing the street and nearly getting run over.

minot / lust 233

45

50

The more girls a boy has, the better. He has a bright look, having reaped fruits, blooming. He stalks around, sure-shouldered, and you have the feeling he’s got more in him, a fatter heart, more stories to tell. For a girl, with each boy it’s as though a petal gets plucked each time.

Then you start to get tired. You begin to feel diluted, like watered- down stew.

Oliver came skiing with us. We lolled by the fire after everyone had gone to bed. Each creak you’d think was someone coming downstairs. The silver loop bracelet he gave me had been a present from his girlfriend before.

On vacations, we went skiing, or you’d go south if someone invited you. Some people had apartments in New York that their families hardly ever used. Or summer houses, or older sisters. We always managed to find someplace to go.

We made the plan at coffee hour. Simon snuck out and met me at Main Gate after lights-out. We crept to the chapel and spent the night in the balcony. He tasted like onions from a submarine sandwich.

The boys are one of two ways: either they can’t sit still or they don’t move. In front of the TV, they won’t budge. On weekends they play touch football while we sit on the sidelines, picking blades of grass to chew on, and watch. We’re always watching them run around. We shiver in the stands, knocking our boots together to keep our toes warm, and they whizz across the ice, chopping their sticks around the puck. When they’re in the rink, they refuse to look at you, only eyeing each other beneath low helmets. You cheer for them but they don’t look up, even if it’s a face-off when nothing’s happening, even if they’re doing drills before any game has started at all.

Dancing under the pink tent, he bent down and whispered in my ear. We slipped away to the lawn on the other side of the hedge. Much later, as he was leaving the buffet with two plates of eggs and sausage, I saw the grass stains on the knees of his white pants.

Tim’s was shaped like a banana, with a graceful curve to it. They’re all different. Willie’s like a bunch of walnuts when nothing was happen- ing, another’s as thin as a thin hot dog. But it’s like faces; you’re never really surprised.

Still, you’re not sure what to expect.

234 style, tone, and irony

55

60

65

I look into his face and he looks back. I look into his eyes and they look back at mine. Then they look down at my mouth so I look at his mouth, then back to his eyes then, backing up, at his whole face. I think, Who? Who are you? His head tilts to one side. I say, “Who are you?” “What do you mean?” “Nothing.” I look at his eyes again, deeper. Can’t tell who he is, what he thinks. “What?” he says. I look at his mouth. “I’m just wondering,” I say and go wandering across his face. Study the chin line. It’s shaped like a persimmon. “Who are you? What are you thinking?” He says, “What the hell are you talking about?”

Then they get mad after, when you say enough is enough. After, when it’s easier to explain that you don’t want to. You wouldn’t dream of saying that maybe you weren’t really ready to in the first place.

Gentle Eddie. We waded into the sea, the waves round and plowing in, buffalo-headed, slapping our thighs. I put my arms around his freckled shoulders and he held me up, buoyed by the water, and rocked me like a sea shell.

I had no idea whose party it was, the apartment jam-packed, step- ping over people in the hallway. The room with the music was practi- cally empty, the bare floor, me in red shoes. This fellow slides onto one knee and takes me around the waist and we rock to jazzy tunes, with my toes pointing heavenward, and waltz and spin and dip to “Smoke Gets in Your Eyes” or “I’ll Love You Just for Now.” He puts his head to my chest, runs a sweeping hand down my inside thigh and we go loose-limbed and sultry and as smooth as silk and I stamp my red heels and he takes me into a swoon. I never saw him again after that but I thought, I could have loved that one.

You wonder how long you can keep it up. You begin to feel as if you’re showing through, like a bathroom window that only lets in grey light, the kind you can’t see out of.

They keep coming around. Johnny drives up at Easter vacation from Baltimore and I let him in the kitchen with everyone sound asleep. He has friends waiting in the car. “What are you, crazy? It’s pouring out there,” I say. “It’s okay,” he says. “They understand.” So he gets some long kisses from me, against the refrigerator, before he goes because I hate those girls who push away a boy’s face as if she were made out of Ivory soap, as if she’s that much greater than he is.

minot / lust 235

70

75

The note on my cubby told me to see the headmaster. I had no idea for what. He had received complaints about my amorous displays on the town green. It was Willie that spring. The headmaster told me he didn’t care what I did but that Casey Academy had a reputation to uphold in the town. He lowered his glasses on his nose. “We’ve got twenty acres of woods on this campus,” he said. “If you want to smooch with your boy- friend, there are twenty acres for you to do it out of the public eye. You read me?”

Everybody’d get weekend permissions for different places, then we’d all go to someone’s house whose parents were away. Usually there’d be more boys than girls. We raided the liquor closet and smoked pot at the kitchen table and you’d never know who would end up where, or with whom. There were always disasters. Ceci got bombed and cracked her head open on the banister and needed stitches. Then there was the time Wendel Blair walked through the picture window at the Lowes’ and got slashed to ribbons.

He scared me. In bed, I didn’t dare look at him. I lay back with my eyes closed, luxuriating because he knew all sorts of expert angles, his hands never fumbling, going over my whole body, pressing the hair up and off the back of my head, giving an extra hip shove, as if to say There. I parted my eyes slightly, keeping the screen of my lashes low because it was too much to look at him, his mouth loose and pink and parted, his eyes looking through my forehead, or kneeling up, looking through my throat. I was ashamed but couldn’t look him in the eye.

You wonder about things feeling a little off-kilter. You begin to feel like a piece of pounded veal.

At boarding school, everyone gets depressed. We go in and see the housemother, Mrs. Gunther. She got married when she was eighteen. Mr. Gunther was her high school sweetheart, the only boyfriend she ever had. “And you knew you wanted to marry him right off?” we ask her. She smiles and says, “Yes.” “They always want something from you,” says Jill, complaining about her boyfriend. “Yeah,” says Giddy. “You always feel like you have to deliver something.” “You do,” says Mrs. Gunther. “Babies.”

After sex, you curl up like a shrimp, something deep inside you ruined, slammed in a place that sickens at slamming, and slowly you fill up with an overwhelming sadness, an elusive gaping worry. You don’t try to explain it, filled with the knowledge that it’s nothing after all, every- thing filling up finally and absolutely with death. After the briskness of

236 style, tone, and irony

80

loving, loving stops. And you roll over with death stretched out alongside you like a feather boa, or a snake, light as air, and you . . . you don’t even ask for anything or try to say something to him because it’s obviously your own damn fault. You haven’t been able to — to what? To open your heart. You open your legs but can’t, or don’t dare anymore, to open your heart.

It starts this way: You stare into their eyes. They flash like all the stars are out. They look at you seriously, their eyes at a low burn and their hands no matter what starting off shy and with such a gentle touch that the only thing you can do is take that tenderness and let yourself be swept away. When, with one attentive finger they tuck the hair behind your ear, you — You do everything they want. Then comes after. After when they don’t look at you. They scratch their balls, stare at the ceiling. Or if they do turn, their gaze is altogether changed. They are surprised. They turn casually to look at you, dis- tracted, and get a mild distracted surprise. You’re gone. Their blank look tells you that the girl they were fucking is not there anymore. You seem to have disappeared.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What do you think of the narrator? Why? Do you agree with the definition the story offers for lust?

2. How effective is the narrator’s description of teenage sex? What do you think she means when she says “You know just what you’re doing and don’t see the things that start to get in the way” (para. 29)?

3. Discuss the story’s tone. Is it what you expected from the title? 4. What do you think is the theme of “Lust”? Does its style carry its

theme? 5. What is the primary setting for the story? What does it reveal about

the nature of the narrator’s economic and social class? 6. In a Publishers Weekly interview (November 6, 1992), Minot observed,

“There’s more fictional material in unhappiness and disappoint- ment and frustration than there is in happiness. Who was it said, ‘Happiness is like a blank page’?” What do you think of this observation?

T. Coraghessan Boyle (b. 1948)

Born in Peekskill, New York, T. Coraghessan Boyle earned a doctorate at the University of Iowa and has taught at the University of Southern Cali- fornia. Among his literary awards is a National Endowment for the Arts Creative Writing Fellowship and the PEN/Faulkner Award for fiction.

boyle / carnal knowledge 237

His fiction has appeared in a variety of periodicals in cluding the North American Review, the New Yorker, Harper’s, the Atlan- tic, and Playboy. His novels include World’s End (1987), East Is East (1990), The Road to Wellville (1993), Drop City (2003), Talk Talk (2006), The Women (2009), and Wild Child, and Other Stories (2010). His short stories are collected in Greasy Lake and Other Stories (1985); If the River Was Whiskey (1989); Without a Hero and Other Stories (1994), from which “Carnal Knowledge” is reprinted; T. C. Boyle Stories: The Collected Stories of T. Coraghessan Boyle (1998); After the Plague and Other Stories (2001); and Tooth and Claw (2005).

Carnal Knowledge 1994

I’d never really thought much about meat. It was there in the supermarket in a plastic wrapper; it came between slices of bread with mayo and mus- tard and a dill pickle on the side; it sputtered and smoked on the grill till somebody flipped it over, and then it appeared on the plate, between the baked potato and the julienne carrots, neatly cross-hatched and floating in a puddle of red juice. Beef, mutton, pork, venison, dripping burgers, and greasy ribs — it was all the same to me, food, the body’s fuel, some- thing to savor a moment on the tongue before the digestive system went to work on it. Which is not to say I was totally unconscious of the deeper implications. Every once in a while I’d eat at home, a quartered chicken, a package of Shake ’n Bake, Stove Top stuffing, and frozen peas, and as I hacked away at the stippled yellow skin and pink flesh of the sanitized bird I’d wonder at the darkish bits of organ clinging to the ribs — what was that, liver? kidney? — but in the end it didn’t make me any less fond of Kentucky Fried or Chicken McNuggets. I saw those ads in the maga- zines, too, the ones that showed the veal calves penned up in their own waste, their limbs atrophied and their veins so pumped full of antibiot- ics they couldn’t control their bowels, but when I took a date to Anna Maria’s, I could never resist the veal scallopini. And then I met Alena Jorgensen. It was a year ago, two weeks before Thanksgiving — I remember the date because it was my birthday, my thirtieth, and I’d called in sick and gone to the beach to warm my face, read a book, and feel a little sorry for myself. The Santa Anas were blowing and it was clear all the way to Catalina, but there was an edge to the air, a scent of winter hanging over Utah, and as far as I could see in either direction I had the beach pretty much to myself. I found a sheltered spot in a tumble of boulders, spread

Photograph of T. C. Boyle. By permission of the author.

238 style, tone, and irony

5

a blanket, and settled down to attack the pastrami on rye I’d brought along for nourishment. Then I turned to my book — a comfortingly apocalyptic tract about the demise of the planet — and let the sun warm me as I read about the denuding of the rain forest, the poisoning of the atmosphere, and the swift silent eradication of species. Gulls coasted by overhead. I saw the distant glint of jetliners. I must have dozed, my head thrown back, the book spread open in my lap, because the next thing I remember, a strange dog was hovering over me and the sun had dipped behind the rocks. The dog was big, wild-haired, with one staring blue eye, and it just looked at me, ears slightly cocked, as if it expected a Milk-Bone or something. I was startled — not that I don’t like dogs, but here was this woolly thing pok- ing its snout in my face — and I guess that I must have made some sort of defensive gesture, because the dog staggered back a step and froze. Even in the confusion of the moment I could see that there was some- thing wrong with this dog, an unsteadiness, a gimp, a wobble to its legs. I felt a mixture of pity and revulsion — had it been hit by a car, was that it? — when all at once I became aware of a wetness on the breast of my windbreaker, and an unmistakable odor rose to my nostrils: I’d been pissed on. Pissed on. As I lay there unsuspecting, enjoying the sun, the beach, the solitude, this stupid beast had lifted its leg and used me as a pissoir — and now it was poised there on the edge of the blanket as if it expected a reward. A sudden rage seized me. I came up off the blanket with a curse, and it was only then that a dim apprehension seemed to seep into the dog’s other eye, the brown one, and it lurched back and fell on its face, just out of reach. And then it lurched and fell again, bobbing and weaving across the sand like a seal out of water. I was on my feet now, murderous, glad to see that the thing was hobbled — it would simplify the task of running it down and beating it to death. “Alf!” a voice called, and as the dog floundered in the sand, I turned and saw Alena Jorgensen poised on the boulder behind me. I don’t want to make too much of the moment, don’t want to mythologize it or clut- ter the scene with allusions to Aphrodite rising from the waves or accept- ing the golden apple from Paris, but she was a pretty impressive sight. Bare-legged, fluid, as tall and uncompromising as her Nordic ancestors, and dressed in a Gore-Tex bikini and hooded sweatshirt unzipped to the waist, she blew me away, in any event. Piss-spattered and stupefied, I could only gape up at her. “You bad boy,” she said, scolding, “you get out of there.” She glanced from the dog to me and back again. “Oh, you bad boy, what have you done?” she demanded, and I was ready to admit to anything, but it was the dog she was addressing, and the dog flopped over in the sand as if it had been shot. Alena skipped lightly down from the rock, and in the next moment, before I could protest, she was rubbing at the stain on my windbreaker with the wadded-up hem of her sweatshirt.

boyle / carnal knowledge 239

10

15

I tried to stop her — “It’s all right,” I said, “it’s nothing,” as if dogs routinely pissed on my wardrobe — but she wouldn’t hear of it. “No,” she said, rubbing, her hair flying in my face, the naked skin of her thigh pressing unconsciously to my own, “no, this is terrible, I’m so embarrassed — Alf, you bad boy — I’ll clean it for you, I will, it’s the least — oh, look at that, it’s stained right through to your T-shirt —” I could smell her, the mousse she used in her hair, a lilac soap or per- fume, the salt-sweet odor of her sweat — she’d been jogging, that was it. I murmured something about taking it to the cleaner’s myself. She stopped rubbing and straightened up. She was my height, maybe even a fraction taller, and her eyes were ever so slightly mis- matched, like the dog’s: a deep earnest blue in the right iris, shading to sea-green and turquoise in the left. We were so close we might have been dancing. “Tell you what,” she said, and her face lit with a smile, “since you’re so nice about the whole thing, and most people wouldn’t be, even if they knew what poor Alf has been through, why don’t you let me wash it for you — and the T-shirt too?” I was a little disconcerted at this point — I was the one who’d been pissed on, after all — but my anger was gone. I felt weightless, adrift, like a piece of fluff floating on the breeze. “Listen,” I said, and for the moment I couldn’t look her in the eye, “I don’t want to put you to any trouble . . .” “I’m ten minutes up the beach, and I’ve got a washer and dryer. Come on, it’s no trouble at all. Or do you have plans? I mean, I could just pay for the cleaner’s if you want . . .” I was between relationships — the person I’d been seeing off and on for the past year wouldn’t even return my calls — and my plans consisted of taking a solitary late-afternoon movie as a birthday treat, then head- ing over to my mother’s for dinner and the cake with the candles. My Aunt Irene would be there, and so would my grandmother. They would exclaim over how big I was and how handsome and then they would begin to contrast my present self with my previous, more diminutive incarnations, and finally work themselves up to a spate of reminiscence that would continue unabated till my mother drove them home. And then, if I was lucky, I’d go out to a singles bar and make the acquaintance of a divorced computer programmer in her mid-thirties with three kids and bad breath. I shrugged. “Plans? No, not really. I mean, nothing in particular.”

Alena was housesitting a one-room bungalow that rose stumplike from the sand, no more than fifty feet from the tide line. There were trees in the yard behind it and the place was sandwiched between glass fortresses with crenellated decks, whipping flags, and great hulking concrete pylons. Sitting on the couch inside, you could feel the dull reverberation of each wave hitting the shore, a slow steady pulse that forever defined the place for me. Alena gave me a faded UC Davis sweatshirt that nearly fit, sprayed a stain remover on my T-shirt and windbreaker, and in a

240 style, tone, and irony

20

25

single fluid motion flipped down the lid of the washer and extracted two beers from the refrigerator beside it. There was an awkward moment as she settled into the chair opposite me and we concentrated on our beers. I didn’t know what to say. I was disoriented, giddy, still struggling to grasp what had happened. Fifteen minutes earlier I’d been dozing on the beach, alone on my birthday and feeling sorry for myself, and now I was ensconced in a cozy beach house, in the presence of Alena Jorgensen and her naked spill of leg, drinking a beer. “So what do you do?” she said, setting her beer down on the coffee table. I was grateful for the question, too grateful maybe. I described to her at length how dull my job was, nearly ten years with the same agency, writing ad copy, my brain gone numb with disuse. I was somewhere in the middle of a blow-by-blow account of our current campaign for a Ghanian vodka distilled from calabash husks when she said, “I know what you mean,” and told me she’d dropped out of veterinary school herself. “After I saw what they did to the animals. I mean, can you see neutering a dog just for our convenience, just because it’s easier for us if they don’t have a sex life?” Her voice grew hot. “It’s the same old story, species fascism at its worst.” Alf was lying at my feet, grunting softly and looking up mournfully out of his staring blue eye, as blameless a creature as ever lived. I made a small noise of agreement and then focused on Alf. “And your dog,” I said, “he’s arthritic? Or is it hip dysplasia or what?” I was pleased with myself for the question — aside from “tapeworm,” “hip dysplasia” was the only veterinary term I could dredge up from the memory bank, and I could see that Alf’s problems ran deeper than worms. Alena looked angry suddenly. “Don’t I wish,” she said. She paused to draw a bitter breath. “There’s nothing wrong with Alf that wasn’t inflicted on him. They tortured him, maimed him, mutilated him.” “Tortured him?” I echoed, feeling the indignation rise in me — this beautiful girl, this innocent beast. “Who?” Alena leaned forward and there was real hate in her eyes. She men- tioned a prominent shoe company — spat out the name, actually. It was an ordinary name, a familiar one, and it hung in the air between us, sud- denly sinister. Alf had been part of an experiment to market booties for dogs — suede, cordovan, patent leather, the works. The dogs were made to pace a treadmill in their booties, to assess wear; Alf was part of the control group. “Control group?” I could feel the hackles rising on the back of my neck. “They used eighty-grit sandpaper on the treads, to accelerate the process.” Alena shot a glance out the window to where the surf pounded the shore; she bit her lip. “Alf was one of the dogs without booties.” I was stunned. I wanted to get up and comfort her, but I might as well have been grafted to the chair. “I don’t believe it,” I said. “How could anybody — ”

boyle / carnal knowledge 241

30

35

“Believe it,” she said. She studied me a moment, then set down her beer and crossed the room to dig through a cardboard box in the corner. If I was moved by the emotion she’d called up, I was moved even more by the sight of her bending over the box in her Gore-Tex bikini; I clung to the edge of the chair as if it were a plunging roller coaster. A moment later she dropped a dozen file folders in my lap. The uppermost bore the name of the shoe company, and it was crammed with news clippings, several pages of a diary relating to plant operations and workers’ shifts at the Grand Rapids facility, and a floor plan of the laboratories. The folders beneath it were inscribed with the names of cosmetics firms, bio- medical research centers, furriers, tanners, meatpackers. Alena perched on the edge of the coffee table and watched as I shuffled through them. “You know the Draize test?” I gave her a blank look. “They inject chemicals into rabbits’ eyes to see how much it’ll take before they go blind. The rabbits are in cages, thousands of them, and they take a needle and jab it into their eyes — and you know why, you know in the name of what great humanitarian cause this is going on, even as we speak?” I didn’t know. The surf pounded at my feet. I glanced at Alf and then back into her angry eyes. “Mascara, that’s what. Mascara. They torture countless thousands of rabbits so women can look like sluts.” I thought the characterization a bit harsh, but when I studied her pale lashes and tight lipstickless mouth, I saw that she meant it. At any rate, the notion set her off, and she launched into a two-hour lecture, gesturing with her flawless hands, quoting figures, digging through her files for the odd photo of legless mice or morphine-addicted ger- bils. She told me how she’d rescued Alf herself, raiding the laboratory with six other members of the Animal Liberation Front, the militant group in honor of which Alf had been named. At first, she’d been con- tent to write letters and carry placards, but now, with the lives of so many animals at stake, she’d turned to more direct action: harassment, vandalism, sabotage. She described how she’d spiked trees with Earth- First!ers in Oregon, cut miles of barbed-wire fence on cattle ranches in Nevada, destroyed records in biomedical research labs up and down the coast and insinuated herself between the hunters and the bighorn sheep in the mountains of Arizona. I could only nod and exclaim, smile ruefully and whistle in a low “holy cow!” sort of way. Finally, she paused to level her unsettling eyes on me. “You know what Isaac Bashevis Singer said?” We were on our third beer. The sun was gone. I didn’t have a clue. Alena leaned forward. “‘Every day is Auschwitz for the animals.’” I looked down into the amber aperture of my beer bottle and nod- ded my head sadly. The dryer had stopped an hour and a half ago. I won- dered if she’d go out to dinner with me, and what she could eat if she

242 style, tone, and irony

40

45

did. “Uh, I was wondering,” I said, “if . . . if you might want to go out for something to eat —” Alf chose that moment to heave himself up from the floor and uri- nate on the wall behind me. My dinner proposal hung in the balance as Alena shot up off the edge of the table to scold him and then gently usher him out the door. “Poor Alf,” she sighed, turning back to me with a shrug. “But listen, I’m sorry if I talked your head off — I didn’t mean to, but it’s rare to find somebody on your own wavelength.” She smiled. On your own wavelength: the words illuminated me, excited me, sent up a tremor I could feel all the way down in the deep- est nodes of my reproductive tract. “So how about dinner?” I persisted. Restaurants were running through my head — would it have to be veggie? Could there be even a whiff of grilled flesh on the air? Curdled goat’s milk and tabbouleh, tofu, lentil soup, sprouts: Every day is Auschwitz for the animals. “No place with meat, of course.” She just looked at me. “I mean, I don’t eat meat myself,” I lied, “or actually, not anymore” — since the pastrami sandwich, that is — “but I don’t really know any place that . . .” I trailed off lamely. “I’m a Vegan,” she said. After two hours of blind bunnies, butchered calves and mutilated pups, I couldn’t resist the joke. “I’m from Venus myself.” She laughed, but I could see she didn’t find it all that funny. Vegans didn’t eat meat or fish, she explained, or milk or cheese or eggs, and they didn’t wear wool or leather — or fur, of course. “Of course,” I said. We were both standing there, hovering over the coffee table. I was beginning to feel a little foolish. “Why don’t we just eat here,” she said.

The deep throb of the ocean seemed to settle in my bones as we lay there in bed that night, Alena and I, and I learned all about the fluency of her limbs and the sweetness of her vegetable tongue. Alf sprawled on the floor beneath us, wheezing and groaning in his sleep, and I blessed him for his incontinence and his doggy stupidity. Something was happening to me — I could feel it in the way the boards shifted under me, feel it with each beat of the surf — and I was ready to go along with it. In the morn- ing, I called in sick again. Alena was watching me from bed as I dialed the office and described how the flu had migrated from my head to my gut and beyond, and there was a look in her eye that told me I would spend the rest of the day right there beside her, peeling grapes and dropping them one by one between her parted and expectant lips. I was wrong. Half an hour later, after a breakfast of brewer’s yeast and what appeared to be some sort of bark marinated in yogurt, I found myself marching up and down the sidewalk in front of a fur emporium in Beverly Hills, waving a placard that read how does it feel to wear a corpse? in letters that dripped like blood.

boyle / carnal knowledge 243

50

It was a shock. I’d seen protest marches on TV, antiwar rallies and civil rights demonstrations and all that, but I’d never warmed my heels on the pavement or chanted slogans or felt the naked stick in my hand. There were maybe forty of us in all, mostly women, and we waved our placards at passing cars and blocked traffic on the sidewalk. One woman had smeared her face and hands with cold cream steeped in red dye, and Alena had found a ratty mink stole somewhere — the kind that features whole animals sewed together, snout to tail, their miniature limbs dangling — and she’d taken a can of crimson spray paint to their muzzles so that they looked freshly killed. She brandished this grisly banner on a stick high above her head, whooping like a savage and chanting, “Fur is death, fur is death,” over and over again till it became a mantra for the crowd. The day was unseasonably warm, the Jaguars glinted in the sun and the palms nodded in the breeze, and no one, but for a single tight-lipped salesman glowering from behind the store’s immaculate windows, paid the slightest bit of attention to us. I marched out there on the street, feeling exposed and conspicuous, but marching nonetheless — for Alena’s sake and for the sake of the foxes and martens and all the rest, and for my own sake too: with each step I took I could feel my consciousness expanding like a balloon, the breath of saintliness seeping steadily into me. Up to this point I’d worn suede and leather like anybody else, ankle boots and Air Jordans, a bombardier jacket I’d had since high school. If I’d drawn the line with fur, it was only because I’d never had any use for it. If I lived in the Yukon — and some- times, drowsing through a meeting at work, I found myself fantasizing about it — I would have worn fur, no compunction, no second thoughts. But not anymore. Now I was the protestor, a placard waver, now I was fighting for the right of every last weasel and lynx to grow old and die gracefully, now I was Alena Jorgensen’s lover and a force to be reck- oned with. Of course, my feet hurt and I was running sweat and praying that no one from work would drive by and see me there on the sidewalk with my crazy cohorts and denunciatory sign. We marched for hours, back and forth, till I thought we’d wear a groove in the pavement. We chanted and jeered and nobody so much as looked at us twice. We could have been Hare Krishnas, bums, anti- abortionists, or lepers, what did it matter? To the rest of the world, to the uninitiated masses to whose sorry number I’d belonged just twenty- four hours earlier, we were invisible. I was hungry, tired, discouraged. Alena was ignoring me. Even the woman in red-face was slowing down, her chant a hoarse whisper that was sucked up and obliterated in the roar of traffic. And then, as the afternoon faded toward rush hour, a wiz- ened silvery old woman who might have been an aging star or a star’s mother or even the first dimly remembered wife of a studio exec got out of a long white car at the curb and strode fearlessly toward us. Despite the heat — it must have been eighty degrees at this point — she was wear- ing an ankle-length silver fox coat, a bristling shouldery wafting mass of

244 style, tone, and irony

55

peltry that must have decimated every burrow on the tundra. It was the moment we’d been waiting for. A cry went up, shrill and ululating, and we converged on the lone old woman like a Cheyenne war party scouring the plains. The man beside me went down on all fours and howled like a dog. Alena slashed the air with her limp mink, and the blood sang in my ears. “Murderer!” I screamed, getting into it. “Torturer! Nazi!” The strings in my neck were tight. I didn’t know what I was saying. The crowd gibbered. The placards danced. I was so close to the old woman I could smell her — her perfume, a whiff of mothballs from the coat — and it intoxicated me, maddened me, and I stepped in front of her to block her path with all the seeth- ing militant bulk of my one hundred eighty-five pounds of sinew and muscle. I never saw the chauffeur. Alena told me afterward that he was a for- mer kickboxing champion who’d been banned from the sport for exces- sive brutality. The first blow seemed to drop down from above, a shell lobbed from deep within enemy territory; the others came at me like a windmill churning in a storm. Someone screamed. I remember focusing on the flawless rigid pleats of the chauffeur’s trousers, and then things got a bit hazy. I woke to the dull thump of the surf slamming at the shore and the touch of Alena’s lips on my own. I felt as if I’d been broken on the wheel, dismantled, and put back together again. “Lie still,” she said, and her tongue moved against my swollen cheek. Stricken, I could only drag my head across the pillow and gaze into the depths of her parti-colored eyes. “You’re one of us now,” she whispered. Next morning I didn’t even bother to call in sick.

By the end of the week I’d recovered enough to crave meat, for which I felt deeply ashamed, and to wear out a pair of vinyl huaraches on the picket line. Together, and with various coalitions of antivivisectionists, militant Vegans, and cat lovers, Alena and I tramped a hundred miles of sidewalk, spray-painted inflammatory slogans across the windows of supermarkets and burger stands, denounced tanners, furriers, poul- terers, and sausage makers, and somehow found time to break up a cockfight in Pacoima. It was exhilarating, heady, dangerous. If I’d been disconnected in the past, I was plugged in now. I felt righteous — for the first time in my life I had a cause — and I had Alena, Alena above all. She fascinated me, fixated me, made me feel like a tomcat leaping in and out of second-story windows, oblivious to the free-fall and the picket fence below. There was her beauty, of course, a triumph of evolution and the happy interchange of genes going all the way back to the cavemen, but it was more than that — it was her commitment to animals, to the righting of wrongs, to morality that made her irresistible. Was it love? The term is something I’ve always had difficulty with, but I suppose it was. Sure it was. Love, pure and simple. I had it, it had me.

boyle / carnal knowledge 245

60

65

“You know what?” Alena said one night as she stood over the minia- ture stove, searing tofu in oil and garlic. We’d spent the afternoon dem- onstrating out front of a tortilla factory that used rendered animal fat as a congealing agent, after which we’d been chased three blocks by an over- weight assistant manager at Von’s who objected to Alena’s spray-painting meat is death over the specials in the front window. I was giddy with the adolescent joy of it. I sank into the couch with a beer and watched Alf limp across the floor to fling himself down and lick at a suspicious spot on the floor. The surf boomed like thunder. “What?” I said. “Thanksgiving’s coming.” I let it ride a moment, wondering if I should invite Alena to my mother’s for the big basted bird stuffed with canned oysters and but- tered bread crumbs, and then realized it probably wouldn’t be such a great idea. I said nothing. She glanced over her shoulder. “The animals don’t have a whole lot to be thankful for, that’s for sure. It’s just an excuse for the meat industry to butcher a couple million turkeys, is all it is.” She paused; hot safflower oil popped in the pan. “I think it’s time for a little road trip,” she said. “Can we take your car?” “Sure, but where are we going?” She gave me her Gioconda smile. “To liberate some turkeys.”

In the morning I called my boss to tell him I had pancreatic cancer and wouldn’t be in for a while, then we threw some things in the car, helped Alf scrabble into the back seat, and headed up Route 5 for the San Joa- quin Valley. We drove for three hours through a fog so dense the win- dows might as well have been packed with cotton. Alena was secretive, but I could see she was excited. I knew only that we were on our way to rendezvous with a certain “Rolfe,” a longtime friend of hers and a big name in the world of ecotage and animal rights, after which we would commit some desperate and illegal act, for which the turkeys would be eternally grateful. There was a truck stalled in front of the sign for our exit at Calpurnia Springs, and I had to brake hard and jerk the wheel around twice to keep the tires on the pavement. Alena came up out of her seat and Alf slammed into the armrest like a sack of meal, but we made it. A few minutes later we were gliding through the ghostly vacancy of the town itself, lights drifting past in a nimbus of fog, glowing pink, yellow, and white, and then there was only the blacktop road and the pale void that engulfed it. We’d gone ten miles or so when Alena instructed me to slow down and began to study the right-hand shoulder with a keen, unwavering eye. The earth breathed in and out. I squinted hard into the soft drift- ing glow of the headlights. “There, there!” she cried and I swung the wheel to the right, and suddenly we were lurching along a pitted dirt road that rose up from the blacktop like a goat path worn into the side

246 style, tone, and irony

70

of a mountain. Five minutes later Alf sat up in the back seat and began to whine, and then a crude unpainted shack began to detach itself from the vagueness around us. Rolfe met us on the porch. He was tall and leathery, in his fifties, I guessed, with a shock of hair and rutted features that brought Samuel Beckett to mind. He was wearing gumboots and jeans and a faded lum- berjack shirt that looked as if it had been washed a hundred times. Alf took a quick pee against the side of the house, then fumbled up the steps to roll over and fawn at his feet. “Rolfe!” Alena called, and there was too much animation in her voice, too much familiarity, for my taste. She took the steps in a bound and threw herself in his arms. I watched them kiss, and it wasn’t a fatherly- daughterly sort of kiss, not at all. It was a kiss with some meaning behind it, and I didn’t like it. Rolfe, I thought: What kind of name is that? “Rolfe,” Alena gasped, still a little breathless from bouncing up the steps like a cheerleader, “I’d like you to meet Jim.” That was my signal. I ascended the porch steps and held out my hand. Rolfe gave me a look out of the hooded depths of his eyes and then took my hand in a hard calloused grip, the grip of the wood splitter, the fence mender, the liberator of hothouse turkeys and laboratory mice. “A pleasure,” he said, and his voice rasped like sandpaper. There was a fire going inside, and Alena and I sat before it and warmed our hands while Alf whined and sniffed and Rolfe served Red Zinger tea in Japanese cups the size of thimbles. Alena hadn’t stopped chattering since we stepped through the door, and Rolfe came right back at her in his woodsy rasp, the two of them exchanging names and news and gossip as if they were talking in code. I studied the reproductions of teal and widgeon that hung from the peeling walls, noted the case of Heinz vegetarian beans in the corner and the half-gallon of Jack Daniel’s on the mantel. Finally, after the third cup of tea, Alena settled back in her chair — a huge old Salvation Army sort of thing with a soiled antima- cassar — and said, “So what’s the plan?” Rolfe gave me another look, a quick predatory darting of the eyes, as if he weren’t sure I could be trusted, and then turned back to Alena. “Hedda Gabler’s Range-Fed Turkey Ranch,” he said. “And no, I don’t find the name cute, not at all.” He looked at me now, a long steady assay. “They grind up the heads for cat food, and the neck, the organs, and the rest, that they wrap up in paper and stuff back in the body cavity like it was a war atrocity or something. Whatever did a turkey go and do to us to deserve a fate like that?” The question was rhetorical, even if it seemed to have been aimed at me, and I made no response other than to compose my face in a look that wedded grief, outrage, and resolve. I was thinking of all the turkeys I’d sent to their doom, of the plucked wishbones, the pope’s noses,° and

pope’s noses: Slang for the fleshy tail sections of turkeys and other poultry.

boyle / carnal knowledge 247

75

80

the crisp browned skin I used to relish as a kid. It brought a lump to my throat, and something more: I realized I was hungry. “Ben Franklin wanted to make them our national symbol,” Alena chimed in, “did you know that? But the meat eaters won out.” “Fifty thousand birds,” Rolfe said, glancing at Alena and bringing his incendiary gaze back to rest on me. “I have information they’re going to start slaughtering them tomorrow, for the fresh-not-frozen market.” “Yuppie poultry,” Alena’s voice was drenched in disgust. For a moment, no one spoke. I became aware of the crackling of the fire. The fog pressed at the windows. It was getting dark. “You can see the place from the highway,” Rolfe said finally, “but the only access is through Calpurnia Springs. It’s about twenty miles — twenty-two point three, to be exact.” Alena’s eyes were bright. She was gazing on Rolfe as if he’d just dropped down from heaven. I felt something heave in my stomach. “We strike tonight.”

Rolfe insisted that we take my car — “Everybody around here knows my pickup, and I can’t take any chances on a little operation like this” — but we did mask the plates, front and back, with an inch-thick smear of mud. We blackened our faces like commandos and collected our tools from the shed out back — tin snips, a crowbar, and two five-gallon cans of gasoline. “Gasoline?” I said, trying the heft of the can. Rolfe gave me a craggy look. “To create a diversion,” he said. Alf, for obvious reasons, stayed behind in the shack. If the fog had been thick in daylight, it was impenetrable now, the sky collapsed upon the earth. It took hold of the headlights and threw them back at me till my eyes began to water from the effort of keeping the car on the road. But for the ruts and bumps we might have been floating in space. Alena sat up front between Rolfe and me, curiously silent. Rolfe didn’t have much to say either, save for the occasional grunted command: “Hang a right here”; “Hard left”; “Easy, easy.” I thought about meat and jail and the heroic proportions to which I was about to swell in Alena’s eyes and what I intended to do to her when we finally got to bed. It was 2:00 a.m. by the dashboard clock. “Okay,” Rolfe said, and his voice came at me so suddenly it startled me, “pull over here — and kill the lights.” We stepped out into the hush of night and eased the doors shut behind us. I couldn’t see a thing, but I could hear the not-so-distant hiss of traffic on the highway, and another sound, too, muffled and indis- tinct, the gentle unconscious suspiration of thousands upon thousands of my fellow creatures. And I could smell them, a seething rancid odor of feces and feathers and naked scaly feet that crawled down my throat and burned my nostrils. “Whew,” I said in a whisper, “I can smell them.” Rolfe and Alena were vague presences at my side. Rolfe flipped open the trunk and in the next moment I felt the heft of a crowbar and a pair

248 style, tone, and irony

85

90

of tin snips in my hand. “Listen, you, Jim,” Rolfe whispered, taking me by the wrist in his iron grip and leading me half-a-dozen steps forward. “Feel this?” I felt a grid of wire, which he promptly cut: snip, snip, snip. “This is their enclosure — they’re out there in the day, scratching around in the dirt. You get lost, you follow this wire. Now, you’re going to take a section out of this side, Alena’s got the west side and I’ve got the south. Once that’s done I signal with the flashlight and we bust open the doors to the turkey houses — they’re these big low white buildings, you’ll see them when you get close — and flush the birds out. Don’t worry about me or Alena. Just worry about getting as many birds out as you can.” I was worried. Worried about everything, from some half-crazed farmer with a shotgun or AK-47 or whatever they carried these days, to losing Alena in the fog, to the turkeys themselves: How big were they? Were they violent? They had claws and beaks, didn’t they? And how were they going to feel about me bursting into their bedroom in the middle of the night? “And when the gas cans go up, you hightail it back to the car, got it?” I could hear the turkeys tossing in their sleep. A truck shifted gears out on the highway. “I think so,” I whispered. “And one more thing — be sure to leave the keys in the ignition.” This gave me pause. “But — ” “The getaway.” Alena was so close I could feel her breath on my ear. “I mean, we don’t want to be fumbling around for the keys when all hell is breaking loose out there, do we?” I eased open the door and reinserted the keys in the ignition, even though the automatic buzzer warned me against it. “Okay,” I mur- mured, but they were already gone, soaked up in the shadows and the mist. At this point my heart was hammering so loudly I could barely hear the rustling of the turkeys — this is crazy, I told myself, it’s hurt- ful and wrong, not to mention illegal. Spray-painting slogans was one thing, but this was something else altogether. I thought of the tur- key farmer asleep in his bed, an entrepreneur working to make Amer- ica strong, a man with a wife and kids and a mortgage . . . but then I thought of all those innocent turkeys consigned to death, and finally I thought of Alena, long-legged and loving, and the way she came to me out of the darkness of the bathroom and the boom of the surf. I took the tin snips to the wire. I must have been at it half an hour, forty-five minutes, gradually working my way toward the big white sheds that had begun to emerge from the gloom up ahead, when I saw Rolfe’s flashlight blinking off to my left. This was my signal to head to the nearest shed, snap off the padlock with my crowbar, fling open the doors, and herd a bunch of cranky suspicious gobblers out into the night. It was now or never. I looked twice round me and then broke for the near shed in an awk- ward crouching gait. The turkeys must have sensed that something was

boyle / carnal knowledge 249

95

up — from behind the long white windowless wall there arose a watch- ful gabbling, a soughing of feathers that fanned up like a breeze in the treetops. Hold on, you toms and hens, I thought, freedom is at hand. A jerk of the wrist, and the padlock fell to the ground. Blood pounded in my ears, I took hold of the sliding door and jerked it open with a great dull booming reverberation — and suddenly, there they were, turkeys, thou- sands upon thousands of them, cloaked in white feathers under a string of dim yellow bulbs. The light glinted in their reptilian eyes. Somewhere a dog began to bark. I steeled myself and sprang through the door with a shout, whirl- ing the crowbar over my head, “All right!” I boomed, and the echo gave it back to me a hundred times over, “this is it! Turkeys, on your feet!” Nothing. No response. But for the whisper of rustling feathers and the alertly cocked heads, they might have been sculptures, throw pillows, they might as well have been dead and butchered and served up with yams and onions and all the trimmings. The barking of the dog went up a notch. I thought I heard voices. The turkeys crouched on the concrete floor, wave upon wave of them, stupid and immovable; they perched in the rafters, on shelves and platforms, huddled in wooden stalls. Desperate, I rushed into the front rank of them, swinging my crowbar, stamping my feet, and howling like the wishbone plucker I once was. That did it. There was a shriek from the nearest bird and the others took it up till an unholy racket filled the place, and now they were moving, tumbling down from their perches, flapping their wings in a storm of dried excrement and pecked-over grain, pouring across the concrete floor till it vanished beneath them. Encouraged, I screamed again — “Yeeee-ha-ha-ha-ha!” — and beat at the aluminum walls with the crowbar as the turkeys shot through the door- way and out into the night. It was then that the black mouth of the doorway erupted with light and the ka-boom! of the gas cans sent a tremor through the earth. Run! a voice screamed in my head, and the adrenaline kicked in and all of a sud- den I was scrambling for the door in a hurricane of turkeys. They were everywhere, flapping their wings, gobbling and screeching, loosing their bowels in panic. Something hit the back of my legs and all at once I was down amongst them, on the floor, in the dirt and feathers and wet turkey shit. I was a roadbed, a turkey expressway. Their claws dug at my back, my shoulders, the crown of my head. Panicked now, choking on feath- ers and dust and worse, I fought to my feet as the big screeching birds launched themselves round me, and staggered out into the barnyard. “There! Who’s that there?” a voice roared, and I was off and running. What can I say? I vaulted turkeys, kicked them aside like so many footballs, slashed and tore at them as they sailed through the air. I ran till my lungs felt as if they were burning right through my chest, disoriented, bewildered, terrified of the shotgun blast I was sure would cut me down at any moment. Behind me the fire raged and lit the fog

250 style, tone, and irony

100

till it glowed blood-red and hellish. But where was the fence? And where the car? I got control of my feet then and stood stock-still in a flurry of tur- keys, squinting into the wall of fog. Was that it? Was that the car over there? At that moment I heard an engine start up somewhere behind me — a familiar engine with a familiar coughing gurgle in the throat of the carburetor — and then the lights blinked on briefly three hundred yards away. I heard the engine race and listened, helpless, as the car roared off in the opposite direction. I stood there a moment longer, for- lorn and forsaken, and then I ran blindly off into the night, putting the fire and the shouts and the barking and the incessant mindless squawk- ing of the turkeys as far behind me as I could.

When dawn finally broke, it was only just perceptibly, so thick was the fog. I’d made my way to a blacktop road — which road and where it led I didn’t know — and sat crouched and shivering in a clump of weed just off the shoulder. Alena wouldn’t desert me, I was sure of that — she loved me, as I loved her; needed me, as I needed her — and I was sure she’d be cruising along the back roads looking for me. My pride was wounded, of course, and if I never laid eyes on Rolfe again I felt I wouldn’t be miss- ing much, but at least I hadn’t been drilled full of shot, savaged by farm dogs, or pecked to death by irate turkeys. I was sore all over, my shin throbbed where I’d slammed into something substantial while vaulting through the night, there were feathers in my hair, and my face and arms were a mosaic of cuts and scratches and long trailing fissures of dirt. I’d been sitting there for what seemed like hours, cursing Rolfe, developing suspicions about Alena and unflattering theories about environmental- ists in general, when finally I heard the familiar slurp and roar of my Chevy Citation cutting through the mist ahead of me. Rolfe was driving, his face impassive. I flung myself into the road like a tattered beggar, waving my arms over my head and giving vent to my joy, and he very nearly ran me down. Alena was out of the car before it stopped, wrapping me up in her arms, and then she was bundling me into the rear seat with Alf and we were on our way back to the hideaway. “What happened?” she cried, as if she couldn’t have guessed. “Where were you? We waited as long as we could.” I was feeling sulky, betrayed, feeling as if I was owed a whole lot more than a perfunctory hug and a string of insipid questions. Still, as I told my tale I began to warm to it — they’d got away in the car with the heater going, and I’d stayed behind to fight the turkeys, the farmers, and the elements, too, and if that wasn’t heroic, I’d like to know what was. I looked into Alena’s admiring eyes and pictured Rolfe’s shack, a nip or two from the bottle of Jack Daniel’s, maybe a peanut-butter-and-tofu sandwich, and then the bed, with Alena in it. Rolfe said nothing. Back at Rolfe’s, I took a shower and scrubbed the turkey droppings from my pores, then helped myself to the bourbon. It was ten in the

boyle / carnal knowledge 251

105

110

morning and the house was dark — if the world had ever been without fog, there was no sign of it here. When Rolfe stepped out on the porch to fetch an armload of firewood, I pulled Alena down into my lap. “Hey,” she murmured, “I thought you were an invalid.” She was wearing a pair of too-tight jeans and an oversize sweater with nothing underneath it. I slipped my hand inside the sweater and found something to hold on to. “Invalid?” I said, nuzzling at her sleeve. “Hell, I’m a turkey liberator, an ecoguerrilla, a friend of the animals and the environment, too.” She laughed, but she pushed herself up and crossed the room to stare out the occluded window. “Listen, Jim,” she said, “what we did last night was great, really great, but it’s just the beginning.” Alf looked up at her expectantly. I heard Rolfe fumbling around on the porch, the thump of wood on wood. She turned around to face me now. “What I mean is, Rolfe wants me to go up to Wyoming for a little bit, just outside of Yellowstone —” Me? Rolfe wants me? There was no invitation in that, no plurality, no acknowledgment of all we’d done and meant to each other. “For what?” I said. “What do you mean?” “There’s this grizzly — a pair of them, actually — and they’ve been raiding places outside the park. One of them made off with the mayor’s Doberman the other night and the people are up in arms. We — I mean Rolfe and me and some other people from the old Bolt Weevils in Min- nesota? — we’re going to go up there and make sure the Park Service — or the local yahoos — don’t eliminate them. The bears, I mean.” My tone was corrosive. “You and Rolfe?” “There’s nothing between us, if that’s what you’re thinking. This has to do with animals, that’s all.” “Like us?” She shook her head slowly. “Not like us, no. We’re the plague on this planet, don’t you know that?” Suddenly I was angry. Seething. Here I’d crouched in the bushes all night, covered in turkey crap, and now I was part of a plague. I was on my feet. “No, I don’t know that.” She gave me a look that let me know it didn’t matter, that she was already gone, that her agenda, at least for the moment, didn’t include me and there was no use arguing about it. “Look,” she said, her voice drop- ping as Rolfe slammed back through the door with a load of wood, “I’ll see you in L.A. in a month or so, okay?” She gave me an apologetic smile. “Water the plants for me?”

An hour later I was on the road again. I’d helped Rolfe stack the wood beside the fireplace, allowed Alena to brush my lips with a good-bye kiss, and then stood there on the porch while Rolfe locked up, lifted Alf into the bed of his pickup, and rumbled down the rutted dirt road with Alena at his side. I watched till their brake lights dissolved in the drifting

252 style, tone, and irony

115

gray mist, then fired up the Citation and lurched down the road behind them. A month or so: I felt hollow inside. I pictured her with Rolfe, eating yogurt and wheat germ, stopping at motels, wrestling grizzlies, and spik- ing trees. The hollowness opened up, cored me out till I felt as if I’d been plucked and gutted and served up on a platter myself. I found my way back through Calpurnia Springs without incident — there were no roadblocks, no flashing lights and grim-looking troopers searching trunks and back seats for a tallish thirty-year-old ecoterror- ist with turkey tracks down his back — but after I turned onto the high- way for Los Angeles, I had a shock. Ten miles up the road my nightmare materialized out of the gloom: red lights everywhere, signal flares and police cars lined up on the shoulder. I was on the very edge of panicking, a beat away from cutting across the median and giving them a run for it, when I saw the truck jackknifed up ahead. I slowed to forty, thirty, and then hit the brakes again. In a moment I was stalled in a line of cars and there was something all over the road, ghostly and white in the fog. At first I thought it must have been flung from the truck, rolls of toilet paper or crates of soap powder ruptured on the pavement. It was nei- ther. As I inched closer, the tires creeping now, the pulse of the lights in my face, I saw that the road was coated in feathers, turkey feathers. A storm of them. A blizzard. And more: there was flesh there too, slick and greasy, a red pulp ground into the surface of the road, thrown up like slush from the tires of the car ahead of me, ground beneath the massive wheels of the truck. Turkeys. Turkeys everywhere. The car crept forward. I flicked on the windshield wipers, hit the washer button, and for a moment a scrim of diluted blood obscured the windows and the hollowness opened up inside of me till I thought it would suck me inside out. Behind me, someone was leaning on his horn. A trooper loomed up out of the gloom, waving me on with the dead yel- low eye of his flashlight. I thought of Alena and felt sick. All there was between us had come to this, expectations gone sour, a smear on the road. I wanted to get out and shoot myself, turn myself in, close my eyes, and wake up in jail, in a hair shirt, in a straitjacket, anything. It went on. Time passed. Nothing moved. And then, miraculously, a vision began to emerge from behind the smeared glass and the gray belly of the fog, lights glowing golden in the waste. I saw the sign, Gas/Food/Lodging, and my hand was on the blinker. It took me a moment, picturing the place, the generic tile, the false cheer of the lights, the odor of charred flesh hanging heavy on the air, Big Mac, three-piece dark meat, carne asada, cheeseburger. The engine coughed. The lights glowed. I didn’t think of Alena then, didn’t think of Rolfe or grizzlies or the doomed bleating flocks and herds, or of the blind bunnies and cancerous mice — I thought only of the cavern opening inside me and how to fill it. “Meat,” and I spoke the word aloud, talking to calm myself as if I’d awakened from a bad dream, “it’s only meat.”

boyle / carnal knowledge 253

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do your own views of vegetarianism and ani- mal rights’ groups influence your response to this story?

2. Comment on how Boyle achieves humorous effects through his first-person narrator in the story’s first paragraph.

3. Describe the tone of the first-person narrator. How does he regard the world — the people, situations, and events — he encounters? Why is it especially appropriate that he has a job writing copy for an advertising agency?

4. How does Boyle’s style reveal the narrator’s character? Select several paragraphs to illustrate your points.

5. How does the narrator use irony? Select three instances of his use of irony, and discuss their effects and what they reveal about him.

6. How does Boyle create a genuinely comic character with Alf? What is the narrator’s relationship with Alf?

7. How do you think the story would differ if it were told from Alena’s point of view?

8. What is the major conflict in the story? How is it resolved in the story’s final paragraphs?

9. How do the story’s last words, “it’s only meat,” shed light on the significance of the title? What does a dictionary tell you about pos- sible readings of the title?

10. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the tone of Boyle’s treatment of lust with Susan Minot’s in “Lust” (p. 229).

This page intentionally left blank

Fiction in Depth

255

9. A Study of Flannery O’Connor 257

This page intentionally left blank

When Flannery O’Connor (1925–1964) died of lupus before her fortieth birthday, her work was cruelly cut short. Nevertheless, she had com- pleted two novels, Wise Blood (1952) and The Violent Bear It Away (1960), as well as thirty-one short stories. Despite her brief life and relatively mod- est output, her work is regarded as among the most distinguished Amer- ican fiction of the mid-twentieth century. Her two collections of short stories, A Good Man Is Hard to Find (1955) and Everything That Rises Must Converge (1965), were included in The Complete Stories of Flannery O’Connor (1971), which won the National Book Award. The story included in this chapter offers a glimpse into the work of this important twentieth- century writer.

257

9 A Study of Flannery O’Connor

In most English classes the short story has become a kind of literary specimen to be dissected. Every time a story of mine appears in a Freshman anthology, I have a vision of it, with its little organs laid open, like a frog in a bottle.

— FLANNERY O’CONNOR

I am always having it pointed out to me that life in Georgia is not at all the way I picture it, that escaped criminals do not roam the roads exterminating families, nor Bible salesmen prowl about looking for girls with wooden legs.

— FLANNERY O’CONNOR

258 a study of flannery o’connor

A BRIEF BIOGR APHY AND INTRODUCTION O’Connor’s fiction grapples with living a spiritual life in a secular world. Although this major concern is worked into each of her stories, she takes a broad approach to spiritual issues by providing moral, social, and psy- chological contexts that offer a wealth of insights and passion that her readers have found both startling and absorbing. Her stories are chal- lenging be cause her characters, who initially seem radically different from people we know, turn out to be, by the end of each story, somehow familiar — somehow connected to us. O’Connor inhabited simultaneously two radically different worlds. The world she created in her stories is populated with bratty children, malcon- tents, incompetents, pious frauds, bewildered intellectuals, deformed cynics, rednecks, hucksters, racists, perverts, and murderers who experience dra- matically intense moments that surprise and shock readers. Her personal

Flannery O’Connor and a Self-Portrait. The author poses in front of an accurate, if rather fierce self-portrait with one of her beloved ring-necked pheasants. As a child, O’Connor enjoyed raising birds, a passion that was sparked when one of her chickens, “a buff Cochin Bantam [that] had the distinction of being able to walk either forward or backward,” was reported on in the press. “I had to have more and more chickens. . . . I wanted one with three legs or three wings but nothing in that line turned up. . . . My quest, whatever it was for, ended with peacocks,” she wrote. Reprinted by permission of Bettmann/corbis.

o’connor / a brief biography and introduction 259

life, however, was largely uneventful. She humorously acknowledged its quiet nature in 1958 when she claimed that “there won’t be any biographies of me because, for only one reason, lives spent between the house and the chicken yard do not make exciting copy.” A broad outline of O’Connor’s life may not offer very much “exciting copy,” but it does provide clues about why she wrote such powerful fiction. The only child of Catholic parents, O’Connor was born in Savannah, Georgia, where she attended a parochial grammar school and high school. When she was thirteen, her father became ill with disseminated lupus, a rare, incurable blood disease, and had to abandon his real-estate business. The family moved to Milledgeville in central Georgia, where her mother’s family had lived for generations. Because there were no Catholic schools in Milledgeville, O’Connor attended a public high school. In 1942, the year after her father died of lupus, O’Connor graduated from high school and enrolled in Georgia State College for Women. There she wrote for the liter- ary magazine until receiving her diploma in 1945. Her stories earned her a fellowship to the Writers’ Workshop at the University of Iowa, and for two years she learned to write steadily and seriously. She sold her first story to Accent in 1946 and earned her master of fine arts degree in 1947. She wrote stories about life in the rural South, and this subject matter, along with her devout Catholic perspective, became central to her fiction. With her formal education behind her, O’Connor was ready to begin her professional career at the age of twenty-two. Equipped with determi- nation (“No one can convince me that I shouldn’t rewrite as much as I do”) and offered the opportunity to be around other practicing writers, she moved to New York, where she worked on her first novel, Wise Blood. In 1950, however, she was diagnosed as having lupus, and, returning to Georgia for treatment, she took up permanent residence on her mother’s farm in Milledgeville. There she lived a severely restricted but productive life, writing stories and raising peacocks. With the exception of O’Connor’s early years in Iowa and New York and some short lecture trips to other states, she traveled little. Although she made a pilgrimage to Lourdes (apparently more for her mother’s sake than for her own) and then to Rome for an audience with the pope, her life was centered in the South. Like those of William Faulkner and many other southern writers, O’Connor’s stories evoke the rhythms of rural southern speech and manners in insulated settings where widely diverse characters mingle. Also like Faulkner, she created works whose meanings go beyond their settings. She did not want her fiction to be seen in the context of narrowly defined regionalism: she complained that “in almost every hamlet you’ll find at least one old lady writing epics in Negro dialect and probably two or three old gentlemen who have impossible historical novels on the way.” Refusing to be caricatured, she knew that “the woods are full of re gional writers, and it is the great hor- ror of every serious Southern writer that he will become one of them.” O’Connor’s stories are rooted in rural southern culture, but in a larger

260 a study of flannery o’connor

sense they are set within the psychological and spiritual landscapes of the human soul. O’Connor’s deep spiritual convictions coincide with the traditional emphasis on religion in the South, where, she said, there is still the belief “that man has fallen and that he is only perfectible by God’s grace, not by his own unaided efforts.” Although O’Connor’s Catholicism differs from the prevailing Protestant fundamentalism of the South, the reli- gious ethos so pervasive even in rural southern areas provided fertile ground for the spiritual crises her characters experience. In a posthu- mous collection of her articles, essays, and reviews aptly titled Mystery and Manners (1969), she summarized her basic religious convictions:

I am no disbeliever in spiritual purpose and no vague believer. I see from the standpoint of Christian orthodoxy. This means that for me the meaning of life is centered in our Redemption by Christ and what I see in the world I see in its relation to that. I don’t think that this is a posi- tion that can be taken halfway or one that is particularly easy in these times to make transparent in fiction.

O’Connor realized that she was writing against the grain of the read- ers who discovered her stories in the Partisan Review, Sewanee Review, Mademoiselle, or Harper’s Bazaar. Many readers thought that Christian dogma would make her writing doctrinaire, but she insisted that the perspective of Christianity allowed her to interpret the details of life and guaranteed her “respect for [life’s] mystery.” O’Connor’s stories contain no prepackaged prescriptions for living, no catechisms that lay out all the answers. In stead, her characters struggle with spiritual ques- tions in bizarre, incongruous situations. Their lives are grotesque — even comic — precisely be cause they do not understand their own spiritual natures. Their actions are ex treme and abnormal. O’Connor explains the reasons for this in Mystery and Manners; she says she sought to expose the “distortions” of “modern life” that appear “normal” to her audience. Hence, she used “violent means” to convey her vision to a “hostile audi- ence.” “When you can assume that your audience holds the same beliefs you do, you can relax a little and use more normal means of talking to it.” But when the audience holds different values, “you have to make your vision apparent by shock — to the hard of hearing you shout, and for the almost-blind you draw large and startling figures.” O’Connor’s characters lose or find their soul-saving grace in painful, chaotic circum- stances that bear little or no resemblance to the slow but sure progress to the Celestial City of repentant pilgrims in traditional religious stories. Because her characters are powerful creations who live convincing, even if ugly, lives, O’Connor’s religious beliefs never supersede her story- telling. One need not be either Christian or Catholic to appreciate her concerns about human failure and degradation and her artistic ability to render fictional lives that are alternately absurdly comic and tragic. The ironies that abound in her work leave plenty of room for readers of

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 261

all persuasions. O’Connor’s work is narrow in the sense that her con- cerns are emphatically spiritual, but her compassion and her belief in human possibilities — even among the most unlikely characters — afford her fictions a capacity for wonder that is exhilarating. Her precise, deft use of language always reveals more than it seems to tell. O’Connor’s stories present complex experiences that cannot be tidily summarized; it takes the entire story to suggest the meanings. Read “A Good Man Is Hard to Find” for the pleasure of entering the remarkable world O’Connor creates. You’re in for some surprises.

A Good Man Is Hard to Find 1953

The grandmother didn’t want to go to Florida. She wanted to visit some of her connections in east Tennessee and she was seizing at every chance to change Bailey’s mind. Bailey was the son she lived with, her only boy. He was sitting on the edge of his chair at the table, bent over the orange sports section of the Journal. “Now look here, Bailey,” she said, “see here, read this,” and she stood with one hand on her thin hip and the other rattling the newspaper at his bald head. “Here this fellow that calls him- self The Misfit is aloose from the Federal Pen and headed toward Florida and you read here what it says he did to these people. Just you read it. I wouldn’t take my children in any direction with a criminal like that aloose in it. I couldn’t answer to my conscience if I did.” Bailey didn’t look up from his reading so she wheeled around then and faced the children’s mother, a young woman in slacks, whose face was as broad and innocent as a cabbage and was tied around with a green headkerchief that had two points on the top like a rabbit’s ears. She was sitting on the sofa, feeding the baby his apricots out of a jar. “The chil- dren have been to Florida before,” the old lady said. “You all ought to take them somewhere else for a change so they would see different parts of the world and be broad. They never have been to east Tennessee.” The children’s mother didn’t seem to hear her but the eight-year-old boy, John Wesley, a stocky child with glasses, said, “If you don’t want to go to Florida, why dontcha stay at home?” He and the little girl, June Star, were reading the funny papers on the floor. “She wouldn’t stay at home to be queen for a day,” June Star said without raising her yellow head. “Yes and what would you do if this fellow, The Misfit, caught you?” the grandmother asked. “I’d smack his face,” John Wesley said. “She wouldn’t stay at home for a million bucks,” June Star said. “Afraid she’d miss something. She has to go everywhere we go.” “All right, Miss,” the grandmother said. “Just remember that the next time you want me to curl your hair.” June Star said her hair was naturally curly.

5

262 a study of flannery o’connor

The next morning the grandmother was the first one in the car, ready to go. She had her big black valise that looked like the head of a hippopotamus in one corner, and underneath it she was hiding a basket with Pitty Sing, the cat, in it. She didn’t intend for the cat to be left alone in the house for three days because he would miss her too much and she was afraid he might brush against one of the gas burners and acciden- tally asphyxiate himself. Her son, Bailey, didn’t like to arrive at a motel with a cat. She sat in the middle of the back seat with John Wesley and June Star on either side of her. Bailey and the children’s mother and the baby sat in front and they left Atlanta at eight forty-five with the mileage on the car at 55890. The grandmother wrote this down because she thought it would be interesting to say how many miles they had been when they got back. It took them twenty minutes to reach the outskirts of the city. The old lady settled herself comfortably, removing her white cotton gloves and putting them up with her purse on the shelf in front of the back window. The children’s mother still had on slacks and still had her head tied up in a green kerchief, but the grandmother had on a navy blue straw sailor hat with a bunch of white violets on the brim and a navy blue dress with a small white dot in the print. Her collars and cuffs were white organdy trimmed with lace and at her neckline she had pinned a purple spray of cloth violets containing a sachet. In case of an accident, anyone seeing her dead on the highway would know at once that she was a lady. She said she thought it was going to be a good day for driving, neither too hot nor too cold, and she cautioned Bailey that the speed limit was fifty-five miles an hour and that the patrolmen hid themselves behind billboards and small clumps of trees and sped out after you before you had a chance to slow down. She pointed out interesting details of the scenery: Stone Mountain; the blue granite that in some places came up to both sides of the highway; the brilliant red clay banks slightly streaked with purple; and the various crops that made rows of green lace-work on the ground. The trees were full of silver-white sunlight and the meanest of them sparkled. The children were reading comic magazines and their mother had gone back to sleep. “Let’s go through Georgia fast so we won’t have to look at it much,” John Wesley said. “If I were a little boy,” said the grandmother, “I wouldn’t talk about my native state that way. Tennessee has the mountains and Georgia has the hills.” “Tennessee is just a hillbilly dumping ground,” John Wesley said, “and Georgia is a lousy state too.” “You said it,” June Star said. “In my time,” said the grandmother, folding her thin veined fingers, “children were more respectful of their native states and their parents and everything else. People did right then. Oh look at the cute little

10

15

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 263

pickaninny!” she said and pointed to a Negro child standing in the door of a shack. “Wouldn’t that make a picture, now?” she asked and they all turned and looked at the little Negro out of the back window. He waved. “He didn’t have any britches on,” June Star said. “He probably didn’t have any,” the grandmother explained. “Little niggers in the country don’t have things like we do. If I could paint, I’d paint that picture,” she said. The children exchanged comic books. The grandmother offered to hold the baby and the children’s mother passed him over the front seat to her. She set him on her knee and bounced him and told him about the things they were passing. She rolled her eyes and screwed up her mouth and stuck her leathery thin face into his smooth bland one. Occasionally he gave her a faraway smile. They passed a large cotton field with five or six graves fenced in the middle of it, like a small island. “Look at the graveyard!” the grandmother said, pointing it out. “That was the old family burying ground. That belonged to the plantation.” “Where’s the plantation?” John Wesley asked. “Gone With the Wind,” said the grandmother. “Ha. Ha.” When the children finished all the comic books they had brought, they opened the lunch and ate it. The grandmother ate a peanut butter sandwich and an olive and would not let the children throw the box and the paper napkins out the window. When there was nothing else to do they played a game by choosing a cloud and making the other two guess what shape it suggested. John Wesley took one the shape of a cow and June Star guessed a cow and John Wesley said, no, an automobile, and June Star said he didn’t play fair, and they began to slap each other over the grandmother. The grandmother said she would tell them a story if they would keep quiet. When she told a story, she rolled her eyes and waved her head and was very dramatic. She said once when she was a maiden lady she had been courted by a Mr. Edgar Atkins Teagarden from Jasper, Geor- gia. She said he was a very good-looking man and a gentleman and that he brought her a watermelon every Saturday afternoon with his initials cut in it, E.A.T. Well, one Saturday, she said, Mr. Teagarden brought the watermelon and there was nobody at home and he left it on the front porch and returned in his buggy to Jasper, but she never got the water- melon, she said, because a nigger boy ate it when he saw the initials, E.A.T.! This story tickled John Wesley’s funny bone and he giggled and giggled but June Star didn’t think it was any good. She said she wouldn’t marry a man that just brought her a watermelon on Saturday. The grand- mother said she would have done well to marry Mr. Teagarden because he was a gentleman and had bought Coca-Cola stock when it first came out and that he had died only a few years ago, a very wealthy man. They stopped at The Tower for barbecued sandwiches. The Tower was a part stucco and part wood filling station and dance hall set in a

20

25

264 a study of flannery o’connor

clearing outside of Timothy. A fat man named Red Sammy Butts ran it and there were signs stuck here and there on the building and for miles up and down the highway saying, TRY RED SAMMY’S FAMOUS BAR- BECUE. NONE LIKE FAMOUS RED SAMMY’S! RED SAM! THE FAT BOY WITH THE HAPPY LAUGH. A VETERAN! RED SAMMY’S YOUR MAN! Red Sammy was lying on the bare ground outside The Tower with his head under a truck while a gray monkey about a foot high, chained to a small chinaberry tree, chattered nearby. The monkey sprang back into the tree and got on the highest limb as soon as he saw the children jump out of the car and run toward him. Inside, The Tower was a long dark room with a counter at one end and tables at the other and dancing space in the middle. They all sat down at a board table next to the nickelodeon and Red Sam’s wife, a tall burnt-brown woman with hair and eyes lighter than her skin, came and took their order. The children’s mother put a dime in the machine and played “The Tennessee Waltz,” and the grandmother said that tune always made her want to dance. She asked Bailey if he would like to dance but he only glared at her. He didn’t have a naturally sunny disposi- tion like she did and trips made him nervous. The grandmother’s brown eyes were very bright. She swayed her head from side to side and pre- tended she was dancing in her chair. June Star said play something she could tap to so the children’s mother put in another dime and played a fast number and June Star stepped out onto the dance floor and did her tap routine. “Ain’t she cute?” Red Sam’s wife said, leaning over the counter. “Would you like to come be my little girl?” “No I certainly wouldn’t,” June Star said. “I wouldn’t live in a broken-down place like this for a million bucks!” and she ran back to the table. “Ain’t she cute?” the woman repeated, stretching her mouth politely. “Aren’t you ashamed?” hissed the grandmother. Red Sam came in and told his wife to quit lounging on the counter and hurry up with these people’s order. His khaki trousers reached just to his hip bones and his stomach hung over them like a sack of meal swaying under his shirt. He came over and sat down at a table nearby and let out a combination sigh and yodel. “You can’t win,” he said. “You can’t win,” and he wiped his sweating red face off with a gray handkerchief. “These days you don’t know who to trust,” he said. “Ain’t that the truth?” “People are certainly not nice like they used to be,” said the grandmother. “Two fellers come in here last week,” Red Sammy said, “driving a Chrysler. It was a old beat-up car but it was a good one and these boys looked all right to me. Said they worked at the mill and you know I let them fellers charge the gas they bought? Now why did I do that?”

30

35

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 265

“Because you’re a good man!” the grandmother said at once. “Yes’m, I suppose so,” Red Sam said as if he were struck with this answer. His wife brought the orders, carrying the five plates all at once with- out a tray, two in each hand and one balanced on her arm. “It isn’t a soul in this green world of God’s that you can trust,” she said. “And I don’t count nobody out of that, not nobody,” she repeated, looking at Red Sammy. “Did you read about that criminal, The Misfit, that’s escaped?” asked the grandmother. “I wouldn’t be a bit surprised if he didn’t attack this place right here,” said the woman. “If he hears about it being here, I wouldn’t be none surprised to see him. If he hears it’s two cent in the cash register, I wouldn’t be a tall surprised if he. . . .” “That’ll do,” Red Sam said. “Go bring these people their Co’-Colas,” and the woman went off to get the rest of the order. “A good man is hard to find,” Red Sammy said. “Everything is get- ting terrible. I remember the day you could go off and leave your screen door un latched. Not no more.” He and the grandmother discussed better times. The old lady said that in her opinion Europe was entirely to blame for the way things were now. She said the way Europe acted you would think we were made of money and Red Sam said it was no use talking about it, she was exactly right. The children ran outside into the white sunlight and looked at the monkey in the lacy chinaberry tree. He was busy catching fleas on himself and biting each one carefully be tween his teeth as if it were a delicacy. They drove off again into the hot afternoon. The grandmother took cat naps and woke up every few minutes with her own snoring. Outside of Toombs boro she woke up and recalled an old plantation that she had visited in this neighborhood once when she was a young lady. She said the house had six white columns across the front and that there was an avenue of oaks leading up to it and two little wooden trellis arbors on either side in front where you sat down with your suitor after a stroll in the garden. She recalled exactly which road to turn off to get to it. She knew that Bailey would not be willing to lose any time looking at an old house, but the more she talked about it, the more she wanted to see it once again and find out if the little twin arbors were still standing. “There was a secret panel in this house,” she said craftily, not telling the truth but wishing that she were, “and the story went that all the family silver was hidden in it when Sherman° came through but it was never found. . . .”

Sherman: William Tecumseh Sherman (1820–1891), Union Army commander who led infamous marches through the South during the Civil War.

40

45

266 a study of flannery o’connor

“Hey!” John Wesley said. “Let’s go see it! We’ll find it! We’ll poke all the woodwork and find it! Who lives there? Where do you turn off at? Hey Pop, can’t we turn off there?” “We never have seen a house with a secret panel!” June Star shrieked. “Let’s go to the house with the secret panel! Hey Pop, can’t we go see the house with the secret panel!” “It’s not far from here, I know,” the grandmother said. “It won’t take over twenty minutes.” Bailey was looking straight ahead. His jaw was as rigid as a horse- shoe. “No,” he said. The children began to yell and scream that they wanted to see the house with the secret panel. John Wesley kicked the back of the front seat and June Star hung over her mother’s shoulder and whined desperately into her ear that they never had any fun even on their vacation, that they could never do what THEY wanted to do. The baby began to scream and John Wesley kicked the back of the seat so hard that his father could feel the blows in his kidney. “All right!” he shouted and drew the car to a stop at the side of the road. “Will you all shut up? Will you all just shut up for one second? If you don’t shut up, we won’t go anywhere.” “It would be very educational for them,” the grandmother murmured. “All right,” Bailey said, “but get this: this is the only time we’re going to stop for anything like this. This is the one and only time.” “The dirt road that you have to turn down is about a mile back,” the grandmother directed. “I marked it when we passed.” “A dirt road,” Bailey groaned. After they had turned around and were headed toward the dirt road, the grandmother recalled other points about the house, the beautiful glass over the front doorway and the candle-lamp in the hall. John Wes- ley said that the secret panel was probably in the fireplace. “You can’t go inside this house,” Bailey said. “You don’t know who lives there.” “While you all talk to the people in front, I’ll run around behind and get in a window,” John Wesley suggested. “We’ll all stay in the car,” his mother said. They turned onto the dirt road and the car raced roughly along in a swirl of pink dust. The grandmother recalled the times when there were no paved roads and thirty miles was a day’s journey. The dirt road was hilly and there were sudden washes in it and sharp curves on dangerous embankments. All at once they would be on a hill, looking down over the blue tops of trees for miles around, then the next minute, they would be in a red depression with the dust-coated trees looking down on them. “This place had better turn up in a minute,” Bailey said, “or I’m going to turn around.” The road looked as if no one had traveled on it for months. “It’s not much farther,” the grandmother said and just as she said it, a horrible thought came to her. The thought was so embarrassing

50

55

60

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 267

that she turned red in the face and her eyes dilated and her feet jumped up, upsetting her valise in the corner. The instant the valise moved, the newspaper top she had over the basket under it rose with a snarl and Pitty Sing, the cat, sprang onto Bailey’s shoulder. The children were thrown to the floor and their mother, clutching the baby, was thrown out the door onto the ground; the old lady was thrown into the front seat. The car turned over once and landed right- side-up in a gulch off the side of the road. Bailey remained in the driver’s seat with the cat — gray-striped with a broad white face and an orange nose — clinging to his neck like a caterpillar. As soon as the children saw they could move their arms and legs, they scrambled out of the car, shouting, “We’ve had an ACCIDENT!” The grandmother was curled up under the dashboard, hoping she was injured so that Bailey’s wrath would not come down on her all at once. The horrible thought she had before the accident was that the house she had remembered so vividly was not in Georgia but in Tennessee. Bailey removed the cat from his neck with both hands and flung it out the window against the side of a pine tree. Then he got out of the car and started looking for the children’s mother. She was sitting against the side of the red gutted ditch, holding the screaming baby, but she only had a cut down her face and a broken shoulder. “We’ve had an ACCIDENT!” the children screamed in a frenzy of delight. “But nobody’s killed,” June Star said with disappointment as the grandmother limped out of the car, her hat still pinned to her head but the broken front brim standing up at a jaunty angle and the violet spray hanging off the side. They all sat down in the ditch, except the children, to recover from the shock. They were all shaking. “Maybe a car will come along,” said the children’s mother hoarsely. “I believe I have injured an organ,” said the grandmother, pressing her side, but no one answered her. Bailey’s teeth were clattering. He had on a yellow sport shirt with bright blue parrots designed in it and his face was as yellow as the shirt. The grandmother decided that she would not mention that the house was in Tennessee. The road was about ten feet above and they could see only the tops of the trees on the other side of it. Behind the ditch they were sitting in there were more woods, tall and dark and deep. In a few minutes they saw a car some distance away on top of a hill, coming slowly as if the occupants were watching them. The grandmother stood up and waved both arms dramatically to attract their attention. The car continued to come on slowly, disappeared around a bend and appeared again, moving even slower, on top of the hill they had gone over. It was a big black bat- tered hearse-like automobile. There were three men in it. It came to a stop just over them and for some minutes, the driver looked down with a steady expressionless gaze to where they were sit- ting, and didn’t speak. Then he turned his head and muttered some- thing to the other two and they got out. One was a fat boy in black

65

70

268 a study of flannery o’connor

trousers and a red sweat shirt with a silver stallion embossed on the front of it. He moved around on the right side of them and stood star- ing, his mouth partly open in a kind of loose grin. The other had on khaki pants and a blue striped coat and a gray hat pulled down very low, hiding most of his face. He came around slowly on the left side. Neither spoke. The driver got out of the car and stood by the side of it, looking down at them. He was an older man than the other two. His hair was just beginning to gray and he wore silver-rimmed spectacles that gave him a scholarly look. He had a long creased face and didn’t have on any shirt or undershirt. He had on blue jeans that were too tight for him and was holding a black hat and a gun. The two boys also had guns. “We’ve had an ACCIDENT!” the children screamed. The grandmother had the peculiar feeling that the bespectacled man was someone she knew. His face was as familiar to her as if she had known him all her life but she could not recall who he was. He moved away from the car and began to come down the embankment, placing his feet carefully so that he wouldn’t slip. He had on tan and white shoes and no socks, and his ankles were red and thin. “Good afternoon,” he said. “I see you all had you a little spill.” “We turned over twice!” said the grandmother. “Oncet,” he corrected. “We seen it happen. Try their car and see will it run, Hiram,” he said quietly to the boy with the gray hat. “What you got that gun for?” John Wesley asked. “Whatcha gonna do with that gun?” “Lady,” the man said to the children’s mother, “would you mind calling them children to sit down by you? Children make me nervous. I want all you all to sit down right together there where you’re at.” “What are you telling US what to do for?” June Star asked. Behind them the line of woods gaped like a dark open mouth. “Come here,” said their mother. “Look here now,” Bailey said suddenly, “we’re in a predicament! We’re in. . . .” The grandmother shrieked. She scrambled to her feet and stood staring. “You’re The Misfit!” she said. “I recognized you at once!” “Yes’m,” the man said, smiling slightly as if he were pleased in spite of himself to be known, “but it would have been better for all of you, lady, if you hadn’t of reckernized me.” Bailey turned his head sharply and said something to his mother that shocked even the children. The old lady began to cry and The Misfit reddened. “Lady,” he said, “don’t you get upset. Sometimes a man says things he don’t mean. I don’t reckon he meant to talk to you thataway.” “You wouldn’t shoot a lady, would you?” the grandmother said and re moved a clean handkerchief from her cuff and began to slap at her eyes with it.

75

80

85

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 269

The Misfit pointed the toe of his shoe into the ground and made a little hole and then covered it up again. “I would hate to have to,” he said. “Listen,” the grandmother almost screamed, “I know you’re a good man. You don’t look a bit like you have common blood. I know you must come from nice people!” “Yes mam,” he said, “finest people in the world.” When he smiled he showed a row of strong white teeth. “God never made a finer woman than my mother and my daddy’s heart was pure gold,” he said. The boy with the red sweat shirt had come around behind them and was stand- ing with his gun at his hip. The Misfit squatted down on the ground. “Watch them children, Bobby Lee,” he said. “You know they make me nervous.” He looked at the six of them huddled together in front of him and he seemed to be embarrassed as if he couldn’t think of anything to say. “Ain’t a cloud in the sky,” he remarked, looking up at it. “Don’t see no sun but don’t see no cloud neither.” “Yes, it’s a beautiful day,” said the grandmother. “Listen,” she said, “you shouldn’t call yourself The Misfit because I know you’re a good man at heart. I can just look at you and tell.” “Hush!” Bailey yelled. “Hush! Everybody shut up and let me handle this!” He was squatting in the position of a runner about to sprint for- ward but he didn’t move. “I pre-chate that, lady,” The Misfit said and drew a little circle in the ground with the butt of his gun. “It’ll take a half a hour to fix this here car,” Hiram called, looking over the raised hood of it. “Well, first you and Bobby Lee get him and that little boy to step over yonder with you,” The Misfit said, pointing to Bailey and John Wes- ley. “The boys want to ast you something,” he said to Bailey. “Would you mind stepping back in them woods there with them?” “Listen,” Bailey began, “we’re in a terrible predicament! Nobody realizes what this is,” and his voice cracked. His eyes were as blue and intense as the parrots in his shirt and he remained perfectly still. The grandmother reached up to adjust her hat brim as if she were going to the woods with him but it came off in her hand. She stood star- ing at it and after a second she let it fall to the ground. Hiram pulled Bai- ley up by the arm as if he were assisting an old man. John Wesley caught hold of his father’s hand and Bobby Lee followed. They went off toward the woods and just as they reached the dark edge, Bailey turned and sup- porting himself against a gray naked pine trunk, he shouted, “I’ll be back in a minute, Mamma, wait on me!” “Come back this instant!” his mother shrilled but they all disap- peared into the woods. “Bailey Boy!” the grandmother called in a tragic voice but she found she was looking at The Misfit squatting on the ground in front of her. “I just know you’re a good man,” she said desperately. “You’re not a bit common!”

90

95

270 a study of flannery o’connor

“Nome, I ain’t a good man,” The Misfit said after a second as if he had considered her statement carefully, “but I ain’t the worst in the world neither. My daddy said I was a different breed of dog from my brothers and sisters. ‘You know,’ Daddy said, ‘it’s some that can live their whole life out without asking about it and it’s others has to know why it is, and this boy is one of the latters. He’s going to be into everything!’ ” He put on his black hat and looked up suddenly and then away deep into the woods as if he were embarrassed again. “I’m sorry I don’t have on a shirt before you ladies,” he said, hunching his shoulders slightly. “We buried our clothes that we had on when we escaped and we’re just mak- ing do until we can get better. We borrowed these from some folks we met,” he explained. “That’s perfectly all right,” the grandmother said. “Maybe Bailey has an extra shirt in his suitcase.” “I’ll look and see terrectly,” The Misfit said. “Where are they taking him?” the children’s mother screamed. “Daddy was a card himself,” The Misfit said. “You couldn’t put any- thing over on him. He never got in trouble with the Authorities though. Just had the knack of handling them.” “You could be honest too if you’d only try,” said the grandmother. “Think how wonderful it would be to settle down and live a comfortable life and not have to think about somebody chasing you all the time.” The Misfit kept scratching in the ground with the butt of his gun as if he were thinking about it. “Yes’m, somebody is always after you,” he murmured. The grandmother noticed how thin his shoulder blades were just behind his hat because she was standing up looking down on him. “Do you ever pray?” she asked. He shook his head. All she saw was the black hat wiggle between his shoulder blades. “Nome,” he said. There was a pistol shot from the woods, followed closely by another. Then silence. The old lady’s head jerked around. She could hear the wind move through the tree tops like a long satisfied insuck of breath. “Bailey Boy!” she called. “I was a gospel singer for a while,” The Misfit said. “I been most everything. Been in the arm service, both land and sea, at home and abroad, been twict married, been an undertaker, been with the railroads, plowed Mother Earth, been in a tornado, seen a man burnt alive oncet,” and he looked up at the children’s mother and the little girl who were sit- ting close together, their faces white and their eyes glassy; “I even seen a woman flogged,” he said. “Pray, pray,” the grandmother began, “pray, pray. . . .” “I never was a bad boy that I remember of,” The Misfit said in an almost dreamy voice, “but somewheres along the line I done something wrong and got sent to the penitentiary. I was buried alive,” and he looked up and held her attention to him by a steady stare.

100

105

110

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 271

“That’s when you should have started to pray,” she said. “What did you do to get sent to the penitentiary that first time?” “Turn to the right, it was a wall,” The Misfit said, looking up again at the cloudless sky. “Turn to the left, it was a wall. Look up it was a ceil- ing, look down it was a floor. I forget what I done, lady. I set there and set there, trying to remember what it was I done and I ain’t recalled it to this day. Oncet in a while, I would think it was coming to me, but it never come.” “Maybe they put you in by mistake,” the old lady said vaguely. “Nome,” he said. “It wasn’t no mistake. They had the papers on me.” “You must have stolen something,” she said. The Misfit sneered slightly. “Nobody had nothing I wanted,” he said. “It was a head-doctor at the penitentiary said what I had done was kill my daddy but I known that for a lie. My daddy died in nineteen ought nineteen of the epidemic flu and I never had a thing to do with it. He was buried in the Mount Hopewell Baptist churchyard and you can see for yourself.” “If you would pray,” the old lady said, “Jesus would help you.” “That’s right,” The Misfit said. “Well then, why don’t you pray?” she asked trembling with delight suddenly. “I don’t want no hep,” he said. “I’m doing all right by myself.” Bobby Lee and Hiram came ambling back from the woods. Bobby Lee was dragging a yellow shirt with bright blue parrots in it. “Throw me that shirt, Bobby Lee,” The Misfit said. The shirt came flying at him and landed on his shoulder and he put it on. The grand- mother couldn’t name what the shirt reminded her of. “No, lady,” The Misfit said while he was buttoning it up, “I found out the crime don’t matter. You can do one thing or you can do another, kill a man or take a tire off his car, because sooner or later you’re going to forget what it was you done and just be punished for it.” The children’s mother had begun to make heaving noises as if she couldn’t get her breath. “Lady,” he asked, “would you and that little girl like to step off yonder with Bobby Lee and Hiram and join your husband?” “Yes, thank you,” the mother said faintly. Her left arm dangled help- lessly and she was holding the baby, who had gone to sleep, in the other. “Hep that lady up, Hiram,” The Misfit said as she struggled to climb out of the ditch, “and Bobby Lee, you hold onto that little girl’s hand.” “I don’t want to hold hands with him,” June Star said. “He reminds me of a pig.” The fat boy blushed and laughed and caught her by the arm and pulled her off into the woods after Hiram and her mother. Alone with The Misfit, the grandmother found that she had lost her voice. There was not a cloud in the sky nor any sun. There was noth- ing around her but woods. She wanted to tell him that he must pray.

115

120

125

272 a study of flannery o’connor

She opened and closed her mouth several times before anything came out. Finally she found herself saying, “Jesus, Jesus,” meaning Jesus will help you, but the way she was saying it, it sounded as if she might be cursing. “Yes’m,” The Misfit said as if he agreed. “Jesus thown everything off balance. It was the same case with Him as with me except He hadn’t committed any crime and they could prove I had committed one because they had the papers on me. Of course,” he said, “they never shown me my papers. That’s why I sign myself now. I said long ago, you get your signature and sign everything you do and keep a copy of it. Then you’ll know what you done and you can hold up the crime to the pun- ishment and see do they match and in the end you’ll have something to prove you ain’t been treated right. I call myself The Misfit,” he said, “because I can’t make what all I done wrong fit what all I gone through in punishment.” There was a piercing scream from the woods, followed closely by a pistol report. “Does it seem right to you, lady, that one is punished a heap and another ain’t punished at all?” “Jesus!” the old lady cried. “You’ve got good blood! I know you wouldn’t shoot a lady! I know you come from nice people! Pray! Jesus, you ought not to shoot a lady. I’ll give you all the money I’ve got!” “Lady,” The Misfit said, looking beyond her far into the woods, “there never was a body that give the undertaker a tip.” There were two more pistol reports and the grandmother raised her head like a parched old turkey hen crying for water and called, “Bailey Boy, Bailey Boy!” as if her heart would break. “Jesus was the only One that ever raised the dead,” The Misfit contin- ued, “and He shouldn’t have done it. He thown everything off balance. If He did what He said, then it’s nothing for you to do but thow away every- thing and follow Him, and if He didn’t, then it’s nothing for you to do but enjoy the few minutes you got left the best way you can — by killing somebody or burning down his house or doing some other meanness to him. No pleasure but meanness,” he said and his voice had become almost a snarl. “Maybe He didn’t raise the dead,” the old lady mumbled, not know- ing what she was saying and feeling so dizzy that she sank down in the ditch with her legs twisted under her. “I wasn’t there so I can’t say He didn’t,” The Misfit said. “I wisht I had of been there,” he said, hitting the ground with his fist. “It ain’t right I wasn’t there because if I had of been there I would of known. Listen lady,” he said in a high voice, “if I had of been there I would of known and I wouldn’t be like I am now.” His voice seemed about to crack and the grandmother’s head cleared for an instant. She saw the man’s face twisted close to her own as if he were going to cry and she murmured, “Why you’re one of my babies. You’re one of my own children!” She

130

135

o’connor / a good man is hard to find 273

reached out and touched him on the shoulder. The Misfit sprang back as if a snake had bitten him and shot her three times through the chest. Then he put his gun down on the ground and took off his glasses and began to clean them. Hiram and Bobby Lee returned from the woods and stood over the ditch, looking down at the grandmother who half sat and half lay in a puddle of blood with her legs crossed under her like a child’s and her face smiling up at the cloudless sky. Without his glasses, The Misfit’s eyes were red-rimmed and pale and defenseless-looking. “Take her off and thow her where you thown the others,” he said, picking up the cat that was rubbing itself against his leg. “She was a talker, wasn’t she?” Bobby Lee said, sliding down the ditch with a yodel. “She would of been a good woman,” The Misfit said, “if it had been somebody there to shoot her every minute of her life.” “Some fun!” Bobby Lee said. “Shut up, Bobby Lee,” The Misfit said. “It’s no real pleasure in life.”

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does O’Connor portray the family? What is comic about them? What qualities about them are we meant to take seriously? Are you shocked by what happens to them? Does your attitude toward them remain constant during the course of the story?

2. How do the grandmother’s concerns about the trip to Florida fore- shadow events in the story?

3. Describe the grandmother. How does O’Connor make her the cen- tral character?

4. Characterize The Misfit. What makes him so? Can he be written off as simply insane? How does the grandmother respond to him?

5. Why does The Misfit say that “Jesus thown everything off balance” (para. 129)? What does religion have to do with the brutal action of this story?

6. What does The Misfit mean at the end when he says about the grandmother, “She would of been a good woman . . . if it had been somebody there to shoot her every minute of her life”?

7. Describe the story’s tone. Is it consistent? What is the effect of O’Connor’s use of tone?

8. How is coincidence used to advance the plot? How do coincidences lead to ironies in the story?

9. Explain how the title points to the story’s theme. 10. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. What makes “A Good Man

Is Hard to Find” so difficult to interpret in contrast, say, to Haw- thorne’s “The Birthmark” (p. 289)?

140

274 a study of flannery o’connor

Perspectives on O’Connor

Flannery O’Connor

On the Use of Exaggeration and Distortion 1969

When I write a novel in which the central action is a baptism, I am very well aware that for a majority of my readers, baptism is a meaningless rite, and so in my novel I have to see that this baptism carries enough awe and mystery to jar the reader into some kind of emotional recogni- tion of its significance. To this end I have to bend the whole novel — its language, its structure, its action. I have to make the reader feel, in his bones if nowhere else, that something is going on here that counts. Dis- tortion in this case is an instrument; exaggeration has a purpose, and the whole structure of the story or novel has been made what it is because of belief. This is not the kind of distortion that destroys; it is the kind that reveals, or should reveal.

From “Novelist and Believer” in Mystery and Manners

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. O’Connor says that exaggeration and distortion reveal something in her stories. What is the effect of such exaggeration and distortion in “A Good Man Is Hard to Find?” What is revealed by it?

2. Do you think that O’Connor’s story has anything to offer a reader who has no religious faith? Explain why or why not.

Josephine Hendin (b. 1946)

On O’Connor’s Refusal to “Do Pretty” 1970

There is, in the memory of one Milledgeville matron, the image of O’Connor at nineteen or twenty who, when invited to a wedding shower for an old family friend, remained standing, her back pressed against the wall, scowling at the group of women who had sat down to lunch. Nei- ther the devil nor her mother could make her say yes to this fiercely gra- cious female society, but Flannery O’Connor could not say no even in a whisper. She could not refuse the invitation but she would not accept it either. She did not exactly “fuss” but neither did she “do pretty.”

From The World of Flannery O’Connor

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. How is O’Connor’s personality revealed in this anecdote about her ambivalent response to society? Allow the description to be sugges- tive for you, and flesh out a brief portrait of her.

katz / the function of violence in o’connor’s fiction 275

2. Consider how this personality makes itself apparent in “A Good Man Is Hard to Find.” How does the anecdote help to characterize the narrator’s voice in the story?

3. To what extent do you think biographical details such as this — assuming the Milledgeville matron’s memory to be accurate — can shed light on a writer’s works?

Claire Katz (b. 1935)

The Function of Violence in O’Connor’s Fiction 1974

From the moment the reader enters O’Connor’s backwoods, he is poised on the edge of a pervasive violence. Characters barely contain their rage; images reflect a hostile nature; and even the Christ to whom the charac- ters are ultimately driven is a threatening figure . . . full of the apocalyptic wrath of the Old Testament. O’Connor’s conscious purpose is evident enough . . . : to reveal the need for grace in a world grotesque without a transcendent context. “I have found that my subject in fiction is the action of grace in territory largely held by the devil,” she wrote [in Mystery and Manners], and she was not vague about what the devil is: “an evil intelligence determined on its own supremacy.” It would seem that for O’Connor, given the fact of original Sin, any intelligence determined on its own supremacy was intrinsically evil. For in each work, it is the im pulse toward secular autonomy, the smug confidence that human nature is perfectible by its own efforts, that she sets out to destroy, through an act of violence so intense that the character is rendered helpless, a passive victim of a supe- rior power. Again and again she creates a fiction in which a character attempts to live autonomously, to define himself and his values, only to be jarred back to what she calls “reality” — the recognition of helpless- ness in the face of contingency, and the need for absolute submission to the power of Christ.

From “Flannery O’Connor’s Rage of Vision” in American Literature

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. Which O’Connor characters can be accurately described as having an “evil intelligence determined on its own supremacy” (para. 2)? Choose one character, and write an essay explaining how this description is central to the conflict of the story.

2. To what extent might “A Good Man Is Hard to Find” be accurately described as a story “in which a character attempts to live autonomously, to define . . . values, only to be jarred back to . . . ‘reality’ — the recognition of helplessness in the face of contingency . . .” (para. 2)?

276 a study of flannery o’connor

Time Magazine, On A Good Man Is Hard to Find 1962

Highly unladylike . . . a brutal irony, a slam-bang humor, and a style of writing as balefully direct as a death sentence.

From a Time magazine blurb quoted on the cover of the second American edition of A Good Man Is Hard to Find

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. How adequate do you think this blurb is in characterizing the story? 2. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write your own blurb for the story and be pre-

pared to justify your pithy description.

A Collection of Stories

277

10. Stories for Further Reading 279

Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni (b. 1956)

Born in India, Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni left Calcutta when she was nineteen years old to continue her education in the United States, where she worked a variety of odd jobs while earning a master’s degree from Wright State University and a Ph.D. from the University of California, Berkeley. She currently teaches in the creative writ- ing department at the University of Hous- ton. Her fi rst collection of short stories, Arranged Marriage (which includes “Clothes,” reprinted below), was published in 1995; it won several awards including the American Book Award. In addition to a second collec- tion of stories, The Unknown Errors of Our Lives (2001), she has published several novels including Sister of My Heart (1999), Vine of Desire (2002), The Conch Bearer (2003), and Queen of Dreams (2004). Among her three books

279

10 Stories for Further Reading

The ability of writers to imagine what is not the self, to familiarize the strange and mystify the familiar, is the test of their power.

— TONI MORRISON AP/Wide World Photos.

Copyright © by Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni.

280 stories for further reading

of poetry, her most recent is Leaving Yuba City (1997). Much of her work focuses on Indian immigrant women who fi nd themselves having to balance their lives between their homeland and the United States.

Clothes 1990

The water of the women’s lake laps against my breasts, cool, calming. I can feel it beginning to wash the hot nervousness away from my body. The little waves tickle my armpits, make my sari fl oat up around me, wet and yellow, like a sunfl ower after rain. I close my eyes and smell the sweet brown odor of the ritha pulp my friends Deepali and Radha are working into my hair so it will glisten with little lights this evening. They scrub with more vigor than usual and wash it out more carefully, because today is a special day. It is the day of my bride-viewing. “Ei, Sumita! Mita! Are you deaf?” Radha says. “This is the third time I’ve asked you the same question.” “Look at her, already dreaming about her husband, and she hasn’t even seen him yet!” Deepali jokes. Then she adds, the envy in her voice only half hidden, “Who cares about friends from a little Indian village when you’re about to go live in America?” I want to deny it, to say that I will always love them and all the things we did together through my growing-up years — visiting the charak fair where we always ate too many sweets, raiding the neighbor’s guava tree summer afternoons while the grown-ups slept, telling fairy tales while we braided each other’s hair in elaborate patterns we’d invented. And she married the handsome prince who took her to his kingdom beyond the seven seas. But already the activities of our girlhood seem to be far in my past, the colors leached out of them, like old sepia photographs. His name is Somesh Sen, the man who is coming to our house with his parents today and who will be my husband “if I’m lucky enough to be chosen,” as my aunt says. He is coming all the way from California. Father showed it to me yesterday, on the metal globe that sits on his desk, a chunky pink wedge on the side of a multicolored slab marked Untd. Sts. of America. I touched it and felt the excitement leap all the way up my arm like an electric shock. Then it died away, leaving only a beaten-metal coldness against my fi ngertips. For the fi rst time it occurred to me that if things worked out the way everyone was hoping, I’d be going halfway around the world to live with a man I hadn’t even met. Would I ever see my parents again? Don’t send me so far away, I wanted to cry, but of course I didn’t. It would be ungrate- ful. Father had worked so hard to fi nd this match for me. Besides, wasn’t it every woman’s destiny, as Mother was always telling me, to leave the known for the un known? She had done it, and her mother before her. A married woman belongs to her husband, her in-laws. Hot seeds of tears pricked my eyelids at the unfairness of it.

5

divakaruni / clothes 281

“Mita Moni, little jewel,” Father said, calling me by my childhood name. He put out his hand as though he wanted to touch my face, then let it fall to his side. “He’s a good man. Comes from a fi ne family. He will be kind to you.” He was silent for a while. Finally he said, “Come, let me show you the special sari I bought in Calcutta for you to wear at the bride-viewing.” “Are you nervous?” Radha asks as she wraps my hair in a soft cotton towel. Her parents are also trying to arrange a marriage for her. So far three families have come to see her, but no one has chosen her because her skin-color is considered too dark. “Isn’t it terrible, not knowing what’s going to happen?” I nod because I don’t want to disagree, don’t want to make her feel bad by saying that sometimes it’s worse when you know what’s coming, like I do. I knew it as soon as Father unlocked his mahogany almirah° and took out the sari. It was the most expensive sari I had ever seen, and surely the most beau tiful. Its body was a pale pink, like the dawn sky over the women’s lake. The color of transition. Embroidered all over it were tiny stars made out of real gold zari thread. “Here, hold it,” said Father. The sari was unexpectedly heavy in my hands, silk-slippery, a sari to walk carefully in. A sari that could change one’s life. I stood there holding it, wanting to weep. I knew that when I wore it, it would hang in perfect pleats to my feet and shimmer in the light of the evening lamps. It would dazzle Somesh and his parents and they would choose me to be his bride.

When the plane takes off, I try to stay calm, to take deep, slow breaths like Father does when he practices yoga. But my hands clench them- selves on to the folds of my sari and when I force them open, after the fasten seat belt and no smoking signs have blinked off, I see they have left damp blotches on the delicate crushed fabric. We had some arguments about this sari. I wanted a blue one for the journey, because blue is the color of possibility, the color of the sky through which I would be traveling. But Mother said there must be red in it because red is the color of luck for married women. Finally, Father found one to satisfy us both: midnight-blue with a thin red border the same color as the marriage mark I’m wearing on my forehead. It is hard for me to think of myself as a married woman. I whisper my new name to myself, Mrs. Sumita Sen, but the syllables rustle uneas- ily in my mouth like a stiff satin that’s never been worn. Somesh had to leave for America just a week after the wedding. He had to get back to the store, he explained to me. He had promised his partner. The store. It seems more real to me than Somesh — perhaps because I know more about it. It was what we had mostly talked about

almirah: A large closet.

10

15

282 stories for further reading

the night after the wedding, the fi rst night we were together alone. It stayed open twenty-four hours, yes, all night, every night, not like the Indian stores which closed at dinnertime and sometimes in the hottest part of the afternoon. That’s why his partner needed him back. The store was called 7-Eleven. I thought it a strange name, exotic, risky. All the stores I knew were piously named after gods and goddesses — Ganesh Sweet House, Lakshmi Vastralaya for Fine Saris — to bring the owners luck. The store sold all kinds of amazing things — apple juice in cardboard cartons that never leaked; American bread that came in cellophane packages, already cut up; canisters of potato chips, each large grainy fl ake curved exactly like the next. The large refrigerator with see-through glass doors held beer and wine, which Somesh said were the most popular items. “That’s where the money comes from, especially in the neighbor- hood where our store is,” said Somesh, smiling at the shocked look on my face. (The only places I knew of that sold alcohol were the village toddy shops, “dark, stinking dens of vice,” Father called them.) “A lot of Americans drink, you know. It’s a part of their culture, not considered immoral, like it is here. And really, there’s nothing wrong with it.” He touched my lips lightly with his fi nger. “When you come to California, I’ll get you some sweet white wine and you’ll see how good it makes you feel. . . .” Now his fi ngers were stroking my cheeks, my throat, moving downward. I closed my eyes and tried not to jerk away because after all it was my wifely duty. “It helps if you can think about something else,” my friend Madhavi had said when she warned me about what most husbands demanded on the very fi rst night. Two years married, she already had one child and was pregnant with a second one. I tried to think of the women’s lake, the dark cloudy green of the shapla° leaves that fl oat on the water, but his lips were hot against my skin, his fi ngers fumbling with buttons, pulling at the cotton night-sari I wore. I couldn’t breathe. “Bite hard on your tongue,” Madhavi had advised. “The pain will keep your mind off what’s going on down there.” But when I bit down, it hurt so much that I cried out. I couldn’t help it although I was ashamed. Somesh lifted his head. I don’t know what he saw on my face, but he stopped right away. “Shhh,” he said, although I had made myself silent already. “It’s OK, we’ll wait until you feel like it.” I tried to apologize but he smiled it away and started telling me some more about the store. And that’s how it was the rest of the week until he left. We would lie side by side on the big white bridal pillow I had embroidered with a pair of doves for married harmony, and Somesh would describe how the store’s front windows were decorated with a fl ashing neon Dewar’s sign

shapla: A water plant.

20

divakaruni / clothes 283

and a lighted Budweiser waterfall this big. I would watch his hands mov- ing excitedly through the dim air of the bedroom and think that Father had been right, he was a good man, my husband, a kind, patient man. And so handsome, too, I would add, stealing a quick look at the strong curve of his jaw, feeling luckier than I had any right to be. The night before he left, Somesh confessed that the store wasn’t making much money yet. “I’m not worried, I’m sure it soon will,” he added, his fi ngers pleating the edge of my sari. “But I just don’t want to give you the wrong im pression, don’t want you to be disappointed.” In the half dark I could see he had turned toward me. His face, with two vertical lines between the brows, looked young, apprehensive, in need of protection. I’d never seen that on a man’s face before. Something rose in me like a wave. “It’s all right,” I said, as though to a child, and pulled his head down to my breast. His hair smelled faintly of the American cigarettes he smoked. “I won’t be disappointed. I’ll help you.” And a sudden happiness fi lled me. That night I dreamed I was at the store. Soft American music fl oated in the background as I moved between shelves stocked high with brightly colored cans and elegant-necked bottles, turning their labels carefully to the front, polishing them until they shone. Now, sitting inside this metal shell that is hurtling through emptiness, I try to remember other things about my husband: how gentle his hands had been, and his lips, surprisingly soft, like a woman’s. How I’ve longed for them through those drawn-out nights while I waited for my visa to arrive. He will be standing at the customs gate, and when I reach him, he will lower his face to mine. We will kiss in front of everyone, not caring, like Americans, then pull back, look each other in the eye, and smile. But suddenly, as I am thinking this, I realize I cannot recall Somesh’s face. I try and try until my head hurts, but I can only visualize the black air swirling outside the plane, too thin for breathing. My own breath grows ragged with panic as I think of it and my mouth fi lls with sour fl uid the way it does just before I throw up. I grope for something to hold on to, something beautiful and talis- manic from my old life. And then I remember. Somewhere down under me, low in the belly of the plane, inside my new brown case which is stacked in the dark with a hundred others, are my saris. Thick Kanjeep- uram silks in solid purples and golden yellows, the thin hand-woven cot- tons of the Bengal countryside, green as a young banana plant, gray as the women’s lake on a monsoon morning. Already I can feel my shoul- ders loosening up, my breath steadying. My wedding Benarasi, fl ame- orange, with a wide palloo° of gold-embroidered dancing peacocks. Fold upon fold of Dhakais° so fi ne they can be pulled through a ring. Into each fold my mother has tucked a small sachet of sandalwood powder

palloo: The piece of the sari that goes over the shoulder. Dhakais: Hand-loomed saris from Bangladesh.

25

30

284 stories for further reading

to protect the saris from the unknown insects of America. Little silk sachets, made from her old saris — I can smell their calm fragrance as I watch the American air hostess wheeling the dinner cart toward my seat. It is the smell of my mother’s hands. I know then that everything will be all right. And when the air host- ess bends her curly golden head to ask me what I would like to eat, I understand every word in spite of her strange accent and answer her without stumbling even once over the unfamiliar English phrases.

Late at night I stand in front of our bedroom mirror trying on the clothes Somesh has bought for me and smuggled in past his parents. I model each one for him, walking back and forth, clasping my hands behind my head, lips pouted, left hip thrust out just like the models on TV, while he whispers applause. I’m breathless with suppressed laughter (Father and Mother Sen must not hear us) and my cheeks are hot with the delicious excitement of conspiracy. We’ve stuffed a towel at the bot- tom of the door so no light will shine through. I’m wearing a pair of jeans now, marveling at the curves of my hips and thighs, which have always been hidden under the fl owing lines of my saris. I love the color, the same pale blue as the nayantara fl owers that grow in my parents’ garden. The solid comforting weight. The jeans come with a close-fi tting T-shirt which outlines my breasts. I scold Somesh to hide my embarrassed pleasure. He shouldn’t have been so extravagant. We can’t afford it. He just smiles. The T-shirt is sunrise-orange — the color, I decide, of joy, of my new American life. Across its middle, in large black letters, is written Great America. I was sure the letters referred to the country, but Somesh told me it is the name of an amusement park, a place where people go to have fun. I think it a wonderful concept, novel. Above the letters is the picture of a train. Only it’s not a train, Somesh tells me, it’s a roller coaster. He tries to explain how it moves, the insane speed, the dizzy ground falling away, then gives up. “I’ll take you there, Mita sweetheart,” he says, “as soon as we move into our own place.” That’s our dream (mine more than his, I suspect) — moving out of this two-room apartment where it seems to me if we all breathed in at once, there would be no air left. Where I must cover my head with the edge of my Japan nylon sari (my expensive Indian ones are to be saved for spe- cial occasions — trips to the temple, Bengali New Year) and serve tea to the old women that come to visit Mother Sen, where like a good Indian wife I must never address my husband by his name. Where even in our bed we kiss guiltily, uneasily, listening for the giveaway creak of springs. Some- times I laugh to myself, thinking how ironic it is that after all my fears about America, my life has turned out to be no different from Deepali’s or Radha’s. But at other times I feel caught in a world where everything is fro- zen in place, like a scene inside a glass paperweight. It is a world so small that if I were to stretch out my arms, I would touch its cold unyielding

35

divakaruni / clothes 285

edges. I stand inside this glass world, watching helplessly as America rushes by, wanting to scream. Then I’m ashamed. Mita, I tell myself, you’re growing westernized. Back home you’d never have felt this way. We must be patient. I know that. Tactful, loving children. That is the Indian way. “I’m their life,” Somesh tells me as we lie beside each other, lazy from lovemaking. He’s not boasting, merely stating a fact. “They’ve always been there when I needed them. I could never abandon them at some old people’s home.” For a moment I feel rage. You’re constantly thinking of them, I want to scream. But what about me? Then I remem- ber my own parents, Mother’s hands cool on my sweat-drenched body through nights of fever, Father teaching me to read, his fi nger moving along the crisp black angles of the alphabet, transforming them magi- cally into things I knew, water, dog, mango tree. I beat back my unrea- sonable desire and nod agreement. Somesh has bought me a cream blouse with a long brown skirt. They match beautifully, like the inside and outside of an almond. “For when you begin working,” he says. But fi rst he wants me to start college. Get a degree, perhaps in teaching. I picture myself in front of a classroom of girls with blond pigtails and blue uniforms, like a scene out of an English movie I saw long ago in Calcutta. They raise their hands respectfully when I ask a question. “Do you really think I can?” I ask. “Of course,” he replies. I am gratifi ed he has such confi dence in me. But I have another plan, a secret that I will divulge to him once we move. What I really want is to work in the store. I want to stand behind the counter in the cream-and- brown skirt set (color of earth, color of seeds) and ring up purchases. The register drawer will glide open. Confi dent, I will count out green dollars and silver quarters. Gleaming copper pennies. I will dust the jars of gilt- wrapped chocolates on the counter. Will straighten, on the far wall, post- ers of smiling young men raising their beer mugs to toast scantily clad redheads with huge spiky eyelashes. (I have never visited the store — my in- laws don’t consider it proper for a wife — but of course I know exactly what it looks like.) I will charm the customers with my smile, so that they will return again and again just to hear me telling them to have a nice day. Meanwhile, I will the store to make money for us. Quickly. Because when we move, we’ll be paying for two households. But so far it hasn’t worked. They’re running at a loss, Somesh tells me. They had to let the hired help go. This means most nights Somesh has to take the graveyard shift (that horrible word, like a cold hand up my spine) because his part- ner refuses to. “The bastard!” Somesh spat out once. “Just because he put in more money he thinks he can order me around. I’ll show him!” I was fright- ened by the vicious twist of his mouth. Somehow I’d never imagined that he could be angry. Often Somesh leaves as soon as he has dinner and doesn’t get back till after I’ve made morning tea for Father and Mother Sen. I lie mostly awake those nights, picturing masked intruders crouching in the

40

286 stories for further reading

shadowed back of the store, like I’ve seen on the police shows that Father Sen sometimes watches. But Somesh insists there’s nothing to worry about, they have bars on the windows and a burglar alarm. “And remem- ber,” he says, “the extra cash will help us move out that much quicker.” I’m wearing a nightie now, my very fi rst one. It’s black and lacy, with a bit of a shine to it, and it glides over my hips to stop outrageously at mid-thigh. My mouth is an O of surprise in the mirror, my legs long and pale and sleek from the hair remover I asked Somesh to buy me last week. The legs of a movie star. Somesh laughs at the look on my face, then says, “You’re beautiful.” His voice starts a fl utter low in my belly. “Do you really think so?” I ask, mostly because I want to hear him say it again. No one has called me beautiful before. My father would have thought it inappropriate, my mother that it would make me vain. Somesh draws me close. “Very beautiful,” he whispers. “The most beautiful woman in the whole world.” His eyes are not joking as they usually are. I want to turn off the light, but “Please,” he says, “I want to keep seeing your face.” His fi ngers are taking the pins from my hair, undoing my braids. The escaped strands fall on his face like dark rain. We have already decided where we will hide my new American clothes — the jeans and T-shirt camoufl aged on a hanger among Somesh’s pants, the skirt set and nightie at the bottom of my suitcase, a sandalwood sachet tucked between them, waiting.

I stand in the middle of our empty bedroom, my hair still wet from the purifi cation bath, my back to the stripped bed I can’t bear to look at. I hold in my hands the plain white sari I’m supposed to wear. I must hurry. Any minute now there’ll be a knock at the door. They are afraid to leave me alone too long, afraid I might do something to myself. The sari, a thick voile that will bunch around the waist when worn, is borrowed. White. Widow’s color, color of endings. I try to tuck it into the top of the petticoat, but my fi ngers are numb, disobedient. It spills through them and there are waves and waves of white around my feet. I kick out in sudden rage, but the sari is too soft, it gives too easily. I grab up an edge, clamp down with my teeth and pull, feeling a fi erce, bitter satisfaction when I hear it rip. There’s a cut, still stinging, on the side of my right arm, halfway to the elbow. It is from the bangle-breaking ceremony. Old Mrs. Ghosh per- formed the ritual, since she’s a widow, too. She took my hands in hers and brought them down hard on the bedpost, so that the glass bangles I was wearing shattered and multicolored shards fl ew out in every direc- tion. Some landed on the body that was on the bed, covered with a sheet. I can’t call it Somesh. He was gone already. She took an edge of the sheet and rubbed the red marriage mark off my forehead. She was crying. All the women in the room were crying ex cept me. I watched them as though from the far end of a tunnel. Their fl ared nostrils, their red-veined eyes, the runnels of tears, salt-corrosive, down their cheeks.

45

divakaruni / clothes 287

It happened last night. He was at the store. “It isn’t too bad,” he would tell me on the days when he was in a good mood. “Not too many customers. I can put up my feet and watch MTV all night. I can sing along with Michael Jackson as loud as I want.” He had a good voice, Somesh. Sometimes he would sing softly at night, lying in bed, holding me. Hindi songs of love, Mere Sapnon Ki Rani, queen of my dreams. (He would not sing American songs at home out of respect for his parents, who thought they were decadent.) I would feel his warm breath on my hair as I fell asleep. Someone came into the store last night. He took all the money, even the little rolls of pennies I had helped Somesh make up. Before he left he emptied the bullets from his gun into my husband’s chest. “Only thing is,” Somesh would say about the night shifts, “I really miss you. I sit there and think of you asleep in bed. Do you know that when you sleep you make your hands into fi sts, like a baby? When we move out, will you come along some nights to keep me company?” My in-laws are good people, kind. They made sure the body was covered before they let me into the room. When someone asked if my hair should be cut off, as they sometimes do with widows back home, they said no. They said I could stay at the apartment with Mrs. Ghosh if I didn’t want to go to the crematorium. They asked Dr. Das to give me something to calm me down when I couldn’t stop shivering. They didn’t say, even once, as people would surely have in the village, that it was my bad luck that brought death to their son so soon after his marriage. They will probably go back to India now. There’s nothing here for them anymore. They will want me to go with them. You’re like our daughter, they will say. Your home is with us, for as long as you want. For the rest of your life. The rest of my life. I can’t think about that yet. It makes me dizzy. Fragments are fl ying about my head, multicolored and piercing sharp like bits of bangle glass. I want you to go to college. Choose a career. I stand in front of a class- room of smiling children who love me in my cream-and-brown American dress. A faceless parade straggles across my eyelids: all those customers at the store that I will never meet. The lace nightie, fragrant with san- dalwood, waiting in its blackness inside my suitcase. The savings book where we have $3605.33. Four thousand and we can move out, maybe next month. The name of the panty hose I’d asked him to buy me for my birth- day: sheer golden-beige. His lips, unexpectedly soft, woman-smooth. Elegant-necked wine bottles swept off shelves, shattering on the fl oor. I know Somesh would not have tried to stop the gunman. I can pic- ture his silhouette against the lighted Dewar’s sign, hands raised. He is trying to fi nd the right expression to put on his face, calm, reassuring, reasonable. OK, take the money. No, I won’t call the police. His hands tremble just a little. His eyes darken with disbelief as his fi ngers touch his chest and come away wet.

50

55

288 stories for further reading

I yanked away the cover. I had to see. Great America, a place where people go to have fun. My breath roller-coasting through my body, my unlived life gathering itself into a scream. I’d expected blood, a lot of blood, the deep red-black of it crusting his chest. But they must have cleaned him up at the hospital. He was dressed in his silk wedding kurta. Against its warm ivory his face appeared remote, stern. The musky aroma of his aftershave lotion that someone must have sprinkled on the body. It didn’t quite hide that other smell, thin, sour, metallic. The smell of death. The fl oor shifted under me, tilting like a wave. I’m lying on the fl oor now, on the spilled white sari. I feel sleepy. Or perhaps it is some other feeling I don’t have a word for. The sari is seductive-soft, drawing me into its folds. Sometimes, bathing at the lake, I would move away from my friends, their endless chatter. I’d swim toward the middle of the water with a lazy backstroke, gazing at the sky, its enormous blueness drawing me up until I felt weightless and dizzy. Once in a while there would be a plane, a small silver needle drawn through the clouds, in and out, until it disap- peared. Sometimes the thought came to me, as I fl oated in the middle of the lake with the sun beating down on my closed eyelids, that it would be so easy to let go, to drop into the dim brown world of mud, of water weeds fi ne as hair. Once I almost did it. I curled my body inward, tight as a fi st, and felt it start to sink. The sun grew pale and shapeless; the water, suddenly cold, licked at the insides of my ears in welcome. But in the end I couldn’t. They are knocking on the door now, calling my name. I push myself off the fl oor, my body almost too heavy to lift up, as when one climbs out after a long swim. I’m surprised at how vividly it comes to me, this memory I haven’t called up in years: the desperate fl ailing of arms and legs as I fought my way upward; the press of the water on me, heavy as terror; the wild animal trapped inside my chest, clawing at my lungs. The day returning to me as searing air, the way I drew it in, in, in, as though I would never have enough of it. That’s when I know I cannot go back. I don’t know yet how I’ll man- age, here in this new, dangerous land. I only know I must. Because all over India, at this very moment, widows in white saris are bowing their veiled heads, serving tea to in-laws. Doves with cut-off wings. I am standing in front of the mirror now, gathering up the sari. I tuck in the ripped end so it lies next to my skin, my secret. I make myself think of the store, although it hurts. Inside the refrigerated unit, blue milk cartons neatly lined up by Somesh’s hands. The exotic smell of Hills Brothers coffee brewed black and strong, the glisten of sugar-glazed donuts nestled in tissue. The neon Budweiser emblem winking on and off like a risky invitation. I straighten my shoulders and stand taller, take a deep breath. Air fi lls me — the same air that traveled through Somesh’s lungs a little while ago. The thought is like an unexpected, intimate gift. I tilt my chin,

60

hawthorne / the birthmark 289

readying myself for the arguments of the coming weeks, the remonstra- tions. In the mirror a woman holds my gaze, her eyes apprehensive yet steady. She wears a blouse and skirt the color of almonds.

Nathaniel Hawthorne (1804–1864)

Born in Salem, Massachusetts, Nathaniel Haw- thorne came from a family that traced its roots back to the Puritans. After graduating from Bowdoin College in 1825, he returned home to Salem, where for the next twelve years he read and taught himself how to write. He pub- lished his fi rst collection of stories, Twice-Told Tales, in 1837, followed by a second edition in 1842, and Mosses from an Old House in 1846. In 1849 he lost his job at the Salem Custom House and focused on his writing. In addition to The Scarlet Letter (1850), he wrote The House of Seven Gables (1851); The Blithe- dale Romance (1852); The Snow-Image, and Other Twice-Told Tales (1852); a campaign biography of his Bowdoin classmate, The Life of Franklin Pierce (1852); and two collections of stories for children, A Wonder Book (1852) and Tanglewood Tales (1853).

The Birthmark 1843

In the latter part of the last century there lived a man of science, an emi- nent proficient in every branch of natural philosophy, who not long before our story opens had made experience of a spiritual affinity more attractive than any chemical one. He had left his laboratory to the care of an assistant, cleared his fine countenance from the furnace smoke, washed the stain of acids from his fingers, and persuaded a beautiful woman to become his wife. In those days when the comparatively recent discovery of electricity and other kindred mysteries of Nature seemed to open paths into the region of miracle, it was not unusual for the love of science to rival the love of woman in its depth and absorbing energy. The higher intellect, the imagination, the spirit, and even the heart might all find their congenial aliment in pursuits which, as some of their ardent votaries believed, would ascend from one step of powerful intelligence to another, until the philosopher should lay his hand on the secret of creative force and perhaps make new worlds for himself. We know not whether Aylmer possessed this degree of faith in man’s ultimate con- trol over Nature. He had devoted himself, however, too unreservedly to scientific studies ever to be weaned from them by any second passion. His love for his young wife might prove the stronger of the two; but it

By permission of the Peabody Essex Museum.

290 stories for further reading

could only be by intertwining itself with his love of science, and uniting the strength of the latter to his own. Such a union accordingly took place, and was attended with truly remarkable consequences and a deeply impressive moral. One day, very soon after their marriage, Aylmer sat gazing at his wife with a trouble in his countenance that grew stronger until he spoke. “Georgiana,” said he, “has it never occurred to you that the mark upon your cheek might be removed?” “No, indeed,” said she, smiling; but perceiving the seriousness of his manner, she blushed deeply. “To tell you the truth it has been so often called a charm that I was simple enough to imagine it might be so.” “Ah, upon another face perhaps it might,” replied her husband; “but never on yours. No, dearest Georgiana, you came so nearly perfect from the hand of Nature that this slightest possible defect, which we hesitate whether to term a de fect or a beauty, shocks me, as being the visible mark of earthly imper fection.” “Shocks you, my husband!” cried Georgiana, deeply hurt; at first reddening with momentary anger, but then bursting into tears. “Then why did you take me from my mother’s side? You cannot love what shocks you!” To explain this conversation it must be mentioned that in the cen- ter of Georgiana’s left cheek there was a singular mark, deeply interwo- ven, as it were, with the texture and substance of her face. In the usual state of her complexion — a healthy though delicate bloom — the mark wore a tint of deeper crimson, which imperfectly defined its shape amid the surrounding rosiness. When she blushed it gradually became more indistinct, and finally vanished amid the triumphant rush of blood that bathed the whole cheek with its brilliant glow. But if any shifting motion caused her to turn pale, there was the mark again, a crimson stain upon the snow, in what Aylmer sometimes deemed an almost fearful distinct- ness. Its shape bore not a little similarity to the human hand, though of the smallest pygmy size. Georgiana’s lovers were wont to say that some fairy at her birth hour had laid her tiny hand upon the infant’s cheek, and left this impress there in token of the magic endowments that were to give her such sway over all hearts. Many a desperate swain would have risked life for the privilege of pressing his lips to the mysterious hand. It must not be concealed, however, that the impression wrought by this fairy sign manual varied exceedingly, according to the difference of temperament in the beholders. Some fastidious persons — but they were exclusively of her own sex — affirmed that the bloody hand, as they chose to call it, quite destroyed the effect of Georgiana’s beauty, and ren- dered her countenance even hideous. But it would be as reasonable to say that one of those small blue stains which sometimes oc cur in the purest statuary marble would convert the Eve of Powers to a monster. Masculine observers, if the birthmark did not heighten their admira- tion, contented themselves with wishing it away, that the world might

5

hawthorne / the birthmark 291

possess one living specimen of ideal loveliness without the semblance of a flaw. After his marriage, — for he thought little or nothing of the matter before, — Aylmer discovered that this was the case with himself. Had she been less beautiful, — if Envy’s self could have found aught else to sneer at, — he might have felt his affection heightened by the prettiness of this mimic hand, now vaguely portrayed, now lost, now stealing forth again and glimmering to and fro with every pulse of emotion that throbbed within her heart; but seeing her otherwise so perfect, he found this one defect grow more and more intolerable with every moment of their united lives. It was the fatal flaw of humanity which Nature, in one shape or another, stamps ineffaceably on all her productions, either to imply that they are temporary and finite, or that their perfection must be wrought by toil and pain. The crimson hand expressed the ineludible gripe° in which mortality clutches the high- est and purest of earthly mold, degrading them into kindred with the lowest, and even with the very brutes, like whom their visible frames return to dust. In this manner, selecting it as the symbol of his wife’s liability to sin, sorrow, decay, and death, Aylmer’s somber imagination was not long in rendering the birthmark a frightful object, causing him more trouble and horror than ever Georgiana’s beauty, whether of soul or sense, had given him delight. At all the seasons which should have been their happiest, he invari- ably and without intending it, nay, in spite of a purpose to the contrary, reverted to this one disastrous topic. Trifling as it at first appeared, it so connected itself with innumerable trains of thought and modes of feeling that it became the central point of all. With the morning twilight Aylmer opened his eyes upon his wife’s face and recognized the symbol of imper- fection; and when they sat together at the evening hearth his eyes wan- dered stealthily to her cheek, and beheld, flickering with the blaze of the wood fire, the spectral hand that wrote mortality where he would fain have worshiped. Georgiana soon learned to shudder at his gaze. It needed but a glance with the peculiar expression that his face often wore to change the roses of her cheek into a deathlike paleness, amid which the crimson hand was brought strongly out, like a bas-relief of ruby on the whitest marble. Late one night when the lights were growing dim, so as hardly to betray the stain on the poor wife’s cheek, she herself, for the first time, voluntarily took up the subject. “Do you remember, my dear Aylmer,” said she, with a feeble attempt at a smile, “have you any recollection of a dream last night about this odious hand?” “None! none whatever!” replied Aylmer, starting; but then he added, in a dry, cold tone, affected for the sake of concealing the real depth of his emotion, “I might well dream of it; for before I fell asleep it had taken a pretty firm hold of my fancy.”

10

gripe: Grip.

292 stories for further reading

“And you did dream of it?” continued Georgiana hastily, for she dreaded lest a gush of tears should interrupt what she had to say. “A ter- rible dream! I wonder that you can forget it. Is it possible to forget this one expression? — ‘It is in her heart now; we must have it out!’ Reflect, my husband; for by all means I would have you recall that dream.” The mind is in a sad state when Sleep, the all-involving, cannot confine her specters within the dim region of her sway, but suffers them to break forth, affrighting this actual life with secrets that perchance belong to a deeper one. Aylmer now remembered his dream. He had fan- cied himself with his servant Aminadab, attempting an operation for the removal of the birthmark; but the deeper went the knife, the deeper sank the hand, until at length its tiny grasp appeared to have caught hold of Georgiana’s heart; whence, however, her husband was inexorably resolved to cut or wrench it away. When the dream had shaped itself perfectly in his memory, Aylmer sat in his wife’s presence with a guilty feeling. Truth often finds its way to the mind close muffled in robes of sleep, and then speaks with uncompromising directness of matters in regard to which we practice an unconscious self-deception during our waking moments. Until now he had not been aware of the tyrannizing influence acquired by one idea over his mind, and of the lengths which he might find in his heart to go for the sake of giving himself peace. “Aylmer,” resumed Georgiana solemnly, “I know not what may be the cost to both of us to rid me of this fatal birthmark. Perhaps its removal may cause cureless deformity; or it may be the stain goes as deep as life itself. Again: do we know that there is a possibility, on any terms, of unclasping the firm grip of this little hand which was laid upon me before I came into the world?” “Dearest Georgiana, I have spent much thought upon the subject,” hastily in terrupted Aylmer. “I am convinced of the perfect practicability of its removal.” “If there be the remotest possibility of it,” continued Georgiana, “let the attempt be made at whatever risk. Danger is nothing to me; for life, while this hateful mark makes me the object of your horror and dis- gust, — life is a burden which I would fling down with joy. Either remove this dreadful hand, or take my wretched life! You have deep science. All the world bears witness of it. You have achieved great wonders. Can- not you remove this little, little mark, which I cover with the tips of two small fingers? Is this beyond your power, for the sake of your own peace, and to save your poor wife from madness?” “Noblest, dearest, tenderest wife,” cried Aylmer rapturously, “doubt not my power. I have already given this matter the deepest thought — thought which might almost have enlightened me to create a being less perfect than yourself. Georgiana, you have led me deeper than ever into the heart of science. I feel myself fully competent to render this dear cheek as faultless as its fellow; and then, most beloved, what will be my triumph

15

hawthorne / the birthmark 293

when I shall have corrected what Nature left imperfect in her fairest work! Even Pygmalion, when his sculptured woman assumed life, felt not greater ecstasy than mine will be.” “It is resolved, then,” said Georgiana, faintly smiling. “And, Aylmer, spare me not, though you should find the birthmark take refuge in my heart at last.” Her husband tenderly kissed her cheek — her right cheek — not that which bore the impress of the crimson hand. The next day Aylmer apprised his wife of a plan that he had formed whereby he might have opportunity for the intense thought and con- stant watchfulness which the proposed operation would require; while Georgiana, likewise, would enjoy the perfect repose essential to its suc- cess. They were to seclude themselves in the extensive apartments occu- pied by Aylmer as a laboratory, and where, during his toilsome youth, he had made discoveries in the elemental powers of Nature that had roused the admiration of all the learned societies in Europe. Seated calmly in this laboratory, the pale philosopher had investigated the secrets of the highest cloud region and of the profoundest mines; he had satisfied himself of the causes that kindled and kept alive the fires of the volcano; and had explained the mystery of fountains, and how it is that they gush forth, some so bright and pure, and others with such rich medicinal vir- tues, from the dark bosom of the earth. Here, too, at an earlier period, he had studied the wonders of the human frame, and attempted to fathom the very process by which Nature assimilates all her precious influences from earth and air, and from the spiritual world, to create and foster man, her masterpiece. The latter pursuit, however, Aylmer had long laid aside in unwilling recognition of the truth — against which all seekers sooner or later stumble — that our great creative Mother, while she amuses us with apparently working in the broadest sunshine, is yet severely care- ful to keep her own secrets, and, in spite of her pretended openness, shows us nothing but results. She per mits us, indeed, to mar, but sel- dom to mend, and, like a jealous patentee, on no account to make. Now, however, Aylmer resumed these half-forgotten investigations, — not, of course, with such hopes or wishes as first suggested them, but because they involved much physiological truth and lay in the path of his pro- posed scheme for the treatment of Georgiana. As he led her over the threshold of the laboratory, Georgiana was cold and tremulous. Aylmer looked cheerfully into her face, with intent to reassure her, but was so startled with the intense glow of the birth- mark upon the whiteness of her cheek that he could not restrain a strong convulsive shudder. His wife fainted. “Aminadab! Aminadab!” shouted Aylmer, stamping violently on the floor. Forthwith there issued from an inner apartment a man of low stat- ure, but bulky frame, with shaggy hair hanging about his visage, which was grimed with the vapors of the furnace. This personage had been

20

25

294 stories for further reading

Aylmer’s underworker during his whole scientific career, and was admi- rably fitted for that office by his great mechanical readiness, and the skill with which, while incapable of comprehending a single principle, he exe- cuted all the details of his master’s experiments. With his vast strength, his shaggy hair, his smoky as pect, and the indescribable earthiness that encrusted him, he seemed to represent man’s physical nature; while Aylmer’s slender figure, and pale, intellectual face, were no less apt a type of the spiritual element. “Throw open the door of the boudoir, Aminadab,” said Aylmer, “and burn a pastille.” “Yes, master,” answered Aminadab, looking intently at the lifeless form of Georgiana; and then he muttered to himself, “If she were my wife, I’d never part with that birthmark.” When Georgiana recovered consciousness she found herself breath- ing an atmosphere of penetrating fragrance, the gentle potency of which had recalled her from her deathlike faintness. The scene around her looked like enchantment. Aylmer had converted those smoky, dingy, somber rooms, where he had spent his brightest years in recondite pur- suits, into a series of beautiful apartments not unfit to be the secluded abode of a lovely woman. The walls were hung with gorgeous curtains, which imparted the combination of grandeur and grace that no other species of adornment can achieve; and as they fell from the ceiling to the floor, their rich and ponderous folds, concealing all angles and straight lines, appeared to shut in the scene from infinite space. For aught Geor- giana knew, it might be a pavilion among the clouds. And Aylmer, excluding the sunshine, which would have interfered with his chemical processes, had supplied its place with perfumed lamps, emitting flames of various hue, but all uniting in a soft, empurpled radiance. He now knelt by his wife’s side, watching her earnestly, but without alarm; for he was confident in his science, and felt that he could draw a magic circle round her within which no evil might intrude. “Where am I? Ah, I remember,” said Georgiana faintly; and she placed her hand over her cheek to hide the terrible mark from her hus- band’s eyes. “Fear not, dearest!” exclaimed he. “Do not shrink from me! Believe me, Georgiana, I even rejoice in this single imperfection, since it will be such a rapture to remove it.” “Oh, spare me!” sadly replied his wife. “Pray do not look at it again. I never can forget that convulsive shudder.” In order to soothe Georgiana, and, as it were, to release her mind from the burden of actual things, Aylmer now put in practice some of the light and playful secrets which science had taught him among its profounder lore. Airy figures, absolutely bodiless ideas, and forms of unsubstantial beauty came and danced before her, imprinting their momentary footsteps on beams of light. Though she had some indis- tinct idea of the method of these optical phenomena, still the illusion

30

hawthorne / the birthmark 295

was almost perfect enough to warrant the belief that her husband pos- sessed sway over the spiritual world. Then again, when she felt a wish to look forth from her seclusion, immediately, as if her thoughts were answered, the procession of external existence flitted across a screen. The scenery and the figures of actual life were perfectly represented, but with that bewitching, yet indescribable difference which always makes a pic- ture, an image, or a shadow so much more attractive than the original. When wearied of this, Aylmer bade her cast her eyes upon a vessel con- taining a quantity of earth. She did so, with little interest at first; but was soon startled to perceive the germ of a plant shooting upward from the soil. Then came the slender stalk; the leaves gradually unfolded them- selves; and amid them was a perfect and lovely flower. “It is magical!” cried Georgiana. “I dare not touch it.” “Nay, pluck it,” answered Aylmer: “pluck it, and inhale its brief per- fume while you may. The flower will wither in a few moments and leave nothing save its brown seed vessels; but thence may be perpetuated a race as ephemeral as itself.” But Georgiana had no sooner touched the flower than the whole plant suffered a blight, its leaves turning coal-black as if by the agency of fire. “There was too powerful a stimulus,” said Aylmer thoughtfully. To make up for this abortive experiment, he proposed to take her portrait by a scientific process of his own invention. It was to be effected by rays of light striking upon a polished plate of metal. Georgiana assented; but, on looking at the result, was affrighted to find the features of the portrait blurred and indefinable; while the minute figure of a hand appeared where the cheek should have been. Aylmer snatched the metal- lic plate and threw it into a jar of corrosive acid. Soon, however, he forgot these mortifying failures. In the intervals of study and chemical experiment he came to her flushed and exhausted, but seemed invigorated by her presence, and spoke in glowing language of the resources of his art. He gave a history of the long dynasty of the alchemists, who spent so many ages in quest of the universal solvent by which the golden principle might be elicited from all things vile and base. Aylmer appeared to be lieve that, by the plainest scientific logic, it was altogether within the limits of possibility to discover this long- sought medium; “but,” he added, “a philosopher who should go deep enough to acquire the power would attain too lofty a wisdom to stoop to the exercise of it.” Not less singular were his opinions in regard to the elixir vitae. He more than intimated that it was at his option to concoct a liquid that should prolong life for years, perhaps interminably; but that it would produce a discord in Nature which all the world, and chiefly the quaffer of the immortal nostrum, would find cause to curse. “Aylmer, are you in earnest?” asked Georgiana, looking at him with amazement and fear. “It is terrible to possess such power, or even to dream of possessing it.”

35

296 stories for further reading

“Oh, do not tremble, my love,” said her husband. “I would not wrong either you or myself by working such inharmonious effects upon our lives; but I would have you consider how trifling, in comparison, is the skill requisite to remove this little hand.” At the mention of the birthmark, Georgiana, as usual, shrank as if a red-hot iron had touched her cheek. Again Aylmer applied himself to his labors. She could hear his voice in the distant furnace-room giving directions to Aminadab, whose harsh, uncouth, misshapen tones were audible in response, more like the grunt or growl of a brute than human speech. After hours of absence, Aylmer reappeared and proposed that she should now examine his cabinet of chemical products and natural treasures of the earth. Among the former he showed her a small vial, in which, he remarked, was contained a gentle yet most powerful fragrance, capable of impregnating all the breezes that blow across a kingdom. They were of inestimable value, the contents of that little vial; and, as he said so, he threw some of the perfume into the air and filled the room with piercing and invigorating delight. “And what is this?” asked Georgiana, pointing to a small crystal globe containing a gold-colored liquid. “It is so beautiful to the eye that I could imagine it the elixir of life.” “In one sense it is,” replied Aylmer; “or rather, the elixir of immor- tality. It is the most precious poison that ever was concocted in this world. By its aid I could apportion the lifetime of any mortal at whom you might point your finger. The strength of the dose would determine whether he were to linger out years, or drop dead in the midst of a breath. No king on his guarded throne could keep his life if I, in my private sta- tion, should deem that the welfare of millions justified me in depriving him of it.” “Why do you keep such a terrific drug?” inquired Georgiana in horror. “Do not mistrust me, dearest,” said her husband, smiling; “its virtu- ous potency is yet greater than its harmful one. But see! here is a power- ful cosmetic. With a few drops of this in a vase of water, freckles may be washed away as easily as the hands are cleansed. A stronger infusion would take the blood out of the cheek, and leave the rosiest beauty a pale ghost.” “Is it with this lotion that you intend to bathe my cheek?” asked Georgiana, anxiously. “Oh, no,” hastily replied her husband; “this is merely superficial. Your case demands a remedy that shall go deeper.” In his interviews with Georgiana, Aylmer generally made minute inquiries as to her sensations and whether the confinement of the rooms and the temperature of the atmosphere agreed with her. These questions had such a particular drift that Georgiana began to conjecture that she was already sub jected to certain physical influences, either breathed in with the fragrant air or taken with her food. She fancied likewise, but it

40

45

hawthorne / the birthmark 297

might be altogether fancy, that there was a stirring up of her system — a strange, indefinite sensation creeping through her veins, and tingling, half painfully, half pleasurably, at her heart. Still, whenever she dared to look into the mirror, there she beheld herself pale as a white rose and with the crimson birthmark stamped upon her cheek. Not even Aylmer now hated it so much as she. To dispel the tedium of the hours which her husband found it nec- essary to devote to the processes of combination and analysis, Georgiana turned over the volumes of his scientific library. In many dark old tomes she met with chapters full of romance and poetry. They were the works of the philosophers of the middle ages, such as Albertus Magnus, Cornelius Agrippa, Paracelsus, and the famous friar who created the prophetic Bra- zen Head. All these antique naturalists stood in advance of their centuries, yet were imbued with some of their credulity, and therefore were believed, and perhaps imagined themselves to have acquired from the investigation of Nature a power above Nature, and from physics a sway over the spiri- tual world. Hardly less curious and imaginative were the early volumes of the Transactions of the Royal Society, in which the members, knowing little of the limits of natural possibility, were continually recording won- ders or proposing methods whereby wonders might be wrought. But to Georgiana the most engrossing volume was a large folio from her husband’s own hand, in which he had recorded every experiment of his scientific career, its original aim, the methods adopted for its development, and its final success or failure, with the circumstances to which either event was at tributable. The book, in truth, was both the history and emblem of his ardent, ambitious, imaginative, yet practical and laborious life. He handled physical details as if there were nothing beyond them; yet spiritualized them all, and re deemed himself from materialism by his strong and eager aspira- tion towards the infinite. In his grasp the veriest clod of earth assumed a soul. Georgiana, as she read, reverenced Aylmer and loved him more pro- foundly than ever, but with a less entire dependence on his judgment than heretofore. Much as he had accomplished, she could not but observe that his most splendid successes were almost invariably failures, if compared with the ideal at which he aimed. His brightest diamonds were the merest pebbles, and felt to be so by himself, in comparison with the inestimable gems which lay hidden beyond his reach. The volume, rich with achieve- ments that had won renown for its author, was yet as melancholy a record as ever mortal hand had penned. It was the sad confession and continual exemplification of the shortcomings of the composite man, the spirit bur- dened with clay and working in matter, and of the despair that assails the higher nature at finding itself so miserably thwarted by the earthly part. Per- haps every man of genius in whatever sphere might recognize the image of his own experience in Aylmer’s journal. So deeply did these reflections affect Georgiana that she laid her face upon the open volume and burst into tears. In this situation she was found by her husband.

50

298 stories for further reading

“It is dangerous to read in a sorcerer’s books,” said he with a smile, though his countenance was uneasy and displeased. “Georgiana, there are pages in that volume which I can scarcely glance over and keep my senses. Take heed lest it prove as detrimental to you.” “It has made me worship you more than ever,” said she. “Ah, wait for this one success,” rejoined he, “then worship me if you will. I shall deem myself hardly unworthy of it. But come, I have sought you for the luxury of your voice. Sing to me, dearest.” So she poured out the liquid music of her voice to quench the thirst of his spirit. He then took his leave with a boyish exuberance of gaiety, assuring her that her seclusion would endure but a little longer, and that the result was already certain. Scarcely had he departed when Georgi- ana felt irresistibly im pelled to follow him. She had forgotten to inform Aylmer of a symptom which for two or three hours past had begun to excite her attention. It was a sensation in the fatal birthmark, not pain- ful, but which induced a restlessness throughout her system. Hastening after her husband, she intruded for the first time into the laboratory. The first thing that struck her eye was the furnace, that hot and feverish worker, with the intense glow of its fire, which by the quanti- ties of soot clustered above it seemed to have been burning for ages. There was a distilling ap paratus in full operation. Around the room were retorts, tubes, cylinders, crucibles, and other apparatus of chemi- cal research. An electrical machine stood ready for immediate use. The atmosphere felt oppressively close, and was tainted with gaseous odors which had been tormented forth by the pro cesses of science. The severe and homely simplicity of the apartment, with its naked walls and brick pavement, looked strange, accustomed as Georgiana had become to the fantastic elegance of her boudoir. But what chiefly, indeed almost solely, drew her attention, was the aspect of Aylmer himself. He was pale as death, anxious and absorbed, and hung over the fur- nace as if it depended upon his utmost watchfulness whether the liquid which it was distilling should be the draught of immortal happiness or misery. How different from the sanguine and joyous mien that he had assumed for Georgiana’s encouragement! “Carefully now, Aminadab; carefully, thou human machine; carefully, thou man of clay!” muttered Aylmer, more to himself than his assistant. “Now, if there be a thought too much or too little, it is all over.” “Ho! ho!” mumbled Aminadab. “Look, master! look!” Aylmer raised his eyes hastily, and at first reddened, then grew paler than ever, on beholding Georgiana. He rushed towards her and seized her arm with a gripe that left the print of his fingers upon it. “Why do you come hither? Have you no trust in your husband?” cried he impetuously. “Would you throw the blight of that fatal birth- mark over my labors? It is not well done. Go, prying woman, go!” “Nay, Aylmer,” said Georgiana with the firmness of which she pos- sessed no stinted endowment, “it is not you that have a right to complain.

55

60

hawthorne / the birthmark 299

You mistrust your wife; you have concealed the anxiety with which you watch the development of this experiment. Think not so unworthily of me, my husband. Tell me all the risk we run, and fear not that I shall shrink; for my share in it is far less than your own.” “No, no, Georgiana!” said Aylmer impatiently; “it must not be.” “I submit,” replied she calmly. “And, Aylmer, I shall quaff whatever draught you bring me; but it will be on the same principle that would induce me to take a dose of poison if offered by your hand.” “My noble wife,” said Aylmer, deeply moved, “I knew not the height and depth of your nature until now. Nothing shall be concealed. Know, then, that this crimson hand, superficial as it seems, has clutched its grasp into your being with a strength of which I had no previous concep- tion. I have already administered agents powerful enough to do aught except to change your en tire physical system. Only one thing remains to be tried. If that fails us we are ruined.” “Why did you hesitate to tell me this?” asked she. “Because, Georgiana,” said Aylmer in a low voice, “there is danger.” “Danger? There is but one danger — that this horrible stigma shall be left upon my cheek!” cried Georgiana. “Remove it, remove it, whatever be the cost, or we shall both go mad!” “Heaven knows your words are too true,” said Aylmer sadly. “And now, dearest, return to your boudoir. In a little while all will be tested.” He conducted her back and took leave of her with a solemn tender- ness which spoke far more than his words how much was now at stake. After his departure Georgiana became rapt in musings. She considered the character of Aylmer, and did it completer justice than at any pre- vious moment. Her heart exulted, while it trembled, at his honorable love — so pure and lofty that it would accept nothing less than perfection nor miserably make itself contented with an earthlier nature than he had dreamed of. She felt how much more precious was such a sentiment than that meaner kind which would have borne with the imperfection for her sake, and have been guilty of treason to holy love by degrading its perfect idea to the level of the actual; and with her whole spirit she prayed that, for a single moment, she might satisfy his highest and deep- est conception. Longer than one moment she well knew it could not be; for his spirit was ever on the march, ever ascending, and each instant required something that was beyond the scope of the instant before. The sound of her husband’s footsteps aroused her. He bore a crystal goblet containing a liquor colorless as water, but bright enough to be the draught of immortality. Aylmer was pale; but it seemed rather the conse- quence of a highly wrought state of mind and tension of spirit than of fear or doubt. “The concoction of the draught has been perfect,” said he, in answer to Georgiana’s look. “Unless all my science have deceived me, it cannot fail.” “Save on your account, my dearest Aylmer,” observed his wife, “I might wish to put off this birthmark of mortality by relinquishing

65

70

300 stories for further reading

mortality itself in preference to any other mode. Life is but a sad posses- sion to those who have attained precisely the degree of moral advance- ment at which I stand. Were I weaker and blinder it might be happiness. Were I stronger, it might be endured hopefully. But, being what I find myself, methinks I am of all mortals the most fit to die.” “You are fit for heaven without tasting death!” replied her husband. “But why do we speak of dying? The draught cannot fail. Behold its effect upon this plant.” On the window seat there stood a geranium diseased with yellow blotches, which had overspread all its leaves. Aylmer poured a small quantity of the liquid upon the soil in which it grew. In a little time, when the roots of the plant had taken up the moisture, the unsightly blotches began to be extinguished in a living verdure. “There needed no proof,” said Georgiana quietly. “Give me the gob- let. I joyfully stake all upon your word.” “Drink, then, thou lofty creature!” exclaimed Aylmer, with fervid admiration. “There is no taint of imperfection on thy spirit. Thy sensible frame, too, shall soon be all perfect.” She quaffed the liquid and returned the goblet to his hand. “It is grateful,” said she, with a placid smile. “Methinks it is like water from a heavenly fountain; for it contains I know not what of unobtrusive fragrance and deliciousness. It allays a feverish thirst that had parched me for many days. Now, dearest, let me sleep. My earthly senses are closing over my spirit like the leaves around the heart of a rose at sunset.” She spoke the last words with a gentle reluctance, as if it required almost more energy than she could command to pronounce the faint and lingering syllables. Scarcely had they loitered through her lips ere she was lost in slumber. Aylmer sat by her side, watching her aspect with the emotions proper to a man the whole value of whose existence was involved in the process now to be tested. Mingled with this mood, how- ever, was the philosophic investigation characteristic of the man of sci- ence. Not the minutest symptom escaped him. A heightened flush of the cheek, a slight irregularity of breath, a quiver of the eyelid, a hardly per- ceptible tremor through the frame — such were the details which, as the moments passed, he wrote down in his folio volume. Intense thought had set its stamp upon every previous page of that volume, but the thoughts of years were all concentrated upon the last. While thus employed, he failed not to gaze often at the fatal hand, and not without a shudder. Yet once, by a strange and unaccountable impulse, he pressed it with his lips. His spirit recoiled, however, in the very act; and Georgiana, out of the midst of her deep sleep, moved uneas- ily and murmured as if in remonstrance. Again Aylmer resumed his watch. Nor was it without avail. The crimson hand, which at first had been strongly visible upon the marble paleness of Georgiana’s cheek, now grew more faintly outlined. She remained not less pale than ever;

75

80

hawthorne / the birthmark 301

but the birthmark, with every breath that came and went, lost somewhat of its former distinctness. Its presence had been awful; its departure was more awful still. Watch the stain of the rainbow fading out of the sky, and you will know how that mysterious symbol passed away. “By Heaven! it is well-nigh gone!” said Aylmer to himself, in almost irrepressible ecstasy. “I can scarcely trace it now. Success! success! And now it is like the faintest rose color. The lightest flush of blood across her cheek would overcome it. But she is so pale!” He drew aside the window curtain and suffered the light of natural day to fall into the room and rest upon her cheek. At the same time he heard a gross, hoarse chuckle, which he had long known as his servant Aminadab’s expression of delight. “Ah, clod! ah, earthly mass!” cried Aylmer, laughing in a sort of frenzy, “you have served me well! Matter and spirit — earth and heaven — have both done their part in this! Laugh, thing of the senses! You have earned the right to laugh.” These exclamations broke Georgiana’s sleep. She slowly unclosed her eyes and gazed into the mirror which her husband had arranged for that pur pose. A faint smile flitted over her lips when she recognized how barely percep tible was now that crimson hand which had once blazed forth with such dis astrous brilliancy as to scare away all their happiness. But then her eyes sought Aylmer’s face with a trouble and anxiety that he could by no means ac count for. “My poor Aylmer!” murmured she. “Poor? Nay, richest, happiest, most favored!” exclaimed he. “My peerless bride, it is successful! You are perfect!” “My poor Aylmer,” she repeated, with a more than human tender- ness, “you have aimed loftily; you have done nobly. Do not repent that with so high and pure a feeling, you have rejected the best the earth could offer. Aylmer, dearest Aylmer, I am dying!” Alas! it was too true! The fatal hand had grappled with the mystery of life, and was the bond by which an angelic spirit kept itself in union with a mortal frame. As the last crimson tint of the birthmark — that sole token of human imperfection — faded from her cheek, the parting breath of the now perfect woman passed into the atmosphere, and her soul, lin- gering a moment near her husband, took its heavenward flight. Then a hoarse, chuckling laugh was heard again! Thus ever does the gross fatal- ity of earth exult in its invariable triumph over the immortal essence which, in this dim sphere of half development, demands the complete- ness of a higher state. Yet, had Aylmer reached a profounder wisdom, he need not thus have flung away the happiness which would have woven his mortal life of the selfsame texture with the celestial. The momentary circumstance was too strong for him; he failed to look beyond the shad- owy scope of time, and, living once for all in eternity, to find the perfect future in the present.

85

90

302 stories for further reading

James Joyce (1882–1941)

James Joyce was born in Dublin, Ireland, in 1882 and, in an imaginative sense, he never left that city. He received a strict Jesuit education, but once he began to doubt his faith during his fi nal year at Belvedere Col- lege, Dublin, he felt his calling as a writer more and more strongly. Joyce studied modern languages at Uni- versity College, Dublin, and taught himself Norwegian so he could read the plays of Henrik Ibsen in their orig- inal language. Ibsen’s depiction of individual rebellion against community values resonated deeply for Joyce and contributed to his resolution to leave Ireland for Paris after he received his B.A. degree in 1902. Joyce returned to Dublin when his mother contracted a fatal ill- ness, and he stayed on for a brief time, working as a schoolteacher. He departed for Switzerland, leaving Ireland for good, in 1904. Nora Bar- nacle, an uneducated young woman with little interest in literature, went with him. The couple lived in Trieste and Zurich, where Joyce taught school and wrote. He published Dubliners in 1914; “Eveline” is taken from this collection of short stories. A Portrait of the Artist as a Young Man fol- lowed in 1916. He and Nora moved to Paris in 1920 and remained there until World War II forced them back to Switzerland. He published Ulysses in Paris in 1922, but the book was banned in America and Britain until 1933. Finnegan’s Wake, which Joyce considered his crowning achievement, took fourteen years to write and was published in 1939.

Eveline 1914

She sat at the window watching the evening invade the avenue. Her head was leaned against the window curtains and in her nostrils was the odor of dusty cretonne. She was tired. Few people passed. The man out of the last house passed on his way home; she heard his footsteps clacking along the concrete pavement and afterwards crunching on the cinder path before the new red houses. One time there used to be a fi eld there in which they used to play every evening with other people’s children. Then a man from Belfast bought the fi eld and built houses in it — not like their little brown houses but bright brick houses with shining roofs. The children of the avenue used to play together in that fi eld — the Devines, the Waters, the Dunns, little Keogh the cripple, she and her brothers and sisters. Ernest, however, never played: he was too grown up. Her father used often to hunt them in out of the fi eld with his blackthorn stick; but usually little Keogh used to keep nix and call out when he saw her father coming. Still they seemed to have been rather happy then. Her father was not so bad then;

Courtesy of the Poetry/Rare Books Collection, UB Libraries, State University of New York at Buffalo.

joyce / eveline 303

and besides, her mother was alive. That was a long time ago; she and her brothers and sisters were all grown up; her mother was dead. Tizzie Dunn was dead, too, and the Waters had gone back to England. Every- thing changes. Now she was going to go away like the others, to leave her home. Home! She looked round the room, reviewing all its familiar objects which she had dusted once a week for so many years, wondering where on earth all the dust came from. Perhaps she would never see again those familiar objects from which she had never dreamed of being divided. And yet during all those years she had never found out the name of the priest whose yellowing photograph hung on the wall above the broken harmonium beside the colored print of the promises made to Blessed Margaret Mary Alacoque. He had been a school friend of her father. Whenever he showed the photograph to a visitor her father used to pass it with a casual word: — He is in Melbourne now. She had consented to go away, to leave her home. Was that wise? She tried to weigh each side of the question. In her home anyway she had shelter and food; she had those whom she had known all her life about her. Of course she had to work hard both in the house and at business. What would they say of her in the Stores when they found out that she had run away with a fellow? Say she was a fool, perhaps; and her place would be fi lled up by advertisement. Miss Gavan would be glad. She had always had an edge on her, especially whenever there were people listening. — Miss Hill, don’t you see these ladies are waiting? — Look lively, Miss Hill, please. She would not cry many tears at leaving the Stores. But in her new home, in a distant unknown country, it would not be like that. Then she would be married — she, Eveline. People would treat her with respect then. She would not be treated as her mother had been. Even now, though she was over nineteen, she sometimes felt her- self in danger of her father’s violence. She knew it was that that had given her the palpitations. When they were growing up he had never gone for her, like he used to go for Harry and Ernest, because she was a girl; but latterly he had begun to threaten her and say what he would do to her only for her dead mother’s sake. And now she had nobody to pro- tect her. Ernest was dead and Harry, who was in the church decorating business, was nearly always down somewhere in the country. Besides, the invariable squabble for money on Saturday nights had begun to weary her unspeakably. She always gave her entire wages — seven shillings — and Harry always sent up what he could but the trouble was to get any money from her father. He said she used to squander the money, that she had no head, that he wasn’t going to give her his hard- earned money to throw about the streets, and much more, for he was usually fairly bad of a Saturday night. In the end he would give her the

5

304 stories for further reading

money and ask her had she any intention of buying Sunday’s dinner. Then she had to rush out as quickly as she could and do her marketing, holding her black leather purse tightly in her hand as she elbowed her way through the crowds and returning home late under her load of provisions. She had hard work to keep the house together and to see that the two young children who had been left to her charge went to school regularly and got their meals regularly. It was hard work — a hard life — but now that she was about to leave it she did not fi nd it a wholly undesirable life. She was about to explore another life with Frank. Frank was very kind, manly, open-hearted. She was to go away with him by the night- boat to be his wife and to live with him in Buenos Aires where he had a home waiting for her. How well she remembered the fi rst time she had seen him; he was lodging in a house on the main road where she used to visit. It seemed a few weeks ago. He was standing at the gate, his peaked cap pushed back on his head and his hair tumbled forward over a face of bronze. Then they had come to know each other. He used to meet her outside the Stores every evening and see her home. He took her to see The Bohemian Girl and she felt elated as she sat in an unaccustomed part of the theater with him. He was awfully fond of music and sang a little. People knew that they were courting and, when he sang about the lass that loves a sailor, she always felt pleasantly confused. He used to call her Poppens out of fun. First of all it had been an excitement for her to have a fellow and then she had begun to like him. He had tales of distant countries. He had started as a deck boy at a pound a month on a ship of the Allan Line going out to Canada. He told her the names of the ships he had been on and the names of the different services. He had sailed through the Straits of Magellan and he told her stories of the terrible Patagonians. He had fallen on his feet in Buenos Aires, he said, and had come over to the old country just for a holiday. Of course, her father had found out the affair and had forbidden her to have anything to say to him. — I know these sailor chaps, he said. One day he had quarreled with Frank and after that she had to meet her lover secretly. The evening deepened in the avenue. The white of two letters in her lap grew indistinct. One was to Harry; the other was to her father. Ernest had been her favorite but she liked Harry too. Her father was becoming old lately, she noticed; he would miss her. Sometimes he could be very nice. Not long before, when she had been laid up for a day, he had read her out a ghost story and made toast for her at the fi re. Another day, when their mother was alive, they had all gone for a picnic to the Hill of Howth. She remembered her father putting on her mother’s bonnet to make the children laugh. Her time was running out but she continued to sit by the window, leaning her head against the window curtain, inhaling the odor of dusty cretonne. Down far in the avenue she could hear a street organ playing.

10

joyce / eveline 305

She knew the air. Strange that it should come that very night to remind her of the promise to her mother, her promise to keep the home together as long as she could. She remembered the last night of her mother’s ill- ness; she was again in the close dark room at the other side of the hall and outside she heard a melancholy air of Italy. The organ-player had been ordered to go away and given sixpence. She remembered her father strutting back into the sickroom saying: — Damned Italians! coming over here! As she mused the pitiful vision of her mother’s life laid its spell on the very quick of her being — that life of commonplace sacrifi ces closing in fi nal craziness. She trembled as she heard again her mother’s voice saying constantly with foolish insistence: — Derevaun Seraun! Derevaun Seraun!° She stood up in a sudden impulse of terror. Escape! She must escape! Frank would save her. He would give her life, perhaps love, too. But she wanted to live. Why should she be unhappy? She had a right to happiness. Frank would take her in his arms, fold her in his arms. He would save her.

She stood among the swaying crowd in the station at the North Wall. He held her hand and she knew that he was speaking to her, saying something about the passage over and over again. The station was full of soldiers with brown baggages. Through the wide doors of the sheds she caught a glimpse of the black mass of the boat, lying in beside the quay wall, with illumined portholes. She answered nothing. She felt her cheek pale and cold and, out of a maze of distress, she prayed to God to direct her, to show her what was her duty. The boat blew a long mourn- ful whistle into the mist. If she went, tomorrow she would be on the sea with Frank, steaming toward Buenos Aires. Their passage had been booked. Could she still draw back after all he had done for her? Her dis- tress awoke a nausea in her body and she kept moving her lips in silent fervent prayer. A bell clanged upon her heart. She felt him seize her hand: — Come! All the seas of the world tumbled about her heart. He was drawing her into them: he would drown her. She gripped with both hands at the iron railing. — Come! No! No! No! It was impossible. Her hands clutched the iron in frenzy. Amid the seas she sent a cry of anguish! — Eveline! Evvy! He rushed beyond the barrier and called to her to follow. He was shouted at to go on but he still called to her. She set her white face to

Derevaun Seraun!: “The end of pleasure is pain!” (Gaelic).

15

20

25

306 stories for further reading

him, passive, like a helpless animal. Her eyes gave him no sign of love or farewell or recognition.

Jamaica Kincaid (b. 1949)

Jamaica Kincaid was born Elaine Potter Richardson on the Caribbean island of Antigua. She moved to New York in 1965 to work as an au pair, studied photography at both the New School for Social Research and Franconia College, and changed her name to Jamaica Kincaid in 1973 with her first publication, “When I Was 17,” a series of interviews. Over the next few years, she wrote for The New Yorker magazine, first as a freelancer and then as a staff writer. In 1978, Kincaid wrote her first piece of fiction, “Girl,” published in The New Yorker and included in her debut short story collection, At the Bottom of the River (1983), which won an award from the Academy and Institute of Arts and Letters and was nominated for the PEN/Faulkner Award. Her other work includes Annie John (1985), Lucy (1990), Autobiography of My Mother (1994), and three nonfiction books, A Small Place (1988), My Brother (1997), and Mr. Potter (2002). Whether autobiographical fiction or nonfiction, her work usually focuses on the perils of postcolonial society, paralleled by an examination of rifts in mother-daughter relationships.

Girl 1978

Wash the white clothes on Monday and put them on the stone heap; wash the color clothes on Tuesday and put them on the clothesline to dry; don’t walk barehead in the hot sun; cook pumpkin fritters in very hot sweet oil; soak your little cloths right after you take them off; when buying cotton to make yourself a nice blouse, be sure that it doesn’t have gum on it, because that way it won’t hold up well after a wash; soak salt fish overnight before you cook it; is it true that you sing benna° in Sunday school?; always eat your food in such a way that it

By permission of Trix Rosen.

WEB Explore contexts for Jamaica Kincaid and approaches to “Girl” at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

benna: Calypso music.

kincaid / girl 307

won’t turn someone else’s stomach; on Sundays try to walk like a lady and not like the slut you are so bent on becoming; don’t sing benna in Sunday school; you mustn’t speak to wharf-rat boys, not even to give directions; don’t eat fruits on the street — flies will follow you; but I don’t sing benna on Sundays at all and never in Sunday school; this is how to sew on a button; this is how to make a buttonhole for the button you have just sewed on; this is how to hem a dress when you see the hem coming down and so to prevent yourself from looking like the slut I know you are so bent on becoming; this is how you iron your father’s khaki shirt so that it doesn’t have a crease; this is how you iron your father’s khaki pants so that they don’t have a crease; this is how you grow okra — far from the house, because okra tree harbors red ants; when you are growing dasheen,° make sure it gets plenty of water or else it makes your throat itch when you are eating it; this is how you sweep a corner; this is how you sweep a whole house; this is how you sweep a yard; this is how you smile to someone you don’t like too much; this is how you smile to someone you don’t like at all; this is how you smile to someone you like completely; this is how you set a table for tea; this is how you set a table for dinner; this is how you set a table for dinner with an important guest; this is how you set a table for lunch; this is how you set a table for breakfast; this is how to behave in the presence of men who don’t know you very well, and this way they won’t recognize immediately the slut I have warned you against becoming; be sure to wash every day, even if it is with your own spit; don’t squat down to play marbles — you are not a boy, you know; don’t pick people’s flowers — you might catch something; don’t throw stones at blackbirds, because it might not be a blackbird at all; this is how to make a bread pudding; this is how to make doukona;° this is how to make pepper pot;° this is how to make a good medicine for a cold; this is how to make a good medicine to throw away a child before it even becomes a child; this is how to catch a fish; this is how to throw back a fish you don’t like, and that way something bad won’t fall on you; this is how to bully a man; this is how a man bullies you; this is how to love a man, and if this doesn’t work there are other ways, and if they don’t work don’t feel too bad about giving up; this is how to spit up in the air if you feel like it, and this is how to move quick so that it doesn’t fall on you; this is how to make ends meet; always squeeze bread to make sure it’s fresh; but what if the baker won’t let me feel the bread?; you mean to say that after all you are really going to be the kind of woman who the baker won’t let near the bread?

dasheen: The edible rootstock of taro, a tropical plant. doukona: A spicy plantain pudding. pepper pot: A stew.

308 stories for further reading

Ian McEwan (b. 1948)

Born in Aldershot, England, Ian McEwan lived part of his youth in Asia, Germany, and North Africa owing to his father’s military career. He earned a B.A. degree at the University of Sussex and an M.A. degree at the University of East Anglia, both in English literature. His work is prized for its subtle, witty, and sharply precise prose. In addition to two collections of short stories, First Love, Last Rites (1975) and In Between the Sheets (1978), McEwan’s novels include The Child in Time (1987), Amsterdam (1998), Atonement (2001), Saturday (2005), On Chesil Beach (2007), and Solar (2010), a story about a scientist who tries to save the planet from threatening climate changes — and from which “The Use of Poetry ” is excerpted.

The Use of Poetry 2009

It surprised no one to learn that Michael Beard had been an only child, and he would have been the fi rst to concede that he’d never quite got the hang of brotherly feeling. His mother, Angela, was an angular beauty who doted on him, and the medium of her love was food. She bottle-fed him with passion, surplus to demand. Some four decades before he won the Nobel Prize in Physics, he came top in the Cold Norton and District Baby Competition, birth-to-six-months class. In those harsh postwar years, ide- als of infant beauty resided chiefl y in fat, in Churchillian multiple chins, in dreams of an end to rationing and of the reign of plenty to come. Babies were exhibited and judged like prize marrows, and, in 1947, the fi ve-month- old Michael, bloated and jolly, swept all before him. However, it was unusual at a village fête for a middle-class woman, a stockbroker’s wife, to abandon the cake-and-chutney stall and enter her child for such a gaudy event. She must have known that he was bound to win, just as she later claimed always to have known that he would get a scholarship to Oxford. Once he was on solids, and for the rest of her life, she cooked for him with the same commit- ment with which she had held the bottle, sending herself in the mid-sixties, despite her illness, on a Cordon Bleu cookery course so that she could try new meals during his occasional visits home. Her husband, Henry, was a meat-and-two-veg man, who despised garlic and the smell of olive oil. Early in the marriage, for reasons that remained private, Angela withdrew her love from him. She lived for her son, and her legacy was clear: a fat man who rest- lessly craved the attentions of beautiful women who could cook.

© Colin McPherson/corbis.

mcewan / the use of poetry 309

Henry Beard was a lean sort with a drooping mustache and slicked- back brown hair, whose dark suits and brown tweeds seemed a cut too large, especially around the neck. He provided for his miniature family well and, in the fashion of the time, loved his son sternly and with little physical contact. Though he never embraced Michael, and rarely laid an affectionate hand on his shoulder, he supplied all the right kinds of pres- ent—Meccano and chemistry sets, a build-it-yourself wireless, encyclope- dias, model airplanes, and books about military history, geology, and the lives of great men. He had had a long war, serving as a junior offi cer in the infantry in Dunkirk, North Africa, and Sicily, and then, as a lieu- tenant colonel, in the D Day landings, where he won a medal. He had arrived at the concentration camp of Belsen a week after it was liberated, and was stationed in Berlin for eight months after the war ended. Like many men of his generation, he did not speak about his experiences and he relished the ordinariness of postwar life, its tranquil routines, its tidi- ness and rising material well-being, and, above all, its lack of danger — everything that would later appear stifl ing to those born in the fi rst years of the peace. In 1952, when Michael was fi ve, the forty-year-old Henry Beard gave up his job at a merchant bank in the City and returned to his fi rst love, which was the law. He became a partner in an old fi rm in nearby Chelms- ford and stayed there for the rest of his working life. To celebrate the momentous change and his liberation from the daily commute to Liver- pool Street, he bought himself a secondhand Rolls-Royce Silver Cloud. This pale-blue machine lasted him thirty-three years, until his death. From the vantage of adulthood, and with some retrospective guilt, his son loved him for this grand gesture. But the life of a small-town solici- tor, absorbed by matters of conveyancing and probate, settled on Henry Beard an even greater tranquillity. At weekends, he mostly cared for his roses, or his car, or golf with fellow-Rotarians. He stolidly accepted his loveless marriage as the price he must pay for his gains. It was about this time that Angela Beard began a series of affairs that stretched over eleven years. Young Michael registered no outward hos- tilities or silent tensions in the home, but, then, he was neither observant nor sensitive, and was often in his room after school, building, reading, gluing, and later took up pornography and masturbation full time, and then girls. Nor, at the age of seventeen, did he notice that his mother had retreated, exhausted, to the sanctuary of her marriage. He heard of her adventures only when she was dying of breast cancer, in her early fi fties. She seemed to want his forgiveness for ruining his childhood. By then he was nearing the end of his second year at Oxford and his head was full of maths and girlfriends, physics and drinking, and at fi rst he could not take in what she was telling him. She lay propped up on pillows in her private room on the nineteenth fl oor of a tower-block hospital, with views toward the industrialized salt marshes by Canvey Island and the south shore of the Thames. He was grownup enough to know that it

310 stories for further reading

would have insulted her to say that he had noticed nothing. Or that she was apologizing to the wrong person. Or that he could not imagine any- one over thirty having sex. He held her hand and squeezed it to signal his warm feelings, and said that there was nothing to forgive. It was only after he had driven home, and drunk three nightcap Scotches with his father, then gone to his old room and lain on the bed fully dressed and considered what she had told him, that he grasped the extent of her achievement. Seventeen lovers in eleven years. Lieutenant Colonel Beard had had all the excitement and danger he could stand by the age of thirty-three. Angela had to have hers. Her lovers were her desert campaign against Rommel, her D Day, and her Berlin. Without them, she had told Michael from her hospital pillows, she would have hated herself and gone mad. But she hated herself anyway, for what she thought she had done to her only child. He went back to the hospital the next day and, while she sweatily clung to his hand, told her that his childhood had been the happiest and most secure imaginable, that he had never felt neglected or doubted her love or eaten so well, and that he was proud of what he called her appetite for life and hoped to emulate it. It was the fi rst time that he had ever given a speech. These half and quar- ter truths were the best words he had ever spoken. Six weeks later, she was dead. Naturally, her love life was a closed subject between father and son, but for years afterward Michael could not drive through Chelms- ford or the surrounding villages without wondering whether this or that old fellow tottering along the pavement or slumped near a bus stop was one of the seventeen. By the standards of the day, he was a precocious lad when he arrived at Oxford. He had already made love to two girls, he owned a car, a split- screen Morris Minor, which he kept in a lockup garage off the Cowley Road, and he had an allowance from his father that was far in excess of what other grammar-school boys received. He was clever, sociable, opin- ionated, unimpressed by and even a little scornful of boys from famous schools. He was one of those types, infuriating and indispensable, who were at the front of every queue, had tickets to key events in London, within days knew strategically important people and all kinds of short- cuts, social as well as topographic. He looked much older than eighteen, and was hardworking, organized, tidy, and actually owned and used a desk diary. People sought him out because he could repair radios and record-players and kept a soldering iron in his room. For these services he never asked for money, of course, but he had the knack of calling in favors. Within weeks of settling in, he had a girlfriend, a “bad” girl from Oxford High named Susan Doty. Other boys studying maths and phys- ics tended to be closed, mousy types. Outside of lab work and tutori- als, Beard kept well clear of them, and he also avoided the arty sort of people—they intimidated him with literary references he did not under- stand. He preferred instead the engineers, who gave him access to their

5

mcewan / the use of poetry 311

workshops, and the geographers, zoologists, and anthropologists, espe- cially the ones who had already done fi eld work in strange places. Beard knew many people but had no close friends. He was never exactly popu- lar, but he was well known, talked about, useful to people, and faintly despised. At the end of his second year, while he was trying to accustom him- self to the idea that his mother would soon die, Beard overheard someone in a pub refer to a student at Lady Margaret Hall named Maisie Farmer as a “dirty girl.” The phrase was used approvingly, as though it were a well-established category of some clinical accuracy. Her bucolic name in this connection intrigued him. He thought of a generous strapping lass, manure-streaked, astride a tractor — and then did not think about her again. The term ended, he went home, his mother died, and the sum- mer was lost to grief and boredom and numbing, inarticulate silences at home with his father. They had never discussed feelings before, and had no language for them now. Once, when he saw from the house his father at the bottom of the garden, examining the roses too closely, he was embarrassed, no, horrifi ed, to realize from the tremors of his father’s shoulders that he was weeping. It did not occur to Michael to go out to him. Knowing about his mother’s lovers, and not knowing whether his father knew — he guessed he did not — was another impossible obstacle. He returned to Oxford in September and took a third-fl oor room in Park Town, a down-at-heel mid-Victorian crescent arranged around a central garden. His walk to the physics buildings each day took him past the front gates of the “dirty girl” ’s college, by the narrow passageway to University Parks. One morning, on impulse, he wandered in and estab- lished at the porter’s lodge that a student by the name of Maisie Farmer indeed existed. He discovered later in the same week that she was in her third year, doing English, but he did not let that put him off. For a day or two he wondered about her, and then work and other matters took over and he forgot all about her again, and it was not until late October that a friend introduced him to her and another girl outside the Museum of Natural History. She was not as he had imagined, and at fi rst he was disappointed. She was small, almost frail, intensely pretty, with dark eyes and scant eyebrows and a musical voice with a surprising accent, a hint of Cock- ney, which was unusual in a woman at university in those days. When, in answer to her question, he told her what his subject was, her face went blank and soon she walked on with her friend. He bumped into her alone two days later and asked her to come for a drink and she said no, and said it immediately, before he had quite fi nished his sentence. It was a measure of Beard’s self-confi dence that he was surprised. But what did she see in front of her? A stout fellow with an accountant’s look and an earnest manner, wearing a tie (in 1967!), with short hair, side-parted, and, the damning detail, a pen clipped into the breast pocket of his jacket. And he was studying science, a non-subject for fools. She said goodbye

10

312 stories for further reading

politely enough and went on her way, but Beard walked after her and asked if she was free the next day, or the day after that, or at the week- end. No, no, and no. Then he said brightly, “How about ever?,” and she laughed pleasantly, genuinely amused by his persistence, and seemed on the point of changing her mind. But she said, “There’s always never? Can you make never?,” to which he replied, “I’m not free,” and she laughed again and made a sweet little mock punch to his lapel with a child-size fi st and walked off, leaving him with the impression that he still had a chance, that she had a sense of humor, that he might wear her down. He did. He researched her. Someone told him that she had a spe- cial interest in John Milton. It did not take long to discover the century to which this man belonged. A third-year literature student in Beard’s college who owed him a favor (for procuring tickets to a Cream con- cert) gave him an hour on Milton, what to read, what to think. He read “Comus” and was astounded by its silliness. He read through “Lycidas,” “Samson Agonistes,” and “Il Penseroso” — stilted and rather prissy in parts, he thought. He fared better with “Paradise Lost” and, like many before him, preferred Satan’s party to God’s. He, Beard, that is, memo- rized passages that appeared to him intelligent and especially sonorous. He read a biography, and four essays that he had been told were pivotal. The reading took him one long week. He came close to being thrown out of an antiquarian bookshop in the Turl when he casually asked for a fi rst edition of “Paradise Lost.” He tracked down a kindly tutor who knew about buying old books and confi ded to him that he wanted to impress a girl with a certain kind of present, and was directed to a bookshop in Covent Garden where he spent half a term’s money on an eighteenth- century edition of “Areopagitica.” When he speed-read it on the train back to Oxford, one of the pages cracked in two. He repaired it with Sellotape. Then, naturally enough, he bumped into her again, this time by the gates of her college, where he had been waiting for two and a half hours. He asked if he could at least walk with her across the Parks. She didn’t say no. She was wearing an Army-surplus greatcoat, over a yellow cardi- gan, and a black pleated skirt and patent-leather shoes with strange silver buckles. She was even more beautiful than he had thought. As they went along he politely inquired about her work, and she explained, as though to a village idiot, that she was writing about Milton, a well-known Eng- lish poet of the seventeenth century. He asked her to be more precise about her essay. She was. He ventured an informed opinion. Surprised, she spoke at greater length. To elucidate some point of hers, he quoted the lines “from morn / To noon he fell,” and she breathily completed them: “from noon to dewy eve.” Making sure to keep his tone tentative, he spoke of Milton’s childhood, and then of the Civil War. There were things she did not know and was interested to learn. She knew little of the poet’s life, and, amazingly, it seemed that it was not part of her stud- ies, to consider the circumstances of his times. Beard steered her back

mcewan / the use of poetry 313

onto familiar ground. They quoted more of their favorite lines. He asked her which Milton scholars she had read. He had read some of them, too, and gently proved it. He had glanced over a bibliography, and his conver- sation far outran his reading. She disliked “Comus” even more than he did, so he ventured a mild defense and allowed himself to be demolished. Then he spoke of “Areopagitica” and its relevance to modern poli- tics. At this she stopped on the path and asked signifi cantly what a sci- entist was doing, knowing so much about Milton, and he thought he had been rumbled. He pretended to be just a little insulted. All knowl- edge interested him, he said; the demarcations between subjects were mere conveniences or historical accidents or the inertia of tradition. To illustrate his point, he drew on tidbits that he had picked up from his anthropologist and zoologist friends. With a fi rst touch of warmth in her voice, she began to ask him questions about himself, though she did not care to hear about physics. And where was he from? Essex, he said. But so was she! From Chingford! That was his lucky break, and he seized his chance. He asked her to dinner. She said yes. He was to count that misty, sunny November afternoon, along the Cherwell river by the Rainbow Bridge, as the point at which the fi rst of his marriages began. Three days later he took her to dinner at the Ran- dolph Hotel, by which time he had completed another whole day of Milton. It was already clear that his own special study would be the phys- ics of light, and he was naturally drawn to the poem of that name, and learned its last dozen lines by heart. Over the second bottle of wine, he talked to her of its pathos, a blind man lamenting what he would never see, then celebrating the redeeming power of the imagination. Over the starched tablecloth, wineglass in hand, he recited it to her, ending, “thou Celestial light / Shine inward, and the mind through all her powers / Irradiate, there plant eyes, all mist from thence / Purge and disperse, that I may see and tell / Of things invisible to mortal sight.” At these lines he saw the tears well in Maisie’s eyes, and reached under his chair to produce his gift, “Areopagitica,” bound in calf leather in 1738. She was stunned. A week later, illicitly in her room, to the sound of “Sgt. Pep- per’s” playing on the Dansette record-player he had repaired for her that afternoon with smoking soldering iron, they were lovers at last. The term “dirty girl,” with its suggestion that she was general property, was now obnoxious to him. Still, she was far bolder and wilder, more experimen- tal and generous in lovemaking, than any girl he had known. She also cooked a fi ne steak-and-kidney pie. He decided he was in love. Going after Maisie was a relentless, highly organized pursuit, and it gave him great satisfaction, and it was a turning point in his develop- ment, for he knew that no third-year arts person, however bright, could have passed himself off, after a week’s study, among the undergraduate mathematicians and physicists who were Beard’s colleagues. The traf- fi c was one way. His Milton week made him suspect a monstrous bluff. The reading was a slog, but he encountered nothing that could remotely

15

314 stories for further reading

be construed as an intellectual challenge, nothing on the scale of dif- fi culty he encountered daily in his course. That very week of the Ran- dolph dinner, he had studied the Ricci scalar and fi nally understood its use in general relativity. At least, he thought he could grasp these extraordinary equations. The theory was no longer an abstraction; it was sensual. He could feel the way the seamless fabric of space-time might be warped by matter, and how this fabric infl uenced the movement of objects, how gravity was conjured by its curvature. He could spend half an hour staring at the handful of terms and subscripts of the crux of the fi eld equations and understand why Einstein himself had spoken of its “incomparable beauty,” and why Max Born had said that it was “the greatest feat of human thinking about nature.” This understanding was the mental equivalent of lifting very heavy weights — not possible at fi rst attempt. He and his lot were at lectures and lab work nine till fi ve every day, attempting to grasp some of the hardest things ever thought. The arts people fell out of bed at midday for their two tutorials a week. He suspected that there was nothing they talked about at those meetings that anyone with half a brain could fail to understand. He had read four of the best essays on Milton. He knew. And yet they passed themselves off as his superiors, these lie-abeds, and he had let them intimidate him. No longer. From the moment he won Maisie, he was intellectually free. Many years later, Beard told this story and his conclusions to an English professor in Hong Kong, who said, “But, Michael, you’ve missed the point. If you had seduced ninety girls with ninety poets, one a week in a course of three academic years, and remembered them all at the end—the poets, I mean — and synthesized your reading into some kind of aesthetic overview, then you would have earned yourself a degree in English literature. But don’t pretend that it’s easy.” But it seemed so at the time, and he was far happier during his fi nal year, and so was Maisie. She persuaded him to grow his hair, to wear jeans instead of fl annels, and to stop repairing things. It wasn’t cool. And they became cool, even though they were both rather short. He gave up Park Town and found a tiny fl at in Jericho, where they set up together. Her friends, all literature and history students, became his. They were wittier than his other friends, and lazier, of course, and had a developed sense of pleasure, as though they felt they were owed. He cultivated new opinions—on the distribution of wealth, Vietnam, the events in Paris, the coming revolution, and LSD, which he declared to be important, though he refused to take it. When he heard himself sounding off, he was not at all convinced, and was amazed that no one took him for a fraud. He tried pot and disliked it intensely for the way it interfered with his memory. Despite the usual parties, with howling music and terrible wine in sod- den paper cups, he and Maisie never stopped working. Summer came, and fi nals, and then, to their stupid surprise, it was all over and everyone dispersed.

mcewan / the use of poetry 315

They both got fi rsts. Beard was offered the place he wanted at the University of Sussex, to do a Ph.D. They went to Brighton together and found a fi ne place to move into in September, an old rectory in an out- lying village on the Sussex Downs. The rent was beyond them and so, before returning to Oxford, they agreed to share with a couple studying theology, who had newborn identical twins. The Chingford newspaper ran a story about the local working-class girl who had “soared to the heights,” and it was from these heights, and to hold together their disin- tegrating milieu, that they decided to get married—not because it was the conventional thing to do but precisely because it was the opposite, it was exotic, it was hilarious and camp and harmlessly old-fashioned, like the tasselled military uniforms the Beatles wore in promotional pictures for their sensational LP. For that reason, the couple did not invite or even inform their parents. They were married in the Oxford registry offi ce, and got drunk on Port Meadow with a handful of friends who came for the day. The new age dawned, the arrogant, shameless, spoiled genera- tion turned its back on the fathers who had fought the war, dismissing them for their short hair and tidy ways and their indifference to rock and roll. Lieutenant Colonel (retired) Henry Beard D.S.O., living alone in the old house at Cold Norton, did not learn of his son’s marriage until after the divorce. The name of the married theology students was Gibson, Charlie and Amanda, and they were devout and intellectual, against the fashion of the time, and studied at an institute in Lewes. Their god, by way of mysterious love, or an urge to punish, had conferred on them two babies of a giant size and type who would easily have snatched the prize from Beard in ’47, twins who never slept and rarely ceased their identical piercing wails, who set each other off if they ever failed to start up in step, and who jointly propelled a miasma through the elegant house, as penetrative as a curry on the stove, a prawn vindaloo, but rank like sea swamp, as though they were confi ned for reasons of religion to a diet of guano and mussels. Young Beard, working in the bedroom on the early calculations that would lead him to his life’s work — his life’s free ride — stuffed wads of blotting paper in his ears and kept the windows open, even in midwinter. When he went downstairs to make himself coffee, he would encounter the couple in the kitchen, in some aspect of their private hell, dark-eyed and irritable from lack of sleep and mutual loathing, as they divvied up their awful tasks, which included prayer and meditation. The generous hallway and living spaces of the Georgian rectory were rendered charm- less by the hundred protruding metal and plastic tools and devices of modern child care. Neither adult nor infant Gibsons expressed any plea- sure in their own or one another’s existence. Why would they? Beard pri- vately swore to himself that he would never become a father. And Maisie? She changed her mind about a doctorate on Aphra Behn; she turned down a job in the university library and signed on instead for social-security benefi ts. In another century she would have

20

316 stories for further reading

been considered a woman of leisure, but in the twentieth she was “active.” She read up on social theory, attended a group run by a collective of Cali- fornian women, and started up a “workshop” herself, a new concept at the time, and though, in conventional terms, she no longer soared, her consciousness was raised, and within a short time she confronted the blatant fact of patriarchy and her husband’s role in a network of oppres- sion that extended from the institutions that sustained him as a man, even though he could not acknowledge the fact, to the nuances of his small talk. It was, as she said at the time, like stepping through a mirror. Every- thing looked different, and it was no longer possible to be innocently content, not for her, and, therefore, not for him. Certain matters were settled after serious discussion. He was too much of a rationalist to think of many good reasons that he should not help out around the house. He believed that it bored him more than it did her, but he did not say so. And washing a few dishes was the least of it. There were profoundly entrenched attitudes that he needed to examine and change, there were unconscious assumptions of his own “centrality,” his alienation from his own feelings, his failure to listen, to hear, really hear what she was saying, and to understand how the system that worked in his favor in both trivial and important ways always worked against her. One example was this: he could go to the village pub for a pleasant pint on his own, while she could not do so without being stared at by the locals and made to feel like a whore. There was his unexamined belief in the importance of his work, in his objectivity, and in rationality itself. He failed to grasp that knowing himself was a vital undertaking. There were other ways of knowing the world, women’s ways, which he treated dismissively. Though he pretended not to be, he was squeamish about her menstrual blood, which was an insult to the core of her womanhood. Their love- making, blindly enacting postures of dominance and submission, was an imitation of rape and was fundamentally corrupt. Months passed, and many evening sessions, during which Beard mostly listened and, in the pauses, thought about work. During that period, he was thinking a good deal about photons, from a radically dif- ferent angle. Then, one night, he and Maisie were woken, by the twins as usual, and lay side by side on their backs in the dark while she broke the news that she was leaving him. She had thought this through and did not want an argument. There was a commune forming in the sod- den hills of mid-Wales and she intended to join it and did not think she would ever return. She knew, in ways that he could never understand, that this must be her course now. There were issues of her self-realization, her past, and her identity as a woman that she felt bound to follow through. It was her duty. At this point, Beard felt himself overtaken by a powerful and unfamiliar emotion that tightened his throat and forced from his chest a sob that he was powerless to contain. It was a sound that surely all the Gibsons heard through the wall. It could easily have been

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 317

confused with a shout. What he experienced was a compound of joy and relief, followed by a fl oating, expansive sensation of lightness, as if he were about to drift free of the sheets and bump against the ceiling. Sud- denly, it was all before him, the prospect of freedom, of working when- ever he wanted, of inviting home some of the women he had seen on the Falmer campus, lolling on the steps outside the library, of returning to his unexamined self and being guiltlessly shot of Maisie. All this caused a tear of gratitude to roll down his cheek. He also felt fi erce impatience for her to be gone. It crossed his mind to offer to drive her to the sta- tion now, but there were no trains from Lewes at 3 A.M., and she had not packed. Hearing his sob, she reached for the bedside light and, leaning over to look into his face, saw the dampness around his eyes. Firmly and deliberately she whispered, “I will not be blackmailed, Michael. I will not, repeat not, be emotionally manipulated by you into staying.” Was ever a marriage dissolved so painlessly? Within a week she had left for the hill farm in Powys. In the course of a year they exchanged a couple of postcards. Then one came from an ashram in India, where she remained for three years and from where she sent one day her cheery acceptance of a divorce, all papers duly signed. He did not see her until his twenty-sixth birthday, at which she appeared with a shaved head and a jewel in her nose. Many years later, he spoke at her funeral. Perhaps it was the ease of their parting in the old rectory that made him so incau- tious about marrying again, and again.

Tim O’Brien (b. 1946)

Born in Austin, Minnesota, Tim O’Brien was educated at Macalester College and Harvard University. He was drafted to serve in the Vietnam War and received a Purple Heart. His work is heavily influenced by his service in the war. His first book, If I Die in a Combat Zone, Box Me Up and Ship Me Home (1973), is a blend of fiction and actual experiences during his tour of duty. Going after Cacciato, judged by many critics to be the best work of American fiction about the Vietnam War, won the National Book Award in 1978. He has also published five other novels, Northern Lights (1974), The Nuclear Age (1985), In the Lake of the Woods (1994), Tomcat in Love (1998), and July, July (2002). “How to Tell a True War Story” is from a collection of interrelated stories titled The Things They Carried (1990). Originally published in Esquire, this story is at once grotesque and beautiful in its at tempt to be true to experience.

25

© Marion Ettlinger.

318 stories for further reading

How to Tell a True War Story 1987

This is true. I had a buddy in Vietnam. His name was Bob Kiley, but everybody called him Rat. A friend of his gets killed, so about a week later Rat sits down and writes a letter to the guy’s sister. Rat tells her what a great brother she had, how strack° the guy was, a number one pal and comrade. A real soldier’s soldier, Rat says. Then he tells a few stories to make the point, how her brother would always volunteer for stuff nobody else would vol- unteer for in a million years, dangerous stuff, like doing recon° or going out on these really badass night patrols. Stainless steel balls, Rat tells her. The guy was a little crazy, for sure, but crazy in a good way, a real daredevil, because he liked the challenge of it, he liked testing himself, just man against gook. A great, great guy, Rat says. Anyway, it’s a terrific letter, very personal and touching. Rat almost bawls writing it. He gets all teary telling about the good times they had together, how her brother made the war seem almost fun, always raising hell and lighting up villes° and bringing smoke to bear every which way. A great sense of humor, too. Like the time at this river when he went fishing with a whole damn crate of hand grenades. Probably the funniest thing in world history, Rat says, all that gore, about twenty zillion dead gook fish. Her brother, he had the right attitude. He knew how to have a good time. On Halloween, this real hot spooky night, the dude paints up his body all different colors and puts on this weird mask and goes out on ambush almost stark naked, just boots and balls and an M-16. A tre- mendous human being, Rat says. Pretty nutso sometimes, but you could trust him with your life. And then the letter gets very sad and serious. Rat pours his heart out. He says he loved the guy. He says the guy was his best friend in the world. They were like soul mates, he says, like twins or something, they had a whole lot in common. He tells the guy’s sister he’ll look her up when the war’s over. So what happens? Rat mails the letter. He waits two months. The dumb cooze never writes back.

A true war story is never moral. It does not instruct, nor encourage vir- tue, nor suggest models of proper human behavior, nor restrain men from doing the things they have always done. If a story seems moral, do not believe it. If at the end of a war story you feel uplifted, or if you feel that some small bit of rectitude has been salvaged from the larger waste,

strack: A strict military appearance. doing recon: Reconnaissance, or exploratory survey of enemy territory. villes: Villages.

5

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 319

then you have been made the victim of a very old and terrible lie. There is no rectitude whatsoever. There is no virtue. As a first rule of thumb, therefore, you can tell a true war story by its absolute and uncompromis- ing allegiance to obscenity and evil. Listen to Rat Kiley. Cooze, he says. He does not say bitch. He certainly does not say woman, or girl. He says cooze. Then he spits and stares. He’s nineteen years old — it’s too much for him — so he looks at you with those big gentle killer eyes and says cooze, because his friend is dead, and because it’s so incredibly sad and true: she never wrote back. You can tell a true war story if it embarrasses you. If you don’t care for obscenity, you don’t care for the truth; if you don’t care for the truth, watch how you vote. Send guys to war, they come home talking dirty. Listen to Rat: “Jesus Christ, man, I write this beautiful fucking letter, I slave over it, and what happens? The dumb cooze never writes back.”

The dead guy’s name was Curt Lemon. What happened was, we crossed a muddy river and marched west into the mountains, and on the third day we took a break along a trail junction in deep jungle. Right away, Lemon and Rat Kiley started goofing off. They didn’t understand about the spookiness. They were kids; they just didn’t know. A nature hike, they thought, not even a war, so they went off into the shade of some giant trees — quadruple canopy, no sunlight at all — and they were giggling and calling each other motherfucker and playing a silly game they’d invented. The game involved smoke grenades, which were harmless unless you did stupid things, and what they did was pull out the pin and stand a few feet apart and play catch under the shade of those huge trees. Whoever chick- ened out was a motherfucker. And if nobody chickened out, the grenade would make a light popping sound and they’d be covered with smoke and they’d laugh and dance around and then do it again. It’s all exactly true. It happened nearly twenty years ago, but I still remember that trail junction and the giant trees and a soft dripping sound somewhere beyond the trees. I remember the smell of moss. Up in the canopy there were tiny white blossoms, but no sunlight at all, and I remember the shad- ows spreading out under the trees where Lemon and Rat Kiley were play- ing catch with smoke grenades. Mitchell Sanders sat flipping his yo-yo. Norman Bowker and Kiowa and Dave Jensen were dozing, or half-dozing, and all around us were those ragged green mountains. Except for the laughter things were quiet. At one point, I remember, Mitchell Sanders turned and looked at me, not quite nodding, then after a while he rolled up his yo-yo and moved away. It’s hard to tell what happened next. They were just goofing. There was a noise, I suppose, which must’ve been the detonator, so I glanced behind me and watched Lemon step from the shade into bright sunlight. His face was suddenly brown and

10

15

320 stories for further reading

shining. A handsome kid, really. Sharp gray eyes, lean and narrow- waisted, and when he died it was almost beautiful, the way the sunlight came around him and lifted him up and sucked him high into a tree full of moss and vines and white blossoms.

In any war story, but especially a true one, it’s difficult to separate what happened from what seemed to happen. What seems to happen becomes its own happening and has to be told that way. The angles of vision are skewed. When a booby trap explodes, you close your eyes and duck and float outside yourself. When a guy dies, like Lemon, you look away and then look back for a moment and then look away again. The pictures get jumbled; you tend to miss a lot. And then afterward, when you go to tell about it, there is always that surreal seemingness, which makes the story seem untrue, but which in fact represents the hard and exact truth as it seemed.

In many cases a true war story cannot be believed. If you believe it, be skeptical. It’s a question of credibility. Often the crazy stuff is true and the normal stuff isn’t because the normal stuff is necessary to make you believe the truly incredible craziness. In other cases you can’t even tell a true war story. Sometimes it’s just beyond telling. I heard this one, for example, from Mitchell Sanders. It was near dusk and we were sitting at my foxhole along a wide, muddy river north of Quang Ngai. I remember how peaceful the twilight was. A deep pink- ish red spilled out on the river, which moved without sound, and in the morning we would cross the river and march west into the mountains. The occasion was right for a good story. “God’s truth,” Mitchell Sanders said. “A six-man patrol goes up into the mountains on a basic listening-post operation. The idea’s to spend a week up there, just lie low and listen for enemy movement. They’ve got a radio along, so if they hear anything suspicious — anything — they’re sup- posed to call in artillery or gunships, whatever it takes. Otherwise they keep strict field discipline. Absolute silence. They just listen.” He glanced at me to make sure I had the scenario. He was playing with his yo-yo, making it dance with short, tight little strokes of the wrist. His face was blank in the dusk. “We’re talking hardass LP.° These six guys, they don’t say boo for a solid week. They don’t got tongues. All ears.” “Right,” I said. “Understand me?” “Invisible.”

LP: Listening post.

25

20

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 321

Sanders nodded. “Affirm,” he said. “Invisible. So what happens is, these guys get themselves deep in the bush, all camouflaged up, and they lie down and wait and that’s all they do, nothing else, they lie there for seven straight days and just listen. And man, I’ll tell you — it’s spooky. This is moun- tains. You don’t know spooky till you been there. Jungle, sort of, except it’s way up in the clouds and there’s always this fog — like rain, except it’s not raining — everything’s all wet and swirly and tangled up and you can’t see jack, you can’t find your own pecker to piss with. Like you don’t even have a body. Serious spooky. You just go with the vapors — the fog sort of takes you in. . . . And the sounds, man. The sounds carry forever. You hear shit nobody should ever hear.” Sanders was quiet for a second, just working the yo-yo, then he smiled at me. “So, after a couple days the guys start hearing this real soft, kind of wacked-out music. Weird echoes and stuff. Like a radio or something, but it’s not a radio, it’s this strange gook music that comes right out of the rocks. Faraway, sort of, but right up close, too. They try to ignore it. But it’s a listening post, right? So they listen. And every night they keep hearing this crazyass gook concert. All kinds of chimes and xylophones. I mean, this is wilderness — no way, it can’t be real — but there it is, like the mountains are tuned in to Radio Fucking Hanoi. Nat- urally they get nervous. One guy sticks Juicy Fruit in his ears. Another guy almost flips. Thing is, though, they can’t report music. They can’t get on the horn and call back to base and say, ‘Hey, listen, we need some firepower, we got to blow away this weirdo gook rock band.’ They can’t do that. It wouldn’t go down. So they lie there in the fog and keep their mouths shut. And what makes it extra bad, see, is the poor dudes can’t horse around like normal. Can’t joke it away. Can’t even talk to each other except maybe in whispers, all hush-hush, and that just revs up the willies. All they do is listen.” Again there was some silence as Mitchell Sanders looked out on the river. The dark was coming on hard now, and off to the west I could see the mountains rising in silhouette, all the mysteries and unknowns. “This next part,” Sanders said quietly, “you won’t believe.” “Probably not,” I said. “You won’t. And you know why?” “Why?” He gave me a tired smile. “Because it happened. Because every word is absolutely dead-on true.” Sanders made a little sound in his throat, like a sigh, as if to say he didn’t care if I believed it or not. But he did care. He wanted me to believe, I could tell. He seemed sad, in a way. “These six guys, they’re pretty fried out by now, and one night they start hearing voices. Like at a cocktail party. That’s what it sounds like, this big swank gook cocktail party somewhere out there in the fog. Music and chitchat and stuff. It’s crazy, I know, but they hear the champagne

30

35

322 stories for further reading

corks. They hear the actual martini glasses. Real hoity-toity, all very civi- lized, except this isn’t civilization. This is Nam. “Anyway, the guys try to be cool. They just lie there and groove, but after a while they start hearing — you won’t believe this — they hear cham- ber music. They hear violins and shit. They hear this terrific mama-san soprano. Then after a while they hear gook opera and a glee club and the Haiphong Boys Choir and a barbershop quartet and all kinds of weird chanting and Buddha-Buddha stuff. The whole time, in the background, there’s still that cocktail party going on. All these different voices. Not human voices, though. Because it’s the mountains. Follow me? The rock — it’s talking. And the fog, too, and the grass and the goddamn mon- gooses. Everything talks. The trees talk politics, the monkeys talk reli- gion. The whole country. Vietnam, the place talks. “The guys can’t cope. They lose it. They get on the radio and report enemy movement — a whole army, they say — and they order up the firepower. They get arty° and gunships. They call in air strikes. And I’ll tell you, they fuckin’ crash that cocktail party. All night long, they just smoke those mountains. They make jungle juice. They blow away trees and glee clubs and whatever else there is to blow away. Scorch time. They walk napalm up and down the ridges. They bring in the Cobras and F-4s, they use Willie Peter and HE° and incendiaries. It’s all fire. They make those mountains burn. “Around dawn things finally get quiet. Like you never even heard quiet be fore. One of those real thick, real misty days — just clouds and fog, they’re off in this special zone — and the mountains are absolutely dead-flat silent. Like Brigadoon° — pure vapor, you know? Everything’s all sucked up inside the fog. Not a single sound, except they still hear it. “So they pack up and start humping. They head down the moun- tain, back to base camp, and when they get there they don’t say diddly. They don’t talk. Not a word, like they’re deaf and dumb. Later on this fat bird colonel comes up and asks what the hell happened out there. What’d they hear? Why all the ordnance? The man’s ragged out, he gets down tight on their case. I mean, they spent six trillion dollars on firepower, and this fatass colonel wants answers, he wants to know what the fuckin’ story is. “But the guys don’t say zip. They just look at him for a while, sort of funny-like, sort of amazed, and the whole war is right there in that stare. It says everything you can’t ever say. It says, man, you got wax in your ears. It says, poor bastard, you’ll never know — wrong frequency — you don’t even want to hear this. Then they salute the fucker and walk away, because certain stories you don’t ever tell.”

arty: Artillery. Willie Peter and HE: White phosphorus, an incendiary substance, and high explosives. Brigadoon: A fictional village in Scotland that only appears once every one hundred years; subject of a popular American musical (1947).

40

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 323

You can tell a true war story by the way it never seems to end. Not then, not ever. Not when Mitchell Sanders stood up and moved off into the dark. It all happened. Even now I remember that yo-yo. In a way, I suppose, you had to be there, you had to hear it, but I could tell how desperately Sanders wanted me to believe him, his frustration at not quite getting the details right, not quite pinning down the final and definitive truth. And I remember sitting at my foxhole that night, watching the shad- ows of Quang Ngai, thinking about the coming day and how we would cross the river and march west into the mountains, all the ways I might die, all the things I did not understand. Late in the night Mitchell Sanders touched my shoulder. “Just came to me,” he whispered. “The moral, I mean. Nobody lis- tens. Nobody hears nothing. Like that fatass colonel. The politicians, all the civilian types, what they need is to go out on LP. The vapors, man. Trees and rocks — you got to listen to your enemy.” And then again, in the morning, Sanders came up to me. The pla- toon was preparing to move out, checking weapons, going through all the little rituals that preceded a day’s march. Already the lead squad had crossed the river and was filing off toward the west. “I got a confession to make,” Sanders said. “Last night, man, I had to make up a few things.” “I know that.” “The glee club. There wasn’t any glee club.” “Right.” “No opera.” “Forget it, I understand.” “Yeah, but listen, it’s still true. Those six guys, they heard wicked sound out there. They heard sound you just plain won’t believe.” Sanders pulled on his rucksack, closed his eyes for a moment, then almost smiled at me. I knew what was coming but I beat him to it. “All right,” I said, “what’s the moral?” “Forget it.” “No, go ahead.” For a long while he was quiet, looking away, and the silence kept stretching out until it was almost embarrassing. Then he shrugged and gave me a stare that lasted all day. “Hear that quiet, man?” he said. “There’s your moral.”

In a true war story, if there’s a moral at all, it’s like the thread that makes the cloth. You can’t tease it out. You can’t extract the meaning without unraveling the deeper meaning. And in the end, really, there’s nothing much to say about a true war story, except maybe “Oh.” True war stories do not generalize. They do not indulge in abstrac- tion or analysis.

50

45

55

65

60

324 stories for further reading

For example: War is hell. As a moral declaration the old truism seems perfectly true, and yet because it abstracts, because it generalizes, I can’t believe it with my stomach. Nothing turns inside. It comes down to gut instinct. A true war story, if truly told, makes the stomach believe.

This one does it for me. I’ve told it before — many times, many ver- sions — but here’s what actually happened. We crossed the river and marched west into the mountains. On the third day, Curt Lemon stepped on a booby-trapped 105 round. He was playing catch with Rat Kiley, laughing, and then he was dead. The trees were thick; it took nearly an hour to cut an LZ for the dustoff.° Later, higher in the mountains, we came across a baby VC° water buffalo. What it was doing there I don’t know — no farms or pad- dies — but we chased it down and got a rope around it and led it along to a deserted village where we set for the night. After supper Rat Kiley went over and stroked its nose. He opened up a can of C rations, pork and beans, but the baby buf- falo wasn’t interested. Rat shrugged. He stepped back and shot it through the right front knee. The ani- mal did not make a sound. It went down hard, then got up again, and Rat took care ful aim and shot off an ear. He shot it in the hindquarters and in the little hump at its back. He shot it twice in the flanks. It wasn’t to kill; it was just to hurt. He put the rifle muzzle up against the mouth and shot the mouth away. Nobody said much. The whole platoon stood there watching, feeling all kinds of things, but there wasn’t a great deal of pity for the baby water buffalo. Lemon was dead. Rat Kiley had lost his best friend in the world. Later in the week he would write a long personal letter to the guy’s sister, who would not write back, but for now it was a question of pain. He shot off the tail. He shot away chunks of meat below the ribs. All around us there was the smell of smoke and filth, and deep greenery, and the evening was humid and very hot. Rat went to automatic. He shot randomly, almost casually, quick little spurts in the belly and butt. Then he reloaded, squatted down, and shot it in the left front knee. Again the animal fell hard and tried to get up, but this time it couldn’t quite make it. It wobbled and went down sideways. Rat shot it in the nose. He bent forward and whispered something, as if talking to a pet, then he shot it in the throat. All the while the baby buffalo was silent, or almost silent, just a light bubbling sound where the nose had been. It lay very still. Nothing moved except the eyes, which were enor- mous, the pupils shiny black and dumb.

LZ for the dustoff: Landing zone for a helicopter evacuation of a casualty. VC: Vietcong (North Vietnamese).

70

75

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 325

Rat Kiley was crying. He tried to say something, but then cradled his rifle and went off by himself. The rest of us stood in a ragged circle around the baby buffalo. For a time no one spoke. We had witnessed something essential, something brand-new and profound, a piece of the world so startling there was not yet a name for it. Somebody kicked the baby buffalo. It was still alive, though just barely, just in the eyes. “Amazing,” Dave Jensen said. “My whole life, I never seen anything like it.” “Never?” “Not hardly. Not once.” Kiowa and Mitchell Sanders picked up the baby buffalo. They hauled it across the open square, hoisted it up, and dumped it in the vil- lage well. Afterward, we sat waiting for Rat to get himself together. “Amazing,” Dave Jensen kept saying. “For sure.” “A new wrinkle. I never seen it before.” Mitchell Sanders took out his yo-yo. “Well, that’s Nam,” he said. “Garden of Evil. Over here, man, every sin’s real fresh and original.”

How do you generalize? War is hell, but that’s not the half of it, because war is also mystery and terror and adventure and courage and discovery and holiness and pity and despair and longing and love. War is nasty; war is fun. War is thrilling; war is drudgery. War makes you a man; war makes you dead. The truths are contradictory. It can be argued, for instance, that war is grotesque. But in truth war is also beauty. For all its horror, you can’t help but gape at the awful majesty of combat. You stare out at tracer rounds unwinding through the dark like brilliant red ribbons. You crouch in ambush as a cool, impassive moon rises over the night- time paddies. You admire the fluid symmetries of troops on the move, the harmonies of sound and shape and proportion, the great sheets of metal-fire streaming down from a gunship, the illumination rounds, the white phosphorous, the purply black glow of napalm, the rocket’s red glare. It’s not pretty, exactly. It’s astonishing. It fills the eye. It commands you. You hate it, yes, but your eyes do not. Like a killer forest fire, like cancer under a microscope, any battle or bombing raid or artillery bar- rage has the aesthetic purity of absolute moral indifference — a powerful, implacable beauty — and a true war story will tell the truth about this, though the truth is ugly. To generalize about war is like generalizing about peace. Almost everything is true. Almost nothing is true. At its core, perhaps, war is just another name for death, and yet any soldier will tell you, if he tells the

80

85

90

326 stories for further reading

truth, that proximity to death brings with it a corresponding proximity to life. After a fire fight, there is always the immense pleasure of alive- ness. The trees are alive. The grass, the soil — everything. All around you things are purely living, and you among them, and the aliveness makes you tremble. You feel an intense, out-of-the-skin awareness of your liv- ing self — your truest self, the human being you want to be and then become by the force of wanting it. In the midst of evil you want to be a good man. You want decency. You want justice and courtesy and human concord, things you never knew you wanted. There is a kind of largeness to it; a kind of godliness. Though it’s odd, you’re never more alive than when you’re almost dead. You recognize what’s valuable. Freshly, as if for the first time, you love what’s best in yourself and in the world, all that might be lost. At the hour of dusk you sit at your foxhole and look out on a wide river turning pinkish red, and at the mountains beyond, and although in the morning you must cross the river and go into the mountains and do terrible things and maybe die, even so, you find your- self studying the fine colors on the river, you feel wonder and awe at the setting of the sun, and you are filled with a hard, aching love for how the world could be and always should be, but now is not. Mitchell Sanders was right. For the common soldier, at least, war has the feel — the spiritual texture — of a great ghostly fog, thick and per- manent. There is no clarity. Everything swirls. The old rules are no lon- ger binding, the old truths no longer true. Right spills over into wrong. Order blends into chaos, love into hate, ugliness into beauty, law into anarchy, civility into savagery. The vapors suck you in. You can’t tell where you are, or why you’re there, and the only certainty is absolute ambiguity. In war you lose your sense of the definite, hence your sense of truth itself, and therefore it’s safe to say that in a true war story nothing much is ever very true.

Often in a true war story there is not even a point, or else the point doesn’t hit you until twenty years later, in your sleep, and you wake up and shake your wife and start telling the story to her, except when you get to the end you’ve forgotten the point again. And then for a long time you lie there watching the story happen in your head. You listen to your wife’s breathing. The war’s over. You close your eyes. You smile and think, Christ, what’s the point?

This one wakes me up. In the mountains that day, I watched Lemon turn sideways. He laughed and said something to Rat Kiley. Then he took a peculiar half step, moving from shade into bright sunlight, and the booby-trapped 105 round blew him into a tree. The parts were just hanging there, so Norman Bowker and I were ordered to shinny up and peel him off. I

95

o’brien / how to tell a true war story 327

remember the white bone of an arm. I remember pieces of skin and something wet and yellow that must’ve been the intestines. The gore was horrible, and stays with me, but what wakes me up twenty years later is Norman Bowker singing “Lemon Tree” as we threw down the parts.

You can tell a true war story by the questions you ask. Somebody tells a story, let’s say, and afterward you ask, “Is it true?” and if the answer mat- ters, you’ve got your answer. For example, we’ve all heard this one. Four guys go down a trail. A grenade sails out. One guy jumps on it and takes the blast and saves his three buddies. Is it true? The answer matters. You’d feel cheated if it never happened. Without the grounding reality, it’s just a trite bit of puffery, pure Hollywood, untrue in the way all such stories are untrue. Yet even if it did happen — and maybe it did, anything’s possible — even then you know it can’t be true, because a true war story does not depend upon that kind of truth. Happening- ness is irrelevant. A thing may happen and be a total lie; another thing may not happen and be truer than the truth. For ex ample: four guys go down a trail. A grenade sails out. One guy jumps on it and takes the blast, but it’s a killer grenade and everybody dies anyway. Before they die, though, one of the dead guys says, “The fuck you do that for?” and the jumper says, “Story of my life, man,” and the other guy starts to smile but he’s dead. That’s a true story that never happened.

Twenty years later, I can still see the sunlight on Lemon’s face. I can see him turning, looking back at Rat Kiley, then he laughed and took that curious half step from shade into sunlight, his face suddenly brown and shining, and when his foot touched down, in that instant, he must’ve thought it was the sunlight that was killing him. It was not the sunlight. It was a rigged 105 round. But if I could ever get the story right, how the sun seemed to gather around him and pick him up and lift him into a tree, if I could somehow recreate the fatal whiteness of that light, the quick glare, the obvious cause and effect, then you would believe the last thing Lemon believed, which for him must’ve been the final truth.

Now and then, when I tell this story, someone will come up to me after- ward and say she liked it. It’s always a woman. Usually it’s an older woman of kindly temperament and humane politics. She’ll explain that as a rule she hates war stories, she can’t understand why people want to wallow in blood and gore. But this one she liked. Sometimes, even, there are little tears. What I should do, she’ll say, is put it all behind me. Find new stories to tell.

100

105

328 stories for further reading

I won’t say it but I’ll think it. I’ll picture Rat Kiley’s face, his grief, and I’ll think, You dumb cooze. Because she wasn’t listening. It wasn’t a war story. It was a love story. It was a ghost story. But you can’t say that. All you can do is tell it one more time, patiently, adding and subtracting, making up a few things to get at the real truth. No Mitchell Sanders, you tell her. No Lemon, no Rat Kiley. And it didn’t happen in the mountains, it happened in this little village on the Batangan Peninsula, and it was raining like crazy, and one night a guy named Stink Harris woke up screaming with a leech on his tongue. You can tell a true war story if you just keep on telling it. In the end, of course, a true war story is never about war. It’s about the special way that dawn spreads out on a river when you know you must cross the river and march into the mountains and do things you are afraid to do. It’s about love and memory. It’s about sorrow. It’s about sisters who never write back and people who never listen.

E. Annie Proulx (b. 1935)

Edna Annie Proulx was born in 1935 and did not finish her first book until 1988. She re ceived a B.A. from the University of Vermont in 1969 and a master’s degree from Sir George Williams University, both in history, and later became a freelance writer of ar ticles for magazines in the United States. She published short stories occasionally until she had enough to make her first collection, Heart Songs and Other Stories (1988), which she followed with the novel Postcards in 1992. Her breakthrough novel was The Shipping News (1993), which won both the Pulitzer Prize and the National Book Award, and she has since produced two novels, Accordion Crimes (1996) and The Old Ace in the Hole (2003), and three books of short stories, Close Range: Wyoming Stories (1999), Bad Dirt: Wyoming Stories 2 (2004), and Fine Just the Way It Is: Wyoming Stories 3 (2008). Setting her works in places as distant as Newfoundland and Wyoming, Proulx conveys her dark, comic stories by creating a strong sense of place, using her talent for keen detail and for reproducing the peculiarities of local speech. The Shipping News and the short story “Brokeback Mountain” from Close Range were made into popular films.

© Jerry Bauer.

110

twain / the story of the good little boy 329

55 Miles to the Gas Pump 1999

Rancher Croom in handmade boots and filthy hat, that walleyed cattle- man, stray hairs like curling fiddle string ends, that warm-handed, quick-foot dancer on splintery boards or down the cellar stairs to a rack of bottles of his own strange beer, yeasty, cloudy, bursting out in gar- lands of foam, Rancher Croom at night galloping drunk over the dark plain, turning off at a place he knows to arrive at a canyon brink where he dismounts and looks down on tumbled rock, waits, then steps out, parting the air with his last roar, sleeves surging up windmill arms, jeans riding over boot tops, but before he hits he rises again to the top of the cliff like a cork in a bucket of milk. Mrs. Croom on the roof with a saw cutting a hole into the attic where she has not been for twelve years thanks to old Croom’s padlocks and warnings, whets to her desire, and the sweat flies as she exchanges the saw for a chisel and hammer until a ragged slab of peak is free and she can see inside: just as she thought: the corpses of Mr. Croom’s par- amours — she recognizes them from their photographs in the paper: MISSING WOMAN — some desiccated as jerky and much the same color, some moldy from lying beneath roof leaks, and all of them used hard, covered with tarry handprints, the marks of boot heels, some bright blue with the remnants of paint used on the shutters years ago, one wrapped in newspaper nipple to knee. When you live a long way out you make your own fun.

Mark Twain (1835–1910)

Mark Twain is the pen name of Samuel Clemens, born in Missouri in 1835. Twain spent most of his childhood in Hannibal, Missouri, on the Mississippi River, and after the death of his father when he was eleven, he worked at a series of jobs to help support his family. A newspaper job prepared him to wander east working for papers and ex ploring St. Louis, New York, and Philadelphia. Later he trained as a steamboat pilot on the Mississippi and piloted boats pro fessionally until the onset of the Civil War. Clemens had used a couple of different pseudonyms for minor publications before this point, but in 1863 he signed a travel narrative “Mark Twain,” from a boating term that means “two fathoms deep,” and the name for the great American humorist was created. Twain gained fame in 1865 with his story “The Celebrated Jumping Frog of Calaveras

© Bettmann/corbis.

330 stories for further reading

County,” which appeared in New York–based The Saturday Press. He then became a traveling correspondent, writing pieces on his travels to Europe and the Middle East, and returned to the United States in 1870, when he married and moved to Connecticut. Twain produced Roughing It (1872) and The Gilded Age (1873) while he toured the country lecturing, and in 1876 published The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, an instant hit. His subsequent publications include A Tramp Abroad (1880), The Prince and the Pauper (1881), and the masterpiece The Adventures of Huckleberry Finn (1884). Often traveling and lecturing, Twain wrote several more books, including story collections, The Tragedy of Pudd’nhead Wilson (1894), and Tom Sawyer, Detective (1896), before he died in Italy in 1910. His work is noted for the combination of rough humor and vernacular language it often uses to convey keen social insights. In “The Story of the Good Little Boy” Twain offers his version of a Sunday-school lesson.

The Story of the Good Little Boy 1870

Once there was a good little boy by the name of Jacob Blivens. He always obeyed his parents, no matter how absurd and unreasonable their demands were; and he always learned his book, and never was late at Sabbath-school. He would not play hookey, even when his sober judg- ment told him it was the most profitable thing he could do. None of the other boys could ever make that boy out, he acted so strangely. He wouldn’t lie, no matter how convenient it was. He just said it was wrong to lie, and that was sufficient for him. And he was so honest that he was simply ridiculous. The curious ways that that Jacob had, surpassed every- thing. He wouldn’t play marbles on Sunday, he wouldn’t rob birds’ nests, he wouldn’t give hot pennies to organ-grinders’ monkeys; he didn’t seem to take any interest in any kind of rational amusement. So the other boys used to try to reason it out and come to an understanding of him, but they couldn’t arrive at any satisfactory conclusion. As I said before, they could only figure out a sort of vague idea that he was “afflicted,” and so they took him under their protection, and never allowed any harm to come to him. This good little boy read all the Sunday-school books; they were his greatest delight. This was the whole secret of it. He believed in the good little boys they put in the Sunday-school books; he had every confidence in them. He longed to come across one of them alive once; but he never did. They all died before his time, maybe. Whenever he read about a par- ticularly good one he turned over quickly to the end to see what became of him, because he wanted to travel thousands of miles and gaze on him; but it wasn’t any use; that good little boy always died in the last chapter, and there was a picture of the funeral, with all his relations and the Sunday-school children standing around the grave in pantaloons that were too short, and bonnets that were too large, and everybody crying

twain / the story of the good little boy 331

into handkerchiefs that had as much as a yard and a half of stuff in them. He was always headed off in this way. He never could see one of those good little boys on account of his always dying in the last chapter. Jacob had a noble ambition to be put in a Sunday-school book. He wanted to be put in, with pictures representing him gloriously declining to lie to his mother, and her weeping for joy about it; and pictures repre- senting him standing on the doorstep giving a penny to a poor beggar- woman with six children, and telling her to spend it freely, but not to be extravagant, because extravagance is a sin; and pictures of him magnani- mously refusing to tell on the bad boy who always lay in wait for him around the corner as he came from school, and welted him over the head with a lath, and then chased him home, saying, “Hi! hi!” as he proceeded. That was the ambition of young Jacob Blivens. He wished to be put in a Sunday-school book. It made him feel a little uncomfortable sometimes when he reflected that the good little boys always died. He loved to live, you know, and this was the most unpleasant feature about being a Sunday-school-book boy. He knew it was not healthy to be good. He knew it was more fatal than consumption to be so supernaturally good as the boys in the books were; he knew that none of them had ever been able to stand it long, and it pained him to think that if they put him in a book he wouldn’t ever see it, or even if they did get the book out before he died it wouldn’t be popular without any picture of his funeral in the back part of it. It couldn’t be much of a Sunday-school book that couldn’t tell about the advice he gave to the community when he was dying. So at last, of course, he had to make up his mind to do the best he could under the circumstances — to live right, and, hang on as long as he could, and have his dying speech all ready when his time came. But somehow nothing ever went right with this good little boy; nothing ever turned out with him the way it turned out with the good little boys in the books. They always had a good time, and the bad boys had the broken legs; but in his case there was a screw loose somewhere, and it all happened just the other way. When he found Jim Blake stealing apples, and went under the tree to read to him about the bad little boy who fell out of a neighbor’s apple tree and broke his arm, Jim fell out of the tree, too, but he fell on him and broke his arm, and Jim wasn’t hurt at all. Jacob couldn’t understand that. There wasn’t anything in the books like it. And once, when some bad boys pushed a blind man over in the mud, and Jacob ran to help him up and receive his blessing, the blind man did not give him any blessing at all, but whacked him over the head with his stick and said he would like to catch him shoving him again, and then pretending to help him up. This was not in accordance with any of the books. Jacob looked them all over to see. One thing that Jacob wanted to do was to find a lame dog that hadn’t any place to stay, and was hungry and persecuted, and bring him home and pet him and have that dog’s imperishable gratitude. And at

5

332 stories for further reading

last he found one and was happy; and he brought him home and fed him, but when he was going to pet him the dog flew at him and tore all the clothes off him except those that were in front, and made a spectacle of him that was astonishing. He examined authorities, but he could not understand the matter. It was of the same breed of dogs that was in the books, but it acted very differently. Whatever this boy did he got into trouble. The very things the boys in the books got rewarded for turned out to be about the most unprofitable things he could invest in. Once, when he was on his way to Sunday-school, he saw some bad boys starting off pleasuring in a sailboat. He was filled with consterna- tion, because he knew from his reading that boys who went sailing on Sunday invariably got drowned. So he ran out on a raft to warn them, but a log turned with him and slid him into the river. A man got him out pretty soon, and the doctor pumped the water out of him, and gave him a fresh start with his bellows, but he caught cold and lay sick abed nine weeks. But the most unaccountable thing about it was that the bad boys in the boat had a good time all day, and then reached home alive and well in the most surprising manner. Jacob Blivens said there was nothing like these things in the books. He was perfectly dumbfounded. When he got well he was a little discouraged, but he resolved to keep on trying anyhow. He knew that so far his experiences wouldn’t do to go in a book, but he hadn’t yet reached the allotted term of life for good little boys, and he hoped to be able to make a record yet if he could hold on till his time was fully up. If everything else failed he had his dying speech to fall back on. He examined his authorities, and found that it was now time for him to go to sea as a cabin-boy. He called on a ship-captain and made his application, and when the captain asked for his recommendations he proudly drew out a tract and pointed to the word, “To Jacob Blivens, from his affectionate teacher.” But the captain was a coarse, vulgar man, and he said, “Oh, that be blowed! that wasn’t any proof that he knew how to wash dishes or handle a slush-bucket, and he guessed he didn’t want him.” This was altogether the most extraor dinary thing that ever hap- pened to Jacob in all his life. A compliment from a teacher, on a tract, had never failed to move the tenderest emotions of ship-captains, and open the way to all offices of honor and profit in their gift — it never had in any book that ever he had read. He could hardly believe his senses. This boy always had a hard time of it. Nothing ever came out accord- ing to the authorities with him. At last, one day, when he was around hunting up bad little boys to admonish, he found a lot of them in the old iron-foundry fixing up a little joke on fourteen or fifteen dogs, which they had tied together in long procession, and were going to ornament with empty nitroglycerin cans made fast to their tails. Jacob’s heart was touched. He sat down on one of those cans (for he never minded grease when duty was before him), and he took hold of the foremost dog by the collar, and turned his reproving eye upon wicked Tom Jones. But just at

10

updike / a & p 333

that moment Alderman McWelter, full of wrath, stepped in. All the bad boys ran away, but Jacob Blivens rose in conscious innocence and began one of those stately little Sunday-school-book speeches which always com- mence with “Oh, sir!” in dead opposition to the fact that no boy, good or bad, ever starts a remark with “Oh, sir.” But the alderman never waited to hear the rest. He took Jacob Blivens by the ear and turned him around, and hit him a whack in the rear with the flat of his hand; and in an instant that good little boy shot out through the roof and soared away toward the sun, with the fragments of those fifteen dogs stringing after him like the tail of a kite. And there wasn’t a sign of that alderman or that old iron- foundry left on the face of the earth; and, as for young Jacob Blivens, he never got a chance to make his last dying speech after all his trouble fixing it up, unless he made it to the birds; because, although the bulk of him came down all right in a tree-top in an adjoining county, the rest of him was apportioned around among four townships, and so they had to hold five inquests on him to find out whether he was dead or not, and how it occurred. You never saw a boy scattered so.1 Thus perished the good little boy who did the best he could, but didn’t come out according to the books. Every boy who ever did as he did prospered except him. His case is truly remarkable. It will probably never be accounted for.

1 This glycerin catastrophe is borrowed from a floating newspaper item, whose author’s name I would give if I knew it. M.T.

John Updike (1932–2009)

John Updike grew up in the small town of Shillington, Pennsylvania, and on a family farm nearby. Academic success in school earned him a scholarship to Harvard, where he studied English and graduated in 1954. He soon sold his first story and poem to The New Yorker. Also an artist, Updike studied drawing in Oxford, England, and returned to take a position on the staff at The New Yorker. His first book, a collection of poems titled The Carpentered Hen and Other Tame Creatures, ap peared in 1958, and the following year he published a book of stories and a novel, The Poorhouse Fair, which received the Rosenthal Foundation Award in 1960. Updike produced his second novel, Rabbit, Run, in the same year. The prolific Updike lived in Massachusetts the rest of his life and continued to publish essays, poems, a novel, or a book of stories nearly every year since 1959, including

© Jerry Bauer.

334 stories for further reading

The Centaur (1963), winner of the National Book Award; Rabbit Is Rich (1981) and Rabbit at Rest (1990), both Pulitzer Prize winners; and The Witches of Eastwick (1984), which was made into a major motion picture (Warner Bros., 1987). His last novel was Terrorist (2006), and his last short story collection was My Father’s Tears and Other Stories (2009). Updike’s fiction is noted for its exemplary use of storytelling conventions, its unique prose style, and its engaging picture of middle-class American life.

A & P 1961

In walks these three girls in nothing but bathing suits. I’m in the third checkout slot, with my back to the door, so I don’t see them until they’re over by the bread. The one that caught my eye first was the one in the plaid green two-piece. She was a chunky kid, with a good tan and a sweet broad soft-looking can with those two crescents of white just under it, where the sun never seems to hit, at the top of the backs of her legs. I stood there with my hand on a box of HiHo crackers trying to remember if I rang it up or not. I ring it up again and the customer starts giving me hell. She’s one of these cash-register-watchers, a witch about fifty with rouge on her cheekbones and no eyebrows, and I know it made her day to trip me up. She’d been watching cash registers for fifty years and prob- ably never seen a mistake before. By the time I got her feathers smoothed and her goodies into a bag — she gives me a little snort in passing, if she’d been born at the right time they would have burned her over in Salem — by the time I get her on her way the girls had circled around the bread and were coming back, without a pushcart, back my way along the counters, in the aisle between the checkouts and the Special bins. They didn’t even have shoes on. There was this chunky one, with the two-piece — it was bright green and the seams on the bra were still sharp and her belly was still pretty pale so I guessed she just got it (the suit) — there was this one, with one of those chubby berry-faces, the lips all bunched to gether under her nose, this one, and a tall one, with black hair that hadn’t quite frizzed right, and one of these sunburns right across under the eyes, and a chin that was too long — you know, the kind of girl other girls think is very “striking” and “attractive” but never quite makes it, as they very well know, which is why they like her so much — and then the third one, that wasn’t quite so tall. She was the queen. She kind of led them, the other two peek- ing around and making their shoulders round. She didn’t look around, not this queen, she just walked straight on slowly, on these long white prima-donna legs. She came down a little hard on her heels, as if she didn’t walk in her bare feet that much, putting down her heels and then letting the weight move along to her toes as if she was testing the floor with every step, putting a little deliberate extra action into it. You never know for sure how girls’ minds work (do you really think it’s a mind in

updike / a & p 335

there or just a little buzz like a bee in a glass jar?) but you got the idea she had talked the other two into coming in here with her, and now she was showing them how to do it, walk slow and hold yourself straight. She had on a kind of dirty-pink — beige maybe, I don’t know — bathing suit with a little nubble all over it and, what got me, the straps were down. They were off her shoulders looped loose around the cool tops of her arms, and I guess as a result the suit had slipped a little on her, so all around the top of the cloth there was this shining rim. If it hadn’t been there you wouldn’t have known there could have been anything whiter than those shoulders. With the straps pushed off, there was nothing between the top of the suit and the top of her head except just her, this clean bare plane of the top of her chest down from the shoulder bones like a dented sheet of metal tilted in the light. I mean, it was more than pretty. She had sort of oaky hair that the sun and salt had bleached, done up in a bun that was unraveling, and a kind of prim face. Walking into the A & P with your straps down, I suppose it’s the only kind of face you can have. She held her head so high her neck, coming up out of those white shoulders, looked kind of stretched, but I didn’t mind. The longer her neck was, the more of her there was. She must have felt in the corner of her eye me and over my shoulder Stokesie in the second slot watching, but she didn’t tip. Not this queen. She kept her eyes moving across the racks, and stopped, and turned so slow it made my stomach rub the inside of my apron, and buzzed to the other two, who kind of huddled against her for relief, and then they all three of them went up the cat-and-dogfood-breakfast-cereal-maca- roni-rice-raisins-seasonings-spreads-spaghetti-soft-drinks-crackers-and- cookies aisle. From the third slot I look straight up this aisle to the meat counter, and I watched them all the way. The fat one with the tan sort of fumbled with the cookies, but on second thought she put the pack- age back. The sheep pushing their carts down the aisle — the girls were walking against the usual traffic (not that we have one-way signs or any- thing) — were pretty hilarious. You could see them, when Queenie’s white shoulders dawned on them, kind of jerk, or hop, or hiccup, but their eyes snapped back to their own baskets and on they pushed. I bet you could set off dynamite in an A & P and the people would by and large keep reaching and checking oatmeal off their lists and muttering “Let me see, there was a third thing, began with A, asparagus, no, ah, yes, apple- sauce!” or whatever it is they do mutter. But there was no doubt, this jiggled them. A few houseslaves in pin curlers even looked around after pushing their carts past to make sure what they had seen was correct. You know, it’s one thing to have a girl in a bathing suit down on the beach, where what with the glare nobody can look at each other much anyway, and another thing in the cool of the A & P, under the fluorescent lights, against all those stacked packages, with her feet paddling along naked over our checker-board green-and-cream rubber-tile floor. “Oh Daddy,” Stokesie said beside me. “I feel so faint.”

5

336 stories for further reading

“Darling,” I said. “Hold me tight.” Stokesie’s married, with two babies chalked up on his fuselage already, but as far as I can tell that’s the only difference. He’s twenty-two, and I was nineteen this April. “Is it done?” he asks, the responsible married man finding his voice. I forgot to say he thinks he’s going to be manager some sunny day, maybe in 1990 when it’s called the Great Alexandrov and Petrooshki Tea Com- pany or something. What he meant was, our town is five miles from a beach, with a big summer colony out on the Point, but we’re right in the middle of town, and the women generally put on a shirt or shorts or something before they get out of the car into the street. And anyway these are usually women with six children and varicose veins mapping their legs and nobody, including them, could care less. As I say, we’re right in the middle of town, and if you stand at our front doors you can see two banks and the Congregational church and the newspaper store and three real-estate offices and about twenty-seven old freeloaders tearing up Central Street because the sewer broke again. It’s not as if we’re on the Cape, we’re north of Boston and there’s people in this town haven’t seen the ocean for twenty years. The girls had reached the meat counter and were asking McMahon something. He pointed, they pointed, and they shuffled out of sight behind a pyramid of Diet Delight peaches. All that was left for us to see was old McMahon patting his mouth and looking after them sizing up their joints. Poor kids, I began to feel sorry for them, they couldn’t help it. Now here comes the sad part of the story, at least my family says it’s sad, but I don’t think it’s so sad myself. The store’s pretty empty, it being Thursday afternoon, so there was nothing much to do except lean on the register and wait for the girls to show up again. The whole store was like a pinball machine and I didn’t know which tunnel they’d come out of. After a while they come around out of the far aisle, around the light bulbs, records at discount of the Caribbean Six or Tony Martin Sings or some such gunk you wonder they waste the wax on, sixpacks of candy bars, and plastic toys done up in cellophane that fall apart when a kid looks at them anyway. Around they come, Queenie still leading the way, and holding a little gray jar in her hands. Slots Three through Seven are unmanned and I could see her wondering between Stokes and me, but Stokesie with his usual luck draws an old party in baggy gray pants who stumbles up with four giant cans of pineapple juice (what do these bums do with all that pineapple juice? I’ve often asked myself). So the girls come to me. Queenie puts down the jar and I take it into my fingers icy cold. Kingfish Fancy Herring Snacks in Pure Sour Cream: 49¢. Now her hands are empty, not a ring or a bracelet, bare as God made them, and I wonder where the mon- ey’s coming from. Still with that prim look she lifts a folded dollar bill out of the hollow at the center of her nubbled pink top. The jar went heavy in my hand. Really, I thought that was so cute. Then everybody’s luck begins to run out. Lengel comes in from hag- gling with a truck full of cabbages on the lot and is about to scuttle into that

10

updike / a & p 337

door marked MANAGER behind which he hides all day when the girls touch his eye. Lengel’s pretty dreary, teaches Sunday school and the rest, but he doesn’t miss that much. He comes over and says, “Girls, this isn’t the beach.” Queenie blushes, though maybe it’s just a brush of sunburn I was noticing for the first time, now that she was so close. “My mother asked me to pick up a jar of herring snacks.” Her voice kind of startled me, the way voices do when you see the people first, coming out so flat and dumb yet kind of tony, too, the way it ticked over “pick up” and “snacks.” All of a sudden I slid right down her voice into the living room. Her father and the other men were standing around in ice-cream coats and bow ties and the women were in sandals picking up herring snacks on toothpicks off a big glass plate and they were all holding drinks the color of water with olives and sprigs of mint in them. When my parents have somebody over they get lemonade and if it’s a real racy affair Schlitz in tall glasses with “They’ll Do It Every Time” cartoons stenciled on. “That’s all right,” Lengel said. “But this isn’t the beach.” His repeat- ing this struck me as funny, as if it had just occurred to him, and he had been thinking all these years the A & P was a great big dune and he was the head lifeguard. He didn’t like my smiling — as I say he doesn’t miss much — but he concentrates on giving the girls that sad Sunday-school- superintendent stare. Queenie’s blush is no sunburn now, and the plump one in plaid, that I liked better from the back — a really sweet can — pipes up, “We weren’t doing any shopping. We just came in for the one thing.” “That makes no difference,” Lengel tells her, and I could see from the way his eyes went that he hadn’t noticed she was wearing a two-piece before. “We want you decently dressed when you come in here.” “We are decent,” Queenie says suddenly, her lower lip pushing, get- ting sore now that she remembers her place, a place from which the crowd that runs the A & P must look pretty crummy. Fancy Herring Snacks flashed in her very blue eyes. “Girls, I don’t want to argue with you. After this come in here with your shoulders covered. It’s our policy.” He turns his back. That’s policy for you. Policy is what the kingpins want. What the others want is juve- nile delinquency. All this while, the customers had been showing up with their carts but, you know, sheep, seeing a scene, they had all bunched up on Stokesie, who shook open a paper bag as gently as peeling a peach, not wanting to miss a word. I could feel in the silence everybody getting ner- vous, most of all Lengel, who asks me, “Sammy, have you rung up their purchase?” I thought and said “No” but it wasn’t about that I was thinking. I go through the punches, 4, 9, GROC. TOT — it’s more complicated than you think, and after you do it often enough, it begins to make a little song, that you hear words to, in my case “Hello (bing) there, you (gung) hap-py pee-pul (splat)!” — the splat being the drawer flying out. I uncrease the bill,

15

20

338 stories for further reading

tenderly as you may imagine, it just having come from between the two smoothest scoops of vanilla I had ever known were there, and pass a half and a penny into her narrow pink palm, and nestle the herrings in a bag and twist its neck and hand it over, all the time thinking. The girls, and who’d blame them, are in a hurry to get out, so I say “I quit” to Lengel quick enough for them to hear, hoping they’ll stop and watch me, their unsuspected hero. They keep right on going, into the electric eye; the door flies open and they flicker across the lot to their car, Queenie and Plaid and Big Tall Goony-Goony (not that as raw material she was so bad), leaving me with Lengel and a kink in his eyebrow. “Did you say something, Sammy?” “I said I quit.” “I thought you did.” “You didn’t have to embarrass them.” “It was they who were embarrassing us.” I started to say something that came out “Fiddle-de-doo.” It’s a say- ing of my grandmother’s, and I know she would have been pleased. “I don’t think you know what you’re saying,” Lengel said. “I know you don’t,” I said. “But I do.” I pull the bow at the back of my apron and start shrugging it off my shoulders. A couple customers that had been heading for my slot begin to knock against each other, like scared pigs in a chute. Lengel sighs and begins to look very patient and old and gray. He’s been a friend of my parents for years. “Sammy, you don’t want to do this to your Mom and Dad,” he tells me. It’s true, I don’t. But it seems to me that once you begin a gesture it’s fatal not to go through with it. I fold the apron, “Sammy” stitched in red on the pocket, and put it on the counter, and drop the bow tie on top of it. The bow tie is theirs, if you’ve ever wondered. “You’ll feel this for the rest of your life,” Len- gel says, and I know that’s true, too, but remembering how he made the pretty girl blush makes me so scrunchy inside I punch the No Sale tab and the machine whirs “pee-pul” and the drawer splats out. One advan- tage to this scene taking place in summer, I can follow this up with a clean exit, there’s no fumbling around getting your coat and galoshes, I just saunter into the electric eye in my white shirt that my mother ironed the night before, and the door heaves itself open, and outside the sun- shine is skating around on the asphalt. I look around for my girls, but they’re gone, of course. There wasn’t anybody but some young married screaming with her children about some candy they didn’t get by the door of a powder-blue Falcon station wagon. Looking back in the big windows, over the bags of peat moss and aluminum lawn furniture stacked on the pavement, I could see Lengel in my place in the slot, checking the sheep through. His face was dark gray and his back stiff, as if he’d just had an injection of iron, and my stomach kind of fell as I felt how hard the world was going to be to me hereafter.

25

30

P O E T R Y

This page intentionally left blank

The Elements of Poetry

341

11. Reading Poetry 343

12. Word Choice, Word Order, and Tone 375

13. Images 399

14. Figures of Speech 412

15. Symbol, Allegory, and Irony 428

16. Sounds 447

17. Patterns of Rhythm 464

18. Poetic Forms 481

19. Open Form 507

This page intentionally left blank

READING POETRY RESPONSIVELY Perhaps the best way to begin reading poetry responsively is not to allow yourself to be intimidated by it. Come to it, initially at least, the way you might listen to a song on the radio. You probably listen to a song several times before you hear it all, before you have a sense of how it works, where it’s going, and how it gets there. You don’t worry about analyz- ing a song when you listen to it, even though after repeated experiences with it you know and anticipate a favorite part and know, on some level, why it works for you. Give yourself a chance to respond to poetry. The hardest work has already been done by the poet, so all you need to do at the start is listen for the pleasure produced by the poet’s arrangement of words. Try reading the following poem aloud. Read it aloud before you read it silently. You may stumble once or twice, but you’ll make sense of it if you pay attention to its punctuation and don’t stop at the end of every line where there is no punctuation. When you fi nish reading it, think about why it’s titled “Snapping Beans.”

343

11 Reading Poetry

Ink runs from the corners of my mouth, There is no happiness like mine. I have been eating poetry.

— MARK STRAND © Lilo Raymond.

344 reading poetry

Lisa Parker (b. 1972)

Snapping Beans 1998

For Fay Whitt

I snapped beans into the silver bowl that sat on the splintering slats of the porchswing between my grandma and me. I was home for the weekend, from school, from the North, 5 Grandma hummed “What A Friend We Have In Jesus” as the sun rose, pushing its pink spikes through the slant of cornstalks, through the fl y-eyed mesh of the screen. We didn’t speak until the sun overcame 10 the feathered tips of the cornfi eld and Grandma stopped humming. I could feel the soft gray of her stare against the side of my face when she asked, How’s school a-goin’? 15 I wanted to tell her about my classes, the revelations by book and lecture, as real as any shout of faith and potent as a swig of strychnine. She reached the leather of her hand 20 over the bowl and cupped my quivering chin; the slick smooth of her palm held my face the way she held tomatoes under the spigot, careful not to drop them, and I wanted to tell her 25 about the nights I cried into the familiar heartsick panels of the quilt she made me, wishing myself home on the evening star. I wanted to tell her the evening star was a planet, 30 that my friends wore noserings and wrote poetry about sex, about alcoholism, about Buddha. I wanted to tell her how my stomach burned acidic holes at the thought of speaking in class, speaking in an accent, speaking out of turn, 35 how I was tearing, splitting myself apart with the slow-simmering guilt of being happy despite it all. I said, School’s fi ne. We snapped beans into the silver bowl between us 40 and when a hickory leaf, still summer green, skidded onto the porchfront,

hayden / those winter sundays 345

Grandma said, It’s funny how things blow loose like that.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the speaker’s feelings about starting a life at college. How do those feelings compare with your own experiences?

2. How does the grandmother’s world differ from the speaker’s at school? What details especially reveal those differences?

3. Discuss the signifi cance of the grandmother’s response to the hick- ory leaf in line 44. How do you read the last line?

The next poem creates a different kind of mood. Think about the title, “Those Winter Sundays,” before you begin reading the poem. What associations do you have with winter Sundays? What emotions does the phrase evoke in you?

Robert Hayden (1913–1980)

Those Winter Sundays 1962

Sundays too my father got up early and put his clothes on in the blueblack cold, then with cracked hands that ached from labor in the weekday weather made banked fi res blaze. No one ever thanked him. 5

I’d wake and hear the cold splintering, breaking. When the rooms were warm, he’d call, and slowly I would rise and dress, fearing the chronic angers of that house,

Speaking indifferently to him, 10 who had driven out the cold and polished my good shoes as well. What did I know, what did I know of love’s austere and lonely offi ces?

Does the poem match the feelings you have about winter Sundays? Either way, your response can be useful in reading the poem. For most of us, Sundays are days at home; they might be cozy and pleasant experiences or they might be dull and depressing. Whatever they are, Sundays are more evocative than, say, Tuesdays. Hayden uses that response to call forth a sense of missed opportunity in the poem. The person who refl ects on those win- ter Sundays didn’t know until much later how much he had to thank his father for “love’s austere and lonely offi ces.” This is a poem about a cold past and a present reverence for his father — elements brought together by the phrase “Winter Sundays.” His father? You may have noticed that the poem doesn’t use a masculine pronoun; hence the voice could be a woman’s. Does

the gender of the voice make any difference to your reading? Would it make any difference about which details are included or what language is used? What is most important about your initial readings of a poem is that you ask questions. If you read responsively, you’ll fi nd yourself asking all kinds of questions about the words, descriptions, sounds, and structure of a poem. The specifi cs of those questions will be generated by the particular poem. We don’t, for example, ask how humor is achieved in “Those Winter Sundays” because there is none, but it is worth asking what kind of tone is established by the description of “the chronic angers of that house.” The remaining chapters in this part of the book will help you to formulate and answer ques- tions about a variety of specifi c elements in poetry, such as speaker, image, metaphor, symbol, rhyme, and rhythm. For the moment, however, read the following poem several times and note your response at different points in the poem. Then write down a half-dozen or so questions about what pro- duces your response to the poem. To answer questions, it’s best to know fi rst what the questions are, and that’s what the rest of this chapter is about.

John Updike (1932–2009)

Dog’s Death 1969

She must have been kicked unseen or brushed by a car. Too young to know much, she was beginning to learn To use the newspapers spread on the kitchen fl oor And to win, wetting there, the words, “Good dog! Good dog!”

We thought her shy malaise was a shot reaction. 5 The autopsy disclosed a rupture in her liver. As we teased her with play, blood was fi lling her skin And her heart was learning to lie down forever.

Monday morning, as the children were noisily fed And sent to school, she crawled beneath the youngest’s bed. 10 We found her twisted and limp but still alive. In the car to the vet’s, on my lap, she tried

To bite my hand and died. I stroked her warm fur And my wife called in a voice imperious with tears. Though surrounded by love that would have upheld her, 15 Nevertheless she sank and, stiffening, disappeared.

Back home, we found that in the night her frame, Drawing near to dissolution, had endured the shame Of diarrhoea and had dragged across the fl oor To a newspaper carelessly left there. Good dog. 20

Here’s a simple question to get started with your own questions: What would the poem’s effect have been if Updike had titled it “Good Dog” instead of “Dog’s Death”?

346 reading poetry

the pleasure of words 347

THE PLEASURE OF WORDS The impulse to create and appreciate poetry is as basic to human experi- ence as language itself. Although no one can point to the precise origins of poetry, it is one of the most ancient of the arts, because it has existed ever since human beings discovered pleasure in language. The tribal ceremo- nies of peoples without written languages suggest that the earliest primi- tive cultures incorporated rhythmic patterns of words into their rituals. These chants, very likely accompanied by the music of a simple beat and the dance of a measured step, expressed what people regarded as signifi - cant and memorable in their lives. They echoed the concerns of the chant- ers and the listeners by chronicling acts of bravery, fearsome foes, natural disasters, mysterious events, births, deaths, and whatever else brought people pain or pleasure, bewilderment or revelation. Later cultures, such as the ancient Greeks, made poetry an integral part of religion. Thus, from its very beginnings, poetry has been associated with what has mattered most to people. These concerns — whether natural or super- natural — can, of course, be expressed without vivid images, rhythmic pat- terns, and pleasing sounds, but human beings have always sensed a magic in words that goes beyond rational, logical understanding. Poetry is not simply a method of communication; it is a unique experience in itself. What is special about poetry? What makes it valuable? Why should we read it? How is reading it different from reading prose? To begin with, poetry pervades our world in a variety of forms, ranging from advertising jingles to song lyrics. These may seem to be a long way from the chants heard around a primitive campfi re, but they serve some of the same purposes. Like poems printed in a magazine or book, primitive chants, catchy jingles, and popular songs attempt to stir the imagination through the carefully measured use of words. Although reading poetry usually makes more demands than does the kind of reading we use to skim a magazine or newspaper, the appre- ciation of poetry comes naturally enough to anyone who enjoys playing with words. Play is an important element of poetry. Consider, for example, how the following words appeal to the children who gleefully chant them in playgrounds:

I scream, you scream We all scream For ice cream.

These lines are an exuberant evocation of the joy of ice cream. Indeed, chanting the words turns out to be as pleasurable as eating ice cream. In poetry, the expression of the idea is as important as the idea expressed. But is “I scream . . .” poetry? Some poets and literary critics would say that it certainly is one kind of poem because the children who chant it experience some of the pleasures of poetry in its measured beat and repeated sounds. However, other poets and critics would defi ne poetry more narrowly and insist, for a variety of reasons, that this isn’t true

348 reading poetry

poetry but merely doggerel, a term used for lines whose subject matter is trite and whose rhythm and sounds are monotonously heavy-handed. Although probably no one would argue that “I scream . . .” is a great poem, it does contain some poetic elements that appeal, at the very least, to children. Does that make it poetry? The answer depends on one’s defi - nition, but poetry has a way of breaking loose from defi nitions. Because there are nearly as many defi nitions of poetry as there are poets, Edwin Arlington Robinson’s succinct observations are useful: “Poetry has two outstanding characteristics. One is that it is undefi nable. The other is that it is eventually unmistakable.” This comment places more emphasis on how a poem affects a reader than on how a poem is defi ned. By characterizing poetry as “undefi nable,” Robin- son acknowledges that it can include many different purposes, subjects, emo- tions, styles, and forms. What effect does the following poem have on you?

William Hathaway (b. 1944)

Oh, Oh 1982

My girl and I amble a country lane, moo cows chomping daisies, our own sweet saliva green with grass stems. “Look, look,” she says at the crossing, “the choo-choo’s light is on.” And sure enough, right smack dab in the middle of maple dappled summer sunlight is the lit headlight — so funny. An arm waves to us from the black window. We wave gaily to the arm. “When I hear trains at night I dream of being president,” I say dreamily. “And me fi rst lady,” she says loyally. So when the last boxcars, named after wonderful, faraway places, and the caboose chuckle by we look 15 eagerly to the road ahead. And there, poised and growling, are fi fty Hell’s Angels.

A SAMPLE CLOSE READING An Annotated Version of “Oh, Oh”

After you’ve read a poem two or three times, a deeper, closer reading — line by line, word by word, syllable by syllable — will help you discover even more about the poem. Ask yourself: What happens (or does not happen) in the poem? What are the poem’s central ideas? How do the

© William Hathaway.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... hathaway / oh, oh 349

poem’s words, images, and sounds, for example, contribute to its mean- ing? What is the poem’s overall tone? How is the poem put together? You can fl esh out your close reading by writing your responses in the margins of the page. The following interpretive notes offer but one way to read Hathaway’s poem.

William Hathaway (b. 1944)

Oh, Oh 1982

My girl and I amble a country lane, moo cows chomping daisies, our own sweet saliva green with grass stems. “Look, look,” she says at the crossing, “the choo-choo’s light is on.” And sure 5 enough, right smack dab in the middle of maple dappled summer sunlight is the lit headlight — so funny. An arm waves to us from the black window. We wave gaily to the arm. “When I hear 10 trains at night I dream of being president,” I say dreamily. “And me fi rst lady,” she says loyally. So when the last boxcars, named after wonderful, faraway places, and the caboose chuckle by we look 15 eagerly to the road ahead. And there, poised and growling, are fi fty Hell’s Angels.

WEB

more help with close reading Close readings of Andrew Marvell’s “ To His Coy Mistress,” Elizabeth Bishop’s “ The Fish,” and Theodore Roethke’s “My Papa’s Waltz” are available at Re:Writing for Literature (www. bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit). Each poem is annotated with critical interpretations and explanations of the literary elements at work.

The title offers an interjection expressing strong emotion and foreboding. The visual effect of the

many os in lines 1–5 (and 15) suggests an innocent, wide-eyed openness to experience while the repetitive oo sounds echo a kind of reassuring, satisfi ed cooing. “Right smack dab in the middle” of the poem, the “black window” hints that all is not well.

Not until the very last line does “the road ahead” yield a terrifying surprise. The strategically “poised” fi nal line derails the leisurely movement of the couple and brings their happy story to a dead stop. The emotional reversal parked in the last few words awaits the reader as much as it does the couple. The sight and sound of the motorcycle gang signal that what seemed like heaven is, in reality, hell: Oh, oh.

The informal language conjures up an idyllic picture of a walk in the country, where the sights, sounds, and tastes are full of pleasure.

The carefully orchestrated ds, ms, ps, and ss of lines 6–8 create sounds that are meant to be savored.

Filled with confi dence and hope, the couple imagines a successful future together in exotic locations. Even the train is happy for them as it “chuckle[s]” in approval of their dreams.

350 reading poetry

Hathaway’s poem serves as a convenient reminder that poetry can be full of surprises. Full of confi dence, this couple, like the reader, is unpre- pared for the shock to come. When we see those “fi fty Hell’s Angels,” we are confronted with something like a bucket of cold water in the face. But even though our expectations are abruptly and powerfully reversed, we are fi nally invited to view the entire episode from a safe distance — the distance provided by the delightful humor in this poem. After all, how seriously can we take a poem that is titled “Oh, Oh”? The poet has his way with us, but we are brought in on the joke, too. The terror takes on comic proportions as the innocent couple is con- fronted by no fewer than fi fty Hell’s Angels. This is the kind of rau- cous overkill that informs a short animated fi lm produced some years ago titled Bambi Meets Godzilla: You might not have seen it, but you know how it ends. The poem’s good humor comes through when we realize how pathetically inadequate the response of “Oh, Oh” is to the circumstances. As you can see, reading a description of what happens in a poem is not the same as experiencing a poem. The exuberance of “I scream . . .” and the surprise of Hathaway’s “Oh, Oh” are in the hearing or reading rather than in the retelling. A paraphrase is a prose restatement of the central ideas of a poem in your own language. Consider the difference between the following poem and the paraphrase that follows it. What is missing from the paraphrase?

Robert Francis (1901–1987)

Catch 1950

Two boys uncoached are tossing a poem together, Overhand, underhand, backhand, sleight of hand, every hand, Teasing with attitudes, latitudes, interludes, altitudes, High, make him fl y off the ground for it, low, make him stoop, Make him scoop it up, make him as-almost-as-possible miss it, 5 Fast, let him sting from it, now, now fool him slowly, Anything, everything tricky, risky, nonchalant, Anything under the sun to outwit the prosy, Over the tree and the long sweet cadence down, Over his head, make him scramble to pick up the meaning, 10 And now, like a posy, a pretty one plump in his hands.

Paraphrase: A poet’s relationship to a reader is similar to a game of catch. The poem, like a ball, should be pitched in a variety of ways to challenge and create interest. Boredom and predictability must be avoided if the game is to be engaging and satisfying.

a sample student analysis 351

A paraphrase can help us achieve a clearer understanding of a poem, but, unlike a poem, it misses all of the sport and fun. It is the poem that “outwit[s] the prosy ” because the poem serves as an example of what it suggests poetry should be. Moreover, the two players — the poet and the reader — are “uncoached.” They know how the game is played, but their expectations do not preclude spontaneity and creativity or their ability to surprise and be surprised. The solid pleasure of the workout — of read- ing poetry — is the satisfaction derived from exercising your imagination and intellect. Perhaps the best way to approach a poem is similar to what Francis’s “Catch” implies: Expect to be surprised, stay on your toes, and concentrate on the delivery.

A SAMPLE STUDENT ANALYSIS Tossing Metaphors Together in Robert Francis’s “Catch”

The following sample paper on Robert Francis’s “Catch” was written in response to an assignment that asked students to discuss the use of met- aphor in the poem. Notice that Chris Leggett’s paper is clearly focused and well organized. His discussion of the use of metaphor in the poem stays on track from beginning to end without any detours concerning unrelated topics (for a defi nition of metaphor, see p. 415). His title draws on the central metaphor of the poem, and he organizes the paper around four key words used in the poem: “attitudes, latitudes, interludes, alti- tudes.” These constitute the heart of the paper’s four substantive para- graphs, and they are effectively framed by introductory and concluding paragraphs. Moreover, the transitions between paragraphs clearly indi- cate that the author was not merely tossing a paper together.

352 reading poetry

Leggett 1

Chris Leggett

Professor Lyles

English 203-1

November 9, 2010

Tossing Metaphors Together in Robert Francis’s “Catch”

The word “catch” is an attention getter. It usually means something

is about to be hurled at someone and that he or she is expected to catch

it. “Catch” can also signal a challenge to another player if the toss is

purposefully difficult. Robert Francis, in his poem “Catch,” uses the extended

metaphor of two boys playing catch to explore the considerations a poet

makes when “tossing a poem together” (line 1). Line 3 of “Catch” enumerates

these considerations metaphorically as “attitudes, latitudes, interludes,

[and] altitudes.” While regular prose is typically straightforward and easily

understood, poetry usually takes great effort to understand and appreciate. To

exemplify this, Francis presents the reader not with a normal game of catch with

the ball flying back and forth in a repetitive and predictable fashion, but with

a physically challenging game in which one must concentrate, scramble, and

exert oneself to catch the ball, as one must stretch the intellect to truly grasp a

poem.

The first consideration mentioned by Francis is attitude. Attitude, when

applied to the game of catch, indicates the ball’s pitch in flight—upward,

downward, or straight. It could also describe the players’ attitudes toward

each other or toward the game in general. Below this literal level lies

attitude’s meaning in relation to poetry. Attitude in this case represents a

poem’s tone. A poet may “teas[e] with attitude” (3) by experimenting with

different tones to achieve the desired mood. The underlying tone of “Catch”

is a playful one, set and reinforced by the use of a game. This playfulness is

further reinforced by such words and phrases as “teasing” (3), “outwit” (8),

and “fool him” (6).

Considered also in the metaphorical game of catch is latitude, which,

when applied to the game, suggests the range the object may be thrown—how

high, how low, or how far. Poetic latitude, along similar lines, concerns a

poem’s breadth, or the scope of topic. Taken one level further, latitude suggests

freedom from normal restraints or limitations, indicating the ability to

Exploration of the meaning of the word catch.

Thesis statement identifying purpose of poem’s metaphors.

Reference to specifi c language in poem, around which the paper is organized.

Introductory analysis of the poem’s purpose.

Analysis of the meaning of attitude in the poem.

Discussion of how the attitude metaphor contributes to poem’s tone.

Analysis of the meaning of latitude in the poem.

a sample student analysis 353

Leggett 2

go outside the norm to find originality of expression. The entire game of

catch described in Francis’s poem reaches outside the normal expectations of

something being merely tossed back and forth in a predictable manner. The ball

is thrown in almost every conceivable fashion, “overhand, underhand . . . every

hand” (2). Other terms describing the throws—such as “tricky,” “risky,” “fast,”

“slowly,” and “Anything under the sun”(6-8)—express endless latitude for

avoiding predictability in Francis’s game of catch and metaphorically in writing

poetry.

During a game of catch the ball may be thrown at different intervals,

establishing a steady rhythm or a broken, irregular one. Other intervening

features, such as the field being played on or the weather, could also affect the

game. These features of the game are alluded to in the poem by the use of the

word “interludes.” “Interlude” in the poetic sense represents the poem’s form,

which can similarly establish or diminish rhythm or enhance meaning. Lines 6

and 9, respectively, show a broken and a flowing rhythm. Line 6 begins rapidly

as a hard toss that stings the catcher’s hand is described. The rhythm of the

line is immediately slowed, however, by the word “now” followed by a comma,

followed by the rest of the line. In contrast, line 9 flows smoothly as the

reader visualizes the ball flying over the tree and sailing downward. The words

chosen for this line function perfectly. The phrase “the long sweet cadence

down” establishes a sweet rhythm that reads smoothly and rolls off the tongue

easily. The choice of diction not only affects the poem’s rhythmic flow but also

establishes through connotative language the various levels at which the poem

can be understood, represented in “Catch” as altitude.

While “altitudes” when referring to the game of catch means how high an

object is thrown, in poetry it could refer to the level of diction, lofty or down-

to-earth, formal or informal. It suggests also the levels at which a poem can be

comprehended, the literal as well as the interpretive. In Francis’s game of catch,

the ball is thrown high to make the player reach, low to “make him stoop” (4),

or “over his head [to] make him scramble” (10), implying that the player should

have to exert himself to catch it. So too, then, should the reader of poetry put

great effort into understanding the full meaning of a poem. Francis exemplifies

this consideration in writing poetry by giving “Catch” not only an enjoyable

literal meaning concerning the game of catch, but also a rich metaphorical

Discussion of how the latitude metaphor contributes to the poem’s scope and message.

Analysis of the meaning of interlude in the poem.

Discussion of how the interlude metaphor contributes to the poem’s form and rhythm.

Analysis of the meaning of altitudes in the poem.

354 reading poetry

Leggett 4

Work Cited

Francis, Robert. “Catch.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston: Bedford/

St. Martin’s, 2011. 350. Print.

Leggett 3

meaning—reflecting the process of writing poetry. Francis uses several phrases

and words with multiple meanings. The phrase “tossing a poem together”

(1) can be understood as toss ing something back and forth or the process of

constructing a poem. While “prosy” (8) suggests prose itself, it also means the

mundane or the ordinary. In the poem’s final line the word “posy” of course

represents a flower, while it is also a variant of the word “poesy,” meaning

poetry, or the practice of composing poetry.

Francis effectively describes several considerations to be taken in writing

poetry in order to “outwit the prosy” (8). His use of the extended metaphor

in “Catch” shows that a poem must be unique, able to be comprehended on

multiple levels, and a challenge to the reader. The various rhythms in the lines

of “Catch” exemplify the ideas they express. While achieving an enjoyable poem

on the literal level, Francis has also achieved a rich metaphorical meaning. The

poem offers a good workout both physically and intellectually.

Discussion of how the altitude metaphor contributes to the poem’s literal and symbolic meanings, with referen- ces to specifi c language.

Conclusion summarizing ideas explored in paper.

bishop / the fish 355

Before beginning your own writing assignment on poetry, you should review Chapter 30, “Writing about Poetry,” and Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process,” which provides a step-by-step overview of how to choose a topic, develop a thesis, and organize various types of writing assignments. If you are using outside sources in your paper, you should make sure that you are familiar with the conventional documentation procedures described in Chapter 32, “The Literary Research Paper.”

Poets often remind us that beauty can be found in unexpected places. What is it that Elizabeth Bishop fi nds so beautiful about the “battered” fi sh she describes in the following poem?

Elizabeth Bishop (1911–1979)

The Fish 1946

I caught a tremendous fi sh and held him beside the boat half out of water, with my hook fast in a corner of his mouth. He didn’t fi ght. 5 He hadn’t fought at all. He hung a grunting weight, battered and venerable and homely. Here and there his brown skin hung in strips 10 like ancient wall-paper, and its pattern of darker brown was like wall-paper: shapes like full-blown roses stained and lost through age. 15 He was speckled with barnacles, fi ne rosettes of lime, and infested with tiny white sea-lice, and underneath two or three 20 rags of green weed hung down. While his gills were breathing in the terrible oxygen — the frightening gills, fresh and crisp with blood, 25 that can cut so badly — I thought of the coarse white fl esh packed in like feathers, the big bones and the little bones,

WEB Explore contexts for Elizabeth Bishop and approaches to this poem at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

the dramatic reds and blacks 30 of his shiny entrails, and the pink swim-bladder like a big peony. I looked into his eyes which were far larger than mine 35 but shallower, and yellowed, the irises backed and packed with tarnished tinfoil seen through the lenses of old scratched isinglass. 40 They shifted a little, but not to return my stare. — It was more like the tipping of an object toward the light. I admired his sullen face, 45 the mechanism of his jaw, and then I saw that from his lower lip — if you could call it a lip — grim, wet, and weapon-like, 50 hung fi ve old pieces of fi sh-line, or four and a wire leader with the swivel still attached, with all their fi ve big hooks grown fi rmly in his mouth. 55 A green line, frayed at the end where he broke it, two heavier lines, and a fi ne black thread still crimped from the strain and snap when it broke and he got away. 60 Like medals with their ribbons frayed and wavering, a fi ve-haired beard of wisdom trailing from his aching jaw. I stared and stared 65 and victory fi lled up the little rented boat, from the pool of bilge where oil had spread a rainbow around the rusted engine 70 to the bailer rusted orange, the sun-cracked thwarts, the oarlocks on their strings, the gunnels — until everything was rainbow, rainbow, rainbow! 75 And I let the fi sh go.

356 reading poetry

larkin / a study of reading habits 357

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Which lines in this poem provide especially vivid details of the fi sh? What makes these descriptions effective?

2. How is the fi sh characterized? Is it simply a weak victim because it “didn’t fi ght” (line 5)?

3. Comment on lines 65–76. In what sense has “victory fi lled up” the boat (66), given that the speaker fi nally lets the fi sh go?

The speaker in Bishop’s “The Fish” ends on a triumphantly joy- ful note. The speaker is the voice used by the author in the poem; like the narrator in a work of fi ction, the speaker is often a created identity rather than the author’s actual self. The two should not automatically be equated. Contrast the attitude toward life of the speaker in “The Fish” with that of the speaker in the following poem.

Philip Larkin (1922–1985)

A Study of Reading Habits 1964

When getting my nose in a book Cured most things short of school, It was worth ruining my eyes To know I could still keep cool, And deal out the old right hook 5 To dirty dogs twice my size.

Later, with inch-thick specs, Evil was just my lark: Me and my cloak and fangs Had ripping times in the dark. 10 The women I clubbed with sex! I broke them up like meringues.

Don’t read much now: the dude Who lets the girl down before The hero arrives, the chap 15 Who’s yellow and keeps the store, Seem far too familiar. Get stewed: Books are a load of crap.

What the speaker sees and describes in “The Fish” is close if not identi- cal to Bishop’s own vision and voice. The joyful response to the fi sh is clearly shared by the speaker and the poet, between whom there is little or no dis- tance. In “A Study of Reading Habits,” however, Larkin distances himself from a speaker whose sensibilities he does not wholly share. The poet — and many readers — might identify with the reading habits described by the speaker in the fi rst twelve lines, but Larkin uses the last six lines to criticize

358 reading poetry

the speaker’s attitude toward life as well as reading. The speaker recalls in lines 1–6 how as a schoolboy he identifi ed with the hero, whose virtuous strength always triumphed over “dirty dogs,” and in lines 7–12 he recounts how his schoolboy fantasies were transformed by adolescence into a fasci- nation with violence and sex. This description of early reading habits is pleasantly amusing, because many readers of popular fi ction will probably recall having moved through similar stages, but at the end of the poem the speaker provides more information about himself than he intends to. As an adult the speaker has lost interest in reading because it is no longer an escape from his own disappointed life. Instead of identifying with heroes or villains, he fi nds himself identifying with minor characters who are irresponsible and cowardly. Reading is now a reminder of his fail- ures, so he turns to alcohol. His solution, to “Get stewed” because “Books are a load of crap,” is obviously self-destructive. The speaker is ultimately exposed by Larkin as someone who never grew beyond fantasies. Getting drunk is consistent with the speaker’s immature reading habits. Unlike the speaker, the poet understands that life is often distorted by escapist fantasies, whether through a steady diet of popular fi ction or through alcohol. The speaker in this poem, then, is not Larkin but a created iden- tity whose voice is fi lled with disillusionment and delusion. The problem with Larkin’s speaker is that he misreads books as well as his own life. Reading means nothing to him unless it serves as an escape from himself. It is not surprising that Larkin has him read fi ction rather than poetry because poetry places an especially heavy emphasis on language. Fic- tion, indeed any kind of writing, including essays and drama, relies on care- fully chosen and arranged words, but poetry does so to an even greater extent. Notice, for example, how Larkin’s deft use of trite expressions and slang char- acterizes the speaker so that his language reveals nearly as much about his dreary life as what he says. Larkin’s speaker would have no use for poetry. Here is a poem that looks quite different from most verse, a term used for lines composed in a measured rhythmical pattern, which are often, but not necessarily, rhymed.

Robert Morgan (b. 1944)

Mountain Graveyard 1979

for the author of “Slow Owls”

Spore Prose

stone notes slate tales sacred cedars heart earth asleep please hated death

cummings / l(a 359

Though unconventional in its appearance, this is unmistakably poetry because of its concentrated use of language. The poem demonstrates how serious play with words can lead to some remarkable discoveries. At fi rst glance “Mountain Graveyard” may seem intimidating. What, after all, does this list of words add up to? How is it in any sense a poetic use of language? But if the words are examined closely, it is not diffi cult to see how they work. The wordplay here is literally in the form of a game. Morgan uses a series of anagrams (words made from the letters of other words, such as read and dare) to evoke feelings about death. “Mountain Graveyard” is one of several poems that Morgan has called “Spore Prose” (another anagram) because he fi nds in individual words the seeds of poetry. He wrote the poem in honor of the fi ftieth birthday of another poet, Jonathan Williams, the author of “Slow Owls,” whose title is also an anagram. The title, “Mountain Graveyard,” indicates the poem’s setting, which is also the context in which the individual words in the poem interact to provide a larger meaning. Morgan’s discovery of the words on the stones of a graveyard is more than just clever. The observations he makes among the silent graves go beyond the curious pleasure a reader experiences in fi nding that the words sacred cedars, referring to evergreens common in cemeteries, consist of the same letters. The surprise and delight of realizing the connection between heart and earth are tempered by the more sober recognition that everyone’s story ultimately ends in the ground. The hope that the dead are merely asleep is expressed with a plea that is answered grimly by a hatred of death’s fi nality. The following poem also involves a startling discovery about words. With the peculiar title “l(a,” the poem cannot be read aloud, so there is no sound, but is there sense, a theme — a central idea or meaning — in the poem?

E. E. Cummings (1894–1962)

l(a 1958

l(a

le af fa

ll

s) one l

iness © Bettmann/corbis.

360 reading poetry

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss the connection between what appears inside and outside the parentheses in this poem.

2. What does Cummings draw attention to by breaking up the words? How do this strategy and the poem’s overall shape contribute to its theme?

3. Which seems more important in this poem — what is expressed or the way it is expressed?

Although “Mountain Graveyard” and “l(a” do not resemble the kind of verse that readers might recognize immediately as poetry on a page, both are actually a very common type of poem, called the lyric, usually a brief poem that expresses the personal emotions and thoughts of a single speaker. Lyrics are often written in the fi rst person, but sometimes — as in “Mountain Graveyard” and “l(a” — no speaker is specifi ed. Lyrics present a subjective mood, emotion, or idea. Very often they are about love or death, but almost any subject or experience that evokes some intense emotional response can be found in lyrics. In addition to brevity and emotional intensity, lyrics are also frequently characterized by their musical qualities. The word lyric derives from the Greek word lyre, meaning a musical instrument that originally accompanied the singing of a lyric. Lyric poems can be organized in a variety of ways, such as the sonnet, elegy, and ode (see Chapter 18), but it is enough to point out here that lyrics are an extremely popular kind of poetry with writers and readers. The following anonymous lyric was found in a sixteenth-century manuscript.

Anonymous

Western Wind c. 1500

Western wind, when wilt thou blow, The small rain down can rain? Christ, if my love were in my arms, And I in my bed again!

This speaker’s intense longing for his lover is characteristic of lyric poetry. He impatiently addresses the western wind that brings spring to England and could make it possible for him to be reunited with the woman he loves. We do not know the details of these lovers’ lives because this poem focuses on the speaker’s emotion. We do not learn why the lovers are apart or if they will be together again. We don’t even know if the speaker is a man. But those issues are not really important. The poem gives us a feeling rather than a story.

barreca / nighttime fires 361

A poem that tells a story is called a narrative poem. Narrative poetry may be short or very long. An epic, for example, is a long narrative poem on a serious subject chronicling heroic deeds and important events. Among the most famous epics are Homer’s Iliad and Odyssey, the Old English Beowulf, Dante’s Divine Comedy, and John Milton’s Paradise Lost. More typically, however, narrative poems are considerably shorter, as is the case with the following poem, which tells the story of a child’s mem- ory of her father.

Regina Barreca (b. 1957)

Nighttime Fires 1986

When I was fi ve in Louisville we drove to see nighttime fi res. Piled

seven of us, all pajamas and running noses, into the

Olds, drove fast toward smoke. It was after my

father lost his job, so not getting up in the

morning gave him time: awake past midnight, he read old newspapers with no news, tried crosswords until he split the pencil between his teeth, mad. When he heard the wolf whine of the siren, he woke my mother, and she pushed and shoved 10 us all into waking. Once roused we longed for burnt wood and a smell of fl ames high into the pines. My old man liked driving to rich neighborhoods best, swearing in a good mood as he followed fi re engines that snaked like dragons and split the silent streets. It was festival, carnival. 15

If there were a Cadillac or any car in a curved driveway, my father smiled a smile from a secret, brittle heart. His face lit up in the heat given off by destruction like something was being made, or was being set right. 20 I bent my head back to see where sparks ate up the sky. My father who never held us would take my hand and point to falling cinders that covered the ground like snow, or, excited, show us the swollen collapse of a staircase. My mother 25 watched my father, not the house. She was happy only when we were ready to go, when it was fi nally over

Courtesy of Robert Benson, © 2004.

362 reading poetry

and nothing else could burn. Driving home, she would sleep in the front seat as we huddled behind. I could see his quiet face in the 30 rearview mirror, eyes like hallways fi lled with smoke.

This narrative poem could have been a short story if the poet had wanted to say more about the “brittle heart” of this unemployed man whose daughter so vividly remembers the desperate pleasure he took in watching fi re consume other people’s property. Indeed, a reading of Wil liam Faulkner’s famous short story “Barn Burning” suggests how such a character can be further developed and how his child responds to him. The similarities between Faulkner’s angry character and the poem’s father, whose “eyes [are] like hallways fi lled with smoke,” are coinciden- tal, but the characters’ sense of “something . . . being set right” by fl ames is worth comparing. Although we do not know everything about this man and his family, we have a much fi rmer sense of their story than we do of the story of the couple in “Western Wind.” Although narrative poetry is still written, short stories and novels have largely replaced the long narrative poem. Lyric poems tend to be the pre- dominant type of poetry today. Regardless of whether a poem is a narrative or a lyric, however, the strategies for reading it are somewhat different from those for reading prose. Try these suggestions for approaching poetry.

1. Assume that it will be necessary to read a poem more than once. Give yourself a chance to become familiar with what the poem has to offer. Like a piece of music, a poem becomes more pleasurable with each encounter.

2. Pay attention to the title; it will often provide a helpful context for the poem and serve as an introduction to it. Larkin’s “A Study of Reading Habits” is precisely what its title describes.

3. As you read the poem for the fi rst time, avoid becoming en- tangled in words or lines that you don’t understand. Instead, give yourself a chance to take in the entire poem before attempting to resolve problems encountered along the way.

4. On a second reading, identify any words or passages that you don’t understand. Look up words you don’t know; these might include names, places, historical and mythical references, or anything else that is unfamiliar to you.

5. Read the poem aloud (or perhaps have a friend read it to you). You’ll probably discover that some puzzling passages suddenly fall into place when you hear them. You’ll fi nd that nothing helps, though, if the poem is read in an artifi cial, exaggerated manner. Read in as natural a voice as possible, with slight

Suggestions for Approaching Poetry

suggestions for approaching poetry 363

These strategies should be a useful means for getting inside poems to understand how they work. Furthermore, because reading poetry inevitably increases sensitivity to language, you’re likely to fi nd yourself a better reader of words in any form — whether in a novel, a newspaper editorial, an advertisement, a political speech, or a conversation — after having studied poetry. In short, many of the reading skills that make poetry accessible also open up the world you inhabit.

pauses at line breaks. Silent reading is preferable to imposing a te-tumpty-te-tum reading on a good poem.

6. Read the punctuation. Poems use punctuation marks — in addi- tion to the space on the page — as signals for readers. Be espe- cially careful not to assume that the end of a line marks the end of a sentence, unless it is concluded by punctuation. Consider, for example, the opening lines of Hathaway’s “Oh, Oh”:

My girl and I amble a country lane, moo cows chomping daisies, our own sweet saliva green with grass stems.

Line 2 makes little or no sense if a reader stops after “own.” Keeping track of the subjects and verbs will help you fi nd your way among the sentences.

7. Paraphrase the poem to determine whether you understand what happens in it. As you work through each line of the poem, a paraphrase will help you to see which words or pas- sages need further attention.

8. Try to get a sense of who is speaking and what the setting or situation is. Don’t assume that the speaker is the author; often it is a created character.

9. Assume that each element in the poem has a purpose. Try to explain how the elements of the poem work together.

10. Be generous. Be willing to entertain perspectives, values, expe- riences, and subjects that you might not agree with or approve of. Even if baseball bores you, you should be able to compre- hend its imaginative use in Francis’s “Catch.”

11. Don’t expect to produce a defi nitive reading. Many poems do not resolve all of the ideas, issues, or tensions in them, and so it is not always possible to drive their meaning into an abso- lute corner. Your reading will explore rather than defi ne the poem. Poems are not trophies to be stuffed and mounted. They’re usually more elusive. And don’t be afraid that a close reading will damage the poem. Poems aren’t hurt when we analyze them; instead, they come alive as we experience them and put into words what we discover through them.

364 reading poetry

Billy Collins (b. 1941)

Introduction to Poetry 1988

I ask them to take a poem and hold it up to the light like a color slide

or press an ear against its hive.

I say drop a mouse into a poem 5 and watch him probe his way out,

or walk inside the poem’s room and feel the walls for a light switch.

I want them to water-ski across the surface of a poem 10 waving at the author’s name on the shore.

But all they want to do is tie the poem to a chair with rope and torture a confession out of it.

They begin beating it with a hose 15 to fi nd out what it really means.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. In what sense does this poem offer suggestions for approaching poetry? What kinds of advice does the speaker provide in lines 1–11?

2. How does the mood of the poem change beginning in line 12? What do you make of the shift from “them” to “they”?

3. Paraphrase the poem. How is your paraphrase different from what is included in the poem?

POETRY IN POPUL AR FORMS Before you try out these strategies for reading on a few more poems, it is worth acknowledging that the verse that enjoys the widest readership appears not in collections, magazines, or even anthologies for students, but in greeting cards. A signifi cant amount of the personal daily mail delivered in the United States consists of greeting cards. That represents millions of lines of verse going by us on the street and in planes over our heads. These verses share some similarities with the poetry included in this anthology, but there are also important differences that indicate the need for reading serious poetry closely rather than casually.

poetry in popular forms 365

The popularity of greeting cards is easy to explain: Just as many of us have neither the time nor the talent to make gifts for birthdays, wed- dings, anniversaries, graduations, Valentine’s Day, Mother’s Day, and other holidays, we are unlikely to write personal messages when cards conveniently say them for us. Although impersonal, cards are effi cient and convey an important message no matter what the occasion for them: I care. These greetings are rarely serious poetry; they are not written to be. Nevertheless, they demonstrate the impulse in our culture to gener- ate and receive poetry. In a handbook for greeting-card freelancers, a writer and past editor of such verse began with this advice:

Once you determine what you want to say — and in this regard it is best to stick to one basic idea — you must choose your words to do several things at the same time:

1. Your idea must be expressed as a complete idea; it must have a beginning, a middle, and an end.

2. There must be coherence in your verse. Every line must be linked logically and smoothly with its neighbors.

3. Your expressions . . . must be conversational. High-fl own language rarely comes off successfully in greeting-card writing.

4. You must write with emphasis — and something else: enthusiasm. It’s necessary to create interest in that all-important fi rst line. From that point on, writing your verse is a matter of developing your idea and bringing it to a peak of emphasis in the last line. Occasionally you will fi nd that you have shot your wad too early in the verse, and whatever you say after that point sounds like an afterthought.

5. You must do all of the above and at the same time make everything come out right in the meter-and-rhyme department.1

This advice is followed by a list of approximately fi fty of the most frequently used rhyme sounds accompanied by rhyming words, such as love, of, above for the sound uv. The point of these prescriptions is that the verse must be written so that it is immediately accessible — consum- able — by both the buyer and the recipient. Writers of these cards are expected to avoid any complexity. Compare the following greeting-card verse with the poem that comes after it. “Magic of Love,” by Helen Farries, has been a longtime favorite in a major greeting-card company’s “wedding line”; with different endings it has been used also in valentines and friendship cards.

1 Chris Fitzgerald, “Conventional Verse: The Sentimental Favorite,” The Greeting Card Writer’s Handbook, ed. H. Joseph Chadwick (Cincinnati: Writer’s Digest, 1975), 13, 17.

366 reading poetry

Helen Farries (1918–2008)

Magic of Love date unknown

There’s a wonderful gift that can give you a lift, It’s a blessing from heaven above! It can comfort and bless, it can bring happiness — It’s the wonderful MAGIC OF LOVE!

Like a star in the night, it can keep your faith bright, 5 Like the sun, it can warm your hearts, too — It’s a gift you can give every day that you live, And when given, it comes back to you!

When love lights the way, there is joy in the day And all troubles are lighter to bear, 10 Love is gentle and kind, and through love you will fi nd There’s an answer to your every prayer!

May it never depart from your two loving hearts, May you treasure this gift from above — You will fi nd if you do, all your dreams will come true, 15 In the wonderful MAGIC OF LOVE!

John Frederick Nims (1913–1999)

Love Poem 1947

My clumsiest dear, whose hands shipwreck vases, At whose quick touch all glasses chip and ring, Whose palms are bulls in china, burs in linen, And have no cunning with any soft thing

Except all ill-at-ease fi dgeting people: 5 The refugee uncertain at the door You make at home; deftly you steady The drunk clambering on his undulant fl oor.

Unpredictable dear, the taxi drivers’ terror, Shrinking from far headlights pale as a dime 10 Yet leaping before red apoplectic streetcars — Misfi t in any space. And never on time.

A wrench in clocks and the solar system. Only With words and people and love you move at ease. In traffi c of wit expertly maneuver 15 And keep us, all devotion, at your knees.

Forgetting your coffee spreading on our fl annel, Your lipstick grinning on our coat,

nims / love poem 367

So gaily in love’s unbreakable heaven Our souls on glory of spilt bourbon fl oat. 20

Be with me, darling, early and late. Smash glasses — I will study wry music for your sake. For should your hands drop white and empty All the toys of the world would break.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Read these two works aloud. How are they different? How the same?

2. To what extent does the advice to would-be greeting-card writers apply to each work?

3. Compare the two speakers. Which do you fi nd more appealing? Why?

4. How does Nims’s description of love differ from Farries’s?

In contrast to poetry, which transfi gures and expresses an emotion or experience through an original use of language, the verse in “Magic of Love” relies on clichés — ideas or expressions that have become tired and trite from overuse, such as describing love as “a blessing from heaven above.” Clichés anesthetize readers instead of alerting them to the possi bility of fresh perceptions. They are used to draw out stock responses — predictable, conventional reactions to language, characters, symbols, or situations; God, heaven, the fl ag, motherhood, hearts, pup- pies, and peace are some often-used objects of stock responses. Advertis- ers manufacture careers from this sort of business. Clichés and stock responses are two of the major ingredients of sen- timentality in literature. Sentimentality exploits the reader by inducing responses that exceed what the situation warrants. This pejorative term should not be confused with sentiment, which is synonymous with emo- tion or feeling. Sentimentality cons readers into falling for the mass mur- derer who is devoted to stray cats, and it requires that we not think twice about what we’re feeling because those tears shed for the little old lady, the rage aimed at the vicious enemy soldier, and the longing for the simple virtues of poverty might disappear under the slightest scrutiny. The experience of sentimentality is not unlike biting into a swirl of cotton candy; it’s momentarily sweet but wholly insubstantial. Clichés, stock responses, and sentimentality are generally the hall- marks of weak writing. Poetry — the kind that is unmistakable — achieves freshness, vitality, and genuine emotion that sharpen our perceptions of life. Although the most widely read verse is found in greeting cards, the most widely heard poetry appears in song lyrics. Not all songs are poetic,

368 reading poetry

but a good many share the same effects and qualities as poems. Consider these lyrics by Bruce Springsteen.

Bruce Springsteen (b. 1949)

You’re Missing 2002

Shirts in the closet, shoes in the hall Mama’s in the kitchen, baby and all Everything is everything Everything is everything But you’re missing 5

Coffee cups on the counter, jackets on the chair Papers on the doorstep, you’re not there Everything is everything Everything is everything But you’re missing 10

Pictures on the nightstand, TV’s on in the den Your house is waiting, your house is waiting For you to walk in, for you to walk in But you’re missing, you’re missing You’re missing when I shut out the lights 15 You’re missing when I close my eyes You’re missing when I see the sun rise You’re missing

Children are asking if it’s alright Will you be in our arms tonight? 20

Morning is morning, the evening falls I have Too much room in my bed, too many phone calls How’s everything, everything? Everything, everything You’re missing, you’re missing 25

God’s drifting in heaven, devil’s in the mailbox I got dust on my shoes, nothing but teardrops

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do the descriptions of home and the phrases that are repeated evoke a particular kind of mood in this song?

2. Explain whether you think this song can be accurately called a narra- tive poem. How would you describe its theme?

3. How does your experience of reading “You’re Missing” compare with listening to Springsteen singing the song (available on The Rising)?

ríos / seniors 369

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Alberto Ríos (b. 1952)

Seniors 1985

William cut a hole in his Levi’s pocket so he could fl op himself out in class behind the girls so the other guys could see and shit what guts we all said. All Konga wanted to do over and over 5 was the rubber band trick, but he showed everyone how, so nobody wanted to see anymore and one day he cried, just cried until his parents took him away forever. Maya had a Hotpoint refrigerator standing 10 in his living room, just for his family to show anybody who came that they could afford it.

Me, I got a French kiss, fi nally, in the catholic darkness, my tongue’s farthest half vacationing loudly in another mouth like a man in Bermudas, 15 and my body jumped against a fl agstone wall, I could feel it through her thin, almost nonexistent body: I had, at that moment, that moment, a hot girl on a summer night, the best of all the things we tried to do. Well, she 20 let me kiss her, anyway, all over.

Or it was just a fl agstone wall with a fl aw in the stone, an understanding cavity for burning young men with smooth dreams — the true circumstance is gone, the true 25 circumstances about us all then are gone. But when I kissed her, all water, she would close her eyes, and they into somewhere would disappear. Whether she was there or not, I remember her, clearly, and she moves 30 around the room, sometimes, until I sleep.

I have lain on the desert in watch low in the back of a pick-up truck for nothing in particular, for stars, for the things behind stars, and nothing comes 35 more than the moment: always now, here in a truck, the moment again to dream of making love and sweat, this time to a woman, or even to all of them in some allowable way, to those boys, then,

Courtesy of Alberto Ríos.

370 reading poetry

who couldn’t cry, to the girls before they were 40 women, to friends, me on my back, the sky over me pressing its simple weight into her body on me, into the bodies of them all, on me.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Comment on the use of slang in the poem. Does it surprise you? How does it characterize the speaker?

2. How does the language of the fi nal stanza differ from that of the fi rst stanza? To what purpose?

3. Write an essay that discusses the speaker’s attitudes toward sex and life. How are they related?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Think about “Seniors” as a kind of love poem and compare the speaker’s voice here with the one in T. S. Eliot’s “The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock” (p. 569). How are these two voices used to evoke different cultures? Of what value is love in these cultures?

Li Ho (791–817)

A Beautiful Girl Combs Her Hair date unknown TRANSLATED BY DAVID YOUNG

Awake at dawn she’s dreaming by cool silk curtains

fragrance of spilling hair half sandalwood, half aloes 5

windlass creaking at the well singing jade

the lotus blossom wakes, refreshed

her mirror two phoenixes 10 a pool of autumn light

standing on the ivory bed loosening her hair watching the mirror

one long coil, aromatic silk 15 a cloud down to the fl oor

drop the jade comb — no sound

pereira / anagrammer 371

delicate fi ngers pushing the coils into place color of raven feathers 20

shining blue-black stuff the jewelled comb will hardly hold it

spring wind makes me restless her slovenly beauty upsets me

eighteen and her hair’s so thick 25 she wears herself out fi xing it!

she’s fi nished now the whole arrangement in place

in a cloud-patterned skirt she walks with even steps 30 a wild goose on the sand

turns away without a word where is she off to?

down the steps to break a spray of cherry blossoms 35

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Try to paraphrase the poem. What is lost by re- wording?

2. How does the speaker use sensuous language to create a vivid picture of the girl?

3. What are the speaker’s feelings toward the girl? Do they remain the same throughout the poem?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay that explores the differing portraits in this poem and in Robert Herrick’s “Upon Julia’s Clothes” (p. 483). Which portrait is more interesting to you? Explain why.

Peter Pereira (b. 1959)

Anagrammer 2003

If you believe in the magic of language, then Elvis really Lives and Princess Diana foretold I end as car spin.

If you believe the letters themselves contain a power within them, 5 then you understand

372 reading poetry

what makes outside tedious, how desperation becomes a rope ends it.

The circular logic that allows senator to become treason, and treason to become atoners. 10

That eleven plus two is twelve plus one, and an admirer is also married.

That if you could just re-arrange things the right way you’d fi nd your true life, the right path, the answer to your questions: 15 you’d understand how the Titanic turns into that ice tin, and debit card becomes bad credit.

How listen is the same as silent, and not one letter separates stained from sainted. 20

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is “the magic of language” (line 1) created in the poem?

2. Explain what you think is the poem’s theme. 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try savoring the letters in your own fi rst and/or

last name by writing some anagrams for them.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare Pereira’s use of ana- grams in this poem with Robert Morgan’s in “Mountain Graveyard” (p. 358). How does each poem employ anagrams to achieve its effects?

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

Design 1936

I found a dimpled spider, fat and white, On a white heal-all,° holding up a moth Like a white piece of rigid satin cloth — Assorted characters of death and blight Mixed ready to begin the morning right, 5 Like the ingredients of a witches’ broth — A snow-drop spider, a fl ower like a froth, And dead wings carried like a paper kite.

What had the fl ower to do with being white, The wayside blue and innocent heal-all? 10

2 heal-all: A common fl ower, usually blue, once used for medicinal purposes.

oliver / the poet with his face in his hands 373

What brought the kindred spider to that height, Then steered the white moth thither in the night? What but design of darkness to appall? — If design govern in a thing so small.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What kinds of speculations are raised in the poem’s fi nal two lines? Consider the meaning of the title. Is there more than one way to read it?

2. How does the division of the stanzas in this sonnet serve to orga- nize the speaker’s thoughts and feelings? What is the predominant rhyme? How does that rhyme relate to the poem’s meaning?

3. Which words seem especially rich in connotative meanings? Explain how they function in the sonnet.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the ironic tone of “Design” with the tone of William Hathaway’s “Oh, Oh” (p. 348). What would you have to change in Hathaway’s poem to make it more like Frost’s?

Mary Oliver (b. 1935)

The Poet with His Face in His Hands 2005

You want to cry aloud for your mistakes. But to tell the truth the world doesn’t need any more of that sound.

So if you’re going to do it and can’t stop yourself, if your pretty mouth can’t 5 hold it in, at least go by yourself across

the forty fi elds and the forty dark inclines of rocks and water to the place where the falls are fl inging out their white sheets

like crazy, and there is a cave behind all that 10 jubilation and water fun and you can stand there, under it, and roar all you

want and nothing will be disturbed; you can drip with despair all afternoon and still, on a green branch, its wings just lightly touched 15

by the passing foil of the water, the thrush, puffi ng out its spotted breast, will sing of the perfect, stone-hard beauty of everything.

374 reading poetry

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the kind of poet the speaker characterizes. What is the speaker’s attitude toward that sort of poet?

2. Explain which single phrase used by the speaker to describe the poet most reveals for you the speaker’s attitude toward the poet.

3. How is nature contrasted with the poet?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the thematic use of nature in Oliver’s poem and in Elizabeth Bishop’s “The Fish” (p. 355).

375

I still feel that a poet has a duty to words, and that words can do wonderful things. And it’s too bad to just let them lie there without doing anything with and for them.

— GWENDOLYN BROOKS

WORD CHOICE Diction

Like all good writers, poets are keenly aware of diction, their choice of words. Poets, however, choose words especially carefully because the words in poems call attention to themselves. Characters, actions, settings, and symbols may appear in a poem, but in the foreground, before all else, is the poem’s language. Also, poems are usually briefer than other forms of writing. A few inappropriate words in a 200-page novel (which would have about 100,000 words) create fewer problems than they would in a 100- word poem. Functioning in a compressed atmosphere, the words in a poem must convey meanings gracefully and economically. Readers therefore have to be alert to the ways in which those meanings are released. Although poetic language is often more intensely charged than ordi- nary speech, the words used in poetry are not necessarily different from everyday speech. Inexperienced readers may sometimes assume that language must be high-fl own and out of date to be included in a poem:

12 Word Choice, Word

Order, and Tone

WEB Explore the poetic elements in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

By permission of The Granger Collection, New York.

376 word choice, word order, and tone

Instead of reading about a boy “enjoying a swim,” they expect to read about a boy “disporting with pliant arm o’er a glassy wave.” During the eighteenth century this kind of poetic diction — the use of elevated language rather than ordinary language — was highly valued in English poetry, but since the nineteenth century, poets have generally overridden the distinc- tions that were once made between words used in everyday speech and those used in poetry. Today all levels of diction can be found in poetry. A poet, like any writer, has several levels of diction from which to choose; they range from formal to middle to informal. Formal diction consists of a dignifi ed, impersonal, and elevated use of language. Notice, for example, the formality of Thomas Hardy’s description of the sunken luxury liner Titanic in this stanza from “The Convergence of the Twain” (the entire poem appears on pp. 389–90):

In a solitude of the sea Deep from human vanity, And the Pride of Life that planned her, stilly couches she.

There is nothing casual or relaxed about these lines. Hardy’s use of “stilly,” meaning “quietly” or “calmly,” is purely literary; the word rarely, if ever, turns up in everyday English. The language used in Sharon Olds’s “Last Night” (p. 388) represents a less formal level of diction; the speaker uses a middle diction spoken by most educated people. Consider how Olds’s speaker struggles the next day to comprehend her passion:

Love? It was more like dragonfl ies in the sun, 100 degrees at noon, the ends of their abdomens stuck together, I close my eyes when I remember.

The words used to describe this encounter are common enough, yet it is precisely Olds’s use of language that evokes the extraordinary nature of this couple’s connection. Informal diction is evident in Philip Larkin’s “A Study of Reading Habits” (p. 357). The speaker’s account of his early reading is presented colloquially, in a conversational manner that in this instance includes slang expressions not used by the culture at large:

When getting my nose in a book Cured most things short of school, It was worth ruining my eyes To know I could still keep cool, And deal out the old right hook To dirty dogs twice my size.

This level of diction is clearly not that of Hardy’s or Olds’s speakers. Poets may also draw on another form of informal diction, called dia- lect. Dialects are spoken by defi nable groups of people from a particular

word choice 377

geographic region, economic group, or social class. New England dialects are often heard in Robert Frost’s poems, for example. Gwendolyn Brooks uses a black dialect in “We Real Cool” (p. 391) to characterize a group of pool players. Another form of diction related to particular groups is jar- gon, a category of language defi ned by a trade or profession. Sociologists, photographers, carpenters, baseball players, and dentists, for example, all use words that are specifi c to their fi elds. Sally Croft offers an appetiz- ing dish of cookbook jargon in “Home-Baked Bread” (p. 408). Many levels of diction are available to poets. The variety of diction to be found in poetry is enormous, and that is how it should be. No lan- guage is foreign to poetry because it is possible to imagine any human voice as the speaker of a poem. When we say a poem is formal, informal, or somewhere in between, we are making a descriptive statement rather than an evaluative one. What matters in a poem is not only which words are used but how they are used.

Denotations and Connotations

One important way that the meaning of a word is communicated in a poem is through sound: snakes hiss, saws buzz. This and other matters related to sound are discussed in Chapter 16. Individual words also con- vey meanings through denotations and connotations. Denotations are the literal, dictionary meanings of a word. For example, bird denotes a feathered animal with wings (other denotations for the same word include a shuttlecock, an airplane, or an odd person), but in addition to its denotative meanings, bird also carries connotations — associations and implications that go beyond a word’s literal meanings. Connotations derive from how the word has been used and the associations people make with it. Therefore, the connotations of bird might include fragil- ity, vulnerability, altitude, the sky, or freedom, depending on the context in which the word is used. Consider also how different the connota- tions are for the following types of birds: hawk, dove, penguin, pigeon, chicken, peacock, duck, crow, turkey, gull, owl, goose, coot, and vulture. These words have long been used to refer to types of people as well as birds. They are rich in connotative meanings. Connotations derive their resonance from a person’s experiences with a word. Those experiences may not always be the same, especially when the people having them are in different times and places. Theater, for instance, was once associated with depravity, disease, and sin, whereas today the word usually evokes some sense of high culture and perhaps visions of elegant opulence. In several ethnic communities in the United States many people would fi nd squid appetizing, but elsewhere the word is likely to produce negative connotations. Readers must recognize, then, that words written in other times and places may have unexpected connotations. Annotations usually help in these matters, which is why it makes sense to pay attention to them when they are available.

378 word choice, word order, and tone

Ordinarily, though, the language of poetry is accessible, even when the circumstances of the reader and the poet are different. Although connota- tive language may be used subtly, it mostly draws on associations experi- enced by many people. Poets rely on widely shared associations rather than the idiosyncratic response that an individual might have to a word. Some- one who has received a severe burn from a fi replace accident may asso ciate the word hearth with intense pain instead of home and family life, but that reader must not allow a personal experience to undermine the response the poet intends to evoke. Connotative meanings are usually public meanings. Perhaps this can be seen most clearly in advertising, where language is also used primarily to convey moods and feelings rather than information. For instance, three decades of increasing interest in nutrition and general fi tness have created a collective consciousness that advertisers have capi- talized on successfully. Knowing that we want to be slender or lean or slim (not spare or scrawny and certainly not gaunt), advertisers have created a new word to describe beers, wines, sodas, cheeses, canned fruits, and other products that tend to overload what used to be called sweatclothes and sneakers. The word is lite. The assumed denotative meaning of lite is “low in calories,” but as close readers of ingredient labels know, some lites are heavier than regularly prepared products. There can be no doubt about the connotative meaning of lite, however. Whatever is lite cannot hurt you; less is more. Even the word is lighter than light; there is no unnecessary droopy g or plump h. Lite is a brilliantly manufactured use of connotation. Connotative meanings are valuable because they allow poets to be eco- nomical and suggestive simultaneously. In this way emotions and attitudes are carefully woven into the texture of the poem’s language. Read the follow- ing poem and pay close attention to the connotative meanings of its words.

Randall Jarrell (1914–1965)

The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner 1945

From my mother’s sleep I fell into the State And I hunched in its belly till my wet fur froze. Six miles from earth, loosed from its dream of life, I woke to black fl ack and the nightmare fi ghters. When I died they washed me out of the turret with a hose.

The title of this poem establishes the setting and the speaker’s situa- tion. Like the setting of a short story, the setting of a poem is important when the time and place infl uence what happens. “The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner” is set in the midst of a war and, more specifi cally, in a ball turret — a Plexiglas sphere housing machine guns on the underside of a bomber. The speaker’s situation obviously places him in extreme danger; indeed, his fate is announced in the title.

jarrell / the death of the ball turret gunner 379

Although the poem is written in the fi rst-person singular, its speaker is clearly not the poet. Jarrell uses a persona, a speaker created by the poet. In this poem the persona is a disembodied voice that makes the gunner’s story all the more powerful. What is his story? A paraphrase might read something like this:

After I was born, I grew up to fi nd myself at war, cramped into the turret of a bomber’s belly some 31,000 feet above the ground. Below me were exploding shells from antiaircraft guns and attacking fi ghter planes. I was killed, but the bomber returned to base, where my remains were cleaned out of the turret so the next man could take my place.

This paraphrase is accurate, but its language is much less suggestive than the poem’s. The fi rst line of the poem has the speaker emerge from his “mother’s sleep,” the anesthetized sleep of her giving birth. The phrase also suggests the comfort, warmth, and security he knew as a child. This safety was left behind when he “fell,” a verb that evokes the danger and involuntary movement associated with his subsequent “State” ( fell also echoes, perhaps, the fall from innocence to experience related in the Bible). Several dictionary defi nitions appear for the noun state; it can denote a territorial unit, the power and authority of a government, a person’s social status, or a person’s emotional or physical condition. The context provided by the rest of the poem makes clear that “State” has several denotative mean- ings here: Because it is capitalized, it certainly refers to the violent world of a government at war, but it also refers to the gunner’s vulnerable status as well as his physical and emotional condition. By having “State” carry more than one meaning, Jarrell has created an intentional ambiguity. Ambiguity allows for two or more simultaneous interpretations of a word, a phrase, an action, or a situation, all of which can be supported by the context of a work. Through his ambiguous use of “State,” Jarrell connects the horrors of war not just to bombers and gunners but to the governments that control them. Related to this ambiguity is the connotative meaning of “State” in the poem. The context demands that the word be read with a negative charge. The word is not used with patriotic pride but to suggest an anonymous, impersonal “State” that kills rather than nurtures the life in its “belly.” The state’s “belly” is a bomber, and the gunner is “hunched” like a fetus in the cramped turret, where, in contrast to the warmth of his mother’s womb, everything is frozen, even the “wet fur” of his fl ight jacket (newborn infants have wet fur too). The gunner is not just 31,000 feet from the ground but “Six miles from earth.” Six miles has roughly the same denotative meaning as 31,000 feet, but Jarrell knew that the connotative meaning of six miles makes the speaker’s position seem even more remote and frightening. When the gunner is born into the violent world of war, he fi nds him- self waking up to a “nightmare” that is all too real. The poem’s fi nal line is grimly understated, but it hits the reader with the force of an exploding shell: What the State-bomber-turret gives birth to is a gruesome death that is merely one of an endless series. It may be tempting to reduce the

380 word choice, word order, and tone

theme of this poem to the idea that “war is hell,” but Jarrell’s target is more specifi c. He implicates the “State,” which routinely executes such violence, and he does so without preaching or hysterical denunciations. Instead, his use of language conveys his theme subtly and powerfully.

WORD ORDER Meanings in poems are conveyed not only by denotations and connota- tions but also by the poet’s arrangement of words into phrases, clauses, and sentences to achieve particular effects. The ordering of words into meaningful verbal patterns is called syntax. A poet can manipulate the syntax of a line to place emphasis on a word; this is especially apparent when a poet varies normal word order. In Emily Dickinson’s “A narrow Fellow in the Grass” (p. 2), for example, the speaker says about the snake that “His notice sudden is.” Ordinarily, that would be expressed as “his notice is sudden.” By placing the verb is unexpectedly at the end of the line, Dickinson creates the sense of surprise we feel when we suddenly come upon a snake. Dickinson’s inversion of the standard word order also makes the fi nal sound of the line a hissing is.

TONE Tone is the writer’s attitude toward the subject, the mood created by all of the elements in the poem. Writing, like speech, can be characterized as serious or light, sad or happy, private or public, angry or affectionate, bit- ter or nostalgic, or by any other attitudes and feelings that human beings experience. In Jarrell’s “The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner,” the tone is clearly serious; the voice in the poem even sounds dead. Listen again to the persona’s fi nal words: “When I died they washed me out of the turret with a hose.” The brutal, restrained matter-of-factness of this line is effec- tive because the reader is called on to supply the appropriate anger and despair — a strategy that makes those emotions all the more convincing. The next work is a dramatic monologue, a type of poem in which a character — the speaker — addresses a silent audience in such a way as to reveal unintentionally some aspect of his or her temperament or person- ality. What tone is created by Machan’s use of a persona?

Katharyn Howd Machan (b. 1952)

Hazel Tells LaVerne 1976

last night im cleanin out my howard johnsons ladies room when all of a sudden up pops this frog 5 musta come from the sewer

espada / latin night at the pawnshop 381

swimmin aroun an tryin ta climb up the sida the bowl so i goes ta fl ushm down but sohelpmegod he starts talkin 10 bout a golden ball an how i can be a princess me a princess well my mouth drops all the way to the fl oor 15 an he says kiss me just kiss me once on the nose well i screams ya little green pervert 20 an i hitsm with my mop an has ta fl ush the toilet down three times me a princess 25

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What do you imagine the situation and setting are for this poem? Do you like this revision of the fairy tale “The Frog Prince”?

2. What creates the poem’s humor? How does Hazel’s use of language reveal her personality? Is her treatment of the frog consistent with her character?

3. What is the theme? Is it conveyed through denotative or connotative language?

4. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write what you think might be LaVerne’s reply to Hazel. First, write LaVerne’s response as a series of ordinary sen- tences, and then try editing and organizing them into poetic lines.

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Although Robert Browning’s “My Last Duchess” (p. 444) is a more complex poem than Machan’s, both use dramatic monologues to reveal character. How are the strategies in each poem similar?

Martín Espada (b. 1957)

Latin Night at the Pawnshop 1987

Chelsea, Massachusetts Christmas, 1987

The apparition of a salsa band gleaming in the Liberty Loan pawnshop window:

382 word choice, word order, and tone

Golden trumpet, silver trombone, 5 congas, maracas, tambourine,

all with price tags dangling like the city morgue ticket on a dead man’s toe.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is “Latin” about this night at the pawnshop? 2. What kind of tone is created by the poet’s word choice and by the

poem’s rhythm? 3. Does it matter that this apparition occurs on Christmas night? Why

or why not? 4. What do you think is the central point of this poem?

How do the speaker’s attitude and tone change during the course of this next poem?

Paul Laurence Dunbar (1872–1906)

To a Captious Critic 1903

Dear critic, who my lightness so deplores, Would I might study to be prince of bores, Right wisely would I rule that dull estate — But, sir, I may not; till you abdicate.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do Dunbar’s vocabulary and syntax signal the level of diction used in the poem?

2. Describe the speaker’s tone. How does it characterize the speaker as well as the critic?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Using “To a Captious Critic” as a model, try writing a four-line witty reply to someone in your own life — perhaps a roommate, coach, teacher, waiter, dentist, or anyone else who pro- vokes a strong response in you.

DICT ION AND TONE IN FOUR LOVE POEMS The fi rst three of these love poems share the same basic situation and theme: A male speaker addresses a female (in the fi rst poem it is a type of female) urging that love should not be delayed because time is short. This theme is as familiar in poetry as it is in life. In Latin this tradition is

herrick / to the virgins, to make much of time 383

known as carpe diem, “seize the day.” Notice how the poets’ diction helps create a distinctive tone in each poem, even though the subject matter and central ideas are similar (although not identical) in all three.

Robert Herrick (1591–1674)

To the Virgins, to Make Much of Time 1648

Gather ye rose-buds while ye may, Old Time is still a-fl ying; And this same fl ower that smiles today, Tomorrow will be dying.

The glorious lamp of heaven, the sun, The higher he’s a-getting, The sooner will his race be run, And nearer he’s to setting.

That age is best which is the fi rst, When youth and blood are warmer; But being spent, the worse, and worst Times still succeed the former.

Then be not coy, but use your time, And while ye may, go marry; For having lost but once your prime, 15 You may for ever tarry.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Would there be any change in meaning if the title of this poem were “To Young Women, to Make Much of Time”? Do you think the poem can apply to young men, too?

2. What do the virgins have in common with the fl owers (lines 1–4) and the course of the day (5–8)?

3. How does the speaker develop his argument? What will happen to the virgins if they don’t “marry”? Paraphrase the poem.

4. What is the tone of the speaker’s advice?

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

The next poem was also written in the seventeenth century, but it includes some words that have changed in usage and meaning over the past three hundred years. The title of Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” requires some explanation. “Mistress” does not refer to a married man’s illicit lover but to a woman who is loved and courted — a sweetheart. Marvell uses “coy” to describe a woman who is reserved and shy rather than coquettish or fl irtatious. Often such shifts in meanings

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 384 word choice, word order, and tone

over time are explained in the notes that accompany reprintings of poems. You should keep in mind, however, that it is helpful to have a reasonably thick dictionary available when you are reading poetry. The most thorough is the Oxford English Dictionary (OED), which provides histories of words. The OED is a multivolume leviathan, but there are other useful unabridged dictionaries and desk dictionaries. Knowing its original meaning can also enrich your understanding of why a contemporary poet chooses a particular word. Elizabeth Bishop begins “The Fish” (p. 355) this way: “I caught a tremendous fi sh.” We know immediately in this context that “tremendous” means very large. In addition, given that the speaker clearly admires the fi sh in the lines that follow, we might even understand “tremendous” in the colloquial sense of wonderful and extraordinary. But a dictionary gives us some further relevant insights. Because, by the end of the poem, we see the speaker thoroughly moved as a result of the encounter with the fi sh (“everything / was rainbow, rainbow, rainbow!”), the dictionary’s addi- tional information about the history of tremendous shows why it is the perfect adjective to introduce the fi sh. The word comes from the Latin tremere (to tremble) and therefore once meant “such as to make one tremble.” That is precisely how the speaker is at the end of the poem: deeply affected and trembling. Knowing the origin of tremendous gives us the full heft of the poet’s word choice. Although some of the language in “To His Coy Mistress” requires annotations for the modern reader, this poem continues to serve as a powerful reminder that time is a formidable foe, even for lovers.

Andrew Marvell (1621–1678)

To His Coy Mistress 1681

Had we but world enough, and time, This coyness, lady, were no crime. We would sit down, and think which way To walk, and pass our long love’s day. Thou by the Indian Ganges’° side 5 Shouldst rubies fi nd; I by the tide Of Humber° would complain.° I would write love songs Love you ten years before the Flood,

WEB Explore contexts for Andrew Marvell and approaches to this poem at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

5 Ganges: A river in India sacred to the Hindus. 7 Humber: A river that fl ows through Marvell’s native town, Hull.

marvell / to his coy mistress 385

And you should, if you please, refuse Till the conversion of the Jews. 10 My vegetable love should grow° Vaster than empires, and more slow; An hundred years should go to praise Thine eyes and on thy forehead gaze, Two hundred to adore each breast, 15 But thirty thousand to the rest: An age at least to every part, And the last age should show your heart. For, lady, you deserve this state, Nor would I love at lower rate. 20

But at my back I always hear Time’s wingèd chariot hurrying near; And yonder all before us lie Deserts of vast eternity. Thy beauty shall no more be found, 25 Nor in thy marble vault shall sound My echoing song; then worms shall try That long preserved virginity, And your quaint honor turn to dust, And into ashes all my lust. 30 The grave’s a fi ne and private place, But none, I think, do there embrace.

Now, therefore, while the youthful hue Sits on thy skin like morning dew, And while thy willing soul transpires° breathes forth 35 At every pore with instant fi res, Now let us sport us while we may, And now, like amorous birds of prey, Rather at once our time devour Than languish in his slow-chapped° power. slow-jawed 40 Let us roll all our strength and all Our sweetness up into one ball, And tear our pleasures with rough strife Thorough° the iron gates of life. through Thus, though we cannot make our sun 45 Stand still, yet we will make him run.

11 My vegetable love . . . grow: A slow, unconscious growth.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Do you think this carpe diem poem is hopelessly dated, or does it speak to our contemporary concerns?

2. This poem is divided into a three-part argument. Briefl y summarize each section: if (lines 1–20), but (21–32), therefore (33–46).

386 word choice, word order, and tone

3. What is the speaker’s tone in lines 1–20? How much time would he spend adoring his mistress? Is he sincere? How does he expect his mistress to respond to these lines?

4. How does the speaker’s tone change beginning with line 21? What is his view of time in lines 21–32? What does this description do to the lush and leisurely sense of time in lines 1–20? How do you think his mistress would react to lines 21–32?

5. In the fi nal lines of Herrick’s “To the Virgins, to Make Much of Time” (p. 383), the speaker urges the virgins to “go marry.” What does Mar- vell’s speaker urge in lines 33–46? How is the pace of these lines (notice the verbs) different from that of the fi rst twenty lines of the poem?

6. This poem is sometimes read as a vigorous but simple celebration of fl esh. Is there more to the theme than that?

The third in this series of carpe diem poems is a twenty-fi rst-century work. The language of Ann Lauinger’s “Marvell Noir” is more immediately accessible than that of Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress”; an ordinary dic- tionary will quickly identify any words unfamiliar to a reader. But the title might require a dictionary of biography for the reference to Marvell, as well as a dictionary of allusions to provide a succinct description that explains the reference to fi lm noir. An allusion is a brief cultural reference to a per- son, a place, a thing, an event, or an idea in history or literature. Allusive words, like connotative words, are both suggestive and economical; poets use allusions to conjure up biblical authority, scenes from Shakespeare’s plays, historic fi gures, wars, great love stories, and anything else that might serve to deepen and enrich their own work. The title of “Marvell Noir” makes two allusions that an ordinary dictionary may not explain, because it alludes to Marvell’s most famous poem, “To His Coy Mistress,” and to dark crime fi lms (noir is “black” in French) of the 1940s that were often fi lmed in black and white featuring tough-talking, cynical heroes such as Humphrey Bogart and hardened, cold women like Joan Crawford. Lau- inger assumes that her reader will understand the allusions. Allusions imply reading and cultural experiences shared by the poet and reader. Literate audiences once had more in common than they do today because more people had similar economic, social, and educational backgrounds. But a judicious use of specialized dictionaries, encyclope- dias, and other reference tools can help you decipher allusions that grow out of this body of experience. As you read more, you’ll be able to make connections based on your own experiences with literature. In a sense, allusions make available what other human beings have deemed worth remembering, and that is certainly an economical way of supplementing and enhancing your own experience. For a glimpse of two contemporary poets, Billy Collins and Joan Murray, having some fun with poetic allu- sions, see the section on “Poets at Play” farther on in this chapter begin- ning on page 396. Lauinger’s version of the carpe diem theme follows. What strikes you as particularly modern about it?

lauinger / marvell noir 387

Ann Lauinger (b. 1948)

Marvell Noir 2005

Sweetheart, if we had the time, A week in bed would be no crime. I’d light your Camels, pour your Jack; You’d do shiatsu on my back. When you got up to scramble eggs, 5 I’d write a sonnet to your legs, And you could watch my stubble grow. Yes, gorgeous, we’d take it slow. I’d hear the whole sad tale again: A roadhouse band; you can’t trust men; 10 He set you up; you had to eat, And bitter with the bittersweet Was what they dished you; Ginger lied; You weren’t there when Sanchez died; You didn’t know the pearls were fake . . . 15 Aw, can it, sport! Make no mistake, You’re in it, doll, up to your eyeballs! Tears? Please! You’ll dilute our highballs, And make that angel face a mess For the nice Lieutenant. I confess 20 I’m nuts for you — but take the rap? You must think I’m some other sap! And, precious, I kind of wish I was. Well, when they spring you, give a buzz; Guess I’ll get back to Archie’s wife, 25 And you’ll get twenty-fi ve to life. You’ll have time then, more than enough, To reminisce about the stuff That dreams are made of, and the men You suckered. Sadly, in the pen 30 Your kind of talent goes to waste. But Irish bars are more my taste Than iron ones: stripes ain’t my style. You’re going down; I promise I’ll Come visit every other year. 35 Now kiss me, sweet — the squad car’s here.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does Lauinger’s poem evoke Marvell’s carpe diem poem (p. 384) and the tough-guy tone of a “noir” narrative, a crime story or thriller that is especially dark?

2. Discuss the ways in which time is a central presence in the poem. 3. Explain the allusion to dreams in lines 28–29.

388 word choice, word order, and tone

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the speaker’s voice in this poem with that of the speaker in Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” (p. 384). What signifi cant similarities and differences do you fi nd?

This fourth love poem is a twentieth-century work in which the speaker’s voice is a woman’s. How does it sound different from the way the men speak in the previous three poems?

Sharon Olds (b. 1942)

Last Night 1996

The next day, I am almost afraid. Love? It was more like dragonfl ies in the sun, 100 degrees at noon, the ends of their abdomens stuck together, I close my eyes when I remember. I hardly 5 knew myself, like something twisting and twisting out of a chrysalis, enormous, without language, all head, all shut eyes, and the humming like madness, the way they writhe away, 10 and do not leave, back, back, away, back. Did I know you? No kiss, no tenderness — more like killing, death-grip holding to life, genitals like violent hands clasped tight 15 barely moving, more like being closed in a great jaw and eaten, and the screaming I groan to remember it, and when we started to die, then I refuse to remember, the way a drunkard forgets. After, 20 you held my hands extremely hard as my body moved in shudders like the ferry when its axle is loosed past engagement, you kept me sealed exactly against you, our hairlines wet as the arc of a gateway after 25 a cloudburst, you secured me in your arms till I slept — that was love, and we woke in the morning clasped, fragrant, buoyant, that was the morning after love.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is your response to this poem affected by the fact that the speaker is female? Explain why this is or isn’t a carpe diem poem.

hardy / the convergence of the twain 389

2. Comment on the descriptive passages of “Last Night.” Which images seem especially vivid to you? How do they contribute to the poem’s meaning?

3. Explain how the poem’s tone changes from beginning to end. 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. How does the speaker’s descrip-

tion of intimacy compare with Herrick’s (p. 383) and Marvell’s (p. 384)?

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Thomas Hardy (1840–1928)

The Convergence of the Twain 1912

Lines on the Loss of the “Titanic”°

i

In a solitude of the sea Deep from human vanity, And the Pride of Life that planned her, stilly couches she.

ii

Steel chambers, late the pyres Of her salamandrine fi res,° 5 Cold currents thrid,° and turn to rhythmic tidal lyres. thread

iii

Over the mirrors meant To glass the opulent The sea-worm crawls — grotesque, slimed, dumb, indifferent.

iv

Jewels in joy designed 10 To ravish the sensuous mind Lie lightless, all their sparkles bleared and black and blind.

v

Dim moon-eyed fi shes near Gaze at the gilded gear And query: “What does this vaingloriousness down here?” 15

“Titanic”: A luxurious ocean liner, reputed to be unsinkable, which sank after hitting an iceberg on its maiden voyage in 1912. Only a third of the 2,200 passengers survived. 5 salamandrine fi res: Salamanders were, according to legend, able to survive fi re; hence the ship’s fi res burned even though under water.

390 word choice, word order, and tone

vi

Well: while was fashioning This creature of cleaving wing, The Immanent Will that stirs and urges everything

vii

Prepared a sinister mate For her — so gaily great — 20 A Shape of Ice, for the time far and dissociate.

viii

And as the smart ship grew In stature, grace, and hue, In shadowy silent distance grew the Iceberg too.

ix

Alien they seemed to be: 25 No mortal eye could see The intimate welding of their later history,

x

Or sign that they were bent By paths coincident On being anon twin halves of one august event, 30

xi

Till the Spinner of the Years Said “Now!” And each one hears, And consummation comes, and jars two hemispheres.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe a contemporary disaster comparable to the sinking of the Titanic. How was your response to it similar to or dif- ferent from the speaker’s response to the fate of the Titanic?

2. How do the words used to describe the ship in this poem reveal the speaker’s attitude toward the Titanic?

3. The diction of the poem suggests that the Titanic and the iceberg par- ticipate in something like an arranged marriage. What specifi c words imply this?

4. Who or what causes the disaster? Does the speaker assign responsibility?

brooks / we real cool 391

David R. Slavitt (b. 1935)

Titanic 1983

Who does not love the Titanic? If they sold passage tomorrow for that same crossing, who would not buy?

To go down . . . We all go down, mostly alone. But with crowds of people, friends, servants, 5 well fed, with music, with lights! Ah!

And the world, shocked, mourns, as it ought to do and almost never does. There will be the books and movies to remind our grandchildren who we were and how we died, and give them a good cry. 10

Not so bad, after all. The cold water is anesthetic and very quick. The cries on all sides must be a comfort.

We all go: only a few, fi rst-class.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What, according to the speaker in this poem, is so compelling about the Titanic? Do you agree?

2. Discuss the speaker’s tone. Is “Titanic” merely a sarcastic poem? 3. What is the effect of the poem’s fi nal line? What emotions does it

elicit? 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. How does “Titanic” differ in

its attitude toward opulence from Hardy’s “The Convergence of the Twain” (p. 389)?

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Which poem, “Titanic” or “The Convergence of the Twain,” is more emotionally satisfying to you? Explain why.

6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the speakers’ tones in “Titanic” and “The Convergence of the Twain.”

Gwendolyn Brooks (1917–2000)

We Real Cool 1960

The Pool Players. Seven at the Golden Shovel.

We real cool. We Left school. We

392 word choice, word order, and tone

Lurk late. We Strike straight. We

Sing sin. We Thin gin. We

Jazz June. We Die soon.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the speech of the pool players in this poem help to characterize them? What is the effect of the pronouns coming at the ends of the lines? How would the poem sound if the pronouns came at the beginnings of lines?

2. What is the author’s attitude toward the players? Is there a change in tone in the last line?

3. How is the pool hall’s name related to the rest of the poem and its theme?

Joan Murray (b. 1945)

We Old Dudes 2006

We old dudes. We White shoes. We

Golf ball. We Eat mall. We

Soak teeth. We Palm Beach; We

Vote red. We Soon dead.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Consider the poem’s humor. To what extent does it make a serious point?

2. What does the reference to Palm Beach tell you about these “old dudes”? 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write a poem similar in style that characterizes

your life as a student. 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the themes of “We

Old Dudes” and Brooks’s “We Real Cool.” How do the two poems speak to each other?

dickinson / some keep the sabbath going to church — 393

Louis Simpson (b. 1923)

In the Suburbs 1963

There’s no way out. You were born to waste your life. You were born to this middleclass life

As others before you Were born to walk in procession To the temple, singing.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Is the title of this poem especially signifi cant? What images does it conjure up for you?

2. What does the repetition in lines 2–3 suggest? 3. Discuss the possible connotative meanings of lines 5 and 6. Who are

the “others before you”? 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay on suburban life

based on this poem and John Ciardi’s “Suburban” (p. 552).

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

Some keep the Sabbath going to Church — c. 1860

Some keep the Sabbath going to Church — I keep it, staying at Home — With a Bobolink for a Chorister — And an Orchard, for a Dome —

Some keep the Sabbath in Surplice° holy robes 5 I just wear my Wings — And instead of tolling the Bell, for Church, Our little Sexton — sings.

God preaches, a noted Clergyman — And the sermon is never long, 10 So instead of getting to Heaven, at last — I’m going, all along.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of referring to “Some” people (line 1)? 2. Characterize the speaker’s tone. 3. How does the speaker distinguish himself or herself from those who

go to church?

394 word choice, word order, and tone

4. How might “Surplice” (line 5) be read as a pun? 5. According to the speaker, how should the Sabbath be observed?

John Keats (1795–1821)

Ode on a Grecian Urn 1819

i

Thou still unravished bride of quietness, Thou foster-child of silence and slow time, Sylvan° historian, who canst thus express A fl owery tale more sweetly than our rhyme: What leaf-fringed legend haunts about thy shape 5 Of deities or mortals, or of both, In Tempe or the dales of Arcady?° What men or gods are these? What maidens loath? What mad pursuit? What struggle to escape? What pipes and timbrels? What wild ecstasy? 10

ii

Heard melodies are sweet, but those unheard Are sweeter; therefore, ye soft pipes, play on; Not to the sensual ear, but, more endeared, Pipe to the spirit ditties of no tone: Fair youth, beneath the trees, thou canst not leave 15 Thy song, nor ever can those trees be bare; Bold Lover, never, never canst thou kiss, Though winning near the goal — yet, do not grieve; She cannot fade, though thou hast not thy bliss, For ever wilt thou love, and she be fair! 20

iii

Ah, happy, happy boughs! that cannot shed Your leaves, nor ever bid the Spring adieu; And, happy melodist, unwearièd, For ever piping songs for ever new; More happy love! more happy, happy love! 25 For ever warm and still to be enjoyed, For ever panting, and for ever young;

3 Sylvan: Rustic. The urn is decorated with a forest scene. 7 Tempe, Arcady: Beauti- ful rural valleys in Greece.

keats / ode on a grecian urn 395

All breathing human passion far above, That leaves a heart high-sorrowful and cloyed, A burning forehead, and a parching tongue. 30

iv

Who are these coming to the sacrifi ce? To what green altar, O mysterious priest, Lead’st thou that heifer lowing at the skies, And all her silken fl anks with garlands drest? What little town by river or sea shore, 35 Or mountain-built with peaceful citadel, Is emptied of this folk, this pious morn? And, little town, thy streets for evermore Will silent be; and not a soul to tell Why thou art desolate, can e’er return. 40

v

O Attic° shape! Fair attitude! with brede° Of marble men and maidens overwrought, With forest branches and the trodden weed; Thou, silent form, dost tease us out of thought As doth eternity: Cold Pastoral! 45 When old age shall this generation waste, Thou shalt remain, in midst of other woe Than ours, a friend to man, to whom thou say’st, Beauty is truth, truth beauty — that is all Ye know on earth, and all ye need to know. 50

41 Attic: Possessing classic Athenian simplicity; brede: Design.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What does the speaker’s diction reveal about his atti- tude toward the urn in this ode? Does his view develop or change?

2. How is the happiness in stanza 3 related to the assertion in lines 11–12 that “Heard melodies are sweet, but those unheard / Are sweeter”?

3. What is the difference between the world depicted on the urn and the speaker’s world?

4. What do lines 49 and 50 suggest about the relation of art to life? Why is the urn described as a “Cold Pastoral” (line 45)?

5. Which world does the speaker seem to prefer, the urn’s or his own?

6. Describe the overall tone of the poem.

7. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing the view of time in this ode with that in Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” (p. 384). Pay particular attention to the connotative language in each poem.

396 word choice, word order, and tone

8. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the tone and attitude toward life in this ode with those in John Keats’s “To Autumn” (p. 409).

POETS AT PL AY Here are two poems smartly dressed in allusions to Emily Dickinson’s poetry. Billy Collins’s “Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s Clothes” was writ- ten, at least in part, in response to the extraordinary range of biographi- cal speculation that has attended her personal life, the known facts of which are few. Joan Murray’s “Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes” is a direct response to Collins’s provocative poetic encounter with Dick- inson; her poem appeared in the August 1998 issue of Harper’s three months after Collins’s. Both poems are seamlessly stitched with threads from Dickinson’s poems, all of which can be found in the index to this anthology under her name. Reading these two contemporary poems and then the Dickinson poems listed in the index will allow you to appreciate the subtlety and wit at work here as well as in the humorously wounded reply Collins writes to Murray in a postcard in response to her poem (included after the poems). You’re in for some serious fun.

Billy Collins (b. 1941)

Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s Clothes 1998

First, her tippet made of tulle, easily lifted off her shoulders and laid on the back of a wooden chair.

And her bonnet, the bow undone with a light forward pull. 5

Then the long white dress, a more complicated matter with mother-of-pearl buttons down the back, so tiny and numerous that it takes forever before my hands can part the fabric, 10 like a swimmer’s dividing water, and slip inside.

You will want to know that she was standing by an open window in an upstairs bedroom, 15 motionless, a little wide-eyed, looking out at the orchard below,

murray / taking off billy collins’ clothes 397

the white dress puddled at her feet on the wide-board, hardwood fl oor.

The complexity of women’s undergarments 20 in nineteenth-century America is not to be waved off, and I proceeded like a polar explorer through clips, clasps, and moorings, catches, straps, and whalebone stays, 25 sailing toward the iceberg of her nakedness.

Later, I wrote in a notebook it was like riding a swan into the night, but, of course, I cannot tell you everything— the way she closed her eyes to the orchard, 30 how her hair tumbled free of its pins, how there were sudden dashes whenever we spoke.

What I can tell you is it was terribly quiet in Amherst 35 that Sabbath afternoon, nothing but a carriage passing the house, a fl y buzzing in a windowpane.

So I could plainly hear her inhale when I undid the very top 40 hook-and-eye fastener of her corset

and I could hear her sigh when fi nally it was unloosed, the way some readers sigh when they realize that Hope has feathers, that reason is a plank, 45 that life is a loaded gun that looks right at you with a yellow eye.

Joan Murray (b. 1945)

Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes 1998

I took off Billy Collins’ clothes— It was a case of Fleas. I had no Gloves—or Ten-foot Pole— But tugged his Dungarees.

I fumbled with his Chambray shirt 5 As Players at the Keys— Because I could not stop the Itch I dropped his B.V.D.s.

398 word choice, word order, and tone

A Narrow Fellow in the Grass — I sent him out to Play. 10 The Mermaids in the Basement came And washed the Pest away.

Soon after Joan Murray published “Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes,” he sent her the following postcard:

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Collins’s poem prompted outrage from some read- ers when it was initially published. Why do you think someone might react that way? What’s your response to the poem?

2. Comment on the tone established by the speaker in each poem. Whose voice do you fi nd more appealing? Why?

3. How is the style of each poem — its diction, syntax, images, sounds, and rhythms — related to its respective meanings?

4. Explain whether or not you think it is essential to be familiar with Dickinson’s poetry in order to appreciate or enjoy these poems.

5. Roam through the Dickinson poems in the index. How does your reading of them enhance your understanding of the allusions woven into the two poems?

6. What does Collins’s postcard suggest about his response to Murray’s poem?

Dear Joan — Your aim was true with that Emily retort. I’m still staggering around on the lawn trying to pull out the arrow. Unbuttoned, Billy Reprinted by permission of Joan Murray.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...

POETRY’S APPEAL TO THE SENSES A poet, to borrow a phrase from Henry James, is one on whom nothing is lost. Poets take in the world and give us impressions of what they experience through images. An image is language that addresses the senses. The most common images in poetry are visual; they provide verbal pictures of the poets’ encounters — real or imagined — with the world. But poets also create images that appeal to our other senses. Li Ho arouses several senses in “A Beautiful Girl Combs Her Hair” (p. 370):

Awake at dawn she’s dreaming by cool silk curtains fragrance of spilling hair half sandalwood, half aloes windlass creaking at the well singing jade

These vivid images deftly blend textures, fragrances, and sounds that tease out the sensuousness of the moment. Images give us the physical world to experience in our imaginations. Some poems, like the following one, are written to do just that; they make no comment about what they describe.

399

13 Images

Between my fi nger and my thumb The squat pen rests. I’ll dig with it.

— SEAMUS HEANEY © Daniel J. Harper.

WEB Explore the poetic element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

400 images

William Carlos Williams (1883–1963)

Poem 1934

As the cat climbed over the top of

the jamcloset fi rst the right 5 forefoot

carefully then the hind stepped down

into the pit of 10 the empty fl owerpot

This poem defi es paraphrase because it is all an image of agile movement. No statement is made about the movement; the title, “Poem” — really no title — signals Williams’s refusal to comment on the movements. To impose a meaning on the poem, we’d probably have to knock over the fl owerpot.

We experience the image in Williams’s “Poem” more clearly because of how the sentence is organized into lines and groups of lines, or stanzas. Consider how differently the sentence reads if it is arranged as prose:

As the cat climbed over the top of the jamcloset, fi rst the right forefoot carefully then the hind stepped down into the pit of the empty fl owerpot.

The poem’s line and stanza division transforms what is essentially an awkward prose sentence into a rhythmic verbal picture. Especially when the poem is read aloud, this line and stanza division allows us to feel the image we see. Even the lack of a period at the end suggests that the cat is only pausing.

Images frequently do more than offer only sensory impressions, however. They also convey emotions and moods.

What mood is established in this next poem’s view of Civil War troops moving across a river?

Walt Whitman (1819–1892)

Cavalry Crossing a Ford 1865

A line in long array where they wind betwixt green islands, They take a serpentine course, their arms fl ash in the sun — hark to the

musical clank,

roethke / root cellar 401

Behold the silvery river, in it the splashing horses loitering stop to drink, Behold the brown-faced men, each group, each person, a picture, the

negligent rest on the saddles, Some emerge on the opposite bank, others are just entering the ford — while, Scarlet and blue and snowy white, The guidon fl ags fl utter gaily in the wind.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Do the colors and sounds establish the mood of this poem? What is the mood?

2. How would the poem’s mood have been changed if Whitman had used “look” or “see” instead of “behold” (lines 3–4)?

3. Where is the speaker as he observes this troop movement? 4. Does “serpentine” in line 2 have an evil connotation in this poem?

Explain your answer.

Whitman seems to capture momentarily all of the troop’s actions, and through carefully chosen, suggestive details — really very few — he succeeds in making “each group, each person, a picture.” Specifi c details, even when few are provided, give us the impression that we see the entire picture; it is as if those are the details we would remember if we had viewed the scene ourselves. Notice, too, that the movement of the “line in long array” is emphasized by the continuous winding syntax of the poem’s lengthy lines.

Poets choose details the way they choose the words to present those details: Only telling ones will do. Consider the images Theodore Roethke uses in “Root Cellar.”

Theodore Roethke (1908–1963)

Root Cellar 1948

Nothing would sleep in that cellar, dank as a ditch, Bulbs broke out of boxes hunting for chinks in the dark, Shoots dangled and drooped, Lolling obscenely from mildewed crates, Hung down long yellow evil necks, like tropical snakes. 5 And what a congress of stinks! Roots ripe as old bait, Pulpy stems, rank, silo-rich, Leaf-mold, manure, lime, piled against slippery planks. Nothing would give up life: 10 Even the dirt kept breathing a small breath.

402 images

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain why you think this is a positive or negative rendition of a root cellar.

2. What senses are engaged by the images in this poem? Is the poem simply a series of sensations, or do the detailed images make some kind of point about the root cellar?

3. What controls the choice of details in the poem? Why isn’t there, for example, a rusty shovel leaning against a dirt wall or a worn garden- er’s glove atop one of the crates?

4. Look up congress in a dictionary for its denotative meanings. Explain why “congress of stinks” (line 6) is especially appropriate given the nature of the rest of the poem’s imagery.

5. What single line in the poem suggests a theme? 6. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a poem of ten lines or so that con-

sists of a series of evocative images that creates a strong impression about something you know well.

The tone of the images and mood of the speaker are consistent in Roethke’s “Root Cellar.” In Matthew Arnold’s “Dover Beach,” however, they shift as the theme is developed.

Matthew Arnold (1822–1888)

Dover Beach 1867

The sea is calm tonight. The tide is full, the moon lies fair Upon the straits; — on the French coast the light Gleams and is gone; the cliffs of England stand, Glimmering and vast, out in the tranquil bay. 5 Come to the window, sweet is the night-air! Only, from the long line of spray Where the sea meets the moon-blanched land, Listen! you hear the grating roar Of pebbles which the waves draw back, and fl ing, 10 At their return, up the high strand, Begin, and cease, and then again begin, With tremulous cadence slow, and bring The eternal note of sadness in.

Sophocles long ago 15 Heard it on the Aegean, and it brought Into his mind the turbid ebb and fl ow

arnold / dover beach 403

Of human misery;° we Find also in the sound a thought, Hearing it by this distant northern sea. 20

The Sea of Faith Was once, too, at the full, and round earth’s shore Lay like the folds of a bright girdle furled. But now I only hear Its melancholy, long, withdrawing roar, 25 Retreating, to the breath Of the night-wind, down the vast edges drear And naked shingles° of the world. pebble beaches

Ah, love, let us be true To one another! for the world, which seems 30 To lie before us like a land of dreams, So various, so beautiful, so new, Hath really neither joy, nor love, nor light, Nor certitude, nor peace, nor help for pain; And we are here as on a darkling plain 35 Swept with confused alarms of struggle and fl ight, Where ignorant armies clash by night.

15–18 Sophocles . . . misery: In Antigone (lines 656–77), Sophocles likens the disasters that beset the house of Oedipus to a “mounting tide.”

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss what you consider to be this poem’s central point. How do the speaker’s descriptions of the ocean work toward making that point?

2. Contrast the images in lines 4–8 and 9–13. How do they reveal the speaker’s mood? To whom is he speaking?

3. What is the cause of the “sadness” in line 14? What is the speaker’s re- sponse to the ebbing “Sea of Faith”? Is there anything to replace his sense of loss?

4. What details of the beach seem related to the ideas in the poem? How is the sea used differently in lines 1–14 and 21–28?

5. Describe the differences in tone between lines 1–8 and 35–37. What has caused the change?

6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Explain how the images in Wilfred Owen’s “Dulce et Decorum Est” (p. 407) develop further the ideas and sentiments suggested by Arnold’s fi nal line concerning “ignorant armies clash[ing] by night.”

Consider the poetic appetite for images displayed in the celebration of chile peppers in the following passionate poem.

404 images

Jimmy Santiago Baca (b. 1952)

Green Chile 1989

I prefer red chile over my eggs and potatoes for breakfast. Red chile ristras° decorate my door, braided strings of peppers dry on my roof, and hang from eaves. They lend open-air vegetable stands 5 historical grandeur, and gently swing with an air of festive welcome. I can hear them talking in the wind, haggard, yellowing, crisp, rasping tongues of old men, licking the breeze. 10

But grandmother loves green chile. When I visit her, she holds the green chile pepper in her wrinkled hands. Ah, voluptuous, masculine, 15 an air of authority and youth simmers from its swan-neck stem, tapering to a fl owery collar, fermenting resinous spice. A well-dressed gentleman at the door my grandmother takes sensuously in her hand, 20 rubbing its fi rm glossed sides, caressing the oily rubbery serpent, with mouth-watering fulfi llment, fondling its curves with gentle fi ngers. Its bearing magnifi cent and taut 25 as fl anks of a tiger in mid-leap, she thrusts her blade into and cuts it open, with lust on her hot mouth, sweating over the stove, bandanna round her forehead, 30 mysterious passion on her face and she serves me green chile con carne between soft warm leaves of corn tortillas, with beans and rice — her sacrifi ce to her little prince. 35 I slurp from my plate with last bit of tortilla, my mouth burns and I hiss and drink a tall glass of cold water.

All over New Mexico, sunburned men and women drive rickety trucks stuffed with gunny-sacks 40 of green chile, from Belen, Veguita, Willard, Estancia,

blake / london 405

San Antonio y Socorro, from fi elds to roadside stands, you see them roasting green chile in screen-sided homemade barrels, and for a dollar a bag, we relive this old, beautiful ritual again and again. 45

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What’s the difference between red and green chiles in this poem? Find the different images the speaker uses to distin- guish between the two.

2. What kinds of images are used to describe the grandmother’s prepa- ration of green chile? What is the effect of those images?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a description — in poetry or prose — that uses vivid images to evoke a powerful response (either positive or nega- tive) to a particular food.

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Amy Lowell (1874–1925)

The Pond 1919

Cold, wet leaves Floating on moss-colored water, And the croaking of frogs — Cracked bell-notes in the twilight.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. This poem is not a complete sentence. What is miss- ing? Does it matter in terms of understanding what is described by the images?

2. What senses are stimulated by the images? Which sense seems to be the most dominant in the poem? Why?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Is the title of the poem necessary to convey its meaning? Choose an appropriate alternate title and explain how it subtly suggests something different from “The Pond.”

William Blake (1757–1827)

London 1794

I wander through each chartered° street, defi ned by law Near where the chartered Thames does fl ow, And mark in every face I meet Marks of weakness, marks of woe.

406 images

In every cry of every man, 5 In every Infant’s cry of fear, In every voice, in every ban, The mind-forged manacles I hear.

How the Chimney-sweeper’s cry Every black’ning Church appalls; 10 And the hapless Soldier’s sigh Runs in blood down Palace walls.

But most through midnight streets I hear How the youthful Harlot’s curse Blasts the new-born Infant’s tear, 15 And blights with plagues the Marriage hearse.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What feelings do the visual images in this poem suggest to you?

2. What is the predominant sound heard in the poem? 3. What is the meaning of line 8? What is the cause of the problems

that the speaker sees and hears in London? Does the speaker suggest additional causes?

4. The image in lines 11 and 12 cannot be read literally. Comment on its effectiveness.

5. How does Blake’s use of denotative and connotative language enrich this poem’s meaning?

6. An earlier version of Blake’s last stanza appeared this way: But most the midnight harlot’s curse From every dismal street I hear, Weaves around the marriage hearse And blasts the new-born infant’s tear.

Examine carefully the differences between the two versions. How do Blake’s revisions affect his picture of London life? Which version do you think is more effective? Why?

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

Wild Nights — Wild Nights! c. 1861

Wild Nights — Wild Nights! Were I with thee Wild Nights should be Our luxury!

owen / dulce et decorum est 407

Futile — the Winds — 5 To a Heart in port — Done with the Compass — Done with the Chart!

Rowing in Eden — Ah, the Sea! 10 Might I but moor — Tonight — In Thee!

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Thomas Wentworth Higginson, Dickinson’s men- tor, once said he was afraid that some “malignant” readers might “read into [a poem like this] more than that virgin recluse ever dreamed of putting there.” What do you think?

2. Look up the meaning of luxury in a dictionary. Why does this word work especially well here?

3. Given the imagery of the fi nal stanza, do you think the speaker is a man or a woman? Explain why.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay that compares the voice, fi gures of speech, and theme of this poem with those of Margaret Atwood’s “you fi t into me” (p. 414).

Wilfred Owen (1893–1918)

Dulce et Decorum Est 1920

Bent double, like old beggars under sacks, Knock-kneed, coughing like hags, we cursed through sludge, Till on the haunting fl ares we turned our backs, And towards our distant rest began to trudge.

Men marched asleep. Many had lost their boots, 5 But limped on, blood-shod. All went lame, all blind; Drunk with fatigue; deaf even to the hoots Of gas-shells dropping softly behind.

Gas! GAS! Quick, boys! — An ecstasy of fumbling, Fitting the clumsy helmets just in time, 10 But someone still was yelling out and stumbling And fl ound’ring like a man in fi re or lime. — Dim through the misty panes and thick green light, As under a green sea, I saw him drowning.

408 images

In all my dreams before my helpless sight 15 He plunges at me, guttering, choking, drowning.

If in some smothering dreams, you too could pace Behind the wagon that we fl ung him in, And watch the white eyes writhing in his face, His hanging face, like a devil’s sick of sin, 20 If you could hear, at every jolt, the blood Come gargling from the froth-corrupted lungs Bitter as the cud Obscene as cancer, Of vile, incurable sores on innocent tongues, — 25 My friend, you would not tell with such high zest To children ardent for some desperate glory, The old lie: Dulce et decorum est Pro patria mori.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. The Latin quotation in lines 28 and 29 is from Hor- ace: “It is sweet and fi tting to die for one’s country.” Owen served as a British soldier during World War I and was killed. Is this poem unpatriotic? What is its purpose?

2. Which images in the poem are most vivid? To which senses do they speak? 3. Describe the speaker’s tone. What is his relationship to his audience?

4. How are the images of the soldiers in this poem different from the images that typically appear in recruiting posters?

Sally Croft (b. 1935)

Home-Baked Bread 1981

Nothing gives a household a greater sense of stability and common comfort than the aroma of cooling bread. Begin, if you like, with a loaf of whole wheat, which requires neither sifting nor kneading, and go on from there to more cunning triumphs. — The Joy of Cooking

What is it she is not saying? Cunning triumphs. It rings of insinuation. Step into my kitchen, I have prepared a cunning triumph for you. Spices and herbs 5 sealed in this porcelain jar,

a treasure of my great-aunt who sat up past midnight

keats / to autumn 409

in her Massachusetts bedroom when the moon was dark. Come, 10 rest your feet. I’ll make you tea with honey and slices

of warm bread spread with peach butter. I picked the fruit this morning still fresh with dew. The fragrance 15 is seductive? I hoped you would say that. See how the heat rises when the bread opens. Come,

we’ll eat together, the small fl akes have scarcely any fl avor. What cunning 20 triumphs we can discover in my upstairs room where peach trees breathe their sweetness beside the open window and sun lies like honey on the fl oor.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why does the speaker in this poem seize on the phrase “cunning triumphs” from the Joy of Cooking excerpt?

2. Distinguish between the voice we hear in lines 1–3 and the second voice in lines 3–24. Who is the “you” in the poem?

3. Why is the word “insinuation” an especially appropriate choice in line 3?

4. How do the images in lines 20–24 bring together all of the senses evoked in the preceding lines?

5. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write a paragraph — or stanza — that describes the sensuous (and perhaps sensual) qualities of a food you enjoy.

John Keats (1795–1821)

To Autumn 1819

i

Season of mists and mellow fruitfulness, Close bosom-friend of the maturing sun; Conspiring with him how to load and bless With fruit the vines that round the thatch-eves run; To bend with apples the mossed cottage-trees, 5 And fi ll all fruit with ripeness to the core; To swell the gourd, and plump the hazel shells With a sweet kernel; to set budding more,

410 images

And still more, later fl owers for the bees, Until they think warm days will never cease, 10 For summer has o’er-brimmed their clammy cells.

ii

Who hath not seen thee oft amid thy store? Sometimes whoever seeks abroad may fi nd Thee sitting careless on a granary fl oor, Thy hair soft-lifted by the winnowing wind; 15 Or on a half-reaped furrow sound asleep, Drowsed with the fume of poppies, while thy hook° scythe Spares the next swath and all its twinèd fl owers: And sometimes like a gleaner thou dost keep Steady thy laden head across a brook; 20 Or by a cider-press, with patient look, Thou watchest the last oozings hours by hours.

iii

Where are the songs of spring? Ay, where are they? Think not of them, thou hast thy music too — While barred clouds bloom the soft-dying day, 25 And touch the stubble-plains with rosy hue; Then in a wailful choir the small gnats mourn Among the river swallows,° borne aloft willows Or sinking as the light wind lives or dies; And full-grown lambs loud bleat from hilly bourn;° territory 30 Hedge-crickets sing; and now with treble soft The redbreast whistles from a garden-croft, And gathering swallows twitter in the skies.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is autumn made to seem like a person in each stanza of this ode?

2. Which senses are most emphasized in each stanza? 3. How is the progression of time expressed in the ode? 4. How does the imagery convey tone? Which words have especially

strong connotative values? 5. What is the speaker’s view of death?

6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing the signifi cance of this poem’s images of “mellow fruitfulness” (line 1) with that of the images of ripeness in Theodore Roethke’s “Root Cel- lar” (p. 401). Explain how the images in each poem lead to very differ- ent feelings about the same phenomenon.

pound / in a station of the metro 411

Ezra Pound (1885–1972)

In a Station of the Metro° 1913

The apparition of these faces in the crowd; Petals on a wet, black bough.

Metro: Underground railroad in Paris.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why is the title essential for this poem? 2. What kind of mood does the image in the second line convey? 3. Why is “apparition” (line 1) a better word choice than, say, “appear-

ance” or “sight”? 4. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write a two-line vivid image for a poem titled

“At a Desk in the Library.” WEB Research the

poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

412

Like a piece of ice on a hot stove the poem must ride on its own melting.

— ROBERT FROST

Figures of speech are broadly defi ned as a way of saying one thing in terms of something else. An overeager funeral director might, for example, be described as a vulture. Although fi gures of speech are indirect, they are designed to clarify, not obscure, our understanding of what they describe. Poets frequently use them because, as Emily Dickinson said, the poet’s work is to “tell all the Truth but tell it slant” to capture the reader’s interest and imagination. But fi gures of speech are not limited to poetry. Hearing them, reading them, or using them is as natural as using language itself.

Suppose that in the middle of a class discussion concerning the economic causes of World War II your history instructor introduces a series of statistics by saying, “Let’s get down to brass tacks.” Would anyone be likely to expect a display of brass tacks for students to examine? Of course not. To interpret the statement literally would be to wholly misunderstand the instructor’s point that the time has come for a close look at the economic circumstances leading to the war. A literal response transforms the statement into the sort of hilariously bizarre material often found in a sketch by Woody Allen.

The class does not look for brass tacks because, in a nutshell, they understand that the instructor is speaking fi guratively. They would

14 Figures of Speech

© Bettmann/corbis.

shakespeare / from MACBETH (act v, scene v) 413

understand, too, that in the preceding sentence “in a nutshell” refers to brevity and conciseness rather than to the covering of a kernel of a nut. Figurative language makes its way into our everyday speech and writing as well as into literature because it is a means of achieving color, vividness, and intensity.

Consider the difference, for example, between these two statements:

Literal: The diner strongly expressed anger at the waiter. Figurative: The diner leaped from his table and roared at the waiter.

The second statement is more vivid because it creates a picture of ferocious anger by likening the diner to some kind of wild animal, such as a lion or tiger. By comparison, “strongly expressed anger” is neither especially strong nor especially expressive; it is fl at. Not all fi gurative language avoids this kind of fl atness, however. Figures of speech such as “getting down to brass tacks” and “in a nutshell” are clichés because they lack originality and freshness. Still, they suggest how these devices are commonly used to give language some color, even if that color is sometimes a bit faded.

There is nothing weak about William Shakespeare’s use of fi gurative language in the following passage from Macbeth. Macbeth has just learned that his wife is dead, and he laments her loss as well as the course of his own life.

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

From Macbeth (Act V, Scene v) 1605–1606

Tomorrow, and tomorrow, and tomorrow Creeps in this petty pace from day to day To the last syllable of recorded time; And all our yesterdays have lighted fools The way to dusty death. Out, out, brief candle! 5 Life’s but a walking shadow, a poor player, That struts and frets his hour upon the stage, And then is heard no more. It is a tale Told by an idiot, full of sound and fury, Signifying nothing. 10

This passage might be summarized as “life has no meaning,” but such a brief paraphrase does not take into account the fi gurative language that reveals the depth of Macbeth’s despair and his view of the absolute meaninglessness of life. By comparing life to a “brief candle,” Macbeth emphasizes the darkness and death that surround

414 figures of speech

human beings. The light of life is too brief and unpredictable to be of any comfort. Indeed, life for Macbeth is a “walking shadow,” futilely playing a role that is more farcical than dramatic, because life is, ultimately, a desperate story fi lled with pain and devoid of signifi cance. What the fi gurative language provides, then, is the emotional force of Macbeth’s assertion; his comparisons are disturbing because they are so apt.

The remainder of this chapter discusses some of the most important fi gures of speech used in poetry. A familiarity with them will help you to understand how poetry achieves its effects.

SIMILE AND METAPHOR The two most common fi gures of speech are simile and metaphor. Both compare things that are ordinarily considered unlike each other. A simile makes an explicit comparison between two things by using words such as like, as, than, appears, or seems: “A sip of Mrs. Cook’s coffee is like a punch in the stomach.” The force of the simile is created by the differences between the two things compared. There would be no simile if the comparison were stated this way: “Mrs. Cook’s coffee is as strong as the cafeteria’s coffee.” This is a literal comparison because Mrs. Cook’s coffee is compared with something like it, another kind of coffee. Consider how simile is used in this poem.

Margaret Atwood (b. 1939)

you fi t into me 1971

you fi t into me like a hook into an eye

a fi sh hook an open eye

If you blinked on a second reading, you got the point of this poem because you recognized that the simile “like a hook into an eye” gives way to a play on words in the fi nal two lines. There the hook and eye, no longer a pleasant domestic image of a clothing fastener or door latch that fi ts closely together, become a literal, sharp fi shhook and a human eye. The wordplay qualifi es the simile and drastically alters the tone of this poem by creating a strong and unpleasant surprise.

WEB Explore the poetic elements in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

© Sophie Bassouls/corbis sygma.

dickinson / presentiment — is that long shadow — on the lawn — 415

A metaphor, like a simile, makes a comparison between two unlike things, but it does so implicitly, without words such as like or as: “Mrs. Cook’s coffee is a punch in the stomach.” Metaphor asserts the identity of dissimilar things. Macbeth tells us that life is a “brief candle,” life is “a walking shadow,” life is “a poor player,” life is “a tale / Told by an idiot.” Metaphor transforms people, places, objects, and ideas into whatever the poet imagines them to be, and if metaphors are effective, the reader’s experience, understanding, and appreciation of what is described are enhanced. Metaphors are frequently more demanding than similes because they are not signaled by particular words. They are both subtle and powerful.

Here is a poem about presentiment, a foreboding that something terrible is about to happen.

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

Presentiment — is that long Shadow — on the lawn — ca. 1863

Presentiment — is that long Shadow — on the lawn — Indicative that Suns go down —

The notice to the startled Grass That Darkness — is about to pass —

The metaphors in this poem defi ne the abstraction “Presentiment.” The sense of foreboding that Dickinson expresses is identifi ed with a particular moment — the moment when darkness is just about to envelop an otherwise tranquil, ordinary scene. The speaker projects that fear onto the “startled Grass” so that it seems any life must be frightened by the approaching “Shadow” and “Darkness” — two richly connotative words associated with death. The metaphors obliquely tell us (“tell it slant” was Dickinson’s motto, remember) that presentiment is related to a fear of death, and, more important, the metaphors convey the feelings that attend that idea.

Some metaphors are more subtle than others because their comparison of terms is less explicit. Notice the difference between the following two metaphors, both of which describe a shaggy derelict refusing to leave the warmth of a hotel lobby: “He was a mule standing his ground” is a quite explicit comparison. The man is a mule; X is Y. But this metaphor is much more covert: “He brayed his refusal to leave.” This second version is an implied metaphor because it does not explicitly identify the man with a mule. Instead it hints at or alludes to the mule. Braying is associated with mules and is especially appropriate in this context because of the mule’s reputation for stubbornness. Implied metaphors can slip by readers, but they offer the alert reader the energy and resonance of carefully chosen, highly concentrated language.

416 figures of speech

Some poets write extended comparisons in which part or all of the poem consists of a series of related metaphors or similes. Extended metaphors are more common than extended similes. In “Catch” (p. 350), Robert Francis creates an extended metaphor that compares poetry to a game of catch. The entire poem is organized around this comparison. Because these comparisons are at work throughout the entire poem, they are called controlling metaphors. Extended comparisons can serve as a poem’s orga nizing principle; they are also a reminder that in good poems metaphor and simile are not merely decorative but inseparable from what is expressed.

OTHER FIGURES Perhaps the humblest fi gure of speech — if not one of the most familiar — is the pun. A pun is a play on words that relies on a word having more than one meaning or sounding like another word. For example, “A fad is in one era and out the other” is the sort of pun that produces obligatory groans. But most of us fi nd pleasant and interesting surprises in puns. Here’s one that has a slight edge to its humor.

Edmund Conti (b. 1929)

Pragmatist 1985

Apocalypse soon Coming our way Ground zero at noon Halve a nice day.

Grimly practical under the circumstances, the pragmatist divides the familiar cheerful cliché by half. As simple as this poem is, its tone is mixed because it makes us laugh and wince at the same time.

Puns can be used to achieve serious effects as well as humorous ones. Although we may have learned to underrate puns as fi gures of speech, it is a mistake to underestimate their power and the frequency with which they appear in poetry. A close examination, for example, of Robert Frost’s “Design” (p. 372) or almost any lengthy passage from a Shakespeare play will confi rm the value of puns.

Synecdoche is a fi gure of speech in which part of something is used to signify the whole: A neighbor is a “wagging tongue” (a gossip); a criminal is placed “behind bars” (in prison). Less typically, synecdoche refers to the whole used to signify the part: “Germany invaded Poland”; “Princeton won the fencing match.” Clearly, certain individuals participated in

thomas / the hand that signed the paper 417

these activities, not all of Germany or Princeton. Another related fi gure of speech is metonymy, in which something closely associated with a subject is substituted for it: “She preferred the silver screen [motion pictures] to reading.” “At precisely ten o’clock the paper shuffl ers [offi ce workers] stopped for coffee.”

Synecdoche and metonymy may overlap and are therefore sometimes diffi cult to distinguish. Consider this description of a disapproving minister entering a noisy tavern: “As those pursed lips came through the swinging door, the atmosphere was suddenly soured.” The pursed lips signal the presence of the minister and are therefore a synecdoche, but they additionally suggest an inhibiting sense of sin and guilt that makes the bar patrons feel uncomfortable. Hence the pursed lips are also a metonymy, as they are in this context so closely connected with religion. Although the distinction between synecdoche and metonymy can be useful, a fi gure of speech is usually labeled a metonymy when it overlaps categories.

Knowing the precise term for a fi gure of speech is, fi nally, less important than responding to its use in a poem. Consider how metonymy and synecdoche convey the tone and meaning of the following poem.

Dylan Thomas (1914–1953)

The Hand That Signed the Paper 1936

The hand that signed the paper felled a city; Five sovereign fi ngers taxed the breath, Doubled the globe of dead and halved

a country; These fi ve kings did a king to death.

The mighty hand leads to a sloping shoulder,

The fi nger joints are cramped with chalk; A goose’s quill has put an end to murder That put an end to talk.

The hand that signed the treaty bred a fever, And famine grew, and locusts came; 10 Great is the hand that holds dominion over Man by a scribbled name.

The fi ve kings count the dead but do not soften The crusted wound nor stroke the brow; A hand rules pity as a hand rules heaven; 15 Hands have no tears to fl ow.

© Hulton-Deutsch Collection/corbis.

418 figures of speech

The “hand” in this poem is a synecdoche for a powerful ruler because it is a part of someone used to signify the entire person. The “goose’s quill” is a metonymy that also refers to the power associated with the ruler’s hand. By using these fi gures of speech, Thomas depersonalizes and ultimately dehumanizes the ruler. The fi nal synecdoche tells us that “Hands have no tears to fl ow.” It makes us see the political power behind the hand as remote and inhuman. How is the meaning of the poem enlarged when the speaker says, “A hand rules pity as a hand rules heaven”?

One of the ways writers energize the abstractions, ideas, objects, and animals that constitute their created worlds is through personifi cation, the attribution of human characteristics to nonhuman things: Temptation pursues the innocent; trees scream in the raging wind; mice conspire in the cupboard. We are not explicitly told that these things are people; instead, we are invited to see that they behave like people. Perhaps it is human vanity that makes personifi cation a frequently used fi gure of speech. Whatever the reason, personifi cation, a form of metaphor that connects the nonhuman with the human, makes the world understandable in human terms. Consider this concise example from William Blake’s The Marriage of Heaven and Hell, a long poem that takes delight in attacking conventional morality: “Prudence is a rich ugly old maid courted by Incapacity.” By personifying prudence, Blake transforms what is usually considered a virtue into a comic fi gure hardly worth emulating.

Often related to personifi cation is another rhetorical fi gure called apostrophe, an address either to someone who is absent and therefore cannot hear the speaker or to something nonhuman that cannot comprehend. Apostrophe provides an opportunity for the speaker of a poem to think aloud, and often the thoughts expressed are in a formal tone. John Keats, for example, begins “Ode on a Grecian Urn” (p. 394) this way: “Thou still unravished bride of quietness.” Apostrophe is frequently accompanied by intense emotion that is signaled by phrasing such as “O Life.” In the right hands — such as Keats’s — apostrophe can provide an intense and immediate voice in a poem, but when it is overdone or extravagant it can be ludicrous. Modern poets are more wary of apostrophe than their pre- decessors because apostrophizing strikes many self-conscious twenty-fi rst- century sensibilities as too theatrical. Thus modern poets tend to avoid exaggerated situations in favor of less charged though equally meditative moments, as in this next poem, with its amusing, half-serious cosmic twist.

Janice Townley Moore (b. 1939)

To a Wasp 1984

You must have chortled fi nding that tiny hole in the kitchen screen. Right into my cheese cake batter

moore / to a wasp 419

you dived, 5 no chance to swim ashore, no saving spoon, the mixer whirring your legs, wings, stinger, churning you into such 10 delicious death. Never mind the bright April day. Did you not see rising out of cumulus clouds That fi st aimed at both of us? 15

Moore’s apostrophe “To a Wasp” is based on the simplest of domestic circumstances; there is almost nothing theatrical or exaggerated in the poem’s tone until “That fi st” in the last line, when exaggeration takes center stage. As a fi gure of speech, exaggeration is known as overstatement or hyperbole and adds emphasis without intending to be literally true: “The teenage boy ate everything in the house.” Notice how the speaker of Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” (p. 384) exaggerates his devotion in the following overstatement:

An hundred years should go to praise Thine eyes and on thy forehead gaze, Two hundred to adore each breast, But thirty thousand to the rest:

That comes to 30,500 years. What is expressed here is heightened emotion, not deception.

The speaker also uses the opposite fi gure of speech, understatement, which says less than is intended. In the next section he sums up why he cannot take 30,500 years to express his love:

The grave’s a fi ne and private place, But none, I think, do there embrace.

The speaker is correct, of course, but by deliberately understating — saying “I think” when he is actually certain — he makes his point, that death will overtake their love, all the more emphatic. Another powerful example of understatement appears in the fi nal line of Randall Jarrell’s “The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner” (p. 378), when the disembodied voice of the machine-gunner describes his death in a bomber: “When I died they washed me out of the turret with a hose.”

Paradox is a statement that initially appears to be self-contradictory but that, on closer inspection, turns out to make sense: “The pen is mightier than the sword.” In a fencing match, anyone would prefer the sword, but if the goal is to win the hearts and minds of people, the art of persuasion can be more compelling than swordplay. To resolve the paradox, it is necessary to discover the sense that underlies the statement.

420 figures of speech

If we see that “pen” and “sword” are used as metonymies for writing and violence, then the paradox rings true. Oxymoron is a condensed form of paradox in which two contradictory words are used together. Combinations such as “sweet sorrow,” “silent scream,” “sad joy,” and “cold fi re” indicate the kinds of startling effects that oxymorons can produce. Paradox is useful in poetry because it arrests a reader’s attention by its seemingly stubborn refusal to make sense, and once a reader has penetrated the paradox, it is diffi cult to resist a perception so well earned. Good paradoxes are knotty pleasures. Here is a simple but effective one.

J. Patrick Lewis (b. 1942)

The Unkindest Cut 1993

Knives can harm you, heaven forbid; Axes may disarm you, kid; Guillotines are painful, but There’s nothing like a paper cut!

We all know how bloody paper cuts can be, but this quatrain is also a humorous version of “the pen is mightier than the sword.” The wounds escalate to the paper cut, which paradoxically is more damaging than even the broad blade of a guillotine. “The unkindest cut ” of all (an allusion to Shakespeare’s Julius Caesar, III.ii.188) is produced by chilling words on a page rather than cold steel, but it is more painfully fatal nonetheless.

The following poems are rich in fi gurative language. As you read and study them, notice how their fi gures of speech vivify situations, clarify ideas, intensify emotions, and engage your imagination. Although the terms for the various fi gures discussed in this chapter are useful for labeling the particular devices used in poetry, they should not be allowed to get in the way of your response to a poem. Don’t worry about rounding up examples of fi gurative language. First relax and let the fi gures work their effects on you. Use the terms as a means of taking you further into poetry, and they will serve your reading well.

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Gary Snyder (b. 1930)

How Poetry Comes to Me 1992

It comes blundering over the Boulders at night, it stays Frightened outside the Range of my campfi re

heitzman / the schoolroom on the second floor 421

I go to meet it at the Edge of the light

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does personifi cation in this poem depict the creative process?

2. Why do you suppose Snyder makes each successive line shorter? 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. How would eliminating the title change your

understanding of the poem? Substitute another title that causes you to reinterpret it.

Ernest Slyman (b. 1946)

Lightning Bugs 1988

In my backyard, They burn peepholes in the night And take snapshots of my house.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain why the title is essential to this poem. 2. What makes the description of the lightning bugs effective? How do

the second and third lines complement each other? 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. As Slyman has done, take a simple, common fact

of nature and make it vivid by using a fi gure of speech to describe it.

Judy Page Heitzman (b. 1952)

The Schoolroom on the Second Floor of the Knitting Mill 1991

While most of us copied letters out of books, Mrs. Lawrence carved and cleaned her nails. Now the red and buff cardinals at my back-room window make me miss her, her room, her hallway, even the chimney outside 5 that broke up the sky.

In my memory it is afternoon. Sun streams in through the door next to the fi re escape where we are lined up

422 figures of speech

getting our coats on to go out to the playground, 10 the tether ball, its towering height, the swings. She tells me to make sure the line does not move up over the threshold. That would be dangerous. So I stand guard at the door. 15 Somehow it happens the way things seem to happen when we’re not really looking, or we are looking, just not the right way. Kids crush up like cattle, pushing me over the line.

Judy is not a good leader is all Mrs. Lawrence says. 20 She says it quietly. Still, everybody hears. Her arms hang down like sausages. I hear her every time I fail.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Does your impression of Mrs. Lawrence change from the beginning to the end of the poem? How so?

2. How can line 2 be read as an implied metaphor? 3. Discuss the use of similes in the poem. How do they contribute to

the poem’s meaning?

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

London, 1802 1802

Milton!° thou should’st be living at this hour: England hath need of thee: she is a fen Of stagnant waters: altar, sword, and pen, Fireside, the heroic wealth of hall and bower, Have forfeited their ancient English dower 5 Of inward happiness. We are selfi sh men; Oh! raise us up, return to us again; And give us manners, virtue, freedom, power. Thy soul was like a star, and dwelt apart: Thou hadst a voice whose sound was like the sea: 10 Pure as the naked heavens, majestic, free, So didst thou travel on life’s common way, In cheerful godliness; and yet thy heart The lowliest duties on herself did lay.

1 Milton: John Milton (1608–1674), poet, famous especially for his religious epic Para- dise Lost and his defense of political freedom.

donne / a valediction: forbidding mourning 423

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the poem’s tone. Is it nostalgic, angry, or something else?

2. Explain the metonymies in lines 3–6 of this poem. What is the speak- er’s assessment of England?

3. How would the effect of the poem be different if it were in the form of an address to Wordsworth’s contemporaries rather than an apos- trophe to Milton? What qualities does Wordsworth attribute to Mil- ton by the use of fi gurative language?

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

Fire and Ice 1923

Some say the world will end in fi re, Some say in ice. From what I’ve tasted of desire I hold with those who favor fi re. But if it had to perish twice, I think I know enough of hate To say that for destruction ice Is also great And would suffi ce.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What characteristics of human behavior does the speaker associate with fi re and ice?

2. What theories about the end of the world are alluded to in lines 1 and 2?

3. How does the speaker’s use of understatement and rhyme affect the tone of this poem?

John Donne (1572–1631)

A Valediction: Forbidding Mourning 1611

As virtuous men pass mildly away, And whisper to their souls to go, While some of their sad friends do say, The breath goes now, and some say, no:

424 figures of speech

So let us melt, and make no noise, 5 No tear-fl oods, nor sigh-tempests move; ’Twere profanation of our joys To tell the laity our love.

Moving of th’ earth° brings harms and fears, earthquakes Men reckon what it did and meant, 10 But trepidation of the spheres,° Though greater far, is innocent.

Dull sublunary° lovers’ love (Whose soul is sense) cannot admit Absence, because it doth remove 15 Those things which elemented° it. composed

But we by a love so much refi ned, That ourselves know not what it is, Inter-assured of the mind, Care less, eyes, lips, and hands to miss. 20

Our two souls therefore, which are one, Though I must go, endure not yet A breach, but an expansion, Like gold to airy thinness beat.

If they be two, they are two so 25 As stiff twin compasses are two; Thy soul the fi xed foot, makes no show To move, but doth, if th’ other do.

And though it in the center sit, Yet when the other far doth roam, 30 It leans, and hearkens after it, And grows erect, as that comes home.

Such wilt thou be to me, who must Like th’ other foot, obliquely run; Thy fi rmness makes my circle just,° 35 And makes me end, where I begun.

11 trepidation of the spheres: According to Ptolemaic astronomy, the planets sometimes moved violently, like earthquakes, but these movements were not felt by people on earth. 13 sublunary: Under the moon; hence, mortal and subject to change. 35 circle just: The circle is a traditional symbol of perfection.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. A valediction is a farewell. Donne wrote this poem for his wife before leaving on a trip to France. What kind of “mourn- ing” is the speaker forbidding?

ryan / hailstorm 425

2. Explain how the simile in lines 1–4 is related to the couple in lines 5–8. Who is described as dying?

3. How does the speaker contrast the couple’s love to “sublunary lovers’ love” (line 13)?

4. Explain the similes in lines 24 and 25–36.

Linda Pastan (b. 1932)

Marks 1978

My husband gives me an A for last night’s supper, an incomplete for my ironing, a B plus in bed. My son says I am average, 5 an average mother, but if I put my mind to it I could improve. My daughter believes in Pass/Fail and tells me 10 I pass. Wait ’til they learn I’m dropping out.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain the appropriateness of the controlling met- aphor in this poem. How does it reveal the woman’s relationship to her family?

2. Discuss the meaning of the title. 3. How does the last line serve as both

the climax of the woman’s story and the poem’s controlling metaphor?

Kay Ryan (b. 1945)

Hailstorm 2005

Like a storm of hornets, the little white planets layer and relayer as they whip around 5 in their high orbits, getting more and © Christopher Felver/corbis.

426 figures of speech

more dense before they crash against our crust. A maelstrom 10 of ferocious little fi sts and punches, so hard to believe once it’s past.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the progression in violence from the simile to the metaphor as the hailstorm develops.

2. Why is “maelstrom” just the right word in line 10? 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a poem in a similar style using one

or two striking similes or metaphors to describe a thunderstorm, snowstorm, or windstorm.

Elaine Magarrell (b. 1928)

The Joy of Cooking 1988

I have prepared my sister’s tongue, scrubbed and skinned it, trimmed the roots, small bones, and gristle. Carved through the hump it slices thin and neat. Best with horseradish 5 and economical — it probably will grow back. Next time perhaps a creole sauce or mold of aspic?

I will have my brother’s heart, which is fi rm and rather dry, 10 slow cooked. It resembles muscle more than organ meat and needs an apple-onion stuffi ng to make it interesting at all. Although beef heart serves six 15 my brother’s heart barely feeds two. I could also have it braised and served in sour sauce.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the poem’s tone. Do you fi nd it amusing, bitter, or something else?

magarrell / the joy of cooking 427

2. How are the tongue and heart used to characterize the sister and brother in this poem?

3. How is the speaker’s personality revealed in the poem’s language? 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay that explains

how cooking becomes a way of talking about something else in this poem and in Sally Croft’s “Home-Baked Bread” (p. 408).

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

428

Poetry is serious business; literature is the apparatus through which the world tries to keep intact its important ideas and feelings.

— MARY OLIVER

SYMBOL A symbol is something that represents something else. An object, a person, a place, an event, or an action can suggest more than its literal meaning. A handshake between two world leaders might be simply a greeting, but if it is done ceremoniously before cameras, it could be a symbolic gesture signifying unity, issues resolved, and joint policies that will be followed. We live surrounded by symbols. When a $100,000 Mercedes-Benz comes roaring by in the fast lane, we get a quick glimpse of not only an expensive car but an entire lifestyle that suggests opulence, broad lawns, executive offi ces, and power. One of the reasons some buyers are willing to spend roughly the cost of fi ve Chevrolets for a single Mercedes-Benz is that they are aware of the car’s symbolic value. A symbol is a vehicle for two things at once: It functions as itself, and it implies meanings beyond itself. The meanings suggested by a symbol are determined by the con- text in which it appears. The Mercedes could symbolize very different things depending on where it was parked. Would an American politi- cal candidate be likely to appear in a Detroit blue-collar neighborhood

15 Symbol, Allegory, and Irony

WEB Explore the poetic elements in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

© Barbara Savage Cheresh.

frost / acquainted with the night 429

with such a car? Probably not. Although a candidate might be able to afford the car, it would be an inappropriate symbol for someone seeking votes from all of the people. As a symbol, the German-built Mercedes would backfi re if voters perceived it as representing an entity partially responsible for layoffs of automobile workers or, worse, as a sign of deca- dence and corruption. Similarly, a huge portrait of Mao Tse-tung con- veys different meanings to residents of Beijing than it would to farmers in Prairie Center, Illinois. Because symbols depend on contexts for their meaning, literary artists provide those contexts so that the reader has enough information to determine the probable range of meanings sug- gested by a symbol. In the following poem, the speaker describes walking at night. How is the night used symbolically?

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

Acquainted with the Night 1928

I have been one acquainted with the night. I have walked out in rain — and back in rain. I have outwalked the furthest city light.

I have looked down the saddest city lane. I have passed by the watchman on his beat 5 And dropped my eyes, unwilling to explain.

I have stood still and stopped the sound of feet When far away an interrupted cry Came over houses from another street,

But not to call me back or say good-by; 10 And further still at an unearthly height One luminary clock against the sky

Proclaimed the time was neither wrong nor right. I have been one acquainted with the night.

In approaching this or any poem, you should read for literal mean- ings fi rst and then allow the elements of the poem to invite you to sym- bolic readings, if they are appropriate. Here the somber tone suggests that the lines have symbolic meaning, too. The fl at matter-of-factness created by the repetition of “I have” (lines 1–5, 7, 14) understates the symbolic subject matter of the poem, which is, fi nally, more about the “night” located in the speaker’s mind or soul than it is about walking away from a city and back again. The speaker is “acquainted with the

430 symbol, allegory, and irony

night.” The importance of this phrase is emphasized by Frost’s title and by the fact that he begins and ends the poem with it. Poets frequently use this kind of repetition to alert readers to details that carry more than literal meanings. The speaker in this poem has personal knowledge of the night but does not indicate specifi cally what the night means. To arrive at the potential meanings of the night in this context, it is necessary to look closely at its connotations, along with the images provided in the poem. The connotative meanings of night suggest, for example, dark- ness, death, and grief. By drawing on these connotations, Frost uses a conventional symbol — something that is recognized by many people to represent certain ideas. Roses conventionally symbolize love or beauty; laurels, fame; spring, growth; the moon, romance. Poets often use con- ventional symbols to convey tone and meaning. Frost uses the night as a conventional symbol, but he also develops it into a literary or contextual symbol that goes beyond traditional, public meanings. A literary symbol cannot be summarized in a word or two. It tends to be as elusive as experience itself. The night cannot be reduced to or equated with darkness or death or grief, but it evokes those associa- tions and more. Frost took what perhaps initially appears to be an over- worked, conventional symbol and prevented it from becoming a cliché by deepening and extending its meaning. The images in “Acquainted with the Night” lead to the poem’s sym- bolic meaning. Unwilling, and perhaps unable, to explain explicitly to the watchman (and to the reader) what the night means, the speaker nevertheless conveys feelings about it. The brief images of darkness, rain, sad city lanes, the necessity for guards, the eerie sound of a distress- ing cry coming over rooftops, and the “luminary clock against the sky” proclaiming “the time was neither wrong nor right” all help to create a sense of anxiety in this tight-lipped speaker. Although we cannot know what unnamed personal experiences have acquainted the speaker with the night, the images suggest that whatever the night means, it is some- how associated with insomnia, loneliness, isolation, coldness, darkness, death, fear, and a sense of alienation from humanity and even time. Day- light — ordinary daytime thoughts and life itself — seems remote and unavailable in this poem. The night is literally the period from sunset to sunrise, but, more important, it is an internal state of being felt by the speaker and revealed through the images. Frost used symbols rather than an expository essay that would explain the conditions that cause these feelings because most readers can provide their own list of sorrows and terrors that evoke similar emotions. Through symbol, the speaker’s experience is compressed and simultane- ously expanded by the personal darkness that each reader brings to the poem. The suggestive nature of symbols makes them valuable for poets and evocative for readers.

poe / the haunted palace 431

ALLEGORY Unlike expansive, suggestive symbols, allegory is a narration or descrip- tion usually restricted to a single meaning because its events, actions, characters, settings, and objects represent specifi c abstractions or ideas. Although the elements in an allegory may be interesting in themselves, the emphasis tends to be on what they ultimately mean. Characters may be given names such as Hope, Pride, Youth, and Charity; they have few, if any, personal qualities beyond their abstract meanings. These personifi - cations are a form of extended metaphor, but their meanings are severely restricted. They are not symbols because, for instance, the meaning of a character named Charity is precisely that virtue. There is little or no room for broad speculation and exploration in allegories. If Frost had written “Acquainted with the Night” as an alle- gory, he might have named his speaker Loneliness and had him leave the City of Despair to walk the Streets of Emptiness, where Crime, Poverty, Fear, and other characters would defi ne the nature of city life. The literal elements in an allegory tend to be de-emphasized in favor of the mes- sage. Symbols, however, function both literally and symbolically, so that “Acquainted with the Night” is about both a walk and a sense that some- thing is terribly wrong. Allegory especially lends itself to didactic poetry, which is designed to teach an ethical, moral, or religious lesson. Many stories, poems, and plays are concerned with values, but didactic literature is specifi - cally created to convey a message. “Acquainted with the Night” does not impart advice or offer guidance. If the poem argued that city life is self- destructive or sinful, it would be didactic; instead, it is a lyric poem that expresses the emotions and thoughts of a single speaker. Although allegory is often enlisted in didactic causes because it can so readily communicate abstract ideas through physical representations, not all allegories teach a lesson. Here is a poem describing a haunted palace while also establishing a consistent pattern that reveals another meaning.

Edgar Allan Poe (1809–1849)

The Haunted Palace 1839

i

In the greenest of our valleys, By good angels tenanted, Once a fair and stately palace — Radiant palace — reared its head. In the monarch Thought’s dominion — 5 It stood there!

432 symbol, allegory, and irony

Never seraph spread a pinion Over fabric half so fair.

ii

Banners yellow, glorious, golden, On its roof did fl oat and fl ow; 10 (This — all this — was in the olden Time long ago) And every gentle air that dallied, In that sweet day, Along the ramparts plumed and pallid, 15 A wingèd odor went away.

iii

Wanderers in that happy valley Through two luminous windows saw Spirits moving musically To a lute’s well-tunèd law, 20 Round about a throne, where sitting (Porphyrogene!)° born to purple, royal In state his glory well befi tting, The ruler of the realm was seen.

iv

And all with pearl and ruby glowing 25 Was the fair palace door, Through which came fl owing, fl owing, fl owing And sparkling evermore, A troop of Echoes whose sweet duty Was but to sing, 30 In voices of surpassing beauty, The wit and wisdom of their king.

v

But evil things, in robes of sorrow, Assailed the monarch’s high estate; (Ah, let us mourn, for never morrow 35 Shall dawn upon him, desolate!) And, round about his home, the glory That blushed and bloomed Is but a dim-remembered story Of the old time entombed. 40

robinson / richard cory 433

vi

And travelers now within that valley, Through the red-litten windows see Vast forms that move fantastically To a discordant melody; While, like a rapid ghastly river, 45 Through the pale door, A hideous throng rush out forever, And laugh — but smile no more.

On one level this poem describes how a once happy palace is desolated by “evil things” (line 33). If the reader pays close attention to the diction, however, an allegorical meaning becomes apparent on a second reading. A systematic pattern develops in the choice of words used to describe the palace, so that it comes to stand for a human mind. The palace, banners, windows, door, echoes, and throng are equated with a person’s head, hair, eyes, mouth, voice, and laughter. That mind, once harmoniously ordered, is overthrown by evil, haunting thoughts that lead to the mad laughter in the poem’s fi nal lines. Once the general pattern is seen, the rest of the details fall neatly into place to strengthen the parallels between the surface description of a palace and the allegorical representation of a disordered mind. Modern writers generally prefer symbol over allegory because they tend to be more interested in opening up the potential meanings of an experience instead of transforming it into a closed pattern of meaning. Perhaps the major difference is that while allegory may delight a reader’s imagination, symbol challenges and enriches it.

IRONY Another important resource writers use to take readers beyond literal meanings is irony, a technique that reveals a discrepancy between what appears to be and what is actually true. Here is a classic example in which appearances give way to the underlying reality.

Edwin Arlington Robinson (1869–1935)

Richard Cory 1897

Whenever Richard Cory went down town, We people on the pavement looked at him: He was a gentleman from sole to crown, Clean favored, and imperially slim.

And he was always quietly arrayed, 5 And he was always human when he talked;

434 symbol, allegory, and irony

But still he fl uttered pulses when he said, “Good-morning,” and he glittered when he walked.

And he was rich — yes, richer than a king — And admirably schooled in every grace: 10 In fi ne, we thought that he was everything To make us wish that we were in his place.

So on we worked, and waited for the light, And went without the meat, and cursed the bread; And Richard Cory, one calm summer night, 15 Went home and put a bullet through his head.

Richard Cory seems to have it all. Those less fortunate, the “people on the pavement,” regard him as well-bred, handsome, tasteful, and richly endowed with both money and grace. Until the fi nal line of the poem, the reader, like the speaker, is charmed by Cory’s good fortune, so quietly expressed in his decent, easy manner. That fi nal, shocking line, however, shatters the appearances of Cory’s life and reveals him to have been a desperately unhappy man. While everyone else assumes that Cory represented “everything” to which they aspire, the reality is that he could escape his miserable life only as a suicide. This discrepancy between what appears to be true and what actually exists is known as situational irony: What happens is entirely different from what is expected. We are not told why Cory shoots himself; instead, the irony in the poem shocks us into the recognition that appearances do not always refl ect realities. Words are also sometimes intended to be taken at other than face value. Verbal irony is saying something different from what is meant. If after reading “Richard Cory,” you said, “That rich gentleman sure was happy,” your statement would be ironic. Your tone of voice would indi- cate that just the opposite was meant; hence verbal irony is usually easy to detect in spoken language. In literature, however, a reader can some- times take literally what a writer intends ironically. The remedy for this kind of misreading is to pay close attention to the poem’s context. There is no formula that can detect verbal irony, but contradictory actions and statements as well as the use of understatement and overstatement can often be signals that verbal irony is present. Consider how verbal irony is used in this poem.

Kenneth Fearing (1902–1961)

AD 1938

Wanted: Men; Millions of men are wanted at once in a big new fi eld; New, tremendous, thrilling, great. If you’ve ever been a fi gure in the chamber of horrors,

cummings / next to of course god america i 435

If you’ve ever escaped from a psychiatric ward, 5 If you thrill at the thought of throwing poison into wells, have heavenly

visions of people, by the thousands, dying in fl ames —

You are the very man we want We mean business and our business is you Wanted: A race of brand-new men.

Apply: Middle Europe; 10 No skill needed; No ambition required; no brains wanted and no character allowed;

Take a permanent job in the coming profession Wages: Death.

This poem was written as Nazi troops stormed across Europe at the start of World War II. The advertisement suggests on the surface that killing is just an ordinary job, but the speaker indicates through understatement that there is nothing ordinary about the “business” of this “coming profession.” Fearing uses verbal irony to indicate how casually and mindlessly people are prepared to accept the horrors of war. “AD” is a satire, an example of the literary art of ridiculing a folly or vice in an effort to expose or correct it. The object of satire is usu- ally some human frailty; people, institutions, ideas, and things are all fair game for satirists. Fearing satirizes the insanity of a world mobiliz- ing itself for war: His irony reveals the speaker’s knowledge that there is nothing “New, tremendous, thrilling, [or] great ” about going off to kill and be killed. The implication of the poem is that no one should respond to advertisements for war. The poem serves as a satiric corrective to those who would troop off armed with unrealistic expectations: Wage war, and the wages consist of death. Dramatic irony is used when a writer allows a reader to know more about a situation than a character does. This creates a discrep- ancy between what a character says or thinks and what the reader knows to be true. Dramatic irony is often used to reveal character. In the following poem the speaker delivers a public address that ironically tells us more about him than it does about the patriotic holiday he is commemorating.

E. E. Cummings (1894–1962)

next to of course god america i 1926

“next to of course god america i love you land of the pilgrims’ and so forth oh say can you see by the dawn’s early my country ’tis of centuries come and go

436 symbol, allegory, and irony

and are no more what of it we should worry 5 in every language even deafanddumb thy sons acclaim your glorious name by gorry by jingo by gee by gosh by gum why talk of beauty what could be more beaut- iful than these heroic happy dead 10 who rushed like lions to the roaring slaughter they did not stop to think they died instead then shall the voice of liberty be mute?”

He spoke. And drank rapidly a glass of water

This verbal debauch of chauvinistic clichés (notice the run-on phrases and lines) reveals that the speaker’s relationship to God and country is not, as he claims, one of love. His public address suggests a hearty mindlessness that leads to “roaring slaughter” rather than to reverence or patriotism. Cummings allows the reader to see through the speaker’s words to their dangerous emptiness. What the speaker means and what Cummings means are entirely different. Like Fearing’s “AD,” this poem is a satire that invites the reader’s laughter and contempt in order to defl ate the benighted attitudes expressed in it. When a writer uses God, destiny, or fate to dash the hopes and expectations of a character or humankind in general, it is called cosmic irony. In “The Convergence of the Twain” (p. 389), for example, Thomas Hardy describes how “The Immanent Will” brought together the Titanic and a deadly iceberg. Technology and pride are no match for “the Spin- ner of the Years.” Here’s a painfully terse version of cosmic irony.

Stephen Crane (1871–1900)

A Man Said to the Universe 1899

A man said to the universe: “Sir, I exist!” “However,” replied the universe, “The fact has not created in me A sense of obligation.”

Unlike in “The Convergence of the Twain,” there is the slightest bit of humor in Crane’s poem, but the joke is on us. Irony is an important technique that allows a writer to distinguish between appearances and realities. In situational irony a discrepancy exists between what we expect to happen and what actually happens; in verbal irony a discrepancy exists between what is said and what is meant; in dramatic irony a discrepancy exists between what a character believes and what the reader knows to be true; and in cosmic irony a discrepancy

pierce / proof of origin 437

exists between what a character aspires to and what universal forces pro- vide. With each form of irony, we are invited to move beyond surface appearances and sentimental assumptions to see the complexity of expe- rience. Irony is often used in literature to reveal a writer’s perspective on matters that previously seemed settled.

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Bob Hicok (b. 1960)

Making it in poetry 2004

The young teller at the credit union asked why so many small checks from universities? 5 Because I write poems I said. Why haven’t I heard of you? Because I write poems 10 I said.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain how the speaker’s verbal irony is central to the poem’s humor.

2. What sort of portrait of the poet-speaker emerges from this very brief poem?

Kevin Pierce (b. 1958)

Proof of Origin 2005

NEWSWIRE — A U.S. judge ordered a Georgia school district to remove from textbooks stickers challenging the theory of evolution.

Though close to their hearts is the version that starts With Adam and Eve and no clothes, What enables their grip as the stickers they strip Is Darwinian thumbs that oppose.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do the rhymes contribute to the humorous tone?

438 symbol, allegory, and irony

2. Discuss the levels of irony in the poem. 3. How do you read the title? Can it be explained in more than one way?

Carl Sandburg (1878–1967)

Buttons 1905

I have been watching the war map slammed up for advertising in front of the newspaper offi ce.

Buttons — red and yellow buttons — blue and black buttons — are shoved back and forth across the map.

A laughing young man, sunny with freckles, Climbs a ladder, yells a joke to somebody in the crowd, And then fi xes a yellow button one inch west And follows the yellow button with a black button one inch west.

(Ten thousand men and boys twist on their bodies in a red soak along a river edge,

Gasping of wounds, calling for water, some rattling death in their throats.)

Who would guess what it cost to move two buttons one inch on the war map here in front of the newspaper offi ce where the freckle-faced young man is laughing to us?

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why is the date of this poem signifi cant? 2. Discuss the symbolic meaning of the buttons and whether you think

the symbolism is too spelled out or not. 3. What purpose does the “laughing young man, sunny with freckles”

(line 3) serve in the poem? 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Discuss the symbolic treat-

ment of war in this poem and in Kenneth Fearing’s “AD” (p. 434).

Wallace Stevens (1879–1955)

Anecdote of the Jar 1923

I placed a jar in Tennessee, And round it was, upon a hill. It made the slovenly wilderness Surround that hill.

The wilderness rose up to it, 5 And sprawled around, no longer wild.

tilley / richter 7.8 439

The jar was round upon the ground And tall and of a port in air.

It took dominion everywhere. The jar was gray and bare. 10 It did not give of bird or bush, Like nothing else in Tennessee.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is the jar different from its surroundings? What effect does the jar’s placement have upon the “slovenly wilder- ness” (line 3)?

2. What do you make of all the “round” sounds in lines 2, 4, 6, and 7? How do they echo the relationship between the jar and the wilderness?

3. In what sense might this poem be regarded as an anecdote about the power and limitations of art and nature?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the thematic func- tion of the jar in Stevens’s poem with that of the urn in John Keats’s “Ode on a Grecian Urn” (p. 394). What important similarities and differences do you see in the meanings of each? Discuss why you think Stevens and Keats have similar or different ideas about art.

Jim Tilley (b. 1950)

Richter 7.8 2009

Dark energy and dark matter describe proposed solutions to as yet unresolved gravitational phenomena. So far as we know, the two are distinct. — Robert Caldwell, cosmologist SciAm.com, August 28, 2006

Such a waste to spend a life thinking about the impossible to fi gure out, like where the spirit goes when detached from its body.

An alternate universe perhaps. That’s where dark matter enters, not how physicists hypothesize, 5 but the way it casts light on everyday affairs.

I, for one, am stuck on the question of how dark matter and energy can be separate and distinct when plain mass and energy are equivalent.

We’re told we need both types of darkness 10 to fi ll what’s missing, yet one pulls us together while the other propels us apart.

440 symbol, allegory, and irony

What we can’t fi nd in our world must be the substance of another, worlds that look to each other for what’s missing, 15

each a resting place for the other’s souls, an answer to why any god would allow a quake to bury nine hundred children under a school,

what’s so incomprehensible here on earth maybe making sense in the place where all those students 20 have found new fl esh to wear.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. In the fi nal two stanzas, how does the allusion to the May 2008 earthquake in the Sichuan province of China change the tone of this poem?

2. Explain how “dark matter and energy” are especially powerful con- cepts in the context of this poem about physics and metaphysics.

3. Discuss the effect of the image in lines 19–21. 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the theme of “Richter

7.8” with that of Robert Frost’s “Design” (p. 372).

William Stafford (1914–1993)

Traveling through the Dark 1962

Traveling through the dark I found a deer dead on the edge of the Wilson River road. It is usually best to roll them into the canyon: that road is narrow; to swerve might make more dead.

By glow of the tail-light I stumbled back of the car 5 and stood by the heap, a doe, a recent killing; she had stiffened already, almost cold. I dragged her off; she was large in the belly.

My fi ngers touching her side brought me the reason — her side was warm; her fawn lay there waiting, 10 alive, still, never to be born. Beside that mountain road I hesitated.

The car aimed ahead its lowered parking lights; under the hood purred the steady engine. I stood in the glare of the warm exhaust turning red; 15 around our group I could hear the wilderness listen.

I thought hard for us all — my only swerving — then pushed her over the edge into the river.

nowlan / the bull moose 441

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Notice the description of the car in this poem: the “glow of the tail-light” (line 5), the “lowered parking lights” (13), and how the engine “purred” (14). How do these and other details suggest symbolic meanings for the car and the “recent killing” (line 6)?

2. Discuss the speaker’s tone. Does the speaker seem, for example, tough, callous, kind, sentimental, confused, or confi dent?

3. What is the effect of the last stanza’s having only two lines rather than the established four lines of the previous stanzas?

4. Discuss the appropriateness of this poem’s title. In what sense has the speaker “thought hard for us all” (line 17)? What are those thoughts?

5. Is this a didactic poem?

Alden Nowlan (1933–1983)

The Bull Moose 1962

Down from the purple mist of trees on the mountain, lurching through forests of white spruce and cedar, stumbling through tamarack swamps, came the bull moose to be stopped at last by a pole-fenced pasture. 5

Too tired to turn or, perhaps, aware there was no place left to go, he stood with the cattle. They, scenting the musk of death, seeing his great head like the ritual mask of a blood god, moved to the other end of the fi eld, and waited. 10

The neighbors heard of it, and by afternoon cars lined the road. The children teased him with alder switches and he gazed at them like an old, tolerant collie. The women asked if he could have escaped from a Fair. 15

The oldest man in the parish remembered seeing a gelded moose yoked with an ox for plowing. The young men snickered and tried to pour beer down his throat, while their girl friends took their pictures.

The bull moose let them stroke his tick-ravaged fl anks, 20 let them pry open his jaws with bottles, let a giggling girl plant a little purple cap of thistles on his head.

When the wardens came, everyone agreed it was a shame to shoot anything so shaggy and cuddlesome. 25

442 symbol, allegory, and irony

He looked like the kind of pet women put to bed with their sons.

So they held their fi re. But just as the sun dropped in the river the bull moose gathered his strength like a scaffolded king, straightened and lifted his horns 30 so that even the wardens backed away as they raised their rifl es. When he roared, people ran to their cars. All the young men leaned on their automobile horns as he toppled.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the speaker present the moose and the townspeople? How are the moose and townspeople contrasted? Dis- cuss specifi c lines to support your response.

2. Explain how the symbols in this poem point to a confl ict between humanity and nature. What do you think the speaker’s attitude toward this confl ict is?

3. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. In an essay compare and con- trast how the animals portrayed in “The Bull Moose” and in Staf- ford’s “Traveling through the Dark” (p. 440) are used as symbols.

Julio Marzán (b. 1946)

Ethnic Poetry 1994

The ethnic poet said: “The earth is maybe a huge maraca / and the sun a trombone / and life / is to move your ass / to slow beats.” The ethnic audience roasted a suckling pig.

The ethnic poet said: “Oh thank Goddy, Goddy / 5 I be me, my toenails curled downward / deep, deep, deep into Mama earth.” The ethnic audience shook strands of sea shells.

The ethnic poet said: “The sun was created black / so we should imagine light / and also dream / 10 a walrus emerging from the broken ice.” The ethnic audience beat on sealskin drums.

The ethnic poet said: “Reproductive organs / Eagles nesting California redwoods / Shut up and listen to my ancestors.” 15 The ethnic audience ate fried bread and honey.

The ethnic poet said: “Something there is that doesn’t love a wall / That sends

merrill / casual wear 443

the frozen-ground-swell under it.” The ethnic audience deeply understood humanity. 20

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the implicit defi nition of ethnic poetry in this poem?

2. The fi nal stanza quotes lines from Robert Frost’s “Mending Wall” (p. 573). Read the entire poem. Why do you think Marzán chooses these lines and this particular poem as one kind of ethnic poetry?

3. What is the poem’s central irony? Pay particular attention to the fi nal line. What is being satirized here?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay that discusses the speakers’ ideas about what poetry should be in “Ethnic Poetry” and in Mary Oliver’s “The Poet with His Face in His Hands” (p. 373).

James Merrill (1926–1995)

Casual Wear 1984

Your average tourist: Fifty. 2.3 Times married. Dressed, this year, in Ferdi Plinthbower Originals. Odds 1 to 9 Against her strolling past the Embassy

Today at noon. Your average terrorist: 5 Twenty-fi ve. Celibate. No use for trends, At least in clothing. Mark, though, where it ends. People have come forth made of colored mist

Unsmiling on one hundred million screens To tell of his prompt phone call to the station, 10 “Claiming responsibility” — devastation Signed with a fl ourish, like the dead wife’s jeans.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of the statistics in this poem? 2. Describe the speaker’s tone. Is it appropriate for the subject matter?

Explain why or why not. 3. Comment on the ironies that emerge from the fi nal two lines. How

are the tourist and terrorist linked by the speaker’s description? Explain why you think the speaker sympathizes more with the tour- ist or the terrorist — or with neither.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the satire in this poem with that in Peter Meinke’s “The ABC of Aerobics” (p. 519). What is satirized in each poem? Which satire do you think is more pointed?

444 symbol, allegory, and irony

Robert Browning (1812–1889)

My Last Duchess 1842

Ferrara°

That’s my last Duchess painted on the wall, Looking as if she were alive. I call That piece a wonder, now: Frà Pandolf ’s°

hands Worked busily a day, and there she stands. Will’t please you sit and look at her? I said “Frà Pandolf ” by design, for never read Strangers like you that pictured countenance, The depth and passion of its earnest glance, But to myself they turned (since none puts by The curtain I have drawn for you, but I) 10 And seemed as they would ask me, if they durst, How such a glance came there; so, not the fi rst Are you to turn and ask thus. Sir, ’twas not Her husband’s presence only, called that spot Of joy into the Duchess’ cheek: perhaps 15 Frà Pandolf chanced to say “Her mantle laps Over my lady’s wrist too much,” or “Paint Must never hope to reproduce the faint Half-fl ush that dies along her throat”: such stuff Was courtesy, she thought, and cause enough 20 For calling up that spot of joy. She had A heart — how shall I say? — too soon made glad, Too easily impressed; she liked whate’er She looked on, and her looks went everywhere. Sir, ’twas all one! My favor at her breast, 25 The dropping of the daylight in the West, The bough of cherries some offi cious fool Broke in the orchard for her, the white mule She rode with round the terrace — all and each Would draw from her alike the approving speech, 30 Or blush, at least. She thanked men, — good! but thanked Somehow — I know not how — as if she ranked My gift of a nine-hundred-years-old name With anybody’s gift. Who’d stoop to blame This sort of trifl ing? Even had you skill 35 In speech — which I have not — to make your will

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

Ferrara: In the sixteenth century, the duke of this Italian city arranged to marry a second time after the mysterious death of his very young fi rst wife. 3 Frà Pandolf: A fi ctitious artist.

blake / the chimney sweeper 445

Quite clear to such an one, and say, “Just this Or that in you disgusts me; here you miss, Or there exceed the mark” — and if she let Herself be lessoned so, nor plainly set 40 Her wits to yours, forsooth, and made excuse, — E’en then would be some stooping; and I choose Never to stoop. Oh sir, she smiled, no doubt, Whene’er I passed her; but who passed without Much the same smile? This grew; I gave commands; 45 Then all smiles stopped together. There she stands As if alive. Will’t please you rise? We’ll meet The company below, then. I repeat, The Count your master’s known munifi cence Is ample warrant that no just pretense 50 Of mine for dowry will be disallowed; Though his fair daughter’s self, as I avowed At starting, is my object. Nay, we’ll go Together down, sir. Notice Neptune, though, Taming a sea-horse, thought a rarity, 55 Which Claus of Innsbruck° cast in bronze for me!

56 Claus of Innsbruck: Also a fi ctitious artist.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What do you think happened to the duchess? 2. To whom is the duke addressing his remarks about the duchess in

this poem? What is ironic about the situation? 3. Why was the duke unhappy with his fi rst wife? What does this reveal

about him? What does the poem’s title suggest about his attitude toward women in general?

4. What seems to be the visitor’s response (lines 53–54) to the duke’s account of his fi rst wife?

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay describing the ways in which the speakers of “My Last Duch ess” and Katharyn Howd Machan’s “Hazel Tells LaVerne” (p. 380) inadvertently reveal themselves.

William Blake (1757–1827)

The Chimney Sweeper 1789

When my mother died I was very young, And my father sold me while yet my tongue Could scarcely cry “ ’weep! ’weep! ’weep! ’weep!” So your chimneys I sweep, and in soot I sleep.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... 446 symbol, allegory, and irony

There’s little Tom Dacre, who cried when his head, 5 That curled like a lamb’s back, was shaved: so I said “Hush, Tom! never mind it, for when your head’s bare You know that the soot cannot spoil your white hair.”

And so he was quiet, and that very night, As Tom was a-sleeping, he had such a sight! 10 That thousands of sweepers, Dick, Joe, Ned, and Jack, Were all of them locked up in coffi ns of black.

And by came an Angel who had a bright key, And he opened the coffi ns and set them all free; Then down a green plain leaping, laughing, they run, 15 And wash in a river, and shine in the sun.

Then naked and white, all their bags left behind, They rise upon clouds and sport in the wind; And the Angel told Tom, if he’d be a good boy, He’d have God for his father, and never want joy. 20

And so Tom awoke; and we rose in the dark, And got with our bags and our brushes to work. Though the morning was cold, Tom was happy and warm; So if all do their duty they need not fear harm.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss the validity of this statement: “‘The Chim- ney Sweeper’ is a sentimental poem about a shameful eighteenth- century social problem; such a treatment of child abuse cannot be taken seriously.”

2. Characterize the speaker in this poem and describe his tone. Is his tone the same as the poet’s? Consider especially lines 7, 8, and 24.

3. What is the symbolic value of the dream in lines 11 to 20? 4. Why is irony central to the meaning of this poem?

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

447

In a poem the words should be as pleasing to the ear as the meaning is to the mind.

— MARIANNE MOORE

LISTENING TO POETRY Poems yearn to be read aloud. Much of their energy, charm, and beauty come to life only when they are heard. Poets choose and arrange words for their sounds as well as for their meanings. Most poetry is best read with your lips, teeth, and tongue because they serve to articulate the effects that sound may have in a poem. When a voice is breathed into a good poem, there is pleasure in the reading, the saying, and the hearing. The earliest poetry — before writing and paint- ing — was chanted or sung. The rhythmic quality of such oral perfor- mances served two purposes: It helped the chanting bard remember the lines and it entertained audiences with patterned sounds of language, which were sometimes accompanied by musical instruments. Poetry has always been closely related to music. Indeed, as the word suggests, lyric poetry evolved from songs. “Western Wind” (p. 360), an anonymous Middle English lyric, survived as song long before it was written down. Had Robert Frost lived in a nonliterate society, he probably would have sung some version — a very different version to be sure — of “Acquainted with the Night” (p. 429) instead of writing it down. Even though Frost creates

16 Sounds

WEB Explore the poetic elements in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

Bettmann/corbis.

448 sounds

a speaking rather than a singing voice, the speaker’s anxious tone is dis- tinctly heard in any careful reading of the poem. Like lyrics, early narrative poems were originally part of an anony- mous oral folk tradition. A ballad told a story that was sung from one generation to the next until it was fi nally transcribed. Since the eigh- teenth century, this narrative form has sometimes been imitated by poets who write literary ballads. John Keats’s “La Belle Dame sans Merci” (p. 577) is, for example, a more complex and sophisticated nineteenth- century refl ection of the original ballad traditions that developed in the fi fteenth century and earlier. In considering poetry as sound, we should not forget that poetry traces its beginnings to song. Of course, reading a ballad is not the same as hearing it. Like the lyr- ics of a song, many poems must be heard — or at least read with listening eyes — before they can be fully understood and enjoyed. The sounds of words are a universal source of music for human beings. This has been so from ancient tribes to bards to the two-year-old child in a bakery glee- fully chanting “Cuppitycake, cuppitycake!” Listen to the sound of this poem as you read it aloud. How do the words provide, in a sense, their own musical accompaniment?

John Updike (1932–2009)

Player Piano 1958

My stick fi ngers click with a snicker And, chuckling, they knuckle the keys; Light-footed, my steel feelers fl icker And pluck from these keys melodies.

My paper can caper; abandon 5 Is broadcast by dint of my din, And no man or band has a hand in The tones I turn on from within.

At times I’m a jumble of rumbles, At others I’m light like the moon, 10 But never my numb plunker fumbles, Misstrums me, or tries a new tune.

The speaker in this poem is a piano that can play automatically by means of a mechanism that depresses keys in response to signals on a perfo- rated roll. Notice how the speaker’s voice approximates the sounds of a piano. In each stanza a predominant sound emerges from the carefully chosen words. How is the sound of each stanza tuned to its sense? Like Updike’s “Player Piano,” this next poem is also primarily about sounds.

swenson / a nosty fright 449

May Swenson (1919–1989)

A Nosty Fright 1984

The roldengod and the soneyhuckle, the sack eyed blusan and the wistle theed are all tangled with the oison pivy, the fallen nine peedles and the wumbleteed.

A mipchunk caught in a wobceb tried 5 to hip and skide in a dandy sune but a stobler put up a EEP KOFF sign. Then the unfucky lellow met a phytoon

and was sept out to swea. He difted for drays till a hassgropper fl ying happened to spot 10 the boolish feast all debraggled and wet, covered with snears and tot.

Loonmight shone through the winey poods where rushmooms grew among risted twoots. Back blats fl ew betreen the twees 15 and orned howls hounded their soots.

A kumkpin stood with tooked creeth on the sindow will of a house where a icked wold itch lived all alone except for her stoombrick, a mitten and a kouse. 20

“Here we part,” said hassgropper. “Pere we hart,” said mipchunk, too. They purried away on opposite haths, both scared of some “Bat!” or “Scoo!”

October was ending on a nosty fright 25 with scroans and greeches and chanking clains, with oblins and gelfs, coaths and urses, skinning grulls and stoodblains.

Will it ever be morning, Nofember virst, skue bly and the sappy hun, our friend? 30 With light breaves of wall by the fayside? I sope ho, so that this oem can pend.

At just the right moments Swenson transposes letters to create amusing sound effects and wild wordplays. Although there is a story lurking in “A Nosty Fright,” any serious attempt to interpret its meaning is confronted with “a EEP KOFF sign.” Instead, we are invited to enjoy the delicious sounds the poet has cooked up.

450 sounds

Few poems revel in sound so completely. More typically, the sounds of a poem contribute to its meaning rather than become its meaning. Consider how sound is used in the next poem.

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

A Bird came down the Walk — c. 1862

A Bird came down the Walk — He did not know I saw — He bit an Angleworm in halves And ate the fellow, raw,

And then he drank a Dew 5 From a convenient Grass — And then hopped sidewise to the Wall To let a Beetle pass —

He glanced with rapid eyes That hurried all around — 10 They looked like frightened Beads, I thought — He stirred his Velvet Head

Like one in danger, Cautious, I offered him a Crumb And he unrolled his feathers 15 And rowed him softer home —

Than Oars divide the Ocean, Too silver for a seam — Or Butterfl ies, off Banks of Noon Leap, plashless as they swim. 20

This description of a bird offers a close look at how differently a bird moves when it hops on the ground than when it fl ies in the air. On the ground the bird moves quickly, awkwardly, and irregularly as it plucks up a worm, washes it down with dew, and then hops aside to avoid a passing beetle. The speaker recounts the bird’s rapid, abrupt actions from a somewhat superior, amused perspective. By describing the bird in human terms (as if, for example, it chose to eat the worm “raw”), the speaker is almost condescending. But when the attempt to offer a crumb fails and the frightened bird fl ies off, the speaker is left looking up instead of down at the bird. With that shift in perspective the tone shifts from amusement to awe in response to the bird’s graceful fl ight. The jerky movements of lines 1 to 13 give way to the smooth motion of lines 15 to 20. The pace of the fi rst three stanzas is fast and discontinuous. We tend to pause at the end of each line, and this reinforces a sense of disconnected movements.

dickinson / a bird came down the walk 451

In contrast, the fi nal six lines are to be read as a single sentence in one fl owing movement, lubricated by various sounds. Read again the description of the bird fl ying away. Several o-sounds contribute to the image of the serene, expansive, confi dent fl ight, just as the s-sounds serve as smooth transitions from one line to the next. Notice how these sounds are grouped in the following vertical columns:

unrolled softer Too his Ocean Banks rowed Oars Noon feathers silver plashless home Or softer seam as Ocean off Oars Butterfl ies swim

This blending of sounds (notice how “Leap, plashless” brings together the p- and l-sounds without a ripple) helps convey the bird’s smooth grace in the air. Like a feathered oar, the bird moves seamlessly in its element. The repetition of sounds in poetry is similar to the function of the tones and melodies that are repeated, with variations, in music. Just as the patterned sounds in music unify a work, so do the words in poems, which have been carefully chosen for the combinations of sounds they create. These sounds are produced in a number of ways. The most direct way in which the sound of a word suggests its mean- ing is through onomatopoeia, which is the use of a word that resembles the sound it denotes: quack, buzz, rattle, bang, squeak, bowwow, burp, choo-choo, ding-a-ling, sizzle. The sound and sense of these words are closely related, but such words represent a very small percentage of the words available to us. Poets usually employ more subtle means for echoing meanings. Onomatopoeia can consist of more than just single words. In its broadest meaning the term refers to lines or passages in which sounds help to convey meanings, as in these lines from Updike’s “Player Piano”:

My stick fi ngers click with a snicker And, chuckling, they knuckle the keys.

The sharp, crisp sounds of these two lines approximate the sounds of a piano; the syllables seem to “click” against one another. Contrast Updike’s rendition with the following lines:

My long fi ngers play with abandon And, laughing, they cover the keys.

The original version is more interesting and alive because the sounds of the words are pleasurable and reinforce the meaning through a careful blending of consonants and vowels. Alliteration is the repetition of the same consonant sounds at the beginnings of nearby words: “descending dewdrops,” “luscious lemons.” Sometimes the term is also used to describe the consonant sounds within words: “trespasser’s reproach,” “wedded lady.” Alliteration is based on sound rather than spelling. “Keen” and “car” alliterate, but “car” does

452 sounds

not alliterate with “cite.” Rarely is heavy-handed alliteration effective. Used too self-consciously, it can be distracting instead of strengthening meaning or emphasizing a relation between words. Consider the relent- less h’s in this line: “Horrendous horrors haunted Helen’s happiness.” Those h’s certainly suggest that Helen is being pursued, but they have a more comic than serious effect because they are overdone. Assonance is the repetition of the same vowel sound in nearby words: “asleep under a tree,” “time and tide,” “haunt” and “awesome,” “each eve- ning.” Both alliteration and assonance help to establish relations among words in a line or a series of lines. Whether the effect is euphony (lines that are musically pleasant to the ear and smooth, like the fi nal lines of Dick- inson’s “A Bird came down the Walk —”) or cacophony (lines that are dis- cordant and diffi cult to pronounce, like the claim that “never my numb plunker fumbles” in Updike’s “Player Piano”), the sounds of words in poetry can be as signifi cant as the words’ denotative or connotative meanings. This next poem provides a feast of sounds. Read the poem aloud and try to determine the effects of its sounds.

Galway Kinnell (b. 1927)

Blackberry Eating 1980

I love to go out in late September among the fat, overripe, icy, black

blackberries to eat blackberries for breakfast, the stalks very prickly, a penalty they earn for knowing the black art of blackberry-making; and as I stand among

them lifting the stalks to my mouth, the ripest

berries fall almost unbidden to my tongue, as words sometimes do, certain peculiar words like strengths or squinched, 10 many-lettered, one-syllabled lumps, which I squeeze, squinch open, and splurge well in the silent, startled, icy, black language of blackberry-eating in late September.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What types of sounds does Kinnell use throughout this poem? What categories can you place them in? What is the effect of these sounds?

Photo by Charlie Nye.

armour / going to extremes 453

2. How do lines 4–6 fi t into the poem? What does this prickly image add to the poem?

3. Explain what you think the poem’s theme is. 4. Write an essay that considers the speaker’s love of blackberry eating

along with the speaker’s appetite for words. How are the two blended in the poem?

RHYME Like alliteration and assonance, rhyme is a way of creating sound pat- terns. Rhyme, broadly defi ned, consists of two or more words or phrases that repeat the same sounds: happy and snappy. Rhyme words often have similar spellings, but that is not a requirement of rhyme; what matters is that the words sound alike: vain rhymes with reign as well as rain. More- over, words may look alike but not rhyme at all. In eye rhyme the spell- ings are similar, but the pronunciations are not, as with bough and cough, or brow and blow. Not all poems use rhyme. Many great poems have no rhymes, and many weak verses use rhyme as a substitute for poetry. These are espe- cially apparent in commercial messages and greeting-card lines. At its worst, rhyme is merely a distracting decoration that can lead to dullness and predictability. But used skillfully, rhyme creates lines that are mem- orable and musical. Here is a poem using rhyme that you might remember the next time you are in a restaurant.

Richard Armour (1906–1989)

Going to Extremes 1954

Shake and shake The catsup bottle None’ll come — And then a lot’ll.

The experience recounted in Armour’s poem is common enough, but the rhyme’s humor is special. The fi nal line clicks the poem shut — an effect that is often achieved by the use of rhyme. That click provides a sense of a satisfying and fulfi lled form. Rhymes have a number of uses: They can emphasize words, direct a reader’s attention to relations between words, and provide an overall structure for a poem. Rhyme is used in the following poem to imitate the sound of cascad- ing water.

454 sounds

Robert Southey (1774–1843)

From “The Cataract of Lodore” 1820

“How does the water

Come down at Lodore?” . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . From its sources which well In the tarn on the fell; From its fountains 5 In the mountains, Its rills and its gills; Through moss and through brake, It runs and it creeps For awhile, till it sleeps 10 In its own little lake. And thence at departing, Awakening and starting, It runs through the reeds And away it proceeds, 15 Through meadow and glade, In sun and in shade, And through the wood-shelter, Among crags in its fl urry, Helter-skelter, 20 Hurry-scurry. Here it comes sparkling, And there it lies darkling; Now smoking and frothing Its tumult and wrath in, 25 Till in this rapid race On which it is bent, It reaches the place Of its steep descent.

The cataract strong 30 Then plunges along, Striking and raging As if a war waging Its caverns and rocks among: Rising and leaping, 35 Sinking and creeping, Swelling and sweeping, Showering and springing, Flying and fl inging, Writhing and ringing, 40

southey / from “the cataract of lodore” 455

Eddying and whisking, Spouting and frisking, Turning and twisting, Around and around With endless rebound! 45 Smiting and fi ghting, A sight to delight in; Confounding, astounding, Dizzying and deafening the ear with its sound. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Dividing and gliding and sliding, 50 And falling and brawling and sprawling, And driving and riving and striving, And sprinkling and twinkling and wrinkling, And sounding and bounding and rounding, And bubbling and troubling and doubling, 55 And grumbling and rumbling and tumbling, And clattering and battering and shattering; Retreating and beating and meeting and sheeting, Delaying and straying and playing and spraying, Advancing and prancing and glancing and dancing, 60 Recoiling, turmoiling and toiling and boiling, And gleaming and streaming and steaming and beaming, And rushing and fl ushing and brushing and gushing, And fl apping and rapping and clapping and slapping, And curling and whirling and purling and twirling, 65 And thumping and plumping and bumping and jumping, And dashing and fl ashing and splashing and clashing; And so never ending, but always descending, Sounds and motions forever and ever are blending, All at once and all o’er, with a mighty uproar; 70 And this way the water comes down at Lodore.

This deluge of rhymes consists of “Sounds and motions forever and ever . . . blending” (line 69). The pace quickens as the water creeps from its mountain source and then descends in rushing cataracts. As the speed of the water increases, so do the number of rhymes, until they run in fours: “dashing and fl ashing and splashing and clashing” (line 67). Most rhymes meander through poems instead of fl ooding them; nevertheless, Southey’s use of rhyme suggests how sounds can fl ow with meanings. “The Cataract of Lodore” has been criticized, however, for overusing onomatopoeia. Some readers fi nd the poem silly; others regard it as a brilliant example of sound effects. What do you think? A variety of types of rhyme is available to poets. The most common form, end rhyme, comes at the ends of lines (lines 14–17).

456 sounds

It runs through the reeds And away it proceeds, Through meadow and glade, In sun and in shade.

Internal rhyme places at least one of the rhymed words within the line, as in “Dividing and gliding and sliding” (line 50) or, more subtly, in the fourth and fi nal words of “In mist or cloud, on mast or shroud.” The rhyming of single-syllable words such as glade and shade is known as masculine rhyme, as we see in these lines from A. E. Housman:

Loveliest of trees, the cherry now Is hung with bloom along the bough.

Rhymes using words of more than one syllable are also called masculine when the same sound occurs in a fi nal stressed syllable, as in defend, con- tend; betray, away. A feminine rhyme consists of a rhymed stressed syllable followed by one or more rhymed unstressed syllables, as in butter, clutter; gratitude, attitude; quivering, shivering. This rhyme is evident in John Mil- lington Synge’s verse:

Lord confound this surly sister, Blight her brow and blotch and blister.

All of the examples so far have been exact rhymes because they share the same stressed vowel sounds as well as any sounds that follow the vowel. In near rhyme (also called off rhyme, slant rhyme, and approximate rhyme), the sounds are almost but not exactly alike. There are several kinds of near rhyme. One of the most common is consonance, an identi- cal consonant sound preceded by a different vowel sound: home, same; worth, breath; trophy, daffy. Near rhyme can also be achieved by using dif- ferent vowel sounds with identical consonant sounds: sound, sand; kind, conned; fellow, fallow. The dissonance of blade and blood in the following lines from Wilfred Owen helps to reinforce their grim tone:

Let the boy try along this bayonet-blade How cold steel is, and keen with hunger of blood.

Near rhymes greatly broaden the possibility for musical effects in English, a language that, compared with Spanish or Italian, contains few exact rhymes. Do not assume, however, that a near rhyme represents a failed attempt at exact rhyme. Near rhymes allow a musical subtlety and variety and can avoid the sometimes overpowering jingling effects that exact rhymes may create. These basic terms hardly exhaust the ways in which the sounds in poems can be labeled and discussed, but the terms can help you to describe how poets manipulate sounds for effect. Read “God’s Gran- deur” (p. 457) aloud and try to determine how the sounds of the lines contribute to their sense.

hopkins / god’s grandeur 457

SOUND AND MEANING

Gerard Manley Hopkins (1844–1889)

God’s Grandeur 1877

The world is charged with the grandeur of God. It will fl ame out, like shining from shook foil;° shaken gold foil It gathers to a greatness, like the ooze of oil Crushed.° Why do men then now not reck his rod?° Generations have trod, have trod, have trod; 5 And all is seared with trade; bleared, smeared with toil; And wears man’s smudge and shares man’s smell: the soil Is bare now, nor can foot feel, being shod.

And for all this, nature is never spent; There lives the dearest freshness deep down things; 10 And though the last lights off the black West went Oh, morning, at the brown brink eastward, springs — Because the Holy Ghost over the bent World broods with warm breast and with ah! bright wings.

4 Crushed: Olives crushed in their oil; reck his rod: Obey God.

The subject of this poem is announced in the title and the fi rst line: “The world is charged with the grandeur of God.” The poem is a celebration of the power and greatness of God’s presence in the world, but the speaker is also perplexed and dismayed by people who refuse to recognize God’s authority and grandeur as they are manifested in the creation. Instead of glorifying God, “men” have degraded the earth through meaningless toil and cut themselves off from the spiritual renewal inherent in the beauty of nature. The relentless demands of commerce and industry have blinded people to the earth’s natural and spiritual resources. Despite this abuse and insensitivity to God’s grandeur, however, “nature is never spent”; the morning light that “springs” in the east redeems the “black West” of the night and is a sign that the spirit of the Holy Ghost is ever present in the world. This summary of the poem sketches some of the thematic signifi cance of the lines, but it does not do justice to how they are organized around the use of sound. Hopkins’s poem, unlike Southey’s “The Cataract of Lodore,” uses sounds in a subtle and complex way. In the opening line Hopkins uses alliteration — a device apparent in almost every line of the poem — to connect “God” to the “world,” which is “charged” with his “grandeur.” These consonants unify the line as well. The alliteration in lines 2 and 3 suggests a harmony in the creation: The f ’s in “f lame” and “foil,” the sh’s in “shining” and “shook,” the g’s in “gathers”

458 sounds

and “greatness,” and the visual (not alliterative) similarities of “ooze of oil” emphasize a world that is held together by God’s will. That harmony is abruptly interrupted by the speaker’s angry ques- tion in line 4: “Why do men then now not reck his rod?” The question is as painful to the speaker as it is diffi cult to pronounce. The arrangement of the alliteration (“now,” “not”; “reck,” “rod”), the assonance (“not,” “rod”; “men,” “then,” “reck”), and the internal rhyme (“men,” “then”) contribute to the diffi culty in saying the line — a diffi culty associated with human behavior. That behavior is introduced in line 5 by the repetition of “have trod” to emphasize the repeated mistakes — sins — committed by human beings. The tone is dirgelike because humanity persists in its mistaken path rather than progressing. The speaker’s horror at humanity is evident in the cacophonous sounds of lines 6 to 8. Here the alliteration of “smeared,” “smudge,” and “smell” along with the internal rhymes of “seared,” “bleared,” and “smeared” echo the disgust with which the speaker views humanity’s “toil” with the “soil,” an end rhyme that calls attention to our mistaken equation of nature with production rather than with spirituality. In contrast to this cacophony, the fi nal six lines build toward the joy- ful recognition of the new possibilities that accompany the rising sun. This recognition leads to the euphonic description of the “Holy Ghost over” (notice the reassuring consistency of the assonance) the world. Tra- ditionally represented as a dove, the Holy Ghost brings love and peace to the “world,” and “broods with warm breast and with ah! bright wings.” The effect of this alliteration is mellifl uous: The sound bespeaks the harmony that prevails at the end of the poem resulting from the speaker’s recogni- tion that “nature is never spent” because God loves and protects the world. The sounds of “God’s Grandeur” enhance the poem’s theme; more can be said about its sounds, but it is enough to point out here that for this poem the sound strongly echoes the theme in nearly every line. Here are some more poems in which sound plays a signifi cant role.

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Lewis Carroll (Charles Lutwidge Dodgson/1832–1898)

Jabberwocky 1871

’Twas brillig, and the slithy toves Did gyre and gimble in the wabe: All mimsy were the borogoves, And the mome raths outgrabe.

“Beware the Jabberwock, my son! 5 The jaws that bite, the claws that catch! Beware the Jubjub bird, and shun The frumious Bandersnatch!”

dickinson / i heard a fly buzz — when i died — 459

He took his vorpal sword in hand; Long time the manxome foe he sought — 10 So rested he by the Tumtum tree, And stood awhile in thought.

And, as in uffi sh thought he stood, The Jabberwock, with eyes of fl ame, Came whiffl ing through the tulgey wood, 15 And burbled as it came!

One, two! One, two! And through and through The vorpal blade went snicker-snack! He left it dead, and with its head He went galumphing back. 20

“And hast thou slain the Jabberwock? Come to my arms, my beamish boy! O frabjous day! Callooh, Callay!” He chortled in his joy.

’Twas brillig, and the slithy toves 25 Did gyre and gimble in the wabe: All mimsy were the borogoves, And the mome raths outgrabe.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What happens in this poem? Does it have any meaning?

2. Not all of the words used in this poem appear in dictionaries. In Through the Looking Glass, Humpty Dumpty explains to Alice that “‘slithy’ means ‘lithe and slimy.’ ‘Lithe’ is the same as ‘active.’ You see it’s like a portmanteau — there are two meanings packed up into one word.” Are there any other portmanteau words in the poem?

3. Which words in the poem sound especially meaningful, even if they are devoid of any denotative meanings?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare Carroll’s strategies for creating sound and meaning with those used by Swenson in “A Nosty Fright” (p. 449).

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

I heard a Fly buzz — when I died — c. 1862

I heard a Fly buzz — when I died — The Stillness in the Room Was like the Stillness in the Air — Between the Heaves of Storm —

460 sounds

The Eyes around — had wrung them dry — 5 And Breaths were gathering fi rm For that last Onset — when the King Be witnessed — in the Room —

I willed my Keepsakes — Signed away What portion of me be 10 Assignable — and then it was There interposed a Fly —

With Blue — uncertain stumbling Buzz — Between the light — and me — And then the Windows failed — and then 15 I could not see to see —

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What was expected to happen “when the King” was “witnessed” (lines 7–8)? What happened instead?

2. Why do you think Dickinson chooses a fl y rather than perhaps a bee or gnat?

3. What is the effect of the last line? Why not end the poem with “I could not see” instead of the additional “to see”?

4. Discuss the sounds in the poem. Are there any instances of ono- matopoeia?

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

Stopping by Woods on a Snowy Evening 1923

Whose woods these are I think I know. His house is in the village, though; He will not see me stopping here To watch his woods fi ll up with snow.

My little horse must think it queer 5 To stop without a farmhouse near Between the woods and frozen lake The darkest evening of the year.

He gives his harness bells a shake To ask if there is some mistake. 10 The only other sound’s the sweep Of easy wind and downy fl ake.

The woods are lovely, dark and deep, But I have promises to keep,

donne / song 461

And miles to go before I sleep, 15 And miles to go before I sleep.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the signifi cance of the setting in this poem? How is tone conveyed by the images?

2. Although the last two lines are identical, they are not read at the same speed. Why the difference? What is achieved by the repetition?

3. What is the poem’s rhyme scheme? What is the effect of the rhyme in the fi nal stanza?

John Donne (1572–1631)

Song 1633

Go and catch a falling star, Get with child a mandrake root,° Tell me where all past years are, Or who cleft the Devil’s foot, Teach me to hear mermaids singing, 5 Or to keep off envy’s stinging, And fi nd What wind Serves to advance an honest mind.

If thou be’st borne to strange sights, 10 Things invisible to see, Ride ten thousand days and nights, Till age snow white hairs on thee, Thou, when thou return’st, wilt tell me All strange wonders that befell thee, 15 And swear Nowhere Lives a woman true, and fair.

If thou fi ndst one, let me know, Such a pilgrimage were sweet — 20 Yet do not, I would not go, Though at next door we might meet; Though she were true, when you met her, And last, till you write your letter, Yet she 25 Will be False, ere I come, to two or three.

2 mandrake root: This V-shaped root resembles the lower half of the human body.

462 sounds

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the speaker’s tone in this poem? What is his view of a woman’s love? What does the speaker’s use of hyperbole reveal about his emotional state?

2. Do you think Donne wants the speaker’s argument to be taken seri- ously? Is there any humor in the poem?

3. Most of these lines end with masculine rhymes. What other kinds of rhymes are used for end rhymes?

Paul Humphrey (b. 1915)

Blow 1983

Her skirt was lofted by the gale; When I, with gesture deft, Essayed to stay her frisky sail She luffed, and laughed, and left.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do alliteration and assonance contribute to the euphonic effects in this poem?

2. What is the poem’s controlling metaphor? Why is it especially appropriate?

3. Explain the ambiguity of the title.

Robert Francis (1901–1987)

The Pitcher 1953

His art is eccentricity, his aim How not to hit the mark he seems to aim at,

His passion how to avoid the obvious, His technique how to vary the avoidance.

The others throw to be comprehended. He 5 Throws to be a moment misunderstood.

Yet not too much. Not errant, arrant, wild, But every seeming aberration willed.

Not to, yet still, still to communicate Making the batter understand too late. 10

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain how each pair of lines in this poem works together to describe the pitcher’s art.

chasin / the word PLUM 463

2. Consider how the poem itself works the way a good pitcher does. Which lines illustrate what they describe?

3. Comment on the effects of the poem’s rhymes. How are the fi nal two lines different in their rhyme from the previous lines? How does sound echo sense in lines 9–10?

4. Write an essay that examines “The Pitcher” as an extended metaphor for talking about poetry. How well does the poem characterize strat- egies for writing poetry as well as pitching?

Helen Chasin (b. 1938)

The Word Plum 1968

The word plum is delicious

pout and push, luxury of self-love, and savoring murmur full in the mouth and falling like fruit 5

taut skin pierced, bitten, provoked into juice, and tart fl esh

question and reply, lip and tongue 10 of pleasure.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of the repetitions of the allitera- tion and assonance throughout the poem? How does it contribute to the poem’s meaning?

2. Which sounds in the poem are like the sounds one makes while eat- ing a plum?

3. Discuss the title. Explain whether you think this poem is more about the word plum or about the plum itself. Can the two be separated in the poem?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. How is Galway Kinnell’s “Black- berry Eating” (p. 452) similar in technique to Chasin’s poem? Try writ- ing such a poem yourself: Choose a food to describe that allows you to evoke its sensuousness in sounds.

464

I would defi ne, in brief, the Poetry of words as the Rhythmical Creation of Beauty. Its sole arbiter is Taste.

— EDGAR ALLAN POE1

The rhythms of everyday life surround us in regularly recurring move- ments and sounds. As you read these words, your heart pulsates while somewhere else a clock ticks, a cradle rocks, a drum beats, a dancer sways, a foghorn blasts, a wave recedes, or a child skips. We may tend to over- look rhythm because it is so tightly woven into the fabric of our experi- ence, but it is there nonetheless, one of the conditions of life. Rhythm is also one of the conditions of speech because the voice alternately rises and falls as words are stressed or unstressed and as the pace quickens or slack- ens. In poetry rhythm refers to the recurrence of stressed and unstressed sounds. Depending on how the sounds are arranged, this can result in a pace that is fast or slow, choppy or smooth.

17 Patterns of Rhythm

WEB Explore the poetic element in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

1 Photograph by W. S. Hartshorn. 1848. Prints and Photographs Division, Library of Congress.

SOME PRINCIPLES OF METER Poets use rhythm to create pleasurable sound patterns and to rein- force meanings. “Rhythm,” Edith Sitwell once observed, “might be described as, to the world of sound, what light is to the world of sight.

some principles of meter 465

It shapes and gives new meaning.” Prose can use rhythm effectively too, but prose that does so tends to be an exception. The follow- ing exceptional lines are from a speech by Winston Churchill to the House of Commons after Allied forces lost a great battle to German forces at Dunkirk during World War II:

We shall not fl ag or fail. We shall go on to the end. We shall fi ght in France, we shall fi ght on the seas and oceans, we shall fi ght with growing confi dence and growing strength in the air, we shall defend our island, whatever the cost may be, we shall fi ght on the beaches, we shall fi ght on the landing grounds, we shall fi ght in the fi elds and in the streets, we shall fi ght in the hills; we shall never surrender.

The stressed repetition of “we shall” bespeaks the resolute single- ness of purpose that Churchill had to convey to the British people if they were to win the war. Repetition is also one of the devices used in poetry to create rhythmic effects. In the following excerpt from “Song of the Open Road,” Walt Whitman urges the pleasures of limit- less freedom on his reader:

Allons!° the road is before us! Let’s go! It is safe — I have tried it—my own feet have tried it well — be not detain’d! Let the paper remain on the desk unwritten, and the book on the shelf unopen’d! Let the tools remain in the workshop! Let the money remain unearn’d! Let the school stand! mind not the cry of the teacher!

These rhythmic lines quickly move away from conventional values to the open road of shared experiences. Their recurring sounds are created not by rhyme or alliteration and assonance (see Chapter 16) but by the repeti- tion of words and phrases. Although the repetition of words and phrases can be an effective means of creating rhythm in poetry, the more typical method consists of patterns of accented or unaccented syllables. Words contain syllables that are either stressed or unstressed. A stress (or accent) places more emphasis on one syllable than on another. We say “syllable” not “syl- lable,” “emphasis” not “emphasis.” We routinely stress syllables when we speak: “Is she content with the contents of the yellow package?” To dis- tinguish between two people we might say “Is she content . . . ?” In this way stress can be used to emphasize a particular word in a sentence. Poets often arrange words so that the desired meaning is suggested by the rhythm; hence emphasis is controlled by the poet rather than left entirely to the reader. When a rhythmic pattern of stresses recurs in a poem, the result is meter. Taken together, all the metrical elements in a poem make up what is called the poem’s prosody. Scansion consists of measuring the stresses in a line to determine its metrical pattern. Several methods can be used to mark lines. One widely used system uses © for a stressed syllable and ˘ for an

466 patterns of rhythm

unstressed syllable. In a sense, the stress mark represents the equivalent of tapping one’s foot to a beat:

HIckory, dIckory, dOck, The mOuse ran Up the clOck. The clOck struck oNe, And dowN he ruN, HIckory, dIckory, dOck.

In the fi rst two lines and the fi nal line of this familiar nursery rhyme we hear three stressed syllables. In lines 3 and 4, where the meter changes for variety, we hear just two stressed syllables. The combination of stresses provides the pleasure of the rhythm we hear. To hear the rhythms of “Hickory, dickory, dock” does not require a formal study of meter. Nevertheless, an awareness of the basic kinds of meter that appear in English poetry can enhance your understanding of how a poem achieves its effects. Understanding the sound effects of a poem and having a vocabulary with which to discuss those effects can intensify your pleasure in poetry. Although the study of meter can be extremely technical, the terms used to describe the basic meters of En- glish poetry are relatively easy to comprehend. The foot is the metrical unit by which a line of poetry is measured. A foot usually consists of one stressed and one or two unstressed syllables. A vertical line is used to separate the feet: “The clOck | struck oNe” consists of two feet. A foot of poetry can be arranged in a variety of patterns; here are fi ve of the chief ones:

Foot Pattern Example

iamb ˘´ awAy trochee ´˘ LOvely anapest ˘˘´ understAnd dactyl ´˘˘ dEsperate spondee ´´ dEad sEt

The most common lines in English poetry contain meters based on iambic feet. However, even lines that are predominantly iambic will often include variations to create particular effects. Other important patterns include trochaic, anapestic, and dactylic feet. The spondee is not a sus- tained meter but occurs for variety or emphasis.

Iambic What kEpt | his eyEs | from gIv | ing bAck | the gAze

Trochaic HE was | loUder | thAn the | prEacher

some principles of meter 467

Anapestic Ĭ am calLed | to the frOnt | of the roOm

Dactylic SiNg it all | mErrily

These meters have different rhythms and can create different effects. Iambic and anapestic are known as rising meters because they move from unstressed to stressed sounds, while trochaic and dactylic are known as falling meters. Anapests and dactyls tend to move more lightly and rapidly than iambs or trochees. Although no single kind of meter can be consid- ered always better than another for a given subject, it is possible to deter- mine whether the meter of a specifi c poem is appropriate for its subject. A serious poem about a tragic death would most likely not be well served by lilting rhythms. Keep in mind, too, that though one or another of these four basic meters might constitute the predominant rhythm of a poem, variations can occur within lines to change the pace or call attention to a particular word. A line is measured by the number of feet it contains. Here, for example, is an iambic line with three feet: “If sHe | should wRite | a nOte.” These are the names for line lengths:

monometer: one foot pentameter: fi ve feet dimeter: two feet hexameter: six feet trimeter: three feet heptameter: seven feet tetrameter: four feet octameter: eight feet

By combining the name of a line length with the name of a foot, we can describe the metrical qualities of a line concisely. Consider, for example, the pattern of feet and length of this line:

I didn’t want the boy to hit the dog.

The iambic rhythm of this line falls into fi ve feet; hence it is called iam- bic pentameter. Iambic is the most common pattern in English poetry because its rhythm appears so naturally in English speech and writing. Unrhymed iambic pentameter is called blank verse; Shakespeare’s plays are built on such lines. Less common than the iamb, trochee, anapest, or dactyl is the spondee, a two-syllable foot in which both syllables are stressed (©©). Note the effect of the spondaic foot at the beginning of this line:

DEad sEt | agaiNst | the pLan | he wEnt | awAy.

Spondees can slow a rhythm and provide variety and emphasis, particu- larly in iambic and trochaic lines. A line that ends with a stressed syl- lable is said to have a masculine ending, whereas a line that ends with an extra unstressed syllable is said to have a feminine ending. Consider, for

468 patterns of rhythm

example, these two lines from Timothy Steele’s “Waiting for the Storm” (the entire poem appears on p. 470):

feminine: The sAnd | at my fEet | grow cOld | er, masculine: The damp | aIr chIll | and sprEad.

The effects of English meters are easily seen in the following lines by Samuel Taylor Coleridge, in which the rhythm of each line illustrates the meter described in it:

Trochee trips from long to short; From long to long in solemn sort Slow Spondee stalks; strong foot yet ill able Ever to come up with Dactylic trisyllable. Iambics march from short to long — With a leap and a bound the swift Anapests throng.

The speed of a line is also affected by the number of pauses in it. A pause within a line is called a caesura and is indicated by a double verti- cal line (||). A caesura can occur anywhere within a line and need not be indicated by punctuation:

Camerado, || I give you my hand! I give you my love || more precious than money.

A slight pause occurs within each of these lines and at its end. Both kinds of pauses contribute to the lines’ rhythm. When a line has a pause at its end, it is called an end-stopped line. Such pauses refl ect normal speech patterns and are often marked by punctua- tion. A line that ends without a pause and continues into the next line for its meaning is called a run-on line. Running over from one line to another is also called enjambment. The fi rst and eighth lines of the following poem are run-on lines; the rest are end-stopped.

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

My Heart Leaps Up 1807

My heart leaps up when I behold A rainbow in the sky: So was it when my life began; So is it now I am a man; So be it when I shall grow old, Or let me die! The child is father of the Man; And I could wish my days to be Bound each to each by natural piety.

wordsworth / my heart leaps up 469

Run-on lines have a different rhythm from end-stopped lines. Lines 3 and 4 and lines 8 and 9 are iambic, but the effect of their two rhythms is very dif- ferent when we read these lines aloud. The enjambment of lines 8 and 9 rein- forces their meaning; just as the “days” are bound together, so are the lines. The rhythm of a poem can be affected by several devices: the kind and number of stresses within lines, the length of lines, and the kinds of pauses that appear within lines or at their ends. In addition, as we saw in Chapter 16, the sound of a poem is affected by alliteration, assonance, rhyme, and conso- nance. These sounds help to create rhythms by controlling our pronuncia- tions, as in the following lines by Alexander Pope:

Soft is the strain when Zephyr gently blows, And the smooth stream in smoother numbers fl ows; But when loud surges lash the sounding shore, The hoarse, rough verse should like the torrent roar.

These lines are effective because their rhythm and sound work with their meaning.

These suggestions should help you in talking about a poem’s meter.

1. After reading the poem through, read it aloud and mark the stressed syllables in each line. Then mark the unstressed syllables.

2. From your markings, identify what kind of foot is dominant (iambic, trochaic, dactylic, or anapestic) and divide the lines into feet, keeping in mind that the vertical line marking a foot may come in the middle of a word as well as at its beginning or end.

3. Determine the number of feet in each line. Remember that there may be variations; some lines may be shorter or longer than the predominant meter. What is important is the overall pattern. Do not assume that variations represent the poet’s inability to fulfi ll the overall pattern. Notice the effects of variations and whether they emphasize words and phrases or disrupt your expec- tation for some other purpose.

4. Listen for pauses within lines and mark the caesuras; many times there will be no punctuation to indicate them.

5. Recognize that scansion does not always yield a defi nitive mea- surement of a line. Even experienced readers may differ over the scansion of a given line. What is important is not a precise descrip- tion of the line but an awareness of how a poem’s rhythms con- tribute to its effects.

Suggestions for Scanning a Poem

470 patterns of rhythm

The following poem demonstrates how you can use an under- standing of meter and rhythm to gain a greater appreciation for what a poem is saying.

Timothy Steele (b. 1948)

Waiting for the Storm 1986

BrEeze sEnt | a wRink | ling dArk | ness ĂcrOss | the Bay. || Ĭ knElt B̆enEath | an Up | turned bOat, And, Mo | ment by Mo | ment, fElt

T̆he sAnd | at my fEet | grow cOld | Er, T̆he damp | Air chIll | and spRead. Then the | fi Rst rAin | drOps sOund | ed On the hUll | abOve | my hEad.

The predominant meter of this poem is iambic trimeter, but there is plenty of variation as the storm rapidly approaches and fi nally begins to pelt the sheltered speaker. The emphatic spondee (“Breeze sent”) pushes the darkness quickly across the bay while the caesura at the end of the sentence in line 2 creates a pause that sets up a feeling of suspense and expectation that is measured in the ticking rhythm of line 4, a run-on line that brings us into the chilly sand and air of the second stanza. Per- haps the most impressive sound effect used in the poem appears in the second syllable of “sounded” in line 7. That “ed” precedes the sound of the poem’s fi nal word, “head,” just as if it were the fi rst drop of rain hit- ting the hull above the speaker. The visual, tactile, and auditory images make “Waiting for the Storm” an intense sensory experience. This next poem also reinforces meanings through its use of meter and rhythm.

William Butler Yeats (1865–1939)

That the Night Come 1912

She lIved | in stOrm | and stRife, Her soUl | had sUch | desirE For whAt | proud dEath | may brIng That It | could nOt | enduRe The cOm | mon goOd | of lIfe, 5

tennyson / break, break, break 471

But liVed | as ’twEre | a kIng That paCked | his mAr | riage dAy With bAn | nerEt | and pEn | non, TRumpet | and kEt | tledrum, ANd the | outrAg | eous cAn | non, 10 To buN | dle tiMe | awAy THat tHe | nigHt coMe.

Scansion reveals that the predominant meter here is iambic trim- eter: Each line contains three stressed and unstressed syllables that form a regular, predictable rhythm through line 7. That rhythm is disrupted, however, when the speaker compares the woman’s longing for what death brings to a king’s eager anticipation of his wedding night. The king packs the day with noisy fanfares and celebrations to fi ll up time and distract himself. Unable to accept “The common good of life,” the woman fi lls her days with “storm and strife.” In a determined effort “To bundle time away,” she, like the king, impatiently awaits the night. Lines 8–10 break the regular pattern established in the fi rst seven lines. The extra unstressed syllable in lines 8 and 10 along with the trochaic feet in lines 9 (“trUmpet”) and 10 (“ANd the”) interrupt the basic iambic trimeter and parallel the woman’s and the king’s frenetic activity. These lines thus echo the inability of the woman and king to “endure” regular or normal time. The last line is the most irregular in the poem. The fi nal two accented syllables sound like the deep resonant beats of a kettle- drum or a cannon fi ring. The words “night come” dramatically remind us that what the woman anticipates is not a lover but the mysterious fi nality of death. The meter serves, then, in both its regularity and varia- tions to reinforce the poem’s meaning and tone. The following poems are especially rich in their rhythms and sounds. As you read and study them, notice how patterns of rhythm and the sounds of words reinforce meanings and contribute to the poems’ effects. And, per- haps most important, read the poems aloud so that you can hear them.

POEMS FOR FURTHER STUDY

Alfred, Lord Tennyson (1809–1892)

Break, Break, Break 1842

Break, break, break, On thy cold gray stones, O Sea! And I would that my tongue could utter The thoughts that arise in me.

472 patterns of rhythm

O, well for the fi sherman’s boy, 5 That he shouts with his sister at play! O, well for the sailor lad, That he sings in his boat on the bay!

And the stately ships go on To their haven under the hill; 10 But O for the touch of a vanished hand, And the sound of a voice that is still!

Break, break, break At the foot of thy crags, O Sea! But the tender grace of a day that is dead 15 Will never come back to me.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Paraphrase the poem and describe its tone. 2. How do lines 1 and 13 differ from the predominant meter of the rest

of the lines? How do these lines control the poem’s tone? 3. What is the effect of the repetition? What does “break” refer to in

addition to the waves?

Alice Jones (b. 1949)

The Foot 1993

Our improbable support, erected on the osseous architecture of the calcaneus, talus, cuboid, navicular, cuneiforms, metatarsals, phalanges, a plethora of hinges, 5

all strung together by gliding tendons, covered by the pearly plantar fascia, then fat-padded to form the sole, humble surface of our contact with earth. 10

Here the body’s broadest tendon anchors the heel’s fl eshy base, the fi nely wrinkled skin stretches forward across the capillaried arch, to the ball, a balance point. 15

A wide web of fl exor tendons and branched veins maps the dorsum, fades into the stub-laden bone

dove / fox trot fridays 473

splay, the stuffed sausage sacks of toes, each with a tuft 20

of proximal hairs to introduce the distal nail, whose useless curve remembers an ancestor, the vanished creature’s wild and necessary claw. 25

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of the diction? What sort of tone is established by the use of anatomical terms? How do the terms affect the rhythm?

2. Jones has described the form of “The Foot” as “fi ve stubby stanzas.” Explain why the lines of this poem may or may not warrant this description of the stanzas.

Rita Dove (b. 1952)

Fox Trot Fridays 2001

Thank the stars there’s a day each week to tuck in

the grief, lift your pearls, and stride brush stride

quick-quick with a 5 heel-ball-toe. Smooth

as Nat King Cole’s slow satin smile,

easy as taking one day at a time: 10

one man and one woman,

rib to rib, with no heartbreak in sight—

just the sweep of Paradise 15 and the space of a song

to count all the wonders in it.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain how the rhythm of the lines is aptly part- nered with the fox trot.

474 patterns of rhythm

2. Do some background research so that you can discuss why Dove chooses Nat King Cole as the right kind of singer for this poem.

3. The fox trot is more than a dance step for Dove. What is its appeal in this poem?

Robert Herrick (1591–1674)

Delight in Disorder 1648

A sweet disorder in the dress Kindles in clothes a wantonness. A lawn° about the shoulders thrown linen scarf Into a fi ne distraction; An erring lace, which here and there 5 Enthralls the crimson stomacher, A cuff neglectful, and thereby Ribbons to fl ow confusedly; A winning wave, deserving note, In the tempestuous petticoat; 10 A careless shoestring, in whose tie I see a wild civility; Do more bewitch me than when art Is too precise in every part.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why does the speaker in this poem value “disor- der” so highly? How do the poem’s organization and rhythmic order relate to its theme? Are they “precise in every part” (line 14)?

2. Which words in the poem indicate disorder? Which words indicate the speaker’s response to that disorder? What are the connotative meanings of each set of words? Why are they appropriate? What do they suggest about the woman and the speaker?

3. Write a short essay in which you agree or disagree with the speaker’s views on dress.

Ben Jonson (1573–1637)

Still to Be Neat 1609

Still° to be neat, still to be dressed, continually As you were going to a feast; Still to be powdered, still perfumed; Lady, it is to be presumed,

blake / the lamb 475

Though art’s hid causes are not found, 5 All is not sweet, all is not sound.

Give me a look, give me a face That makes simplicity a grace; Robes loosely fl owing, hair as free; Such sweet neglect more taketh me 10 Then all th’ adulteries of art. They strike mine eyes, but not my heart.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What are the speaker’s reservations about the lady in the fi rst stanza? What do you think “sweet” means in line 6?

2. What does the speaker want from the lady in the second stanza? How has the meaning of “sweet” shifted from line 6 to line 10? What other words in the poem are especially charged with connotative meanings?

3. How do the rhythms of Jonson’s lines help to reinforce meanings? Pay particular attention to lines 6 and 12.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing the themes of “Still to Be Neat” and Herrick’s preceding poem, “Delight in Disorder.” How do the speakers make similar points but from dif- ferent perspectives?

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. How does the rhythm of “Still to Be Neat” compare with that of “Delight in Disorder”? Which do you fi nd more effective? Explain why.

William Blake (1757–1827)

The Lamb 1789

Little Lamb, who made thee? Dost thou know who made thee? Gave thee life, and bid thee feed By the stream and o’er the mead; Gave thee clothing of delight, Softest clothing, wooly, bright; Gave thee such a tender voice, Making all the vales rejoice? Little Lamb, who made thee? Dost thou know who made thee?

Little Lamb, I’ll tell thee, Little Lamb, I’ll tell thee: He is callèd by thy name, For he calls himself a Lamb.

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

476 patterns of rhythm

He is meek, and he is mild; 15 He became a little child. I a child, and thou a lamb, We are callèd by his name. Little Lamb, God bless thee! Little Lamb, God bless thee! 20

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. This poem is from Blake’s Songs of Innocence. Describe its tone. How do the meter, rhyme, and repetition help to characterize the speaker’s voice?

2. Why is it signifi cant that the animal addressed by the speaker is a lamb? What symbolic value would be lost if the animal were, for example, a doe?

3. How does the second stanza answer the question raised in the fi rst? What is the speaker’s view of the creation?

William Blake (1757–1827)

The Tyger 1794

Tyger! Tyger! burning bright In the forests of the night, What immortal hand or eye Could frame thy fearful symmetry?

In what distant deeps or skies 5 Burnt the fi re of thine eyes? On what wings dare he aspire? What the hand dare seize the fi re?

And what shoulder, and what art, Could twist the sinews of thy heart? 10 And when thy heart began to beat, What dread hand? and what dread feet?

What the hammer? what the chain? In what furnace was thy brain? What the anvil? what dread grasp 15 Dare its deadly terrors clasp?

When the stars threw down their spears, And watered heaven with their tears, Did he smile his work to see? Did he who made the Lamb make thee? 20

Tyger! Tyger! burning bright In the forests of the night,

sandburg / chicago 477

What immortal hand or eye Dare frame thy fearful symmetry?

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. This poem from Blake’s Songs of Experience is often paired with “The Lamb.” Describe the poem’s tone. Is the speaker’s voice the same here as in “The Lamb”? Which words are repeated, and how do they contribute to the tone?

2. What is revealed about the nature of the tiger by the words used to describe its creation? What do you think the tiger symbolizes?

3. Unlike in “The Lamb,” more than one question is raised in “The Tyger.” What are these questions? Are they answered?

4. Compare the rhythms in “The Lamb” and “The Tyger.” Each basi- cally uses a seven-syllable line, but the effects are very different. Why?

5. Using these two poems as the basis of your discussion, describe what distinguishes innocence from experience.

Carl Sandburg (1878–1967)

Chicago 1916

Hog Butcher for the World, Tool Maker, Stacker of Wheat, Player with Railroads and the Nation’s Freight Handler; Stormy, husky, brawling, City of the Big Shoulders: 5

They tell me you are wicked and I believe them, for I have seen your painted women under the gas lamps luring the farm boys.

And they tell me you are crooked and I answer: Yes, it is true I have seen the gunman kill and go free to kill again.

And they tell me you are brutal and my reply is: On the faces of women and children I have seen the marks of wanton hunger.

And having answered so I turn once more to those who sneer at this my city, and I give them back the sneer and say to them:

Come and show me another city with lifted head singing so proud to be alive and coarse and strong and cunning. 10

Flinging magnetic curses amid the toil of piling job on job, here is a tall bold slugger set vivid against the little soft cities;

Fierce as a dog with tongue lapping for action, cunning as a savage pitted against the wilderness,

Bareheaded, Shoveling, Wrecking, 15 Planning, Building, breaking, rebuilding,

478 patterns of rhythm

Under the smoke, dust all over his mouth, laughing with white teeth, Under the terrible burden of destiny laughing as a young man laughs, Laughing even as an ignorant fi ghter laughs who has never lost a battle, 20 Bragging and laughing that under his wrist is the pulse, and under his

ribs the heart of the people, Laughing! Laughing the stormy, husky, brawling laughter of Youth, half-naked,

sweating, proud to be Hog Butcher, Tool Maker, Stacker of Wheat, Player with Railroads and Freight Handler to the Nation.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Sandburg’s personifi cation of Chicago creates a strong identity for the city. Explain why you fi nd the city attractive or not.

2. How do the length and rhythm of lines 1 to 5 compare with those of the fi nal lines?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Using “Chicago” as a model for style, try writing a tribute or condemnation about a place that you know well. Make an effort to use vivid images and stylistic techniques that capture its rhythms.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare “Chicago” with Wil- liam Blake’s “London” (p. 405) in style and theme.

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

“Out, Out —”° 1916

The buzz-saw snarled and rattled in the yard And made dust and dropped stove-length sticks of wood, Sweet-scented stuff when the breeze drew across it. And from there those that lifted eyes could count Five mountain ranges one behind the other 5 Under the sunset far into Vermont. And the saw snarled and rattled, snarled and rattled, As it ran light, or had to bear a load. And nothing happened: day was all but done. Call it a day, I wish they might have said 10 To please the boy by giving him the half hour That a boy counts so much when saved from work. His sister stood beside them in her apron To tell them “Supper.” At the word, the saw, As if to prove saws knew what supper meant, 15 Leaped out at the boy’s hand, or seemed to leap —

“Out, Out —”: From Act V, Scene v, of Shakespeare’s Macbeth.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... roethke / my papa’s waltz 479

He must have given the hand. However it was, Neither refused the meeting. But the hand! The boy’s fi rst outcry was a rueful laugh, As he swung toward them holding up the hand 20 Half in appeal, but half as if to keep The life from spilling. Then the boy saw all — Since he was old enough to know, big boy Doing a man’s work, though a child at heart — He saw all spoiled. “Don’t let him cut my hand off — 25 The doctor, when he comes. Don’t let him, sister!” So. But the hand was gone already. The doctor put him in the dark of ether. He lay and puffed his lips out with his breath. And then — the watcher at his pulse took fright. 30 No one believed. They listened at his heart. Little — less — nothing! — and that ended it. No more to build on there. And they, since they Were not the one dead, turned to their affairs.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. This narrative poem is about the accidental death of a Vermont boy. What is the purpose of the story? Some readers have argued that the fi nal lines reveal the speaker’s callousness and indif- ference. What do you think?

2. How does Frost’s allusion to Macbeth contribute to the meaning of this poem? Does the speaker seem to agree with the view of life expressed in Macbeth’s lines?

3. Explain how the rhythm of lines 30–31 is related to the action they describe.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the tone and theme of “ ‘Out, Out —’ ” with those of Stephen Crane’s “A Man Said to the Universe” (p. 436).

Theodore Roethke (1908–1963)

My Papa’s Waltz 1948

The whiskey on your breath Could make a small boy dizzy; But I hung on like death: Such waltzing was not easy.

We romped until the pans 5 Slid from the kitchen shelf; My mother’s countenance Could not unfrown itself.

WEB Explore contexts for Theodore Roethke and approaches to this poem at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

480 patterns of rhythm

The hand that held my wrist Was battered on one knuckle; 10 At every step you missed My right ear scraped a buckle.

You beat time on my head With a palm caked hard by dirt, Then waltzed me off to bed 15 Still clinging to your shirt.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What details characterize the father in this poem? How does the speaker’s choice of words reveal his feeling about his father? Is the remembering speaker still a boy?

2. Characterize the rhythm of the poem. Does it move “like death” (line 3), or is it more like a waltz? Is the rhythm regular throughout the poem? What is its effect?

3. Comment on the appropriateness of the title. Why do you suppose Roethke didn’t use “My Father’s Waltz”?

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

481

A short poem need not be small. — MARVIN BELL

Poems come in a variety of shapes. Although the best poems always have their own unique qualities, many of them also conform to traditional patterns. Frequently the form of a poem — its overall structure or shape — follows an already established design. A poem that can be categorized by the patterns of its lines, meter, rhymes, and stanzas is considered a fi xed form because it follows a prescribed model such as a sonnet. However, poems written in a fi xed form do not always fi t models precisely; writ- ers sometimes work variations on traditional forms to create innovative effects. Not all poets are content with variations on traditional forms. Some prefer to create their own structures and shapes. Poems that do not con- form to established patterns of meter, rhyme, and stanza are called free verse or open form poetry. (See Chapter 19 for further discussion of open forms.) This kind of poetry creates its own ordering principles through the careful arrangement of words and phrases in line lengths that embody rhythms appropriate to the meaning. Modern and contempo- rary poets in particular have learned to use the blank space on the page as a signifi cant functional element (for a striking example, see Cummings’s “in Just-,” p. 507). Good poetry of this kind is structured in ways that can be as demanding, interesting, and satisfying as fi xed forms. Open and fi xed forms represent different poetic styles, but they are identical in the

18 Poetic Forms

© Tom Jorgensen/The University of Iowa.

482 poetic forms

sense that both use language in concentrated ways to convey meanings, experiences, emotions, and effects.

SOME COMMON POET IC FORMS A familiarity with some of the most frequently used fi xed forms of poetry is useful because it allows for a better understanding of how a poem works. Classifying patterns allows us to talk about the effects of estab- lished rhythm and rhyme and to recognize how signifi cant variations from them affect the pace and meaning of the lines. An awareness of form also allows us to anticipate how a poem is likely to proceed. As we shall see, a sonnet creates a different set of expectations in a reader from those of, say, a limerick. A reader isn’t likely to fi nd in limericks the kind of serious themes that often make their way into sonnets. The discussion that follows identifi es some of the important poetic forms frequently encountered in English poetry. The shape of a fi xed-form poem is often determined by the way in which the lines are organized into stanzas. A stanza consists of a group- ing of lines, set off by a space, that usually has a set pattern of meter and rhyme. This pattern is ordinarily repeated in other stanzas throughout the poem. What is usual is not obligatory, however; some poems may use a different pattern for each stanza, somewhat like paragraphs in prose. Traditionally, though, stanzas do share a common rhyme scheme, the pattern of end rhymes. We can map out rhyme schemes by noting patterns of rhyme with lowercase letters: The fi rst rhyme sound is desig- nated a, the second becomes b, the third c, and so on. Using this system, we can describe the rhyme scheme in the following poem this way: aabb, ccdd, eeff.

A. E. Housman (1859–1936)

Loveliest of trees, the cherry now 1896

Loveliest of trees, the cherry now a Is hung with bloom along the bough, a And stands about the woodland ride b Wearing white for Eastertide. b

Now, of my threescore years and ten, c 5 Twenty will not come again, c And take from seventy springs a score, d It only leaves me fi fty more. d

And since to look at things in bloom e Fifty springs are little room, e 10

herrick / upon julia’s clothes 483

About the woodlands I will go f To see the cherry hung with snow. f

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the speaker’s attitude in this poem toward time and life?

2. Why is spring an appropriate season for the setting rather than, say, winter?

3. Paraphrase each stanza. How do the images in each reinforce the poem’s themes?

4. Lines 1 and 12 are not intended to rhyme, but they are close. What is the effect of the near rhyme of “now” and “snow”? How does the rhyme enhance the theme?

Poets often create their own stanzaic patterns; hence there is an infi nite number of kinds of stanzas. One way of talking about stanzaic forms is to describe a given stanza by how many lines it contains. A couplet consists of two lines that usually rhyme and have the same meter; couplets are frequently not separated from each other by space on the page. A heroic couplet consists of rhymed iambic pentameter. Here is an example from Alexander Pope’s “Essay on Criticism”:

One science only will one genius fi t; a So vast is art, so narrow human wit: a Not only bounded to peculiar arts, b But oft in those confi ned to single parts. b

A tercet is a three-line stanza. When all three lines rhyme, they are called a triplet. Two triplets make up this captivating poem.

Robert Herrick (1591–1674)

Upon Julia’s Clothes 1648

Whenas in silks my Julia goes, a Then, then, methinks, how sweetly fl ows a That liquefaction of her clothes. a

Next, when I cast mine eyes, and see b That brave vibration, each way free, b O, how that glittering taketh me! b

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What purpose does alliteration serve in this poem? 2. Comment on the effect of the meter. How is it related to the speak-

er’s description of Julia’s clothes?

484 poetic forms

3. Look up the word brave in the Oxford English Dictionary. Which of its meanings is appropriate to describe Julia’s movement? Some readers interpret lines 4–6 to mean that Julia has no clothes on. What do you think?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the tone of this poem with that of Paul Humphrey’s “Blow” (p. 462). Are the situations and speakers similar? Is there any difference in tone between these two poems?

Terza rima consists of an interlocking three-line rhyme scheme: aba, bcb, cdc, ded, and so on. Dante’s Divine Comedy uses this pattern, as does Robert Frost’s “Acquainted with the Night” (p. 429) and Percy Bysshe Shelley’s “Ode to the West Wind” (p. 499). A quatrain, or four-line stanza, is the most common stanzaic form in the English language and can have various meters and rhyme schemes (if any). The most common rhyme schemes are aabb, abba, aaba, and abcb. This last pattern is especially characteristic of the popular ballad stanza, which consists of alternating eight- and six-syllable lines. Samuel Taylor Coleridge adopted this pattern in “The Rime of the Ancient Mariner”; here is one representative stanza:

All in a hot and copper sky The bloody Sun, at noon, Right up above the mast did stand, No bigger than the Moon.

There are a number of longer stanzaic forms, and the list of types of stanzas could be extended considerably, but knowing these three most basic patterns should prove helpful to you in talking about the form of a great many poems. In addition to stanzaic forms, there are fi xed forms that characterize entire poems. Lyric poems can be, for example, sonnets, villanelles, sestinas, or epigrams.

Sonnet

The sonnet has been a popular literary form in English since the six- teenth century, when it was adopted from the Italian sonnetto, mean- ing “little song.” A sonnet consists of fourteen lines, usually written in iambic pentameter. Because the sonnet has been such a favorite form, writers have experimented with many variations on its essential struc- ture. Nevertheless, there are two basic types of sonnets: the Italian and the English. The Italian sonnet (also known as the Petrarchan sonnet, from the fourteenth-century Italian poet Petrarch) divides into two parts. The fi rst eight lines (the octave) typically rhyme abbaabba. The fi nal six lines (the sestet) may vary; common patterns are cdecde, cdcdcd, and cdccdc. Very

keats / on first looking into chapman’s homer 485

often the octave presents a situation, an attitude, or a problem that the sestet comments upon or resolves, as in John Keats’s “On First Looking into Chapman’s Homer.”

John Keats (1795–1821)

On First Looking into Chapman’s Homer° 1816

Much have I traveled in the realms of gold, And many goodly states and kingdoms seen; Round many western islands have I

been Which bards in fealty to Apollo° hold. Oft of one wide expanse had I been told That deep-browed Homer ruled as his demesne; Yet did I never breathe its pure

serene° atmosphere Till I heard Chapman speak out loud and bold: Then felt I like some watcher of the skies When a new planet swims into his ken; 10 Or like stout Cortez° when with eagle eyes He stared at the Pacifi c — and all his men Looked at each other with a wild surmise — Silent, upon a peak in Darien.

Chapman’s Homer: Before reading George Chapman’s (ca. 1560–1634) poetic Elizabethan translations of Homer’s Iliad and Odyssey, Keats had known only stilted and pedestrian eighteenth-century translations. 4 Apollo: Greek god of poetry. 11 Cortez: Vasco Núñez de Balboa, not Hernando Cortés, was the fi rst European to sight the Pacifi c from Darien, a peak in Panama.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How do the images shift from the octave to the sestet? How does the tone change? Does the meaning change as well?

2. What is the controlling metaphor of this poem? 3. What is it that the speaker discovers? 4. How does the rhythm of the lines change between the octave and the

sestet? How does that change refl ect the tones of both the octave and the sestet?

5. Does Keats’s mistake concerning Cortés and Balboa affect your read- ing of the poem? Explain why or why not.

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

486 poetic forms

The Italian sonnet pattern is also used in the next sonnet, but notice that the thematic break between octave and sestet comes within line 9 rather than between lines 8 and 9. This unconventional break helps to reinforce the speaker’s impatience with the conventional attitudes he describes.

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

The World Is Too Much with Us 1807

The world is too much with us; late and soon, Getting and spending, we lay waste our powers; Little we see in Nature that is ours; We have given our hearts away, a sordid boon! This Sea that bares her bosom to the moon; 5 The winds that will be howling at all hours, And are up-gathered now like sleeping fl owers; For this, for everything, we are out of tune; It moves us not. — Great God! I’d rather be A Pagan suckled in a creed outworn; 10 So might I, standing on this pleasant lea, Have glimpses that would make me less forlorn; Have sight of Proteus rising from the sea; Or hear old Triton blow his wreathèd horn.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the speaker’s complaint in this sonnet? How do the conditions described affect him?

2. Look up “Proteus” and “Triton.” What do these mythological allusions contribute to the sonnet’s tone?

3. What is the effect of the personifi cation of the sea and wind in the octave?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the theme of this son- net with that of Gerard Manley Hopkins’s “God’s Grandeur” (p. 457).

The English sonnet, more commonly known as the Shakespearean sonnet, is organized into three quatrains and a couplet, which typically rhyme abab cdcd efef gg. This rhyme scheme is more suited to English poetry because English has fewer rhyming words than Italian. English sonnets, because of their four-part organization, also have more fl exibility about where thematic breaks can occur. Frequently, however, the most pronounced break or turn comes with the concluding couplet. In the following Shakespearean sonnet, the three quatrains compare the speaker’s loved one to a summer’s day and explain why the loved one is even more lovely. The couplet bestows eternal beauty and love upon both the loved one and the sonnet.

shakespeare / my mistress’ eyes are nothing like the sun 487

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

Shall I compare thee to a summer’s day? 1609

Shall I compare thee to a summer’s day? Thou art more lovely and more temperate: Rough winds do shake the darling buds of May, And summer’s lease hath all too short a date. Sometime too hot the eye of heaven shines, 5 And often is his gold complexion dimmed; And every fair from fair sometime declines, By chance, or nature’s changing course, untrimmed. But thy eternal summer shall not fade, Nor lose possession of that fair thou ow’st° possess 10 Nor shall death brag thou wand’rest in his shade, When in eternal lines to time thou grow’st. So long as men can breathe or eyes can see, So long lives this, and this gives life to thee.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the shift in tone and subject matter that begins in line 9.

2. Why is the speaker’s loved one more lovely than a summer’s day? What qualities does he admire in the loved one?

3. What does the couplet say about the relation between art and love? 4. Which syllables are stressed in the fi nal line? How do these syllables

relate to the line’s meaning?

Sonnets have been the vehicles for all kinds of subjects, including love, death, politics, and cosmic questions. Although most sonnets tend to treat their subjects seriously, this fi xed form does not mean a fi xed expression; humor is also possible in it. Compare this next Shakespearean sonnet with “Shall I compare thee to a summer’s day?” They are, fi nally, both love poems, but their tones are markedly different.

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

My mistress’ eyes are nothing like the sun 1609

My mistress’ eyes are nothing like the sun; Coral is far more red than her lips’ red; If snow be white, why then her breasts are dun; If hairs be wires, black wires grow on her head. I have seen roses damasked red and white, 5

488 poetic forms

But no such roses see I in her cheeks; And in some perfumes is there more delight Than in the breath that from my mistress reeks. I love to hear her speak, yet well I know That music hath a far more pleasing sound; 10 I grant I never saw a goddess go: My mistress, when she walks, treads on the ground. And yet, by heaven, I think my love as rare As any she,° belied with false compare. lady

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What does “mistress” mean in this sonnet? Write a description of this particular mistress based on the images used in the sonnet.

2. What sort of person is the speaker? Does he truly love the woman he describes?

3. In what sense are this sonnet and “Shall I compare thee to a sum- mer’s day?” about poetry as well as love?

Edna St. Vincent Millay (1892–1950)

I will put Chaos into fourteen lines 1954

I will put Chaos into fourteen lines And keep him there; and let him thence escape If he be lucky; let him twist, and ape Flood, fi re, and demon — his adroit designs Will strain to nothing in the strict confi nes Of this sweet Order, where, in pious rape, I hold his essence and amorphous shape, Till he with Order mingles and combines. Past are the hours, the years, of our duress, His arrogance, our awful servitude: 10 I have him. He is nothing more nor less Than something simple not yet understood; I shall not even force him to confess; Or answer. I will only make him good.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Does the poem contain “Chaos”? If so, how? If not, why not?

2. What properties of a sonnet does this poem possess? 3. What do you think is meant by the phrase “pious rape” in line 6?

© corbis.

jarman / unholy sonnet 489

4. What is the effect of the personifi cation in the poem? 5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the theme of this

poem with that of Robert Frost’s “Design” (p. 372).

Molly Peacock (b. 1947)

Desire 1984

It doesn’t speak and it isn’t schooled, like a small foetal animal with wettened fur. It is the blind instinct for life unruled, visceral frankincense and animal myrrh. It is what babies bring to kings, 5 an eyes-shut, ears-shut medicine of the heart that smells and touches endings and beginnings without the details of time’s experienced part- fi t-into-part-fi t-into-part. Like a paw, it is blunt; like a pet who knows you 10 and nudges your knee with its snout — but more raw and blinder and younger and more divine, too, than the tamed wild — it’s the drive for what is real, deeper than the brain’s detail: the drive to feel.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Taken together, what do all of the metaphors that appear in this poem reveal about the speaker’s conception of desire?

2. What is the “it” being described in lines 1–5? How do the allusions to the three wise men relate to the other metaphors used to defi ne desire?

3. How is this English sonnet structured? What is the effect of its irreg- ular meter?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the treatment of desire in this poem with that of Sharon Olds’s “Last Night” (p. 388). In an essay, identify the theme of each poem and compare their con- ceptions of desire. How alike are these two poems?

Mark Jarman (b. 1952)

Unholy Sonnet 1993

After the praying, after the hymn-singing, After the sermon’s trenchant commentary On the world’s ills, which make ours secondary, After communion, after the hand-wringing,

490 poetic forms

And after peace descends upon us, bringing 5 Our eyes up to regard the sanctuary And how the light swords through it, and how, scary In their sheer numbers, motes of dust ride, clinging — There is, as doctors say about some pain, Discomfort knowing that despite your prayers, 10 Your listening and rejoicing, your small part In this communal stab at coming clean, There is one stubborn remnant of your cares Intact. There is still murder in your heart.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the rhyme scheme and structure of this sonnet. Explain why it is an English or Italian sonnet.

2. What are the effects of the use of “after” in lines 1, 2, 4, and 5 and “there” in lines 9, 13, and 14?

3. In what sense might this poem be summed up as a “communal stab” (line 12)? Discuss the accuracy of this assessment.

4. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a reply to the theme of Jarman’s poem using the same sonnet form that he uses.

X. J. Kennedy (b. 1929)

“The Purpose of Time Is to Prevent Everything from Happening at Once” 2002

Suppose your life a folded telescope Durationless, collapsed in just a fl ash As from your mother’s womb you, bawling, drop Into a nursing home. Suppose you crash Your car, your marriage — toddler laying waste 5 A fi eld of daisies, schoolkid, zit-faced teen With lover zipping up your pants in haste Hearing your parents’ tread downstairs — all one.

Einstein was right. That would be too intense. You need a chance to preen, to give a dull 10 Recital before an indifferent audience Equally slow in jeering you and clapping. Time takes its time unraveling. But, still, You’ll wonder when your life ends: Huh? What happened?

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Comment on how the images in the octave manage to sum up a human life.

thomas / do not go gentle into that good night 491

2. How serious a refl ection on the passage of time is this poem? 3. What kind of sonnet is it? Why might a fi xed form be a more appropri-

ate ordering principle for the theme of this poem than an open form?

Villanelle

The villanelle is a fi xed form consisting of nineteen lines of any length divided into six stanzas: fi ve tercets and a concluding quatrain. The fi rst and third lines of the initial tercet rhyme; these rhymes are repeated in each subsequent tercet (aba) and in the fi nal two lines of the quatrain (abaa). Moreover, line 1 appears in its entirety as lines 6, 12, and 18, while line 3 appears as lines 9, 15, and 19. This form may seem to risk monot- ony, but in competent hands a villanelle can create haunting echoes, as in Dylan Thomas’s “Do Not Go Gentle into That Good Night.”

Dylan Thomas (1914–1953)

Do Not Go Gentle into That Good Night 1952

Do not go gentle into that good night, Old age should burn and rave at close of day; Rage, rage against the dying of the light.

Though wise men at their end know dark is right, Because their words had forked no lightning they 5 Do not go gentle into that good night.

Good men, the last wave by, crying how bright Their frail deeds might have danced in a green bay, Rage, rage against the dying of the light.

Wild men who caught and sang the sun in fl ight, 10 And learn, too late, they grieved it on its way, Do not go gentle into that good night.

Grave men, near death, who see with blinding sight Blind eyes could blaze like meteors and be gay, Rage, rage against the dying of the light. 15

And you, my father, there on the sad height, Curse, bless, me now with your fi erce tears, I pray. Do not go gentle into that good night. Rage, rage against the dying of the light.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does Thomas vary the meanings of the poem’s two refrains: “Do not go gentle into that good night” and “Rage, rage against the dying of the light”?

492 poetic forms

2. Thomas’s father was close to death when this poem was written. How does the tone contribute to the poem’s theme?

3. How is “good” used in line 1? 4. Characterize the men who are “wise” (line 4), “Good” (7), “Wild” (10),

and “Grave” (13). 5. What do fi gures of speech contribute to this poem? 6. Discuss this villanelle’s sound effects.

Sestina

Although the sestina usually does not rhyme, it is perhaps an even more demanding fi xed form than the villanelle. A sestina consists of thirty- nine lines of any length divided into six six-line stanzas and a three-line concluding stanza called an envoy. The diffi culty lies in repeating the six words at the ends of the fi rst stanza’s lines at the ends of the lines in the other fi ve six-line stanzas as well. Those words must also appear in the fi nal three lines, where they often resonate important themes. The ses- tina originated in the Middle Ages, but contemporary poets continue to fi nd it a fascinating and challenging form.

Florence Cassen Mayers (b. 1940)

All-American Sestina 1996

One nation, indivisible two-car garage three strikes you’re out four-minute mile fi ve-cent cigar 5 six-string guitar

six-pack Bud one-day sale fi ve-year warranty two-way street 10 fourscore and seven years ago three cheers

three-star restaurant sixty- four-dollar question 15 one-night stand two-pound lobster fi ve-star general

mayers / all-american sestina 493

fi ve-course meal three sheets to the wind 20 two bits six-shooter one-armed bandit four-poster

four-wheel drive 25 fi ve-and-dime hole in one three-alarm fi re sweet sixteen two-wheeler 30

two-tone Chevy four rms, hi fl r, w/vu six-footer high fi ve three-ring circus 35 one-room schoolhouse

two thumbs up, fi ve-karat diamond Fourth of July, three-piece suit six feet under, one-horse town

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Discuss the signifi cance of the title; what is “All- American” about this sestina?

2. How is the structure of this poem different from that of a conven- tional sestina? (What structural requirement does Mayers add for this sestina?)

3. Do you think important themes are raised by this poem, as is tradi- tional for a sestina? If so, what are they? If not, what is being played with by using this convention?

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Describe and compare the strategy used to create meaning in “All-American Sestina” with that used by E. E. Cummings in “next to of course god america i” (p. 435).

Epigram

An epigram is a brief, pointed, and witty poem. Although most rhyme and often are written in couplets, epigrams take no prescribed form. Instead, they are typically polished bits of compressed irony, satire, or paradox. Here is an epigram that defi nes itself.

494 poetic forms

Samuel Taylor Coleridge (1772–1834)

What Is an Epigram? 1802

What is an epigram? A dwarfi sh whole; Its body brevity, and wit its soul.

These additional examples by A. R. Ammons, David McCord, and Paul Laurence Dunbar satisfy Coleridge’s defi nition.

A. R. Ammons (b. 1926)

Coward 1975

Bravery runs in my family.

David McCord (1897–1997)

Epitaph on a Waiter

By and by God caught his eye.

Paul Laurence Dunbar (1872–1906)

Theology 1896

There is a heaven, for ever, day by day, The upward longing of my soul doth tell me so. There is a hell, I’m quite as sure; for pray, If there were not, where would my

neighbors go?

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. In what sense is each of these epigrams, as Coleridge puts it, a “dwarfi sh whole”?

2. Explain which of these epigrams, in addition to being witty, makes a serious point.

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a few epigrams that say something memorable about whatever you choose to focus on.

Courtesy of the Ohio Historical Society.

perrine / the limerick’s never averse 495

Limerick

The limerick is always light and humorous. Its usual form consists of fi ve predominantly anapestic lines rhyming aabba; lines 1, 2, and 5 contain three feet, while lines 3 and 4 contain two. Limericks have delighted everyone from schoolchildren to sophisticated adults, and they range in subject matter from the simply innocent and silly to the satiric or obscene. The sexual humor helps to explain why so many limericks are written anonymously. Here is one that is anonymous but more concerned with physics than physiology.

Anonymous

There was a young lady named Bright

There was a young lady named Bright, Who traveled much faster than light, She started one day In a relative way, And returned on the previous night.

This next one is a particularly clever defi nition of a limerick.

Laurence Perrine (1915–1995)

The limerick’s never averse 1982

The limerick’s never averse To expressing itself in a terse Economical style, And yet, all the while, The limerick’s always a verse.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does this limerick differ from others you know? How is it similar?

2. Scan Perrine’s limerick. How do the lines measure up to the tradi- tional fi xed metrical pattern?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Try writing a limerick. Use the following basic pattern.

˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´ ˘ ˘ ´

496 poetic forms

You might begin with a friend’s name or the name of your school or town. Your instructor is, of course, fair game, too, provided your tact matches your wit.

Haiku

Another brief fi xed poetic form, borrowed from the Japanese, is the haiku. A haiku is usually described as consisting of seventeen syllables organized into three unrhymed lines of fi ve, seven, and fi ve syllables. Owing to language difference, however, English translations of haiku are often only approximated, because a Japanese haiku exists in time ( Japa- nese syllables have duration). The number of syllables in our sense is not as signifi cant as the duration in Japanese. These poems typically present an intense emotion or a vivid image of nature, which, in the Japanese, are also designed to lead to a spiritual insight.

Matsuo Bashō (1644–1694)

Under cherry trees date unknown

Under cherry trees Soup, the salad, fi sh and all . . . Seasoned with petals.

Carolyn Kizer (b. 1925)

After Bashō 1984

Tentatively, you slip onstage this evening, pallid, famous moon.

Sonia Sanchez (b. 1935)

c’mon man hold me 1998

c’mon man hold me touch me before time love me from behind your eyes.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What different emotions do these three haiku evoke?

roethke / elegy for jane 497

2. What differences and similarities are there between the effects of a haiku and those of an epigram?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Compose a haiku. Try to make it as allusive and suggestive as possible.

Elegy

An elegy in classical Greek and Roman literature was written in alter- nating hexameter and pentameter lines. Since the seventeenth century, however, the term elegy has been used to describe a lyric poem written to commemorate someone who is dead. The word is also used to refer to a serious meditative poem produced to express the speaker’s melan- choly thoughts. Elegies no longer conform to a fi xed pattern of lines and stanzas, but their characteristic subject is related to death and their tone is mournfully contemplative.

Theodore Roethke (1908–1963)

Elegy for Jane 1953 My Student, Thrown by a Horse

I remember the neckcurls, limp and damp as tendrils; And her quick look, a sidelong pickerel smile; And how, once startled into talk, the light syllables leaped for her, And she balanced in the delight of her thought, A wren, happy, tail into the wind, 5 Her song trembling the twigs and small branches. The shade sang with her; The leaves, their whispers turned to kissing; And the mold sang in the bleached valleys under the rose.

Oh, when she was sad, she cast herself down into such a pure depth, 10 Even a father could not fi nd her: Scraping her cheek against straw; Stirring the clearest water.

My sparrow, you are not here, Waiting like a fern, making a spiny shadow. 15 The sides of wet stones cannot console me, Nor the moss, wound with the last light.

If only I could nudge you from this sleep, My maimed darling, my skittery pigeon. Over this damp grave I speak the words of my love: 20 I, with no rights in this matter, Neither father nor lover.

498 poetic forms

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Does this elegy use any kind of formal pattern for its structure? What holds it together?

2. List the images that compare Jane to nature. How is she depicted by these images?

3. Describe the shift in tone that begins in line 14. How do the speaker’s feelings change in lines 14–22?

4. What is the signifi cance of Jane’s having been the speaker’s student? How does that affect your reading of lines 21–22?

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare “Elegy for Jane” with A. E. Housman’s “To an Athlete Dying Young” (p. 575). How does each poem avoid sentimentality in its description of a young person who had died?

Brendan Galvin (b. 1938)

An Evel Knievel° Elegy 2008

We have all felt our parachutes malfunctioning at a job interview or cocktail party, with bystanders reading the freefall on our faces, and some of us have imagined 5 how it must have felt for you above the Snake River Canyon or the fountains outside Caesar’s Palace, though a mental bungee reversed our fl ops before we were 10 converted to sacks of poker chips and spent a month or more in a coma. You were our star-spangled Icarus,� Evel, while we dressed off the rack for working lives among the common 15 asps and vipers, never jumping the rattlers in what you and the networks considered a sport. Stunts, Evel. We loved their heights and distances from our gray quotidian 20

Evel Knievel (1938–2007): American motorcycle stunt performer whose daredevil jumps over lines of vehicles, canyons, and rivers were nationally televised in the 1960s and 70s. 13 Icarus: In Greek mythology, a character who fell to the earth and died after refusing to heed his father’s advice about not fl ying too close to the sun on manufactured wings of wax and feathers that melted from the heat.

shelley / ode to the west wind 499

so much we bought the kids three hundred million dollars’ worth of your wheels and getups. You were our airborne Elvis, and rode your rocket-powered bike through fi re. 25 Which we admired, though some, annealing or annulled, knew that they stand in fi re all their lives, and turned away, and didn’t applaud, and would not suffer the loss 30 of your departure.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. To what extent is this poem a meditation upon pop- ular culture as well as an elegy for Evel Knievel?

2. Discuss Galvin’s use of metaphor to characterize Knievel. Choose three metaphors that seem especially vivid to you and explain why.

3. Discuss the thematic signifi cance of lines 26 to 31. How would you read the poem differently if it ended in the middle of line 26?

Ode

An ode is characterized by a serious topic and formal tone, but no pre- scribed formal pattern describes all odes. In some odes the pattern of each stanza is repeated throughout, while in others each stanza intro- duces a new pattern. Odes are lengthy lyrics that often include lofty emotions conveyed by a dignifi ed style. Typical topics include truth, art, freedom, justice, and the meaning of life. Frequently such lyrics tend to be more public than private, and their speakers often use apostrophe.

Percy Bysshe Shelley (1792–1822)

Ode to the West Wind 1820

i

O wild West Wind, thou breath of Autumn’s being, Thou, from whose unseen presence the leaves dead Are driven, like ghosts from an enchanter fl eeing,

Yellow, and black, and pale, and hectic red, Pestilence-stricken multitudes: O thou, 5 Who chariotest to their dark wintry bed

The wingèd seeds, where they lie cold and low, Each like a corpse within its grave, until Thine azure sister of the Spring shall blow

500 poetic forms

Her clarion o’er the dreaming earth, and fi ll 10 (Driving sweet buds like fl ocks to feed in air) With living hues and odors plain and hill:

Wild Spirit, which art moving everywhere; Destroyer and preserver; hear, oh, hear!

ii

Thou on whose stream, mid the steep sky’s commotion, 15 Loose clouds like earth’s decaying leaves are shed, Shook from the tangled boughs of Heaven and Ocean,

Angels° of rain and lightning: there are spread messengers On the blue surface of thine airy surge, Like the bright hair uplifted from the head 20

Of some fi erce Maenad,° even from the dim verge Of the horizon to the zenith’s height, The locks of the approaching storm. Thou dirge

Of the dying year, to which this closing night Will be the dome of a vast sepulcher, 25 Vaulted with all thy congregated might

Of vapors, from whose solid atmosphere Black rain, and fi re, and hail will burst: oh, hear!

iii

Thou who didst waken from his summer dreams The blue Mediterranean, where he lay, 30 Lulled by the coil of his crystálline streams,

Beside a pumice isle in Baiae’s bay,° And saw in sleep old palaces and towers Quivering within the wave’s intenser day,

All overgrown with azure moss and fl owers 35 So sweet, the sense faints picturing them! Thou For whose path the Atlantic’s level powers

Cleave themselves into chasms, while far below The sea-blooms and the oozy woods which wear The sapless foliage of the ocean, know 40

Thy voice, and suddenly grow gray with fear, And tremble and despoil themselves: oh, hear!

21 Maenad: In Greek mythology, a frenzied worshipper of Dionysus, god of wine and fertility. 32 Baiae’s bay: A bay in the Mediterranean Sea.

shelley / ode to the west wind 501

iv

If I were a dead leaf thou mightest bear; If I were a swift cloud to fl y with thee; A wave to pant beneath thy power, and share 45

The impulse of thy strength, only less free Than thou, O uncontrollable! If even I were as in my boyhood, and could be

The comrade by thy wanderings over Heaven, As then, when to outstrip thy skyey speed 50 Scarce seemed a vision; I would ne’er have striven

As thus with thee in prayer in my sore need. Oh, lift me as a wave, a leaf, a cloud! I fall upon the thorns of life! I bleed!

A heavy weight of hours has chained and bowed 55 One too like thee: tameless, and swift, and proud.

v

Make me thy lyre,° even as the forest is: What if my leaves are falling like its own! The tumult of thy mighty harmonies

Will take from both a deep, autumnal tone, 60 Sweet though in sadness. Be thou, Spirit fi erce, My spirit! Be thou me, impetuous one!

Drive my dead thoughts over the universe Like withered leaves to quicken a new birth! And, by the incantation of this verse, 65

Scatter, as from an unextinguished hearth Ashes and sparks, my words among mankind! Be through my lips to unawakened earth

The trumpet of a prophecy! O Wind, If Winter comes, can Spring be far behind? 70

57 Make me thy lyre: Sound is produced on an Aeolian lyre, or wind harp, by wind blowing across its strings.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Write a summary of each of this ode’s fi ve sections. 2. What is the speaker’s situation? What is his “sore need” (line 52)?

What does the speaker ask of the wind in lines 57–70? 3. What does the wind signify in this ode? How is it used symbolically?

502 poetic forms

4. Determine the meter and rhyme of the fi rst fi ve stanzas. How do these elements contribute to the ode’s movement? Is this pattern continued in the other four sections?

Baron Wormser (b. 1948)

Labor 2008

I spent a couple of years during my undestined Twenties on a north woods acreage That grew, as the locals poetically phrased it, “Stones and rocks.” I loved it.

No real insulation in the old farmhouse, 5 Which meant ten cords of hardwood, Which meant a muscled mantra of cutting, Yarding, splitting, stacking and burning.

I was the maul coming down kerchunk On the round of maple; I was the hellacious 10 Screeching saw; I was the fi re. I was fi ber and grew imperceptibly.

I lost interest in everything except for trees. Career, ambition and politics bored me. I loved putting on my steel-toe, lace-up 15 Work boots in the morning. I loved the feel

Of my feet on grass slick with dew or frost Or ice-skimmed mud or crisp snow crust. I loved the moment after I felled a tree When it was still again and I felt the awe 20

Of what I had done and awe for the tree that had Stretched toward the sky for silent decades. On Saturday night the regulars who had worked In the woods forever mocked me as I limped into

The bar out on the state highway. “Workin’ hard 25 There, sonny, or more like hardly workin’?” I cradled my bottle between stiff raw hands, Felt a pinching tension in the small of my back,

Inhaled ripe sweat, damp fl annel, Cheap whiskey then nodded — a happy fool. 30 They grinned back. Through their proper Scorn I could feel it. They loved it too.

for Hayden Carruth

farley / the lover not taken 503

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. To what extent does the poem conform to the defi - nitions of an ode?

2. What is it about tree cutting that so enthralls the speaker? 3. Do you think this poem is sentimental? Why or why not? 4. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write an ode concerning an activity that you

know well and can express strong feelings about, using vivid images and metaphors.

Parody

A parody is a humorous imitation of another, usually serious, work. It can take any fi xed or open form because parodists imitate the tone, lan- guage, and shape of the original. While a parody may be teasingly close to a work’s style, it typically defl ates the subject matter to make the original seem absurd. Parody can be used as a kind of literary criticism to expose the defects in a work, but it is also very often an affectionate acknowl- edgment that a well-known work has become both institutionalized in our culture and fair game for some fun. Read Robert Frost’s “The Road Not Taken” (p. 574) and then study this parody.

Blanche Farley (b. 1937)

The Lover Not Taken 1984

Committed to one, she wanted both And, mulling it over, long she stood, Alone on the road, loath To leave, wanting to hide in the undergrowth. This new guy, smooth as a yellow wood 5

Really turned her on. She liked his hair, His smile. But the other, Jack, had a claim On her already and she had to admit, he did wear Well. In fact, to be perfectly fair, He understood her. His long, lithe frame 10

Beside hers in the evening tenderly lay. Still, if this blond guy dropped by someday, Couldn’t way just lead on to way? No. For if way led on and Jack Found out, she doubted if he would ever come back. 15

Oh, she turned with a sigh. Somewhere ages and ages hence,

504 poetic forms

She might be telling this. “And I — ” She would say, “stood faithfully by.” But by then who would know the difference? 20

With that in mind, she took the fast way home, The road by the pond, and phoned the blond.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. To what degree does this poem duplicate Frost’s style? How does it differ?

2. Does this parody seem successful to you? Explain what you think makes a successful parody.

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Choose a poet whose work you know reason- ably well or would like to know better and determine what is char- acteristic about his or her style. Then choose a poem to parody. It’s probably best to attempt a short poem or a section of a long work. If you have diffi culty selecting an author, you might consider Herrick, Blake, Keats, Dickinson, Whitman, or Frost, as a number of their works are included in this book.

Perspective

Elaine Mitchell (b. 1924)

Form 1994

Is it a corset or primal wave? Don’t try to force it.

Even endorse it to shape and deceive. 5 Ouch, too tight a corset.

Take it off. No remorse. It ’s an ace up your sleeve. No need to force it.

Can you make a horse knit? 10 Who would believe? Consider. Of course, it

might be a resource. Wit, your grateful slave. Form. Sometimes you force it, 15

sometimes divorce it to make it behave.

mcfee/ in medias res 505

So don’t try to force it. Respect a good corset.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the speaker’s attitude toward form? 2. Explain why you think the form of this poem does or does not con-

form to the speaker’s advice. 3. Why is the metaphor of a corset an especially apt image for this

poem?

Picture Poem

By arranging lines into particular shapes, poets can sometimes organize typography into picture poems of what they describe. Words have been arranged into all kinds of shapes, from apples to light bulbs. Notice how the shape of this next poem embodies its meaning.

Michael McFee (b. 1954)

In Medias Res° 1985

His waist like the plot thickens, wedding pants now breathtaking, belt no longer the cinch 5 it once was, belly’s cambium expanding to match each birthday, his body a wad of anonymous tissue swung in the same centrifuge of years that separates a house from its foundation, 10 undermining sidewalks grim with joggers and loose-fi lled graves and families and stars collapsing on themselves, no preservation society capable of plugging entropy’s dike, 15 under his zipper’s sneer a belly hibernation- soft, ready for the kill.

In Medias Res: A Latin term for a story that begins “in the middle of things.”

506 poetic forms

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explain how the title is related to this poem’s shape and meaning.

2. Identify the puns. How do they work in the poem? 3. What is “cambium” (line 6)? Why is the phrase “belly’s cambium”

especially appropriate? 4. What is the tone of this poem? Is it consistent throughout?

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

507

I believe every space and comma is a living part of the poem and has its function, just as every muscle and pore of the body has its function. And the way the lines are broken is a functioning part essential to the poem’s life.

— DENISE LEVERTOV

Many poems, especially those written in the past century, are composed of lines that cannot be scanned for a fi xed or predominant meter. Moreover, very often these poems do not rhyme. Known as free verse (from the French, vers libre), such lines can derive their rhythmic qualities from the repetition of words, phrases, or grammatical structures; the arrangement of words on the printed page; or some other means. In recent years the term open form has been used in place of free verse to avoid the erroneous suggestion that this kind of poetry lacks all discipline and shape.

Although the following two poems do not use measurable meters, they do have rhythm.

E. E. Cummings (1894–1962)

in Just- 1923

in Just- spring when the world is mud- luscious the little lame balloonman

whistles far and wee 5

and eddieandbill come running from marbles and

19 Open Form

By permission of David Geier and New Directions.

508 open form

piracies and it’s spring

when the world is puddle-wonderful 10

the queer old balloonman whistles far and wee and bettyandisbel come dancing

from hop-scotch and jump-rope and 15

it’s spring and

the

goat-footed 20

balloonMan whistles far and wee

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of this poem’s arrangement of words and use of space on the page? How would the effect differ if the text were written out in prose?

2. What is the effect of Cummings’s combining the names “eddieand- bill” (line 6) and “bettyandisbel” (line 14)?

3. The allusion in line 20 refers to Pan, a Greek god associated with nature. How does this allusion add to the meaning of the poem?

Walt Whitman (1819–1892)

From “I Sing the Body Electric” 1855

O my body! I dare not desert the likes of you in other men and women, nor the likes of the parts of you,

I believe the likes of you are to stand or fall with the likes of the soul, (and that they are the soul,)

I believe the likes of you shall stand or fall with my poems, and that they are my poems.

Man’s, woman’s, child’s, youth’s, wife’s, husband’s, mother’s, father’s, young man’s, young woman’s poems.

Head, neck, hair, ears, drop and tympan of the ears. 5

whitman / from “i sing the body electric” 509

Eyes, eye-fringes, iris of the eye, eyebrows, and the waking or sleeping of the lids,

Mouth, tongue, lips, teeth, roof of the mouth, jaws, and the jaw-hinges,

Nose, nostrils of the nose, and the partition, Cheeks, temples, forehead, chin, throat,

back of the neck, neck-slue, Strong shoulders, manly beard, scapula,

hind-shoulders, and the ample side-round of the chest,

Upper-arm, armpit, elbow-socket, lower- arm, arm-sinews, arm-bones,

Wrist and wrist-joints, hand, palm, knuckles, thumb, forefi nger, fi nger-joints, fi nger-nails,

Broad breast-front, curling hair of the breast, breast-bone, breast-side,

Ribs, belly, backbone, joints of the backbone, Hips, hip-sockets, hip-strength, inward and outward round, man-balls, man-root, 15 Strong set of thighs, well carrying the trunk above, Leg-fi bers, knee, knee-pan, upper-leg, under-leg, Ankles, instep, foot-ball, toes, toe-joints, the heel; All attitudes, all the shapeliness, all the belongings of my or your

body or of any one’s body, male or female, The lung-sponges, the stomach-sac, the bowels sweet and clean, 20 The brain in its folds inside the skull-frame, Sympathies, heart-valves, palate-valves, sexuality, maternity, Womanhood, and all that is a woman, and the man that comes

from woman, The womb, the teats, nipples, breast-milk, tears, laughter, weeping,

love-looks, love-perturbations and risings, The voice, articulation, language, whispering, shouting aloud, 25 Food, drink, pulse, digestion, sweat, sleep, walking, swimming, Poise on the hips, leaping, reclining, embracing, arm-curving and

tightening, The continual changes of the fl ex of the mouth, and around the eyes, The skin, the sunburnt shade, freckles, hair, The curious sympathy one feels when feeling with the hand the naked meat of the body, 30 The circling rivers the breath, and breathing it in and out, The beauty of the waist, and thence of the hips, and thence

downward toward the knees, The thin red jellies within you or within me, the bones and the marrow

in the bones, The exquisite realization of health;

Courtesy of the Bayley-Whitman Collection of Ohio Wesleyan University of Delaware, Ohio.

510 open form

O I say these are not the parts and poems of the body only, but of the soul, 35

O I say now these are the soul!

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What informs this speaker’s attitude toward the human body?

2. Read the poem aloud. Is it simply a tedious enumeration of body parts, or do the lines achieve some kind of rhythmic cadence?

Open form poetry is sometimes regarded as formless because it is unlike the strict fi xed forms of a sonnet, villanelle, or sestina. But even though open form poems may not employ traditional meters and rhymes, they still rely on an intense use of language to establish rhythms and relations between meaning and form. Open form poems use the arrangement of words and phrases on the printed page, pauses, line lengths, and other means to create unique forms that express their particular meaning and tone.

Cummings’s “in Just-” and the excerpt from Whitman’s “I Sing the Body Electric” demonstrate how the white space on a page and rhythmic cadences can be aligned with meaning, but there is one kind of open form poetry that doesn’t even look like poetry on a page. A prose poem is printed as prose and represents, perhaps, the most clear opposite of fi xed forms. Here is a brief example.

Louis Jenkins (b. 1942)

The Prose Poem 2000

The prose poem is not a real poem, of course. One of the major differences is that the prose poet is simply too lazy or too stupid to break the poem into lines. But all writing, even the prose poem, involves a certain amount of skill, just the way throwing a wad of paper, say, into a wastebasket at a distance of twenty feet, requires a certain skill, a skill that, though it may improve hand-eye coordination, does not lead necessarily to an ability to play basketball. Still, it takes practice and thus gives one a way to pass the time, chucking one paper after another at the basket, while the teacher drones on about the poetry of Tennyson.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of this prose poem? Does it have a theme?

2. What, if anything, is poetic in this work? 3. Arrange the lines so that they look like poetry on a page. What deter-

mines where you break the lines?

kinnell / after making love we hear footsteps 511

Much of the poetry published today is written in open form; however, many poets continue to take pleasure in the requirements imposed by fi xed forms. Some write both fi xed form and open form poetry. Each kind offers rewards to careful readers as well. Here are several more open form poems that establish their own unique patterns.

Galway Kinnell (b. 1927)

After Making Love We Hear Footsteps 1980

For I can snore like a bullhorn or play loud music or sit up talking with any reasonably sober Irishman and Fergus will only sink deeper into his dreamless sleep, which goes by all in one fl ash, 5 but let there be that heavy breathing or a stifl ed come-cry anywhere in the house and he will wrench himself awake and make for it on the run — as now, we lie together, after making love, quiet, touching along the length of our bodies, 10 familiar touch of the long-married, and he appears — in his baseball pajamas, it happens, the neck opening so small he has to screw them on, which one day may make him wonder about the mental capacity of baseball players — 15 and says, “Are you loving and snuggling? May I join?” He fl ops down between us and hugs us and snuggles himself to sleep, his face gleaming with satisfaction at being this very child.

In the half darkness we look at each other and smile 20 and touch arms across his little, startlingly muscled body — this one whom habit of memory propels to the ground of his making, sleeper only the mortal sounds can sing awake, this blessing love gives again into our arms.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Explore Kinnell’s line endings. Why does he break the lines where he does?

2. How does the speaker’s language reveal his character? 3. Describe the shift in tone between lines 18 and 19 with the shift in

focus from child to adults. How does the use of space here empha- size this shift?

4. Do you think this poem is sentimental? Explain why or why not.

512 open form

Kelly Cherry (b. 1940)

Alzheimer’s 1990

He stands at the door, a crazy old man Back from the hospital, his mind rattling Like the suitcase, swinging from his hand, That contains shaving cream, a piggy bank, A book he sometimes pretends to read, 5 His clothes. On the brick wall beside him Roses and columbine slug it out for space, claw the mortar. The sun is shining, as it does late in the afternoon In England, after rain. Sun hardens the house, reifi es it, 10 Strikes the iron grillwork like a smithy And sparks fl y off, burning in the bushes — The rosebushes — While the white wood trim defi nes solidity in space. This is his house. He remembers it as his, 15 Remembers the walkway he built between the front room And the garage, the rhododendron he planted in back, The car he used to drive. He remembers himself, A younger man, in a tweed hat, a man who loved Music. There is no time for that now. No time for music, 20 The peculiar screeching of strings, the luxurious Fiddling with emotion. Other things have become more urgent. Other matters are now of greater import, have more Consequence, must be attended to. The fi rst 25 Thing he must do, now that he is home, is decide who This woman is, this old, white-haired woman Standing here in the doorway, Welcoming him in.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why is it impossible to dismiss the character in this poem as merely “a crazy old man” (line 1)?

2. Discuss the effect of the line breaks in lines 1–6 of the poem’s fi rst complete sentence. How do the line breaks contribute to the mean- ing of these lines?

3. What do the images in lines 6–20 indicate about the nature of the man’s memory?

4. Why is the fi nal image of the “white-haired woman” especially effective? How does the fi nal line serve as the poem’s emotional climax?

waniek / emily dickinson’s defunct 513

William Carlos Williams (1883–1963)

The Red Wheelbarrow 1923

so much depends upon

a red wheel barrow

glazed with rain water

beside the white chickens.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What “depends upon” the things mentioned in the poem? What is the effect of these images? Do they have a particular meaning?

2. Do these lines have any kind of rhythm? 3. How does this poem resemble a haiku? How is it different?

Marilyn Nelson Waniek (b. 1946)

Emily Dickinson’s Defunct 1978

She used to pack poems in her hip pocket. Under all the gray old lady 5 clothes she was dressed for action. She had hair, imagine, in certain places, and 10 believe me she smelled human on a hot summer day. Stalking snakes or counting 15 the thousand motes in sunlight she walked just

514 open form

like an Indian. She was New England’s 20 favorite daughter, she could pray like the devil. She was a two-fi sted woman, 25 this babe. All the fl ies just stood around and buzzed when she died. 30

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the speaker characterize Dickinson? Explain why this characterization is different from the popular view of Dickinson.

2. How does the diction of the poem serve to characterize the speaker? 3. Discuss the function of the poem’s title.

Julio Marzán (b. 1946)

The Translator at the Reception for Latin American Writers 1997

Air-conditioned introductions, then breezy Spanish conversation fan his curiosity to know what country I come from. “Puerto Rico and the Bronx.” 5

Spectacled downward eyes translate disappointment like a poison mushroom puffed in his thoughts as if, after investing a sizable 10 intellectual budget, transporting a huge cast and camera crew to fi lm on location Mayan pyramid grandeur, indigenes whose ancient gods 15 and comet-tail plumage inspire a glorious epic of revolution across a continent,

alvarez / queens, 1963 515

he received a lurid script for a social documentary 20 rife with dreary streets

Anonymous

The Frog date unknown

What a wonderful bird the frog are! When he stand he sit almost; When he hop he fl y almost. He ain’t got no sense hardly; He ain’t got no tail hardly either. When he sit, he sit on what he ain’t got almost.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is the poem a description of the speaker as well as of a frog?

2. Though this poem is ungrammatical, it does have a patterned structure. How does the pattern of sentences create a formal structure?

Julia Alvarez (b. 1950)

Queens, 1963 1992

Everyone seemed more American than we, newly arrived, foreign dirt still on our soles. By year’s end, a sprinkler waving like a fl ag on our mowed lawn, 5 we were blended into the block, owned our own mock Tudor house. Then the house across the street sold to a black family. Cop cars patrolled our block 10 from the Castellucci’s at one end to the Balakian’s on the other. We heard rumors of bomb threats, a burning cross on their lawn. (It turned out to be a sprinkler.) 15 Still the neighborhood buzzed. The barber’s family, Haralambides, our left-side neighbors, didn’t want trouble.

516 open form

They’d come a long way to be free! Mr. Scott, the retired plumber, 20 and his plump midwestern wife, considered moving back home where white and black got along by staying where they belonged. They had cultivated our street 25 like the garden she’d given up on account of her ailing back, bad knees, poor eyes, arthritic hands. She went through her litany daily. Politely, my mother listened — 30 ¡Ay, Mrs. Scott, qué pena!° — her Dominican good manners still running on automatic. The Jewish counselor next door, had a practice in her house; 35 clients hurried up her walk ashamed to be seen needing. (I watched from my upstairs window, gloomy with adolescence, and guessed how they too must have 40 hypocritical old-world parents.) Mrs. Bernstein said it was time the neighborhood opened up. As the fi rst Jew on the block, she remembered the snubbing she got 45 a few years back from Mrs. Scott. But real estate worried her, our houses’ plummeting value. She shook her head as she might at a client’s grim disclosures. 50 Too bad the world works this way. The German girl playing the piano down the street abruptly stopped in the middle of a note. I completed the tune in my head 55 as I watched their front door open. A dark man in a suit with a girl about my age walked quickly into a car. My hand lifted but fell 60 before I made a welcoming gesture. On her face I had seen a look from the days before we had melted

31 qué pena: What a shame!

laviera / amerícan 517

into the United States of America. It was hardness mixed with hurt. 65 It was knowing she never could be the right kind of American. A police car followed their car. Down the street, curtains fell back. Mrs. Scott swept her walk 70 as if it had just been dirtied. Then the German piano commenced downward scales as if tracking the plummeting real estate. One by one I imagined the houses 75 sinking into their lawns, the grass grown wild and tall in the past tense of this continent before the fi rst foreigners owned any of this free country. 80

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What nationalities are the people in this neighbor- hood in the New York City borough of Queens? Are they neighborly to each other?

2. In line 3, why do you suppose Alvarez writes “foreign dirt still on our soles” rather than “foreign soil still on our shoes”? What does Alva- rez’s word choice suggest about her feelings for her native country?

3. Characterize the speaker. How old is she? How does she feel about having come from the Dominican Republic? About living in the United States?

4. Do you think this poem is optimistic or pessimistic about racial rela- tions in the United States? Explain your answer by referring to spe- cifi c details in the poem.

5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the use of irony in “Queens, 1963” with that in John Ciardi’s “Suburban” (p. 552). How does irony contribute to each poem?

Tato Laviera (b. 1951)

AmeRícan 1985

we gave birth to a new generation, AmeRícan, broader than lost gold never touched, hidden inside the puerto rican mountains.

we gave birth to a new generation, 5 AmeRícan, it includes everything

518 open form

imaginable you-name-it-we-got-it society.

we gave birth to a new generation, AmeRícan salutes all folklores, 10 european, indian, black, spanish, and anything else compatible:

AmeRícan, singing to composer pedro fl ores’° palm trees high up in the universal sky!

AmeRícan, sweet soft spanish danzas gypsies 15 moving lyrics la española° cascabelling Spanish presence always singing at our side!

AmeRícan, beating jíbaro° modern troubadours crying guitars romantic continental bolero love songs! 20

AmeRícan, across forth and across back back across and forth back forth across and back and forth our trips are walking bridges!

it all dissolved into itself, the attempt 25 was truly made, the attempt was truly absorbed, digested, we spit out the poison, we spit out the malice, we stand, affi rmative in action, to reproduce a broader answer to the 30 marginality that gobbled us up abruptly!

AmeRícan, walking plena-rhythms° in new york, strutting beautifully alert, alive, many turning eyes wondering, admiring! 35

AmeRícan, defi ning myself my own way any way many ways Am e Rícan, with the big R and the accent on the í!

AmeRícan, like the soul gliding talk of gospel boogie music! 40

AmeRícan, speaking new words in spanglish tenements, fast tongue moving street corner “que corta”° talk being invented at the insistence that cuts of a smile!

13 pedro fl ores: Puerto Rican composer of popular romantic songs. 18 jíbaro: A par ticular style of music played by Puerto Rican mountain farmers. 32 plena- rhythms: African–Puerto Rican folklore, music, and dance.

meinke / the abc of aerobics 519

AmeRícan, abounding inside so many ethnic english 45 people, and out of humanity, we blend and mix all that is good!

AmeRícan, integrating in new york and defi ning our own destino,° our own way of life, destiny

AmeRícan, defi ning the new america, humane america, 50 admired america, loved america, harmonious america, the world in peace, our energies collectively invested to fi nd other civili- zations, to touch God, further and further, to dwell in the spirit of divinity! 55

AmeRícan, yes, for now, for i love this, my second land, and i dream to take the accent from the altercation, and be proud to call myself american, in the u.s. sense of the word, AmeRícan, America! 60

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the arrangement of lines communicate a sense of energy and vitality?

2. How does the speaker portray Puerto Ricans living in the United States?

3. How does the poet describe the United States?

Peter Meinke (b. 1932)

The ABC of Aerobics 1983

Air seeps through alleys and our diaphragms balloon blackly with this mix of carbon monoxide and the thousand corrosives a city doles out free to its constituents; everyone’s jogging through Edgemont Park, 5 frightened by death and fatty tissue, gasping at the maximal heart rate, hoping to outlive all the others streaming in the lanes like lemmings lurching toward their last jump. I join in despair 10 knowing my arteries jammed with lint and tobacco, lard and bourbon — my medical history a noxious marsh: newts and moles slink through the sodden veins, owls hoot in the lungs’ dark branches; 15

520 open form

probably I shall keel off the john like queer Uncle George and lie on the bathroom fl oor raging about Shirley Clark, my true love in seventh grade, God bless her wherever she lives tied to that turkey who hugely 20 undervalues the beauty of her tiny earlobes, one view of which (either one: they are both perfect) would add years to my life and I could skip these x-rays, turn in my insurance card, and trade yoga and treadmills and jogging and zen and 25 zucchini for drinking and dreaming of her, breathing hard.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the title help to establish a pattern through- out the poem? How does the pattern contribute to the poem’s meaning?

2. How does the speaker feel about exercise? How do his descriptions of his physical condition serve to characterize him?

3. A primer is a book that teaches children to read or introduces them, in an elementary way, to the basics of a subject. The title “The ABC of Aerobics” indicates that this poem is meant to be a primer. What is it trying to teach us? Is its fi nal lesson serious or ironic?

4. Discuss Meinke’s use of humor. Is it effective? 5. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the voice in this

poem with that in Galway Kinnell’s “After Making Love We Hear Footsteps” (p. 511). Which do you fi nd more appealing? Why?

Found Poem

This next selection is a found poem, unintentional verse discovered in a nonpoetic context, such as a conversation, news story, or an advertisement. Found poems are playful reminders that the words in poems are very often the language we use every day. Whether such found language should be regarded as a poem is an issue left for you to consider.

Donald Justice (1925–2004)

Order in the Streets 1969

(From instructions printed on a child’s toy, Christmas 1968, as reported in the New York Times)

1. 2. 3. Switch on.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... justice / order in the streets 521

Jeep rushes to the scene of riot 5

Jeep goes in all directions by mystery action.

Jeep stops periodically to turn hood over 10

machine gun appears with realistic shooting noise.

After putting down riot, jeep goes 15 back to the headquarters.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the effect of arranging these instructions in discrete lines? How are the language and meaning enhanced by this arrangement?

2. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Look for phrases or sentences in ads, textbooks, labels, or directions — in anything that might inadvertently contain provocative material that would be revealed by arranging the words in verse lines. You may even discover some patterns of rhyme and rhythm. After arranging the lines, explain why you organized them as you did.

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

This page intentionally left blank

523

Poetry in Depth

20. A Study of Billy Collins: The Author Refl ects on Five Poems 525

21. A Thematic Case Study: Humor and Satire 550

This page intentionally left blank

525

More interesting to me than what a poem means is how it travels. In the classroom, I like to substitute for the question, “What is the meaning of the poem?” other questions: “How does this poem go?” or “How does this poem travel through itself in search of its own ending?”

— BILLY COLLINS

Billy Collins selected the five poems presented in this chapter and provided commentaries for each so that readers of this anthology might gain a sense of how he, a former poet laureate and teacher, writes and thinks about poetry. In his perspectives on the poems, Collins explores a variety of literary elements ranging from the poems’ origins, allusions, images, metaphors, symbols, and tone to his strategies for maintaining his integrity and sensitivity to both language and the reader. Be advised, however, that these discussions do not constitute CliffsNotes to the poems; Collins does not interpret a single one of them for us. Instead of “beating it with a hose / to find out what it really means,” as he writes in his poem “Introduction to Poetry” (p. 364), he “hold[s] it up to the light” so that we can see more clearly how each poem works. He explains that the purpose of his discussions is to have students “see how a poem gets written from the opening lines, through the shifts and maneuvers of

20 A Study of Billy Collins:

The Author Refl ects on Five Poems

© Juliet van Otteren.

526 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

the body to whatever closure the poem manages to achieve . . . to make the process of writing a poem less mysterious without taking away the mystery that is at the heart of every good poem.”

Along with Collins’s illuminating and friendly tutorial, the chapter also provides some additional contexts, such as photos from the poet’s personal collection; a screen shot that offers a look at his unique — and dynamic — Web presence, which includes a collection of short animated films set to his work; a draft manuscript page; and an interview with Michael Meyer.

A BRIEF BIOGR APHY AND AN INTRODUCTION TO HIS WORK Born in New York City in 1941, Billy Collins grew up in Queens, the only child of a nurse and an electrician. His father had hoped that he might go to the Harvard Business School, but following his own lights, after graduating from Holy Cross College, he earned a Ph.D. at the University of California, Riverside, in Romantic poetry, and then began a career in the English department at Lehman College, City University of New York, where he taught writing and literature for more than thirty years. He has also tutored writers at the National University of Ireland at Galway, Sarah Lawrence College, Arizona State University, Columbia University, and Rollins College. Along the way, he wrote poems that eventually earned him a reputation among many people as the most popular living poet in America.

Among his ten collections of poetry are Ballistics (2008), The Trouble with Poetry (2005), Nine Horses (2002), Sailing Alone Around the Room (2001), Picnic, Lightning (1998), The Art of Drowning (1995), Questions About Angels (1991), and The Apple That Astonished Paris (1988). Collins also edited two anthologies of contemporary poetry designed to entice high school students: Poetry 180: A Turning Back to Poetry (2003) and 180 More: Extraordinary Poems for Every Day (2005). His many honors include fellowships from the New York Foundation for the Arts, the National Endowment for the Arts, and the Guggenheim Foundation. Poetry magazine has awarded him the Oscar Blumenthal Prize, the Bess Hokin Prize, the Frederick Bock Prize, and the Levinson Prize.

a brief biography and an introduction to his work 527

Billy Collins on his first day at Holy Cross College, 1959. © Courtesy of Billy Collins.

Collins characterizes himself as someone who was once a professor who wrote poems but who is now a poet who occasionally teaches. This transformation was hard earned because he didn’t publish his first complete book of poems until he was in his early forties, with no expectation that twenty years later he would be named United States

Billy Collins on his first day as a student at St. Joan of Arc School, Jackson Heights, N.Y., 1948. © Courtesy of Billy Collins.

“I climbed into the building where all the letters of the alphabet and all the numbers were waiting for me.”

528 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

Poet Laureate (a gift of hope to writers everywhere). Just as writing poetry has been good for Billy Collins, he has been good for poetry. Both their reputations have risen simultaneously owing to his appeal to audiences that pack high school auditoriums, college halls, and public theaters all over the country. His many popular readings — including broadcasts on National Public Radio — have helped to make him a best-selling poet, a phrase that is ordinarily an oxymoron in America.

Of this photo, Collins remarks, “The striped pants must be blamed on the ’70s. I might add that quitting smoking was about the coolest thing I have ever done.” Courtesy of Billy Collins.

Billy Collins, senior photo, Holy Cross College, 1963. © Courtesy of Billy Collins.

a brief biography and an introduction to his work 529

Unlike many poetry readings, Collins’s are attended by readers and fans who come to whoop, holler, and cheer after nearly every poem, as well as to laugh out loud. His audiences are clearly relieved to be in the presence of a poet who speaks to them (not down) without a trace of pretension, superiority, or presumption. His work is welcoming and readable because he weaves observations about the commonplace materials of our lives — the notes we write in the margins of our books, the food we eat, the way we speak, even the way we think of death — into startling, evocative insights that open our eyes wider than they were before.

To understand Collins’s attraction to audiences is to better understand his appeal on the page. He wins the affection of audiences with his warmth and genial charm, an affability that makes him appear unreserved and approachable but never intrusive or over the top. He is a quieter, suburban version of Walt Whitman — with a dash of Emily Dickinson’s reserve. He gives just enough and lets the poems do the talking so that he remains as mysteriously appealing as his poems. His persona is well crafted and serves to engage readers in the world of his art rather than in his personal life. In a parallel manner, he has often described the openings of his poems as “hospitable” — an invitation to the reader to move further into the poem without having to worry about getting lost in the kind of self- referential obscurity and opacity that sometimes characterize modern poetry.

Perhaps not surprisingly, some critics and fellow poets have objected that Collins’s poems may sometimes bear up to little more than the pleasures of one reading. Collins, however, believes immediate pleasure can be a primary motivation for reading poetry, and he argues that a poem using simple language should not be considered simpleminded. In his work, the ordinary, the everyday, and the familiar often become curious, unusual, and surprising the more closely the poems are read. In interviews, he has compared a first reading of his poems to a reading of the large E at the top of an eye chart in an optometrist’s office. What starts out clear and unambiguous gradually becomes more complicated and demanding as we squint to make our way to the end. That big E — it might be read as “enter” — welcomes us in and gives us the confidence to enjoy the experience, but it doesn’t mean that there aren’t challenges ahead. The casual, “easy” read frequently becomes a thought-provoking compound of humor, irony, and unconventional wisdom. Humor is such an essential part of Collins’s work that in 2004 he was the first recipient of the Poetry Foundation’s Mark Twain Award for Humor in Poetry. Given this remarkable trifecta of humor, popularity, and book sales, it is hardly to be unexpected that Collins gives some of his colleagues — as Mark Twain might have put it — the “fantods,” but his audiences and readers eagerly anticipate whatever poetic pleasures he will offer them next. In any case, Whitman made the point more than 150 years ago in his preface to Leaves of Grass: “The proof of a poet is that his country absorbs him as affectionately as he has absorbed it.”

530 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

(Above) The poet with his dog, Luke. Scarsdale, N.Y., 1970s. Courtesy of Billy Collins.

(Right) Billy Collins, in his office at Lehman College, 1984. Courtesy of Billy Collins.

collins / “how do poems travel?” 531

Billy Collins

“How Do Poems Travel?” 2008

Asking a poet to examine his or her own work is a bit like trying to get a puppy interested in looking in a mirror. Parakeets take an interest in their own reflections but not puppies, who are too busy smelling everything and tumbling over themselves to have time for self-regard. Maybe the difficulty is that most imaginative poems issue largely from the intuitive right side of the brain, whereas literary criticism draws on the brain’s more rational, analytic left side. So, writing about your own writing involves getting up, moving from one room of the brain to another, and taking all the furniture with you. When asked about the source of his work, one contemporary poet remarked that if he knew where his poems came from, he would go there and never come back. What he was implying is that much of what goes on in the creative moment takes place on a stealthy level beneath the writer’s conscious awareness. If creative work did not offer access to this somewhat mysterious, less than rational region, we would all be writing annual reports or law briefs, not stories, plays, and poems.

Just because you don’t know what you are doing doesn’t mean you are not doing it; so let me say what I do know about the writing process. While writing a poem, I am also listening to it. As the poem gets underway, I am pushing it forward — after all, I am the one holding the pencil — but I am also ready to be pulled in the direction that the poem seems to want to go. I am willfully writing the poem, but I am also submitting to the poem’s will. Emerson once compared writing poetry to ice-skating. I think he meant that both the skater on a frozen pond and the poet on the page might end up going places they didn’t intend to go. And Mario Andretti, the Grand Prix driver, once remarked that “If you think everything is under control, you’re just not driving fast enough.”

Total control over any artistic material eliminates the possibility of surprise. I would not bother to start a poem if I already knew how it was going to end. I try to “maintain the benefits of my ignorance,” as another poet put it, letting the poem work toward an understanding of itself (and of me) as I go along. In a student essay, the idea is to stick to the topic. In much imaginative poetry, the pleasure lies in finding a way to escape the initial topic, to transcend the subject and ride the poem into strange, unforeseen areas. As poet John Ashbery put it: “In the process of writing, all sorts of unexpected things happen that shift the poet away from his plan; these accidents are really what we mean whenever we talk about Poetry.” Readers of poetry see only the finished product set confidently on the page; but the process of writing a poem involves uncertainty, ambiguity, improvisation, and surprise.

I think of poetry as the original travel literature in that a poem can take me to an imaginative place where I have never been. A good poem often progresses by a series of associative leaps, including sudden shifts in time and space, all of which results in a kind of mental journey. I never

532 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

know the ending of the poem when I set out, but I am aware that I am moving the poem toward some destination, and when I find the ending, I recognize it right away. More interesting to me than what a poem means is how it travels. In the classroom, I like to substitute for the question, “What is the meaning of the poem?” other questions: “How does this poem go?” or “How does this poem travel through itself in search of its own ending?” Maybe a few of my poems that follow will serve as illustrations, and I hope what I have said so far will help you articulate how poems go and how they find their endings.

Billy Collins

Osso Buco° 1995

I love the sound of the bone against the plate and the fortress-like look of it lying before me in a moat of risotto, the meat soft as the leg of an angel who has lived a purely airborne existence. 5 And best of all, the secret marrow, the invaded privacy of the animal prized out with a knife and swallowed down with cold, exhilarating wine.

I am swaying now in the hour after dinner, 10 a citizen tilted back on his chair, a creature with a full stomach — something you don’t hear much about in poetry, that sanctuary of hunger and deprivation. You know: the driving rain, the boots by the door, 15 small birds searching for berries in winter.

But tonight, the lion of contentment has placed a warm, heavy paw on my chest, and I can only close my eyes and listen to the drums of woe throbbing in the distance 20 and the sound of my wife’s laughter on the telephone in the next room, the woman who cooked the savory osso buco, who pointed to show the butcher the ones she wanted. She who talks to her faraway friend 25 while I linger here at the table with a hot, companionable cup of tea,

Osso Buco: An Italian veal dish; translated as “hole [buco] bone [osso].”

collins / on writing “osso buco” 533

feeling like one of the friendly natives, a reliable guide, maybe even the chief’s favorite son.

Somewhere, a man is crawling up a rocky hillside 30 on bleeding knees and palms, an Irish penitent carrying the stone of the world in his stomach; and elsewhere people of all nations stare at one another across a long, empty table.

But here, the candles give off their warm glow, 35 the same light that Shakespeare and Izaak Walton wrote by, the light that lit and shadowed the faces of history. Only now it plays on the blue plates, the crumpled napkins, the crossed knife and fork.

In a while, one of us will go up to bed 40 and the other one will follow. Then we will slip below the surface of the night into miles of water, drifting down and down to the dark, soundless bottom until the weight of dreams pulls us lower still, 45 below the shale and layered rock, beneath the strata of hunger and pleasure, into the broken bones of the earth itself, into the marrow of the only place we know.

Billy Collins

On Writing “Osso Buco” 2008

The critic Terry Eagleton pointed out that “writing is just language which can function perfectly well in the physical absence of its author.” In other words, the author does not have to accompany his or her writing into the world to act as its interpreter or chaperone. One way for a poem to achieve that kind of independence is to exhibit a certain degree of clarity, at least in the opening lines. The ideal progression of a poem is from the clear to the mysterious. A poem that begins simply can engage the reader by establishing a common ground and then lead the reader into more challenging, less familiar territory. Robert Frost’s poems are admirable models of this process of deepening. Of course, if the initial engagement is not made early, it’s hard to see how the participation of a reader can be counted on.

“Osso Buco” opens with a gourmand’s appreciation of a favorite dish, one commonly served up in Italian restaurants. The one thing I knew at the outset was that the poem was going to be a meditation on the subject of contentment. Misery, despondency, melancholy, and just plain human wretchedness are more likely to be the moods of poetry. Indeed, happiness in

534 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

serious literature is often mistaken for a kind of cowlike stupidity. I thought I would address that imbalance by taking on the challenge of writing about the pleasures of a full stomach. Even the gloomiest of philosophers admits that there are occasional interruptions in the despondency that is the human lot; so why not pay those moments some poetic attention?

To me, the image of “the lion of contentment” suggested a larger set of metaphors connected to African exploration that might add glue to the poem. A metaphor can be deployed in one line of a poem and then dropped, but other times the poem develops an interest in its own language and a metaphor can be extended and explored. The result can bind together a number of disparate thoughts by giving them a common vocabulary. Thus, in this extended metaphor that begins with “the lion of contentment,” “drums of woe” are heard “throbbing in the distance,” and later the speaker feels like “one of the friendly natives” or “even the chief’s favorite son.”

In the fourth stanza, the camera pulls back from the domestic scene of the poem and its mood of contentment to survey examples of human suffering taking place elsewhere. The man with bleeding knees is a reference to the religious pilgrims who annually climb Croagh Patrick, a rocky mountain in the west of Ireland. The image of the “long, empty table” is meant to express the condition of world hunger and famine. But the poem offers those images only in contrast to its insistent theme: satisfaction. Back in the kitchen, there is the candle-lit scene of pleasures recently taken. The mention of Shakespeare and Izaak Walton, who wrote The Compleat Angler, a whimsical book on the pleasures of fly-fishing, adds some historic perspective and shows the speaker to be a person of some refinement, an appreciator of literature, history, and, of course, food.

The poem so far has made two noticeable maneuvers, shifting to a global then a historical perspective, but in the final stanza the poem takes its biggest turn when it hits upon the resolving metaphor of geology. The couple retires to bed — another pleasure — descends into sleep, then deeper into dreams, then deeper still through the layers of the earth and into its very center, a “marrow” which harkens back to the bone marrow of the eaten calf. Thus the poem travels from the domestic setting of a kitchen to the plains of Africa, a mountain in Ireland, then back to the kitchen before boring into the core of the earth itself — a fairly extensive journey for a poem of only fifty lines, but not untypical of the kind of ground a lyric poem can quickly cover.

Billy Collins

Nostalgia 1991

Remember the 1340s? We were doing a dance called the Catapult. You always wore brown, the color craze of the decade, and I was draped in one of those capes that were popular, the ones with unicorns and pomegranates in needlework.

collins / on writing “nostalgia” 535

Everyone would pause for beer and onions in the afternoon, 5 and at night we would play a game called “Find the Cow.” Everything was hand-lettered then, not like today.

Where has the summer of 1572 gone? Brocade and sonnet marathons were the rage. We used to dress up in the flags of rival baronies and conquer one another in cold rooms of stone. 10 Out on the dance floor we were all doing the Struggle while your sister practiced the Daphne all alone in her room. We borrowed the jargon of farriers for our slang. These days language seems transparent, a badly broken code.

The 1790s will never come again. Childhood was big. 15 People would take walks to the very tops of hills and write down what they saw in their journals without speaking. Our collars were high and our hats were extremely soft. We would surprise each other with alphabets made of twigs. It was a wonderful time to be alive, or even dead. 20

I am very fond of the period between 1815 and 1821. Europe trembled while we sat still for our portraits. And I would love to return to 1901 if only for a moment, time enough to wind up a music box and do a few dance steps, or shoot me back to 1922 or 1941, or at least let me 25 recapture the serenity of last month when we picked berries and glided through afternoons in a canoe.

Even this morning would be an improvement over the present. I was in the garden then, surrounded by the hum of bees and the Latin names of flowers, watching the early light 30 flash off the slanted windows of the greenhouse and silver the limbs on the rows of dark hemlocks.

As usual, I was thinking about the moments of the past, letting my memory rush over them like water rushing over the stones on the bottom of a stream. 35 I was even thinking a little about the future, that place where people are doing a dance we cannot imagine, a dance whose name we can only guess.

Billy Collins

On Writing “Nostalgia” 2008

“Nostalgia’’ offers me the opportunity to say something about poetic form. Broadly speaking, form can mean any feature of a poem that keeps it together and gives it unity. Form is the nails and glue that hold the emotions and thoughts of a poem in place. Naturally, poets are in the

536 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

business of self-expression, but paradoxically they are always looking for limits. Form can be inherited — the sonnet is an enduring example — or the poet may make up his own rules as he goes along. He might even decide at some point to break the very rules he just imposed upon himself. In either case, formal rules give the poet an enclosed space in which to work, and they keep the poem from descending into chaos or tantrum. As poet Stephen Dunn put it, “form is the pressure that an artist puts on his material in order to see what it will bear.”

The Irish poet W. B. Yeats felt that “all that is personal will rot unless it is packed in ice and salt.” For a formalist poet like Yeats, “ice and salt,” which were common food preservatives of his day, probably meant rhyme and meter. After Walt Whitman showed in Leaves of Grass (1855) that poems could be written without those two traditional supporting pillars, poets still had many other formal devices at their disposal. Just because poets could now write poems without a design of rhyme words at the ends of lines or a regular meter such as iambic pentameter did not mean they had abandoned form. Some of these alternative formal strategies would include line length, stanza choice, repetition, rhetorical development (beginning– middle–end), and thematic recurrence as well as patterns of sound and imagery. Focusing on form allows us to see that poetry can combine a high level of imaginative freedom with the imposition of boundaries and rules of procedure. For the reader, the coexistence of these two contrary elements — liberty and restriction — may be said to create a pleasurable tension found to a higher degree in poetry than in any other literary genre.

An apparent formal element in “Nostalgia,’’ besides its use of stanza breaks, is the chronological sequence it obediently follows. After the absurd opening question (to which the only answer is no), the poem moves forward from the Middle Ages (the 1340s would place us smack in the middle of the Black Death) to the Renaissance, to the beginnings of English Romanticism, that being 1798, when the first edition of Lyrical Ballads, a poetic collaboration between Wordsworth and Coleridge, was published. The poem then continues to travel forward in time, but now more whimsically with dates that seem plucked out of the air — 1901, 1922, 1941 — before arriving rather abruptly at “last month” and then “this morning.” If nothing else, the poem demonstrates poetry’s freedom from normal time constraints as it manages to travel more than six hundred years from the Middle Ages to the present in only twenty-eight lines.

When the poem does arrive at the present, the speaker morphs from a kind of thousand-year-old man into an actual person, a sympathetic fellow who likes to garden and who appreciates the sounds and sights of the natural world. The imaginary historical journey of the poem ends amid the bees and flowers of the speaker’s garden, where he continues to dwell nostalgically on the past until his attention turns to the future, really the only place left for him to go. Having relinquished his power as an eyewitness to centuries of human civilization, the speaker trails off in a dreamy speculation about the unknowable dance crazes of the future.

collins / questions about angels 537

The poem takes a lot of imaginative liberties in the oddness of its premise and its free-ranging images, yet, formally speaking, it is held together by a strict chronological line drawn from the distant historical past right through the present moment and into the future.

I don’t recall how a lot of my poems got started, but I do remember that this poem arose out of a kind of annoyance. Just as a grain of sand can irritate an oyster into producing a pearl by coating it with a smooth surface, so a poem may be irked into being. What was bugging me in this case was the popular twentieth-century habit of breaking the past into decades (“the fifties,” “the sixties,” and so forth), constructs which amounted to little more than a collage of stereotypes. What a gross simplification of this mysterious, invisible thing we call the past, I thought. Even worse, each decade was so sentimentalized as to make one feel that its passing was cause for feelings of melancholy and regret. “Nostalgia,” then, is a poem with a motive, that is, to satirize that kind of enforced nostalgia.

Billy Collins

Questions About Angels 1991

Of all the questions you might want to ask about angels, the only one you ever hear is how many can dance on the head of a pin.

No curiosity about how they pass the eternal time besides circling the Throne chanting in Latin 5 or delivering a crust of bread to a hermit on earth or guiding a boy and girl across a rickety wooden bridge.

Do they fly through God’s body and come out singing? Do they swing like children from the hinges of the spirit world saying their names backwards and forwards? 10 Do they sit alone in little gardens changing colors?

What about their sleeping habits, the fabric of their robes, their diet of unfiltered divine light? What goes on inside their luminous heads? Is there a wall these tall presences can look over and see hell? 15

If an angel fell off a cloud, would he leave a hole in a river and would the hole float along endlessly filled with the silent letters of every angelic word?

If an angel delivered the mail, would he arrive in a blinding rush of wings or would he just assume 20 the appearance of the regular mailman and whistle up the driveway reading the postcards?

538 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

No, the medieval theologians control the court. The only question you ever hear is about the little dance floor on the head of a pin 25 where halos are meant to converge and drift invisibly.

It is designed to make us think in millions, billions, to make us run out of numbers and collapse into infinity, but perhaps the answer is simply one: one female angel dancing alone in her stocking feet, 30 a small jazz combo working in the background.

She sways like a branch in the wind, her beautiful eyes closed, and the tall thin bassist leans over to glance at his watch because she has been dancing forever, and now it is very late, even for musicians. 35

Billy Collins

On Writing “Questions About Angels” 2008

I find that it doesn’t take much to get a poem going. A poem can start casually with something trivial and then develop significance along the way. The first inkling may act as a keyhole that allows the poet to look into an imaginary room. When I started to write “Questions About Angels,” I really had nothing on my mind except that odd, speculative question: How many angels can dance on the head of a pin? Seemingly unanswerable, the question originated as an attempt to mock certain medieval philosophers (notably Thomas Aquinas) who sought to solve arcane theological mysteries through the sheer application of reason. I had first heard the question when I was studying theology at a Jesuit college, but well before that, the phrase had made its way into the mainstream of modern parlance. It was typical of me to want to begin a poem with something everyone knows and then proceed from there. The poem found a direction to go in when it occurred to me to open up the discussion to include other questions. At that point, it was “Game on.”

My investigation really begins in the second stanza, which draws on traditional images of angels in religious art, either worshipping God or paying helpful visits to earth, assisting the poor and protecting the innocent. Then the questions become more fanciful — off-the-wall, really: “Do they fly through God’s body and come out singing?” No doubt you could come up with questions of your own about angel behavior; clearly, that has become the poem’s game — an open inquiry into the spirit life of these creatures.

After the poem’s most bizarre question, which involves a hole that a fallen angel has left in a river, the interrogation descends into the everyday

collins / litany 539

with the image of an angel delivering mail, not gloriously “in a blinding rush of wings” but just like “the regular mailman.” After a reminder of the monopoly “the medieval theologians” seem to have on questions about angels, the poem makes a sudden turn (one I did not see coming) by offering a simple, irreducible answer to that unanswerable question. On the little word “but” (line 29), the poem drops down abruptly from “billions” to “one,” and the scene shrinks from heaven to a jazz club located in eternity.

In the process of composing a poem, the poet is mentally juggling many concerns, one of the most dominant and persistent being how the poem is going to find a place to end, a point where the journey of the poem was meant to stop, a point where the poet does not want to say any more, and the reader has heard just enough. In this case, the moment she appeared — rather miraculously, as I remember — I knew that this beautiful angel “dancing alone in her stocking feet” was how the poem would close. She was the hidden destination the poem was moving toward all along without my knowing it. I had only to add the detail of the bored bassist and the odd observation that even musicians playing in eternity cannot be expected to stay awake forever.

Billy Collins

Litany 2002

You are the bread and the knife, The crystal goblet and the wine.

— Jacques Crickillon

You are the bread and the knife, the crystal goblet and the wine. You are the dew on the morning grass, and the burning wheel of the sun. You are the white apron of the baker, 5 and the marsh birds suddenly in flight.

However, you are not the wind in the orchard, the plums on the counter, or the house of cards. And you are certainly not the pine-scented air. 10 There is no way you are the pine-scented air.

It is possible that you are the fish under the bridge, maybe even the pigeon on the general’s head, but you are not even close to being the field of cornflowers at dusk. 15

540 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

And a quick look in the mirror will show that you are neither the boots in the corner nor the boat asleep in its boathouse.

It might interest you to know, speaking of the plentiful imagery of the world, 20 that I am the sound of rain on the roof.

I also happen to be the shooting star, the evening paper blowing down an alley, and the basket of chestnuts on the kitchen table.

I am also the moon in the trees 25 and the blind woman’s teacup. But don’t worry, I am not the bread and the knife. You are still the bread and the knife. You will always be the bread and the knife, not to mention the crystal goblet and — somehow — 30 the wine.

Billy Collins

On Writing “Litany” 2008

As the epigraph to this poem indicates, “Litany” was written in reaction to another poem, a love poem I came across in a literary magazine by a poet I had not heard of. What struck me about his poem was its reliance on a strategy that had its heyday in the love sonnets of the Elizabethan age, namely, the convention of flattering the beloved by comparing her to various aspects of nature. Typically, her eyes were like twin suns, her lips red as coral or rubies, her skin pure as milk, and her breath as sweet as flowers or perfume. Such exaggerations were part of the overall tendency to idealize women who were featured in the courtly love poetry of the time, each of whom was as unattainable as she was beautiful and as cruel as she was fair. It took Shakespeare to point out the ridiculousness of these hyperboles, questioning in one of his sonnets the very legitimacy of comparisons (“Shall I compare thee to a summer’s day?” [p. 487]), then drenching the whole process with the cold water of realism (“My mistress’ eyes are nothing like the sun” [p. 487]). You might think that would have put an end to the practice, but the habit of appealing to women’s vanity through comparisons persists even in the poetry of today. That poem in the magazine prompted me to respond.

Starting with the same first two lines, “Litany” seeks to rewrite the earlier poem by offering a corrective. It aims to point out the latent silliness in such comparisons and perhaps the potential absurdity at the heart of metaphor itself. The poem even wants us to think about the kind of romantic relationships that would permit such discourse.

collins / building with its face blown off 541

The poem opens by adding some new metaphors (morning dew, baker’s apron, marsh birds) to the pile, but in the second stanza, the poem reverses direction by trading in flattery for a mock-serious investigation of what this woman might be and what she is not. Instead of appealing to her sense of her own beauty, the speaker is perfectly willing to insult her by bringing up her metaphoric shortcomings. By the time he informs her that “There is no way you are the pine-scented air” and “you are not even close / to being the field of corn-flowers at dusk,” we know that this is a different kind of love poem altogether.

The second big turn comes in the fifth stanza when the speaker unexpectedly begins comparing himself to such things as “the sound of rain on the roof.” Notice that the earlier comparisons were not all positive. The “pigeon on the general’s head” should remind us of an equestrian statue in a park, and we all know what pigeons like to do to statues. But the speaker is not the least bit ashamed to flatter himself with a string of appealing images including a “shooting star,” a “basket of chestnuts,” and “the moon in the trees.” Turning attention away from the “you” of the poem to the speaker is part of the poem’s impertinence — the attentive lover turns into an egomaniac — but it echoes a strategy used by Shakespeare himself. Several of his sonnets begin by being about the beloved but end by being about the poet, specifically about his power to bestow immortality on the beloved through his art. Thus, what begins as a love poem ends as a self-love poem.

The last thing to notice is that “Litany” has a circular structure: It ends by swinging back to its beginning, to the imagery of the epigraph. True to the cheekiness of the speaker, his last words are devoted to tossing the woman a bit of false reassurance that she is still and will always be “the bread and the knife.” For whatever that’s worth.

Billy Collins

Building with Its Face Blown Off 2005

How suddenly the private is revealed in a bombed-out city, how the blue and white striped wallpaper

of a second story bedroom is now exposed to the lightly falling snow 5 as if the room had answered the explosion

wearing only its striped pajamas. Some neighbors and soldiers poke around in the rubble below

and stare up at the hanging staircase, 10 the portrait of a grandfather, a door dangling from a single hinge.

542 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

And the bathroom looks almost embarrassed by its uncovered ochre walls, the twisted mess of its plumbing, 15

the sink sinking to its knees, the ripped shower curtain, the torn goldfish trailing bubbles.

It’s like a dollhouse view as if a child on its knees could reach in 20 and pick up the bureau, straighten a picture.

Or it might be a room on a stage in a play with no characters, no dialogue or audience,

no beginning, middle and end — 25 just the broken furniture in the street, a shoe among the cinder blocks,

a light snow still falling on a distant steeple, and people crossing a bridge that still stands. 30

And beyond that — crows in a tree, the statue of a leader on a horse, and clouds that look like smoke,

and even farther on, in another country on a blanket under a shade tree, 35 a man pouring wine into two glasses

and a woman sliding out the wooden pegs of a wicker hamper filled with bread, cheese, and several kinds of olives.

Perspective

On “Building with Its Face Blown Off ”: Michael Meyer Interviews Billy Collins 2009

Meyer: The subject matter of your poetry is well known for being typically about the patterns and rhythms of everyday life, along with its delights, humor, ironies, and inevitable pain. “Building with Its Face Blown Off,” however, explicitly concerns war and is implicitly political. What prompted this minority report in your writing?

collins / on “building with its face blown off” 543

Collins: It’s true that I usually steer away from big historical subjects in my poems. I don’t want to assume a level of authority beyond what a reader might trust, nor do I want to appear ridiculous by taking a firm stand against some moral horror that any other humane person would naturally oppose. A few years back, I consciously avoided joining the movement called “Poets against the War” because I thought it was as self-obviating as “Generals for the War.” A direct approach to subjects as enormous as war or slavery or genocide carries the risk that the poet will be smothered under the weight of the topic. Plus, readers are already morally wired to respond in a certain way to such things. As a writer, you want to create an emotion, not merely activate one that already exists in the reader. And who wants to preach to the choir? I have come across few readers of poetry who are all for war; and, besides, poets have enough work to do without trying to convert the lost. William Butler Yeats put it best in his “On Being Asked for a War Poem”:

I think it better that in times like these A poet’s mouth be silent, for in truth We have no gift to set a statesman right; He has had enough of meddling who can please A young girl in the indolence of her youth, Or an old man upon a winter’s night.

Before poetry can be political, it must be personal. That’s my dim view of poems that do little more than declare that the

poet, walking the moral high road, is opposed to ethically reprehensible acts. But the world does press in on us, and I was stopped in my tracks one morning when I saw in a newspaper still another photograph of a bombed-out building, which echoed all the similar images I had seen for too many decades in too many conflicts around the world in Dresden, Sarajevo, or Baghdad, wherever shells happen to fall. That photograph revealed one personal aspect of the war: the apartment of a family blown wide open for all to see. “Building with Its Face Blown Off” was my response.

Meyer: The images in the poem have a photojournalistic quality, but they are snapped through the lens of personification rather than a camera. Isn’t a picture better than a thousand words?

Collins: I wanted to avoid the moralistic antiwar rhetoric that the underlying subject invites, so I stuck to the visual. A photojournalist once observed that to capture the horrors of war, you don’t have to go to the front lines and photograph actual armed conflict: just take a picture of a child’s shoe lying on a road. That picture would be worth many words, but as a poet I must add, maybe not quite a thousand. In this poem, I wanted to downplay the horrible violence of the destruction by treating

544 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

the event as a mere social embarrassment, an invasion of domestic privacy. As Chekhov put it, if you want to get the reader emotionally involved, write cold. For the same reason, I deployed nonviolent metaphors such as the dollhouse and the theater, where the fourth wall is absent. The poem finds a way to end by withdrawing from the scene like a camera pulling back to reveal a larger world. Finally, we are looking down as from a blimp on another country, one where the absence of war provides the tranquility that allows a man and a woman to have a picnic.

A reader once complimented me for ending this poem with olives, the olive branch being a traditional symbol of peace. Another reader heard an echo of Ernest Hemingway’s short story “In Another Country,” which concerns World War I. Just between you and me, neither of these references had ever occurred to me; but I am always glad to take credit for such happy accidents even if it is similar to drawing a target around a bullet hole. No writer can — or should want to — have absolute control over the reactions of his readers.

Meyer: In your essay on writing “Nostalgia,” you point out that “formal rules give the poet an enclosed space in which to work, and they keep the poem from descending into chaos or tantrum” (p. 536). How does form in “Building with Its Face Blown Off” prevent its emotions and thoughts from being reduced to a prose bumper sticker such as “War is hell”?

Collins: I hope what keeps this poem from getting carried away with its traumatic subject is its concentration on the photograph so that the poem maintains a visual, even cinematic, focus throughout. You could think of the poem as a one-minute movie — a short subject about a big topic. Another sign of apparent form here is the division of the poem into three-line stanzas, or tercets, which slow down the reader’s progress through the poem. Just as readers should pause slightly at the end of every poetic line (even an unpunctuated one — the equivalent of half a comma), they should also observe a little pause between stanzas. Poetry is famous for condensing large amounts of mental and emotional material into small packages, and it also encourages us to slow down from the speed at which we usually absorb information. The stanzas give the poem a look of regularity, and some of them make visible the grammatical structure of the poem’s sentences. Regular stanzas suggest that the poem comes in sections, and they remind us that poetry is a spatial arrangement of words on the page. Think of such stanzas as stones in a stream; the reader steps from one to the next to get to other side.

Meyer: In a classroom discussion of the final two stanzas, one of my students read the couple’s picnic scene as “offering an image of hope and peace in contrast to the reckless destruction that precedes it,” while another student countered that the scene appeared to be a depiction of “smug indifference and apathy to suffering.” Care to comment?

collins / on “building with its face blown off” 545

Collins: I find it fascinating that such contrary views of the poem’s ending could exist. Probably the most vexing question in poetry studies concerns interpretation. One thing to keep in mind is that readers of poetry, students especially, are much more preoccupied with “meaning” than poets are. While I am writing, I am not thinking about the poem’s meaning; I am only trying to write a good poem, which involves securing the form of the poem and getting the poem to hold together so as to stay true to itself. Thinking about what my poem means would only distract me from the real work of poetry. Neurologically speaking, I am trying to inhabit the intuitive side of the brain, not the analytical side where critical thought and “study questions” come from. “Meaning,’’ if I think of it at all, usually comes as an afterthought.

But the question remains: How do poets react to interpretations of their work? Generally speaking, once a poem is completed and then published, it is out of the writer’s hands. I’m disposed to welcome

Billy Collins Action Poetry Web site. In a 2003 interview with the American Booksellers Association, Billy Collins explained that his goal as United States Poet Laureate was for poetry “to pop up in unexpected places, like the daily announcement in high schools and on airplanes.” At the Web site for the Billy Collins Action Poetry film project (www.bcactionpoet .org), you can view artful new interpretations of the poet’s work and hear them read aloud by Collins himself, in what makes for an imaginative and elegant combination of poetry and technology. Produced by the J. Walter Thompson ad agency and the Sundance Channel.

546 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

interpretations that I did not consciously intend — that doesn’t mean my unconscious didn’t play a role — as long as those readings do not twist the poem out of shape. In “Building with Its Face Blown Off,” I added the picnicking couple simply as a sharp contrast to the scene of destruction in the war-torn city. The man and woman are free to enjoy

A draft of the unpublished poem “Busy Day” from an undated page of Collins’s notebooks. Courtesy of Billy Collins.

collins / on “building with its face blown off” 547

the luxury of each other’s company, the countryside, wine, cheese, and even a choice of olives. Are they a sign of hope? Well, yes, insofar as they show us that the whole world is not at war. Smugness? Not so much to my mind, even though that strikes me as a sensible reaction. But if a reader claimed that the couple represented Adam and Eve, or more absurdly, Antony and Cleopatra, or Donny and Marie Osmond, then I would question the person’s common sense or sanity. I might even ring for Security. Mainly, the couple is there simply to show us what is no longer available to the inhabitants of the beleaguered city and to give me a place to end the poem.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. In his commentary on “Osso Buco,” Collins observes that “happiness in serious literature is often mistaken for a kind of cowlike stupidity” (pp. 533–34). How does the language of the poem maneuver around that kind of sentimental quicksand?

2. What other “formal strategies” can you find in “Nostalgia” (p. 534) in addition to the use of stanza breaks and the chronological sequence that Collins discusses? What other poetic elements serve to unify this satiric poem?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Collins explains that he began “Questions About Angels” by setting out to mock the medieval speculative question of how many angels can dance on the head of a pin. He also describes his discovery of how to end the poem in line 29 after the word “but” (p. 539) with the image of the female angel dancing by herself in a jazz club. That was his solution. Try writing your own final six lines as you discover them from the preceding twenty-nine.

4. As Collins indicates, the speaker in “Litany” writes a parodic love poem that “ends as a self-love poem” (p. 541). Is the “cheekiness” in his language appealing to you? Explain why or why not.

5. In his final paragraph in “On ‘Building with Its Face Blown Off’” (pp. 545–47), Collins offers some commonsense observations about literary interpretation and how to read a poem sensitively and sensi- bly. He also acknowledges that wild misreadings might cause him to “ring for Security.” Write an essay on “How Not to Interpret a Poem” that articulates what you think are some of the most important problems to avoid.

Suggested Topics for Longer Papers

1. Analyze the humor in four of Collins’s poems included in this anthol- ogy (see also “Introduction to Poetry” [p. 364] and “Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s Clothes” [p. 396]). What purpose does the humor serve? Does the humor appeal to you? Explain why or why not, giving examples.

2. View the poems available on the Billy Collins Action Poetry Web site (see page 545 and www.bcactionpoet.org), where you can find visual interpretations of individual poems and hear Collins read the poems aloud. Choose three of the poems and write an analysis

548 a study of billy collins: the author reflects on five poems

of how the visual and auditory representations affect your response to the poems’ language. Explain why you think this approach enhances or diminishes — or is simply different from — reading the poem on a page.

As you read multiple works by the same author, you’re likely to be struck by the similarities and differences in those selections. You’ll begin to recognize situations, events, characters, issues, perspec- tives, styles, and strategies — even recurring words or phrases — that provide a kind of signature, making the poems in some way identifiable with that particular writer. The following questions can help you to respond to multiple works by the same author. They should help you to listen to how a writer’s works can speak to one another and to you.

1. What topics reappear in the writer’s work? What seem to be the major concerns of the author?

2. Does the author have a definable worldview that can be dis- cerned from work to work? Is, for example, the writer liberal, conservative, apolitical, or religious?

3. What social values come through in the author’s work? Does he or she seem to identify with a particular group or social class?

4. Is there a consistent voice or point of view from work to work? Is it a persona or the author’s actual self ?

5. How much of the author’s own life experiences and historical moments make their way into the works?

6. Does the author experiment with style from work to work, or are the works mostly consistent with one another?

7. Can the author’s work be identified with a literary tradition, such as carpe diem poetry, that aligns his or her work with that of other writers?

8. What is distinctive about the author’s writing? Is the language innovative? Are the themes challenging? Are the voices con- ventional? Is the tone characteristic?

9. Could you identify another work by the same author without a name being attached to it? What are the distinctive features that allow you to do so?

10. Do any of the writer’s works seem not to be by that writer? Why?

11. What other writers are most like this author in style and con- tent? Why?

Questions for Writing about an Author in Depth

questions for writing about an author in depth 549

12. Has the writer’s work evolved over time? Are there significant changes or developments? Are there new ideas and styles, or do the works remain largely the same?

13. How would you characterize the author’s writing habits? Is it possible to anticipate what goes on in different works, or are you surprised by their content or style?

14. Can difficult or ambiguous passages in a work be resolved by referring to a similar passage in another work?

15. What does the writer say about his or her own work? Do you trust the teller or the tale? Which do you think is more reliable?

Poetry can be a hoot. There are plenty of poets that leave you smiling, grinning, chuckling, and laughing out loud because they use language that is witty, surprising, teasing, or satirical. Occasionally, their subject matter is simply wacky. There’s a poem in this chapter, for example, titled “Commercial Leech Farming Today” (p. 555), that deftly squeezes humor out of bloodsucking leeches grown for treating surgical patients. Although the material might not sound promising, Thomas Lux’s treat- ment shapes this unlikely topic into a memorable satiric theme. Sadly, however, poetry is too often burdened with a reputation for only being formal and serious, and readers sometimes show their defer- ence by feeling intimidated and humbled in its earnest, weighty presence. After all, poetry frequently concerns itself with matters of great conse- quence: Its themes contemplate subjects such as God and immortality, love and death, war and peace, injustice and outrage, racism and societal ills, deprivation and disease, alienation and angst, totalitarianism and terrorism, as well as a host of other tragic grievances and agonies that

550

21 A THEMATIC CASE STUDY

Humor and Satire

I think like a poet, and behave like a poet. Occasionally I need to sit in the corner for bad behavior.

— GARY SOTO

There is nothing wrong with a poetry that is entertaining and easy to understand.

— CHARLES BUKOWSKI

© Gary Soto.

© Beinecke Library, Yale University.

adcock / the video 551

humanity might suffer. For readers of The Onion, a widely distributed satirical newspaper also available online, this prevailing grim reputation is humorously framed in a bogus story about National Poetry Month, celebrated each April to increase an awareness of the value of poetry in American life. The brief article (April 27, 2005) quotes a speaker at a fund- raising meeting of the “American Poetry Prevention Society” who cau- tions that “we must stop this scourge before more lives are exposed to poetry.” He warns that “young people, particularly morose high-school and college students, are very susceptible to this terrible affl iction.” The Onion’s satire peels away the erroneous assumption that sorrow and tears are the only appropriate responses to a poetry “infection.” Poetry — at least in its clichéd popular form — is nearly always morosely dressed in black and rarely smiles. This severe image of somber profun- dity unfortunately tailors our expectations so that we assume that seri- ous poetry cannot be playful and even downright funny or, putting the issue another way, that humorous poetry cannot be thoughtful and signifi cant. The poems in this chapter demonstrate that serious poems can be funny and that comic poems can be thoughtful. Their humor, sometimes subtle, occasionally even savage, will serve to remind you that laughter engenders thought as well as pleasure.

Fleur Adcock (b. 1934)

The Video

When Laura was born, Ceri watched. They all gathered around Mum’s bed — Dad and the midwife and Mum’s sister and Ceri. “Move over a bit,” Dad said — he was trying to focus the camcorder 5 on Mum’s legs and the baby’s head.

After she had a little sister, and Mum had gone back to being thin, and was twice as busy, Ceri played the video again and again. 10 She watched Laura come out, and then, in reverse, she made her go back in.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the humor in the fi nal line produce the theme?

2. Discuss the appropriateness of Adcock’s choice of “watched” in lines 1 and 11. What does the word suggest about Ceri?

3. How does the rhyme scheme affect your reading of the poem?

552 humor and satire

John Ciardi (1916–1986)

Suburban 1978

Yesterday Mrs. Friar phoned. “Mr. Ciardi, how do you do?” she said. “I am sorry to say this isn’t exactly a social call. The fact is your dog has just deposited — forgive me — a large repulsive object in my petunias.” 5

I thought to ask, “Have you checked the rectal grooving for a positive I.D.?” My dog, as it happened, was in Vermont with my son, who had gone fi shing — if that’s what one does with a girl, two cases of beer, and a borrowed camper. I guessed I’d get no trout. 10

But why lose out on organic gold for a wise crack? “Yes, Mrs. Friar,” I said, “I understand.” “Most kind of you,” she said. “Not at all,” I said. I went with a spade. She pointed, looking away. “I always have loved dogs,” she said, “but really!” 15

I scooped it up and bowed. “The animal of it. I hope this hasn’t upset you, Mrs. Friar.” “Not really,” she said, “but really!” I bore the turd across the line to my own petunias and buried it till the glorious resurrection 20

when even these suburbs shall give up their dead.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the speaker transform Mrs. Friar into a symbolic fi gure of the suburbs?

2. Why do you suppose Ciardi focuses on this particular incident to make a comment on the suburbs? What is the speaker’s attitude toward suburban life?

3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Write a one-paragraph physical description of Mrs. Friar that captures her character.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the speakers’ voices in “Suburban” and in John Updike’s “Dog’s Death” (p. 346).

Howard Nemerov (1920–1991)

Walking the Dog 1980

Two universes mosey down the street Connected by love and a leash and nothing else. Mostly I look at lamplight through the leaves

pastan / jump cabling 553

While he mooches along with tail up and snout down, Getting a secret knowledge through the nose 5 Almost entirely hidden from my sight.

We stand while he’s enraptured by a bush Till I can’t stand our standing any more And haul him off; for our relationship Is patience balancing to this side tug 10 And that side drag; a pair of symbionts Contented not to think each other’s thoughts.

What else we have in common’s what he taught, Our interest in shit. We know its every state From steaming fresh through stink to nature’s way 15 Of sluicing it downstreet dissolved in rain Or drying it to dust that blows away. We move along the street inspecting it.

His sense of it is keener far than mine, And only when he fi nds the place precise 20 He signifi es by sniffi ng urgently And circles thrice about, and squats, and shits. Whereon we both with dignity walk home And just to show who’s master I write the poem.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the form of this poem give it dignity despite its topic? Explain why you experience the poem as amusing or repugnant.

2. How might you read the poem differently if the last line were deleted? 3. Compare the tone of stanzas 1 and 2 with that of 3 and 4. Discuss

whether or not the two sets of stanzas are consistent and compatible. 4. Who do you think is fi nally the master? Explain why. 5 . CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Discuss the speakers’ attitudes

toward dogs in “Walking the Dog” and John Ciardi’s “Suburban” (p. 552). How does humor inform those attitudes?

Linda Pastan (b. 1932)

Jump Cabling 1984

When our cars touched, When you lifted the hood of mine To see the intimate workings underneath, When we were bound together By a pulse of pure energy, When my car like the princess In the tale woke with a start, I thought why not ride the rest of the way together?

554 humor and satire

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How is the word spacing in the poem related to its meaning?

2. Discuss the diction. How does it enhance the theme? 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Using Pastan’s word spacing as a jumping-off

point, write an alternate version of “Jump Cabling” in which the car does not start.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the style and theme of this poem with that of Pastan’s “Marks” (p. 425).

Peter Schmitt (b. 1958)

Friends with Numbers 1995

If you make friends with numbers, you don’t need any other friends. — Shakuntala Devi, math genius

They are not hard to get to know: 6 and 9 keep changing their minds, 8 cuts the most graceful fi gure but sleeps for an eternity, and 7, lucky 7, takes 5 an arrow to his heart always. 5, halfway to somewhere, only wants to patch his unicycle tire, and 4, who’d like to stand for something solid, has never had 10 two feet on the ground, yet fl utters gamely in the breeze like a fl ag. 3, for all his literary accomplishments and pretensions to immortality, is still 15 (I can tell you) not half the man 8 is asleep or awake. 1, little 1. I know him better than all the others, these numbers who are all my friends. Only 2, 20 that strange smallest prime, can I count as just a passing acquaintance. Divisible by only 1 and herself, she seems on the verge, yet, of always coming apart. 25 And though she eludes me, swanlike, though I’d love to know her better, still I am fi ne, there are others, many, I have friends in numbers.

lux / commercial leech farming today 555

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. How does the personifi cation of numbers create characters in the poem?

2. Explain how the speaker’s use of language helps to characterize him. 3. Discuss the various ways in which the single digits are transformed

into individual visual images.

Martín Espada (b. 1957)

The Community College Revises Its Curriculum in Response to Changing Demographics 2000

SPA 100 Conversational Spanish 2 credits

The course is especially concerned with giving police the ability to express themselves tersely in matters of interest to them

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What sort of political comment do you think Espada makes in this poem?

2. Would this be a poem without the title? Explain your answer. 3. CREATIVE RESPONSE. Choose a course description from your school’s

catalog and organize the catalog copy into poetic lines. Provide your poem with a title that offers a provocative commentary about it.

4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Compare the themes in Espa- da’s poem and in Donald Justice’s “Order in the Streets” (p. 520).

Thomas Lux (b. 1946)

Commercial Leech Farming Today 1997

— for Robert Sacherman

Although it never rivaled wheat, soybean, cattle and so on farming there was a living in leeches

556 humor and satire

and after a period of decline 5 there is again a living to be made from this endeavor: they’re used to reduce the blood in tissues after plastic surgery — eyelifts, tucks, 10 wrinkle erad, or in certain microsurgeries — reattaching a fi nger, penis. I love the capitalist spirit. As in most businesses the technology has improved: instead 15 of driving an elderly horse into a leech pond, letting him die by exsanguination, and hauling him out to pick the bloated blossoms 20 from his hide, it’s now done at Biopharm (the showcase operation in Swansea, Wales) — temp control, tanks, aerator pumps, several species, each for a specifi c job. Once, 19th century, 25 they were applied to the temple as a treatment for mental illness. Today we know their exact chemistry: hirudin, a blood thinner in their saliva, 30 also an anesthesia and dilators for the wound area. Don’t you love the image: the Dr. lays a leech along the tiny stitches of an eyelift. 35 Where they go after their work is done I don’t know but I’ve heard no complaints from Animal Rights so perhaps they’re retired 40 to a lake or adopted as pets, maybe the best looking kept to breed. I don’t know. I like the story, I like the going backwards to ignorance 45 to come forward to vanity. I like the small role they can play in beauty or the reattachment of a part, I like the story because it’s true. 50

kennedy / on a young man’s remaining an undergraduate 557

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Why does the speaker “like the story” (line 43) about leech farming so much? What does it symbolize to him or her?

2. How does Lux characterize the nature of contemporary life? 3. Explain how the humor in this poem moves beyond the simply

bizarre to the satirical. 4. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Discuss the perspectives on

human vanity offered in Lux’s poem and in Alice Jones’s “The Foot” (p. 472).

X. J. Kennedy (b. 1929)

On a Young Man’s Remaining an Undergraduate for Twelve Years 2006

Sweet scent of pot, the mellow smell of beer, Frat-house debates on sex, on God’s existence Lasting all night, vacations thrice a year, Pliant coeds who put up no resistance

Are all life is. Who’d give a damn for earning, 5 Who’d struggle by degrees to lofty places When he can loll, adrift in endless learning, In a warm sea of academic stasis?

He’s famous now: the everlasting kid. After conducting an investigation, 10 Two deans resigned, to do just what he did. They couldn’t fault his ratiocination.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Comment on the description of undergraduate life in the fi rst stanza and the effect of the enjambment in lines 4 and 5.

2. Discuss the sound effects in stanza 3. How are they related to sense? 3. Why is “ratiocination” (line 12) just the right word in this context?

This page intentionally left blank

559

22. Poems for Further Reading 561

A Collection of Poems

559

This page intentionally left blank

William Blake (1757–1827)

Infant Sorrow 1794

My mother groand! my father wept. Into the dangerous world I leapt: Helpless naked piping loud: Like a fi end hid in a cloud.

Struggling in my father’s hands: Striving against my swadling bands Bound and weary I thought best To sulk upon my mother’s breast.

Robert Burns (1759–1796)

A Red, Red Rose 1799

O my luve’s like a red, red rose That’s newly sprung in June;

561

22 Poems for

Further Reading

If there were no poetry on any day in the world, poetry would be invented that day. For there would be an intolerable hunger.

— MURIEL RUKEYSER © Imogen Cunningham Trust.

WEB Research the poets in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

562 poems for further reading

O my luve’s like the melodie That’s sweetly played in tune.

As fair art thou, my bonny lass, 5 So deep in luve am I; And I will luve thee still my dear, Till a’ the seas gang° dry — go

Till a’ the seas gang dry, my dear, And the rocks melt wi’ the sun: 10 O I will luve thee still, my dear, While the sands o’ life shall run.

And fare thee weel, my only luve, And fare thee weel awhile! And I will come again, my luve, 15 Though it were a thousand mile.

George Gordon, Lord Byron (1788–1824)

She Walks in Beauty 1814

From Hebrew Melodies

i

She walks in Beauty, like the night Of cloudless climes and starry skies; And all that’s best of dark and bright Meet in her aspect and her eyes: Thus mellowed to that tender light 5 Which Heaven to gaudy day denies.

ii

One shade the more, one ray the less, Had half impaired the nameless grace Which waves in every raven tress, Or softly lightens o’er her face; 10 Where thoughts serenely sweet express, How pure, how dear their dwelling-place.

iii

And on that cheek, and o’er that brow, So soft, so calm, yet eloquent, The smiles that win, the tints that glow, 15 But tell of days in goodness spent, A mind at peace with all below, A heart whose love is innocent!

coleridge / kubla khan: or, a vision in a dream 563

Lucille Clifton (1936–2010)

this morning ( for the girls of eastern high school) 1987

this morning this morning this morningi met myself

coming in

a bright jungle girl shining quick as a snake a tall tree girl a me girl

this morningi met myself this morning coming in

and all day 15 i have been a black bell ringing i survive

this morningsurvive 20

survive

Samuel Taylor Coleridge (1772–1834)

Kubla Khan: or, a Vision in a Dream° 1798

In Xanadu did Kubla Khan° A stately pleasure-dome decree: Where Alph, the sacred river, ran Through caverns measureless to man Down to a sunless sea. 5

© Christopher Felver.

Vision in a Dream: This poem came to Coleridge in an opium-induced dream, but he was interrupted by a visitor while writing it down. He was later unable to remember the rest of the poem. 1 Kubla Khan: The historical Kublai Khan (1216–1294, grandson of Genghis Khan) was the founder of the Mongol dynasty in China.

564 poems for further reading

So twice fi ve miles of fertile ground With walls and towers were girdled round: And here were gardens bright with sinuous rills Where blossomed many an incense-bearing tree; And there were forests ancient as the hills, 10 Enfolding sunny spots of greenery.

But oh! that deep romantic chasm which slanted Down the green hill athwart a cedarn cover!° A savage place! as holy and enchanted As e’er beneath a waning moon was haunted 15 By woman wailing for her demon-lover! And from this chasm, with ceaseless turmoil seething, As if this earth in fast thick pants were breathing, A mighty fountain momently was forced, Amid whose swift half-intermitted burst 20 Huge fragments vaulted like rebounding hail, Of chaffy grain beneath the thresher’s fl ail: And ’mid these dancing rocks at once and ever It fl ung up momently the sacred river. Five miles meandering with a mazy motion 25 Through wood and dale the sacred river ran, Then reached the caverns measureless to man, And sank in tumult to a lifeless ocean: And ’mid this tumult Kubla heard from far Ancestral voices prophesying war! 30 The shadow of the dome of pleasure Floated midway on the waves; Where was heard the mingled measure From the fountain and the caves. It was a miracle of rare device, 35 A sunny pleasure-dome with caves of ice!

A damsel with a dulcimer In a vision once I saw: It was an Abyssinian maid, And on her dulcimer she played, 40 Singing of Mount Abora. Could I revive within me Her symphony and song, To such a deep delight ’twould win me, That with music loud and long, 45 I would build that dome in air, That sunny dome! those caves of ice! And all who heard should see them there, And all should cry, Beware! Beware!

13 athwart . . . cover: Spanning a grove of cedar trees.

dickinson / he fumbles at your soul 565

His fl ashing eyes, his fl oating hair! 50 Weave a circle round him thrice, And close your eyes with holy dread, For he on honey-dew hath fed, And drunk the milk of Paradise.

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

Because I could not stop for Death — c. 1863

Because I could not stop for Death — He kindly stopped for me — The Carriage held but just Ourselves — And Immortality.

We slowly drove — He knew no haste 5 And I had put away My labor and my leisure too, For His Civility —

We passed the School, where Children strove At Recess — in the Ring — 10 We passed the Fields of Gazing Grain — We passed the Setting Sun —

Or rather — He passed Us — The Dews drew quivering and chill — For only Gossamer, my Gown — 15 My Tippet° — only Tulle — shawl

We paused before a House that seemed A Swelling of the Ground — The Roof was scarcely visible — The Cornice — in the Ground — 20

Since then — ’tis Centuries — and yet Feels shorter than the Day I fi rst surmised the Horses’ Heads Were toward Eternity —

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

He fumbles at your Soul c. 1862

He fumbles at your Soul As Players at the Keys Before they drop full Music on — He stuns you by degrees —

566 poems for further reading

Prepares your brittle Nature 5 For the Ethereal Blow By fainter Hammers — further heard — Then nearer — Then so slow Your Breath has time to straighten — Your Brain — to bubble Cool — 10 Deals — One — imperial — Thunderbolt — That scalps your naked Soul —

When Winds take Forests in their Paws — The Universe — is still —

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

I felt a Funeral, in my Brain c. 1861

I felt a Funeral, in my Brain, And Mourners to and fro Kept treading — treading — till it seemed That Sense was breaking through —

And when they all were seated, 5 A Service, like a Drum — Kept beating — beating — till I thought My Mind was going numb —

And then I heard them lift a Box And creak across my Soul 10 With those same Boots of Lead, again, Then Space — began to toll,

As all the Heavens were a Bell, And Being, but an Ear, And I, and Silence, some strange Race 15 Wrecked, solitary, here —

And then a Plank in Reason, broke, And I dropped down, and down — And hit a World, at every plunge, And Finished knowing — then — 20

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

I started Early — Took my Dog — c. 1862

I started Early — Took my Dog — And visited the Sea — The Mermaids in the Basement Came out to look at me—

dickinson / my life had stood — a loaded gun — 567

And Frigates — in the Upper Floor 5 Extended Hempen Hands — Presuming Me to be a Mouse — Aground — upon the Sands —

But no Man moved Me — till the Tide Went past my simple Shoe — 10 And past my Apron — and my Belt And past my Bodice — too —

And made as He would eat me up — As wholly as a Dew Upon a Dandelion’s Sleeve — 15 And then — I started — too —

And He — He followed — close behind — I felt His Silver Heel Upon my Ankle — Then my Shoes Would overfl ow with Pearl — 20

Until We met the Solid Town — No One He seemed to know — And bowing — with a Mighty look — At me — The Sea withdrew —

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

My Life had stood — a Loaded Gun — c. 1863

My Life had stood — a Loaded Gun — In Corners — till a Day The Owner passed — identifi ed — And carried Me away —

And now We roam in Sovereign Woods — 5 And now We hunt the Doe — And every time I speak for Him — The Mountains straight reply —

And do I smile, such cordial light Upon the Valley glow 10 It is as a Vesuvian face° Had let its pleasure through —

And when at Night — Our good Day done — I guard My Master’s Head — ‘Tis better than the Eider-Duck’s 15 Deep Pillow — to have shared —

11 Vesuvian face: A face that could erupt like the volcano Mt. Vesuvius.

568 poems for further reading

To foe of His — I’m deadly foe — None stir the second time — On whom I lay a Yellow Eye — Or an emphatic Thumb — 20

Though I than He — may longer live He longer must — than I — For I have but the power to kill, Without — the power to die —

John Donne (1572–1631)

The Apparition c. 1600

When by thy scorn, O murderess, I am dead, And that thou thinkst thee free From all solicitation from me, Then shall my ghost come to thy bed, And thee, feigned vestal, in worse arms shall see; 5 Then thy sick taper° will begin to wink, candle And he, whose thou art then, being tired before, Will, if thou stir, or pinch to wake him, think Thou call’st for more, And in false sleep will from thee shrink. 10 And then, poor aspen wretch, neglected, thou, Bathed in a cold quicksilver sweat, wilt lie A verier° ghost than I. truer What I will say, I will not tell thee now, Lest that preserve thee; and since my love is spent, 15 I had rather thou shouldst painfully repent, Than by my threatenings rest still innocent.

John Donne (1572–1631)

The Flea 1633

Mark but this fl ea, and mark in this° How little that which thou deny’st me is; It sucked me fi rst, and now sucks thee, And in this fl ea our two bloods mingled be; Thou know’st that this cannot be said 5 A sin, nor shame, nor loss of maidenhead, Yet this enjoys before it woo, And pampered swells with one blood made of two, And this, alas, is more than we would do.°

1 mark in this: Take note of the moral lesson in this object. 9 more than we would do: That is, if we do not join our blood in conceiving a child.

eliot / the love song of j. alfred prufrock 569

Oh stay, three lives in one fl ea spare, 10 Where we almost, yea more than, married are. This fl ea is you and I, and this Our marriage bed, and marriage temple is; Though parents grudge, and you, we’re met And cloistered in these living walls of jet. 15 Though use° make you apt to kill me, habit Let not to that, self-murder added be, And sacrilege, three sins in killing three.

Cruel and sudden, hast thou since Purpled thy nail in blood of innocence? 20 Wherein could this fl ea guilty be, Except in that drop which it sucked from thee? Yet thou triumph’st, and say’st that thou Find’st not thyself, nor me, the weaker now; ’Tis true; then learn how false, fears be; 25 Just so much honor, when thou yield’st to me, Will waste, as this fl ea’s death took life from thee.

T. S. Eliot (1888–1965)

The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock 1917

S’io credesse che mia risposta fosse A persona che mai tornasse al mondo, Questa fi amma staria senza più scosse. Ma perciocchè giammai di questo fondo Non tornò vivo alcun, s’i’odo il vero, Senza tema d’infamia ti rispondo.°

Let us go then, you and I, When the evening is spread out against the sky Like a patient etherized upon a table; Let us go, through certain half-deserted streets, The muttering retreats 5 Of restless nights in one-night cheap hotels And sawdust restaurants with oyster-shells: Streets that follow like a tedious argument

Epigraph: S’io credesse . . . rispondo: Dante’s Inferno, 27:58–63. In the Eighth Chasm of the Inferno, Dante and Virgil meet Guido da Montefeltro, one of the False Counselors, who is punished by being enveloped in an eternal fl ame. When Dante asks Guido to tell his life story, the spirit replies: “If I thought that my answer were to one who might ever return to the world, this fl ame would shake no more; but since from this depth none ever returned alive, if what I hear is true, I answer you without fear of infamy.”

570 poems for further reading

Of insidious intent To lead you to an overwhelming question . . . 10

Oh, do not ask, “What is it?” Let us go and make our visit.

In the room the women come and go Talking of Michelangelo.

The yellow fog that rubs its back upon the window panes, 15 The yellow smoke that rubs its muzzle on the window panes Licked its tongue into the corners of the evening, Lingered upon the pools that stand in drains, Let fall upon its back the soot that falls from chimneys, Slipped by the terrace, made a sudden leap, 20 And seeing that it was a soft October night, Curled once about the house, and fell asleep.

And indeed there will be time° For the yellow smoke that slides along the street, Rubbing its back upon the window panes; 25 There will be time, there will be time To prepare a face to meet the faces that you meet; There will be time to murder and create, And time for all the works and days° of hands That lift and drop a question on your plate: 30 Time for you and time for me, And time yet for a hundred indecisions, And for a hundred visions and revisions, Before the taking of a toast and tea.

In the room the women come and go 35 Talking of Michelangelo.

And indeed there will be time To wonder, “Do I dare?” and, “Do I dare?” — Time to turn back and descend the stair, With a bald spot in the middle of my hair — 40 (They will say: “How his hair is growing thin!”) My morning coat, my collar mounting fi rmly to the chin, My necktie rich and modest, but asserted by a simple pin — (They will say: “But how his arms and legs are thin!”) Do I dare 45 Disturb the universe? In a minute there is time For decisions and revisions which a minute will reverse.

23 there will be time: An allusion to Ecclesiastes 3:1–8: “To everything there is a season, and a time to every purpose under heaven. . . .” 29 works and days: Hesiod’s eighth-century B.C. poem Works and Days gives practical advice on how to conduct one’s life in accordance with the seasons.

eliot / the love song of j. alfred prufrock 571

For I have known them all already, known them all: Have known the evenings, mornings, afternoons, 50 I have measured out my life with coffee spoons; I know the voices dying with a dying fall Beneath the music from a farther room. So how should I presume?

And I have known the eyes already, known them all — 55 The eyes that fi x you in a formulated phrase. And when I am formulated, sprawling on a pin, When I am pinned and wriggling on the wall, Then how should I begin To spit out all the butt-ends of my days and ways? 60 And how should I presume?

And I have known the arms already, known them all — Arms that are braceleted and white and bare (But in the lamplight, downed with light brown hair!) Is it perfume from a dress 65 That makes me so digress? Arms that lie along a table, or wrap about a shawl. And should I then presume? And how should I begin?

Shall I say, I have gone at dusk through narrow streets, 70 And watched the smoke that rises from the pipes Of lonely men in shirtsleeves, leaning out of windows? . . .

I should have been a pair of ragged claws Scuttling across the fl oors of silent seas.

And the afternoon, the evening, sleeps so peacefully! 75 Smoothed by long fi ngers, Asleep . . . tired . . . or it malingers, Stretched on the fl oor, here beside you and me. Should I, after tea and cakes and ices, Have the strength to force the moment to its crisis? 80 But though I have wept and fasted, wept and prayed, Though I have seen my head (grown slightly bald) brought in upon a

platter,° I am no prophet — and here’s no great matter; I have seen the moment of my greatness fl icker, And I have seen the eternal Footman hold my coat, and snicker, 85 And in short, I was afraid.

And would it have been worth it, after all, After the cups, the marmalade, the tea,

82 head . . . upon a platter: At Salome’s request, Herod had John the Baptist decapi- tated and had the severed head delivered to her on a platter (see Matt. 14:1–12 and Mark 6:17–29).

572 poems for further reading

Among the porcelain, among some talk of you and me, Would it have been worth while 90 To have bitten off the matter with a smile, To have squeezed the universe into a ball° To roll it toward some overwhelming question, To say: “I am Lazarus,° come from the dead, Come back to tell you all, I shall tell you all” — 95 If one, settling a pillow by her head, Should say: “That is not what I meant at all; That is not it, at all.”

And would it have been worth it, after all, Would it have been worth while, 100 After the sunsets and the dooryards and the sprinkled streets, After the novels, after the teacups, after the skirts that trail along the

fl oor — And this, and so much more? — It is impossible to say just what I mean! But as if a magic lantern threw the nerves in patterns on a screen: 105 Would it have been worth while If one, settling a pillow or throwing off a shawl, And turning toward the window, should say: “That is not it at all, That is not what I meant, at all.” 110

No! I am not Prince Hamlet, nor was meant to be; Am an attendant lord,° one that will do To swell a progress,° start a scene or two, state procession Advise the prince: withal, an easy tool, Deferential, glad to be of use, 115 Politic, cautious, and meticulous; Full of high sentence, but a bit obtuse; At times, indeed, almost ridiculous — Almost, at times, the Fool.

I grow old . . . I grow old . . . 120 I shall wear the bottoms of my trousers rolled. Shall I part my hair behind? Do I dare to eat a peach? I shall wear white fl annel trousers, and walk upon the beach. I have heard the mermaids singing, each to each.

I do not think that they will sing to me. 125

92 squeezed the universe into a ball: See Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” (p. 384), lines 41–42: “Let us roll all our strength and all / Our sweetness up into one ball.” 94 Lazarus: The brother of Mary and Martha who was raised from the dead by Jesus (John 11:1–44). In Luke 16:19–31, a rich man asks that another Lazarus return from the dead to warn the living about their treatment of the poor. 112 attendant lord: Like Polonius in Shakespeare’s Hamlet.

frost / mending wall 573

I have seen them riding seaward on the waves, Combing the white hair of the waves blown back When the wind blows the water white and black.

We have lingered in the chambers of the sea By seagirls wreathed with seaweed red and brown, 130 Till human voices wake us, and we drown.

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

Mending Wall 1914

Something there is that doesn’t love a wall, That sends the frozen-ground-swell under it, And spills the upper boulders in the sun; And makes gaps even two can pass abreast. The work of hunters is another thing: 5 I have come after them and made repair Where they have left not one stone on a stone, But they would have the rabbit out of hiding, To please the yelping dogs. The gaps I mean, No one has seen them made or heard them made, 10 But at spring mending-time we fi nd them there. I let my neighbor know beyond the hill; And on a day we meet to walk the line And set the wall between us once again. We keep the wall between us as we go. 15 To each the boulders that have fallen to each. And some are loaves and some so nearly balls We have to use a spell to make them balance: “Stay where you are until our backs are turned!” We wear our fi ngers rough with handling them. 20 Oh, just another kind of outdoor game, One on a side. It comes to little more: There where it is we do not need the wall: He is all pine and I am apple orchard. My apple trees will never get across 25 And eat the cones under his pines, I tell him. He only says, “Good fences make good neighbors.” Spring is the mischief in me, and I wonder If I could put a notion in his head: “Why do they make good neighbors? Isn’t it 30 Where there are cows? But here there are no cows. Before I built a wall I’d ask to know What I was walling in or walling out, And to whom I was like to give offense. Something there is that doesn’t love a wall, 35

574 poems for further reading

That wants it down.” I could say “Elves” to him, But it’s not elves exactly, and I’d rather He said it for himself. I see him there Bringing a stone grasped fi rmly by the top In each hand, like an old-stone savage armed. 40 He moves in darkness as it seems to me, Not of woods only and the shade of trees. He will not go behind his father’s saying, And he likes having thought of it so well He says again, “Good fences make good neighbors.” 45

Robert Frost (1874–1963)

The Road Not Taken 1916

Two roads diverged in a yellow wood, And sorry I could not travel both And be one traveler, long I stood And looked down one as far as I could To where it bent in the undergrowth; 5

Then took the other, as just as fair, And having perhaps the better claim, Because it was grassy and wanted wear; Though as for that the passing there Had worn them really about the same, 10

And both that morning equally lay In leaves no step had trodden black. Oh, I kept the fi rst for another day! Yet knowing how way leads on to way, I doubted if I should ever come back. 15

I shall be telling this with a sigh Somewhere ages and ages hence: Two roads diverged in a wood, and I — I took the one less traveled by, And that has made all the difference. 20

Thomas Hardy (1840–1928)

Hap 1866

If but some vengeful god would call to me From up the sky, and laugh: “Thou suffering thing, Know that thy sorrow is my ecstasy, That thy love’s loss is my hate’s profi ting!”

housman / to an athlete dying young 575

Then would I bear it, clench myself, and die, 5 Steeled by the sense of ire unmerited; Half-eased in that a Powerfuller than I Had willed and meted me the tears I shed.

But not so. How arrives it joy lies slain, And why unblooms the best hope ever sown? 10 — Crass Casualty obstructs the sun and rain, And dicing Time for gladness casts a moan. . . . These purblind Doomsters had as readily strown Blisses about my pilgrimage as pain.

Gerard Manley Hopkins (1844–1889)

Pied Beauty 1877

Glory be to God for dappled things — For skies of couple-color as a brinded cow; For rose-moles all in stipple upon trout that swim; Fresh-fi recoal chestnut-falls;° fi nches’ wings; fallen chestnut Landscape plotted and pieced — fold, fallow, and plow; 5 And all trades, their gear and tackle and trim.

All things counter, original, spare, strange; Whatever is fi ckle, freckled (who knows how?) With swift, slow; sweet, sour; adazzle, dim; He fathers-forth whose beauty is past change: 10 Praise him.

A. E. Housman (1859–1936)

To an Athlete Dying Young 1896

The time you won your town the race We chaired° you through the marketplace; Man and boy stood cheering by, And home we brought you shoulder-high.

Today, the road all runners come, 5 Shoulder-high we bring you home, And set you at your threshold down, Townsman of a stiller town.

2 chaired: Carried on the shoulders in triumphal parade.

576 poems for further reading

Smart lad, to slip betimes away From fi elds where glory does not stay, 10 And early though the laurel° grows It withers quicker than the rose.

Eyes the shady night has shut Cannot see the record cut, And silence sounds no worse than cheers 15 After earth has stopped the ears:

Now you will not swell the rout Of lads that wore their honors out, Runners whom renown outran And the name died before the man. 20

To set, before its echoes fade, The fl eet foot on the sill of shade, And hold to the low lintel up The still-defended challenge-cup.

And round that early-laureled head 25 Will fl ock to gaze the strengthless dead, And fi nd unwithered on its curls The garland briefer than a girl’s.

11 laurel: Flowering shrub traditionally used to fashion wreaths of honor.

Langston Hughes (1902–1967)

Harlem 1951

What happens to a dream deferred?

Does it dry up like a raisin in the sun? Or fester like a sore — And then run? 5 Does it stink like rotten meat? Or crust and sugar over — like a syrupy sweet?

Maybe it just sags like a heavy load. 10

Or does it explode?

keats / la belle dame sans merci 577

Ben Jonson (1573–1637)

To Celia 1616

Drink to me only with thine eyes, And I will pledge with mine; Or leave a kiss but in the cup, And I’ll not ask for wine. The thirst that from the soul doth rise 5 Doth ask a drink divine; But might I of Jove’s nectar sup, I would not change for thine.

I sent thee late a rosy wreath, Not so much honoring thee 10 As giving it a hope that there It could not withered be. But thou thereon didst only breathe, And sent’st it back to me; Since when it grows, and smells, I swear, 15 Not of itself but thee.

John Keats (1795–1821)

La Belle Dame sans Merci° 1819

O what can ail thee, knight-at-arms, Alone and palely loitering? The sedge has withered from the lake, And no birds sing.

O what can ail thee, knight-at-arms, 5 So haggard and so woe-begone? The squirrel’s granary is full, And the harvest’s done.

I see a lily on thy brow, With anguish moist and fever dew, 10 And on thy cheeks a fading rose Fast withereth too.

La Belle Dame sans Merci: This title is borrowed from a medieval poem and means “The Beautiful Lady without Mercy.”

578 poems for further reading

I met a lady in the meads, Full beautiful — a faery’s child, Her hair was long, her foot was light, 15 And her eyes were wild.

I made a garland for her head, And bracelets too, and fragrant zone;° belt She looked at me as she did love, And made sweet moan. 20

I set her on my pacing steed, And nothing else saw all day long, For sidelong would she bend, and sing A faery’s song.

She found me roots of relish sweet, 25 And honey wild, and manna dew, And sure in language strange she said, “I love thee true.”

She took me to her elfi n grot, And there she wept, and sighed full sore, 30 And there I shut her wild wild eyes With kisses four.

And there she lullèd me asleep, And there I dreamed — Ah! woe betide! The latest° dream I ever dreamed last 35 On the cold hill side.

I saw pale kings and princes too, Pale warriors, death-pale were they all; They cried — “La Belle Dame sans Merci Hath thee in thrall!” 40

I saw their starved lips in the gloam, With horrid warning gapèd wide, And I awoke and found me here, On the cold hill’s side.

And this is why I sojourn here, 45 Alone and palely loitering, Though the sedge has withered from the lake, And no birds sing.

lazarus / the new colossus 579

John Keats (1795–1821)

Written in Disgust of Vulgar Superstition 1816

The church bells toll a melancholy round, Calling the people to some other prayers, Some other gloominess, more dreadful cares, More hearkening to the sermon’s horrid sound. Surely the mind of man is closely bound 5 In some black spell; seeing that each one tears Himself from fi reside joys, and Lydianº airs, And converse high of those with glory crown’d. Still, still they toll, and I should feel a damp, — A chill as from a tomb, did I not know 10 That they are dying like an outburnt lamp; That ’tis their sighing, wailing ere they go Into oblivion; — that fresh fl owers will grow, And many glories of immortal stamp.

7 Lydian: Soft, sweet music.

Emma Lazarus (1849–1887)

The New Colossus 1883

Not like the brazen giant of Greek fame, With conquering limbs astride from land to land; Here at our sea-washed, sunset gates shall stand A mighty woman with a torch, whose fl ame Is the imprisoned lightning, and her name 5 Mother of Exiles. From her beacon-hand Glows world-wide welcome; her mild eyes command The air-bridged harbor that twin cities frame. “Keep, ancient lands, your storied pomp!” cries she With silent lips. “Give me your tired, your poor, 10 Your huddled masses yearning to breathe free, The wretched refuse of your teeming shore. Send these, the homeless, tempest-tost to me, I lift my lamp beside the golden door!”

580 poems for further reading

John Milton (1608–1674)

When I consider how my light is spent c. 1655

When I consider how my light is spent,° Ere half my days in this dark world and wide, And that one talent° which is death to hide Lodged with me useless, though my soul more bent To serve therewith my Maker, and present 5 My true account, lest He returning chide; “Doth God exact day-labor, light denied?” I fondly° ask. But Patience, to prevent foolishly That murmur, soon replies, “God doth not need Either man’s work or His own gifts. Who best 10 Bear His mild yoke, they serve Him best. His state Is kingly: thousands at His bidding speed, And post o’er land and ocean without rest; They also serve who only stand and wait.”

1 how my light is spent: Milton had been totally blind since 1651. 3 that one tal- ent: Refers to Jesus’s parable of the talents (units of money), in which a servant entrusted with a talent buries it rather than invests it and is punished on his master’s return (Matt. 25:14–30).

Christina Georgina Rossetti (1830–1894)

Some Ladies Dress in Muslin Full and White c. 1848

Some ladies dress in muslin full and white,

Some gentlemen in cloth succinct and black; Some patronise a dog-cart, some a hack, Some think a painted clarence only

right. Youth is not always such a pleasing

sight: Witness a man with tassels on his back; Or woman in a great-coat like a sack, Towering above her sex with horrid height. If all the world were water fi t to drown, There are some whom you would not teach to swim, 10 Rather enjoying if you saw them sink: Certain old ladies dressed in girlish pink, With roses and geraniums on their gown. Go to the basin, poke them o’er the rim —

© Bettmann/corbis.

shakespeare / when, in disgrace with fortune and men’s eyes 581

Siegfried Sassoon (1886–1967)

“They” 1917

The Bishop tells us: “When the boys come back They will not be the same; for they’ll have fought In a just cause: they lead the last attack On Anti-Christ; their comrades’ blood has bought New right to breed an honourable race, 5 They have challenged Death and dared him face to face.”

“We’re none of us the same!” the boys reply. “For George lost both his legs; and Bill’s stone blind; Poor Jim’s shot through the lungs and like to die; And Bert’s gone syphilitic: you’ll not fi nd 10 A chap who’s served that hasn’t found some change.” And the Bishop said: “The ways of God are strange!”

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

That time of year thou mayst in me behold 1609

That time of year thou mayst in me behold When yellow leaves, or none, or few, do hang Upon those boughs which shake against the cold, Bare ruined choirs, where late the sweet birds sang. In me thou see’st the twilight of such day 5 As after sunset fadeth in the west; Which by and by black night doth take away, Death’s second self,° that seals up all in rest. sleep In me thou see’st the glowing of such fi re, That on the ashes of his youth doth lie, 10 As the deathbed whereon it must expire, Consumed with that which it was nourished by. This thou perceiv’st, which makes thy love more strong, To love that well which thou must leave ere long.

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

When, in disgrace with Fortune and men’s eyes 1609

When, in disgrace with Fortune and men’s eyes, I all alone beweep my outcast state, And trouble deaf heaven with my bootless cries, And look upon myself and curse my fate,

582 poems for further reading

Wishing me like to one more rich in hope, 5 Featured like him, like him with friends possessed, Desiring this man’s art, and that man’s scope, With what I most enjoy contented least, Yet in these thoughts myself almost despising, Haply I think on thee, and then my state, 10 Like to the lark at break of day arising From sullen earth, sings hymns at heaven’s gate; For thy sweet love remembered such wealth brings That then I scorn to change my state with kings.

Percy Bysshe Shelley (1792–1822)

Ozymandias° 1818

I met a traveler from an antique land Who said: Two vast and trunkless legs of stone Stand in the desert. . . . Near them, on the sand, Half sunk, a shattered visage lies, whose frown, And wrinkled lip, and sneer of cold command, 5 Tell that its sculptor well those passions read Which yet survive, stamped on these lifeless things, The hand that mocked them, and the heart that fed: And on the pedestal these words appear: “My name is Ozymandias, King of Kings: 10 Look on my works, ye Mighty, and despair!” Nothing beside remains. Round the decay Of that colossal wreck, boundless and bare The lone and level sands stretch far away.

Ozymandias: Greek name for Ramses II, pharaoh of Egypt for sixty-seven years dur- ing the thirteenth century B.C. His colossal statue lies prostrate in the sands of Luxor. Napoleon’s soldiers measured it (56 feet long, ear 31⁄2 feet long, weight 1,000 tons). Its inscription, according to the Greek historian Diodorus Siculus, was “I am Ozy- mandias, King of Kings; if anyone wishes to know what I am and where I lie, let him surpass me in some of my exploits.”

Alfred, Lord Tennyson (1809–1892)

Ulysses° 1833

It little profi ts that an idle king, By this still hearth, among these barren crags, Matched with an agèd wife,° I mete and dole Penelope

Ulysses: Ulysses, the hero of Homer’s epic poem the Odyssey, is presented by Dante in The Inferno, XXVI, as restless after his return to Ithaca and eager for new adventures.

tennyson / ulysses 583

Unequal laws unto a savage race, That hoard, and sleep, and feed, and know not me. 5 I cannot rest from travel; I will drink Life to the lees. All times I have enjoyed Greatly, have suffered greatly, both with those That loved me, and alone; on shore, and when Through scudding drifts the rainy Hyades° 10 Vexed the dim sea. I am become a name; For always roaming with a hungry heart Much have I seen and known — cities of men And manners, climates, councils, governments, Myself not least, but honored of them all — 15 And drunk delight of battle with my peers, Far on the ringing plains of windy Troy. I am a part of all that I have met; Yet all experience is an arch wherethrough Gleams that untraveled world, whose margin fades 20 For ever and for ever when I move. How dull it is to pause, to make an end, To rust unburnished, not to shine in use! As though to breathe were life. Life piled on life Were all too little, and of one to me 25 Little remains; but every hour is saved From that eternal silence, something more, A bringer of new things; and vile it were For some three suns to store and hoard myself, And this gray spirit yearning in desire 30 To follow knowledge like a sinking star, Beyond the utmost bound of human thought.

This is my son, mine own Telemachus, To whom I leave the scepter and the isle — Well-loved of me, discerning to fulfi ll 35 This labor, by slow prudence to make mild A rugged people, and through soft degrees Subdue them to the useful and the good. Most blameless is he, centered in the sphere Of common duties, decent not to fail 40 In offi ces of tenderness, and pay Meet adoration to my household gods, When I am gone. He works his work, I mine.

There lies the port; the vessel puffs her sail: There gloom the dark, broad seas. My mariners, 45

10 Hyades: Five stars in the constellation Taurus, supposed by the ancients to predict rain when they rose with the sun.

584 poems for further reading

Souls that have toiled, and wrought, and thought with me — That ever with a frolic welcome took The thunder and the sunshine, and opposed Free hearts, free foreheads — you and I are old; Old age hath yet his honor and his toil. 50 Death closes all; but something ere the end, Some work of noble note, may yet be done, Not unbecoming men that strove with Gods. The lights begin to twinkle from the rocks; The long day wanes; the slow moon climbs; the deep 55 Moans round with many voices. Come, my friends. ’Tis not too late to seek a newer world. Push off, and sitting well in order smite The sounding furrows; for my purpose holds To sail beyond the sunset, and the baths 60 Of all the western stars, until I die. It may be that the gulfs will wash us down; It may be we shall touch the Happy Isles,° And see the great Achilles,° whom we knew. Though much is taken, much abides; and though 65 We are not now that strength which in old days Moved earth and heaven, that which we are, we are: One equal temper of heroic hearts, Made weak by time and fate, but strong in will To strive, to seek, to fi nd, and not to yield. 70

63 Happy Isles: Elysium, the home after death of heroes and others favored by the gods. It was thought by the ancients to lie beyond the sunset in the uncharted Atlantic. 64 Achilles: The hero of Homer’s Iliad.

Alfred, Lord Tennyson (1809–1892)

Tears, Idle Tears 1847

Tears, idle tears, I know not what they mean, Tears from the depth of some divine despair Rise in the heart, and gather to the eyes, In looking on the happy Autumn-fi elds, And thinking of the days that are no more. 5

Fresh as the fi rst beam glittering on a sail, That brings our friends up from the underworld, Sad as the last which reddens over one That sinks with all we love below the verge; So sad, so fresh, the days that are no more. 10

williams / this is just to say 585

Ah, sad and strange as in dark summer dawns The earliest pipe of half-awaken’d birds To dying ears, when unto dying eyes The casement° slowly grows a glimmering square; window So sad, so strange, the days that are no more. 15

Dear as remember’d kisses after death, And sweet as those by hopeless fancy feign’d On lips that are for others; deep as love, Deep as fi rst love, and wild with all regret; O Death in Life, the days that are no more. 20

Walt Whitman (1819–1892)

When I Heard the Learn’d Astronomer 1865

When I heard the learn’d astronomer, When the proofs, the fi gures, were ranged in columns before me, When I was shown the charts and diagrams, to add, divide, and measure them, When I sitting heard the astronomer where he lectured with much applause in the lecture-room, How soon unaccountable I became tired and sick, Till rising and gliding out I wandered off by myself, In the mystical moist night-air, and from time to time, Looked up in perfect silence at the stars.

William Carlos Williams (1883–1963)

This Is Just to Say 1934

I have eaten the plums that were in the icebox

and which 5 you were probably saving for breakfast

Forgive me they were delicious 10 so sweet and so cold

586 poems for further reading

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

A Slumber Did My Spirit Seal 1800

A slumber did my spirit seal; I had no human fears — She seemed a thing that could not feel The touch of earthly years.

No motion has she now, no force; She neither hears nor sees; Rolled round in earth’s diurnal course. With rocks, and stones, and trees.

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

The Solitary Reaper° 1807

Behold her, single in the fi eld, Yon solitary Highland lass! Reaping and singing by herself; Stop here, or gently pass! Alone she cuts and binds the grain, 5 And sings a melancholy strain; O listen! for the vale profound Is overfl owing with the sound.

No nightingale did ever chaunt More welcome notes to weary bands 10 Of travelers in some shady haunt Among Arabian sands. A voice so thrilling ne’er was heard In springtime from the cuckoo-bird, Breaking the silence of the seas 15 Among the farthest Hebrides.

Will no one tell me what she sings? — Perhaps the plaintive numbers fl ow For old, unhappy, far-off things, And battles long ago. 20

By permission of Dove Cottage, the Wordsworth Trust.

The Solitary Reaper: Dorothy Wordsworth (William’s sister) wrote that the poem was suggested by this sentence in Thomas Wilkinson’s Tour of Scotland: “Passed a female who was reaping alone; she sung in Erse, as she bended over her sickle; the sweetest human voice I ever heard; her strains were tenderly melancholy, and felt delicious, long after they were heard no more.”

yeats / leda and the swan 587

Or is it some more humble lay, Familiar matter of today? Some natural sorrow, loss, or pain, That has been, and may be again?

Whate’er the theme, the maiden sang 25 As if her song could have no ending; I saw her singing at her work, And o’er the sickle bending — I listened, motionless and still; And, as I mounted up the hill, 30 The music in my heart I bore Long after it was heard no more.

William Wordsworth (1770–1850)

Mutability 1822

From low to high doth dissolution climb, And sink from high to low, along a scale Of awful° notes, whose concord shall not fail; awe-fi lled A musical but melancholy chime, Which they can hear who meddle not with crime, 5 Nor avarice, nor over-anxious care. Truth fails not; but her outward forms that bear The longest date do melt like frosty rime, That in the morning whitened hill and plain And is no more; drop like the tower sublime 10 Of yesterday, which royally did wear His crown of weeds, but could not even

sustain Some casual shout that broke the silent air, Or the unimaginable touch of Time.

William Butler Yeats (1865–1939)

Leda and the Swan° 1924

A sudden blow: the great wings beating still Above the staggering girl, her thighs caressed By the dark webs, her nape caught in his bill, He holds her helpless breast upon his breast.

Leda and the Swan: In Greek myth, Zeus in the form of a swan seduced Leda and fathered Helen of Troy (whose abduction started the Trojan War) and Clytemnestra, Agamemnon’s wife and murderer. Yeats thought of Zeus’s appearance to Leda as a type of annunciation, like the angel appearing to Mary.

© Hulton-Deutsch Collection/corbis.

588 poems for further reading

How can those terrifi ed vague fi ngers push 5 The feathered glory from her loosening thighs? And how can body, laid in that white rush, But feel the strange heart beating where it lies?

A shudder in the loins engenders there The broken wall, the burning roof and tower 10 And Agamemnon dead. Being so caught up, So mastered by the brute blood of the air, Did she put on his knowledge with his power Before the indifferent beak could let her drop?

D R A M A

This page intentionally left blank

591

The Study of Drama

23. Reading Drama 593

24. Sophocles and Greek Drama 632

25. William Shakespeare and Elizabethan Drama 687

26. Henrik Ibsen and Modern Drama 788

This page intentionally left blank

593

The theme should arise like smoke off a play. It shouldn't be stated, or if it is, it should go by just like another line.

— JOHN PATRICK SHANLEY

READING DR AMA RESPONSIVELY The publication of a short story, novel, or poem represents for most writ- ers the fi nal step in a long creative process that might have begun with an idea, issue, emotion, or question that demanded expression. Play- wrights — writers who make plays — may begin a work in the same way as other writers, but rarely are they satisfi ed with only its publication, because most dramatic literature — what we call plays — is written to be performed by actors on a stage before an audience. Playwrights typically create a play keeping in mind not only readers but also actors, producers, directors, costumers, designers, technicians, and a theater full of other support staff who have a hand in presenting the play to a live audience.

Drama is literature equipped with arms, legs, tears, laughs, whis- pers, shouts, and gestures that are alive and immediate. Indeed, the word

23 Reading Drama

There are always angles in every subject to fi nd the comedy in it.

— LARRY DAVID

594 reading drama

drama derives from the Greek word dran, meaning “to do” or “to per- form.” The text of many plays — the script — may come to life fully only when the written words are transformed into a performance. Although there are plays that do not invite production, they are relatively few. Such plays, written to be read rather than performed, are called closet dramas. In this kind of work (primarily associated with nineteenth-century English literature), literary art outweighs all other considerations. The majority of playwrights, however, view the written word as the begin- ning of a larger creation and hope that a producer will deem their scripts worthy of production.

Given that most playwrights intend their works to be performed, it might be argued that reading a play is a poor substitute for seeing it acted on a stage — perhaps something like reading a recipe without hav- ing access to the ingredients and a kitchen. This analogy is tempting, but it overlooks the literary dimensions of a script; the words we hear on a stage were written fi rst. Read from a page, these words can feed an imagination in ways that a recipe cannot satisfy a hungry cook. We can fi ll in a play’s missing faces, voices, actions, and settings in much the same way that we imagine these elements in a short story or novel. Like any play director, we are free to include as many ingredients as we have an appetite for.

Trifl es

In the following play, Susan Glaspell skill- fully draws on many dramatic elements and creates an intense story that is as effective on the page as it is in the theater. Glaspell wrote Trifl es in 1916 for the Provincetown Players on Cape Cod, in Massachusetts. Their per- formance of the work helped her develop a reputation as a writer sensitive to feminist issues. The year after Trifl es was produced, Glaspell transformed the play into a short story titled “A Jury of Her Peers.”

Glaspell’s life in the Midwest provided her with the setting for Trifl es. Born and raised in Davenport, Iowa, she graduated from Drake University in 1899 and then worked for a short time as a reporter on the Des Moines News, until her short stories were accepted in magazines such as Harper’s and Ladies’ Home Journal. Glaspell moved to the Northeast when she was in her early thirties to continue writing fi ction and drama. She published some twenty plays, novels, and more than forty short

© Nickolas Muray Photo Archives, LLC. Courtesy of the Sheaffer-O’Neill Collection, Connecticut College.

glaspell / trifles 595

stories. Alison’s House, based on Emily Dickinson’s life, earned her a Pulit- zer Prize for drama in 1931. Trifl es and “A Jury of Her Peers” remain, how- ever, Glaspell’s best-known works.

Glaspell wrote Trifl es to complete a bill that was to feature several one-act plays by Eugene O’Neill. In The Road to the Temple (1926) she recalls how the play came to her as she sat in the theater looking at a bare stage. First, “the stage became a kitchen. . . . Then the door at the back opened, and people all bundled up came in — two or three men. I wasn’t sure which, but sure enough about the two women, who hung back, reluctant to enter that kitchen. When I was a newspaper reporter out in Iowa, I was sent downstate to do a murder trial, and I never forgot going to the kitchen of a woman who had been locked up in town.”

As you read the play, keep track of your responses to the characters and note in the margin the moments when Glaspell reveals how men and women respond differently to the evidence before them. What do those moments suggest about the kinds of assump- tions these men and women make about themselves and each other? How do their assumptions compare with your own?

Susan Glaspell (1882–1948)

Trifl es 1916

characters

George Henderson, county attorney Henry Peters, sheriff Lewis Hale, a neighboring farmer Mrs. Peters Mrs. Hale

scene: The kitchen in the now abandoned farmhouse of John Wright, a gloomy kitchen, and left without having been put in order — unwashed pans under the sink, a loaf of bread outside the breadbox, a dish towel on the table — other signs of incompleted work. At the rear the outer door opens and the Sheriff comes in followed by the County Attorney and Hale. The Sheriff and Hale are men in middle life, the County Attorney is a young man; all are much bundled up and go at once to the stove. They are followed by the two women — the Sheriff ’s wife fi rst; she is a slight wiry woman, a thin nervous face. Mrs. Hale is larger and would ordinarily be called more comfortable looking, but she is disturbed now and looks fearfully about as she enters. The women have come in slowly, and stand close together near the door.

WEB Explore contexts for Susan Glaspell and approaches to this play at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

596 reading drama

County Attorney (rubbing his hands): This feels good. Come up to the fi re, ladies.

Mrs. Peters (after taking a step forward): I’m not — cold. Sheriff (unbuttoning his overcoat and stepping away from the stove as if to mark

the beginning of offi cial business): Now, Mr. Hale, before we move things about, you explain to Mr. Henderson just what you saw when you came here yesterday morning.

County Attorney: By the way, has anything been moved? Are things just as you left them yesterday?

Sheriff (looking about): It’s just about the same. When it dropped below zero last night I thought I’d better send Frank out this morning to make a fi re for us — no use getting pneumonia with a big case on, but I told him not to touch anything except the stove — and you know Frank.

County Attorney: Somebody should have been left here yesterday. Sheriff: Oh — yesterday. When I had to send Frank to Morris Center for

that man who went crazy — I want you to know I had my hands full yesterday. I knew you could get back from Omaha by today and as long as I went over everything here myself —

County Attorney: Well, Mr. Hale, tell just what happened when you came here yesterday morning.

Hale: Harry and I had started to town with a load of potatoes. We came along the road from my place and as I got here I said, “I’m going to see if I can’t get John Wright to go in with me on a party tele- phone.” I spoke to Wright about it once before and he put me off, saying folks talked too much anyway, and all he asked was peace and quiet — I guess you know about how much he talked himself; but I thought maybe if I went to the house and talked about it before his wife, though I said to Harry that I didn’t know as what his wife wanted made much difference to John —

County Attorney: Let’s talk about that later, Mr. Hale. I do want to talk about that, but tell now just what happened when you got to the house.

Hale: I didn’t hear or see anything; I knocked at the door, and still it was all quiet inside. I knew they must be up, it was past eight o’clock. So I knocked again, and I thought I heard somebody say, “Come in.” I wasn’t sure, I’m not sure yet, but I opened the door — this door (indicating the door by which the two women are still standing) and there in that rocker — (pointing to it) sat Mrs. Wright. (They all look at the rocker.)

County Attorney: What — was she doing? Hale: She was rockin’ back and forth. She had her apron in her hand and

was kind of — pleating it. County Attorney: And how did she — look? Hale: Well, she looked queer. County Attorney: How do you mean — queer?

glaspell / trifles 597

Hale: Well, as if she didn’t know what she was going to do next. And kind of done up.

County Attorney: How did she seem to feel about your coming? Hale: Why, I don’t think she minded — one way or other. She didn’t pay

much attention. I said, “How do, Mrs. Wright, it’s cold, ain’t it?” And she said, “Is it?” — and went on kind of pleating at her apron. Well, I was surprised; she didn’t ask me to come up to the stove, or to set down, but just sat there, not even looking at me, so I said, “I want to see John.” And then she — laughed. I guess you would call it a laugh. I thought of Harry and the team outside, so I said a little sharp: “Can’t I see John?” “No,” she says, kind o’dull like. “Ain’t he home?” says I. “Yes,” says she, “he’s home.” “Then why can’t I see him?” I asked her, out of patience. “’Cause he’s dead,” says she. “Dead?” says I. She just nodded her head, not getting a bit excited, but rockin’ back and forth. “Why — where is he?” says I, not know- ing what to say. She just pointed upstairs — like that (himself pointing to the room above). I started for the stairs, with the idea of going up there. I walked from there to here — then I says, “Why, what did he die of?” “He died of a rope round his neck,” says she, and just went on pleatin’ at her apron. Well, I went out and called Harry. I thought I might — need help. We went upstairs and there he was lyin’ —

County Attorney: I think I’d rather have you go into that upstairs, where you can point it all out. Just go on now with the rest of the story.

Hale: Well, my fi rst thought was to get that rope off. It looked . . . (stops; his face twitches) . . . but Harry, he went up to him, and he said, “No, he’s dead all right, and we’d better not touch anything.” So we went back downstairs. She was still sitting that same way. “Has anybody been notifi ed?” I asked. “No,” says she, unconcerned. “Who did this, Mrs. Wright?” said Harry. He said it businesslike — and she stopped pleatin’ of her apron. “I don’t know,” she says. “You don’t know?” says Harry. “No,” says she. “Weren’t you sleepin’ in the bed with him?” says Harry. “Yes,” says she, “but I was on the inside.” “Some- body slipped a rope round his neck and strangled him and you didn’t wake up?” says Harry. “I didn’t wake up,” she said after him. We must ’a’ looked as if we didn’t see how that could be, for after a minute she said, “I sleep sound.” Harry was going to ask her more questions but I said maybe we ought to let her tell her story fi rst to the coroner, or the sheriff, so Harry went fast as he could to Rivers’ place, where there’s a telephone.

County Attorney: And what did Mrs. Wright do when she knew that you had gone for the coroner?

Hale: She moved from the rocker to that chair over there (pointing to a small chair in the corner) and just sat there with her hands held together and looking down. I got a feeling that I ought to make some conversation, so I said I had come in to see if John wanted to put in a telephone, and at that she started to laugh, and then she

598 reading drama

stopped and looked at me — scared. (The County Attorney, who has had his notebook out, makes a note.) I dunno, maybe it wasn’t scared. I wouldn’t like to say it was. Soon Harry got back, and then Dr. Lloyd came and you, Mr. Peters, and so I guess that’s all I know that you don’t.

County Attorney (looking around): I guess we’ll go upstairs fi rst — and then out to the barn and around there. (To the Sheriff.) You’re convinced that there was nothing important here — nothing that would point to any motive?

Sheriff: Nothing here but kitchen things. (The County Attorney, after again looking around the kitchen, opens the door of a cupboard closet. He gets up on a chair and looks on a shelf. Pulls his hand away, sticky.)

County Attorney: Here’s a nice mess. (The women draw nearer.) Mrs. Peters (to the other woman): Oh, her fruit; it did freeze. (To the Law-

yer.) She worried about that when it turned so cold. She said the fi re’d go out and her jars would break.

Sheriff (rises): Well, can you beat the woman! Held for murder and wor- ryin’ about her preserves.

County Attorney: I guess before we’re through she may have something more serious than preserves to worry about.

Hale: Well, women are used to worrying over trifl es. (The two women move a little closer together.)

County Attorney (with the gallantry of a young politician): And yet, for all their worries, what would we do without the ladies? (The women do not unbend. He goes to the sink, takes a dipperful of water from the pail, and pouring it into a basin, washes his hands. Starts to wipe them on the roller towel, turns it for a cleaner place.) Dirty towels! (Kicks his foot against the pans under the sink.) Not much of a housekeeper, would you say, ladies?

Mrs. Hale (stiffl y): There’s a great deal of work to be done on a farm. County Attorney: To be sure. And yet (with a little bow to her) I know there

are some Dickson county farmhouses which do not have such roller towels. (He gives it a pull to expose its full length again.)

Mrs. Hale: Those towels get dirty awful quick. Men’s hands aren’t always as clean as they might be.

County Attorney: Ah, loyal to your sex, I see. But you and Mrs. Wright were neighbors. I suppose you were friends, too.

Mrs. Hale (shaking her head): I’ve not seen much of her of late years. I’ve not been in this house — it’s more than a year.

County Attorney: And why was that? You didn’t like her? Mrs. Hale: I liked her all well enough. Farmers’ wives have their hands

full, Mr. Henderson. And then — County Attorney: Yes — ? Mrs. Hale (looking about): It never seemed a very cheerful place. County Attorney: No — it’s not cheerful. I shouldn’t say she had the home-

making instinct.

glaspell / trifles 599

Mrs. Hale: Well, I don’t know as Wright had, either. County Attorney: You mean that they didn’t get on very well? Mrs. Hale: No, I don’t mean anything. But I don’t think a place’d be any

cheerfuller for John Wright’s being in it. County Attorney: I’d like to talk more of that a little later. I want to get

the lay of things upstairs now. (He goes to the left where three steps lead to a stair door.)

Sheriff: I suppose anything Mrs. Peters does’ll be all right. She was to take in some clothes for her, you know, and a few little things. We left in such a hurry yesterday.

County Attorney: Yes, but I would like to see what you take, Mrs. Peters, and keep an eye out for anything that might be of use to us.

Mrs. Peters: Yes, Mr. Henderson. (The women listen to the men’s steps on the stairs, then look about the kitchen.)

Mrs. Hale: I’d hate to have men coming into my kitchen, snooping around and criticizing. (She arranges the pans under sink which the law- yer had shoved out of place.)

Mrs. Peters: Of course it’s no more than their duty. Mrs. Hale: Duty’s all right, but I guess that deputy sheriff that came out

to make the fi re might have got a little of this on. (Gives the roller towel a pull.) Wish I’d thought of that sooner. Seems mean to talk about her for not having things slicked up when she had to come away in such a hurry.

Mrs. Peters (who has gone to a small table in the left rear corner of the room, and lifted one end of a towel that covers a pan): She had bread set. (Stands still.)

Mrs. Hale (eyes fi xed on a loaf of bread beside the breadbox, which is on a low shelf at the other side of the room. Moves slowly toward it.): She was going to put this in there. (Picks up loaf, then abruptly drops it. In a manner of returning to familiar things.) It’s a shame about her fruit. I wonder if it’s all gone. (Gets up on the chair and looks.) I think there’s some here that’s all right, Mrs. Peters. Yes — here; (holding it toward the window) this is cherries, too. (Looking again.) I declare I believe that’s the only one. (Gets down, bottle in her hand. Goes to the sink and wipes it off on the outside.) She’ll feel awful bad after all her hard work in the hot weather. I remember the afternoon I put up my cherries last sum- mer. (She puts the bottle on the big kitchen table, center of the room. With a sigh, is about to sit down in the rocking-chair. Before she is seated realizes what chair it is; with a slow look at it, steps back. The chair which she has touched rocks back and forth.)

Mrs. Peters: Well, I must get those things from the front room closet. (She goes to the door at the right, but after looking into the other room, steps back.) You coming with me, Mrs. Hale? You could help me carry them. (They go in the other room; reappear, Mrs. Peters carrying a dress and skirt, Mrs. Hale following with a pair of shoes.) My, it’s cold in there. (She puts the clothes on the big table, and hurries to the stove.)

600 reading drama

Mrs. Hale (examining the skirt): Wright was close. I think maybe that’s why she kept so much to herself. She didn’t even belong to the Ladies’ Aid. I suppose she felt she couldn’t do her part, and then you don’t enjoy things when you feel shabby. I heard she used to wear pretty clothes and be lively, when she was Minnie Foster, one of the town girls singing in the choir. But that — oh, that was thirty years ago. This all you want to take in?

Mrs. Peters: She said she wanted an apron. Funny thing to want, for there isn’t much to get you dirty in jail, goodness knows. But I sup- pose just to make her feel more natural. She said they was in the top drawer in this cupboard. Yes, here. And then her little shawl that always hung behind the door. (Opens stair door and looks.) Yes, here it is. (Quickly shuts door leading upstairs.)

Mrs. Hale (abruptly moving toward her): Mrs. Peters? Mrs. Peters: Yes, Mrs. Hale? Mrs. Hale: Do you think she did it? Mrs. Peters (in a frightened voice): Oh, I don’t know. Mrs. Hale: Well, I don’t think she did. Asking for an apron and her little

shawl. Worrying about her fruit. Mrs. Peters (starts to speak, glances up, where footsteps are heard in the room

above. In a low voice): Mr. Peters says it looks bad for her. Mr. Hen- derson is awful sarcastic in a speech and he’ll make fun of her sayin’ she didn’t wake up.

Mrs. Hale: Well, I guess John Wright didn’t wake when they was slipping that rope under his neck.

Mrs. Peters: No, it’s strange. It must have been done awful crafty and still. They say it was such a — funny way to kill a man, rigging it all up like that.

Mrs. Hale: That’s just what Mr. Hale said. There was a gun in the house. He says that’s what he can’t understand.

Mrs. Peters: Mr. Henderson said coming out that what was needed for the case was a motive; something to show anger, or — sudden feeling.

Mrs. Hale (who is standing by the table): Well, I don’t see any signs of anger around here. (She puts her hand on the dish towel which lies on the table, stands looking down at table, one-half of which is clean, the other half messy.) It’s wiped to here. (Makes a move as if to fi nish work, then turns and looks at loaf of bread outside the breadbox. Drops towel. In that voice of coming back to familiar things.) Wonder how they are fi nding things upstairs. I hope she had it a little more red-up up there. You know, it seems kind of sneaking. Locking her up in town and then coming out here and trying to get her own house to turn against her!

Mrs. Peters: But, Mrs. Hale, the law is the law. Mrs. Hale: I s’pose ’tis. (Unbuttoning her coat.) Better loosen up your

things, Mrs. Peters. You won’t feel them when you go out. (Mrs. Peters takes off her fur tippet, goes to hang it on hook at back of room, stands looking at the under part of the small corner table.)

glaspell / trifles 601

Mrs. Peters: She was piecing a quilt. (She brings the large sewing basket and they look at the bright pieces.)

Mrs. Hale: It’s a log cabin pattern. Pretty, isn’t it? I wonder if she was goin’ to quilt it or just knot it? (Footsteps have been heard coming down the stairs. The Sheriff enters followed by Hale and the County Attorney.)

Sheriff: They wonder if she was going to quilt it or just knot it! (The men laugh, the women look abashed.)

County Attorney (rubbing his hands over the stove): Frank’s fi re didn’t do much up there, did it? Well, let’s go out to the barn and get that cleared up. (The men go outside.)

Mrs. Hale (resentfully): I don’t know as there’s anything so strange, our takin’ up our time with little things while we’re waiting for them to get the evidence. (She sits down at the big table smoothing out a block with decision.) I don’t see as it’s anything to laugh about.

Mrs. Peters (apologetically): Of course they’ve got awful important things on their minds. (Pulls up a chair and joins Mrs. Hale at the table.)

Mrs. Hale (examining another block): Mrs. Peters, look at this one. Here, this is the one she was working on, and look at the sewing! All the rest of it has been so nice and even. And look at this! It’s all over the place! Why, it looks as if she didn’t know what she was about! (After she has said this they look at each other, then start to glance back at the door. After an instant Mrs. Hale has pulled at a knot and ripped the sewing.)

Mrs. Peters: Oh, what are you doing, Mrs. Hale? Mrs. Hale (mildly): Just pulling out a stitch or two that’s not sewed very

good. (Threading a needle.) Bad sewing always made me fi dgety. Mrs. Peters (nervously): I don’t think we ought to touch things. Mrs. Hale: I’ll just fi nish up this end. (Suddenly stopping and leaning for-

ward.) Mrs. Peters? Mrs. Peters: Yes, Mrs. Hale? Mrs. Hale: What do you suppose she was so nervous about? Mrs. Peters: Oh — I don’t know. I don’t know as she was nervous. I some-

times sew awful queer when I’m just tired. (Mrs. Hale starts to say some- thing, looks at Mrs. Peters, then goes on sewing.) Well, I must get these things wrapped up. They may be through sooner than we think. (Putting apron and other things together.) I wonder where I can fi nd a piece of paper, and string. (Rises.)

Mrs. Hale: In that cupboard, maybe. Mrs. Peters (looking in cupboard): Why, here’s a bird-cage. (Holds it up.) Did

she have a bird, Mrs. Hale? Mrs. Hale: Why, I don’t know whether she did or not — I’ve not been here

for so long. There was a man around last year selling canaries cheap, but I don’t know as she took one; maybe she did. She used to sing real pretty herself.

Mrs. Peters (glancing around): Seems funny to think of a bird here. But she must have had one, or why would she have a cage? I wonder what happened to it?

602 reading drama

Mrs. Hale: I s’pose maybe the cat got it. Mrs. Peters: No, she didn’t have a cat. She’s got that feeling some people

have about cats — being afraid of them. My cat got in her room and she was real upset and asked me to take it out.

Mrs. Hale: My sister Bessie was like that. Queer, ain’t it? Mrs. Peters (examining the cage): Why, look at this door. It’s broke. One

hinge is pulled apart. Mrs. Hale (looking too): Looks as if someone must have been rough with it. Mrs. Peters: Why, yes. (She brings the cage forward and puts it on the table.) Mrs. Hale: I wish if they’re going to fi nd any evidence they’d be about it.

I don’t like this place. Mrs. Peters: But I’m awful glad you came with me, Mrs. Hale. It would be

lonesome for me sitting here alone. Mrs. Hale: It would, wouldn’t it? (Dropping her sewing.) But I tell you what

I do wish, Mrs. Peters. I wish I had come over sometimes when she was here. I — (looking around the room) — wish I had.

Mrs. Peters: But of course you were awful busy, Mrs. Hale — your house and your children.

Mrs. Hale: I could’ve come. I stayed away because it weren’t cheerful — and that’s why I ought to have come. I — I’ve never liked this place. Maybe because it’s down in a hollow and you don’t see the road. I dunno what it is, but it’s a lonesome place and always was. I wish I had come over to see Minnie Foster sometimes. I can see now — (Shakes her head.)

Mrs. Peters: Well, you mustn’t reproach yourself, Mrs. Hale. Somehow we just don’t see how it is with other folks until — something turns up.

Mrs. Hale: Not having children makes less work — but it makes a quiet house, and Wright out to work all day, and no company when he did come in. Did you know John Wright, Mrs. Peters?

Mrs. Peters: Not to know him; I’ve seen him in town. They say he was a good man.

Mrs. Hale: Yes — good; he didn’t drink, and kept his word as well as most, I guess, and paid his debts. But he was a hard man, Mrs. Peters. Just to pass the time of day with him — (Shivers.) Like a raw wind that gets to the bone. (Pauses, her eye falling on the cage.) I should think she would ’a’ wanted a bird. But what do you suppose went with it?

Mrs. Peters: I don’t know, unless it got sick and died. (She reaches over and swings the broken door, swings it again, both women watch it.)

Mrs. Hale: You weren’t raised round here, were you? (Mrs. Peters shakes her head.) You didn’t know — her?

Mrs. Peters: Not till they brought her yesterday. Mrs. Hale: She — come to think of it, she was kind of like a bird herself —

real sweet and pretty, but kind of timid and — fl uttery. How — she — did — change. (Silence: then as if struck by a happy thought and relieved to get back to everyday things.) Tell you what, Mrs. Peters, why don’t you take the quilt in with you? It might take up her mind.

glaspell / trifles 603

Mrs. Peters: Why, I think that’s a real nice idea, Mrs. Hale. There couldn’t possibly be any objection to it could there? Now, just what would I take? I wonder if her patches are in here — and her things. (They look in the sewing basket.)

Mrs. Hale: Here’s some red. I expect this has got sewing things in it. (Brings out a fancy box.) What a pretty box. Looks like something somebody would give you. Maybe her scissors are in here. (Opens box. Suddenly puts her hand to her nose.) Why — (Mrs. Peters bends nearer, then turns her face away.) There’s something wrapped up in this piece of silk.

Mrs. Peters: Why, this isn’t her scissors. Mrs. Hale (lifting the silk): Oh, Mrs. Peters — it’s — (Mrs. Peters bends closer.) Mrs. Peters: It’s the bird. Mrs. Hale (jumping up): But, Mrs. Peters — look at it! Its neck! Look at its

neck! It’s all — other side to. Mrs. Peters: Somebody — wrung — its — neck. (Their eyes meet. A look of

growing comprehension, of horror. Steps are heard outside. Mrs. Hale slips box under quilt pieces, and sinks into her chair. Enter Sheriff and County Attorney. Mrs. Peters rises.)

County Attorney (as one turning from serious things to little pleasantries): Well, ladies, have you decided whether she was going to quilt it or knot it?

Mrs. Peters: We think she was going to — knot it. County Attorney: Well, that’s interesting, I’m sure. (Seeing the bird-cage.)

Has the bird fl own? Mrs. Hale (putting more quilt pieces over the box): We think the — cat got it. County Attorney (preoccupied): Is there a cat? (Mrs. Hale glances in a quick

covert way at Mrs. Peters.) Mrs. Peters: Well, not now. They’re superstitious, you know. They leave. County Attorney (to Sheriff Peters, continuing an interrupted conversation): No

sign at all of anyone having come from the outside. Their own rope. Now let’s go up again and go over it piece by piece. (They start upstairs.) It would have to have been someone who knew just the — (Mrs. Peters sits down. The two women sit there not looking at one another, but as if peer- ing into something and at the same time holding back. When they talk now it is in the manner of feeling their way over strange ground, as if afraid of what they are saying, but as if they cannot help saying it.)

Mrs. Hale: She liked the bird. She was going to bury it in that pretty box. Mrs. Peters (in a whisper): When I was a girl — my kitten — there was a boy

took a hatchet, and before my eyes — and before I could get there — (Covers her face an instant.) If they hadn’t held me back I would have — (catches herself, looks upstairs where steps are heard, falters weakly) — hurt him.

Mrs. Hale (with a slow look around her): I wonder how it would seem never to have had any children around. (Pause.) No, Wright wouldn’t like the bird — a thing that sang. She used to sing. He killed that, too.

Mrs. Peters (moving uneasily): We don’t know who killed the bird. Mrs. Hale: I knew John Wright.

604 reading drama

Mrs. Peters: It was an awful thing was done in this house that night, Mrs. Hale. Killing a man while he slept, slipping a rope around his neck that choked the life out of him.

Mrs. Hale: His neck. Choked the life out of him. (Her hand goes out and rests on the bird-cage.)

Mrs. Peters (with rising voice): We don’t know who killed him. We don’t know. Mrs. Hale (her own feeling not interrupted): If there’d been years and years

of nothing, then a bird to sing to you, it would be awful — still, after the bird was still.

Mrs. Peters (something within her speaking): I know what stillness is. When we homesteaded in Dakota, and my fi rst baby died — after he was two years old, and me with no other then —

Mrs. Hale (moving): How soon do you suppose they’ll be through look- ing for the evidence?

Mrs. Peters: I know what stillness is. (Pulling herself back.) The law has got to punish crime, Mrs. Hale.

Mrs. Hale (not as if answering that): I wish you’d seen Minnie Foster when she wore a white dress with blue ribbons and stood up there in the choir and sang. (A look around the room.) Oh, I wish I’d come over here once in a while! That was a crime! That was a crime! Who’s going to punish that?

Mrs. Peters (looking upstairs): We mustn’t — take on. Mrs. Hale: I might have known she needed help! I know how things

can be — for women. I tell you, it’s queer, Mrs. Peters. We live close together and we live far apart. We all go through the same things — it’s all just a different kind of the same thing. (Brushes her eyes, notic- ing the bottle of fruit, reaches out for it.) If I was you I wouldn’t tell her her fruit was gone. Tell her it ain’t. Tell her it’s all right. Take this in to prove it to her. She — she may never know whether it was broke or not.

Mrs. Peters (takes the bottle, looks about for something to wrap it in; takes pet- ticoat from the clothes brought from the other room, very nervously begins winding this around the bottle. In a false voice): My, it’s a good thing the men couldn’t hear us. Wouldn’t they just laugh! Getting all stirred up over a little thing like a — dead canary. As if that could have any- thing to do with — with — wouldn’t they laugh! (The men are heard coming down stairs.)

Mrs. Hale (under her breath): Maybe they would — maybe they wouldn’t. County Attorney: No, Peters, it’s all perfectly clear except a reason for

doing it. But you know juries when it comes to women. If there was some defi nite thing. Something to show — something to make a story about — a thing that would connect up with this strange way of doing it — (The women’s eyes meet for an instant. Enter Hale from outer door.)

Hale: Well, I’ve got the team around. Pretty cold out there. County Attorney: I’m going to stay here a while by myself. (To the Sheriff.)

You can send Frank out for me, can’t you? I want to go over every- thing. I’m not satisfi ed that we can’t do better.

glaspell / trifles 605

Sheriff: Do you want to see what Mrs. Peters is going to take in? (The Law- yer goes to the table, picks up the apron, laughs.)

County Attorney: Oh, I guess they’re not very dangerous things the ladies have picked out. (Moves a few things about, disturbing the quilt pieces which cover the box. Steps back.) No, Mrs. Peters doesn’t need supervis- ing. For that matter a sheriff ’s wife is married to the law. Ever think of it that way, Mrs. Peters?

Mrs. Peters: Not — just that way. Sheriff (chuckling): Married to the law. (Moves toward the other room.) I

just want you to come in here a minute, George. We ought to take a look at these windows.

County Attorney (scoffi ngly): Oh, windows! Sheriff: We’ll be right out, Mr. Hale. (Hale goes outside. The Sheriff follows

the County Attorney into the other room. Then Mrs. Hale rises, hands tight together, looking intensely at Mrs. Peters, whose eyes make a slow turn, fi nally meeting Mrs. Hale’s. A moment Mrs. Hale holds her, then her own eyes point the way to where the box is concealed. Suddenly Mrs. Peters throws back quilt pieces and tries to put the box in the bag she is wearing. It is too big. She opens box, starts to take bird out, cannot touch it, goes to pieces, stands there helpless. Sound of a knob turning in the other room. Mrs. Hale snatches the box and puts it in the pocket of her big coat. Enter County Attorney and Sheriff.)

County Attorney (facetiously): Well, Henry, at least we found out that she was not going to quilt it. She was going to — what is it you call it, ladies?

Mrs. Hale (her hand against her pocket): We call it — knot it, Mr. Henderson.

Curtain

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Describe the setting of this play. What kind of atmo- sphere is established by the details in the opening scene? Does the atmosphere change through the course of the play?

2. Characterize John Wright. Why did his wife kill him? 3. Why do the men fail to see the clues that Mrs. Hale and Mrs. Peters

discover? 4. How do the men’s conversations and actions reveal their attitudes

toward women? 5. What is the signifi cance of the play’s last line, spoken by Mrs. Hale:

“We call it — knot it, Mr. Henderson”? Explain what you think the tone of Mrs. Hale’s voice is when she says this line. What is she feel- ing? What are you feeling?

6. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Write an essay comparing the views of marriage in Trifl es and in Kate Chopin’s short story “The Story of an Hour” (p. 13). What similarities do you fi nd in the themes of these two works? Are there any signifi cant differences between the works?

606 reading drama

A SAMPLE CLOSE READING An Annotated Section of Susan Glaspell’s Trifl es

As you read a play for the fi rst time, highlight lines, circle or under- line words, and record your responses in the margins. These responses will allow you to retrieve initial reactions and questions that in subse- quent readings you can pursue and resolve. Just as the play is likely to have layered meanings, so too will your own readings as you gradually piece together a variety of elements such as exposition, plot, and charac- ter that will lead you toward their thematic signifi cance. The following annotations for an excerpt from Trifl es offer an interpretation that was produced by several readings of the play. Of course, your annotations could be quite different, depending upon your own approach to the play.

The following excerpt appears four pages into this eleven-page play and is preceded by a signifi cant amount of exposition that establishes the bleak Midwestern farm setting and some details about Mrs. Wright, who is the prime suspect in the murder of her husband. Prior to this dialogue, only the male characters speak as they try to discover a motive for the crime.

County Attorney (looking around): I guess we’ll go upstairs fi rst — and then out to the barn and around there. (To the Sheriff.) You’re convinced that there was nothing important here — nothing that would point to any motive?

Sheriff: Nothing here but kitchen things. (The County Attorney, after again looking around the kitchen, opens the door of a cupboard closet. He gets up on a chair and looks on a shelf. Pulls his hand away, sticky.)

County Attorney: Here’s a nice mess. (The women draw nearer.) Mrs. Peters (to the other woman): Oh, her fruit; it did freeze.

(To the Lawyer.) She worried about that when it turned so cold. She said the fi re’d go out and her jars would break.

Sheriff (rises): Well, can you beat the woman! Held for murder and worryin’ about her preserves.

County Attorney: I guess before we’re through she may have something more serious than preserves to worry about.

Hale: Well, women are used to worrying over trifl es. (The two women move a little closer together.)

County Attorney (with the gallantry of a young politi- cian): And yet, for all their worries, what would we do without the ladies? (The women do not unbend. He goes to the sink, takes a dipperful of water from the pail, and pouring it into a basin, washes his hands. Starts to

The Sheriff unknowingly announces a major confl ict in the play that echoes the title: From a male point of view, there is nothing of any importance to be found in the kitchen — or in women’s domestic lives. Mr. Hale confi rms this by pronouncing such matters “trifl es.”

The County Attorney weighs in with his assessment of this “sticky” situation by calling it a “mess” from which he pulls away.

As the Attorney pulls away, the women move closer together (sides are slowly being drawn), and Mrs. Peters says more than she realizes when she observes, “Oh, her fruit; it did freeze.” This anticipates our understanding of the cold, fruitless life that drove Mrs. Wright to murder.

The Sheriff ’s exasperation about women worrying about “preserves” will ironically help preserve the secret of Mrs. Wright — a woman who was beaten down by her husband but who cannot be beaten by these male authorities.

elements of drama 607

wipe them on the roller towel, turns it for a cleaner place.) Dirty towels! (Kicks his foot against the pans under the sink.) Not much of a housekeeper, would you say, ladies?

Mrs. Hale (stiffl y): There’s a great deal of work to be done on a farm.

County Attorney: To be sure. And yet (with a little bow to her) I know there are some Dickson county farm- houses which do not have such roller towels. (He gives it a pull to expose its full length again.)

Mrs. Hale: Those towels get dirty awful quick. Men’s hands aren’t always as clean as they might be.

County Attorney: Ah, loyal to your sex, I see. But you and Mrs. Wright were neighbors. I suppose you were friends, too.

Mrs. Hale (shaking her head): I’ve not seen much of her of late years. I’ve not been in this house — it’s more than a year.

County Attorney: And why was that? You didn’t like her? Mrs. Hale: I liked her all well enough. Farmers’ wives

have their hands full, Mr. Henderson. And then — County Attorney: Yes — ? Mrs. Hale (looking about): It never seemed a very cheerful

place.

WEB

more help with close reading Close readings of Sophocles’ Antigone, William Shakespeare’s Hamlet, and Susan Glaspell’s Trifl es are available at Re:Writing for Literature (www.bedfordstmartins .com/rewritinglit). Sections of each play are annotated with critical interpretations and explanations of the literary elements at work.

The Attorney has an eye for dirty towels but not for the real “dirt” embedded in the Wrights’ domestic life.

The female characters are identifi ed as “Mrs.,” which emphasizes their roles as wives, while the men are autonomous and identifi ed by their professions.

Mrs. Hale’s comment begins a process of mitigating Mrs. Wright’s murder of her husband. He — husbands, men — must share some of the guilt, too.

In contrast to men (a nice irony), farmers’ wives’ hands are full of responsibilities for which they receive little credit owing to the males’ assumption that they fi ll their lives with trifl es.

ELEMENTS OF DR AMA Trifl es is a one-act play; in other words, the entire play takes place in a single location and unfolds as one continuous action. As in a short story, the characters in a one-act play are presented economically, and the action is sharply focused. In contrast, full-length plays can include many

608 reading drama

characters as well as different settings in place and time. The main divi- sions of a full-length play are typically acts; their ends are indicated by lowering a curtain or turning up the houselights. Playwrights frequently employ acts to ac commodate changes in time, setting, characters on stage, or mood. In many full-length plays, such as Shakespeare’s Ham- let, acts are further divided into scenes; according to tradition, a scene changes when the location of the action changes or when a new char- acter enters. Acts and scenes are conventions that are understood and accepted by audiences because they have come, through usage and time, to be recognized as familiar techniques. The major con- vention of a one-act play is that it typically consists of only a single scene; nevertheless, one-act plays contain many of the elements of drama that characterize their full-length counterparts.

One-act plays create their effects through compression. They espe- cially lend themselves to modestly budgeted productions with limited stage facilities, such as those put on by little theater groups. However, the potential of a one-act play to move audiences and readers is not related to its length. As Trifl es shows, one-acts represent a powerful form of dra- matic literature.

The single location that composes the setting for Trifl es is described at the very beginning of the play; it establishes an atmosphere that will later infl uence our judgment of Mrs. Wright. The “gloomy” kitchen is disordered, bare, and sparsely equipped with a stove, sink, rocker, cup- board, two tables, some chairs, three doors, and a window. These details are just enough to allow us to imagine the stark, uninviting place where Mrs. Wright spent most of her time. Moreover, “signs of incompleted work,” coupled with the presence of the sheriff and county attorney, create an immediate tension by suggesting that something is terribly wrong. Before a single word is spoken, suspense is created as the char- acters enter. This suspenseful situation causes an anxious uncertainty about what will happen next.

The setting is further developed through the use of exposition, a device that provides the necessary background information about the charac- ters and their circumstances. For example, we immediately learn through dialogue — the verbal exchanges between characters — that Mr. Henderson, the county attorney, is just back from Omaha. This establishes the setting as somewhere in the Midwest, where winters can be brutally cold and bar- ren. We also fi nd out that John Wright has been murdered and that his wife has been arrested for the crime.

Even more important, Glaspell deftly characterizes the Wrights through exposition alone. Mr. Hale’s conversation with Mr. Henderson explains how Mr. Wright’s body was discovered, but it also reveals that Wright was a noncommunicative man who refused to share a “party telephone” and did not consider “what his wife wanted.” Later Mrs. Hale

WEB Explore the literary elements in this chapter at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

elements of drama 609

adds to this characterization when she tells Mrs. Peters that though Mr. Wright was an honest, good man who paid his bills and did not drink, he was a “hard man” and “Like a raw wind that gets to the bone.” Mr. Hale’s description of Mrs. Wright sitting in the kitchen dazed and dis- oriented gives us a picture of a shattered, exhausted woman. But it is Mrs. Hale who again offers further insights when she describes how Minnie Foster, a sweet, pretty, timid young woman who sang in the choir, was changed by her marriage to Mr. Wright and by her childless, isolated life on the farm.

This information about Mr. and Mrs. Wright is worked into the dialogue throughout the play in order to suggest the nature of the con- fl ict or struggle between them, a motive, and, ultimately, a justifi cation for the murder. In the hands of a skillful playwright, exposition is not merely a mechanical device; it can provide important information while simultaneously developing characterizations and moving the action forward.

The action is shaped by the plot, the author’s arrangement of inci- dents in the play that gives the story a particular focus and emphasis. Plot involves more than simply what happens; it involves how and why things happen. Glaspell begins with a discussion of the murder. Why? She could have begun with the murder itself: the distraught Mrs. Wright looping the rope around her husband’s neck. The moment would be dramatic and horribly vivid. We neither see the body nor hear very much about it. When Mr. Hale describes fi nding Mr. Wright’s body, Glaspell has the county attorney cut him off by saying, “I think I’d rather have you go into that upstairs, where you can point it all out. Just go on now with the rest of the story.” It is precisely the “rest of the story” that inter- ests Glaspell. Her arrangement of incidents prevents us from sympathiz- ing with Mr. Wright. We are, fi nally, invited to see Mrs. Wright instead of her husband as the victim.

Mr. Henderson’s efforts to discover a motive for the murder appear initially to be the play’s focus, but the real confl icts are explored in what seems to be a subplot, a secondary action that reinforces or contrasts with the main plot. The discussions between Mrs. Hale and Mrs. Peters and the tensions between the men and the women turn out to be the main plot because they address the issues that Glaspell chooses to explore. Those issues are not about murder but about marriage and how men and women relate to each other.

The protagonist of Trifl es, the central character with whom we tend to identify, is Mrs. Hale. The antagonist, the character who is in some kind of opposition to the central character, is the county attorney, Mr. Henderson. These two characters embody the major confl icts presented in the play because each speaks for a different set of characters who rep- resent disparate values. Mrs. Hale and Mr. Henderson are developed less individually than as representative types.

610 reading drama

Mrs. Hale articulates a sensitivity to Mrs. Wright’s miserable life as well as an awareness of how women are repressed in general by men; she also helps Mrs. Peters to arrive at a similar understanding. When Mrs. Hale defends Mrs. Wright’s soiled towels from Mr. Henderson’s criticism, Glaspell has her say more than the county attorney is capable of hearing. The stage directions, the playwright’s instructions about how the actors are to move and behave, indicate that Mrs. Hale responds “stiffl y” to Mr. Henderson’s disparagements: “Men’s hands aren’t always as clean as they might be.” Mrs. Hale eventually comes to see that the men are, in a sense, complicit because it was insensitivity like theirs that drove Mrs. Wright to murder.

Mr. Henderson, on the other hand, represents the law in a patriar- chal, conventional society that blithely places a minimal value on the con- cerns of women. In his attempt to gather evidence against Mrs. Wright, he implicitly defends men’s severe dominance over women. He also patronizes Mrs. Hale and Mrs. Peters. Like Sheriff Peters and Mr. Hale, he regards the women’s world as nothing more than “kitchen things” and “trifl es.” Glaspell, however, patterns the plot so that the women see more about Mrs. Wright’s motives than the men do and shows that the women have a deeper understanding of justice.

Many plays are plotted in what has come to be called a pyramidal pattern, because the plot is divided into three essential parts. Such plays begin with a rising action, in which complication creates confl ict for the protagonist. The resulting tension builds to the second major division, known as the climax, when the action reaches a fi nal crisis, a turning point that has a powerful effect on the protagonist. The third part con- sists of falling action; here the tensions are diminished in the resolution of the plot’s confl icts and complications (the resolution is also referred to as the conclusion or dénouement, a French word meaning “unknotting”). These divisions may occur at different times. There are many variations to this pattern. The terms are helpful for identifying various moments and movements within a given plot, but they are less useful if seen as a means of reducing dramatic art to a formula.

Because Trifl es is a one-act play, this pyramidal pattern is less elabo- rately worked out than it might be in a full-length play, but the basic elements of the pattern can still be discerned. The complication con- sists mostly of Mrs. Hale’s refusal to assign moral or legal guilt to Mrs. Wright’s murder of her husband. Mrs. Hale is able to discover the motive in the domestic details that are beneath the men’s consideration. The men fail to see the signifi cance of the fruit jars, messy kitchen, and badly sewn quilt.

At fi rst Mrs. Peters seems to voice the attitudes associated with the men. Unlike Mrs. Hale, who is “more comfortable looking,” Mrs. Peters is “a slight wiry woman” with “a thin nervous face” who sounds like her husband, the sheriff, when she insists, “the law is the law.” She also defends the men’s patronizing attitudes, because “they’ve got awful important

quiet torrential sound 611

things on their minds.” But Mrs. Peters is a foil — a character whose behavior and values contrast with the protagonist’s — only up to a point. When the most telling clue is discovered, Mrs. Peters suddenly under- stands, along with Mrs. Hale, the motive for the killing. Mrs. Wright’s caged life was no longer tolerable to her after her husband had killed the bird (which was the one bright spot in her life and which represents her early life as the young Minnie Foster). This revelation brings about the climax, when the two women must decide whether to tell the men what they have discovered. Both women empathize with Mrs. Wright as they confront this crisis, and their sense of common experience leads them to withhold the evidence.

This resolution ends the play’s immediate confl icts and compli- cations. Presumably, without a motive the county attorney will have diffi culty prosecuting Mrs. Wright — at least to the fullest extent of the law. However, the larger issues related to the theme, the central idea or meaning of the play, are left unresolved. The men have both missed the clues and failed to perceive the suffering that acquits Mrs. Wright in the minds of the two women. The play ends with Mrs. Hale’s ironic answer to Mr. Henderson’s question about quilting. When she says “knot it,” she gives him part of the evidence he needs to connect Mrs. Wright’s quilting with the knot used to strangle her husband. Mrs. Hale knows — and we know — that Mr. Henderson will miss the clue she offers because he is blinded by his own self-importance and assumptions.

Though brief, Trifl es is a masterful representation of dramatic ele- ments working together to keep both audiences and readers absorbed in its characters and situations.

Quiet Torrential Sound

A successful playwright, screenwriter, journalist, and actress, Joan Ack- ermann is also cofounder and artistic director of the twenty-five-year- old Mixed Company Theater in Great Barrington, Massachusetts. She has published and produced more than a dozen of her plays around the country in such venues as the Guthrie Theater, Circle Rep, Cleveland Playhouse, Shakespeare & Company, and the Atlantic Theatre Company. Her plays include Off the Map (1994), which was adapted and released as a motion picture at the Sundance Film Festival in 2003; The Batting Cage (1996); Marcus Is Walking (1999); and Ice Glen (2005). Ackermann was also a longtime writer and producer of the television series *Arli$$*. In addi- tion to writing articles for The Atlantic, Esquire, and Time, her journalist writing included a seven-year stint as a special contributor to Sports Illus- trated. Quiet Torrential Sound is set in the Berkshires, where Ackermann resides and takes pleasure in being a part-time hiking guide and leading audiences on dramatic adventures.

612 reading drama

Joan Ackermann (b. 1951)

Quiet Torrential Sound 1995

characters

Monica, late thirties Claire, early thirties Waiter

time & place: The Present. Cafe table with two chairs.

Monica and Claire enter, dressed up, from a concert.

Monica: Well, isn’t this charming. Claire: Mmm. Monica: How about this cute little table right here? My. Aren’t these

flowers delightful. Claire: Mmm. Monica: A little past their prime but . . . such a precious little vase. Claire: Mmmm. Monica: (Sighs.) Beethoven. Beethoven. I feel so . . . renewed, don’t you?

That was the greatest classical experience of my life. Claire: Mm-mm. Monica: Claire, I believe I’ve expressed this to you before. I wish you

would make more of an effort to expand your vocabulary. No one would ever think that you’re a junior college graduate if all you do is go around hmmmming things. (Beat.) And another thing. I wouldn’t tell you this if we weren’t sisters and the best of friends, but quite frankly, that blouse does very little for you. Blue is your color, Claire. Keep away from the pastels. They tend to wash you out. You don’t have very strong features so you need more vibrancy of color to perk you up. Do you feel a draft?

Claire: I like this blouse. Monica: It’s not a question of liking it or not. As far as blouses go that

one is perfectly acceptable. It’s just pointless to wear something that does absolutely nothing for you. Clothes should make us appear as attractive as possible. Like wrapping paper. (Waiter enters.) Would you rather receive a gift in a plain brown paper bag or in nice cheer- ful paper with a bright colorful bow?

Waiter: Hi, my name is Nathan. Can I help you? Monica: Nathan. At long last. Where have you been? I would like a cup of

decaf, please, Nathan. Your freshest pot. With some Sweet and Low. Waiter: Right-y-o. Anything to eat? Monica: We’ve just been to the outdoor concert at Tanglewood.

Beethoven’s Seventh Symphony. So lovely, sitting out on the lawn. Waiter: That’s nice. Do you want something to eat?

ackermann / quiet torrential sound 613

Monica: I’m only telling you because I’m sure we smell of Avon Skin So Soft. For the bugs. It’s an excellent bug repellent. Not completely effective, but . . . can you smell it?

Waiter: I smell something. Monica: Avon Skin So Soft. Do you ever go to Tanglewood, Nathan? To

hear the classical concerts? Waiter: No. Monica: I thought not. Pardon me for asking, but is your decaf truly

decaf? Waiter: Yes, we brew our own. Monica: I’m so glad. I have ordered decaf before and received real coffee

instead. The effects are not pleasant. My digestive system; I won’t go into detail. Is there a fan on in here?

Waiter: No. Monica: Could you turn it off, please? Waiter: Sure. Claire: I’d like a Coke and a hot fudge sundae. Monica: Claire, dear. Really. A Coke and a hot fudge sundae? We were

only just moments ago discussing your figure in the car. Claire: Oh. Well, make it Diet Coke. Waiter: Right-y-o. (Starts to leave.) Monica: You’re sure now about that decaf? Waiter: Yes, m’am. Monica: Thank you so very much. I appreciate your courtesy. (Waiter

exits.) What a charming waiter. Doesn’t seem to have been to the dentist recently but I’m sure he has a heart of gold. My, we are having a splendid little vacation aren’t we, Claire? I never dreamed that the Berkshires held so many cultural attractions. I am so look- ing forward to the Norman Rockwell Museum this afternoon, aren’t you?

Claire: Mmm. (Then quickly:) Yes, I am. Monica. I am. Looking forward. Monica: I really should get subscription tickets to the Boston Symphony.

I’ve been telling myself that for years. When I get home I will, I will, I’m going to, I’m making myself a promise right now, you’re a wit- ness. There’s something about classical music, especially live classi- cal music . . . something so pure, so humane, so . . . honest. There’s no such thing as dishonest classical music — Claire, please don’t pick at your face — it simply doesn’t exist. You can see why it takes a cer- tain intellect, a certain upbringing to appreciate it. An uncultivated mind could never appreciate classical music. Couldn’t. Our waiter, for instance, Nathan. Classical music would just wash right over Nathan. Like rain on a duck. So. Do you have any observations from this morning you’d care to share with me?

Claire: Oh. I enjoyed the concert. Monica: Yes?

614 reading drama

Claire: Huh-huh. Yes. I did. Monica: And what about it did you enjoy in particular? Claire: Uh . . . Monica: Was it the lovely outdoor setting? The view of distant roll-

ing hills? The harmonious marriage between the natural beauty and Beethoven’s Seventh Symphony? Was it the thrilling final movement?

Claire: I thought the conductor was exceptional. Monica: Exceptional? Interesting choice of words. You’re picking at your

face again. Perhaps if you used a different moisturizer it wouldn’t break out so. I’ll give you some of mine when we get back to the hotel. In what way exceptional?

Claire: In the way he conducted. (Clears throat.) His musicians. Monica: Ah . . . how astute of you, Claire. You know I think your hair is

due for a trim. You’re looking rather mousey of late, though you do have a strange glow about you I can’t quite figure. (Waiter enters.) Maybe after the museum we can find a beauty shop.

Waiter: Here you go. (Serves both and exits.) Monica: Why thank you so much, Nathan. (Eyeing Claire’s sundae.) Oh

my. I’m not saying a word. (Takes Sweet and Low, shakes it hard, pours and watches it settle.) Ah, it is decaf, I can tell by the way the Sweet and Low penetrates. Real coffee offers more resistance.

Claire: Monica . . . Monica: You know what I find hard to believe, Claire, what I’ll never

understand, is how it could be, how it could come to pass that a man like Beethoven, a man blessed with such extraordinary gifts, such a superhuman capacity to paint with sound, paint giant murals of sound, how such a genius could actually become deaf. Did you know he became deaf in later years? He did. Such a tragedy. My cof- fee tastes like Avon Skin So Soft.

(Claire is eating an enormous hot fudge sundae.)

Claire: Monica . . . Monica: It’s hard to imagine what it would be like to be deaf and be

Beethoven. To only listen in your mind. Actually, you would be lis- tening in your mind, to your mind, to what your mind remembered. Sound was. Just imagine being Beethoven, deaf; listening to all that quiet sound, that quiet torrential sound. Is that real whipped cream? No, honey, I’m counting calories. But you enjoy it. Funny that his ears — of all parts of Beethoven’s body — his ears should be the ones to break down. You use a certain part of your body so much, you just plum wear it out. Like a painter going blind. Like Renoir, for instance, going blind. Or Matisse, or Manet, or Monet, or Van Gogh, or Jackson Pollock, or Leonardo da Vinci. Or any of the great impressionists. Going blind. From overuse. The opposite

ackermann / quiet torrential sound 615

of vestigial. Classical music is so stimulating, isn’t it? My brain is full of thoughts.

Claire: Monica . . . Monica: What? Claire: (Eating her sundae.) You know that workshop on “Human Inti-

macy” that you suggested I go to a couple months ago? Monica: No. Claire: Remember? You gave me this brochure with workshops . . . the

Adult Education Center. You had several circled, with an eyebrow pencil?

Monica: Mmm. Claire: Well, I took one. Monica: Good for you. (Wanting more coffee.) Where is our waiter? Where

is Mr. Right-y-o? Imagine, a grown man speaking like that. Claire: Remember too how we once talked about orgasms and how nei-

ther of us had ever had one? (Pause.) Remember? That night we got a little tipsy on peach wine coolers at Rose’s?

Monica: We are sisters, Claire. We’ve shared many secrets with each other over the years. Such confidences are quite natural.

Claire: Well, I learned a couple of things at that workshop that really . . . helped.

Monica: I’m so glad. I was thinking of taking a music appreciation class there over the winter session. It’s given by a Harvard professor and it’s supposed to be excellent.

Claire: Mmm. My teacher was excellent. Monica: Was he from Harvard? Claire: No. Monica: Oh. Claire: Have you ever heard of multiple orgasms? Monica: I’m an educated woman, Claire, and an avid magazine reader.

I’ve heard about just about everything under the sun from multiple orgasms to multiple sclerosis. Just because I have experienced nei- ther does not mean I am poorly informed on either topic.

Claire: Well, I’m having them. Monica: Right now? Claire: No, not right now. Monica: (Pause.) Truly? Claire: (Eating ice cream.) Huh-huh. Monica: Well. Bless your heart. Claire: Lots of them. Monica: I’m very happy for you, dear. Now. Would you care to hear

about the Norman Rockwell Museum? This guide book has been most informative.

Claire: First I figured out how to have them by myself. In the bathtub? Then I started seeing this guy, Jim, I call him Jimbo, sometimes

616 reading drama

Jumbo, inside joke, he helped me with my tax returns, he works for H&R Block? Monica . . . I can’t tell you how wonderful it’s been.

Monica: Then don’t. Listen to this. “The Corner House in Stockbridge has the largest collection of Rockwell originals in the world, over four hundred. The museum changes its exhibit twice a year with a few exceptional paintings remaining on permanent display (for example, ‘Stockbridge at Christmas’). There are six galleries within this beautifully restored 18th-century house, and the tour is a delight. All sorts of colorful information is passed along (such as pointers about the portraits of Grandma Moses and Rockwell’s fam- ily contained within one painting). Helpful hints are given about how to appreciate Rockwell’s attention to detail: ‘Notice the ring finger on the old woman’s hand; it’s been indented by many years of wear . . .’”

(While Monica reads, Claire speaks.)

Claire: I’m thirty-three years old, Monica, and I’ve finally gotten in touch with my own body.

(Monica continues reading.)

Claire: It’s like I’ve been walking around all these years with this hidden sunken treasure. It was there the whole time! What a feeling, I am telling you. Woo!

(Monica reads louder.)

Claire: I could have died and never even known, Monica, I could have gone my whole life and never known. I mean, I could have been in a car accident last year, I could easily have died in a car accident without ever knowing. What a crying shame that would have been.

(Monica reads louder.)

Claire: And to share that feeling with someone else. Monica. There’s just nothing like it. Nothing. Not distant rolling hills. Not Beethoven’s Seventh Symphony. (Monica stops.) Not even the thrilling final move- ment. Talk about thrilling final movements!

Monica: SHUT UP!

(Pause.)

Claire: Jimbo likes this blouse, Monica. He likes what’s inside it no mat- ter how it’s packaged. He thinks it’s vibrant.

(Pause. Waiter enters.)

Waiter: Did you call? Did you need something? Monica: Yes, I need something, I need you to know that I know that that

was not decaffeinated coffee, young man, it was not decaffeinated coffee you gave me, there was caffeine in it you assured me there

ackermann / quiet torrential sound 617

wouldn’t be but there was. Caffeine. Am I right, am I? I am. Do you know how many times that happens to me, how many times waiters and waitresses love to intentionally do that to me, just love to inten- tionally give me straight black coffee all the while smirking inside, insisting oh yes it’s decaffeinated? Smirking, do you know? And do you know that as a result I’ll be awake all night tonight, I’ll be awake with a splitting headache and severe stomach cramps, awake all by myself alone in my bed. Tell me, Nathan, is that a cheerful picture? Is that a cheerful Norman Rockwell Saturday Evening Post cover, a woman alone in bed with a splitting headache and stomach cramps? Jaws clenched?

(Pause.)

Waiter: I’m sorry. I didn’t think you would notice. Monica: You know, Nathan, if you were the sort of person who went to

classical concerts, the sort of person who was capable of enjoying classical concerts, capable of sitting there, quietly listening, appre- ciating, you would not be so cruel. So cruel. It’s because I’m a cul- tured woman, isn’t it? That’s why, because I’m cultured.

(Silence. He exits.)

Claire: I don’t think you were very nice to Nathan. Monica: Nathan who did not turn off that fan, did willfully not turn

off that fan on purpose when I asked him, asked him very cordially, I’ll most likely end up with an earache from the draft; lying alone tonight in my bed with an earache and stomach cramps and a head- ache while my baby sister lies in the next bed . . . glowing. (Takes a breath.) Are you ready to leave, Claire? I was planning to have a dish of frozen light yogurt after sitting here watching you eat that Mt. Vesuvius of a hot fudge sundae but quite frankly, the unex- pected turn in our conversation has left a disagreeable note in the atmosphere.

Claire: I’m ready to go. (Looks at bill, opens purse, puts down money.) Monica: (Stands.) They have tours at the museum every twenty minutes.

I plan to buy several postcards and perhaps a poster, if they are rea- sonably priced. (Takes another breath.) I think, Claire, that Stock- bridge will be one of the highlights of our trip.

Claire: Mmm. Monica: And far be it from me to be the one to suggest that there is

ample room for you to show a little more appreciation for the fact that I have organized this vacation, this entire vacation, entirely by myself and by a little more appreciation I mean any at all.

Claire: I do. Appreciate. Monica: How anyone could fathom why you would feel moved to share

that kind of information with me at this point in time, at the very peak of our vacation.

618 reading drama

Claire: That’s why. You were in such a good mood. You just had the great- est classical experience of your life. The information was pretty . . . upbeat. I thought.

Monica: Upbeat. Claire: I thought it was perfect vacation information. To share with my

only living sister. Monica: (Starts walking out, turns back.) Claire? Claire: Mmm? Monica: I apologize for my choice of words just then. Claire: When? Monica: Back then. Claire: You mean when you said shut up? Monica: Mm. Claire: It’s okay. Monica: It was inappropriate. Uncalled for. The caffeine . . . Claire: It’s all right. Really. Monica: (Takes one step and turns back again.) Claire? Claire: Yes, Monica. Monica: If you received any pertinent literature in your workshop —

books, pamphlets, diagrams, whatever — I’d venture to say that I’d be willing to peruse whatever material you had.

Claire: All right. (Smiles.) Monica: All right. (She goes back and puts a bill on the table.) Claire: Ten dollars? Geez Louise. Monica: Claire, don’t say “geez Louise.” It doesn’t become a woman of

your age. (Starts to exit.) Claire: Okay. Monica: (Sarcastic.) Or breadth of experience.

(Claire follows Monica off.)

The end

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Analyze how Monica’s opening conversation with Claire — before Nathan appears — serves to establish her character.

2. Discuss the significance of what the sisters order from Nathan in the café. What do their respective appetites reveal about them?

3. Describe the conflict that exists between Monica and Claire. 4. How is Monica’s discussion of Beethoven relevant to the conflict in

the play? 5. Comment on Ackermann’s strategies for working humor and irony

into the dialogue. 6. Consider the play’s final scene. How would you characterize the tone

of the ending and the sisters’ future relationship?

drama in popular forms 619

DR AMA IN POPUL AR FORMS Audiences for live performances of plays have been thinned by high ticket prices but perhaps even more signifi cantly by the impact of motion pic- tures and television. Motion pictures, the original threat to live theater, have in turn been superseded by television (along with DVDs), now the most popular form of entertainment in America. Television audiences are measured in the millions. Probably more people have seen a single weekly episode of a top-rated prime-time program such as LOST in one evening than have viewed a live performance of Hamlet in nearly four hundred years.

Though most of us are seated more often before a television than before live actors, our limited experience with the theater presents rela- tively few obstacles to appreciation because many of the basic elements of drama are similar whether the performance is on a screen or on a stage. Television has undoubtedly seduced audiences that otherwise might have been attracted to the theater, but television obviously satisfi es some aspects of our desire for drama and can be seen as a potential introduction to live theater rather than as its irresistible rival.

Signifi cant differences do, of course, exist between television and theater productions. Most obviously, television’s special camera effects can capture phenomena such as earthquakes, raging fi res, car chases, and space travel that cannot be realistically rendered on a live stage. The presentation of characters and the plotting of action are also handled differently owing to both the possibilities and limitations of television and the theater. Television’s multiple camera angles and close-ups pro- vide a degree of intimacy that cannot be duplicated by actors on stage, yet this intimacy does not achieve the immediacy that live actors create. On commercial television, the plot must accommodate itself to breaks in the action so that advertisements can be aired at regular intervals. Beyond these and many other differences, however, there are enough important similarities that the experience of watching television shows can enhance our understanding of a theater production.

Seinfeld

Seinfeld, which aired on NBC, was fi rst produced during the summer of 1989. Although the series ended in the spring of 1998, it remains popular in syndicated reruns. No one expected the half-hour situation comedy that evolved from the pilot to draw some twenty-seven million viewers per week who avidly watched Jerry Seinfeld playing himself as a standup comic. Nominated for numerous Emmys, the show became one of the most popular programs of the 1990s. Although Seinfeld portrays a rela- tively narrow band of contemporary urban life — four thirty-something

620 reading drama

characters living in New York City’s Upper West Side — its quirky humor and engaging characters have attracted vast numbers of devoted fans who have conferred on it a kind of cult status. If you haven’t watched an episode on television, noticed the T-shirts and posters, or read Sein- language (a best-selling collection of Seinfeld’s monologues), you can catch up on the Internet, where fans discuss the popularity and merits of the show.

The setting for Seinfeld is determined by its subject matter, which is everyday life in Manhattan. Most of the action alternates between two principal locations: Jerry’s modest one-bedroom apartment on West 81st Street and the characters’ favorite restaurant in the neighborhood. View- ers are often surprised to learn that the show was fi lmed on a soundstage before a live audience in Studio City, California, because the sights, sounds, and seemingly unmistakable texture of Manhattan appear in back- ground shots so that the city functions almost as a major character in many episodes. If you ever fi nd yourself on the corner of Broadway and 112th Street, you’ll recognize the facade of Jerry’s favorite restaurant; but don’t bother to look for the building that matches the exterior shot of his apartment building because it is in Los Angeles, as are the scenes in which the characters actually appear on the street. The care with which the sets are created suggests how important the illusion of the New York City environment is to the show.

As the central character, Jerry begins and ends each episode with a standup comedy act delivered before a club audience. These monologues (played down in later episodes) are connected to the events in the epi- sodes and demonstrate with humor and insight that ordinary experi- ence — such as standing in line at a supermarket or getting something caught in your teeth — can be a source of genuine humor. For Jerry, life is fi lled with daily annoyances that he copes with by making sharp, humor- ous observations. Here’s a brief instance from “The Pitch” (not reprinted in the excerpt on p. 622) in which Jerry is in the middle of a conversation with friends when he is interrupted by a phone call.

Jerry (into phone): Hello? Man (v[oice] o[ver]): Hi, would you be interested in switching over to T.M.I. long distance service? Jerry: Oh gee, I can’t talk right now, why don’t you give me your home number and I’ll call you later? Man (v[oice] o[ver]): Uh, well I’m sorry, we’re not allowed to do that. Jerry: Oh, I guess you don’t want people calling you at home. Man (v[oice] o[ver]): No. Jerry: Well now you know how I feel. Hangs up.

This combination of polite self-assertion and humor is Jerry’s fi rst line of defense in his ongoing skirmishes with the irritations of daily life. Unthreatening in his Nikes and neatly pressed jeans, Jerry nonetheless

drama in popular forms 621

knows how to give it back when he is annoyed. Seinfeld has described his fi ctional character as a “nice, New York Jewish boy,” but his charac- ter’s bemused and pointed observations reveal a tough-mindedness that is often wittily on target.

Jerry’s life and apartment are continually invaded by his three closest friends: George, Kramer, and Elaine. His refrigerator is the ral- lying point from which they feed each other lines over cardboard take- out cartons and containers of juice. Jerry’s success as a standup comic is their cue to enjoy his groceries as well as his company, but they know their intrusions are welcome because the refrigerator is always restocked.

Jerry’s closest friend is George Costanza (played by Jason Alexander), a frequently unemployed, balding, pudgy schlemiel. Any straightforward description of his behavior and sensibilities makes him sound starkly unappealing: He is hypochondriacal, usually upset and depressed, inept with women, embarrassingly stingy, and persistently demanding while simultaneously displaying a vain and cocky nature. As intolerable as he can be, he is nonetheless endearing. The pleasure of his character is in observing how he talks his way into trouble and then attempts to talk his way out of it to Jerry’s amazement and amusement.

Across the hall from Jerry’s apartment lives Kramer (played by Michael Richards), who is strategically located so as to be the mooch in Jerry’s life. Known only as Kramer (until an episode later than “The Pitch” revealed his fi rst name to be Cosmo), his slapstick twitching, tripping, and falling serve as a visual contrast to all the talking that goes on. His bizarre schemes and eccentric behavior have their physical counterpart in his vertical hair and his outrageous thrift-shop shirts from the 1960s.

Elaine Benes (played by Julia Louis-Dreyfus), on the other hand, is a sharp-tongued, smart, sexy woman who can hold her own and is very defi nitely a female member of this boy’s club. As Jerry’s ex-girlfriend, she provides some interesting romantic tension while serving as a sounding board for the relationship issues that George and Jerry obsess about. Employed at a book company at the time of the episode reprinted here, she, like George and Kramer, is also in the business of publishing her daily problems in Jerry’s apartment.

The plots of most Seinfeld episodes are generated by the comical situ- ations that Jerry and his friends encounter during the course of their daily lives. Minor irritations develop into huge confl icts that are offbeat, irreverent, or even absurd. The characters have plenty of time to create confl icts in their lives over such everyday situations as dealing with par- ents, fi nding an apartment, getting a date, riding the subway, ordering a meal, and losing a car in a mall parking garage. The show’s screwball plots involve freewheeling misadventures that are played out in unre- markable but hilarious conversations.

The following scenes from Seinfeld are from a script titled “The Pitch” that concerns Jerry’s and George’s efforts to develop a television

622 reading drama

show for NBC. The script is loosely based on events that actually occurred when Jerry Seinfeld and his real-life friend Larry David (the author of “The Pitch”) sat down to dis- cuss ideas for the pilot NBC produced in 1989. As brief as these scenes are, they contain some of the dramatic elements found in a play.

Larry David (b. 1947)

Seinfeld 1992

“The Pitch”

[The following excerpted scenes do not appear one after the other in the original script but are interspersed through several subplots involving Kramer and Elaine.]

AC T ON E

Scene A: Int[erior] comedy club bar — night

Jerry and George are talking. Suits enter, Stu and Jay.

Stu: Excuse me, Jerry? I’m Stu Chermak. I’m with NBC. Jerry: Hi. Stu: Could we speak for a few moments? Jerry: Sure, sure. Jay: Hi, Jay Crespi. Jerry: Hello. George: C-R-E-S-P-I? Jay: That’s right. George: I’m unbelievable at spelling last names. Give me a last name. Jay: Mm, I’m not — Jerry: George. George (backing off ): Huh? All right, fi ne. Stu: First of all, that was a terrifi c show. Jerry: Oh thank you very much. Stu: And basically, I just wanted to let you know that we’ve been discuss-

ing you at some of our meetings and we’d be very interested in doing something.

Jerry: Really? Wow.

Larry David. © Dan Winters.

david / seinfeld 623

Stu: So, if you have an idea for like a TV show for yourself, well, we’d just love to talk about it.

Jerry: I’d be very interested in something like that. Stu: Well, here, why don’t you give us a call and maybe we can develop a

series. They start to exit.

Jerry: Okay. Great. Thanks. Stu: It was very nice meeting you. Jerry: Thank you. Jay: Nice meeting you. Jerry: Nice meeting you.

George returns. George: What was that all about? Jerry: They said they were interested in me. George: For what? Jerry: You know, a TV show. George: Your own show? Jerry: Yeah, I guess so. George: They want you to do a TV show? Jerry: Well, they want me to come up with an idea. I mean, I don’t have

any ideas. George: Come on, how hard is that? Look at all the junk that’s on TV. You

want an idea? Here’s an idea. You coach a gymnastics team in high school. And you’re married. And your son’s not interested in gymnas- tics and you’re pushing him into gymnastics.

Jerry: Why should I care if my son’s into gymnastics? George: Because you’re a gymnastics teacher. It’s only natural. Jerry: But gymnastics is not for everybody. George: I know, but he’s your son. Jerry: So what? George: All right, forget that idea, it’s not for you. . . . Okay, okay, I got it,

I got it. You run an antique store. Jerry: Yeah and . . . ? George: And people come in the store and you get involved in their lives. Jerry: What person who runs an antique store gets involved in people’s lives? George: Why not? Jerry: So someone comes in to buy an old lamp and all of a sudden I’m

getting them out of a jam? I could see if I was a pharmacist because a pharmacist knows what’s wrong with everybody that comes in.

George: I know, but antiques are very popular right now. Jerry: No they’re not, they used to be. George: Oh yeah, like you know. Jerry: Oh like you do.

Cut to:

624 reading drama

AC T ON E

Scene B: Int[erior] Jerry’s apartment — day

Jerry and Kramer.

Kramer: . . . And you’re the manager of the circus. Jerry: A circus? Kramer: Come on, this is a great idea. Look at the characters. You’ve got

all these freaks on the show. A woman with a moustache? I mean, who wouldn’t tune in to see a woman with a moustache? You’ve got the tallest man in the world; the guy who’s just a head.

Jerry: I don’t think so. Kramer: Look Jerry, the show isn’t about the circus, it’s about watching

freaks. Jerry: I don’t think the network will go for it. Kramer: Why not? Jerry: Look, I’m not pitching a show about freaks. Kramer: Oh come on Jerry, you’re wrong. People they want to watch

freaks. This is a “can’t miss.”

AC T ON E

Scene C: Int[erior] coffee shop — lunchtime — day

Jerry and George enter.

George: So, what’s happening with the TV show? You come up with anything?

Jerry: No, nothing. George: Why don’t they have salsa on the table? Jerry: What do you need salsa for? George: Salsa is now the number one condiment in America. Jerry: You know why? Because people like to say “salsa.” “Excuse me, do

you have salsa?” “We need more salsa.” “Where is the salsa? No salsa?” George: You know it must be impossible for a Spanish person to order

seltzer and not get salsa. (Angry.) “I wanted seltzer, not salsa.” Jerry: “Don’t you know the difference between seltzer and salsa? You

have the seltzer after the salsa!” George: See, this should be the show. This is the show. Jerry: What? George: This. Just talking. Jerry (dismissing): Yeah, right. George: I’m really serious. I think that’s a good idea.

david / seinfeld 625

Jerry: Just talking? What’s the show about? George: It’s about nothing. Jerry: No story? George: No, forget the story. Jerry: You’ve got to have a story. George: Who says you gotta have a story? Remember when we were wait-

ing for that table in that Chinese restaurant that time? That could be a TV show.

Jerry: And who is on the show? Who are the characters? George: I could be a character. Jerry: You? George: You could base a character on me. Jerry: So on the show there’s a character named George Costanza? George: Yeah. There’s something wrong with that? I’m a character. People

are always saying to me, “You know you’re quite a character.” Jerry: And who else is on the show? George: Elaine could be a character. Kramer. Jerry: Now he’s a character. . . . So, everyone I know is a character on the

show. George: Right. Jerry: And it’s about nothing? George: Absolutely nothing. Jerry: So you’re saying, I go in to NBC and tell them I got this idea for a

show about nothing. George: We go into NBC. Jerry: We? Since when are you a writer? George: Writer. We’re talking about a sit-com. Jerry: You want to go with me to NBC? George: Yeah, I think we really got something here. Jerry: What do we got? George: An idea. Jerry: What idea? George: An idea for the show. Jerry: I still don’t know what the idea is. George: It’s about nothing. Jerry: Right. George: Everybody’s doing something, we’ll do nothing. Jerry: So we go into NBC, we tell them we’ve got an idea for a show about

nothing. George: Exactly. Jerry: They say, “What’s your show about?” I say, “Nothing.” George: There you go.

A beat.

Jerry: I think you may have something there.

Cut to:

626 reading drama

AC T ON E

Scene D: Int[erior] Jerry’s apartment — day

Jerry and Kramer.

Jerry: So it would be about my real life. And one of the characters would be based on you.

Kramer (thinks): No. I don’t think so. Jerry: What do you mean you don’t think so? Kramer: I don’t like it. Jerry: I don’t understand. What don’t you like about it? Kramer: I don’t like the idea of a character based on me. Jerry: Why not? Kramer: Doesn’t sit well. Jerry: You’re my neighbor. There’s got to be a character based on you. Kramer: That’s your problem, buddy. Jerry: I don’t understand what the big deal is. Kramer: Hey I’ll tell you what, you can do it on one condition. Jerry: Whatever you want. Kramer: I get to play Kramer. Jerry: You can’t play Kramer. Kramer: I am Kramer. Jerry: But you can’t act.

AC T ON E

Scene G: Int[erior] NBC reception area — day

Jerry and George.

Jerry (to himself): Salsa, seltzer. Hey excuse me, you got any salsa? No not seltzer, salsa. (George doesn’t react.) What’s the matter?

George (nervous): Nothing. Jerry: You sure? You look a little pale. George: No, I’m fi ne. I’m good. I’m fi ne. I’m very good. Jerry: What are you, nervous? George: No, not nervous. I’m good, very good. (A beat, then: explodes.) I

can’t do this! Can’t do this! Jerry: What? George: I can’t do this! I can’t do it. I have tried. I’m here. It’s impossible. Jerry: This was your idea. George: What idea? I just said something. I didn’t know you’d listen to me. Jerry: Don’t worry about it. They’re just TV executives.

david / seinfeld 627

George: They’re men with jobs, Jerry! They wear suits and ties. They’re married, they have secretaries.

Jerry: I told you not to come. George: I need some water. I gotta get some water. Jerry: They’ll give us water inside. George: Really? That’s pretty good. . . .

Receptionist enters.

Receptionist: They’re ready for you. George: Okay, okay, look, you do all the talking, okay? Jerry: Relax. Who are they? George: Yeah, they’re not better than me. Jerry: Course not. George: Who are they? Jerry: They’re nobody. George: What about me? Jerry: What about you? George: Why them? Why not me? Jerry: Why not you? George: I’m as good as them. Jerry: Better. George: You really think so? Jerry: No.

Door opens, Jerry and George P.O.V., the four execs stand up.

Fade out.

AC T T WO

Scene G: Int[erior] NBC president’s offi ce — day

The mood is jovial. Stu Chermak is there — along with Susan Ross, Jay Crespi, and Russell Dalrymple, the head of the network.

Stu (to Jerry): The bit, the bit I really liked was where the parakeet fl ew into the mirror. Now that’s funny.

George: The parakeet in the mirror. That is a good one, Stu. Jerry: Yeah, it’s one of my favorites. Russell: What about you George, have you written anything we might

know? George: Well, possibly. I wrote an off-Broadway show, “La Cocina.” . . .

Actually it was off-off-Broadway. It was a comedy about a Mexican chef.

Jerry: Oh it was very funny. There was one great scene with the chef — what was his name?

628 reading drama

George: Pepe. Jerry: Oh Pepe, yeah Pepe. And, uh, he was making tamales. Susan: Oh, he actually cooked on the stage? George: No, no, he mimed it. That’s what was so funny about it. Russell: So what have you two come up with? Jerry: Well we’ve thought about this in a variety of ways. But the basic

idea is I will play myself. George (interrupting, to Jerry): May I? Jerry: Go ahead. George: I think I can sum up the show for you with one word. NOTHING. Russell: Nothing? George: Nothing. Russell: What does that mean? George: The show is about nothing. Jerry (to George): Well, it’s not about nothing. George (to Jerry): No, it’s about nothing. Jerry: Well, maybe in philosophy. But even nothing is something.

Jerry and George glare at each other. Receptionist sticks her head in.

Receptionist: Mr. Dalrymple, your niece is on the phone. Russell: I’ll call back. George: D-A-L-R-I-M-P-E-L. Russell: Not even close. George: Is it with a “y”? Russell: No. Susan: What’s the premise? Jerry: . . . Well, as I was saying, I would play myself. And as a comedian,

living in New York, and I have a friend and a neighbor and an ex- girlfriend, which is all true.

George: Yeah, but nothing happens on the show. You see, it’s just like life. You know, you eat, you go shopping, you read. You eat, you read, you go shopping.

Russell: You read? You read on the show? Jerry: Well I don’t know about the reading. We didn’t discuss the

reading. Russell: All right, tell me, tell me about the stories. What kind of stories? George: Oh no, no stories. Russell: No stories? So what is it? George: What’d you do today? Russell: I got up and came to work. George: There’s a show. That’s a show. Russell (confused): How is that a show? Jerry: Well, uh, maybe something happens on the way to work. George: No, no, no. Nothing happens. Jerry: Well, something happens. Russell: Well why am I watching it?

david / seinfeld 629

George: Because it’s on TV. Russell: Not yet. George: Okay, uh, look, if you want to just keep on doing the same old

thing, then maybe this idea is not for you. I for one will not compro- mise my artistic integrity. And I’ll tell you something else. This is the show and we’re not going to change it. (To Jerry.) Right?

Jerry: How about this? I manage a circus . . .

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What does George mean when he says the proposed show should be about “nothing”? Why is George’s idea both a comic and a serious proposal?

2. How does the stage direction “Suits enter” serve to characterize Stu and Jay? Write a description of how you think they would look.

3. What is revealed about George’s character when he spells Crespi’s and Dalrymple’s names?

4. Discuss Kramer’s assertion that people “want to watch freaks.” Do you think this line could be used to sum up accurately audience responses to Seinfeld?

5. Choose a scene, and explain how humor is worked into it. What other emotions are evoked in the scene?

6. View an episode of Seinfeld. How does reading a script compare with watching the show? Which do you prefer? Why?

Like those of many plays, the settings for these scenes are not detailed. Jerry’s apartment and the coffee shop are, to cite only two examples, not described at all. We are told only that it is lunchtime in the coffee shop. Even without a set designer’s version of these scenes, we readily create a mental picture of these places that provides a background for the char- acters. In the coffee shop scene we can assume that Jerry and George are having lunch, but we must supply the food, the plates and cutlery, the tables and chairs, and the other customers. For the television show, sets were used that replicated the details of a Manhattan coffee shop, right down to the menus and cash register. If the scene were presented on a stage, a set designer might use minimal sets and props to suggest the specifi c location. The director of such a production would rely on the viewers’ imagination to create the details of the setting.

As brief as they are, these scenes include some exposition to pro- vide the necessary background about the characters and their circum- stances. We learn through dialogue, for example, that George is not a writer and that he doesn’t think it takes very much talent to write a sitcom even though he’s unemployed. These bits of information help to characterize George and allow an audience to place his attitudes and comments in a larger context that will be useful for understanding how other characters read them. Rather than dramatizing background information, the scriptwriter arranges incidents to create a particular

630 reading drama

focus and effect while working in the necessary exposition through dialogue.

The plot in these scenes shapes the confl icts to emphasize humor. As in any good play, incidents are carefully arranged to achieve a particu- lar effect. In the fi rst scene we learn that NBC executives are interested in having Jerry do his own television show. We also learn, through his habit of spelling people’s last names when he meets them, that George is a potential embarrassment. The dialogue between Jerry and George quickly establishes the confl ict. The NBC executives would like to pro- duce a TV show with Jerry provided that he can come up with an idea for the series; Jerry, however, has no ideas (here’s the complication of the pyramidal plot pattern discussed in Elements of Drama, p. 610). This complication sets up a confl ict for Jerry because George assumes that he can help Jerry develop an idea for the show, which, after all, shouldn’t be any more diffi cult than spelling a stranger’s name. As George says, “How hard is that? Look at all the junk that’s on TV.”

All of a sudden everyone is an expert on scriptwriting. George’s off- the-wall suggestions that the premise for the show be Jerry’s running an antique shop or teaching gymnastics are complemented by Kramer’s idea that Jerry be “the manager of the circus” because “people they want to watch freaks.” As unhelpful as Kramer’s suggestion is, there is some truth here as well as humor, given his own freakish behavior. However, it is George who comes through with the most intriguing suggestion. As a result of the exuberantly funny riff he and Jerry do on “the dif- ference between seltzer and salsa,” George suddenly realizes that the show should be “about nothing” — that it should consist of nothing more than Jerry talking and hanging out with his friends George, Elaine, and Kramer. Jerry’s initial skepticism gives way as he seriously considers George’s proposal and is intrigued enough to bring George with him to the NBC offi ces to make the pitch. His decision to bring George to the meeting can only, of course, complicate matters further.

Before the meeting with the NBC executives, George is stricken with one of his crises of confi dence when he compares himself to the “men with jobs” who are married and have secretaries. Characteristically, George’s temporary lack of confi dence shifts to an equally ill-timed arro- gance once the meeting begins. He usurps Jerry’s role and makes the pitch himself: “Nothing happens on the show. You see, it’s just like life. You know, you eat, you go shopping, you read. You eat, you read, you go shopping.” The climax occurs when George refuses even to consider any of the reservations the executives have about “nothing” happening on the show. George’s insistence that he not compromise his “artistic integrity” creates a crisis for Jerry, a turning point that makes him realize that George’s ridiculous arrogance might cost him his opportunity to have a TV show. Jerry’s fi nal lines to the executives — “How about this? I manage a circus . . .” — work two ways: He resignedly acknowledges

david / seinfeld 631

that something — not “nothing” — has just happened and that George is, indeed, something of a freak.

The falling action and resolution typical of a pyramidal plot are not present in “The Pitch” because the main plot is not resolved until a later episode. “The Pitch” also contains several subplots not included in the scenes excerpted in this book. Like the main plot, these subplots involv- ing Elaine, Kramer, and a few minor characters are not resolved until later episodes. Self-contained series episodes are increasingly rare on television, as programmers attempt to hook viewers week after week by creating suspense once associated with serialized stories that appeared weekly or monthly in magazines.

The theme of “The Pitch” is especially interesting because it self- refl exively comments on the basic premise of Seinfeld scripts: They are all essentially about “nothing” in that they focus on the seemingly trivial details of the four main characters’ lives. The unspoken irony of this theme is that such details are in fact signifi cant because it is just such small, everyday activities that constitute most people’s lives.

Brought to you by LibraryPirate...

632

I depict men as they ought to be . . . — SOPHOCLES

Not all things are to be discovered; many are better concealed.

— SOPHOCLES

Sophocles lived a long, productive life (496?–406 b.c.) in Athens. During his life Athens became a dominant political and cultural power after the Persian Wars, but before he died Sophocles witnessed the decline of Athens as a result of the Peloponnesian Wars and the city’s subsequent surrender to Sparta. He saw Athenian culture reach remarkable heights as well as collapse under enormous pressures.

Sophocles embodied much of the best of Athenian culture; he enjoyed success as a statesman, general, treasurer, priest, and, of course, prize-winning dramatist. Although surviving fragments indicate that he wrote over 120 plays, only a handful remain intact. Those that survive con- sist of the three plays he wrote about Oedipus and his children — Oedipus the King, Oedipus at Colonus, and Antigone — and four additional tragedies: Philoctetes, Ajax, Maidens of Trachis, and Electra.

His plays won numerous prizes at festival competitions because of his careful, subtle plotting and the sense of inevitability with which their action is charged. Moreover, his development of character is richly complex. Instead of relying on the extreme situations and exaggerated actions that earlier tragedians used, Sophocles created powerfully motivated

24 Sophocles

and Greek Drama

WEB Explore contexts for Sophocles at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

theatrical conventions of greek drama 633

characters who even today fascinate audiences with their psychological depth.

In addition to crafting sophisticated tragedies for the Greek theater, Sophocles introduced several important innovations to the stage. Most important, he broke the tradition of using only two actors; adding a third resulted in more complicated relationships and intricate dialogue among characters. As individual actors took center stage more often, Sophocles reduced the role of the chorus (discussed on p. 634). This shift placed even more emphasis on the actors, although the chorus remained impor- tant as a means of commenting on the action and establishing its tone. Sophocles was also the fi rst dramatist to write plays with specifi c actors in mind, a development that many later playwrights, including Shakespeare, exploited usefully. But without question Sophocles’ greatest contribu- tion to drama was Oedipus the King, which, it has been argued, is the most infl uential drama ever written.

THEATRICAL CONVENTIONS OF GREEK DR AMA More than twenty-four hundred years have passed since 430 b.c., when Sophocles’ Oedipus the King was probably fi rst produced on a Greek stage. We inhabit a vastly different planet than Sophocles’ audience did, yet concerns about what it means to be human in a world that frequently runs counter to our desires and aspirations have remained relatively con- stant. The ancient Greeks continue to speak to us. But inexperienced readers or viewers may have some initial diffi culty understanding the theatrical conventions used in classical Greek tragedies such as Oedipus the King and Antigone. If Sophocles were alive today, he would very likely need some sort of assistance with the conventions of an Arthur Miller play or a television production of Seinfeld.

Classical Greek drama developed from religious festivals that paid homage to Dionysus, the god of wine and fertility. Most of the details of these festivals have been lost, but we do know that they included dancing and singing that celebrated legends about Dionysus. From these choral songs developed stories of both Dionysus and mortal culture-heroes. These heroes became the subject of playwrights whose works were produced in contests at the festivals. The Dionysian festivals lasted more than fi ve hundred years, but relatively few of their plays have survived. Among the works of the three great writers of tragedy, only seven plays each by Sophocles and Aeschylus (525?–456 b.c.) and nineteen plays by Euripides (480?–406 b.c.) survive.

Plays were such important events in Greek society that they were partially funded by the state. The Greeks associated drama with religious and community values as well as entertainment. In a sense, their plays

634 sophocles and greek drama

celebrate their civilization; in approving the plays, audiences applauded their own culture. The enormous popularity of the plays is indicated by the size of surviving amphitheaters. Although information about these theaters is sketchy, we do know that most of them had a common form. They were built into hillsides with rising rows of seats accommodating more than fourteen thousand people. These seats partially encircled an orchestra or “dancing place,” where the chorus of a dozen or so men chanted lines and danced.

Tradition credits the Greek poet Thespis with adding an actor who was separate from the choral singing and dancing of early performances. A second actor was subsequently included by Aeschylus and a third, as noted earlier, by Sophocles. These additions made possible the con- fl icts and complicated relationships that evolved into the dramatic art we know today. The two or three male actors who played all the roles appeared behind the orchestra in front of the skene, a stage building that served as dressing rooms. As Greek theater evolved, a wall of the skene came to be painted to suggest a palace or some other setting, and the roof was employed to indicate, for instance, a mountain location. Sometimes gods were lowered from the roof by mechanical devices to set matters right among the mortals below. This method of rescuing char- acters from complications beyond their abilities to resolve was known in Latin as deus ex machina (“god from the machine”), a term now used to describe any improbable means by which an author provides a too-easy resolution for a story.

Inevitably, the conventions of the Greek theaters affected how plays were presented. Few if any scene changes occurred because the amphi- theater stage was set primarily for one location. If an important event happened somewhere else, it was reported by a minor character, such as a messenger. The chorus also provided necessary background infor- mation. In Oedipus the King and Antigone, the choruses, acting as towns- people, also assess the characters’ strengths and weaknesses, praising them for their virtues, chiding them for their rashness, and giving them advice. The reactions of the chorus provide a connection between actors and audience because the chorus is at once a participant in and an observer of the action. In addition, the chorus helps structure the action by indicating changes in scene or mood. Thus the chorus could be used in a variety of ways to shape the audience’s response to the play’s action and characters.

Actors in classical Greek amphitheaters faced considerable chal- lenges. An intimate relationship with the audience was impossible because many spectators would have been too far away to see a facial expression or subtle gesture. Indeed, some in the audience would have had diffi culty even hearing the voices of individual actors. To com- pensate for these disadvantages, actors wore large masks that extrava- gantly expressed the major characters’ emotions or identifi ed the roles of minor characters. The masks also allowed the two or three actors

theatrical conventions of greek drama 635

in a performance to play all the characters without confusing the audience. Each mask was fi tted so that the mouthpiece amplifi ed the actor’s voice. The actors were further equipped with padded costumes and elevated shoes (cothurni or buskins) that made them appear larger than life.

As a result of these adaptive conventions, Greek plays tend to empha- size words — formal, impassioned speeches — more than physical action. We are invited to ponder actions and events rather than to see all of them enacted. Although the stark simplicity of Greek theater does not offer an audience realistic detail, the classical tragedies that have survived present characters in dramatic situations that transcend theatrical conventions. Tragedy, it seems, has always been compelling for human beings, regard- less of the theatrical forms it has taken.

A Greek tragedy is typically divided into fi ve parts: prologue, parodos, episodia, stasimon, and exodus. In some translations these terms appear as headings, but in more recent translations, as the one by Robert Fagles included here, the headings do not appear. Still, understanding these terms provides a sense of the overall rhythm of a Greek play. The opening speech or dialogue is known as the prologue and usually gives the exposi- tion necessary to follow the subsequent action. In the parodos the chorus makes its fi rst entrance and gives its perspective on what the audience

Classical Greek Theater. Based on scholarly sources, this drawing represents the features typical of a classical theater. (Drawing by Gerda Becker. From Kenneth Macgowan and William Melnitz, The Living Stage, © 1990 by Prentice Hall/A Division of Simon & Schuster.)

636 sophocles and greek drama

has learned in the prologue. Several episodia, or episodes, follow, in which characters engage in dialogue that frequently consists of heated debates dramatizing the play’s confl icts. Following each episode is a choral ode, or stasimon, in which the chorus responds to and interprets the preced- ing dialogue. The exodus, or last scene, follows the fi nal episode and sta- simon; in it the resolution occurs and the characters leave the stage.

The effect of alternating dialogues and choral odes has sometimes been likened to that of opera. Greek tragedies were written in verse, and the stasima were chanted or sung as the chorus moved rhythmically, so the plays have a strong musical element that is not always apparent on the printed page. If we remember their musical qualities, we are less likely to forget that no matter how terrifying or horrifi c the confl icts they describe, these plays are stately, measured, and dignifi ed works that refl ect a classical Greek sense of order and proportion.

TR AGEDY Newspapers are fi lled with daily reports of tragedies: A child is struck and crippled by a car; an airplane plunges into a suburban neighbor- hood; a volcano erupts and kills thousands. These unexpected instances of suffering are commonly and accurately described as tragic, but they are not tragedies in the literary sense of the term. A literary tragedy pre- sents courageous individuals who confront powerful forces within or outside themselves with a dignity that reveals the breadth and depth of the human spirit in the face of failure, defeat, and even death.

Aristotle (384–322 b.c.), in his Poetics, defi ned tragedy on the basis of the plays contemporary to him. His defi nition has generated countless variations, qualifi cations, and interpretations, but we still derive our lit- erary understanding of this term from Aristotle.

The protagonist of a Greek tragedy is someone regarded as extraor- dinary rather than typical: a great man or woman brought from happi- ness to agony. The character’s stature is important because it makes his or her fall all the more terrifying. The protagonist also carries mythic sig- nifi cance for the audience. Oedipus and Antigone, for example, are not only human beings but legendary fi gures from a distant, revered past. Although the gods do not appear onstage in either Oedipus the King or Antigone, their power is ever present as the characters invoke their help or attempt to defy them. In addition, Greek tragedy tends to be pub- lic rather than private. The fate of the community — the state — is often linked with that of the protagonist, as when Thebes suffers a plague as a result of Oedipus’s mistaken actions.

The protagonists of classical Greek tragedies (and of those of Shakespeare) are often rulers of noble birth who represent the monar- chical values of their periods, but in modern tragedies the protagonists

tragedy 637

are more likely to refl ect democratic values that make it possible for any- one to be a suitable subject. What is fi nally important is not so much the protagonist’s social stature as a greatness of character that stead- fastly confronts suffering, whether it comes from supernatural, social, or psychological forces. Although Greek tragic heroes were aristocrats, the nobility of their characters was more signifi cant than their inherited titles and privileges.

The protagonist’s eminence and determination to complete some task or goal make him or her admirable in Greek tragedy, but that does not free the protagonist from what Aristotle described as “some error or frailty” that brings about his or her misfortune. The term Aristotle used for this weakness is hamartia. This word has frequently been interpreted to mean that the protagonist’s fall is the result of an internal tragic fl aw, such as an excess of pride, ambition, passion, or some other character trait that leads directly to disaster.

Sometimes, however, misfortunes are not the result of a character fl aw but of misunderstood events that overtake and thwart the protago- nist’s best intentions. Thus, virtue can lead to tragedy too. Hamartia has also been interpreted to mean “wrong act” — a mistake based not on a personal failure but on circumstances outside the protagonist’s person- ality and control. Many readers fi nd that a combination of these two interpretations sheds the most light on the causes of the tragic protago- nist’s fall. Both internal and external forces can lead to downfall because the protagonist’s personality may determine crucial judgments that result in mistaken actions.

However the idea of tragic fl aw is understood, it is best not to use it as a means of reducing the qualities of a complex character to an adjec- tive or two that labels Oedipus as guilty of “overweening pride” (the Greek term for which is hubris or hybris) or Antigone as “fated.” The protagonists of tragedies require more careful characterization than a simplistic label can provide.

Whatever the causes of the tragic protagonist’s downfall, he or she accepts responsibility for it. Hence even in his or her encounter with failure (and possibly death) the tragic protagonist displays great- ness of character. Perhaps it is the witnessing of this greatness, which seems both to accept and to transcend human limitations, that makes audiences feel relief rather than hopelessness at the end of a tragedy. Aristotle described this response as a catharsis, or purgation of the emotions of “pity and fear.” We are faced with the protagonist’s mis- fortune, which often seems out of proportion to his or her actions, and so we are likely to feel compassionate pity. Simultaneously, we may experience fear because the failure of the protagonist, who is so great in stature and power, is a frightening reminder of our own vulnera- bilities. Ultimately, however, both these negative emotions are purged because the tragic protagonist’s suffering is an affi rmation of human

638 sophocles and greek drama

values — even if they are not always triumphant — rather than a despair- ing denial of them.

Nevertheless, tragedies are disturbing. Instead of coming away with the reassurance of a happy ending, we must take solace in the insight produced by the hero’s suffering. And just as our expectations are changed, so are the protagonist’s. Aristotle described the moment in the plot when this change occurs as a reversal (peripeteia), the point when the hero’s fortunes turn in an unexpected direction. He more specifi cally defi ned this term as meaning an action performed by a character that has the opposite of its intended effect. An example cited by Aristotle is the messenger’s attempts to relieve Oedipus’s anxieties about his rela- tionship to his father and mother. Instead, the messenger reveals pre- viously unknown information that eventually results in a recognition (anagnorisis); Oedipus discovers the terrible truth that he has killed his father and married his mother.

Tragedy is typically fi lled with ironies because there are so many moments in the plot when what seems to be turns out to be radically different from what actually is. Because of this, a particular form of irony called dramatic irony is also known as tragic irony. In dramatic irony, the meaning of a character’s words or actions is understood by the audience but not by the character. Audiences of Greek tragedy shared with the playwrights a knowledge of the stories on which many tragic plots were based. Consequently, they frequently were aware of what was going to happen before the characters were. When Oedipus declares that he will seek out the person responsible for the plague that ravishes his city, the audience already knows that the person Oedipus pursues is himself.

Oedipus the King

A familiarity with the Oedipus legend allows modern readers to appreci- ate the series of ironies that unfolds in Sophocles’ Oedipus the King. In the opening scene, Oedipus appears with a “telltale limp.” As an infant, he had been abandoned by his parents, Laius and Jocasta, the king and queen of Thebes, because a prophecy warned that their son would kill his father and marry his mother. They instructed a servant to leave him on a mountain to die. The infant’s feet were pierced and pinned together, but he was not left on the mountain; instead the servant, out of pity, gave him to a shepherd, who in turn presented him to the king and queen of Corinth. They named him Oedipus (for “swollen foot”) and raised him as their own son.

On reaching manhood, Oedipus learned from an oracle that he would kill his father and marry his mother; to avoid this horrendous fate, he left Corinth forever. In his travels, Oedipus found his way blocked by a chariot at a crossroads; in a fi t of anger, he killed the ser- vants and their passenger. That passenger, unknown to Oedipus, was

sophocles / oedipus the king 639

his real father. In Thebes, Oedipus successfully answered the riddle of the Sphinx, a winged lion with a woman’s head. The reward for defeat- ing this dreaded monster was both the crown and the dead king’s wife. Oedipus and Jocasta had four children and prospered. But when the play begins, Oedipus’s rule is troubled by a plague that threatens to destroy Thebes, and he is determined to fi nd the cause of the plague in order to save the city again.

Oedipus the King is widely recognized as the greatest of the surviving Greek tragedies. Numerous translations are available; Robert Fagles’s recent highly regarded translations of Antigone and Oedipus the King , the choice here, are especially accessible to modern readers. The play has absorbed readers for centuries because Oedipus’s character — his intelli- gence, confi dence, rashness, and suffering — represents powers and limi- tations that are both exhilarating and chastening. Although no reader or viewer is likely to identify with Oedipus’s extreme circumstances, anyone can appreciate his heroic efforts to fi nd the truth about himself. In that sense, he is one of us — at our best.

Sophocles (496?–406 b.c.)

Oedipus the King c. 430 B.C. TRANSLATED BY ROBERT FAGLES

characters

Oedipus, king of Thebes A Priest of Zeus Creon, brother of Jocasta A Chorus of Theban citizens and their Leader Tiresias, a blind prophet Jocasta, the queen, wife of Oedipus A Messenger from Corinth A Shepherd A Messenger from inside the palace Antigone, Ismene, daughters of Oedipus and Jocasta Guards and attendants Priests of Thebes

time and scene: The royal house of Thebes. Double doors dominate the facade; a stone altar stands at the center of the stage.

Many years have passed since Oedipus solved the riddle of the Sphinx and ascended the throne of Thebes, and now a plague has struck the city. A procession of priests enters; suppliants, broken and despondent, they carry branches wound in wool and lay them on the altar.

640 sophocles and greek drama

The doors open. Guards assemble. Oedipus comes forward, majes- tic but for a telltale limp, and slowly views the condition of his people.

Oedipus: Oh my children, the new blood of ancient Thebes, why are you here? Huddling at my altar, praying before me, your branches wound in wool.° Our city reeks with the smoke of burning incense, rings with cries for the Healer and wailing for the dead. 5 I thought it wrong, my children, to hear the truth from others, messengers. Here I am myself — you all know me, the world knows my fame: I am Oedipus.

Helping a Priest to his feet.

Speak up, old man. Your years, your dignity — you should speak for the others. 10 Why here and kneeling, what preys upon you so? Some sudden fear? some strong desire? You can trust me; I am ready to help, I’ll do anything. I would be blind to misery not to pity my people kneeling at my feet. 15

Priest: Oh Oedipus, king of the land, our greatest power! You see us before you, men of all ages clinging to your altars. Here are boys, still too weak to fl y from the nest, and here the old, bowed down with the years, 20 the holy ones — a priest of Zeus° myself — and here the picked, unmarried men, the young hope of Thebes. And all the rest, your great family gathers now, branches wreathed, massing in the squares, kneeling before the two temples of queen Athena° 25 or the river-shrine where the embers glow and die and Apollo sees the future in the ashes. Our city — look around you, see with your own eyes — our ship pitches wildly, cannot lift her head from the depths, the red waves of death . . . 30 Thebes is dying. A blight on the fresh crops and the rich pastures, cattle sicken and die, and the women die in labor, children stillborn, and the plague, the fi ery god of fever hurls down

3 wool: Wool was used in offerings to Apollo, god of poetry, the sun, prophecy, and healing. 21 Zeus: The highest Olympian deity and father of Apollo. 25 Athena: Goddess of wisdom and protector of Greek cities.

sophocles / oedipus the king 641

on the city, his lightning slashing through us — 35 raging plague in all its vengeance, devastating the house of Cadmus!° And Black Death luxuriates in the raw, wailing miseries of Thebes.

Now we pray to you. You cannot equal the gods, your children know that, bending at your altar. 40 But we do rate you fi rst of men, both in the common crises of our lives and face-to-face encounters with the gods. You freed us from the Sphinx; you came to Thebes and cut us loose from the bloody tribute we had paid 45 that harsh, brutal singer. We taught you nothing, no skill, no extra knowledge, still you triumphed. A god was with you, so they say, and we believe it — you lifted up our lives. So now again, Oedipus, king, we bend to you, your power — 50 we implore you, all of us on our knees: fi nd us strength, rescue! Perhaps you’ve heard the voice of a god or something from other men, Oedipus . . . what do you know? The man of experience — you see it every day — 55 his plans will work in a crisis, his fi rst of all. Act now — we beg you, best of men, raise up our city! Act, defend yourself, your former glory! Your country calls you savior now for your zeal, your action years ago. 60 Never let us remember of your reign: you helped us stand, only to fall once more. Oh raise up our city, set us on our feet. The omens were good that day you brought us joy — be the same man today! 65 Rule our land, you know you have the power, but rule a land of the living, not a wasteland. Ship and towered city are nothing, stripped of men alive within it, living all as one.

Oedipus: My children, I pity you. I see — how could I fail to see 70 what longings bring you here? Well I know you are sick to death, all of you, but sick as you are, not one is sick as I. Your pain strikes each of you alone, each

37 Cadmus: The legendary founder of Thebes.

642 sophocles and greek drama

in the confi nes of himself, no other. But my spirit 75 grieves for the city, for myself and all of you. I wasn’t asleep, dreaming. You haven’t wakened me — I’ve wept through the nights, you must know that, groping, laboring over many paths of thought. After a painful search I found one cure: 80 I acted at once. I sent Creon, my wife’s own brother, to Delphi° — Apollo the Prophet’s oracle — to learn what I might do or say to save our city.

Oedipus the King: At center stage is Jocasta (Ching Valdes/Aran) in a scene from the 1993 production of Oedipus the King at Philadelphia’s Wilma Theater, directed by Blanka Zizka and Jiri Zizka. © T. Charles Erikson.

82 Delphi: The shrine where the oracle of Apollo held forth.

sophocles / oedipus the king 643

Today’s the day. When I count the days gone by 85 it torments me . . . what is he doing? Strange, he’s late, he’s gone too long. But once he returns, then, then I’ll be a traitor if I do not do all the god makes clear.

Priest: Timely words. The men over there 90 are signaling — Creon’s just arriving.

Oedipus:

Sighting Creon, then turning to the altar.

Lord Apollo, let him come with a lucky word of rescue, shining like his eyes!

Priest: Welcome news, I think — he’s crowned, look, and the laurel wreath is bright with berries. 95

Oedipus: We’ll soon see. He’s close enough to hear —

Enter Creon from the side; his face is shaded with a wreath.

Creon, prince, my kinsman, what do you bring us? What message from the god?

Creon: Good news. I tell you even the hardest things to bear, if they should turn out well, all would be well. 100

Oedipus: Of course, but what were the god’s words? There’s no hope and nothing to fear in what you’ve said so far.

Creon: If you want my report in the presence of these . . .

Pointing to the priests while drawing Oedipus toward the palace.

I’m ready now, or we might go inside. Oedipus: Speak out,

speak to us all. I grieve for these, my people, 105 far more than I fear for my own life.

Creon: Very well, I will tell you what I heard from the god. Apollo commands us — he was quite clear — “Drive the corruption from the land, don’t harbor it any longer, past all cure, 110 don’t nurse it in your soil — root it out!”

Oedipus: How can we cleanse ourselves — what rites? What’s the source of the trouble?

Creon: Banish the man, or pay back blood with blood. Murder sets the plague-storm on the city.

Oedipus: Whose murder? 115 Whose fate does Apollo bring to light?

Creon: Our leader, my lord, was once a man named Laius, before you came and put us straight on course.

644 sophocles and greek drama

Oedipus: I know — or so I’ve heard. I never saw the man myself.

Creon: Well, he was killed, and Apollo commands us now — 120 he could not be more clear, “Pay the killers back — whoever is responsible.”

Oedipus: Where on earth are they? Where to fi nd it now, the trail of the ancient guilt so hard to trace?

Creon: “Here in Thebes,” he said. 125 Whatever is sought for can be caught, you know, whatever is neglected slips away.

Oedipus: But where, in the palace, the fi elds or foreign soil, where did Laius meet his bloody death?

Creon: He went to consult an oracle, he said, 130 and he set out and never came home again.

Oedipus: No messenger, no fellow-traveler saw what happened? Someone to cross-examine?

Creon: No, they were all killed but one. He escaped, terrifi ed, he could tell us nothing clearly, 135 nothing of what he saw — just one thing.

Oedipus: What’s that? One thing could hold the key to it all, a small beginning gives us grounds for hope.

Creon: He said thieves attacked them — a whole band, not single-handed, cut King Laius down.

Oedipus: A thief, 140 so daring, wild, he’d kill a king? Impossible, unless conspirators paid him off in Thebes.

Creon: We suspected as much. But with Laius dead no leader appeared to help us in our troubles.

Oedipus: Trouble? Your king was murdered — royal blood! 145 What stopped you from tracking down the killer then and there?

Creon: The singing, riddling Sphinx. She . . . persuaded us to let the mystery go and concentrate on what lay at our feet.

Oedipus: No, I’ll start again — I’ll bring it all to light myself! 150 Apollo is right, and so are you, Creon, to turn our attention back to the murdered man. Now you have me to fi ght for you, you’ll see: I am the land’s avenger by all rights and Apollo’s champion too. 155 But not to assist some distant kinsman, no, for my own sake I’ll rid us of this corruption. Whoever killed the king may decide to kill me too,

sophocles / oedipus the king 645

with the same violent hand — by avenging Laius I defend myself.

To the priests.

Quickly, my children. 160 Up from the steps, take up your branches now.

To the guards.

One of you summon the city here before us, tell them I’ll do everything. God help us, we will see our triumph — or our fall.

Oedipus and Creon enter the palace, followed by the guards.

Priest: Rise, my sons. The kindness we came for 165 Oedipus volunteers himself. Apollo has sent his word, his oracle — Come down, Apollo, save us, stop the plague.

The priests rise, remove their branches, and exit to the side. Enter a Chorus, the citizens of Thebes, who have not heard the news that Creon brings. They march around the altar, chanting.

Chorus: Zeus! Great welcome voice of Zeus, what do you bring? What word from the gold vaults of Delphi 170 comes to brilliant Thebes? I’m racked with terror — terror shakes my heart and I cry your wild cries, Apollo, Healer of Delos° I worship you in dread . . . what now, what is your price? some new sacrifi ce? some ancient rite from the past 175 come round again each spring? — what will you bring to birth? Tell me, child of golden Hope warm voice that never dies!

You are the fi rst I call, daughter of Zeus 180 deathless Athena — I call your sister Artemis,° heart of the market place enthroned in glory, guardian of our earth — I call Apollo astride the thunderheads of heaven — O triple shield against death, shine before me now! 185 If ever, once in the past, you stopped some ruin launched against our walls you hurled the fl ame of pain far, far from Thebes — you gods come now, come down once more!

173 Delos: Apollo was born on this sacred island. 181 Artemis: Apollo’s sister, god- dess of hunting, the moon, and chastity.

646 sophocles and greek drama

No, no 190 the miseries numberless, grief on grief, no end — too much to bear, we are all dying O my people . . . Thebes like a great army dying and there is no sword of thought to save us, no 195 and the fruits of our famous earth, they will not ripen no and the women cannot scream their pangs to birth — screams for the Healer, children dead in the womb and life on life goes down you can watch them go 200 like seabirds winging west, outracing the day’s fi re down the horizon, irresistibly streaking on to the shores of Evening Death so many deaths, numberless deaths on deaths, no end — Thebes is dying, look, her children 205 stripped of pity . . . generations strewn on the ground unburied, unwept, the dead spreading death and the young wives and gray-haired mothers with them cling to the altars, trailing in from all over the city — 210 Thebes, city of death, one long cortege and the suffering rises wails for mercy rise and the wild hymn for the Healer blazes out clashing with our sobs our cries of mourning — 215 O golden daughter of god, send rescue radiant as the kindness in your eyes! Drive him back! — the fever, the god of death that raging god of war not armored in bronze, not shielded now, he burns me, 220 battle cries in the onslaught burning on — O rout him from our borders! Sail him, blast him out to the Sea-queen’s chamber the black Atlantic gulfs or the northern harbor, death to all 225 where the Thracian surf comes crashing. Now what the night spares he comes by day and kills — the god of death.

O lord of the stormcloud, you who twirl the lightning, Zeus, Father, thunder Death to nothing! 230

Apollo, lord of the light, I beg you — whip your longbow’s golden cord

sophocles / oedipus the king 647

showering arrows on our enemies — shafts of power champions strong before us rushing on!

Artemis, Huntress, 235 torches fl aring over the eastern ridges — ride Death down in pain!

God of the headdress gleaming gold, I cry to you — your name and ours are one, Dionysus° — come with your face afl ame with wine 240 your raving women’s cries° your army on the march! Come with the lightning come with torches blazing, eyes ablaze with glory! Burn that god of death that all gods hate!

Oedipus enters from the palace to address the Chorus, as if addressing the entire city of Thebes.

Oedipus: You pray to the gods? Let me grant your prayers. 245 Come, listen to me — do what the plague demands: you’ll fi nd relief and lift your head from the depths.

I will speak out now as a stranger to the story, a stranger to the crime. If I’d been present then, there would have been no mystery, no long hunt 250 without a clue in hand. So now, counted a native Theban years after the murder, to all of Thebes I make this proclamation: if any one of you knows who murdered Laius, the son of Labdacus, I order him to reveal 255 the whole truth to me. Nothing to fear, even if he must denounce himself, let him speak up and so escape the brunt of the charge — he will suffer no unbearable punishment, 260 nothing worse than exile, totally unharmed.

Oedipus pauses, waiting for a reply.

Next, if anyone knows the murderer is a stranger, a man from alien soil, come, speak up. I will give him a handsome reward, and lay up gratitude in my heart for him besides. 265

Silence again, no reply.

239 Dionysus: God of fertility and wine. 241 your . . . cries: Dionysus was attended by female celebrants.

648 sophocles and greek drama

But if you keep silent, if anyone panicking, trying to shield himself or friend or kin, rejects my offer, then hear what I will do. I order you, every citizen of the state where I hold throne and power: banish this man — 270 whoever he may be — never shelter him, never speak a word to him, never make him partner to your prayers, your victims burned to the gods. Never let the holy water touch his hands. Drive him out, each of you, from every home. 275 He is the plague, the heart of our corruption, as Apollo’s oracle has revealed to me just now. So I honor my obligations: I fi ght for the god and for the murdered man.

Now my curse on the murderer. Whoever he is, 280 a lone man unknown in his crime or one among many, let that man drag out his life in agony, step by painful step — I curse myself as well . . . if by any chance he proves to be an intimate of our house, 285 here at my hearth, with my full knowledge, may the curse I just called down on him strike me!

These are your orders: perform them to the last. I command you, for my sake, for Apollo’s, for this country blasted root and branch by the angry heavens. 290 Even if god had never urged you on to act, how could you leave the crime uncleansed so long? A man so noble — your king, brought down in blood — you should have searched. But I am the king now, I hold the throne that he held then, possess his bed 295 and a wife who shares our seed . . . why, our seed might be the same, children born of the same mother might have created blood-bonds between us if his hope of offspring hadn’t met disaster — but fate swooped at his head and cut him short. 300 So I will fi ght for him as if he were my father, stop at nothing, search the world to lay my hands on the man who shed his blood, the son of Labdacus descended of Polydorus, Cadmus of old and Agenor, founder of the line: 305 their power and mine are one. Oh dear gods, my curse on those who disobey these orders!

sophocles / oedipus the king 649

Let no crops grow out of the earth for them — shrivel their women, kill their sons, burn them to nothing in this plague 310 that hits us now, or something even worse. But you, loyal men of Thebes who approve my actions, may our champion, Justice, may all the gods be with us, fi ght beside us to the end!

Leader: In the grip of your curse, my king, I swear 315 I’m not the murderer, cannot point him out. As for the search, Apollo pressed it on us — he should name the killer.

Oedipus: Quite right, but to force the gods to act against their will — no man has the power.

Leader: Then if I might mention 320 the next best thing . . .

Oedipus: The third best too — don’t hold back, say it.

Leader: I still believe . . . Lord Tiresias sees with the eyes of Lord Apollo. Anyone searching for the truth, my king, might learn it from the prophet, clear as day. 325

Oedipus: I’ve not been slow with that. On Creon’s cue I sent the escorts, twice, within the hour. I’m surprised he isn’t here.

Leader: We need him — without him we have nothing but old, useless rumors.

Oedipus: Which rumors? I’ll search out every word. 330 Leader: Laius was killed, they say, by certain travelers. Oedipus: I know — but no one can fi nd the murderer. Leader: If the man has a trace of fear in him

he won’t stay silent long, not with your curses ringing in his ears. 335

Oedipus: He didn’t fl inch at murder, he’ll never fl inch at words.

Enter Tiresias, the blind prophet, led by a boy with escorts in attendance. He remains at a distance.

Leader: Here is the one who will convict him, look, they bring him on at last, the seer, the man of god. The truth lives inside him, him alone.

Oedipus: O Tiresias, 340 master of all the mysteries of our life, all you teach and all you dare not tell, signs in the heavens, signs that walk the earth!

650 sophocles and greek drama

Blind as you are, you can feel all the more what sickness haunts our city. You, my lord, 345 are the one shield, the one savior we can fi nd.

We asked Apollo — perhaps the messengers haven’t told you — he sent his answer back: “Relief from the plague can only come one way. Uncover the murderers of Laius, 350 put them to death or drive them into exile.” So I beg you, grudge us nothing now, no voice, no message plucked from the birds, the embers or the other mantic ways within your grasp. Rescue yourself, your city, rescue me — 355 rescue everything infected by the dead. We are in your hands. For a man to help others with all his gifts and native strength: that is the noblest work.

Tiresias: How terrible — to see the truth when the truth is only pain to him who sees! 360 I knew it well, but I put it from my mind, else I never would have come.

Oedipus: What’s this? Why so grim, so dire? Tiresias: Just send me home. You bear your burdens,

I’ll bear mine. It’s better that way, 365 please believe me.

Oedipus: Strange response — unlawful, unfriendly too to the state that bred and raised you; you’re withholding the word of god.

Tiresias: I fail to see that your own words are so well-timed. I’d rather not have the same thing said of me . . . 370

Oedipus: For the love of god, don’t turn away, not if you know something. We beg you, all of us on our knees.

Tiresias: None of you knows — and I will never reveal my dreadful secrets, not to say your own. 375

Oedipus: What? You know and you won’t tell? You’re bent on betraying us, destroying Thebes?

Tiresias: I’d rather not cause pain for you or me. So why this . . . useless interrogation? You’ll get nothing from me.

Oedipus: Nothing! You, 380 you scum of the earth, you’d enrage a heart of stone! You won’t talk? Nothing moves you? Out with it, once and for all!

sophocles / oedipus the king 651

Tiresias: You criticize my temper . . . unaware of the one you live with, you revile me. 385

Oedipus: Who could restrain his anger hearing you? What outrage — you spurn the city!

Tiresias: What will come will come. Even if I shroud it all in silence.

Oedipus: What will come? You’re bound to tell me that. 390 Tiresias: I’ll say no more. Do as you like, build your anger

to whatever pitch you please, rage your worst — Oedipus: Oh I’ll let loose, I have such fury in me —

now I see it all. You helped hatch the plot, you did the work, yes, short of killing him 395 with your own hands — and given eyes I’d say you did the killing single-handed!

Tiresias: Is that so! I charge you, then, submit to that decree you just laid down: from this day onward speak to no one, not these citizens, not myself. 400 You are the curse, the corruption of the land!

Oedipus: You, shameless — aren’t you appalled to start up such a story? You think you can get away with this?

Tiresias: I have already. The truth with all its power lives inside me. 405

Oedipus: Who primed you for this? Not your prophet’s trade. Tiresias: You did, you forced me, twisted it out of me. Oedipus: What? Say it again — I’ll understand it better. Tiresias: Didn’t you understand, just now?

Or are you tempting me to talk? 410 Oedipus: No, I can’t say I grasped your meaning.

Out with it, again! Tiresias: I say you are the murderer you hunt. Oedipus: That obscenity, twice — by god, you’ll pay. Tiresias: Shall I say more, so you can really rage? 415 Oedipus: Much as you want. Your words are nothing — futile. Tiresias: You cannot imagine . . . I tell you,

you and your loved ones live together in infamy, you cannot see how far you’ve gone in guilt.

Oedipus: You think you can keep this up and never suffer? 420 Tiresias: Indeed, if the truth has any power. Oedipus: It does

but not for you, old man. You’ve lost your power, stone-blind, stone-deaf — senses, eyes blind as stone!

Tiresias: I pity you, fl inging at me the very insults each man here will fl ing at you so soon.

Oedipus: Blind, 425

652 sophocles and greek drama

lost in the night, endless night that nursed you! You can’t hurt me or anyone else who sees the light — you can never touch me.

Tiresias: True, it is not your fate to fall at my hands. Apollo is quite enough, and he will take some pains to work this out. 430

Oedipus: Creon! Is this conspiracy his or yours? Tiresias: Creon is not your downfall, no, you are your own. Oedipus: O power —

wealth and empire, skill outstripping skill in the heady rivalries of life, what envy lurks inside you! Just for this, 435 the crown the city gave me — I never sought it, they laid it in my hands — for this alone, Creon, the soul of trust, my loyal friend from the start steals against me . . . so hungry to overthrow me he sets this wizard on me, this scheming quack, 440 this fortune-teller peddling lies, eyes peeled for his own profi t — seer blind in his craft!

Come here, you pious fraud. Tell me, when did you ever prove yourself a prophet? When the Sphinx, that chanting Fury kept her deathwatch here, 445 why silent then, not a word to set our people free? There was a riddle, not for some passer-by to solve — it cried out for a prophet. Where were you? Did you rise to the crisis? Not a word, you and your birds, your gods — nothing. 450 No, but I came by, Oedipus the ignorant, I stopped the Sphinx! With no help from the birds, the fl ight of my own intelligence hit the mark.

And this is the man you’d try to overthrow? You think you’ll stand by Creon when he’s king? 455 You and the great mastermind — you’ll pay in tears, I promise you, for this, this witch-hunt. If you didn’t look so senile the lash would teach you what your scheming means!

Leader: I’d suggest his words were spoken in anger, 460 Oedipus . . . yours too, and it isn’t what we need. The best solution to the oracle, the riddle posed by god — we should look for that.

Tiresias: You are the king no doubt, but in one respect, at least, I am your equal: the right to reply. 465 I claim that privilege too. I am not your slave. I serve Apollo. I don’t need Creon to speak for me in public.

sophocles / oedipus the king 653

So, you mock my blindness? Let me tell you this. You with your precious eyes, 470 you’re blind to the corruption of your life, to the house you live in, those you live with — who are your parents? Do you know? All unknowing you are the scourge of your own fl esh and blood, the dead below the earth and the living here above, 475 and the double lash of your mother and your father’s curse will whip you from this land one day, their footfall treading you down in terror, darkness shrouding your eyes that now can see the light! Soon, soon you’ll scream aloud — what haven won’t reverberate? 480 What rock of Cithaeron° won’t scream back in echo? That day you learn the truth about your marriage, the wedding-march that sang you into your halls, the lusty voyage home to the fatal harbor! And a load of other horrors you’d never dream 485 will level you with yourself and all your children.

There. Now smear us with insults — Creon, myself and every word I’ve said. No man will ever be rooted from the earth as brutally as you.

Oedipus: Enough! Such fi lth from him? Insufferable — 490 what, still alive? Get out — faster, back where you came from — vanish!

Tiresias: I’d never have come if you hadn’t called me here. Oedipus: If I thought you’d blurt out such absurdities,

you’d have died waiting before I’d had you summoned. 495 Tiresias: Absurd, am I? To you, not to your parents:

the ones who bore you found me sane enough. Oedipus: Parents — who? Wait . . . who is my father? Tiresias: This day will bring your birth and your destruction. Oedipus: Riddles — all you can say are riddles, murk and darkness. 500 Tiresias: Ah, but aren’t you the best man alive at solving riddles? Oedipus: Mock me for that, go on, and you’ll reveal my greatness. Tiresias: Your great good fortune, true, it was your ruin. Oedipus: Not if I saved the city — what do I care? Tiresias: Well then, I’ll be going.

To his attendant.

Take me home, boy. 505 Oedipus: Yes, take him away. You’re a nuisance here.

Out of the way, the irritation’s gone.

481 Cithaeron: The mountains where Oedipus was abandoned as an infant.

654 sophocles and greek drama

Turning his back on Tiresias, moving toward the palace.

Tiresias: I will go, once I have said what I came here to say. I’ll never shrink from the anger in your eyes — you can’t destroy me. Listen to me closely: 510 the man you’ve sought so long, proclaiming, cursing up and down, the murderer of Laius — he is here. A stranger, you may think, who lives among you, he soon will be revealed a native Theban 515 but he will take no joy in the revelation. Blind who now has eyes, beggar who now is rich, he will grope his way toward a foreign soil, a stick tapping before him step by step.

Oedipus enters the palace.

Revealed at last, brother and father both 520 to the children he embraces, to his mother son and husband both — he sowed the loins his father sowed, he spilled his father’s blood!

Go in and refl ect on that, solve that. And if you fi nd I’ve lied 525 from this day onward call the prophet blind.

Tiresias and the boy exit to the side.

Chorus: Who — who is the man the voice of god denounces resounding out of the rocky gorge of Delphi? The horror too dark to tell, whose ruthless bloody hands have done the work? 530 His time has come to fl y to outrace the stallions of the storm his feet a streak of speed — Cased in armor, Apollo son of the Father lunges on him, lightning-bolts afi re! 535 And the grim unerring Furies° closing for the kill. Look, the word of god has just come blazing fl ashing off Parnassus’° snowy heights! That man who left no trace — 540 after him, hunt him down with all our strength!

536 Furies: Three spirits who avenged evildoers. 539 Parnassus: A mountain in Greece associated with Apollo.

sophocles / oedipus the king 655

Now under bristling timber up through rocks and caves he stalks like the wild mountain bull — cut off from men, each step an agony, frenzied, racing blind 545 but he cannot outrace the dread voices of Delphi ringing out of the heart of Earth, the dark wings beating around him shrieking doom the doom that never dies, the terror —

The skilled prophet scans the birds and shatters me with terror! 550 I can’t accept him, can’t deny him, don’t know what to say, I’m lost, and the wings of dark foreboding beating — I cannot see what’s come, what’s still to come . . . and what could breed a blood feud between Laius’ house and the son of Polybus?° 555 I know of nothing, not in the past and not now, no charge to bring against our king, no cause to attack his fame that rings throughout Thebes — not without proof — not for the ghost of Laius, not to avenge a murder gone without a trace. 560

Zeus and Apollo know, they know, the great masters of all the dark and depth of human life. But whether a mere man can know the truth, whether a seer can fathom more than I — there is no test, no certain proof 565 though matching skill for skill a man can outstrip a rival. No, not till I see these charges proved will I side with his accusers. We saw him then, when the she-hawk° swept against him, saw with our own eyes his skill, his brilliant triumph — 570 there was the test — he was the joy of Thebes! Never will I convict my king, never in my heart.

Enter Creon from the side.

Creon: My fellow-citizens, I hear King Oedipus levels terrible charges at me. I had to come. I resent it deeply. If, in the present crisis, 575 he thinks he suffers any abuse from me, anything I’ve done or said that offers him the slightest injury, why, I’ve no desire to linger out this life, my reputation a shambles. The damage I’d face from such an accusation 580

555 Polybus: The King of Corinth, who is thought to be Oedipus’s father. 569 she- hawk: The Sphinx.

656 sophocles and greek drama

is nothing simple. No, there’s nothing worse: branded a traitor in the city, a traitor to all of you and my good friends.

Leader: True, but a slur might have been forced out of him, by anger perhaps, not any fi rm conviction. 585

Creon: The charge was made in public, wasn’t it? I put the prophet up to spreading lies?

Leader: Such things were said . . . I don’t know with what intent, if any.

Creon: Was his glance steady, his mind right 590 when the charge was brought against me?

Leader: I really couldn’t say. I never look to judge the ones in power.

The doors open. Oedipus enters.

Wait, here’s Oedipus now.

Oedipus: You — here? You have the gall to show your face before the palace gates? 595 You, plotting to kill me, kill the king — I see it all, the marauding thief himself scheming to steal my crown and power! Tell me, in god’s name, what did you take me for, coward or fool, when you spun out your plot? 600 Your treachery — you think I’d never detect it creeping against me in the dark? Or sensing it, not defend myself? Aren’t you the fool, you and your high adventure. Lacking numbers, powerful friends, out for the big game of empire — 605 you need riches, armies to bring that quarry down!

Creon: Are you quite fi nished? It’s your turn to listen for just as long as you’ve . . . instructed me. Hear me out, then judge me on the facts.

Oedipus: You’ve a wicked way with words, Creon, 610 but I’ll be slow to learn — from you. I fi nd you a menace, a great burden to me.

Creon: Just one thing, hear me out in this. Oedipus: Just one thing,

don’t tell me you’re not the enemy, the traitor. Creon: Look, if you think crude, mindless stubbornness 615

such a gift, you’ve lost your sense of balance. Oedipus: If you think you can abuse a kinsman,

then escape the penalty, you’re insane. Creon: Fair enough, I grant you. But this injury

sophocles / oedipus the king 657

you say I’ve done you, what is it? 620 Oedipus: Did you induce me, yes or no,

to send for that sanctimonious prophet? Creon: I did. And I’d do the same again. Oedipus: All right then, tell me, how long is it now

since Laius . . . Creon: Laius — what did he do? Oedipus: Vanished, 625

swept from sight, murdered in his tracks. Creon: The count of the years would run you far back . . . Oedipus: And that far back, was the prophet at his trade? Creon: Skilled as he is today, and just as honored. Oedipus: Did he ever refer to me then, at that time? Creon: No, 630

never, at least, when I was in his presence. Oedipus: But you did investigate the murder, didn’t you? Creon: We did our best, of course, discovered nothing. Oedipus: But the great seer never accused me then — why not? Creon: I don’t know. And when I don’t, I keep quiet. 635 Oedipus: You do know this, you’d tell it too —

if you had a shred of decency. Creon: What?

If I know, I won’t hold back. Oedipus: Simply this:

if the two of you had never put heads together, we’d never have heard about my killing Laius. 640

Creon: If that’s what he says . . . well, you know best. But now I have a right to learn from you as you just learned from me.

Oedipus: Learn your fi ll, you never will convict me of the murder.

Creon: Tell me, you’re married to my sister, aren’t you? 645 Oedipus: A genuine discovery — there’s no denying that. Creon: And you rule the land with her, with equal power? Oedipus: She receives from me whatever she desires. Creon: And I am the third, all of us are equals? Oedipus: Yes, and it’s there you show your stripes — 650

you betray a kinsman. Creon: Not at all.

Not if you see things calmly, rationally, as I do. Look at it this way fi rst: who in his right mind would rather rule and live in anxiety than sleep in peace? 655 Particularly if he enjoys the same authority. Not I, I’m not the man to yearn for kingship, not with a king’s power in my hands. Who would?

658 sophocles and greek drama

No one with any sense of self-control. Now, as it is, you offer me all I need, 660 not a fear in the world. But if I wore the crown . . . there’d be many painful duties to perform, hardly to my taste. How could kingship please me more than infl uence, power without a qualm? I’m not that deluded yet, 665 to reach for anything but privilege outright, profi t free and clear. Now all men sing my praises, all salute me, now all who request your favors curry mine. I’m their best hope: success rests in me. 670 Why give up that, I ask you, and borrow trouble? A man of sense, someone who sees things clearly would never resort to treason. No, I’ve no lust for conspiracy in me, nor could I ever suffer one who does. 675

Do you want proof? Go to Delphi yourself, examine the oracle and see if I’ve reported the message word-for-word. This too: if you detect that I and the clairvoyant have plotted anything in common, arrest me, 680 execute me. Not on the strength of one vote, two in this case, mine as well as yours. But don’t convict me on sheer unverifi ed surmise.

How wrong it is to take the good for bad, purely at random, or take the bad for good. 685 But reject a friend, a kinsman? I would as soon tear out the life within us, priceless life itself. You’ll learn this well, without fail, in time. Time alone can bring the just man to light; the criminal you can spot in one short day.

Leader: Good advice, 690 my lord, for anyone who wants to avoid disaster. Those who jump to conclusions may be wrong.

Oedipus: When my enemy moves against me quickly, plots in secret, I move quickly too, I must, I plot and pay him back. Relax my guard a moment, 695 waiting his next move — he wins his objective, I lose mine.

Creon: What do you want? You want me banished?

Oedipus: No, I want you dead.

sophocles / oedipus the king 659

Creon: Just to show how ugly a grudge can . . . Oedipus: So,

still stubborn? you don’t think I’m serious? 700 Creon: I think you’re insane. Oedipus: Quite sane — in my behalf. Creon: Not just as much in mine? Oedipus: You — my mortal enemy? Creon: What if you’re wholly wrong? Oedipus: No matter — I must rule. Creon: Not if you rule unjustly. Oedipus: Hear him, Thebes, my city! Creon: My city too, not yours alone! 705 Leader: Please, my lords.

Enter Jocasta from the palace.

Look, Jocasta’s coming, and just in time too. With her help you must put this fi ghting of yours to rest.

Jocasta: Have you no sense? Poor misguided men, such shouting — why this public outburst? 710 Aren’t you ashamed, with the land so sick, to stir up private quarrels?

To Oedipus.

Into the palace now. And Creon, you go home. Why make such a furor over nothing?

Creon: My sister, it’s dreadful . . . Oedipus, your husband, 715 he’s bent on a choice of punishments for me, banishment from the fatherland or death.

Oedipus: Precisely. I caught him in the act, Jocasta, plotting, about to stab me in the back.

Creon: Never — curse me, let me die and be damned 720 if I’ve done you any wrong you charge me with.

Jocasta: Oh god, believe it, Oedipus, honor the solemn oath he swears to heaven. Do it for me, for the sake of all your people.

The Chorus begins to chant.

Chorus: Believe it, be sensible 725 give way, my king, I beg you!

Oedipus: What do you want from me, concessions? Chorus: Respect him — he’s been no fool in the past

and now he’s strong with the oath he swears to god. Oedipus: You know what you’re asking? Chorus: I do. Oedipus: Then out with it! 730

660 sophocles and greek drama

Chorus: The man’s your friend, your kin, he’s under oath — don’t cast him out, disgraced branded with guilt on the strength of hearsay only.

Oedipus: Know full well, if that’s what you want you want me dead or banished from the land.

Chorus: Never — 735 no, by the blazing Sun, fi rst god of the heavens! Stripped of the gods, stripped of loved ones, let me die by inches if that ever crossed my mind. But the heart inside me sickens, dies as the land dies and now on top of the old griefs you pile this, 740 your fury — both of you!

Oedipus: Then let him go, even if it does lead to my ruin, my death or my disgrace, driven from Thebes for life. It’s you, not him I pity — your words move me. He, wherever he goes, my hate goes with him. 745

Creon: Look at you, sullen in yielding, brutal in your rage — you’ll go too far. It’s perfect justice: natures like yours are hardest on themselves.

Oedipus: Then leave me alone — get out! Creon: I’m going.

You’re wrong, so wrong. These men know I’m right. 750

Exit to the side. The Chorus turns to Jocasta.

Chorus: Why do you hesitate, my lady why not help him in?

Jocasta: Tell me what’s happened fi rst. Chorus: Loose, ignorant talk started dark suspicions

and a sense of injustice cut deeply too. 755 Jocasta: On both sides? Chorus: Oh yes. Jocasta: What did they say? Chorus: Enough, please, enough! The land’s so racked already

or so it seems to me . . . End the trouble here, just where they left it.

Oedipus: You see what comes of your good intentions now? 760 And all because you tried to blunt my anger.

Chorus: My king, I’ve said it once, I’ll say it time and again — I’d be insane, you know it, senseless, ever to turn my back on you. You who set our beloved land — storm-tossed, shattered — 765 straight on course. Now again, good helmsman, steer us through the storm!

sophocles / oedipus the king 661

The Chorus draws away, leaving Oedipus and Jocasta side by side.

Jocasta: For the love of god, Oedipus, tell me too, what is it? Why this rage? You’re so unbending.

Oedipus: I will tell you. I respect you, Jocasta, 770 much more than these . . .

Glancing at the Chorus.

Creon’s to blame, Creon schemes against me. Jocasta: Tell me clearly, how did the quarrel start? Oedipus: He says I murdered Laius — I am guilty. Jocasta: How does he know? Some secret knowledge 775

or simple hearsay? Oedipus: Oh, he sent his prophet in

to do his dirty work. You know Creon, Creon keeps his own lips clean.

Jocasta: A prophet? Well then, free yourself of every charge! Listen to me and learn some peace of mind: 780 no skill in the world, nothing human can penetrate the future. Here is proof, quick and to the point. An oracle came to Laius one fi ne day (I won’t say from Apollo himself 785 but his underlings, his priests) and it said that doom would strike him down at the hands of a son, our son, to be born of our own fl esh and blood. But Laius, so the report goes at least, was killed by strangers, thieves, at a place where three roads meet . . . my son — 790 he wasn’t three days old and the boy’s father fastened his ankles, had a henchman fl ing him away on a barren, trackless mountain. There, you see? Apollo brought neither thing to pass. My baby no more murdered his father than Laius suffered — 795 his wildest fear — death at his own son’s hands. That’s how the seers and their revelations mapped out the future. Brush them from your mind. Whatever the god needs and seeks he’ll bring to light himself, with ease.

Oedipus: Strange, 800 hearing you just now . . . my mind wandered, my thoughts racing back and forth.

Jocasta: What do you mean? Why so anxious, startled? Oedipus: I thought I heard you say that Laius

662 sophocles and greek drama

was cut down at a place where three roads meet. 805 Jocasta: That was the story. It hasn’t died out yet. Oedipus: Where did this thing happen? Be precise. Jocasta: A place called Phocis, where two branching roads,

one from Daulia, one from Delphi, come together — a crossroads. 810

Oedipus: When? How long ago? Jocasta: The heralds no sooner reported Laius dead

than you appeared and they hailed you king of Thebes. Oedipus: My god, my god — what have you planned to do to me? Jocasta: What, Oedipus? What haunts you so? Oedipus: Not yet. 815

Laius — how did he look? Describe him. Had he reached his prime?

Jocasta: He was swarthy, and the gray had just begun to streak his temples, and his build . . . wasn’t far from yours.

Oedipus: Oh no no, I think I’ve just called down a dreadful curse 820 upon myself — I simply didn’t know!

Jocasta: What are you saying? I shudder to look at you. Oedipus: I have a terrible fear the blind seer can see.

I’ll know in a moment. One thing more — Jocasta: Anything,

afraid as I am — ask, I’ll answer, all I can. 825 Oedipus: Did he go with a light or heavy escort,

several men-at-arms, like a lord, a king? Jocasta: There were fi ve in the party, a herald among them,

and a single wagon carrying Laius. Oedipus: Ai —

now I can see it all, clear as day. 830 Who told you all this at the time, Jocasta?

Jocasta: A servant who reached home, the lone survivor. Oedipus: So, could he still be in the palace — even now? Jocasta: No indeed. Soon as he returned from the scene

and saw you on the throne with Laius dead and gone, 835 he knelt and clutched my hand, pleading with me to send him into the hinterlands, to pasture, far as possible, out of sight of Thebes. I sent him away. Slave though he was, he’d earned that favor — and much more. 840

Oedipus: Can we bring him back, quickly? Jocasta: Easily. Why do you want him so? Oedipus: I’m afraid,

Jocasta, I have said too much already. That man — I’ve got to see him.

sophocles / oedipus the king 663

Jocasta: Then he’ll come. But even I have a right, I’d like to think, 845 to know what’s torturing you, my lord.

Oedipus: And so you shall — I can hold nothing back from you, now I’ve reached this pitch of dark foreboding. Who means more to me than you? Tell me, whom would I turn toward but you 850 as I go through all this?

My father was Polybus, king of Corinth. My mother, a Dorian, Merope. And I was held the prince of the realm among the people there, till something struck me out of nowhere, 855 something strange . . . worth remarking perhaps, hardly worth the anxiety I gave it. Some man at a banquet who had drunk too much shouted out — he was far gone, mind you — that I am not my father’s son. Fighting words! 860 I barely restrained myself that day but early the next I went to mother and father, questioned them closely, and they were enraged at the accusation and the fool who let it fl y. So as for my parents I was satisfi ed, 865 but still this thing kept gnawing at me, the slander spread — I had to make my move. And so, unknown to mother and father I set out for Delphi, and the god Apollo spurned me, sent me away denied the facts I came for, 870 but fi rst he fl ashed before my eyes a future great with pain, terror, disaster — I can hear him cry, “You are fated to couple with your mother, you will bring a breed of children into the light no man can bear to see — you will kill your father, the one who gave you life!” 875 I heard all that and ran. I abandoned Corinth, from that day on I gauged its landfall only by the stars, running, always running toward some place where I would never see the shame of all those oracles come true. 880 And as I fl ed I reached that very spot where the great king, you say, met his death. Now, Jocasta, I will tell you all. Making my way toward this triple crossroad I began to see a herald, then a brace of colts 885 drawing a wagon, and mounted on the bench . . . a man, just as you’ve described him, coming face-to-face,

664 sophocles and greek drama

and the one in the lead and the old man himself were about to thrust me off the road — brute force — and the one shouldering me aside, the driver, 890 I strike him in anger! — and the old man, watching me coming up along his wheels — he brings down his prod, two prongs straight at my head! I paid him back with interest! Short work, by god — with one blow of the staff 895 in this right hand I knock him out of his high seat, roll him out of the wagon, sprawling headlong — I killed them all — every mother’s son!

Oh, but if there is any blood-tie between Laius and this stranger . . . 900 what man alive more miserable than I? More hated by the gods? I am the man no alien, no citizen welcomes to his house, law forbids it — not a word to me in public, driven out of every hearth and home. 905 And all these curses I — no one but I brought down these piling curses on myself! And you, his wife, I’ve touched your body with these, the hands that killed your husband cover you with blood. Wasn’t I born for torment? Look me in the eyes! 910 I am abomination — heart and soul! I must be exiled, and even in exile never see my parents, never set foot on native earth again. Else I’m doomed to couple with my mother and cut my father down . . . 915 Polybus who reared me, gave me life. But why, why? Wouldn’t a man of judgment say — and wouldn’t he be right — some savage power has brought this down upon my head?

Oh no, not that, you pure and awesome gods, never let me see that day! Let me slip 920 from the world of men, vanish without a trace before I see myself stained with such corruption, stained to the heart.

Leader: My lord, you fi ll our hearts with fear. But at least until you question the witness, 925 do take hope.

Oedipus: Exactly. He is my last hope — I’m waiting for the shepherd. He is crucial.

Jocasta: And once he appears, what then? Why so urgent?

sophocles / oedipus the king 665

Oedipus: I’ll tell you. If it turns out that his story matches yours, I’ve escaped the worst. 930

Jocasta: What did I say? What struck you so? Oedipus: You said thieves —

he told you a whole band of them murdered Laius. So, if he still holds to the same number, I cannot be the killer. One can’t equal many. But if he refers to one man, one alone, 935 clearly the scales come down on me: I am guilty.

Jocasta: Impossible. Trust me, I told you precisely what he said, and he can’t retract it now; the whole city heard it, not just I. 940 And even if he should vary his fi rst report by one man more or less, still, my lord, he could never make the murder of Laius truly fi t the prophecy. Apollo was explicit: my son was doomed to kill my husband . . . my son, 945 poor defenseless thing, he never had a chance to kill his father. They destroyed him fi rst.

So much for prophecy. It’s neither here nor there. From this day on, I wouldn’t look right or left.

Oedipus: True, true. Still, that shepherd, 950 someone fetch him — now!

Jocasta: I’ll send at once. But do let’s go inside. I’d never displease you, least of all in this.

Oedipus and Jocasta enter the palace.

Chorus: Destiny guide me always Destiny fi nd me fi lled with reverence 955 pure in word and deed. Great laws tower above us, reared on high born for the brilliant vault of heaven — Olympian sky their only father, nothing mortal, no man gave them birth, 960 their memory deathless, never lost in sleep: within them lives a mighty god, the god does not grow old.

Pride breeds the tyrant violent pride, gorging, crammed to bursting with all that is overripe and rich with ruin — 965 clawing up to the heights, headlong pride crashes down the abyss — sheer doom! No footing helps, all foothold lost and gone,

666 sophocles and greek drama

But the healthy strife that makes the city strong — I pray that god will never end that wrestling: 970 god, my champion, I will never let you go.

But if any man comes striding, high and mighty in all he says and does, no fear of justice, no reverence for the temples of the gods — 975 let a rough doom tear him down, repay his pride, breakneck, ruinous pride! If he cannot reap his profi ts fairly cannot restrain himself from outrage — mad, laying hands on the holy things untouchable! 980

Can such a man, so desperate, still boast he can save his life from the fl ashing bolts of god? If all such violence goes with honor now why join the sacred dance?

Never again will I go reverent to Delphi, 985 the inviolate heart of Earth or Apollo’s ancient oracle at Abae or Olympia of the fi res — unless these prophecies all come true for all mankind to point toward in wonder. 990 King of kings, if you deserve your titles Zeus, remember, never forget! You and your deathless, everlasting reign.

They are dying, the old oracles sent to Laius, now our masters strike them off the rolls. 995 Nowhere Apollo’s golden glory now — the gods, the gods go down.

Enter Jocasta from the palace, carrying a suppliant’s branch wound in wool.

Jocasta: Lords of the realm, it occurred to me, just now, to visit the temples of the gods, so I have my branch in hand and incense too. 1000 Oedipus is beside himself. Racked with anguish, no longer a man of sense, he won’t admit the latest prophecies are hollow as the old — he’s at the mercy of every passing voice if the voice tells of terror. 1005 I urge him gently, nothing seems to help, so I turn to you, Apollo, you are nearest.

Placing her branch on the altar, while an old herdsman enters from the side, not the one just summoned by the king but an unexpected messenger from Corinth.

sophocles / oedipus the king 667

I come with prayers and offerings . . . I beg you, cleanse us, set us free of defi lement! Look at us, passengers in the grip of fear, 1010 watching the pilot of the vessel go to pieces.

Messenger:

Approaching Jocasta and the Chorus.

Strangers, please, I wonder if you could lead us to the palace of the king . . . I think it’s Oedipus. Better, the man himself — you know where he is?

Leader: This is his palace, stranger. He’s inside. 1015 But here is his queen, his wife and mother of his children.

Messenger: Blessings on you, noble queen, queen of Oedipus crowned with all your family — blessings on you always!

Jocasta: And the same to you, stranger, you deserve it . . . 1020 such a greeting. But what have you come for? Have you brought us news?

Messenger: Wonderful news — for the house, my lady, for your husband too.

Jocasta: Really, what? Who sent you? Messenger: Corinth.

I’ll give you the message in a moment. 1025 You’ll be glad of it — how could you help it? — though it costs a little sorrow in the bargain.

Jocasta: What can it be, with such a double edge? Messenger: The people there, they want to make your Oedipus

king of Corinth, so they’re saying now. 1030 Jocasta: Why? Isn’t old Polybus still in power? Messenger: No more. Death has got him in the tomb. Jocasta: What are you saying? Polybus, dead? — dead? Messenger: If not,

if I’m not telling the truth, strike me dead too. Jocasta:

To a servant.

Quickly, go to your master, tell him this! 1035

You prophecies of the gods, where are you now? This is the man that Oedipus feared for years, he fl ed him, not to kill him — and now he’s dead, quite by chance, a normal, natural death, not murdered by his son.

Oedipus:

Emerging from the palace.

Dearest, 1040

668 sophocles and greek drama

what now? Why call me from the palace? Jocasta:

Bringing the Messenger closer.

Listen to him, see for yourself what all those awful prophecies of god have come to.

Oedipus: And who is he? What can he have for me? Jocasta: He’s from Corinth, he’s come to tell you 1045

your father is no more — Polybus — he’s dead! Oedipus:

Wheeling on the Messenger.

What? Let me have it from your lips. Messenger: Well,

if that’s what you want fi rst, then here it is: make no mistake, Polybus is dead and gone.

Oedipus: How — murder? sickness? — what? what killed him? 1050 Messenger: A light tip of the scales can put old bones to rest. Oedipus: Sickness then — poor man, it wore him down. Messenger: That,

and the long count of years he’d measured out. Oedipus: So!

Jocasta, why, why look to the Prophet’s hearth, the fi res of the future? Why scan the birds 1055 that scream above our heads? They winged me on to the murder of my father, did they? That was my doom? Well look, he’s dead and buried, hidden under the earth, and here I am in Thebes, I never put hand to sword — unless some longing for me wasted him away, 1060 then in a sense you’d say I caused his death. But now, all those prophecies I feared — Polybus packs them off to sleep with him in hell! They’re nothing, worthless.

Jocasta: There. Didn’t I tell you from the start? 1065

Oedipus: So you did. I was lost in fear. Jocasta: No more, sweep it from your mind forever. Oedipus: But my mother’s bed, surely I must fear — Jocasta: Fear?

What should a man fear? It’s all chance, chance rules our lives. Not a man on earth 1070 can see a day ahead, groping through the dark. Better to live at random, best we can. And as for this marriage with your mother — have no fear. Many a man before you, in his dreams, has shared his mother’s bed. 1075

sophocles / oedipus the king 669

Take such things for shadows, nothing at all — Live, Oedipus, as if there’s no tomorrow!

Oedipus: Brave words, and you’d persuade me if mother weren’t alive. But mother lives, so for all your reassurances 1080 I live in fear, I must.

Jocasta: But your father’s death, that, at least, is a great blessing, joy to the eyes!

Oedipus: Great, I know . . . but I fear her — she’s still alive. Messenger: Wait, who is this woman, makes you so afraid? Oedipus: Merope, old man. The wife of Polybus. 1085 Messenger: The queen? What’s there to fear in her? Oedipus: A dreadful prophecy, stranger, sent by the gods. Messenger: Tell me, could you? Unless it’s forbidden

other ears to hear. Oedipus: Not at all.

Apollo told me once — it is my fate — 1090 I must make love with my own mother, shed my father’s blood with my own hands. So for years I’ve given Corinth a wide berth, and it’s been my good fortune too. But still, to see one’s parents and look into their eyes 1095 is the greatest joy I know.

Messenger: You’re afraid of that? That kept you out of Corinth?

Oedipus: My father, old man — so I wouldn’t kill my father.

Messenger: So that’s it. Well then, seeing I came with such good will, my king, why don’t I rid you of that old worry now? 1100

Oedipus: What a rich reward you’d have for that. Messenger: What do you think I came for, majesty?

So you’d come home and I’d be better off. Oedipus: Never, I will never go near my parents. Messenger: My boy, it’s clear, you don’t know what you’re doing. 1105 Oedipus: What do you mean, old man? For god’s sake, explain. Messenger: If you ran from them, always dodging home . . . Oedipus: Always, terrifi ed Apollo’s oracle might come true — Messenger: And you’d be covered with guilt, from both your parents. Oedipus: That’s right, old man, that fear is always with me. 1110 Messenger: Don’t you know? You’ve really nothing to fear. Oedipus: But why? If I’m their son — Merope, Polybus? Messenger: Polybus was nothing to you, that’s why, not in blood. Oedipus: What are you saying — Polybus was not my father? Messenger: No more than I am. He and I are equals.

670 sophocles and greek drama

Oedipus: My father — 1115 how can my father equal nothing? You’re nothing to me!

Messenger: Neither was he, no more your father than I am. Oedipus: Then why did he call me his son? Messenger: You were a gift,

years ago — know for a fact he took you from my hands.

Oedipus: No, from another’s hands? 1120 Then how could he love me so? He loved me, deeply . . .

Messenger: True, and his early years without a child made him love you all the more.

Oedipus: And you, did you . . . buy me? fi nd me by accident?

Messenger: I stumbled on you, down the woody fl anks of Mount Cithaeron.

Oedipus: So close, 1125 what were you doing here, just passing through?

Messenger: Watching over my fl ocks, grazing them on the slopes. Oedipus: A herdsman, were you? A vagabond, scraping for wages? Messenger: Your savior too, my son, in your worst hour. Oedipus: Oh —

when you picked me up, was I in pain? What exactly? 1130 Messenger: Your ankles . . . they tell the story. Look at them. Oedipus: Why remind me of that, that old affl iction? Messenger: Your ankles were pinned together; I set you free. Oedipus: That dreadful mark — I’ve had it from the cradle. Messenger: And you got your name from that misfortune too, 1135

the name’s still with you. Oedipus: Dear god, who did it? —

mother? father? Tell me. Messenger: I don’t know.

The one who gave you to me, he’d know more. Oedipus: What? You took me from someone else?

You didn’t fi nd me yourself? Messenger: No sir, 1140

another shepherd passed you on to me. Oedipus: Who? Do you know? Describe him. Messenger: He called himself a servant of . . .

if I remember rightly — Laius.

Jocasta turns sharply.

Oedipus: The king of the land who ruled here long ago? 1145 Messenger: That’s the one. That herdsman was his man. Oedipus: Is he still alive? Can I see him? Messenger: They’d know best, the people of these parts.

Oedipus and the Messenger turn to the Chorus.

sophocles / oedipus the king 671

Oedipus: Does anyone know that herdsman, the one he mentioned? Anyone seen him 1150 in the fi elds, in town? Out with it! The time has come to reveal this once for all.

Leader: I think he’s the very shepherd you wanted to see, a moment ago. But the queen, Jocasta, she’s the one to say.

Oedipus: Jocasta, 1155 you remember the man we just sent for? Is that the one he means?

Jocasta: That man . . . why ask? Old shepherd, talk, empty nonsense, don’t give it another thought, don’t even think —

Oedipus: What — give up now, with a clue like this? 1160 Fail to solve the mystery of my birth? Not for all the world!

Jocasta: Stop — in the name of god, if you love your own life, call off this search! My suffering is enough.

Oedipus: Courage! Even if my mother turns out to be a slave, 1165 and I a slave, three generations back, you would not seem common.

Jocasta: Oh no, listen to me, I beg you, don’t do this.

Oedipus: Listen to you? No more. I must know it all, see the truth at last.

Jocasta: No, please — 1170 for your sake — I want the best for you!

Oedipus: Your best is more than I can bear. Jocasta: You’re doomed —

may you never fathom who you are! Oedipus:

To a servant.

Hurry, fetch me the herdsman, now! Leave her to glory in her royal birth. 1175

Jocasta: Aieeeeee — man of agony — that is the only name I have for you, that, no other — ever, ever, ever!

Flinging (herself ) through the palace doors. A long, tense silence follows.

Leader: Where’s she gone, Oedipus? Rushing off, such wild grief . . . 1180 I’m afraid that from this silence

672 sophocles and greek drama

something monstrous may come bursting forth. Oedipus: Let it burst! Whatever will, whatever must!

I must know my birth, no matter how common it may be — must see my origins face-to-face. 1185 She perhaps, she with her woman’s pride may well be mortifi ed by my birth, but I, I count myself the son of Chance, the great goddess, giver of all good things — I’ll never see myself disgraced. She is my mother! 1190 And the moons have marked me out, my blood-brothers, one moon on the wane, the next moon great with power. That is my blood, my nature — I will never betray it, never fail to search and learn my birth!

Chorus: Yes — if I am a true prophet 1195 if I can grasp the truth, by the boundless skies of Olympus, at the full moon of tomorrow, Mount Cithaeron you will know how Oedipus glories in you — you, his birthplace, nurse, his mountain-mother! 1200 And we will sing you, dancing out your praise — you lift our monarch’s heart! Apollo, Apollo, god of the wild cry may our dancing please you! Oedipus — son, dear child, who bore you? 1205 Who of the nymphs who seem to live forever mated with Pan,° the mountain-striding Father? Who was your mother? who, some bride of Apollo the god who loves the pastures spreading toward the sun? Or was it Hermes, king of the lightning ridges? 1210 Or Dionysus, lord of frenzy, lord of the barren peaks — did he seize you in his hands, dearest of all his lucky fi nds? — found by the nymphs, their warm eyes dancing, gift to the lord who loves them dancing out his joy!

Oedipus strains to see a fi gure coming from the distance. Attended by palace guards, an old Shepherd enters slowly, reluctant to approach the king.

Oedipus: I never met the man, my friends . . . still, 1215 if I had to guess, I’d say that’s the shepherd, the very one we’ve looked for all along. Brothers in old age, two of a kind, he and our guest here. At any rate

1207 Pan: God of shepherds, who was, like Hermes and Dionysus, associated with the wilderness.

sophocles / oedipus the king 673

the ones who bring him in are my own men, 1220 I recognize them.

Turning to the Leader.

But you know more than I, you should, you’ve seen the man before.

Leader: I know him, defi nitely. One of Laius’ men, a trusty shepherd, if there ever was one.

Oedipus: You, I ask you fi rst, stranger, 1225 you from Corinth — is this the one you mean?

Messenger: You’re looking at him. He’s your man. Oedipus:

To the Shepherd.

You, old man, come over here — look at me. Answer all my questions. Did you ever serve King Laius?

Shepherd: So I did . . . 1230 a slave, not bought on the block though, born and reared in the palace.

Oedipus: Your duties, your kind of work? Shepherd: Herding the fl ocks, the better part of my life. Oedipus: Where, mostly? Where did you do your grazing? Shepherd: Well, 1235

Cithaeron sometimes, or the foothills round about. Oedipus: This man — you know him? ever see him there? Shepherd:

Confused, glancing from the Messenger to the King.

Doing what — what man do you mean? Oedipus:

Pointing to the Messenger.

This one here — ever have dealings with him? Shepherd: Not so I could say, but give me a chance, 1240

my memory’s bad . . . Messenger: No wonder he doesn’t know me, master.

But let me refresh his memory for him. I’m sure he recalls old times we had on the slopes of Mount Cithaeron; 1245 he and I, grazing our fl ocks, he with two and I with one — we both struck up together, three whole seasons, six months at a stretch from spring to the rising of Arcturus° in the fall,

1249 Arcturus: A star whose rising marked the end of summer.

674 sophocles and greek drama

then with winter coming on I’d drive my herds 1250 to my own pens, and back he’d go with his to Laius’ folds.

To the Shepherd.

Now that’s how it was, wasn’t it — yes or no?

Shepherd: Yes, I suppose . . . it’s all so long ago.

Messenger: Come, tell me, you gave me a child back then, a boy, remember? 1255 A little fellow to rear, my very own.

Shepherd: What? Why rake up that again? Messenger: Look, here he is, my fi ne old friend —

the same man who was just a baby then. Shepherd: Damn you, shut your mouth — quiet! 1260 Oedipus: Don’t lash out at him, old man —

you need lashing more than he does. Shepherd: Why,

master, majesty — what have I done wrong? Oedipus: You won’t answer his question about the boy. Shepherd: He’s talking nonsense, wasting his breath. 1265 Oedipus: So, you won’t talk willingly —

then you’ll talk with pain.

The guards seize the Shepherd.

Shepherd: No, dear god, don’t torture an old man! Oedipus: Twist his arms back, quickly! Shepherd: God help us, why? —

what more do you need to know? 1270 Oedipus: Did you give him that child? He’s asking. Shepherd: I did . . . I wish to god I’d died that day. Oedipus: You’ve got your wish if you don’t tell the truth. Shepherd: The more I tell, the worse the death I’ll die. Oedipus: Our friend here wants to stretch things out, does he? 1275

Motioning to his men for torture.

Shepherd: No, no, I gave it to him — I just said so. Oedipus: Where did you get it? Your house? Someone else’s? Shepherd: It wasn’t mine, no, I got it from . . . someone. Oedipus: Which one of them?

Looking at the citizens.

Whose house? Shepherd: No —

god’s sake, master, no more questions! 1280

sophocles / oedipus the king 675

Oedipus: You’re a dead man if I have to ask again. Shepherd: Then — the child came from the house . . .

of Laius. Oedipus: A slave? or born of his own blood? Shepherd: Oh no,

I’m right at the edge, the horrible truth — I’ve got to say it! Oedipus: And I’m at the edge of hearing horrors, yes, but I must hear! 1285 Shepherd: All right! His son, they said it was — his son!

But the one inside, your wife, she’d tell it best.

Oedipus: My wife — she gave it to you? 1290

Shepherd: Yes, yes, my king. Oedipus: Why, what for? Shepherd: To kill it. Oedipus: Her own child,

how could she? 1295 Shepherd: She was afraid —

frightening prophecies. Oedipus: What? Shepherd: They said —

he’d kill his parents. 1300 Oedipus: But you gave him to this old man — why? Shepherd: I pitied the little baby, master,

hoped he’d take him off to his own country, far away, but he saved him for this, this fate. If you are the man he says you are, believe me, 1305 you were born for pain.

Oedipus: O god — all come true, all burst to light! O light — now let me look my last on you! I stand revealed at last — cursed in my birth, cursed in marriage, 1310 cursed in the lives I cut down with these hands!

Rushing through the doors with a great cry. The Corinthian Messenger, the Shepherd, and attendants exit slowly to the side.

Chorus: O the generations of men the dying generations — adding the total of all your lives I fi nd they come to nothing . . . does there exist, is there a man on earth 1315 who seizes more joy than just a dream, a vision? And the vision no sooner dawns than dies blazing into oblivion. You are my great example, you, your life, your destiny, Oedipus, man of misery — 1320

676 sophocles and greek drama

I count no man blest. You outranged all men! Bending your bow to the breaking-point you captured priceless glory, O dear god, and the Sphinx came crashing down, the virgin, claws hooked 1325 like a bird of omen singing, shrieking death — like a fortress reared in the face of death you rose and saved our land.

From that day on we called you king we crowned you with honors, Oedipus, towering over all — 1330 mighty king of the seven gates of Thebes.

But now to hear your story — is there a man more agonized? More wed to pain and frenzy? Not a man on earth, the joy of your life ground down to nothing O Oedipus, name for the ages — 1335 one and the same wide harbor served you son and father both son and father came to rest in the same bridal chamber. How, how could the furrows your father plowed bear you, your agony, harrowing on 1340 in silence O so long? But now for all your power Time, all-seeing Time has dragged you to the light, judged your marriage monstrous from the start — the son and the father tangling, both one — O child of Laius, would to god 1345 I’d never seen you, never never! Now I weep like a man who wails the dead and the dirge comes pouring forth with all my heart! I tell you the truth, you gave me life my breath leapt up in you 1350 and now you bring down night upon my eyes.

Enter a Messenger from the palace.

Messenger: Men of Thebes, always the fi rst in honor, what horrors you will hear, what you will see, what a heavy weight of sorrow you will shoulder . . . if you are true to your birth, if you still have 1355 some feeling for the royal house of Thebes. I tell you neither the waters of the Danube nor the Nile can wash this palace clean. Such things it hides, it soon will bring to light — terrible things, and none done blindly now, 1360

sophocles / oedipus the king 677

all done with a will. The pains we infl ict upon ourselves hurt most of all.

Leader: God knows we have pains enough already. What can you add to them?

Messenger: The queen is dead. Leader: Poor lady — how? 1365 Messenger: By her own hand. But you are spared the worst,

you never had to watch . . . I saw it all, and with all the memory that’s in me you will learn what that poor woman suffered.

Once she’d broken in through the gates, 1370 dashing past us, frantic, whipped to fury, ripping her hair out with both hands — straight to her rooms she rushed, fl inging herself across the bridal-bed, doors slamming behind her — once inside, she wailed for Laius, dead so long, 1375 remembering how she bore his child long ago, the life that rose up to destroy him, leaving its mother to mother living creatures with the very son she’d borne. Oh how she wept, mourning the marriage-bed 1380 where she let loose that double brood — monsters — husband by her husband, children by her child. And then — but how she died is more than I can say. Suddenly Oedipus burst in, screaming, he stunned us so we couldn’t watch her agony to the end, 1385 our eyes were fi xed on him. Circling like a maddened beast, stalking, here, there crying out to us — Give him a sword! His wife, no wife, his mother, where can he fi nd the mother earth that cropped two crops at once, himself and all his children? 1390 He was raging — one of the dark powers pointing the way, none of us mortals crowding around him, no, with a great shattering cry — someone, something leading him on — he hurled at the twin doors and bending the bolts back out of their sockets, crashed through the chamber. 1395 And there we saw the woman hanging by the neck, cradled high in a woven noose, spinning, swinging back and forth. And when he saw her, giving a low, wrenching sob that broke our hearts, slipping the halter from her throat, he eased her down, 1400 in a slow embrace he laid her down, poor thing . . . then, what came next, what horror we beheld!

678 sophocles and greek drama

He rips off her brooches, the long gold pins holding her robes — and lifting them high, looking straight up into the points, 1405 he digs them down the sockets of his eyes, crying, “You, you’ll see no more the pain I suffered, all the pain I caused! Too long you looked on the ones you never should have seen, blind to the ones you longed to see, to know! Blind from this hour on! Blind in the darkness — blind!” 1410 His voice like a dirge, rising, over and over raising the pins, raking them down his eyes. And at each stroke blood spurts from the roots, splashing his beard, a swirl of it, nerves and clots — black hail of blood pulsing, gushing down. 1415

These are the griefs that burst upon them both, coupling man and woman. The joy they had so lately, the fortune of their old ancestral house was deep joy indeed. Now, in this one day, wailing, madness and doom, death, disgrace, 1420 all the griefs in the world that you can name, all are theirs forever.

Leader: Oh poor man, the misery — has he any rest from pain now?

A voice within, in torment.

Messenger: He’s shouting, “Loose the bolts, someone, show me to all of Thebes! My father’s murderer, my mother’s — ” 1425 No, I can’t repeat it, it’s unholy. Now he’ll tear himself from his native earth, not linger, curse the house with his own curse. But he needs strength, and a guide to lead him on. This is sickness more than he can bear.

The palace doors open.

Look, 1430 he’ll show you himself. The great doors are opening — you are about to see a sight, a horror even his mortal enemy would pity.

Enter Oedipus, blinded, led by a boy. He stands at the palace steps, as if surveying his people once again.

Chorus: O the terror — the suffering, for all the world to see, the worst terror that ever met my eyes. 1435 What madness swept over you? What god,

sophocles / oedipus the king 679

what dark power leapt beyond all bounds, beyond belief, to crush your wretched life? — godforsaken, cursed by the gods! I pity you but I can’t bear to look. 1440 I’ve much to ask, so much to learn, so much fascinates my eyes, but you . . . I shudder at the sight.

Oedipus: Oh, Ohhh — the agony! I am agony — where am I going? where on earth? 1445 where does all this agony hurl me? where’s my voice? — winging, swept away on a dark tide — My destiny, my dark power, what a leap you made!

Chorus: To the depths of terror, too dark to hear, to see. 1450 Oedipus: Dark, horror of darkness

my darkness, drowning, swirling around me crashing wave on wave — unspeakable, irresistible headwind, fatal harbor! Oh again, the misery, all at once, over and over 1455 the stabbing daggers, stab of memory raking me insane.

Chorus: No wonder you suffer twice over, the pain of your wounds, the lasting grief of pain.

Oedipus: Dear friend, still here? Standing by me, still with a care for me, 1460 the blind man? Such compassion, loyal to the last. Oh it’s you, I know you’re here, dark as it is I’d know you anywhere, your voice — it’s yours, clearly yours.

Chorus: Dreadful, what you’ve done . . . 1465 how could you bear it, gouging out your eyes? What superhuman power drove you on?

Oedipus: Apollo, friends, Apollo — he ordained my agonies — these, my pains on pains! But the hand that struck my eyes was mine, 1470 mine alone — no one else — I did it all myself! What good were eyes to me? Nothing I could see could bring me joy.

Chorus: No, no, exactly as you say. Oedipus: What can I ever see? 1475

What love, what call of the heart can touch my ears with joy? Nothing, friends.

680 sophocles and greek drama

Take me away, far, far from Thebes, quickly, cast me away, my friends — this great murderous ruin, this man cursed to heaven, 1480 the man the deathless gods hate most of all!

Chorus: Pitiful, you suffer so, you understand so much . . . I wish you’d never known.

Oedipus: Die, die — whoever he was that day in the wilds who cut my ankles free of the ruthless pins, 1485 he pulled me clear of death, he saved my life for this, this kindness — Curse him, kill him! If I’d died then, I’d never have dragged myself, my loved ones through such hell. 1490

Chorus: Oh if only . . . would to god. Oedipus: I’d never have come to this,

my father’s murderer — never been branded mother’s husband, all men see me now! Now, loathed by the gods, son of the mother I defi led coupling in my father’s bed, spawning lives in the loins 1495 that spawned my wretched life. What grief can crown this grief? It’s mine alone, my destiny — I am Oedipus!

Chorus: How can I say you’ve chosen for the best? Better to die than be alive and blind.

Oedipus: What I did was best — don’t lecture me, 1500 no more advice. I, with my eyes, how could I look my father in the eyes when I go down to death? Or mother, so abused . . . I’ve done such things to the two of them, crimes too huge for hanging. Worse yet, 1505 the sight of my children, born as they were born, how could I long to look into their eyes? No, not with these eyes of mine, never. Not this city either, her high towers, the sacred glittering images of her gods — 1510 I am misery! I, her best son, reared as no other son of Thebes was ever reared, I’ve stripped myself, I gave the command myself. All men must cast away the great blasphemer, the curse now brought to light by the gods, 1515 the son of Laius — I, my father’s son!

Now I’ve exposed my guilt, horrendous guilt, could I train a level glance on you, my countrymen? Impossible! No, if I could just block off my ears,

sophocles / oedipus the king 681

the springs of hearing, I would stop at nothing — 1520 I’d wall up my loathsome body like a prison, blind to the sound of life, not just the sight. Oblivion — what a blessing . . . for the mind to dwell a world away from pain.

O Cithaeron, why did you give me shelter? 1525 Why didn’t you take me, crush my life out on the spot? I’d never have revealed my birth to all mankind.

O Polybus, Corinth, the old house of my fathers, so I believed — what a handsome prince you raised — under the skin, what sickness to the core. 1530 Look at me! Born of outrage, outrage to the core.

O triple roads — it all comes back, the secret, dark ravine, and the oaks closing in where the three roads join . . . You drank my father’s blood, my own blood 1535 spilled by my own hands — you still remember me? What things you saw me do? Then I came here and did them all once more! Marriages! O marriage, you gave me birth, and once you brought me into the world you brought my sperm rising back, springing to light 1540 fathers, brothers, sons — one deadly breed — brides, wives, mothers. The blackest things a man can do, I have done them all! No more — it’s wrong to name what’s wrong to do. Quickly, for the love of god, hide me somewhere, 1545 kill me, hurl me into the sea where you can never look on me again.

Beckoning to the Chorus as they shrink away.

Closer, it’s all right. Touch the man of sorrow. Do. Don’t be afraid. My troubles are mine and I am the only man alive who can sustain them. 1550

Enter Creon from the palace, attended by palace guards.

Leader: Put your requests to Creon. Here he is, just when we need him. He’ll have a plan, he’ll act. Now that he’s the sole defense of the country in your place.

Oedipus: Oh no, what can I say to him?

682 sophocles and greek drama

How can I ever hope to win his trust? 1555 I wronged him so, just now, in every way. You must see that — I was so wrong, so wrong.

Creon: I haven’t come to mock you, Oedipus, or to criticize your former failings.

Turning to the guards.

You there, have you lost all respect for human feeling? 1560 At least revere the Sun, the holy fi re that keeps us all alive. Never expose a thing of guilt and holy dread so great it appalls the earth, the rain from heaven, the light of day! Get him into the halls — quickly as you can. 1565 Piety demands no less. Kindred alone should see a kinsman’s shame. This is obscene.

Oedipus: Please, in god’s name . . . you wipe my fears away, coming so generously to me, the worst of men. Do one thing more, for your sake, not mine. 1570

Creon: What do you want? Why so insistent? Oedipus: Drive me out of the land at once, far from sight,

where I can never hear a human voice. Creon: I’d have done that already, I promise you.

First I wanted the god to clarify my duties. 1575 Oedipus: The god? His command was clear, every word:

death for the father-killer, the curse — he said destroy me!

Creon: So he did. Still, in such a crisis it’s better to ask precisely what to do. 1580

Oedipus: You’d ask the oracle about a man like me? Creon: By all means. And this time, I assume,

even you will obey the god’s decrees. Oedipus: I will,

I will. And you, I command you — I beg you . . . the woman inside, bury her as you see fi t. 1585 It’s the only decent thing, to give your own the last rites. As for me, never condemn the city of my fathers to house my body, not while I’m alive, no, let me live on the mountains, on Cithaeron, 1590 my favorite haunt, I have made it famous. Mother and father marked out that rock to be my everlasting tomb — buried alive. Let me die there, where they tried to kill me. Oh but this I know: no sickness can destroy me, 1595 nothing can. I would never have been saved

sophocles / oedipus the king 683

from death — I have been saved for something great and terrible, something strange. Well let my destiny come and take me on its way!

About my children, Creon, the boys at least, 1600 don’t burden yourself. They’re men; wherever they go, they’ll fi nd the means to live. But my two daughters, my poor helpless girls, clustering at our table, never without me hovering near them . . . whatever I touched, 1605 they always had their share. Take care of them, I beg you. Wait, better — permit me, would you? Just to touch them with my hands and take our fi ll of tears. Please . . . my king. Grant it, with all your noble heart. 1610 If I could hold them, just once, I’d think I had them with me, like the early days when I could see their eyes.

Antigone and Ismene, two small children, are led in from the palace by a nurse.

What’s that? O god! Do I really hear you sobbing? — my two children. Creon, you’ve pitied me? 1615 Sent me my darling girls, my own fl esh and blood! Am I right?

Creon: Yes, it’s my doing. I know the joy they gave you all these years, the joy you must feel now.

Oedipus: Bless you, Creon! May god watch over you for this kindness, 1620 better than he ever guarded me. Children, where are you? Here, come quickly —

Groping for Antigone and Ismene, who approach their father cautiously, then embrace him.

Come to these hands of mine, your brother’s hands, your own father’s hands that served his once bright eyes so well — that made them blind. Seeing nothing, children, 1625 knowing nothing, I became your father, I fathered you in the soil that gave me life.

How I weep for you — I cannot see you now . . . just thinking of all your days to come, the bitterness,

684 sophocles and greek drama

the life that rough mankind will thrust upon you. 1630 Where are the public gatherings you can join, the banquets of the clans? Home you’ll come, in tears, cut off from the sight of it all, the brilliant rites unfi nished. And when you reach perfection, ripe for marriage, 1635 who will he be, my dear ones? Risking all to shoulder the curse that weighs down my parents, yes and you too — that wounds us all together. What more misery could you want? Your father killed his father, sowed his mother, 1640 one, one and the selfsame womb sprang you — he cropped the very roots of his existence. Such disgrace, and you must bear it all! Who will marry you then? Not a man on earth. Your doom is clear: you’ll wither away to nothing, 1645 single, without a child.

Turning to Creon.

Oh Creon, you are the only father they have now . . . we who brought them into the world are gone, both gone at a stroke — Don’t let them go begging, abandoned, 1650 women without men. Your own fl esh and blood! Never bring them down to the level of my pains. Pity them. Look at them, so young, so vulnerable, shorn of everything — you’re their only hope. Promise me, noble Creon, touch my hand. 1655

Reaching toward Creon, who draws back.

You, little ones, if you were old enough to understand, there is much I’d tell you. Now, as it is, I’d have you say a prayer. Pray for life, my children, live where you are free to grow and season. 1660 Pray god you fi nd a better life than mine, the father who begot you.

Creon: Enough. You’ve wept enough. Into the palace now.

Oedipus: I must, but I fi nd it very hard. Creon: Time is the great healer, you will see. 1665 Oedipus: I am going — you know on what condition? Creon: Tell me. I’m listening. Oedipus: Drive me out of Thebes, in exile.

sophocles / oedipus the king 685

Creon: Not I. Only the gods can give you that. Oedipus: Surely the gods hate me so much — 1670 Creon: You’ll get your wish at once. Oedipus: You consent? Creon: I try to say what I mean; it’s my habit. Oedipus: Then take me away. It’s time. Creon: Come along, let go of the children. Oedipus: No —

don’t take them away from me, not now! No no no! 1675

Clutching his daughters as the guards wrench them loose and take them through the palace doors.

Creon: Still the king, the master of all things? No more: here your power ends. None of your power follows you through life.

Exit Oedipus and Creon to the palace. The Chorus comes forward to address the audience directly.

Chorus: People of Thebes, my countrymen, look on Oedipus. He solved the famous riddle with his brilliance, 1680 he rose to power, a man beyond all power. Who could behold his greatness without envy? Now what a black sea of terror has overwhelmed him. Now as we keep our watch and wait the fi nal day, count no man happy till he dies, free of pain at last. 1685

Exit in procession.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Is it possible for a twenty-fi rst-century reader to identify with Oedipus’s plight? What philosophic issues does he confront?

2. In the opening scene what does the priest’s speech reveal about how Oedipus has been regarded as a ruler of Thebes?

3. What do Oedipus’s confrontations with Tiresias and Creon indi- cate about his character?

4. Aristotle defi ned a tragic fl aw as consisting of “error and frailties.” What errors does Oedipus make? What are his frailties?

5. What causes Oedipus’s downfall? Is he simply a pawn in a predeter- mined game played by the gods? Can he be regarded as responsible for the suffering and death in the play?

6. Locate instances of dramatic irony in the play. How do they serve as foreshadowings?

7. Describe the function of the Chorus. How does the Chorus’s view of life and the gods differ from Jocasta’s?

686 sophocles and greek drama

8. Trace the images of vision and blindness throughout the play. How are they related to the theme? Why does Oedipus blind himself instead of joining Jocasta in suicide?

9. What is your assessment of Oedipus at the end of the play? Was he foolish? Heroic? Fated? To what extent can your emotions concern- ing him be described as “pity and fear”?

10. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Consider the endings of Oedi- pus the King and Shakespeare’s Othello (p. 698). What feelings do you have about these endings? Are they irredeemably unhappy? Is there anything that suggests hope for the future at the ends of these plays?

687

Shakespeare — the nearest thing in incarnation to the eye of God.

— SIR LAURENCE OLIVIER

All the world’s a stage, And all the men and women merely players: They have their exits and their entrances; And one man in his time plays many parts . . .

— WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE

Although relatively little is known about William Shakespeare’s life, his writings reveal him to have been an extraordinary man. His vitality, compassion, and insights are evident in his broad range of characters, who have fascinated generations of audiences, and his powerful use of the English language, which has been celebrated since his death nearly four centuries ago. Ben Jonson, his contemporary, rightly claimed that “he was not of an age, but for all time!” Shakespeare’s plays have been produced so often and his writings read so widely that quotations from them have woven their way into our everyday conversations. If you have ever experienced “fear and trembling” because there was “something in the wind” or discovered that it was “a foregone conclusion” that you would “make a virtue of necessity,” then it wouldn’t be quite accurate for you to say that Shakespeare “was Greek to me” because these phrases come, respectively, from his plays Much Ado about Nothing, Comedy of Errors, Othello,

25 William Shakespeare

and Elizabethan Drama

© Bettmann/corbis.

688 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama

“First Folio” portrait (left). This image of William Shakespeare is a portrait included on the First Folio, a collected edition of Shakespeare’s plays published seven years after his death. Reprinted by permission of the Folger Shakespeare Library.

“Chandos” portrait (right). This is an image painted during Shakespeare’s lifetime known as the “Chandos por- trait,” rumored to have been painted by Shakespeare’s friend and fellow actor Richard Burbage. Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

Shakespeare’s signature. The signature shown here is one of the bard’s six authenticated signatures in existence, and is from his last will and testament. Courtesy of the National Archives, United Kingdom.

The Two Gentlemen of Verona, and Julius Caesar. Many more examples could be cited, but it is enough to say that Shakespeare’s art endures. His words may give us only an oblique glimpse of his life, but they continue to give us back the experience of our own lives.

Shakespeare was born in Stratford-on-Avon on or about April 23, 1564. His father, an important citizen who held several town offi ces, married a woman from a prominent family; however, when their son was only a teenager, the family’s fi nancial situation became precarious. Shakespeare probably attended the Stratford grammar school, but no records of either his schooling or his early youth exist. As limited as his education was, it is clear that he was for his time a learned man. At the age

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... shakespeare’s theater 689

of eighteen, he struck out on his own and married the twenty-six-year-old Anne Hathaway, who bore him a daughter in 1583 and twins, a boy and a girl, in 1585. Before he was twenty-one, Shakespeare had a wife and three children to support.

What his life was like for the next seven years is not known, but there is fi rm evidence that by 1592 he was in London enjoying some success as both an actor and a playwright. By 1594 he had also established him- self as a poet with two lengthy poems, Venus and Adonis and The Rape of Lucrece. But it was in the theater that he made his living and his strongest reputation. He was well connected with a successful troupe fi rst known as the Lord Chamberlain’s Men; they built the famous Globe Theatre in 1599. Later this company, because of the patronage of King James, came to be known as the King’s Men. Writing plays for this company through- out his career, Shakespeare also became one of its principal sharehold- ers, an arrangement that allowed him to prosper in London as well as in his native Stratford, where in 1597 he bought a fi ne house called New Place. About 1611 he retired there with his family, although he continued writing plays. He died on April 23, 1616, and was buried at Holy Trinity Church in Stratford.

The documented details of Shakespeare’s life provide barely enough information for a newspaper obituary. But if his activities remain largely unknown, his writings — among them thirty-seven plays and 154 son- nets — more than compensate for that loss. Plenty of authors have pro- duced more work, but no writer has created so much literature that has been so universally admired. Within twenty-fi ve years Shakespeare’s dramatic works included Hamlet, Macbeth, King Lear, Othello, Julius Caesar, Richard III, 1 Henry IV, Romeo and Juliet, Love’s Labour’s Lost, A Midsummer Night’s Dream, The Tempest, Twelfth Night, and Measure for Measure. These plays represent a broad range of characters and actions conveyed in poetic language that reveals human nature as well as the author’s genius.

SHAKESPEARE’S THEATER Drama languished in Europe after the fall of Rome during the fi fth and sixth centuries. From about a.d. 400 to 900 almost no record of dramatic productions exists except for those of minstrels and other entertainers, such as acrobats and jugglers, who traveled through the countryside. The Catholic church was instrumental in suppressing drama because the theater — represented by the excesses of Roman productions — was seen as subversive. No state-sponsored festivals brought people together in huge theaters the way they had in Greek and Roman times.

In the tenth century, however, the church helped revive theater by incorporating dialogues into the Mass as a means of dramatizing portions

WEB Explore contexts for William Shakespeare at bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

690 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama

of the Gospels. These brief dialogues developed into more elaborate mys- tery plays, miracle plays, and morality plays, anonymous works that were created primarily to inculcate religious principles rather than to enter- tain. But these works also marked the reemergence of relatively large dra- matic productions.

Mystery plays dramatize stories from the Bible, such as the Creation, the Fall of Adam and Eve, or the Crucifi xion. The most highly regarded surviving example is The Second Shepherd’s Play (c. 1400), which drama- tizes Christ’s nativity. Miracle plays are based on the lives of saints. An extant play of the late fi fteenth century, for example, is titled Saint Mary Magdalene. Morality plays present allegorical stories in which virtues and vices are personifi ed to teach humanity how to achieve salvation. Everyman (c. 1500), the most famous example, has as its central confl ict every person’s struggle to avoid the sins that lead to hell and practice the virtues that are rewarded in heaven.

The clergy who performed these plays gave way to trade guilds that presented them outside the church on stages featuring scenery and cos- tumed characters. The plays’ didactic content was gradually abandoned in favor of broad humor and worldly concerns. Thus by the sixteenth century religious drama had been replaced largely by secular drama.

Because theatrical productions were no longer sponsored and fi nanced by the church or trade guilds during Shakespeare’s lifetime, playwrights had to fi gure out ways to draw audiences willing to pay for entertainment. This necessitated some simple but important changes. Somehow, people had to be prevented from seeing a production unless they paid. Hence an enclosed space with controlled access was created. In addition, the plays had to change frequently enough to keep audiences returning, and this resulted in more experienced actors and playwrights sensitive to their audiences’ tastes and interests. Plays compelling enough to attract audiences had to employ a powerful writing brought to life by convincing actors in entertaining productions. Shakespeare always wrote his dramas for the stage — for audiences who would see and hear the char- acters. The conventions of the theater for which he wrote are important, then, for appreciating and understanding his plays. Detailed information about Elizabethan theater (theater during the reign of Elizabeth I, from 1558 to 1603) is less than abundant, but historians have pieced together a good sense of what theaters were like from sources such as drawings, building contracts, and stage directions.

Early performances of various kinds took place in the courtyards of inns and taverns. These secular entertainments attracted people of all classes. To the dismay of London offi cials, such gatherings were also settings for the illegal activities of brawlers, thieves, and prosti- tutes. To avoid licensing regulations, some theaters were constructed outside the city’s limits. The Globe, for instance, built by the Lord Chamberlain’s Company, with which Shakespeare was closely associ- ated, was located on the south bank of the Thames River. Regardless of

shakespeare’s theater 691

A Main entrance B The yard C Entrances to lowest gallery D Position of entrances to staircase and

upper galleries E Corridor serving the different sections

of the middle gallery F Middle gallery (“Twopenny Rooms”) G Position of “Gentlemen’s Rooms” or

“Lords’ Rooms” H The stage J The hanging being put up round the

stage K The “hell” under the stage L The stage trap leading down to the hell

M Stage doors N Curtained “place behind the stage” O Gallery above the stage, used as

required sometimes by musicians, sometimes by spectators, and often as part of the play

P Backstage area (the tiring-house) Q Tiring-house door R Dressing-rooms S Wardrobe and storage T The hut housing the machine for

lowering enthroned gods, etc., to the stage

U The “heavens” W Hoisting the playhouse fl ag

A Conjectural Reconstruction of the Globe Theatre, 1599–1613. (Drawing by C. Walter Hodges from his The Globe Restored, published by Oxford University Press © 1968 C. Walter Hodges. Reprinted by permission of Oxford University Press.)

692 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama

the play, an Elizabethan theatergoer was likely to have an exciting time. Playwrights understood the varied nature of their audiences, so the plays appealed to a broad range of sensibilities and tastes. Philosophy and poetry rubbed shoulders with violence and sexual jokes, and some- how all were made compatible.

Physically, Elizabethan theaters resembled the courtyards where they originated, but the theaters could accommodate more people — perhaps as many as twenty-fi ve hundred. The exterior of a theater building was many-sided or round and enclosed a yard that was only partially roofed over, to take advantage of natural light. The interior walls consisted of three galleries of seats looking onto a platform stage that extended from the rear wall. These seats were sheltered from the weather and more com- fortable than the area in front of the stage, which was known as the pit. Here “groundlings” paid a penny to stand and watch the performance. Despite the large number of spectators, the theater created an intimate atmosphere because the audience closely surrounded the stage on three sides.

This arrangement produced two theatrical conventions: asides and soliloquies. An aside is a speech directed only to the audience. It makes the audience privy to a character’s thoughts, allowing them to perceive ironies and intrigues that other characters know nothing about. In a large performing space, such as a Greek amphitheater, asides would be unconvincing because they would have to be declaimed loudly to be heard, but they were well suited to Elizabethan theaters. A soliloquy is a speech delivered while an actor is alone on the stage; like an aside, it reveals a character’s state of mind. Hamlet’s “To be or not to be” speech is the most famous example of a soliloquy.

The Elizabethan platform stage was large enough — approximately twenty-fi ve feet deep and forty feet wide — to allow a wide variety of actions, ranging from festive banquets to bloody battles. Sections of the fl oor could be opened or removed to create, for instance, the gravedig- gers’ scene in Hamlet or to allow characters to exit through trapdoors. At the rear of the platform an inner stage was covered by curtains that could be drawn to reveal an interior setting, such as a bedroom or tomb. The curtains were also a natural location for a character to hide in order to overhear conversations. On each side of the curtains were doors through which characters entered and exited. An upper stage could be used as a watchtower, a castle wall, or a balcony. Although most of the action occurred on the main platform stage, there were opportunities for fl uid movements from one acting area to another, providing a variety of settings.

These settings were not, however, elaborately indicated by scenery or props. A scene might change when one group of characters left the stage and another entered. A table and some chairs could be carried on quickly to suggest a tavern. But the action was not interrupted for set changes.

the range of shakespeare’s drama: history, comedy, and tragedy 693

Instead, the characters’ speeches often identify the location of a scene. (In modern editions of Shakespeare’s plays, editors indicate in brackets the scene breaks, settings, and movements of actors not identifi ed in the original manuscripts to help readers keep track of things.) Today’s per- formances of the plays frequently use more elaborate settings and props. But Shakespeare’s need to paint his scenery with words resulted in many poetic descriptions. Here is one of moonlight from Merchant of Venice:

How sweet the moonlight sleeps upon this bank! Here will we sit and let the sounds of music Creep in our ears. Soft stillness and the night Become the touches of sweet harmony.

Although the settings were scant and the props mostly limited to what an actor carried onto the stage (a sword, a document, a shovel), Elizabethan costuming was an elaborate visual treat that identifi ed the characters. Moreover, because women were not permitted to act in the theater, their roles were played by boys dressed in female costumes. In addition, elaborate sound effects were used to create atmosphere. A fl ourish of trumpets might accompany the entrance of a king; small can- nons might be heard during a battle; thunder might punctuate a storm. In short, Elizabethan theater was alive with sights and sounds, but at the center of the stage was the playwright’s language; that’s where the magic began.

THE R ANGE OF SHAKESPEARE’S DR AMA: HISTORY, COMEDY, AND TR AGEDY Shakespeare’s plays fall into three basic categories: histories, comedies, and tragedies. Broadly speaking, a history play is any drama based on historical materials. In this case, Shakespeare’s Antony and Cleopatra and Julius Caesar would fi t the defi nition, since they feature historical fi gures. More specifi cally, though, a history play is a British play based primar- ily on Raphael Holinshed’s Chronicles of England, Scotland, and Ireland (1578). This account of British history was popular toward the end of the sixteenth century because of the patriotic pride that was produced by the British defeat of the Spanish Armada in 1588, and it was an impor- tant source for a series of plays Shakespeare wrote treating the reigns of British kings from Richard II to Henry VIII. The political subject matter of these plays both entertained audiences and instructed them in virtues and vices involved in England’s past efforts to overcome civil war and disorder. Ambition, deception, and treason were of more than histori- cal interest. Shakespeare’s audiences saw these plays about the fi fteenth century as ways of sorting through the meanings of both the calamities of the past and the uncertainties of the present.

694 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama

Although Shakespeare used Holinshed’s Chronicles as a source, he did not hesitate to make changes for dramatic purposes. In 1 Henry IV, for example, he ages Henry IV to contrast him with the youthful Prince Hal, and he makes Hotspur younger than he actually was to have him serve as a foil to the prince. The serious theme of Hal’s growth into the kind of man who would make an ideal king is counterweighted by Shakespeare’s comic creation of Falstaff, that good-humored “huge hill of fl esh” fi lled with delightful contradictions. Falstaff had historic antecedents, but the true source of his identity is the imagination of Shakespeare, a writer who was, after all, a dramatist fi rst.

Comedy is a strong element in 1 Henry IV, but the play’s overall tone is serious. Falstaff’s behavior ultimately gives way to the measured march of English history. While Shakespeare encourages us to laugh at some of the participants, we are not invited to laugh at the history of English monarchies. Comedy even appears in Shakespeare’s tragedies, as in Hamlet’s jests with the gravediggers or in Emilia’s biting remarks in Othello. This use of comedy is called comic relief, a humorous scene or incident that alleviates tension in an otherwise serious work. In many instances these moments enhance the thematic signifi cance of the story in addition to providing laughter. When Hamlet jokes with the gravedig- gers, we laugh, but something hauntingly serious about the humor also intensifi es our more serious emotions.

A true comedy, however, lacks a tragedy’s sense that some great disaster will fi nally descend on the protagonist. There are confl icts and obstacles that must be confronted, but in comedy the characters delight us by overcoming whatever initially thwarts them. We can laugh at their misfortunes because we are confi dent that everything will turn out fi ne in the end. Shakespearean comedy tends to follow this general principle; it begins with problems and ends with their resolution.

Shakespeare’s comedies are called romantic comedies because they typically involve lovers whose hearts are set on each other but whose lives are complicated by disapproving parents, deceptions, jealousies, illusions, confused identities, disguises, or other misunderstandings. Confl icts are present, but they are more amusing than threatening. This lightness is apparent in some of the comedies’ titles: The confl ict in a play such as A Midsummer Night’s Dream is, in a sense, Much Ado about Nothing — As You Like It in a comedy. Shakespeare orchestrates the prob- lems and confusion that typify the initial plotting of a romantic com- edy into harmonious wedding arrangements in the fi nal scenes. In these comedies life is a celebration, a feast that always satisfi es, because the generosity of the humor leaves us with a revived appetite for life’s sur- prising possibilities. Discord and misunderstanding give way to concord and love. Marriage symbolizes a pledge that life itself is renewable, so we are left with a sense of new beginnings.

the range of shakespeare’s drama: history, comedy, and tragedy 695

Although a celebration of life, comedy is also frequently used as a vehicle for criticizing human affairs. Satire casts a critical eye on vices and follies by holding them up to ridicule — usually to point out an absurdity so that it can be avoided or corrected. In Twelfth Night Malvolio is satirized for his priggishness and pomposity. He thinks himself better than almost everyone around him, but Shakespeare reveals him to be comic as well as pathetic. We come to understand what Malvolio will apparently never comprehend: that no one can take him as seriously as he takes himself. Polonius is subjected to a similar kind of scrutiny in Hamlet.

Malvolio’s ambitious efforts to attract Olivia’s affections are ren- dered absurd by Shakespeare’s use of both high and low comedy. High comedy consists of verbal wit, while low comedy is generally associated with physical action and is less intellectual. Through puns and witty exchanges, Shakespeare’s high comedy displays Malvolio’s inconsisten- cies of character. His self-importance is defl ated by low comedy. We are treated to a farce, a form of humor based on exaggerated, improbable incongruities, when the staid Malvolio is tricked into wearing bizarre clothing and behaving like a fool to win Olivia. Our laughter is Malvolio’s pain, but though he has been “notoriously abus’d,” vowing in the fi nal scene to be “reveng’d on the whole pack” of laughing conspirators who have tricked him, the play ends on a light note. Indeed, it concludes with a song, the last line of which reminds us of the predominant tone of the play as well as the nature of comedy: “And we’ll strive to please you every day.”

Tragedy, in contrast, does not promise peace and contentment. The basic characteristics of tragedy have already been outlined in the context of Greek drama (see Chapter 24). Like Greek tragic heroes, Shakespeare’s protagonists are exceptional human beings whose stature makes their misfortune all the more dramatic. These characters pay a high price for their actions. Oedipus’s search for the killer of Laius, Hamlet’s agonized conviction that “The time is out of joint,” and Othello’s willingness to doubt his wife’s fi delity all lead to irreversible results. Comic plots are largely free of this sense of inevitability. Instead of the festive mood that prevails once the characters in a comedy recognize their true connection to each other, tragedy gives us dark refl ections that emanate from suffering. The laughter of comedy is a shared experience, a recognition of human likeness, but suf- fering estranges tragic heroes from the world around them.

Some of the wrenching differences between comedy and tragedy can be experienced in Othello. Although this play is a tragedy, Shakespeare includes in its plot many of the ingredients associated with comedy. For a time it seems possible that Othello and Desdemona will overcome the complica- tions of a disapproving father, along with the seemingly minor deceptions, awkward misperceptions, and tender illusions that hover around them. But in Othello marriage is not a sign of concord displacing discord; instead, love and marriage mark the beginning of the tragic action.

696 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama

A NOTE ON READING SHAKESPEARE Readers who have had no previous experience with Shakespeare’s language may fi nd it initially daunting. They might well ask whether people ever talked the way, for example, Hamlet does in his most famous soliloquy:

To be, or not to be: that is the question: Whether ’tis nobler in the mind to suffer The slings and arrows of outrageous fortune, Or to take arms against a sea of troubles, And by opposing end them?

People did not talk like this in Elizabethan times. Hamlet speaks poetry. Shakespeare might have had him say something like this: “The most important issue one must confront is whether the pain that life inevitably creates should be passively accepted or resisted.” But Shakespeare chose poetry to reveal the depth and complexity of Hamlet’s experience. This heightened language is used to clarify rather than obscure his characters’ thoughts. Shakespeare has Hamlet, as well as many other characters, speak in prose too, but in general his plays are written in poetry. If you keep in mind that Shakespeare’s dialogue is not typically intended to imitate everyday speech, it should be eas- ier to understand that his language is more than simply a vehicle for expressing the action of the play.

Here are a few practical suggestions to enhance your understanding of and pleasure in reading Shakespeare’s plays.

1. Keep track of the characters by referring to the dramatis personae (characters) listed and described at the beginning of each play.

2. Remember that poetic language deserves to be read slowly and carefully. A diffi cult passage can sometimes be better understood if it’s read aloud. Don’t worry if every line isn’t absolutely clear to you.

3. Pay attention to the annotations, which explain unfamiliar words, phrases, and allusions in the text. These can be distracting, but they are sometimes necessary to determine the basic meaning of a passage.

4. As you read each scene, try to imagine how it would be played on a stage. 5. If you fi nd the reading especially diffi cult, try listening to a recording

of the play. (Most college libraries have recordings of Shakespeare’s plays.) Allowing professional actors to do the reading aloud for you can enrich your imaginative reconstruction of the action and characters. Hearing a play can help you with subsequent readings of it.

6. After reading the play, view a fi lm or DVD recording of a performance. It is important to view the performance after your reading, though, so that your own mental re-creation of the play is not short-circuited by a director’s production.

And fi nally, to quote Hamlet, “Be not too tame . . . let your own discre- tion be your tutor.” Read Shakespeare’s work as best you can; it warrants

a note on reading shakespeare 697

such careful attention not because the language and characters are diffi - cult to understand but because they offer so much to enjoy.

Othello, the Moor of Venice

Othello has compelled audiences since it was fi rst produced in 1604. Its power is as simple and as complex as the elemental emotions it drama- tizes; the play ebbs and fl ows with the emotional energy derived from the characters’ struggles with love and hatred, good and evil, trust and jeal- ousy, appearance and reality. These confl icts are played out on a domes- tic scale rather than on some metaphysical level. Anyone who has ever been in love will empathize with Othello and Desdemona. They embody a love story gone horribly — tragically — wrong.

Although the plot of Othello is fi lled with Iago’s intrigues and a series of opaque mysteries for Othello, it moves swiftly and precisely to its cata- strophic ending as the tragedy relentlessly claims its victims. On one level the plot is simple. As the Moorish general of the Venetian army, Othello chooses Cassio to serve as his lieutenant, a selection Iago resents and decides to subvert. To discredit Cassio, Iago poisons Othello’s faith in his wife, Desdemona, by falsely insinuating that she and Cassio are having an affair. Through a series of cleverly demonic manipulations, Iago succeeds in convincing Othello of his wife’s infi delity and his lieutenant’s betrayal. Believing these lies, Othello insists upon taking his revenge.

If the plot of Othello is relatively direct and simple in its focus on Iago’s manipulation of events, the play’s major characters are consider- ably more complex. Love and jealousy are central in Othello. The Moor’s virtues of openness and trust cause him to experience betrayal as intensely as he does love. He is distinguished by his nobility, bravery, strength, and deep sense of honor, but he is also vulnerable to the doubts Iago raises owing to his race (“I am black”) and marginal status in Venetian society.

Iago, whose motivations are much deeper and more mysterious than his maneuvering for a coveted lieutenancy, personifi es a nearly inexplica- ble evil in the play. Just as Desdemona’s nature seems to be all goodness, Iago’s is malignant destruction. His profound villainy both horrifi es and fascinates us: How can he be what he is? He thrives on ambition, envy, deception, jealousy, and doubt. Although he commands absolutely no respect, he holds our attention because of his cunning duplicity.

The play is fi nally, however, Othello’s story. As we watch him be seduced by Iago’s veiled hints and seeming confi dences, we see how his trusting nature is inextricably related to his propensity to suspect Desdemona. Iago plays on the complexity and paradox of Othello’s char- acter and manipulates those tensions to keep him off balance and blind to the truth of Desdemona’s faithfulness. Ultimately, though, Othello must take responsibility for the destruction of his love, a responsibility that is both his tragedy and redemption.

698 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1

William Shakespeare (1564–1616)

Othello, the Moor of Venice 1604

the names of the actors

Othello, the Moor Brabantio, [a Venetian senator,] father to Desdemona Cassio, an honorable lieutenant [to Othello] Iago, [Othello’s ancient,] a villain Roderigo, a gulled gentleman Duke of Venice Senators [of Venice] Montano, governor of Cyprus Lodovico and Gratiano, [kinsmen to Brabantio,] two noble Venetians Sailors Clowns Desdemona, wife to Othello Emilia, wife to Iago Bianca, a courtesan [Messenger, Herald, Offi cers, Venetian Gentlemen, Musicians, Attendants

scene: Venice and Cyprus]

AC T I

Scene I: A street in Venice.

Enter Roderigo and Iago.

Roderigo: Tush, never tell me! I take it much unkindly That thou, Iago, who hast had my purse As if the strings were thine, shouldst know of this.°

Iago: ’Sblood,° but you’ll not hear me! If ever I did dream of such a matter, 5 Abhor me.

Roderigo: Thou told’st me thou didst hold him in thy hate. Iago: Despise me if I do not. Three great ones of the city,

In personal suit to make me his lieutenant, Off-capped to him;° and, by the faith of man, 10 I know my price; I am worth no worse a place.

Act I, Scene I. 3 this: i.e., Desdemona’s elopement. 4 ’Sblood: By God’s blood. 10 him: i.e., Othello.

act i • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 699

But he, as loving his own pride and purposes, Evades them with a bombast circumstance.° Horribly stuffed with epithets of war; [And, in conclusion,] Nonsuits° my mediators; for, “Certes,” says he, “I have already chose my offi cer.” And what was he? Forsooth, a great arithmetician,° One Michael Cassio, a Florentine (A fellow almost damned in a fair wife°) That never set a squadron in the fi eld, Nor the division of a battle knows More than a spinster; unless the bookish theoric, Wherein the togèd consuls can propose As masterly as he. Mere prattle without practice Is all his soldiership. But he, sir, had th’ election; And I (of whom his eyes had seen the proof At Rhodes, at Cyprus, and on other grounds Christian and heathen) must be belee’d and calmed° 30 By debitor and creditor; this counter-caster,° He, in good time, must his lieutenant be, And I — God bless the mark! — his Moorship’s ancient.°

Roderigo: By heaven, I rather would have been his hangman. Iago: Why, there’s no remedy; ’tis the curse of service. 35

Preferment goes by letter and affection,° And not by old gradation, where each second Stood heir to th’ fi rst. Now, sir, be judge yourself, Whether I in any just term am affi ned° To love the Moor.

Roderigo: I would not follow him then. 40 Iago: O, sir, content you;

I follow him to serve my turn upon him. We cannot all be masters, nor all masters Cannot be truly followed. You shall mark

13 a bombast circumstance: Pompous circumlocutions. 16 Nonsuits: Rejects. 19 arith- metician: Theoretician. 21 almost . . . wife: (An obscure allusion; Cassio is unmarried, but see IV.i.114). 30 belee’d and calmed: Left in the lurch. 31 counter-caster: Book- keeper. 33 ancient: Ensign. 36 affection: Favoritism. 39 affi ned: Obliged.

Othello: Irene Jacob and Laurence Fishburne in the 1995 fi lm Othello, directed by Oliver Parker. © Konow Rolf/corbis Sygma.

700 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1

Many a duteous and knee-crooking knave 45 That, doting on his own obsequious bondage, Wears out his time, much like his master’s ass, For naught but provender; and when he’s old, cashiered.° Whip me such honest knaves! Others there are Who, trimmed° in forms and visages of duty, 50 Keep yet their hearts attending on themselves; And, throwing but shows of service on their lords, Do well thrive by them, and when they have lined their coats, Do themselves homage. These fellows have some soul; And such a one do I profess myself. For, sir, 55 It is as sure as you are Roderigo, Were I the Moor, I would not be Iago. In following him, I follow but myself; Heaven is my judge, not I for love and duty, But seeming so, for my peculiar end; 60 For when my outward action doth demonstrate The native act and fi gure of my heart° In compliment extern,° ’tis not long after But I will wear my heart upon my sleeve For daws to peck at; I am not what I am. 65

Roderigo: What a full fortune does the thick-lips° owe° If he can carry’t thus!

Iago: Call up her father, Rouse him. Make after him, poison his delight, Proclaim him in the streets. Incense her kinsmen, And though he in a fertile climate dwell, 70 Plague him with fl ies; though that his joy be joy, Yet throw such changes of vexation on’t As it may lose some color.

Roderigo: Here is her father’s house. I’ll call aloud. Iago: Do, with like timorous° accent and dire yell 75

As when, by night and negligence, the fi re Is spied in populous cities.

Roderigo: What, ho, Brabantio! Signior Brabantio, ho! Iago: Awake! What, ho, Brabantio! Thieves! thieves! thieves!

Look to your house, your daughter, and your bags! 80 Thieves! thieves! Brabantio at a window.°

Brabantio (above): What is the reason of this terrible summons? What is the matter there?

48 cashiered: Turned off. 50 trimmed: Dressed up. 62 The . . . heart: What I really believe and intend. 63 compliment extern: Outward appearance. 66 thick-lips: An Elizabethan epithet for blacks, including Moors; owe: Own. 75 timorous: Terrifying. Brabantio at a window: (added from quarto).

act i • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 701

Roderigo: Signior, is all your family within? Iago: Are your doors locked? Brabantio: Why, wherefore ask you this? 85 Iago: Zounds, sir, y’ are robbed! For shame, put on your gown!

Your heart is burst; you have lost half your soul. Even now, now, very now, an old black ram Is tupping your white ewe. Arise, arise! Awake the snorting° citizens with the bell. 90 Or else the devil will make a grandsire of you. Arise, I say!

Brabantio: What, have you lost your wits? Roderigo: Most reverend signior, do you know my voice? Brabantio: Not I. What are you? 95 Roderigo: My name is Roderigo. Brabantio: The worser welcome!

I have charged thee not to haunt about my doors. In honest plainness thou hast heard me say My daughter is not for thee; and now, in madness, Being full of supper and distemp’ring draughts, 100 Upon malicious knavery dost thou come To start my quiet.

Roderigo: Sir, sir, sir — Brabantio: But thou must needs be sure

My spirit and my place have in them power 105 To make this bitter to thee.

Roderigo: Patience, good sir. Brabantio: What tell’st thou me of robbing? This is Venice;

My house is not a grange.° Roderigo: Most grave Brabantio,

In simple and pure soul I come to you. 110Iago: Zounds, sir, you are one of those that will not serve God if the

devil bid you. Because we come to do you service, and you think we are ruffi ans, you’ll have your daughter covered with a Bar- bary horse; you’ll have your nephews° neigh to you; you’ll have coursers for cousins, and gennets for germans.°

Brabantio: What profane wretch art thou? 115 Iago: I am one, sir, that comes to tell you your daughter and the

Moor are now making the beast with two backs. Brabantio: Thou are a villain. Iago: You are — a senator. Brabantio: This thou shalt answer. I know thee, Roderigo. Roderigo: Sir, I will answer anything. But I beseech you, 120

90 snorting: Snoring. 108 grange: Isolated farmhouse. 113 nephews: i.e., grand- sons. 114 gennets for germans: Spanish horses for near kinsmen.

702 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1

If ’t be your pleasure and most wise consent, As partly I fi nd it is, that your fair daughter, At this odd-even° and dull watch o’ th’ night, Transported, with no worse nor better guard But with a knave of common hire, a gondolier, 125 To the gross clasps of a lascivious Moor — If this be known to you, and your allowance,° We then have done you bold and saucy wrongs; But if you know not this, my manners tell me We have your wrong rebuke. Do not believe 130 That, from the sense° of all civility, I thus would play and trifl e with your reverence. Your daughter, if you have not given her leave, I say again, hath made a gross revolt, Tying her duty, beauty, wit, and fortunes 135 In an extravagant and wheeling° stranger Of here and everywhere. Straight satisfy yourself. If she be in her chamber, or your house, Let loose on me the justice of the state For thus deluding you.

Brabantio: Strike on the tinder, ho! 140 Give me a taper! Call up all my people! This accident° is not unlike my dream. Belief of it oppresses me already. Light, I say! light! Exit [above].

Iago: Farewell, for I must leave you. It seems not meet, nor wholesome to my place, 145 To be produced — as, if I stay, I shall — Against the Moor. For I do know the state, However this may gall him with some check,° Cannot with safety cast° him; for he’s embarked With such loud reason to the Cyprus wars, 150 Which even now stand in act,° that for their souls Another of his fathom° they have none To lead their business; in which regard, Though I do hate him as I do hell-pains, Yet, for necessity of present life, 155 I must show out a fl ag and sign of love, Which is indeed but sign. That you shall surely fi nd him, Lead to the Sagittary° the raisèd search;

123 odd-even: Between night and morning. 127 allowance: Approval. 131 from the sense: In violation. 136 extravagant and wheeling: Expatriate and roving. 142 acci- dent: Occurrence. 148 check: Reprimand. 149 cast: Discharge. 151 stand in act: Are going on. 152 fathom: Capacity. 158 Sagittary: An inn.

act i • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 703

And there will I be with him. So farewell. Exit.

Enter [below] Brabantio in his nightgown,° and Servants with torches.

Brabantio: It is too true an evil. Gone she is; 160 And what’s to come of my despisèd time Is naught but bitterness. Now, Roderigo, Where didst thou see her? — O unhappy girl! — With the Moor, say’st thou? — Who would be a father? — How didst thou know ’twas she! — O, she deceives me 165 Past thought! — What said she to you? — Get moe° tapers! Raise all my kindred! — Are they married, think you?

Roderigo: Truly I think they are. Brabantio: O heaven! How got she out? O treason of the blood!

Fathers, from hence trust not your daughters’ minds 170 By what you see them act. Is there not charms By which the property° of youth and maidhood May be abused? Have you not read, Roderigo, Of some such thing?

Roderigo: Yes, sir, I have indeed. Brabantio: Call up my brother. — O, would you had had her! — 175

Some one way, some another. — Do you know Where we may apprehend her and the Moor?

Roderigo: I think I can discover him, if you please To get good guard and go along with me.

Brabantio: I pray you lead on. At every house I’ll call; 180 I may command at most. — Get weapons, ho! And raise some special offi cers of night. — On, good Roderigo; I’ll deserve° your pains. Exeunt.

Scene II: Before the lodgings of Othello.

Enter Othello, Iago, and Attendants with torches.

Iago: Though in the trade of war I have slain men, Yet do I hold it very stuff o’ th’ conscience To do no contrived murther. I lack iniquity Sometimes to do me service. Nine or ten times I had thought t’ have yerked° him here under the ribs. 5

Othello: ’Tis better as it is. Iago: Nay, but he prated,

And spoke such scurvy and provoking terms Against your honor That with the little godliness I have I did full hard forbear him. But I pray you, sir, 10

nightgown: Dressing gown. 166 moe: More. 172 property: Nature. 183 deserve: Show gratitude for. Scene II. 5 yerked: Stabbed.

704 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1i

Are you fast° married? Be assured of this, That the magnifi co° is much beloved, And hath in his effect a voice potential° As double° as the Duke’s. He will divorce you, Or put upon you what restraint and grievance 15 The law, with all his might to enforce it on, Will give him cable.

Othello: Let him do his spite. My services which I have done the signiory° Shall out-tongue his complaints. ’Tis yet to know° — Which, when I know that boasting is an honor, 20 I shall promulgate — I fetch my life and being From men of royal siege;° and my demerits° May speak unbonneted to as proud a fortune As this that I have reached.° For know, Iago, But that I love the gentle Desdemona, 25 I would not my unhousèd° free condition Put into circumscription and confi ne For the sea’s worth. But look what lights come yond?

Iago: Those are the raisèd father and his friends. You were best go in.

Othello: Not I; I must be found. 30 My parts, my title, and my perfect soul° Shall manifest me rightly. Is it they?

Iago: By Janus, I think no.

Enter Cassio, with torches, Offi cers.

Othello: The servants of the Duke, and my lieutenant. The goodness of the night upon you, friends! 35 What is the news?

Cassio: The Duke does greet you, general; And he requires your haste-post-haste appearance Even on the instant.

Othello: What’s the matter, think you? Cassio: Something from Cyprus, as I may divine.

It is a business of some heat. The galleys 40 Have sent a dozen sequent° messengers This very night at one another’s heels, And many of the consuls, raised and met, Are at the Duke’s already. You have been hotly called for;

11 fast: Securely. 12 magnifi co: Grandee (Brabantio). 13 potential: Powerful. 14 double: Doubly infl uential. 18 signiory: Venetian government. 19 yet to know: Still not generally known. 22 siege: Rank; demerits: Deserts. 23–4 May speak . . . reached: Are equal, I modestly assert, to those of Desdemona’s family. 26 unhousèd: Unre- strained. 31 perfect soul: Stainless conscience. 41 sequent: Consecutive.

act i • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 705

When, being not at your lodging to be found, 45 The Senate hath sent about three several quests To search you out.

Othello: ’Tis well I am found by you. I will but spend a word here in the house, And go with you. [Exit]

Cassio: Ancient, what makes he here? Iago: Faith, he to-night hath boarded a land carack.° 50

If it prove lawful prize, he’s made for ever. Cassio: I do not understand. Iago: He’s married. Cassio: To who?

[Enter Othello.]

Iago: Marry, to — Come, captain, will you go? Othello: Have with you. Cassio: Here comes another troop to seek for you.

Enter Brabantio, Roderigo, and others with lights and weapons.

Iago: It is Brabantio. General, be advised. 55 He comes to bad intent.

Othello: Holla! stand there! Roderigo: Signior, it is the Moor. Brabantio: Down with him, thief!

[They draw on both sides.]

Iago: You, Roderigo! Come, sir, I am for you. Othello: Keep up° your bright swords, for the dew will rust them.

Good signior, you shall more command with years 60 Than with your weapons.

Brabantio: O thou foul thief, where hast thou stowed my daughter? Damned as thou art, thou hast enchanted her! For I’ll refer me to all things of sense, If she in chains of magic were not bound, 65 Whether a maid so tender, fair, and happy, So opposite to marriage that she shunned The wealthy curlèd darlings of our nation, Would ever have, t’ incur a general mock, Run from her guardage to the sooty bosom 70 Of such a thing as thou — to fear, not to delight. Judge me the world if ’tis not gross in sense° That thou hast practiced on her with foul charms, Abused her delicate youth with drugs or minerals That weaken motion.° I’ll have’t disputed on; 75

50 carack: Treasure ship. 59 Keep up: i.e., sheath. 72 gross in sense: Obvious. 75 motion: Perception.

706 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1i

’Tis probable, and palpable to thinking. I therefore apprehend and do attach° thee For an abuser of the world, a practicer Of arts inhibited and out of warrant. Lay hold upon him. If he do resist, 80 Subdue him at his peril.

Othello: Hold your hands, Both you of my inclining and the rest. Were it my cue to fi ght, I should have known it Without a prompter. Where will you that I go To answer this your charge?

Brabantio: To prison, till fi t time 85 Of law and course of direct session° Call thee to answer.

Othello: What if I do obey? How may the Duke be therewith satisfi ed, Whose messengers are here about my side Upon some present business of the state 90 To bring me to him?

Offi cer: ’Tis true, most worthy signior. The Duke’s in council, and your noble self I am sure is sent for.

Brabantio: How? The Duke in council? In this time of the night? Bring him away. Mine’s not an idle° cause. The Duke himself, 95 Or any of my brothers of the state, Cannot but feel this wrong as ’twere their own; For if such actions may have passage free, Bondslaves and pagans shall our statesmen be. Exeunt.

Scene III: The Venetian Senate Chamber.

Enter Duke and Senators, set at a table, with lights and Attendants.

Duke: There is no composition° in these news That gives them credit.

1. Senator: Indeed they are disproportioned. My letters say a hundred and seven galleys.

Duke: And mine a hundred forty. 2. Senator: And mine two hundred.

But though they jump° not on a just account — 5 As in these cases where the aim° reports ’Tis oft with difference — yet do they all confi rm A Turkish fl eet, and bearing up to Cyprus.

77 attach: Arrest. 86 direct session: Regular trial. 95 idle: Trifl ing. Scene III. 1 composition: Consistency. 5 jump: Agree. 6 aim: Conjecture.

act i • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 707

Duke: Nay, it is possible enough to judgment. I do not so secure me° in the error 10 But the main article° I do approve° In fearful sense.

Sailor (within): What, ho! what, ho! what, ho! Offi cer: A messenger from the galleys.

Enter Sailor.

Duke: Now, what’s the business? Sailor: The Turkish preparation makes for Rhodes.

So was I bid report here to the state 15 By Signior Angelo.

Duke: How say you by this change? 1. Senator: This cannot be

By no assay° of reason. ’Tis a pageant To keep us in false gaze.° When we consider Th’ importancy of Cyprus to the Turk, 20 And let ourselves again but understand That, as it more concerns the Turk than Rhodes, So may he with more facile question bear° it, For that it stands not in such warlike brace,° But altogether lacks th’ abilities 25 That Rhodes is dressed in — if we make thought of this, We must not think the Turk is so unskillful To leave that latest which concerns him fi rst, Neglecting an attempt of ease and gain To wake and wage° a danger profi tless. 30

Duke: Nay, in all confi dence, he’s not for Rhodes. Offi cer: Here is more news.

Enter a Messenger.

Messenger: The Ottomites, reverend and gracious, Steering with due course toward the isle of Rhodes, Have there injointed them with an after fl eet. 35

1. Senator: Ay, so I thought. How many, as you guess? Messenger: Of thirty sail; and now they do restem°

Their backward course, bearing with frank appearance Their purposes toward Cyprus, Signior Montano, Your trusty and most valiant servitor, 40 With his free duty recommends you thus, And prays you to believe him.

Duke: ’Tis certain then for Cyprus. Marcus Luccicos,° is not he in town?

10 so secure me: Take such comfort. 11 article: Substance; approve: Accept. 18 assay: Test. 19 in false gaze: Looking the wrong way. 23 with . . . bear: More easily capture. 24 brace: Posture of defense. 30 wake and wage: Rouse and risk. 37 restem: Steer again. 44 Marcus Luccicos: (Presumably a Venetian envoy).

708 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1ii

1. Senator: He’s now in Florence. 45 Duke: Write from us to him; post, post-haste dispatch. 1. Senator: Here comes Brabantio and the valiant Moor.

Enter Brabantio, Othello, Cassio, Iago, Roderigo, and Offi cers.

Duke: Valiant Othello, we must straight employ you Against the general enemy Ottoman. [To Brabantio.] I did not see you. Welcome, gentle signior. 50 We lacked your counsel and your help to-night.

Brabantio: So did I yours. Good your grace, pardon me. Neither my place, nor aught I heard of business, Hath raised me from my bed; nor doth the general care Take hold on me; for my particular grief 55 Is of so fl oodgate° and o’erbearing nature That it engluts° and swallows other sorrows, And it is still itself.

Duke: Why, what’s the matter? Brabantio: My daughter! O, my daughter! All: Dead? Brabantio: Ay, to me.

She is abused, stol’n from me, and corrupted 60 By spells and medicines bought of mountebanks; For nature so prepost’rously to err, Being not defi cient,° blind, or lame of sense, Sans witchcraft could not.

Duke: Whoe’er he be that in this foul proceeding 65 Hath thus beguiled your daughter of herself, And you of her, the bloody book of law You shall yourself read in the bitter letter After your own sense; yea, though our proper° son Stood in your action.°

Brabantio: Humbly I thank your grace. 70 Here is the man — this Moor, whom now, it seems, Your special mandate for the state affairs Hath hither brought.

All: We are very sorry for’t. Duke [to Othello]: What, in your own part, can you say to this? Brabantio: Nothing, but this is so. 75 Othello: Most potent, grave, and reverend signiors,

My very noble, and approved° good masters, That I have ta’en away this old man’s daughter, It is most true; true I have married her.

56 fl oodgate: Torrential. 57 engluts: Devours. 63 defi cient: Feeble-minded. 69 our proper: My own. 70 Stood in your action: Were accused by you. 77 approved: Tested by experience.

act i • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 709

The very head and front of my offending 80 Hath this extent, no more. Rude° am I in my speech, And little blessed with the soft phrase of peace; For since these arms of mine had seven years’ pith° Till now some nine moons wasted, they have used Their dearest action in the tented fi eld; 85 And little of this great world can I speak More than pertains to feats of broil and battle; And therefore little shall I grace my cause In speaking for myself. Yet, by your gracious patience, I will a round° unvarnished tale deliver 90 Of my whole course of love — what drugs, what charms, What conjuration, and what mighty magic (For such proceeding am I charged withal) I won his daughter.

Brabantio: A maiden never bold; Of spirit so still and quiet that her motion 95 Blushed° at herself; and she — in spite of nature, Of years, of country, credit, everything — To fall in love with what she feared to look on! It is a judgment maimed and most imperfect That will confess perfection so could err 100 Against all rules of nature, and must be driven To fi nd out practices° of cunning hell Why this should be. I therefore vouch° again That with some mixtures pow’rful o’er the blood,° Or with some dram, conjured to this effect, 105 He wrought upon her.

Duke: To vouch this is no proof, Without more certain and more overt test Than these thin habits° and poor likelihoods Of modern seeming° do prefer against him.

1. Senator: But, Othello, speak. 110 Did you by indirect and forcèd° courses Subdue and poison this young maid’s affections? Or came it by request, and such fair question° As soul to soul affordeth?

Othello: I do beseech you, Send for the lady to the Sagittary 115 And let her speak of me before her father.

81 Rude: Unpolished. 83 pith: Strength. 90 round: Plain. 95–6 her motion Blushed: Her own emotions caused her to blush. 102 practices: Plots. 103 vouch: Assert. 104 blood: Passions. 108 thin habits: Slight appearances. 109 modern seeming: Everyday supposition. 111 forcèd: Violent. 113 question: Conversation.

710 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1ii

If you do fi nd me foul in her report, The trust, the offi ce, I do hold of you Not only take away, but let your sentence Even fall upon my life.

Duke: Fetch Desdemona hither. 120 Othello: Ancient, conduct them; you best know the place.

Exit [Iago, with] two or three [Attendants]. And till she come, as truly as to heaven I do confess the vices of my blood, So justly to your grave ears I’ll present How I did thrive in this fair lady’s love, 125 And she in mine.

Duke: Say it, Othello. Othello: Her father loved me, oft invited me;

Still° questioned me the story of my life From year to year — the battles, sieges, fortunes 130 That I have passed. I ran it through, even from my boyish days To th’ very moment that he bade me tell it. Wherein I spoke of most disastrous chances, Of moving accidents by fl ood and fi eld; 135 Of hairbreadth scapes i’ th’ imminent deadly breach; Of being taken by the insolent foe And sold to slavery; of my redemption thence And portance° in my travels’ history; Wherein of anters° vast and deserts idle, 140 Rough quarries, rocks, and hills whose heads touch heaven, It was my hint° to speak — such was the process; And of the Cannibals that each other eat, The Anthropophagi,° and men whose heads Do grow beneath their shoulders. This to hear 145 Would Desdemona seriously incline; But still the house affairs would draw her thence; Which ever as she could with haste dispatch, She’ld come again, and with a greedy ear Devour up my discourse. Which I observing, 150 Took once a pliant° hour, and found good means To draw from her a prayer of earnest heart That I would all my pilgrimage dilate,° Whereof by parcels° she had something heard, But not intentively.° I did consent, 155 And often did beguile her of her tears

129 Still: Continually. 139 portance: Behavior. 140 anters: Caves. 142 hint: Occasion. 144 Anthropophagi: Man-eaters. 151 pliant: Propitious. 153 dilate: Recount in full. 154 parcels: Portions. 155 intentively: With full attention.

act i • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 711

When I did speak of some distressful stroke That my youth suffered. My story being done, She gave me for my pains a world of sighs. She swore, i’ faith, ’twas strange, ’twas passing strange; 160 ’Twas pitiful, ’twas wondrous pitiful. She wished she had not heard it; yet she wished That heaven had made her such a man. She thanked me; And bade me, if I had a friend that loved her, I should but teach him how to tell my story, 165 And that would woo her. Upon this hint° I spake. She loved me for the dangers I had passed, And I loved her that she did pity them. This only is the witchcraft I have used. Here comes the lady. Let her witness it. 170 Enter Desdemona, Iago, Attendants.

Duke: I think this tale would win my daughter too. Good Brabantio, Take up this mangled matter at the best. Men do their broken weapons rather use Than their bare hands.

Brabantio: I pray you hear her speak. 175 If she confess that she was half the wooer, Destruction on my head if my bad blame Light on the man! Come hither, gentle mistress. Do you perceive in all this noble company Where most you owe obedience?

Desdemona: My noble father, 180 I do perceive here a divided duty. To you I am bound for life and education;° My life and education both do learn me How to respect you: you are the lord of duty; I am hitherto your daughter. But here’s my husband; 185 And so much duty as my mother showed To you, preferring you before her father, So much I challenge° that I may profess Due to the Moor my lord.

Brabantio: God be with you! I have done. Please it your grace, on to the state affairs. 190 I had rather to adopt a child than get° it. Come hither, Moor. I here do give thee that with all my heart Which, but thou hast already, with all my heart I would keep from thee. For your sake,° jewel, 195

166 hint: Opportunity. 182 education: Upbringing. 188 challenge: Claim the right. 191 get: Beget. 195 For your sake: Because of you.

712 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1ii

I am glad at soul I have no other child; For thy escape° would teach me tyranny, To hang clogs on them. I have done, my lord.

Duke: Let me speak like yourself° and lay a sentence° Which, as a grise° or step, may help these lovers 200 [Into your favor.] When remedies are past, the griefs are ended By seeing the worst, which late on hopes depended. To mourn a mischief that is past and gone Is the next way to draw new mischief on. 205 What cannot be preserved when fortune takes, Patience her injury a mock’ry makes. The robbed that smiles steals something from the thief; He robs himself that spends a bootless grief.

Brabantio: So let the Turk of Cyprus us beguile: 210 We lose it not so long as we can smile. He bears the sentence well that nothing bears But the free comfort which from thence he hears; But he bears both the sentence and the sorrow That to pay grief must of poor patience borrow. 215 These sentences, to sugar, or to gall, Being strong on both sides, are equivocal. But words are words. I never yet did hear That the bruised heart was piercèd through the ear. Beseech you, now to the affairs of state. 220

Duke: The Turk with a most mighty preparation makes for Cyprus. Othello, the fortitude° of the place is best known to you; and though we have there a substitute of most allowed° suffi ciency, yet opinion,° a more sovereign mistress of effects, throws a more safer voice on you. You must therefore be content to slub- ber° the gloss of your new fortunes with this more stubborn and boist’rous expedition.

225

Othello: The tyrant custom, most grave senators, Hath made the fl inty and steel couch of war My thrice-driven bed of down. I do agnize 230 A natural and prompt alacrity I fi nd in hardness;° and do undertake These present wars against the Ottomites. Most humbly, therefore, bending to your state, I crave fi t disposition for my wife, 235 Due reference of place, and exhibition,°

197 escape: Escapade. 199 like yourself: As you should; sentence: Maxim. 200 grise: Step. 222 fortitude: Fortifi cation. 223 allowed: Acknowledged. 224 opinion: Public opinion. 225–26 slubber: Sully. 230–32 agnize . . . hardness: Recognize in myself a natural and easy response to hardship. 236 exhibition: Allowance of money.

act i • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 713

With such accommodation and besort° As levels° with her breeding.

Duke: If you please, Be’t at her father’s.

Brabantio: I will not have it so. Othello: Nor I. Desdemona: Nor I. I would not there reside, 240

To put my father in impatient thoughts By being in his eye. Most gracious Duke, To my unfolding lend your prosperous° ear, And let me fi nd a charter in your voice, T’ assist my simpleness.° 245

Duke: What would you, Desdemona? Desdemona: That I did love the Moor to live with him,

My downright violence, and storm of fortunes, May trumpet to the world. My heart’s subdued Even to the very quality of my lord. 250 I saw Othello’s visage in his mind, And to his honors and his valiant parts Did I my soul and fortunes consecrate. So that, dear lords, if I be left behind, A moth of peace, and he go to the war, 255 The rites for which I love him are bereft me, And I a heavy interim shall support By his dear absence. Let me go with him.

Othello: Let her have your voice. Vouch with me, heaven, I therefore beg it not 260 To please the palate of my appetite, Not to comply with heat° — the young affects° In me defunct — and proper satisfaction; But to be free and bounteous to her mind; And heaven defend your good souls that you think 265 I will your serious and great business scant When she is with me. No, when light-winged toys Of feathered Cupid seel° with wanton dullness My speculative and offi ced instruments,° That° my disports corrupt and taint my business, 270 Let housewives make a skillet of my helm, And all indign° and base adversities Make head against my estimation!°

Duke: Be it as you shall privately determine,

237 besort: Suitable company. 238 levels: Corresponds. 243 prosperous: Favor- able. 245 simpleness: Lack of skill. 262 heat: Passions; young affects: Tendencies of youth. 268 seel: Blind. 269 My . . . instruments: My perceptive and responsible faculties. 270 That: So that. 272 indign: Unworthy. 273 estimation: Reputation.

714 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1ii

Either for her stay or going. Th’ affair cries haste, 275 And speed must answer it.

1. Senator: You must away to-night. Othello: With all my heart. Duke: At nine i’ th’ morning here we’ll meet again.

Othello, leave some offi cer behind, And he shall our commission bring to you, 280 With such things else of quality and respect As doth import° you.

Othello: So please your grace, my ancient; A man he is of honesty and trust To his conveyance I assign my wife, With what else needful your good grace shall think 285 To be sent after me.

Duke: Let it be so. Good night to every one. [To Brabantio.] And, noble signior, If virtue no delighted° beauty lack, Your son-in-law is far more fair than black.

1. Senator: Adieu, brave Moor. Use Desdemona well. 290 Brabantio: Look to her, Moor, if thou hast eyes to see:

She has deceived her father, and may thee. Exeunt [Duke, Senators, Offi cers, &c.].

Othello: My life upon her faith! — Honest Iago, My Desdemona must I leave to thee. I prithee let thy wife attend on her, 295 And bring them after in the best advantage.° Come, Desdemona. I have but an hour Of love, of worldly matters and direction, To spend with thee. We must obey the time. Exit Moor and Desdemona.

Roderigo: Iago, — 300 Iago: What say’st thou, noble heart? Roderigo: What will I do, think’st thou? Iago: Why, go to bed and sleep. Roderigo: I will incontinently° drown myself.

305Iago: If thou dost, I shall never love thee after. Why, thou silly gentleman!

Roderigo: It is silliness to live when to live is torment; and then have we a prescription to die when death is our physician.

310 Iago: O villainous! I have looked upon the world for four times

seven years; and since I could distinguish betwixt a benefi t and

282 import: Concern. 288 delighted: Delightful. 296 in the best advantage: At the best opportunity. 304 incontinently: Forthwith.

act i • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 715

315

320

325

330

335

340

345

an injury, I never found man that knew how to love himself. Ere I would say I would drown myself for the love of a guinea hen, I would change my humanity with a baboon.

Roderigo: What should I do? I confess it is my shame to be so fond, but it is not in my virtue to amend it.

Iago: Virtue? a fi g! ’Tis in ourselves that we are thus or thus. Our bodies are our gardens, to which our wills are gardeners; so that if we will plant nettles or sow lettuce, set hyssop and weed up thyme, supply it with one gender° of herbs or distract it with many — either to have it sterile with idleness or manured with industry — why, the power and corrigible authority° of this lies in our wills. If the balance of our lives had not one scale of rea- son to poise° another of sensuality, the blood and baseness° of our natures would conduct us to most preposterous conclu- sions. But we have reason to cool our raging motions,° our car- nal strings, our unbitted° lusts; whereof I take this that you call love to be a sect or scion.°

Roderigo: It cannot be. Iago: It is merely a lust of the blood and a permission of the will.

Come, be a man! Drown thyself? Drown cats and blind pup- pies! I have professed me thy friend, and I confess me knit to thy deserving with cables of perdurable toughness. I could never better stead thee than now. Put money in thy purse. Follow thou the wars; defeat thy favor° with an usurped beard. I say, put money in thy purse. It cannot be that Desdemona should long continue her love to the Moor — put money in thy purse — nor he his to her. It was a violent commencement in her, and thou shalt see an answerable sequestration° — put but money in thy purse. These Moors are changeable in their wills — fi ll thy purse with money. The food that to him now is as luscious as locusts shall be to him shortly as bitter as coloquintida.° She must change for youth: when she is sated with his body, she will fi nd the error of her choice. [She must have change, she must.] Therefore put money in thy purse. If thou wilt needs damn thy- self, do it a more delicate way than drowning. Make° all the money thou canst. If sanctimony and a frail vow betwixt an err- ing° barbarian and a supersubtle Venetian be not too hard for my wits and all the tribe of hell, thou shalt enjoy her. Therefore make money. A pox of drowning thyself! ’Tis clean out of the

319 gender: Species. 321 corrigible authority: Corrective power. 323 poise: Counter- balance; blood and baseness: Animal instincts. 325 motions: Appetites. 326 unbitted: Uncontrolled. 327 sect or scion: Offshoot, cutting. 334 defeat thy favor: Spoil thy appearance. 338 sequestration: Estrangement. 341 coloquintida: A medicine. 345 Make: Raise. 346–47 erring: Wandering.

350

716 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act i • scene 1ii

way. Seek thou rather to be hanged in compassing thy joy than to be drowned and go without her.

Roderigo: Wilt thou be fast to my hopes, if I depend on the issue?

355

Iago: Thou art sure of me. Go, make money. I have told thee often, and I retell thee again and again, I hate the Moor. My cause is hearted;° thine hath no less reason. Let us be conjunctive in our revenge against him. If thou canst cuckold him, thou dost thy- self a pleasure, me a sport. There are many events in the womb of time, which will be delivered. Traverse,° go, provide thy money! We will have more of this to-morrow. Adieu.

Roderigo: Where shall we meet i’ th’ morning? 360 Iago: At my lodging. Roderigo: I’ll be with thee betimes. Iago: Go to, farewell — Do you hear, Roderigo? [Roderigo: What say you? Iago: No more of drowning, do you hear? 365 Roderigo: I am changed. Iago: Go to, farewell. Put money enough in your purse.] Roderigo: I’ll sell all my land. Exit. Iago: Thus do I ever make my fool my purse;

For I mine own gained knowledge should profane 370 If I would time expend with such a snipe° But for my sport and profi t. I hate the Moor; And it is thought abroad that ’twixt my sheets H’as done my offi ce. I know not if’t be true; But I, for mere suspicion in that kind, 375 Will do as if for surety. He holds me well;° The better shall my purpose work on him. Cassio’s a proper man. Let me see now: To get his place, and to plume up° my will In double knavery — How, how? — Let’s see: — 380 After some time, to abuse Othello’s ears That he is too familiar with his wife. He hath a person and a smooth dispose° To be suspected — framed to make women false. The Moor is of a free° and open nature 385 That thinks men honest that but seem to be so; And will as tenderly be led by th’ nose As asses are. I have’t! It is engend’red! Hell and night Must bring this monstrous birth to the world’s light. Exit. 390

354–55 My cause is hearted: My heart is in it. 358 Traverse: Forward march. 371 snipe: Fool. 376 well: In high regard. 379 plume up: Gratify. 383 dispose: Manner. 385 free: Frank.

act ii • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 717

AC T I I

Scene I: An open place in Cyprus, near the harbor.

Enter Montano and two Gentlemen.

Montano: What from the cape can you discern at sea? 1. Gentleman: Nothing at all: it is a high-wrought fl ood.

I cannot ’twixt the heaven and the main Descry a sail.

Montano: Methinks the wind hath spoke aloud at land; 5 A fuller blast ne’er shook our battlements. If it hath ruffi aned so upon the sea, What ribs of oak, when mountains melt on them, Can hold the mortise?° What shall we hear of this?

2. Gentleman: A segregation° of the Turkish fl eet. 10 For do but stand upon the foaming shore, The chidden billow seems to pelt the clouds; The wind-shaked surge, with high and monstrous mane, Seems to cast water on the burning Bear And quench the Guards° of th’ ever-fi xèd pole.° 15 I never did like molestation° view On the enchafèd fl ood.

Montano: If that the Turkish fl eet Be not ensheltered and embayed, they are drowned; It is impossible to bear it out.

Enter a third Gentleman.

3. Gentleman: News, lads! Our wars are done. 20 The desperate tempest hath so banged the Turks That their designment halts.° A noble ship of Venice Hath seen a grievous wrack and sufferance° On most part of their fl eet.

Montano: How? Is this true? 3. Gentleman: The ship is here put in, 25

A Veronesa;° Michael Cassio, Lieutenant to the warlike Moor Othello, Is come on shore; the Moor himself at sea, And is in full commission here for Cyprus.

Montano: I am glad on’t. ’Tis a worthy governor. 30 3. Gentleman: But his same Cassio, though he speak of comfort

Touching the Turkish loss, yet he looks sadly

Act II, Scene I. 9 hold the mortise: Hold their joints together. 10 segregation: Scattering. 15 Guards: Stars near the North Star; pole: Polestar. 16 molestation: Tumult. 22 designment halts: Plan is crippled. 23 sufferance: Disaster. 26 Veronesa: Ship furnished by Verona.

718 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1

And prays the Moor be safe, for they were parted With foul and violent tempest.

Montano: Pray heaven he be; For I have served him, and the man commands 35 Like a full soldier. Let’s to the seaside, ho! As well to see the vessel that’s come in As to throw out our eyes for brave Othello, Even till we make the main and th’ aerial blue An indistinct regard.°

3. Gentleman: Come, let’s do so; 40 For every minute is expectancy Of more arrivance.

Enter Cassio.

Cassio: Thanks, you the valiant of this warlike isle, That so approve the Moor! O, let the heavens Give him defense against the elements, 45 For I have lost him on a dangerous sea!

Montano: Is he well shipped? Cassio: His bark is stoutly timbered, and his pilot

Of very expert and approved allowance; Therefore my hopes, not surfeited to death,° 50 Stand in bold cure.° (Within.) A sail, a sail, a sail! Enter a messenger.

Cassio: What noise? Messenger: The town is empty; on the brow o’ th’ sea

Stand ranks of people, and they cry “A sail!” Cassio: My hopes do shape him for the governor. 55

A shot.

2. Gentleman: They do discharge their shot of courtesy: Our friends at least.

Cassio: I pray you, sir, go forth And give us truth who ’tis that is arrived.

2. Gentleman: I shall. Exit. Montano: But, good lieutenant, is your general wived? 60 Cassio: Most fortunately. He hath achieved a maid

That paragons° description and wild fame; One that excels the quirks° of blazoning° pens, And in th’ essential vesture of creation Does tire the ingener.°

Enter Second Gentleman.

40 An indistinct regard: Indistinguishable. 50 surfeited to death: Overindulged. 51 in bold cure: A good chance of fulfi llment. 62 paragons: Surpasses. 63 quirks: Ingenuities; blazoning: Describing. 64–5 And . . . ingener: Merely to describe her as God made her exhausts her praiser.

act ii • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 719

How now? Who has put in? 65 2. Gentleman: ’Tis one Iago, ancient to the general. Cassio: H’as had most favorable and happy speed:

Tempests themselves, high seas, and howling winds, The guttered° rocks and congregated sands, Traitors ensteeped° to clog the guiltless keel, 70 As having sense of beauty, do omit Their mortal° natures, letting go safely by The divine Desdemona.

Montano: What is she? Cassio: She that I spake of, our great captain’s captain,

Left in the conduct of the bold Iago, 75 Whose footing° here anticipates our thoughts A se’nnight’s° speed. Great Jove, Othello guard, And swell his sail with thine own pow’rful breath, That he may bless this bay with his tall ship, Make love’s quick pants in Desdemona’s arms, 80 Give renewed fi re to our extincted spirits, [And bring all Cyprus comfort!]

Enter Desdemona, Iago, Roderigo, and Emilia [with Attendants].

O, behold! The riches of the ship is come on shore! You men of Cyprus, let her have your knees.° Hail to thee, lady! and the grace of heaven, 85 Before, behind thee, and on every hand, Enwheel thee round!

Desdemona: I thank you, valiant Cassio. What tidings can you tell me of my lord?

Cassio: He is not yet arrived; nor know I aught But that he’s well and will be shortly here. 90

Desdemona: O but I fear! How lost you company? Cassio: The great contention of the sea and skies

Parted our fellowship. (Within.) A sail, a sail! [A shot.] But hark. A sail!

2. Gentleman: They give their greeting to the citadel; This likewise is a friend.

Cassio: See for the news. 95 [Exit Gentleman.]

Good ancient, you are welcome. [To Emilia.] Welcome, mistress. — Let it not gall your patience, good Iago,

69 guttered: Jagged. 70 ensteeped: Submerged. 72 mortal: Deadly. 76 footing: Landing. 77 se’nnight’s: Week’s. 84 knees: i.e., kneeling.

720 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1

That I extend my manners. ’Tis my breeding That gives me this bold show of courtesy. [Kisses Emilia.°]

Iago: Sir, would she give you so much of her lips 100 As of her tongue she oft bestows on me, You would have enough.

Desdemona: Alas, she has no speech! Iago: In faith, too much.

I fi nd it still when I have list to sleep. Marry, before your ladyship, I grant, 105 She puts her tongue a little in her heart And chides with thinking.

Emilia: You have little cause to say so. Iago: Come on, come on! You are pictures out of doors,

Bells in your parlors, wildcats in your kitchens, 110 Saints in your injuries, devils being offended, Players in your housewifery,° and housewives° in your beds.

Desdemona: O, fi e upon thee, slanderer! Iago: Nay, it is true, or else I am a Turk:

You rise to play, and go to bed to work. 115 Emilia: You shall not write my praise. Iago: No, let me not. Desdemona: What wouldst thou write of me, if thou shouldst

praise me? Iago: O gentle lady, do not put me to’t,

For I am nothing if not critical. Desdemona: Come on, assay.° — There’s one gone to the harbor? 120 Iago: Ay, madam. Desdemona: I am not merry; but I do beguile

The thing I am by seeming otherwise. — Come, how wouldst thou praise me?

Iago: I am about it; but indeed my invention 125 Comes from my pate as birdlime° does from frieze° — It plucks out brains and all. But my Muse labors, And thus she is delivered: If she be fair and wise, fairness and wit — The one’s for use, the other useth it. 130

Desdemona: Well praised! How if she be black° and witty? Iago: If she be black, and thereto have a wit,

She’ll fi nd a white that shall her blackness fi t. Desdemona: Worse and worse! Emilia: How if fair and foolish? 135

Kisses Emilia: (Kissing was a common Elizabethan form of social courtesy). 112 housewifery: Housekeeping; housewives: Hussies. 120 assay: Try. 126 birdlime: A sticky paste; frieze: Rough cloth. 131 black: Brunette.

act ii • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 721

Iago: She never yet was foolish that was fair, For even her folly° helped her to an heir.

Desdemona: These are old fond° paradoxes to make fools laugh i’ th’ alehouse. What miserable praise hast thou for her that’s foul° and foolish? 140

Iago: There’s none so foul, and foolish thereunto, But does foul pranks which fair and wise ones do.

Desdemona: O heavy ignorance! Thou praisest the worst best. But what praise couldst thou bestow on a deserving woman indeed — one that in the authority of her merit did justly put on the vouch° of very malice itself?

145

Iago: She that was ever fair, and never proud; Had tongue at will, and yet was never loud; Never lacked gold, and yet went never gay; Fled from her wish, and yet said “Now I may”; 150 She that, being ang’red, her revenge being nigh, Bade her wrong stay, and her displeasure fl y; She that in wisdom never was so frail To change the cod’s head for the salmon’s tail;° She that could think, and ne’er disclose her mind; 155 See suitors following, and not look behind: She was a wight (if ever such wight were) —

Desdemona: To do what? Iago: To suckle fools and chronicle small beer.° Desdemona: O most lame and impotent conclusion! Do not learn of

him, Emilia, though he be thy husband. How say you, Cassio? Is he not a most profane and liberal° counsellor?

160

Cassio: He speaks home,° madam. You may relish him more in the soldier than in the scholar.

165Iago [aside]: He takes her by the palm. Ay, well said, whisper! With as little a web as this will I ensnare as great a fl y as Cassio. Ay, smile upon her, do! I will gyve thee in thine own courtship.° — You say true; ’tis so, indeed! — If such tricks as these strip you out of your lieutenantry, it had been better you had not kissed your three fi ngers so oft — which now again you are most apt to play the sir° in. Very good! well kissed! an excellent courtesy! ’Tis so, indeed. Yet again your fi ngers to your lips? Would they were clyster pipes° for your sake! (Trumpet within.)

170

The Moor! I know his trumpet. Cassio: ’Tis truly so. 175

137 folly: Wantonness. 138 fond: Foolish. 139 foul: Ugly. 145 put on the vouch: Compel the approval. 154 To . . . tail: i.e., to exchange the good for the poor but expensive. 159 chronicle small beer: Keep petty household accounts. 162 profane and liberal: Worldly and licentious. 163 home: Bluntly. 167 gyve . . . courtship: Manacle you by means of your courtly manners. 171 sir: Courtly gentleman. 173 clyster pipes: Syringes.

722 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1

Desdemona: Let’s meet him and receive him. Cassio: Lo, where he comes.

Enter Othello and Attendants.

Othello: O my fair warrior! Desdemona: My dear Othello! Othello: It gives me wonder great as my content

To see you here before me. O my soul’s joy! 180 If after every tempest come such calms, May the winds blow till they have wakened death! And let the laboring bark climb hills of seas Olympus-high, and duck again as low As hell’s from heaven! If it were now to die, 185 ’Twere now to be most happy;° for I fear My soul hath her content so absolute That not another comfort like to this Succeeds in unknown fate.

Desdemona: The heavens forbid But that our loves and comforts should increase 190 Even as our days do grow.

Othello: Amen to that, sweet powers! I cannot speak enough of this content; It stops me here; it is too much of joy. And this, and this, the greatest discords be

They kiss.

That e’er our hearts shall make! Iago [aside]: O, you are well tuned now! 195

But I’ll set down° the pegs that make this music, As honest as I am.

Othello: Come, let us to the castle. News, friends! Our wars are done; the Turks are drowned. How does my old acquaintance of this isle? — Honey, you shall be well desired° in Cyprus; 200 I have found great love amongst them. O my sweet, I prattle out of fashion, and I dote In mine own comforts. I prithee, good Iago, Go to the bay and disembark my coffers. Bring thou the master° to the citadel; 205 He is a good one, and his worthiness Does challenge° much respect. — Come, Desdemona, Once more well met at Cyprus.

Exit Othello [with all but Iago and Roderigo].

186 happy: Fortunate. 196 set down: Loosen. 200 well desired: Warmly welcomed. 205 master: Ship captain. 207 challenge: Deserve.

act ii • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 723

220

225

230

235

Iago [to an Attendant, who goes out]: Do thou meet me presently at the harbor. [To Roderigo.] Come hither. If thou be’st valiant (as they say base men being in love have then a nobility in their natures more than is native to them), list me. The lieutenant to-night watches on the court of guard.° First, I must tell thee this: Des- demona is directly in love with him.

210

Roderigo: With him? Why, ’tis not possible. 215 Iago: Lay thy fi nger thus,° and let thy soul be instructed. Mark me

with what violence she fi rst loved the Moor, but for bragging and telling her fantastical lies; and will she love him still for prating? Let not thy discreet heart think it. Her eye must be fed; and what delight shall she have to look on the devil? When the blood is made dull with the act of sport, there should be, again to infl ame it and to give satiety a fresh appetite, loveliness in favor, sympathy in years, manners, and beauties; all which the Moor is defective in. Now for want of these required conve- niences,° her delicate tenderness will fi nd itself abused, begin to heave the gorge,° disrelish and abhor the Moor. Very nature will instruct her in it and compel her to some second choice. Now, sir, this granted — as it is a most pregnant° and unforced position — who stands so eminent in the degree of this fortune as Cassio does? A knave very voluble; no further conscionable° than in putting on the mere form of civil and humane° seeming for the better compassing of his salt° and most hidden loose affection? Why, none! why, none! A slipper° and subtle knave; a fi nder-out of occasions; that has an eye can stamp and coun- terfeit advantages, though true advantage never present itself; a devilish knave! Besides, the knave is handsome, young, and hath all those requisites in him that folly and green minds look after. A pestilent complete knave! and the woman hath found him already.

Roderigo: I cannot believe that in her; she’s full of most blessed con- dition.°

240

Iago: Blessed fi g’s-end! The wine she drinks is made of grapes. If she had been blessed, she would never have loved the Moor. Blessed pudding! Didst thou not see her paddle with the palm of his hand? Didst not mark that? 245

Roderigo: Yes, that I did; but that was but courtesy. Iago: Lechery, by this hand! an index and obscure prologue to the

history of lust and foul thoughts. They met so near with their lips that their breaths embraced together. Villainous thoughts,

213 court of guard: Headquarters. 216 thus: i.e., on your lips. 224–25 conveniences: Compatibilities. 226 heave the gorge: Be nauseated. 228 pregnant: Evident. 230 conscionable: Conscientious. 231 humane: Polite. 232 salt: Lecherous. 233 slipper: Slippery. 240–41 condition: Character.

724 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1

250

260

Roderigo! When these mutualities° so marshal the way, hard at hand comes the master and main exercise, th’ incorporate° con- clusion. Pish! But, sir, be you ruled by me: I have brought you from Venice. Watch you to-night; for the command, I’ll lay’t upon you. Cassio knows you not. I’ll not be far from you: do you fi nd some occasion to anger Cassio, either by speaking too loud, or tainting° his discipline, or from what other course you please which the time shall more favorably minister.

255

Roderigo: Well. Iago: Sir, he’s rash and very sudden in choler,° and haply with his

truncheon may strike at you. Provoke him that he may; for even out of that will I cause these of Cyprus to mutiny; whose qualifi - cation° shall come into no true taste° again but by the displant- ing of Cassio. So shall you have a shorter journey to your desires by the means I shall then have to prefer° them; and the impedi- ment most profi tably removed without the which there were no expectation of our prosperity.

265

Roderigo: I will do this if you can bring it to any opportunity. Iago: I warrant thee. Meet me by and by at the citadel; I must fetch

his necessaries ashore. Farewell. Roderigo: Adieu. Exit. 270 Iago: That Cassio loves her, I do well believe’t;

That she loves him, ’tis apt° and of great credit. The Moor, howbeit that I endure him not, Is of a constant, loving, noble nature, And I dare think he’ll prove to Desdemona 275 A most dear husband. Now I do love her too; Not out of absolute lust, though peradventure I stand accountant° for as great a sin, But partly led to diet° my revenge, For that I do suspect the lusty Moor 280 Hath leaped into my seat; the thought whereof Doth, like a poisonous mineral, gnaw my inwards; And nothing can or shall content my soul Till I am evened with him, wife for wife; Or failing so, yet that I put the Moor 285 At least into a jealousy so strong That judgment cannot cure. Which thing to do, If this poor trash of Venice, whom I trash°

250 mutualities: Exchanges. 251 incorporate: Carnal. 256 tainting: Discrediting. 259 sudden in choler: Violent in anger. 261–62 qualifi cation: Appeasement. 262 true taste: Satisfactory state. 264 prefer: Advance. 272 apt: Probable. 278 accountant: Accountable. 279 diet: Feed. 288 I trash: I weight down (in order to keep under control).

act ii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 725

For° his quick hunting, stand the putting on,° I’ll have our Michael Cassio on the hip,° 290 Abuse him to the Moor in the rank garb° (For I fear Cassio with my nightcap too), Make the Moor thank me, love me, and reward me For making him egregiously an ass And practicing upon° his peace and quiet 295 Even to madness. ’Tis here, but yet confused: Knavery’s plain face is never seen till used. Exit.

Scene II: A street in Cyprus.

Enter Othello’s Herald, with a proclamation.

5

Herald: It is Othello’s pleasure, our noble and valiant general, that, upon certain tidings now arrived, importing the mere perdi- tion° of the Turkish fl eet, every man put himself into triumph; some to dance, some to make bonfi res, each man to what sport and revels his addiction leads him. For, besides these benefi cial news, it is the celebration of his nuptial. So much was his plea- sure should be proclaimed. All offi ces° are open, and there is full liberty of feasting from the present hour of fi ve till the bell have told eleven. Heaven bless the isle of Cyprus and our noble general Othello! Exit. 10

Scene III: The Cyprian Castle.

Enter Othello, Desdemona, Cassio, and Attendants.

Othello: Good Michael, look you to the guard to-night. Let’s teach ourselves that honorable stop, Not to outsport discretion.

Cassio: Iago hath direction what to do; But not withstanding, with my personal eye 5 Will I look to’t.

Othello: Iago is most honest. Michael, good night. To-morrow with your earliest Let me have speech with you. [To Desdemona.] Come, my dear love. The purchase made, the fruits are to ensue; That profi t ’s yet to come ’tween me and you. — 10 Good night.

Exit [Othello with Desdemona and Attendants].

289 For: In order to develop; stand the putting on: Responds to my inciting. 290 on the hip: At my mercy. 291 rank garb: Gross manner. 295 practicing upon: Plotting against. Scene II. 2–3 mere perdition: Complete destruction. 7 offi ces: Kitchens and storerooms.

726 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1ii

Enter Iago.

Cassio: Welcome, Iago. We must to the watch. Iago: Not this hour, lieutenant; ’tis not yet ten o’ th’ clock. Our gen-

eral cast° us thus early for the love of his Desdemona; who let us not therefore blame. He hath not yet made wanton the night with her, and she is sport for Jove.

15

Cassio: She’s a most exquisite lady. Iago: And, I’ll warrant her, full of game. Cassio: Indeed, she’s a most fresh and delicate creature. Iago: What an eye she has! Methinks it sounds a parley to provocation. 20 Cassio: An inviting eye; and yet methinks right modest. Iago: And when she speaks, is it not an alarum to love? Cassio: She is indeed perfection. Iago: Well, happiness to their sheets! Come, lieutenant, I have a

stoup° of wine, and here without are a brace of Cyprus gallants that would fain have a measure to the health of black Othello.

25

Cassio: Not to-night, good Iago. I have very poor and unhappy brains for drinking; I could well wish courtesy would invent some other custom of entertainment.

Iago: O, they are our friends. But one cup! I’ll drink for you. 30 Cassio: I have drunk but one cup to-night, and that was craftily

qualifi ed° too; and behold what innovation° it makes here. I am unfortunate in the infi rmity and dare not task my weakness with any more.

Iago: What, man! ’Tis a night of revels: the gallants desire it. 35 Cassio: Where are they? Iago: Here at the door; I pray you call them in. Cassio: I’ll do’t, but it dislikes me. Exit. Iago: If I can fasten but one cup upon him

With that which he hath drunk to-night already, 40 He’ll be as full of quarrel and offense As my young mistress’ dog. Now my sick fool Roderigo, Whom love hath turned almost the wrong side out, To Desdemona hath to-night caroused Potations pottle-deep;° and he’s to watch. 45 Three lads of Cyprus — noble swelling spirits, That hold their honors in a wary distance,° The very elements° of this warlike isle — Have I to-night fl ustered with fl owing cups, And they watch too. Now, ’mongst this fl ock of drunkards 50

Scene III. 14 cast: Dismissed. 25 stoup: Two-quart tankard. 32 qualifi ed: Diluted; innovation: Disturbance. 45 pottle-deep: Bottoms up. 47 That . . . distance: Very sen- sitive about their honor. 48 very elements: True representatives.

act ii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 727

Am I to put our Cassio in some action That may offend the isle.

Enter Cassio, Montano, and Gentlemen [; Servants following with wine].

But here they come. If consequence do but approve my dream, My boat sails freely, both with wind and stream.

Cassio: ’Fore God, they have given me a rouse° already. 55 Montano: Good faith, a little one; not past a pint, as I am a soldier. Iago: Some wine, ho!

[Sings.] And let me the canakin clink, clink; And let me the canakin clink A soldier’s a man; 60 A life’s but a span, Why then, let a soldier drink. Some wine, boys!

Cassio: ’Fore God, an excellent song! 65Iago: I learned it in England, where indeed they are most potent

in potting. Your Dane, your German, and your swag-bellied Hollander — Drink, ho! — are nothing to your English.

Cassio: Is your Englishman so expert in his drinking? Iago: Why, he drinks you with facility your Dane dead drunk; he

sweats not to overthrow your Almain; he gives your Hollander a vomit ere the next pottle can be fi lled.

70

Cassio: To the health of our general! Montano: I am for it, lieutenant, and I’ll do you justice. Iago: O sweet England!

[Sings.] King Stephen was a worthy peer; 75 His breeches cost him but a crown; He held ’em sixpence all too dear, With that he called the tailor lown.° He was a wight of high renown, And thou art but of low degree. 80 ’Tis pride that pulls the country down; Then take thine auld cloak about thee. Some wine, ho!

Cassio: ’Fore God, this is a more exquisite song than the other. Iago: Will you hear’t again? 85 Cassio: No, for I hold him to be unworthy of his place that does

those things.° Well, God’s above all; and there be souls must be saved, and there be souls must not be saved.

Iago: It’s true, good lieutenant.

55 rouse: Bumper. 78 lown: Rascal. 86–7 does those things: i.e., behaves in this fashion.

728 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1ii

Cassio: For mine own part — no offense to the general, nor any man of quality — I hope to be saved.

90

Iago: And so do I too, lieutenant. Cassio: Ay, but, by your leave, not before me. The lieutenant is to

be saved before the ancient. Let’s have no more of this; let’s to our affairs. — God forgive us our sins! — Gentlemen, let’s look to our business. Do not think, gentlemen, I am drunk. This is my ancient; this is my right hand, and this is my left. I am not drunk now. I can stand well enough, and I speak well enough.

95

All: Excellent well! Cassio: Why, very well then. You must not think then that I am

drunk. Exit. 100

Montano: To th’ platform, masters. Come, let’s set the watch. Iago: You see this fellow that is gone before.

He’s a soldier fi t to stand by Caesar And give direction; and do but see his vice. 105 ’Tis to his virtue a just equinox,° The one as long as th’ other. ’Tis pity of him. I fear the trust Othello puts him in, On some odd time of his infi rmity, Will shake this island.

Montano: But is he often thus? 110 Iago: ’Tis evermore his prologue to his sleep:

He’ll watch the horologe a double set° If drink rock not his cradle.

Montano: It were well The general were put in mind of it. Perhaps he sees it not, or his good nature 115 Prizes the virtue that appears in Cassio And looks not on his evils. Is not this true? Enter Roderigo.

Iago [aside to him]: How now, Roderigo? I pray you after the lieutenant, go! Exit Roderigo.

Montano: And ’tis great pity that the noble Moor 120 Should hazard such a place as his own second With one of an ingraft° infi rmity. It were an honest action to say So to the Moor.

Iago: Not I, for this fair island! I do love Cassio well and would do much 125 To cure him of this evil. (Within.) Help! help! But hark! What noise?

106 just equinox: Exact equivalent. 112 watch . . . set: Stay awake twice around the clock. 122 ingraft: i.e., ingrained.

act ii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 729

Enter Cassio, driving in Roderigo.

Cassio: Zounds, you rogue! you rascal! Montano: What’s the matter, lieutenant? Cassio: A knave to teach me my duty?

I’ll beat the knave into a twiggen° bottle. 130 Roderigo: Beat me? Cassio: Dost thou prate, rogue? [Strikes him.] Montano: Nay, good lieutenant!

[Stays him.] I pray you, sir, hold your hand.

Cassio: Let me go, sir, Or I’ll knock you o’er the mazzard.°

Montano: Come, come, you’re drunk! Cassio: Drunk?

They fi ght. Iago [aside to Roderigo]: Away, I say! Go out and cry a mutiny! 135

Exit Roderigo. Nay, good lieutenant. God’s will, gentlemen! Help, ho! — lieutenant — sir — Montano — sir — Help, masters! — Here’s a goodly watch indeed!

A bell rung.

Who’s that which rings the bell? Diablo, ho! The town will rise.° God’s will, lieutenant, hold! 140 You’ll be shamed for ever. Enter Othello and Gentlemen with weapons.

Othello: What is the matter here? Montano: Zounds, I bleed still. I am hurt to th’ death.

He dies! Othello: Hold for your lives! Iago: Hold, hold! Lieutenant — sir — Montano — gentlemen! 145

Have you forgot all sense of place and duty? Hold! The general speaks to you. Hold, for shame!

Othello: Why, how now ho? From whence ariseth this? Are we turned Turks, and to ourselves do that Which heaven hath forbid the Ottomites? 150 For Christian shame put by this barbarous brawl! He that stirs next to carve for° his own rage Holds his soul light; he dies upon his motion. Silence that dreadful bell! It frights the isle From her propriety.° What is the matter, masters? 155 Honest Iago, that looks dead with grieving,

130 twiggen: Wicker-covered. 133 mazzard: Head. 140 rise: Grow riotous. 152 carve for: Indulge. 155 propriety: Proper self.

730 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1ii

Speak. Who began this? On thy love, I charge thee. Iago: I do not know. Friends all, but now, even now,

In quarter,° and in terms like bride and groom Devesting them for bed; and then, but now — 160 As if some planet had unwitted men — Swords out, and tilting one at other’s breast In opposition bloody. I cannot speak Any beginning to this peevish odds,° And would in action glorious I had lost 165 Those legs that brought me to a part of it!

Othello: How comes it, Michael, you are thus forgot? Cassio: I pray you pardon me; I cannot speak. Othello: Worthy Montano, you were wont to be civil;

The gravity and stillness of your youth 170 The world hath noted, and your name is great In months of wisest censure.° What’s the matter That you unlace° your reputation thus And spend your rich opinion° for the name Of a night-brawler? Give me answer to it. 175

Montano: Worthy Othello, I am hurt to danger. Your offi cer, Iago, can inform you, While I spare speech, which something now offends° me, Of all that I do know; nor know I aught By me that’s said or done amiss this night, 180 Unless self-charity be sometimes a vice, And to defend ourselves it be a sin When violence assails us.

Othello: Now, by heaven, My blood° begins my safer guides to rule, And passion, having my best judgment collied,° 185 Assays° to lead the way. If I once stir Or do but lift this arm, the best of you Shall sink in my rebuke. Give me to know How this foul rout began, who set it on; And he that is approved in° this offense, 190 Though he had twinned with me, both at a birth, Shall lose me. What! in a town of war, Yet wild, the people’s hearts brimful of fear, To manage° private and domestic quarrel? In night, and on the court and guard of safety? 195 ’Tis monstrous. Iago, who began’t?

159 quarter: Friendliness. 164 peevish odds: Childish quarrel. 172 censure: Judgment. 173 unlace: Undo. 174 rich opinion: High reputation. 178 offends: Pains. 184 blood: Passion. 185 collied: Darkened. 186 Assays: Tries. 190 approved in: Proved guilty of. 194 manage: Carry on.

act ii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 731

Montano: If partially affi ned, or leagued in offi ce,° Thou dost deliver more or less than truth, Thou art no soldier.

Iago: Touch me not so near. I had rather have this tongue cut from my mouth 200 Than it should do offense to Michael Cassio; Yet I persuade myself, to speak the truth Shall nothing wrong him. This it is, general. Montano and myself being in speech, There comes a fellow crying out for help, 205 And Cassio following him with determined sword To execute° upon him. Sir, this gentleman Steps in to Cassio and entreats his pause. Myself the crying fellow did pursue, Lest by his clamor — as it so fell out — 210 The town might fall in fright. He, swift of foot, Outran my purpose; and I returned then rather For that I heard the clink and fall of swords, And Cassio high in oath;° which till to-night I ne’er might say before. When I came back — 215 For this was brief — I found them close together At blow and thrust, even as again they were When you yourself did part them. More of this matter cannot I report; But men are men; the best sometimes forget. 220 Though Cassio did some little wrong to him, As men in rage strike those that wish them best, Yet surely Cassio I believe received From him that fl ed some strange indignity, Which patience could not pass.°

Othello: I know, Iago, 225 Thy honesty and love doth mince this matter, Making it light to Cassio. Cassio, I love thee; But never more be offi cer of mine.

Enter Desdemona, attended.

Look if my gentle love be not raised up! I’ll make thee an example.

Desdemona: What’s the matter? 230 Othello: All’s well now, sweeting; come away to bed.

[To Montano.] Sir, for your hurts, myself will be your surgeon. Lead him off.

197 partially . . . offi ce: Prejudiced by comradeship or offi cial relations. 207 execute: Work his will. 214 high in oath: Cursing. 225 pass: Pass over, ignore.

732 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1ii

[Montano is led off.]

Iago, look with care about the town And silence those whom this vile brawl distracted.° 235 Come, Desdemona; ’tis the soldiers’ life To have their balmy slumbers waked with strife.

Exit [with all but Iago and Cassio]. Iago: What, are you hurt, lieutenant? Cassio: Ay, past all surgery. Iago: Marry, God forbid! 240 Cassio: Reputation, reputation, reputation! O, I have lost my reputa-

tion! I have lost the immortal part of myself, and what remains is bestial. My reputation, Iago, my reputation!

245 Iago: As I am an honest man, I thought you had received some

bodily wound. There is more sense in that than in reputation. Reputation is an idle and most false imposition; oft got without merit and lost without deserving. You have lost no reputation at all unless you repute yourself such a loser. What, man! there are ways to recover° the general again. You are but now cast in his mood° — a punishment more in policy than in malice, even so as one would beat his offenseless dog to affright an imperi- ous lion. Sue to him again, and he’s yours.

250

Cassio: I will rather sue to be despised than to deceive so good a com- mander with so slight, so drunken, and so indiscreet an offi cer. Drunk! and speak parrot!° and squabble! swagger! swear! and discourse fustian° with one’s own shadow! O thou invisible spirit of wine, if thou hast no name to be known by, let us call thee devil!

255

Iago: What was he that you followed with your sword? What had he done to you? 260

Cassio: I know not. Iago: Is’t possible? Cassio: I remember a mass of things, but nothing distinctly; a

quarrel, but nothing wherefore. O God, that men should put an enemy in their mouths to steal away their brains! that we should with joy, pleasance, revel, and applause° transform our- selves into beasts!

265

Iago: Why, but you are now well enough. How came you thus recovered?

270Cassio: It hath pleased the devil drunkenness to give place to the devil wrath. One unperfectness shows me another, to make me frankly despise myself.

235 distracted: Excited. 249 recover: Regain favor with. 249–50 in his mood: Dismissed because of his anger. 255 parrot: Meaningless phrases. 256 fustian: Bombastic nonsense. 266 applause: Desire to please.

act ii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 733

Iago: Come, you are too severe a moraler. As the time, the place, and the condition of this country stands, I could heartily wish this had not so befall’n; but since it is as it is, mend it for your own good.

275

Cassio: I will ask him for my place again: he shall tell me I am a drunkard! Had I as many mouths as Hydra,° such an answer would stop them all. To be now a sensible man, by and by a fool, and presently a beast! O strange! Every inordinate cup is unblest, and the ingredient° is a devil.

280

Iago: Come, come, good wine is a good familiar creature if it be well used. Exclaim no more against it. And, good lieutenant, I think you think I love you.

Cassio: I have well approved° it, sir. I drunk! 285 Iago: You or any man living may be drunk at some time, man. I’ll

tell you what you shall do. Our general’s wife is now the general. I may say so in this respect, for that he hath devoted and given up himself to the contemplation, mark, and denotement of her parts and graces. Confess yourself freely to her; importune her help to put you in your place again. She is of so free,° so kind, so apt, so blessed a disposition she holds it a vice in her good- ness not to do more than she is requested. This broken joint between you and her husband entreat her to splinter;° and my fortunes against any lay° worth naming, this crack of your love shall grow stronger than it was before.

290

Cassio: You advise me well.

295

Iago: I protest, in the sincerity of love and honest kindness. Cassio: I think it freely; and betimes in the morning will I beseech

the virtuous Desdemona to undertake for me. I am desperate of my fortunes if they check me here.

300

Iago: You are in the right. Good night, lieutenant; I must to the watch. Cassio: Good night, honest Iago. Exit Cassio. Iago: And what’s he then that says I play the villain,

When this advice is free I give and honest, 305 Probal° to thinking, and indeed the course To win the Moor again? For ’tis most easy Th’ inclining Desdemona to subdue° In an honest suit; she’s framed as fruitful As the free elements. And then for her 310 To win the Moor — were’t to renounce his baptism, All seals and symbols of redeemèd sin — His soul is so enfettered to her love That she may make, unmake, do what she list,

278 Hydra: Monster with many heads. 281 ingredient: Contents. 285 approved: Proved. 291 free: Bounteous. 294 splinter: Bind up with splints. 295 lay: Wager. 306 Pro bal: Probable. 308 subdue: Persuade.

734 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act ii • scene 1ii

Even as her appetite shall play the god 315 With his weak function. How am I then a villain To counsel Cassio to this parallel° course, Directly to his good? Divinity° of hell! When devils will the blackest sins put on,° They do suggest at fi rst with heavenly shows, 320 As I do now. For whiles this honest fool Plies Desdemona to repair his fortunes, And she for him pleads strongly to the Moor, I’ll pour this pestilence into his ear, That she repeals him° for her body’s lust; 325 And by how much she strives to do him good, She shall undo her credit with the Moor. So will I turn her virtue into pitch, And out of her own goodness make the net That shall enmesh them all.

Enter Roderigo.

How, now, Roderigo? 330 Roderigo: I do follow here in the chase, not like a hound that hunts,

but one that fi lls up the cry.° My money is almost spent; I have been to-night exceedingly well cudgelled; and I think the issue will be — I shall have so much experience for my pains; and so, with no money at all, and a little more wit, return again to Venice. 335

Iago: How poor are they that have not patience! What wound did ever heal but by degrees? Thou know’st we work by wit, and not by witchcraft; And wit depends on dilatory time. Does’t not go well? Cassio hath beaten thee, 340 And thou by that small hurt hast cashiered Cassio.° Though other things grow fair against the sun, Yet fruits that blossom fi rst will fi rst be ripe. Content thyself awhile. By the mass, ’tis morning! Pleasure and action make the hours seem short. 345 Retire thee; go where thou art billeted. Away, I say! Thou shalt know more hereafter. Nay, get thee gone! Exit Roderigo. Two things are to be done: My wife must move for Cassio to her mistress; I’ll set her on; 350 Myself the while to draw the Moor apart And bring him jump° when he may Cassio fi nd

317 parallel: Corresponding. 318 Divinity: Theology. 319 put on: Incite. 325 repeals him: Seeks his recall. 332 cry: Pack. 341 cashiered Cassio: Maneuvered Cassio’s discharge. 352 jump: At the exact moment.

act iii • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 735

Soliciting his wife. Ay, that’s the way! Dull no device by coldness and delay. Exit.

AC T I I I

Scene I: Before the chamber of Othello and Desdemona.

Enter Cassio, with Musicians and the Clown.

Cassio: Masters, play here, I will content° your pains: Something that’s brief; and bid “Good morrow, general.”

[They play.]

Clown: Why, masters, ha’ your instruments been in Naples,° that they speak i’ th’ nose thus?

Musician: How, sir, how? 5 Clown: Are these, I pray you, called wind instruments? Musician: Ay, marry, are they, sir. Clown: O, thereby hangs a tail. Musician: Whereby hangs a tail, sir?

10Clown: Marry, sir, by many a wind instrument that I know. But, mas- ters, here’s money for you; and the general so likes your music that he desires you, for love’s sake, to make no more noise with it.

Musician: Well, sir, we will not. Clown: If you have any music that may not be heard, to’t again: but,

as they say, to hear music the general does not greatly care. 15 Musician: We have none such, sir. Clown: Then put up your pipes in your bag, for I’ll away. Go, vanish

into air, away! Exit Musician [with his fellows]. Cassio: Dost thou hear, my honest friend? Clown: No, I hear not your honest friend. I hear you. 20 Cassio: Prithee keep up thy quillets.° There’s a poor piece of gold

for thee. If the gentlewoman that attends the general’s wife be stirring, tell her there’s one Cassio entreats her a little favor of speech. Wilt thou do this?

Clown: She is stirring sir. If she will stir hither, I shall seem to notify unto her.

25

Cassio: [Do, good my friend.] Exit Clown.

Enter Iago.

In happy time,° Iago. Iago: You have not been abed then?

Act III, Scene I. 1 content: Reward. 3 Naples: (Notorious for its association with venereal disease). 21 quillets: Quips. 27 In happy time: Well met.

736 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1

Cassio: Why, no; the day had broke Before we parted. I have made bold, Iago, 30 To send in to your wife: my suit to her Is that she will to virtuous Desdemona Procure me some access.

Iago: I’ll send her to you presently; And I’ll devise a mean to draw the Moor Out of the way, that your converse and business 35 May be more free.

Cassio: I humbly thank you for’t. Exit [Iago]. I never knew A Florentine° more kind and honest.

Enter Emilia.

Emilia: Good morrow, good lieutenant. I am sorry For your displeasure: but all will sure be well. 40 The general and his wife are talking of it, And she speaks for you stoutly. The Moor replied That he you hurt is of great fame in Cyprus And great affi nity,° and that in wholesome wisdom He might not but refuse you; but he protests he loves you, 45 And needs no other suitor but his likings [To take the safest occasion° by the front°] To bring you in again.

Cassio: Yet I beseech you, If you think fi t, or that it may be done, Give me advantage of some brief discourse 50 With Desdemona alone.

Emilia: Pray you come in. I will bestow you where you shall have time To speak your bosom° freely.

Cassio: I am much bound to you. Exeunt.

Scene II: The castle.

Enter Othello, Iago, and Gentlemen.

Othello: These letters give, Iago, to the pilot And by him do my duties to the Senate. That done, I will be walking on the works;° Repair there to me.

Iago: Well, my good lord, I’ll do’t. Othello: This fortifi cation, gentlemen, shall we see’t? 5 Gentlemen: We’ll wait upon your lordship. Exeunt.

38 Florentine: i.e., even a Florentine (like Cassio; Iago was a Venetian). 44 affi nity: Family connections. 47 occasion: Opportunity; front: Forelock. 53 your bos om: Your inmost thoughts. Scene II. 3 works: Fortifi cations.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 737

Scene III: The castle grounds.

Enter Desdemona, Cassio, and Emilia.

Desdemona: Be thou assured, good Cassio, I will do All my abilities in thy behalf.

Emilia: Good madam, do. I warrant it grieves my husband As if the cause were his.

Desdemona: O, that’s an honest fellow. Do not doubt, Cassio, 5 But I will have my lord and you again As friendly as you were.

Cassio: Bounteous madam, Whatever shall become of Michael Cassio, He’s never anything but your true servant.

Desdemona: I know’t; I thank you. You do love my lord; 10 You have known him long; and be you well assured He shall in strangeness° stand no farther off Than in a politic distance.°

Cassio: Ay, but, lady, That policy may either last so long, Or feed upon such nice and waterish diet,° 15 Or breed itself so out of circumstance, That, I being absent, and my place supplied, My general will forget my love and service.

Desdemona: Do not doubt° that; before Emilia here I give thee warrant of thy place. Assure thee, 20 If I do vow a friendship, I’ll perform it To the last article. My lord shall never rest; I’ll watch him tame° and talk him out of patience; His bed shall seem a school, his board a shrift;° I’ll intermingle everything he does 25 With Cassio’s suit. Therefore be merry, Cassio, For thy solicitor shall rather die Than give thy cause away.

Enter Othello and Iago [at a distance].

Emilia: Madam, here comes my lord. Cassio: Madam, I’ll take my leave. 30 Desdemona: Why, stay, and hear me speak. Cassio: Madam, not now: I am very ill at ease,

Unfi t for mine own purposes. Desdemona: Well, do your discretion. Exit Cassio. Iago: Ha! I like not that. Othello: What dost thou say? 35

Scene III. 12 strangeness: Aloofness. 13 Than . . . distance: Than wise policy requires. 15 Or . . . diet: Or be continued for such slight reasons. 19 doubt: Fear. 23 watch him tame: Keep him awake until he gives in. 24 shrift: Confessional.

738 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

Iago: Nothing, my lord; or if — I know not what. Othello: Was not that Cassio parted from my wife? Iago: Cassio, my lord? No, sure, I cannot think it,

That he would steal away so guilty-like, Seeing your coming.

Othello: I do believe ’twas he. 40 Desdemona: How now, my lord?

I have been talking with a suitor here, A man that languishes in your displeasure.

Othello: What is’t you mean? Desdemona: Why, your lieutenant, Cassio. Good my lord, 45

If I have any grace or power to move you, His present° reconciliation take; For if he be not one that truly loves you, That errs in ignorance, and not in cunning, I have no judgment in an honest face, 50 I prithee call him back.

Othello: Went he hence now? Desdemona: Yes, faith; so humbled

That he hath left part of his grief with me To suffer with him. Good love, call him back.

Othello: Not now, sweet Desdemon; some other time. 55 Desdemona: But shall’t be shortly? Othello: The sooner, sweet, for you. Desdemona: Shall’t be to-night at supper? Othello: No, not to-night. Desdemona: To-morrow dinner then? Othello: I shall not dine at home;

I meet the captains at the citadel. Desdemona: Why then, to-morrow night, or Tuesday morn, 60

On Tuesday noon or night, or Wednesday morn. I prithee name the time, but let it not Exceed three days. I’ faith, he’s penitent; And yet his trespass, in our common reason (Save that, they say, the wars must make examples 65 Out of their best), is not almost° a fault T’ incur a private check.° When shall he come? Tell me, Othello. I wonder in my soul What you could ask me that I should deny Or stand so mamm’ring on.° What? Michael Cassio, 70 That came a-wooing with you, and so many a time, When I have spoke of you dispraisingly, Hath ta’en your part — to have so much to do

47 present: Immediate. 66 not almost: Hardly. 67 a private check: Even a private reprimand. 70 mamm’ring on: Hesitating about.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 739

To bring him in? By’r Lady, I could do much — Othello: Prithee no more. Let him come when he will! 75

I will deny thee nothing. Desdemona: Why, this is not a boon;

’Tis as I should entreat you wear your gloves, Or feed on nourishing dishes, or keep you warm, Or sue to you to do a peculiar profi t To your own person. Nay, when I have a suit 80 Wherein I mean to touch your love indeed, It shall be full of poise and diffi cult weight, And fearful° to be granted.

Othello: I will deny thee nothing! Whereon I do beseech thee grant me this, To leave me but a little to myself. 85

Desdemona: Shall I deny you? No. Farewell, my lord. Othello: Farewell, my Desdemon: I’ll come to thee straight. Desdemona: Emilia, come. — Be as your fancies teach you;

Whate’er you be, I am obedient. Exit [with Emilia]. Othello: Excellent wretch!° Perdition catch my soul 90

But I do love thee! and when I love thee not, Chaos is come again.

Iago: My noble lord — Othello: What dost thou say, Iago? Iago: Did Michael Cassio, when you wooed my lady,

Know of your love? 95 Othello: He did, from fi rst to last. Why dost thou ask? Iago: But for a satisfaction of my thought;

No further harm. Othello: Why of thy thought, Iago? Iago: I did not think he had been acquainted with her. Othello: O, yes, and went between us° very oft. 100 Iago: Indeed? Othello: Indeed? Ay, indeed! Discern’st thou aught in that?

Is he not honest? Iago: Honest, my lord? Othello: Honest. Ay, honest. Iago: My lord, for aught I know. Othello: What dost thou think? Iago: Think, my lord? Othello: Think, my lord? 105

By heaven, he echoes me, As if there were some monster in his thought Too hideous to be shown. Thou dost mean something:

83 fearful: Dangerous. 90 wretch: (A term of endearment). 100 went between us: (i.e., as messenger).

740 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

I heard thee say even now, thou lik’st not that, When Cassio left my wife. What didst not like? 110 And when I told thee he was of my counsel In my whole course of wooing, thou cried’st “Indeed?” And didst contract and purse thy brow together, As if thou then hadst shut up in thy brain Some horrible conceit.° If thou dost love me, 115 Show me thy thought

Iago: My lord, you know I love you. Othello: I think thou dost;

And, for I know thou’rt full of love and honesty And weigh’st thy words before thou giv’st them breath, Therefore these stops of thine fright me the more; 120 For such things in a false disloyal knave Are tricks of custom; but in a man that’s just They are close dilations, working from the heart That passion cannot rule.°

Iago: For Michael Cassio, I dare be sworn I think that he is honest. 125

Othello: I think so too. Iago: Men should be what they seem;

Or those that be not, would they might seem none!° Othello: Certain, men should be what they seem. Iago: Why then, I think Cassio’s an honest man. Othello: Nay, yet there’s more in this. 130

I prithee speak to me as to thy thinkings, As thou dost ruminate, and give thy worst of thoughts The worst of words.

Iago: Good my lord, pardon me: Though I am bound to every act of duty, I am not bound to that all slaves are free to.° 135 Utter my thoughts? Why, say they are vile and false, As where’s that palace whereinto foul things Sometimes intrude not? Who has a breast so pure But some uncleanly apprehensions Keep leets and law days,° and in Sessions sit 140 With meditations lawful?

Othello: Thou dost conspire against thy friend, Iago, If thou but think’st him wronged, and mak’st his ear A stranger to thy thoughts.

Iago: I do beseech you —

115 conceit: Fancy. 123–24 close dilations . . . rule: Secret emotions which well up in spite of restraint. 127 seem none: i.e., not pretend to be men when they are really monsters. 135 bound . . . free to: Bound to tell that which even slaves are allowed to keep to themselves. 140 leets and law days: Sittings of the courts.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 741

Though I perchance am vicious in my guess 145 (As I confess it is my nature’s plague To spy into abuses, and oft my jealousy° Shapes faults that are not), that your wisdom yet From one that so imperfectly conjects° Would take no notice, nor build yourself a trouble 150 Out of his scattering and unsure observance. It were not for your quiet nor your good, Nor for my manhood, honesty, and wisdom, To let you know my thoughts.

Othello: What dost thou mean? Iago: Good name in man and woman, dear my lord, 155

Is the immediate° jewel of their souls. Who steals my purse steals trash; ’tis something, nothing; ’Twas mine, ’tis his, and has been slave to thousands; But he that fi lches from me my good name Robs me of that which not enriches him 160 And makes me poor indeed.

Othello: By heaven, I’ll know thy thoughts! Iago: You cannot, if my heart were in your hand;

Nor shall not whilst ’tis in my custody. Othello: Ha! Iago: O, beware, my lord, of jealousy! 165

It is the green-eyed monster, which doth mock° The meat it feeds on. That cuckold lives in bliss Who, certain of his fate, loves not his wronger; But O, what damnèd minutes tells he o’er Who dotes, yet doubts — suspects, yet strongly loves! 170

Othello: O misery! Iago: Poor and content is rich, and rich enough;

But riches fi neless° is as poor as winter To him that ever fears he shall be poor. Good God, the souls of all my tribe defend 175 From jealousy!

Othello: Why, why is this? Think’st thou I’ld make a life of jealousy, To follow still the changes of the moon With fresh suspicions? No! To be once in doubt Is once to be resolved. Exchange me for a goat 180 When I shall turn the business of my soul To such exsuffl icate and blown° surmises, Matching this inference. ’Tis not to make me jealous

147 jealousy: Suspicion. 149 conjects: Conjectures. 156 immediate: Nearest the heart. 166 mock: Play with, like a cat with a mouse. 173 fi neless: Unlimited. 182 exsuffl icate and blown: Spat out and fl yblown.

742 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

To say my wife is fair, feeds well, loves company, Is free of speech, sings, plays, and dances; 185 Where virtue is, these are more virtuous. Nor from mine own weak merits will I draw The smallest fear or doubt of her revolt,° For she had eyes, and chose me. No, Iago; I’ll see before I doubt; when I doubt, prove; 190 And on the proof there is no more but this — Away at once with love or jealousy!

Iago: I am glad of this; for now I shall have reason To show the love and duty that I bear you With franker spirit. Therefore, as I am bound, 195 Receive it from me. I speak not yet of proof. Look at your wife; observe her well with Cassio; Wear your eyes thus, not jealous nor secure:° I would not have your free and noble nature, Out of self-bounty,° be abused. Look to’t. 200 I know our country disposition well: In Venice they do let God see the pranks They dare not show their husbands; their best conscience Is not to leave’t undone, but keep’t unknown.

Othello: Dost thou say so? 205 Iago: She did deceive her father, marrying you;

And when she seemed to shake and fear your looks, She loved them most.

Othello: And so she did. Iago: Why, go to then!

She that, so young, could give out such a seeming To seel° her father’s eyes up close as oak° — 210 He thought ’twas witchcraft — but I am much to blame. I humbly do beseech you of your pardon For too much loving you.

Othello: I am bound to thee for ever. Iago: I see this hath a little dashed your spirits. Othello: Not a jot, not a jot. Iago: I’ faith, I fear it has. 215

I hope you will consider what is spoke Comes from my love. But I do see y’ are moved. I am to pray you not to strain my speech To grosser issues° nor to larger reach Than to suspicion. 220

Othello: I will not.

188 revolt: Unfaithfulness. 198 secure: Overconfi dent. 200 self-bounty: Natural goodness. 210 seel: Close; oak: Oak grain. 219 To grosser issues: To mean some- thing more monstrous.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 743

Iago: Should you do so, my lord, My speech should fall into such vile success° As my thoughts aim not at. Cassio’s my worthy friend — My lord, I see y’ are moved.

Othello: No, not much moved: I do not think but Desdemona’s honest.° 225

Iago: Long live she so! and long live you to think so! Othello: And yet, how nature erring from itself — Iago: Ay, there’s the point! as (to be bold with you)

Not to affect many proposèd matches Of her own clime, complexion, and degree, 230 Whereto we see in all things nature tends — Foh! one may smell in such a will most rank, Foul disproportions, thought unnatural — But pardon me — I do not in position° Distinctly speak of her; though I may fear 235 Her will, recoiling° to her better judgment, May fall to match° you with her country forms, And happily° repent.

Othello: Farewell, farewell! If more thou dost perceive, let me know more. Set on thy wife to observe. Leave me, Iago. 240

Iago: My lord, I take my leave. [Going.] Othello: Why did I marry? This honest creature doubtless

Sees and knows more, much more, than he unfolds. Iago [returns]: My lord, I would I might entreat your honor

To scan this thing no further: leave it to time. 245 Although ’tis fi t that Cassio have his place, For sure he fi lls it up with great ability, Yet, if you please to hold off a while, You shall by that perceive him and his means. Note if your lady strain his entertainment° 250 With any strong or vehement importunity; Much will be seen in that. In the mean time Let me be thought too busy° in my fears (As worthy cause I have to fear I am) And hold her free,° I do beseech your honor. 255

Othello: Fear not my government.° Iago: I once more take my leave. Exit. Othello: This fellow ’s of exceeding honesty,

222 vile success: Evil outcome. 225 honest: Chaste. 234 position: Defi nite assertion. 236 recoiling: Reverting. 237 fall to match: Happen to compare. 238 happily: Haply, perhaps. 250 strain his entertainment: Urge his recall. 253 busy: Meddle- some. 255 hold her free: Consider her guiltless. 256 government: Self-control.

744 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

And knows all qualities,° with a learned spirit Of° human dealings. If I do prove her haggard,° 260 Though that her jesses° were my dear heartstrings, I’d whistle her off and let her down the wind To prey at fortune.° Haply, for I am black And have not those soft parts of conversation° That chamberers° have, or for I am declined 265 Into the vale of years — yet that’s not much — She’s gone. I am abused, and my relief Must be to loathe her. O curse of marriage, That we can call these delicate creatures ours, And not their appetites! I had rather be a toad 270 And live upon the vapor of a dungeon Than keep a corner in the thing I love For others’ uses. Yet ’tis the plague of great ones;° Prerogatived° are they less than the base. ’Tis destiny unshunnable, like death. 275 Even then this forkèd plague° is fated to us When we do quicken.° Look where she comes.

Enter Desdemona and Emilia.

If she be false, O, then heaven mocks itself! I’ll not believe’t.

Desdemona: How now, my dear Othello? Your dinner, and the generous° islanders 280 By you invited, do attend your presence.

Othello: I am to blame. Desdemona: Why do you speak so faintly?

Are you not well? Othello: I have a pain upon my forehead, here. Desdemona: Faith, that’s with watching;° ’twill away again. 285

Let me but bind it hard, within this hour It will be well.

Othello: Your napkin° is too little;

[He pushes the handkerchief from him, and it falls unnoticed.]

Let it° alone. Come, I’ll go in with you. Desdemona: I am very sorry that you are not well. Exit [with Othello]. Emilia: I am glad I have found this napkin; 290

259 qualities: Natures. 259–60 learned spirit Of: Mind informed about. 260 hag- gard: A wild hawk. 261 jesses: Thongs for controlling a hawk. 262–63 whistle . . . fortune: Turn her out and let her take care of herself. 264 soft . . . conversation: Ingratiating manners. 265 chamberers: Courtiers. 273 great ones: Prominent men. 274 Prerogatived: Privileged. 276 forkèd plague: i.e., horns of a cuckold. 277 do quicken: Are born. 280 generous: Noble. 285 watching: Working late. 287 napkin: Handkerchief. 288 it: i.e., his forehead.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 745

This was her fi rst remembrance from the Moor, My wayward husband hath a hundred times Wooed me to steal it; but she so loves the token (For he conjured her she should ever keep it) That she reserves it evermore about her 295 To kiss and talk to. I’ll have the work ta’en out° And give’t Iago. What he will do with it heaven knows, not I; I nothing but to please his fantasy.°

Enter Iago.

Iago: How now? What do you here alone? 300 Emilia: Do not you chide; I have a thing for you. Iago: A thing for me? It is a common thing — Emilia: Ha? Iago: To have a foolish wife. Emilia: O, is that all? What will you give me now 305

For that same handkerchief? Iago: What handkerchief? Emilia: What handkerchief!

Why, that the Moor fi rst gave to Desdemona; That which so often you did bid me steal.

Iago: Hast stol’n it from her? 310 Emilia: No, faith; she let it drop by negligence,

And to th’ advantage,° I, being here, took’t up. Look, here it is.

Iago: A good wench! Give it me. Emilia: What will you do with’t, that you have been so earnest

To have me fi lch it? Iago: Why, what is that to you? 315

[Snatches it.]

Emilia: If it be not for some purpose of import,° Give’t me again. Poor lady, she’ll run mad When she shall lack it.

Iago: Be not acknown on’t;° I have use for it. Go, leave me. Exit Emilia. 320 I will in Cassio’s lodgings lose this napkin And let him fi nd it. Trifl es light as air Are to the jealous confi rmations strong As proofs of holy writ. This may do something. The Moor already changes with my poison: 325 Dangerous conceits° are in their nature poisons,

296 work ta’en out: Pattern copied. 299 fantasy: Whim. 312 to th’ advantage: Opportunely. 316 import: Importance. 319 Be . . . on’t: Do not acknowledge it. 326 conceits: Ideas.

746 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

Which at the fi rst are scarce found to distaste, But with a little act upon the blood Burn like the mines of sulphur.

Enter Othello.

I did say so. Look where he comes! Not poppy nor mandragora,° 330 Nor all the drowsy syrups of the world, Shall ever med’cine thee to that sweet sleep Which thou owedst yesterday.

Othello: Ha! ha! false to me? Iago: Why, how now, general? No more of that! Othello: Avaunt! be gone! Thou hast set me on the rack. 335

I swear ’tis better to be much abused Than but to know’t a little.

Iago: How now, my lord? Othello: What sense had I of her stol’n hours of lust?

I saw’t not, thought it not, it harmed not me; I slept the next night well, fed well, was free° and merry; 340 I found not Cassio’s kisses on her lips He that is robbed, not wanting° what is stol’n, Let him not know’t, and he’s not robbed at all.

Iago: I am sorry to hear this. Othello: I had been happy if the general camp, 345

Pioneers° and all, had tasted her sweet body, So I had nothing known. O, now for ever Farewell the tranquil mind! farewell content! Farewell the plumèd troop, and the big° wars That make ambition virtue! O, farewell! 350 Farewell the neighing steed and the shrill trump, The spirit-stirring drum, th’ ear-piercing fi fe, The royal banner, and all quality, Pride, pomp, and circumstance° of glorious war! And O you mortal engines° whose rude throats 355 Th’ immortal Jove’s dread clamors counterfeit,° Farewell! Othello’s occupation’s gone!

Iago: Is’t possible, my lord? Othello: Villain, be sure thou prove my love a whore!

Be sure of it; give me the ocular proof; 360 Or, by the worth of mine eternal soul, Thou hadst been better have been born a dog Than answer my waked wrath!

330 mandragora: A narcotic. 340 free: Carefree. 342 wanting: Missing. 346 Pioneers: Sappers, laborers. 349 big: Stately. 354 circumstance: Pageantry. 355 mortal engines: Deadly artillery. 356 counterfeit: Imitate.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 747

Iago: Is’t come to this? Othello: Make me to see’t; or at the least so prove it

That the probation° bear no hinge nor loop 365 To hang a doubt on — or woe upon thy life!

Iago: My noble lord — Othello: If thou dost slander her and torture me,

Never pray more; abandon all remorse; On horror’s head horrors accumulate; 370 Do deeds to make heaven weep, all earth amazed; For nothing canst thou to damnation add Greater than that.

Iago: O grace! O heaven forgive me! Are you a man? Have you a soul or sense? — God b’ wi’ you! take mine offi ce. O wretched fool, 375 That liv’st to make thine honesty a vice! O monstrous world! Take note, take note, O world, To be direct and honest is not safe. I thank you for this profi t;° and from hence I’ll love no friend, sith love breeds such offense. 380

Othello: Nay, stay. Thou shouldst be honest. Iago: I should be wise; for honesty’s a fool

And loses that it works for. Othello: By the world,

I think my wife be honest, and think she is not; I think that thou art just, and think thou art not. 385 I’ll have some proof. Her name, that was as fresh As Dian’s visage, is now begrimed and black As mine own face. If there be cords, or knives, Poison, or fi re, or suffocating streams, I’ll not endure it. Would I were satisfi ed!° 390

Iago: I see, sir, you are eaten up with passion: I do repent me that I put it to you. You would be satisfi ed?

Othello: Would? Nay, I will. Iago: And may; but how? how satisfi ed, my lord?

Would you, the supervisor,° grossly gape on? 395 Behold her topped?

Othello: Death and damnation! O! Iago: It were a tedious diffi culty, I think,

To bring them to that prospect. Damn them then, If ever mortal eyes do see them bolster° More than their own! What then? How then? 400 What shall I say? Where’s satisfaction?

365 probation: Proof. 379 profi t: Profi table lesson. 390 satisfi ed: Completely informed. 395 supervisor: Spectator. 399 bolster: Lie together.

748 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1ii

It is impossible you should see this, Were they as prime° as goats, as hot as monkeys, As salt° as wolves in pride,° and fools as gross As ignorance made drunk. But yet, I say, 405 If imputation and strong circumstances Which lead directly to the door of truth Will give you satisfaction, you may have’t.

Othello: Give me a living reason she’s disloyal. Iago: I do not like the offi ce. 410

But sith I am ent’red in this cause so far, Pricked to’t by foolish honesty and love, I will go on. I lay with Cassio lately, And being troubled with a raging tooth, I could not sleep. 415 There are a kind of men so loose of soul That in their sleeps will mutter their affairs. One of this kind is Cassio. In sleep I heard him say, “Sweet Desdemona, Let us be wary, let us hide our loves!” 420 And then, sir, would he gripe and wring my hand, Cry “O sweet creature!” and then kiss me hard, As if he plucked up kisses by the roots That grew upon my lips; then laid his leg Over my thigh, and sighed, and kissed, and then 425 Cried “Cursèd fate that gave thee to the Moor!”

Othello: O monstrous! monstrous! Iago: Nay, this was but his dream. Othello: But this denoted a foregone conclusion;°

’Tis a shrewd doubt,° though it be but a dream. Iago: And this may help to thicken other proofs 430

That do demonstrate thinly. Othello: I’ll tear her all to pieces! Iago: Nay, but be wise. Yet we see nothing done;

She may be honest yet. Tell me but this — Have you not sometimes seen a handkerchief Spotted with strawberries in your wife’s hand? 435

Othello: I gave her such a one; ’twas my fi rst gift. Iago: I know not that; but such a handkerchief —

I am sure it was your wife’s — did I to-day See Cassio wipe his beard with.

Othello: If it be that — Iago: If it be that, or any that was hers, 440

It speaks against her with the other proofs.

403 prime: Lustful. 404 salt: Lecherous; pride: Heat. 428 foregone conclusion: Previous experience. 429 a shrewd doubt: Cursedly suspicious.

act iii • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 749

Othello: O, that the slave had forty thousand lives! One is too poor, too weak for my revenge. Now do I see ’tis true. Look here, Iago: All my fond love thus do I blow to heaven. 445 ’Tis gone. Arise, black vengeance, from the hollow hell! Yield up, O love, thy crown and hearted throne To tyrannous hate! Swell, bosom, with thy fraught,° For ’tis of aspics’° tongues!

Iago: Yet be content. 450 Othello: O, blood, blood, blood! Iago: Patience, I say. Your mind perhaps may change. Othello: Never, Iago. Like to the Pontic sea,°

Whose icy current and compulsive course Ne’er feels retiring ebb, but keeps due on 455 To the Propontic and the Hellespont, Even so my bloody thoughts, with violent pace, Shall ne’er look back, ne’er ebb to humble love, Till that a capable° and wide revenge Swallow them up. (He kneels.) Now, by yond marble heaven, 460 In the due reverence of a sacred vow I here engage my words.

Iago: Do not rise yet. (Iago kneels.) Witness, you ever-burning lights above, You elements that clip° us round about, Witness that here Iago doth give up 465 The execution° of his wit,° hands, heart To wronged Othello’s service! Let him command, And to obey shall be in me remorse,° What bloody business ever. [They rise.]

Othello: I greet thy love, Not with vain thanks but with acceptance bounteous, 470 And will upon the instant put thee to’t. Within these three days let me hear thee say That Cassio’s not alive.

Iago: My friend is dead; ’tis done at your request. But let her live. 475

Othello: Damn her, lewd minx! O, damn her! damn her! Come, go with me apart. I will withdraw

449 fraught: Burden. 450 aspics: Deadly poisonous snakes. 453 Pontic sea: Black Sea. 459 capable: All-embracing. 464 clip: Encompass. 466 execution: Activities; wit: Mind. 468 remorse: Pity.

750 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene ii1

To furnish me with some swift means of death For the fair devil. Now art thou my lieutenant.

Iago: I am your own forever. Exeunt. 480

Scene IV: The environs of the castle.

Enter Desdemona, Emilia, and Clown.

Desdemona: Do you know, sirrah, where Lieutenant Cassio lies?° Clown: I dare not say he lies anywhere. Desdemona: Why, man? Clown: He’s a soldier, and for me to say a soldier lies is stabbing. Desdemona: Go to. Where lodges he? 5 Clown: To tell you where he lodges is to tell you where I lie. Desdemona: Can anything be made of this? Clown: I know not where he lodges; and for me to devise a lodging,

and say he lies here or he lies there, were to lie in mine own throat. Desdemona: Can you enquire him out, and be edifi ed by report? 10 Clown: I will catechize the world for him; that is, make questions,

and by them answer. Desdemona: Seek him, bid him come hither. Tell him I have moved°

my lord on his behalf and hope all will be well. Clown: To do this is within the compass of man’s wit, and therefore

I’ll attempt the doing of it. Exit. 15

Desdemona: Where should I lose that handkerchief, Emilia? Emilia: I know not, madam. Desdemona: Believe me, I had rather have lost my purse

Full of crusadoes;° and but my noble Moor 20 Is true of mind, and made of no such baseness As jealous creatures are, it were enough To put him to ill thinking.

Emilia: Is he not jealous? Desdemona: Who? he? I think the sun where he was born

Drew all such humors° from him.

Enter Othello.

Emilia: Look where he comes. 25 Desdemona: I will not leave him now till Cassio

Be called to him — How is’t with you, my lord? Othello: Well, my good lady. [Aside.] O, hardness to dissemble! —

How do you, Desdemona? Desdemona: Well, my good lord. Othello: Give me your hand. This hand is moist, my lady. 30

Scene IV. 1 lies: Lives, lodges. 13 moved: Made proposals to. 20 crusadoes: Portuguese gold coins. 25 humors: Inclinations.

act iii • scene 1v shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 751

Desdemona: It yet hath felt no age nor known no sorrow. Othello: This argues fruitfulness and liberal heart.

Hot, hot, and moist. This hand of yours requires A sequester° from liberty, fasting and prayer, Much castigation, exercise devout; 35 For here’s a young and sweating devil here That commonly rebels. ’Tis a good hand, A frank one.

Desdemona: You may, indeed, say so; For ’twas that hand that gave away my heart. 40

Othello: A liberal hand! The hearts of old gave hands; But our new heraldry° is hands, not hearts.

Desdemona: I cannot speak of this. Come now, your promise! Othello: What promise, chuck? Desdemona: I have sent to bid Cassio come speak with you. 45 Othello: I have a salt and sorry rheum° offends me.

Lend me thy handkerchief. Desdemona: Here, my lord. Othello: That which I gave you. Desdemona: I have it not about me. Othello: Not? Desdemona: No, faith, my lord. Othello: That’s a fault.

That handkerchief 50 Did an Egyptian° to my mother give. She was a charmer,° and could almost read The thoughts of people. She told her, while she kept it, ’Twould make her amiable° and subdue my father Entirely to her love; but if she lost it 55 Or made a gift of it, my father’s eye Should hold her loathèd, and his spirits should hunt After new fancies. She, dying, gave it me, And bid me, when my fate would have me wive; To give it her. I did so; and take heed on’t; 60 Make it a darling like your precious eye. To lose’t or give’t away were such perdition° As nothing else could match.

Desdemona: Is’t possible? Othello: ’Tis true. There’s magic in the web of it.

A sibyl that had numb’red in the world 65 The sun to course two hundred compasses,° In her prophetic fury sewed the work;

34 sequester: Removal. 42 heraldry: Heraldic symbolism. 46 salt . . . rheum: Dis- tressing head cold. 51 Egyptian: Gypsy. 52 charmer: Sorceress. 54 amiable: Lovable. 62 perdition: Disaster. 66 compasses: Annual rounds.

752 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1v

The worms were hallowed that did breed the silk; And it was dyed in mummy° which the skillful Conserved of maidens’ hearts.

Desdemona: I’ faith? Is’t true? 70 Othello: Most veritable. Therefore look to’t well. Desdemona: Then would to God that I had never seen’t! Othello: Ha! Wherefore? Desdemona: Why do you speak so startingly and rash? Othello: Is’t lost? Is’t gone? Speak, is it out o’ th’ way? 75 Desdemona: Heaven bless us! Othello: Say you? Desdemona: It is not lost. But what an if it were? Othello: How? Desdemona: I say it is not lost. Othello: Fetch’t, let me see’t! 80 Desdemona: Why, so I can, sir; but I will not now.

This is a trick to put° me from my suit: Pray you let Cassio be received again.

Othello: Fetch me the handkerchief! My mind misgives. Desdemona: Come, come! 85

You’ll never meet a more suffi cient man. Othello: The handkerchief! [Desdemona: I pray talk me of Cassio. Othello: The handkerchief!] Desdemona: A man that all his time°

Hath founded his good fortunes on your love, Shared dangers with you — 90

Othello: The handkerchief! Desdemona: I’ faith, you are to blame. Othello: Zounds! Exit Othello. Emilia: Is not this man jealous? Desdemona: I ne’er saw this before. 95

Sure there’s some wonder in this handkerchief; I am most unhappy in the loss of it.

Emilia: ’Tis not a year or two shows us a man. They are all but stomachs, and we all but food; They eat us hungerly, and when they are full, 100 They belch us.

Enter Iago and Cassio.

Look you — Cassio and my husband! Iago: There is no other way; ’tis she must do’t.

And lo the happiness!° Go and importune her.

69 mummy: A drug made from mummies. 82 put: Divert. 88 all his time: Dur- ing his whole career. 103 happiness: Good luck.

act iii • scene 1v shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 753

Desdemona: How now, good Cassio? What’s the news with you? Cassio: Madam, my former suit. I do beseech you 105

That by your virtuous means I may again Exist, and be a member of his love Whom I with all the offi ce of my heart Entirely honor. I would not be delayed. If my offense be of such mortal kind 110 That neither service past, nor present sorrows, Nor purposed merit in futurity, Can ransom me into his love again, But to know so must be my benefi t. So shall I clothe me in a forced content, 115 And shut myself up in° some other course, To fortune’s alms.

Desdemona: Alas, thrice-gentle Cassio! My advocation° is not now in tune. My lord is not my lord; nor should I know him, Were he in favor° as in humor altered. 120 So help me every spirit sanctifi ed As I have spoken for you all my best And stood within the blank° of his displeasure For my free speech! You must a while be patient. What I can do I will; and more I will 125 Than for myself I dare. Let that suffi ce you.

Iago: Is my lord angry? Emilia: He went hence but now,

And certainly in strange unquietness. Iago: Can he be angry? I have seen the cannon

When it hath blown his ranks into the air 130 And, like the devil, from his very arm Puffed his own brother — and is he angry? Something of moment then. I will go meet him. There’s matter in’t indeed if he be angry.

Desdemona: I prithee do so. Exit [Iago]. Something sure of state,° 135 Either from Venice or some unhatched practice° Made demonstrable here in Cyprus to him, Hath puddled° his clear spirit; and in such cases Men’s natures wrangle with inferior things, Though great ones are their object. ’Tis even so; 140 For let our fi nger ache, and it endues° Our other, healthful members even to a sense

116 shut myself up in: Confi ne myself to. 118 advocation: Advocacy. 120 favor: Appearance. 123 blank: Bull’s-eye of the target. 135 state: Public affairs. 136 unhatched practice: Budding plot. 138 puddled: Muddied. 141 endues: Brings.

754 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iii • scene 1v

Of pain. Nay, we must think men are not gods, Nor of them look for such observancy As fi ts the bridal. Beshrew me much, Emilia, 145 I was, unhandsome warrior° as I am, Arraigning his unkindness with my soul;° But now I fi nd I had suborned the witness, And he’s indicted falsely.

Emilia: Pray heaven it be state matters, as you think, 150 And no conception nor no jealous toy° Concerning you.

Desdemona: Alas the day! I never gave him cause. Emilia: But jealous souls will not be answered so;

They are not ever jealous for the cause, 155 But jealous for they’re jealous. ’Tis a monster Begot upon itself,° born on itself.

Desdemona: Heaven keep that monster from Othello’s mind! Emilia: Lady, amen. Desdemona: I will go seek him. Cassio, walk here about: 160

If I do fi nd him fi t, I’ll move your suit And seek to effect it to my uttermost.

Cassio: I humbly thank your ladyship. Exeunt Desdemona and Emilia.

Enter Bianca.

Bianca: Save you, friend Cassio! Cassio: What make you from home?

How is’t with you, my most fair Bianca? 165 I’ faith, sweet love, I was coming to your house.

Bianca: And I was going to your lodging, Cassio. What, keep a week away? seven days and nights? Eightscore eight hours? and lovers’ absent hours, More tedious than the dial° eightscore times? 170 O weary reck’ning!

Cassio: Pardon me, Bianca: I have this while with leaden thoughts been pressed; But I shall in a more continuate° time Strike off this score of absence. Sweet Bianca,

[Gives her Desdemona’s handkerchief.]

Take me this work out.° Bianca: O Cassio, whence came this? 175

This is some token from a newer friend.

146 unhandsome warrior: Inadequate soldier. 147 Arraigning . . . soul: Indicting his unkindness before the bar of my soul. 151 toy: Fancy. 157 Begot upon itself: Self- engendered. 170 dial: Clock. 173 continuate: Uninterrupted. 175 Take . . . out: Copy this embroidery for me.

act iv • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 755

To the felt absence now I feel a cause. Is’t come to this? Well, well.

Cassio: Go to, woman! Throw your vile guesses in the devil’s teeth, From whence you have them. You are jealous now 180 That this is from some mistress, some remembrance. No, by my faith, Bianca.

Bianca: Why, whose is it? Cassio: I know not, sweet; I found it in my chamber.

I like the work° well; ere it be demanded, As like enough it will, I’d have it copied. 185 Take it and do’t, and leave me for this time.

Bianca: Leave you? Wherefore? Cassio: I do attend here on the general

And think it no addition, nor my wish, To have him see me womaned.

Bianca: Why, I pray you? 190 Cassio: Not that I love you not. Bianca: But that you do not love me!

I pray you bring me on the way a little, And say if I shall see you soon at night.

Cassio: ’Tis but a little way that I can bring you, For I attend here; but I’ll see you soon. 195

Bianca: ’Tis very good. I must be circumstanced.° Exeunt.

AC T I V

Scene I: The environs of the castle.

Enter Othello and Iago.

Iago: Will you think so? Othello: Think so, Iago? Iago: What,

To kiss in private? Othello: An unauthorized kiss. Iago: Or to be naked with her friend in bed

An hour or more, not meaning any harm? Othello: Naked in bed, Iago, and not mean harm? 5

It is hypocrisy against the devil.° They that mean virtuously, and yet do so,

184 work: Needlework. 196 circumstanced: Governed by circumstances. Act IV, Scene I. 6 hypocrisy . . . devil: i.e., feigned sin instead of feigned virtue.

756 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1

The devil their virtue tempts, and they tempt heaven. Iago: So they do nothing, ’tis a venial slip.

But if I give my wife a handkerchief — 10 Othello: What then? Iago: Why, then ’tis hers, my lord; and being hers,

She may, I think, bestow’t on any man. Othello: She is protectress of her honor too;

May she give that? 15 Iago: Her honor is an essence that’s not seen;

They have it very oft that have it not. But for the handkerchief —

Othello: By heaven, I would most gladly have forgot it! Thou said’st — O, it comes o’er my memory 20 As doth the raven o’er the infected° house, Boding to all! — he had my handkerchief.

Iago: Ay, what of that? Othello: That’s not so good now. Iago: What

If I had said I had seen him do you wrong? Or heard him say — as knaves be such abroad 25 Who having, by their own importunate suit, Or voluntary dotage of some mistress, Convincèd or supplied° them, cannot choose But they must blab —

Othello: Hath he said anything? Iago: He hath, my lord; but be you well assured, 30

No more than he’ll unswear. Othello: What hath he said? Iago: Faith, that he did — I know not what he did. Othello: What? what? Iago: Lie — Othello: With her? Iago: With her, on her; what you will. 35 Othello: Lie with her? lie on her? — We say lie on her when they belie

her. — Lie with her! Zounds, that’s fulsome. — Handkerchief — confessions — handkerchief! — To confess, and be hanged for his labor — fi rst to be hanged, and then to confess! I tremble at it. Nature would not invest herself in such shadowing pas- sion without some instruction.° It is not words that shakes me thus. — Pish! Noses, ears, and lips? Is’t possible? — Confess? — Handkerchief? — O devil!

40

(Falls in a trance.)

21 infected: Plague-stricken. 28 Convincèd or supplied: Overcome or gratified. 40–41 Nature . . . instruction: My natural faculties would not be so overcome by passion without reason.

act iv • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 757

Iago: Work on, My med’cine, work! Thus credulous fools are caught, 45 And many worthy and chaste dames even thus All guiltless, meet reproach. — What, ho! my lord! My lord, I say! Othello! Enter Cassio. How now, Cassio?

Cassio: What’s the matter? Iago: My lord is fall’n into an epilepsy. 50

This is his second fi t; he had one yesterday. Cassio: Rub him about the temples. Iago: No, forbear.

The lethargy° must have his quiet course. If not, he foams at mouth, and by and by Breaks out to savage madness. Look, he stirs. 55 Do you withdraw yourself a little while. He will recover straight. When he is gone, I would on great occasion speak with you. [Exit Cassio.] How is it, general? Have you not hurt your head?

Othello: Dost thou mock me? Iago: I mock you? No, by heaven. 60

Would you would bear your fortune like a man! Othello: A hornèd man’s° a monster and a beast. Iago: There’s many a beast then in a populous city,

And many a civil monster. Othello: Did he confess it? Iago: Good sir, be a man. 65

Think every bearded fellow that’s but yoked May draw with you. There’s millions now alive That nightly lie in those unproper° beds Which they dare swear peculiar:° your case is better. O, ’tis the spite of hell, the fi end’s arch-mock, 70 To lip a wanton in a secure° couch, And to suppose her chaste! No, let me know; And knowing what I am, I know what she shall be.

Othello: O, thou art wise! ’Tis certain. Iago: Stand you awhile apart;

Confi ne yourself but in a patient list.° 75 Whilst you were here, o’erwhelmèd with your grief — A passion most unsuiting such a man — Cassio came hither. I shifted him away And laid good ’scuse upon your ecstasy;° Bade him anon return, and here speak with me; 80

53 lethargy: Coma. 62 hornèd man: Cuckold. 68 unproper: Not exclusively their own. 69 peculiar: Exclusively their own. 71 secure: Free from fear of rivalry. 75 in a patient list: Within the limits of self-control. 79 ecstasy: Trance.

758 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1

The which he promised. Do but encave° yourself And mark the fl eers, the gibes, and notable scorns That dwell in every region of his face; For I will make him tell the tale anew — Where, how, how oft, how long ago, and when 85 He hath, and is again to cope° your wife. I say, but mark his gesture. Marry, patience! Or I shall say y’are all in all in spleen,° And nothing of a man.

Othello: Dost thou hear, Iago? I will be found most cunning in my patience; 90 But — dost thou hear? — most bloody.

Iago: That’s not amiss: But yet keep time in all. Will you withdraw?

[Othello retires.] Now will I question Cassio of Bianca, A huswife° that by selling her desires Buys herself bread and clothes. It is a creature 95 That dotes on Cassio, as ’tis the strumpet’s plague To beguile many and be beguiled by one. He, when he hears of her, cannot refrain From the excess of laughter. Here he comes.

Enter Cassio.

As he shall smile, Othello shall go mad; 100 And his unbookish° jealousy must conster° Poor Cassio’s smiles, gestures, and light behavior Quite in the wrong. How do you now, lieutenant?

Cassio: The worser that you give me the addition° Whose want even kills me. 105

Iago: Ply Desdemona well, and you are sure on’t. Now, if this suit lay in Bianca’s power, How quickly should you speed!

Cassio: Alas, poor caitiff!° Othello: Look how he laughs already! Iago: I never knew a woman love man so. 110 Cassio: Alas, poor rogue! I think, i’ faith, she loves me. Othello: Now he denies it faintly, and laughs it out. Iago: Do you hear, Cassio? Othello: Now he importunes him

To tell it o’er. Go to! Well said, well said! Iago: She gives out that you shall marry her. 115

81 encave: Conceal. 86 cope: Meet. 88 all in all in spleen: Wholly overcome by your passion. 94 huswife: Hussy. 101 unbookish: Uninstructed; conster: Con- strue, interpret. 104 addition: Title. 108 caitiff: Wretch.

act iv • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 759

Do you intend it? Cassio: Ha, ha, ha! Othello: Do you triumph, Roman? Do you triumph? Cassio: I marry her? What, a customer?° Prithee bear some charity to

my wit; do not think it so unwholesome. Ha, ha, ha! 120 Othello: So, so, so, so! They laugh that win! Iago: Faith, the cry goes that you shall marry her. Cassio: Prithee say true. Iago: I am a very villain else. Othello: Have you scored me?° Well. 125 Cassio: This is the monkey’s own giving out. She is persuaded I will

marry her out of her own love and fl attery, not out of my promise. Othello: Iago beckons° me; now he begins the story. Cassio: She was here even now; she haunts me in every place. I was t’

other day talking on the sea bank with certain Venetians, and thither comes the bauble,° and, by this hand, she falls me thus about my neck —

130

Othello: Crying “O dear Cassio!” as it were. His gesture imports it. Cassio: So hangs, and lolls, and weeps upon me; so shakes and pulls

me! Ha, ha, ha! 135 Othello: Now he tells how she plucked him to my chamber. O, I see

that nose of yours, but not that dog I shall throw it to. Cassio: Well, I must leave her company.

Enter Bianca.

Iago: Before me! Look where she comes. 140Cassio: ’Tis such another fi tchew!° marry, a perfumed one. What do

you mean by this haunting of me? Bianca: Let the devil and his dam haunt you! What did you mean

by that same handkerchief you gave me even now? I was a fi ne fool to take it. I must take out the whole work? A likely piece of work that you should fi nd it in your chamber and know not who left it there! This is some minx’s token, and I must take out the work? There! Give it your hobby-horse.° Wheresoever you had it, I’ll take out no work on’t.

145

Cassio: How now, my sweet Bianca? How now? how now? Othello: By heaven, that should be my handkerchief! 150 Bianca: An you’ll come to supper to-night, you may; an you will not,

come when you are next prepared for. Exit. Iago: After her, after her! Cassio: Faith, I must; she’ll rail in the street else. Iago: Will you sup there? 155

119 customer: Prostitute. 125 scored me: Settled my account (?). 128 beckons: Signals. 131 bauble: Plaything. 140 fi tchew: Polecat (slang for whore). 147 hobby- horse: Harlot.

760 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1

Cassio: Yes, I intend so. Iago: Well, I may chance to see you; for I would very fain speak with

you. Cassio: Prithee come. Will you? Iago: Go to! say no more. Exit Cassio. 160 Othello [comes forward]: How shall I murder him, Iago? Iago: Did you perceive how he laughed at his vice?° Othello: O Iago! Iago: And did you see the handkerchief? Othello: Was that mine? 165 Iago: Your, by this hand! And to see how he prizes° the foolish

woman your wife! She gave it him, and he hath giv’n it his whore.

Othello: I would have him nine years a-killing — A fi ne woman! a fair woman! a sweet woman! 170

Iago: Nay, you must forget that. Othello: Ay, let her rot, and perish, and be damned to-night; for she

shall not live. No, my heart is turned to stone; I strike it, and it hurts my hand. O, the world hath not a sweeter creature! She might lie by an emperor’s side and command him tasks. 175

Iago: Nay, that’s not your way. Othello: Hang her! I do but say what she is. So delicate with her needle!

an admirable musician! O, she will sing the savageness out of a bear! Of so high and plenteous wit and invention° —

Iago: She’s the worse for all this. 180 Othello: O, a thousand thousand times! And then, of so gentle a

condition!° Iago: Ay, too gentle. Othello: Nay, that’s certain. But yet the pity of it, Iago! O Iago, the

pity of it, Iago! 185 Iago: If you are so fond over her iniquity, give her patent° to offend;

for if it touch not you, it comes near nobody. Othello: I will chop her into messes! Cuckold me! Iago: O, ’tis foul in her. Othello: With mine offi cer! 190 Iago: That’s fouler. Othello: Get me some poison, Iago, this night. I’ll not expostulate

with her, lest her body and beauty unprovide° my mind again. This night, Iago!

Iago: Do it not with poison. Strangle her in her bed, even the bed she hath contaminated.

195

Othello: Good, good! The justice of it pleases. Very good!

162 vice: i.e., vicious conduct. 166 prizes: Values. 179 invention: Imagination. 182 condition: Disposition. 186 patent: License. 193 unprovide: Disarm.

act iv • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 761

Iago: And for Cassio, let me be his undertaker;° you shall hear more by midnight.

Othello: Excellent good! 200 A trumpet. What trumpet is that same?

Iago: I warrant something from Venice. Enter Lodovico, Desdemona, and Attendants. ’Tis Lodovico. This comes from the Duke; and see, your wife is with him.

Lodovico: God save you, worthy general! Othello: With all my heart, sir. Lodovico: The Duke and senators of Venice greet you. 205

[Gives him a letter.] Othello: I kiss the instrument of their pleasures.

[Opens the letter and reads.] Desdemona: And what’s the news, good cousin Lodovico? Iago: I am very glad to see you, signior.

Welcome to Cyprus. Lodovico: I thank you. How does Lieutenant Cassio? Iago: Lives, sir. 210 Desdemona: Cousin, there’s fall’n between him and my lord

An unkind breach; but you shall make all well. Othello: Are you sure of that? Desdemona: My lord? Othello [reads]: “This fail you not to do, as you will — ” 215 Lodovico: He did not call; he’s busy in the paper.

Is there division ’twixt thy lord and Cassio? Desdemona: A most unhappy one. I would do much

T’ atone° them, for the love I bear to Cassio. Othello: Fire and brimstone! Desdemona: My lord? Othello: Are you wise? 220 Desdemona: What, is he angry? Lodovico: May be the letter moved him;

For, as I think, they do command him home, Deputing Cassio in his government.

Desdemona: By my troth, I am glad on’t. Othello: Indeed? Desdemona: My lord? Othello: I am glad to see you mad.° Desdemona: Why, sweet Othello — 225

198 be his undertaker: Undertake to deal with him. 219 atone: Reconcile. 225 mad: i.e., waggish.

762 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1

Othello: Devil!

[Strikes her.]

Desdemona: I have not deserved this. Lodovico: My lord, this would not be believed in Venice,

Though I should swear I saw’t. ’Tis very much. Make her amends; she weeps.

Othello: O devil, devil! 230 If that the earth could teem° with woman’s tears, Each drop she falls would prove a crocodile.° Out of my sight!

Desdemona: I will not stay to offend you. [Going.] Lodovico: Truly, an obedient lady.

I do beseech your lordship call her back. 235 Othello: Mistress! Desdemona: My lord? Othello: What would you with her, sir? Lodovico: Who? I, my lord? Othello: Ay! You did wish that I would make her turn.

Sir, she can turn, and turn, and yet go on 240 And turn again; and she can weep, sir, weep; And she’s obedient; as you say, obedient, Very obedient. — Proceed you in your tears. — Concerning this, sir — O well-painted passion!° — I am commanded home. — Get you away; 245 I’ll send for you anon. — Sir, I obey the mandate And will return to Venice. — Hence, avaunt!

[Exit Desdemona.] Cassio shall have my place. And, sir, to-night I do entreat that we may sup together. You are welcome, sir, to Cyprus — Goats and monkeys! Exit. 250

Lodovico: Is this the noble Moor whom our full Senate Call all in all suffi cient? Is this the nature Whom passion could not shake? whose solid virtue The shot of accident nor dart of chance Could neither graze nor pierce?

Iago: He is much changed. 255 Lodovico: Are his wits safe? Is he not light of brain? Iago: He’s that he is; I may not breathe my censure.

What he might be — if what he might he is not — I would to heaven he were!

Lodovico: What, strike his wife?

231 teem: Breed. 232 crocodile: (Crocodiles were supposed to shed hypocritical tears to lure men to destruction). 244 passion: Grief.

act iv • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 763

Iago: Faith, that was not so well; yet would I knew 260 That stroke would prove the worst!

Lodovico: Is it his use?° Or did the letters work upon his blood And new-create this fault?

Iago: Alas, alas! It is not honesty in me to speak What I have seen and known. You shall observe him, 265 And his own courses will denote him so That I may save my speech. Do but go after And mark how he continues.

Lodovico: I am sorry that I am deceived in him. Exeunt.

Scene II: Within the castle.

Enter Othello and Emilia.

Othello: You have seen nothing then? Emilia: Nor ever heard, nor ever did suspect. Othello: Yes, you have seen Cassio and she together. Emilia: But then I saw no harm, and then I heard

Each syllable that breath made up between them. 5 Othello: What, did they never whisper? Emilia: Never, my lord. Othello: Nor send you out o’ th’ way? Emilia: Never. Othello: To fetch her fan, her gloves, her mask, nor nothing? Emilia: Never, my lord. 10 Othello: That’s strange. Emilia: I durst, my lord, to wager she is honest,

Lay down my soul at stake. If you think other, Remove your thought; it doth abuse your bosom.° If any wretch have put this in your head, 15 Let heaven requite it with the serpent’s curse!° For if she be not honest, chaste, and true, There’s no man happy; the purest of their wives Is foul as slander.

Othello: Bid her come hither. Go. Exit Emilia. She says enough; yet she’s a simple bawd 20 That cannot say as much. This is a subtle whore, A closet lock and key of villainous secrets; And yet she’ll kneel and pray; I have seen her do’t.

Enter Desdemona and Emilia.

261 use: Custom. Scene II. 14 abuse your bosom: Deceive your heart. 16 ser- pent’s curse: (cf. Genesis 3: 14).

764 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1i

Desdemona: My lord, what is your will? Othello: Pray, chuck, come hither. Desdemona: What is your pleasure? Othello: Let me see your eyes. 25

Look in my face. Desdemona: What horrible fancy’s this? Othello [to Emilia]: Some of your function, mistress.

Leave procreants° alone and shut the door; Cough or cry hem if anybody come. Your mystery, your mystery!° Nay, dispatch! 30

Exit Emilia. Desdemona: Upon my knees, what doth your speech import?

I understand a fury in your words, [But not the words.]

Othello: Why, what art thou? Desdemona: Your wife, my lord; your true

And loyal wife. Othello: Come, swear it, damn thyself; 35

Lest, being like one of heaven,° the devils themselves Should fear to seize thee. Therefore be double-damned — Swear thou art honest.°

Desdemona: Heaven doth truly know it. Othello: Heaven truly knows that thou art false as hell. Desdemona: To whom, my lord? With whom? How am I false? 40 Othello: Ah, Desdemona! away! away! away! Desdemona: Alas the heavy day! Why do you weep?

Am I the motive of these tears, my lord? If haply you my father do suspect An instrument° of this your calling back, 45 Lay not your blame on me. If you have lost him, Why, I have lost him too.

Othello: Had it pleased heaven To try me with affl iction, had they rained All kinds of sores and shames on my bare head, Steeped me in poverty to the very lips, 50 Given to captivity me and my utmost hopes, I should have found in some place of my soul A drop of patience. But, alas, to make me A fi xèd fi gure for the time of scorn° To point his slow unmoving fi nger at! 55 Yet could I bear that too; well, very well.

28 procreants: Mating couples. 30 mystery: Trade, occupation. 36 being . . . heaven: Looking like an angel. 38 honest: Chaste. 45 An instrument: To be the cause. 54 time of scorn: Scornful world.

act iv • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 765

But there where I have garnered up my heart, Where either I must live or bear no life, The fountain from the which my current runs Or else dries up — to be discarded thence, 60 Or keep it as a cistern for foul toads To knot and gender in — turn thy complexion there,° Patience, thou young and rose-lipped cherubin! Ay, there look grim as hell!

Desdemona: I hope my noble lord esteems me honest. 65 Othello: O, ay; as summer fl ies are in the shambles,°

That quicken° even with blowing. O thou weed, Who art so lovely fair, and smell’st so sweet, That the sense aches at thee, would thou hadst ne’er been born!

Desdemona: Alas, what ignorant sin have I committed? 70 Othello: Was this fair paper, this most goodly book,

Made to write “whore” upon? What committed? Committed? O thou public commoner!° I should make very forges of my cheeks That would to cinders burn up modesty, 75 Did I but speak thy deeds. What committed? Heaven stops the nose at it, and the moon winks;° The bawdy wind, that kisses all it meets, Is hushed within the hollow mine of earth And will not hear it. What committed? 80 Impudent strumpet!

Desdemona: By heaven, you do me wrong! Othello: Are not you a strumpet? Desdemona: No, as I am a Christian!

If to preserve this vessel for my lord From any other foul unlawful touch Be not to be a strumpet, I am none. 85

Othello: What, not a whore? Desdemona: No, as I shall be saved! Othello: Is’t possible? Desdemona: O, heaven forgive us! Othello: I cry you mercy° then.

I took you for that cunning whore of Venice That married with Othello. — [Calling.] You, mistress, 90 That have the offi ce opposite to Saint Peter And keep the gate of hell!

Enter Emilia.

62 turn thy complexion there: Change thy color at that point. 66 shambles: Slaugh- terhouse. 67 quicken: Come to life. 73 commoner: Harlot. 77 winks: Closes her eyes. 88 cry you mercy: Beg your pardon.

766 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1i

You, you, ay, you! We have done our course; there’s money for your pains: I pray you turn the key, and keep our counsel. Exit.

Emilia: Alas, what does this gentleman conceive? 95 How do you, madam? How do you, my good lady?

Desdemona: Faith, half asleep.° Emilia: Good madam, what’s the matter with my lord? Desdemona: With who? Emilia: Why, with my lord, madam. 100 Desdemona: Who is thy lord? Emilia: He that is yours, sweet lady. Desdemona: I have none. Do not talk to me, Emilia.

I cannot weep; nor answer have I none But what should go by water. Prithee to-night Lay on my bed my wedding sheets, remember; 105 And call thy husband hither.

Emilia: Here’s a change indeed! Exit. Desdemona: ’Tis meet I should be used so, very meet.

How have I been behaved, that he might stick The small’st opinion° on my least misuse?°

Enter Iago and Emilia.

Iago: What is your pleasure, madam? How is’t with you? 110 Desdemona: I cannot tell. Those that do teach young babes

Do it with gentle means and easy tasks: He might have chid me so; for, in good faith, I am a child to chiding.

Iago: What is the matter, lady? Emilia: Alas, Iago, my lord hath so bewhored her, 115

Thrown such despite and heavy terms upon her As true hearts cannot bear.

Desdemona: Am I that name, Iago? Iago: What name, fair lady? Desdemona: Such as she said my lord did say I was. Emilia: He called her whore. A beggar in his drink 120

Could not have laid such terms upon his callet.° Iago: Why did he so? Desdemona: I do not know; I am sure I am none such. Iago: Do not weep, do not weep. Alas the day! Emilia: Hath she forsook so many noble matches, 125

Her father and her country, and her friends, To be called whore? Would it not make one weep?

Desdemona: It is my wretched fortune.

97 half asleep: i.e., stunned. 109 small’st opinion: Least suspicion; least misuse: Slightest misconduct. 121 callet: Whore.

act iv • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 767

Iago: Beshrew him for’t! How comes this trick° upon him?

Desdemona: Nay, heaven doth know. Emilia: I will be hanged if some eternal villain, 130

Some busy and insinuating rogue, Some cogging, cozening° slave, to get some offi ce, Have not devised this slander. I’ll be hanged else.

Iago: Fie, there is no such man! It is impossible. Desdemona: If any such there be, heaven pardon him! 135 Emilia: A halter pardon him! and hell gnaw his bones!

Why should he call her whore? Who keeps her company? What place? what time? what form? what likelihood? The Moor ’s abused by some most villainous knave, Some base notorious knave, some scurvy fellow. 140 O heaven, that such companions° thou ’dst unfold,° And put in every honest hand a whip To lash the rascals naked through the world Even from the east to th’ west!

Iago: Speak within door.° Emilia: O, fi e upon them! Some such squire he was 145

That turned your wit the seamy side without And made you to suspect me with the Moor.

Iago: You are a fool. Go to. Desdemona: Alas, Iago,

What shall I do to win my lord again? Good friend, go to him; for, by this light of heaven, 150 I know not how I lost him. Here I kneel: If e’er my will did trespass ’gainst his love Either in discourse° of thought or actual deed, Or that mine eyes, mine ears, or any sense Delighted them in any other form, 155 Or that I do not yet, and ever did, And ever will (though he do shake me off To beggarly divorcement) love him dearly, Comfort forswear° me! Unkindness may do much; And his unkindness may defeat° my life, 160 But never taint my love. I cannot say “whore.” It does abhor me now I speak the word; To do the act that might the addition earn Not the world’s mass of vanity could make me.

Iago: I pray you be content. ’Tis but his humor. 165 The business of the state does him offense,

129 trick: Freakish behavior. 132 cogging, cozening: Cheating, defrauding. 141 com- panions: Rogues; unfold: Expose. 144 within door: With restraint. 153 discourse: Course. 159 Comfort forswear: Happiness forsake. 160 defeat: Destroy.

768 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1i

[And he does chide with you.] Desdemona: If ’twere no other — Iago: ’Tis but so, I warrant.

[Trumpets within.]

Hark how these instruments summon you to supper. The messengers of Venice stay the meat: 170 Go in, and weep not. All things shall be well.

Exeunt Desdemona and Emilia.

Enter Roderigo.

How now, Roderigo? Roderigo: I do not fi nd that thou deal’st justly with me. Iago: What in the contrary?

175Roderigo: Every day thou daff’st me with some device,° Iago, and rather, as it seems to me now, keep’st from me all conveniency° than suppliest me with the least advantage of hope. I will indeed no longer endure it; nor am I yet persuaded to put up in peace what already I have foolishly suffered.

Iago: Will you hear me, Roderigo? 180 Roderigo: Faith, I have heard too much; for your words and perfor-

mances are no kin together. Iago: You charge me most unjustly.

185 Roderigo: With naught but truth. I have wasted myself out of my

means. The jewels you have had from me to deliver to Desde- mona would half have corrupted a votarist.° You have told me she hath received them, and returned me expectations and com- forts of sudden respect° and acquaintance; but I fi nd none.

Iago: Well, go to; very well. 190Roderigo: Very well! go to! I cannot go to, man; nor ’tis not very

well. By this hand, I say ’tis very scurvy, and begin to fi nd myself fopped° in it.

Iago: Very well. Roderigo: I tell you ’tis not very well. I will make myself known to

Desdemona. If she will return me my jewels, I will give over my suit and repent my unlawful solicitation; if not, assure yourself I will seek satisfaction of you.

195

Iago: You have said now. Roderigo: Ay, and said nothing but what I protest intendment of

doing. 200 Iago: Why, now I see there’s mettle in thee; and even from this instant

do build on thee a better opinion than ever before. Give me thy

175 thou . . . device: You put me off with some trick. 176 conveniency: Favorable opportunities. 186 votarist: Nun. 188 sudden respect: Immediate notice. 192 fopped: Duped.

act iv • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 769

hand, Roderigo. Thou has taken against me a most just excep- tion; but yet I protest I have dealt most directly° in thy affair.

Roderigo: It hath not appeared. 205 Iago: I grant indeed it hath not appeared, and your suspicion is not

without wit and judgment. But, Roderigo, if thou hast that in thee indeed which I have greater reason to believe now than ever, I mean purpose, courage, and valor, this night show it. If thou the next night following enjoy not Desdemona, take me from this world with treachery and devise engines for° my life.

Roderigo: Well, what is it? Is it within reason and compass?

210

Iago: Sir, there is especial commission come from Venice to depute Cassio in Othello’s place.

Roderigo: Is that true? Why, then Othello and Desdemona return again to Venice.

215

Iago: O, no; he goes into Mauritania and takes away with him the fair Desdemona, unless his abode be lingered here° by some accident; wherein none can be so determinate° as the removing of Cassio. 220

Roderigo: How do you mean removing of him? Iago: Why, by making him uncapable of Othello’s place — knocking

out his brains. Roderigo: And that you would have me to do?

225Iago: Ay, if you dare do yourself a profi t and a right. He sups to- night with a harlotry, and thither will I go to him. He knows not yet of his honorable fortune. If you will watch his going thence, which I will fashion to fall out between twelve and one, you may take him at your pleasure. I will be near to second your attempt, and he shall fall between us. Come, stand not amazed at it, but go along with me. I will show you such a necessity in his death that you shall think yourself bound to put it on him. It is now high supper time, and the night grows to waste. About it!

230

Roderigo: I will hear further reason for this. Iago: And you shall be satisfi ed. Exeunt. 235

Scene III: Within the castle.

Enter Othello, Lodovico, Desdemona, Emilia, and Attendants.

Lodovico: I do beseech you, sir, trouble yourself no further. Othello: O, pardon me; ’twill do me good to walk. Lodovico: Madam, good night. I humbly thank your ladyship. Desdemona: Your honor is most welcome. Othello: Will you walk, sir?

O, Desdemona — 5

204 directly: Straightforwardly. 211 engines for: Plots against. 218 abode . . . here: Stay here be extended. 219 determinate: Effective.

770 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene 1ii

Desdemona: My lord? Othello: Get you to bed on th’ instant; I will be returned forthwith.

Dismiss your attendant there. Look’t be done. Desdemona: I will, my lord.

Exit [Othello, with Lodovico and Attendants].

Emilia: How goes it now? He looks gentler than he did. 10 Desdemona: He says he will return incontinent.°

He hath commanded me to go to bed, And bade me to dismiss you.

Emilia: Dismiss me? Desdemona: It was his bidding; therefore, good Emilia,

Give me my nightly wearing, and adieu. 15 We must not now displease him.

Emilia: I would you had never seen him! Desdemona: So would not I. My love doth so approve him

That even his stubbornness,° his checks,° his frowns — Prithee unpin me — have grace and favor in them. 20

Emilia: I have laid those sheets you bade me on the bed. Desdemona: All’s one. Good faith, how foolish are our minds!

If I do die before thee, prithee shroud me In one of those same sheets.

Emilia: Come, come! You talk. Desdemona: My mother had a maid called Barbary. 25

She was in love; and he she loved proved mad° And did forsake her. She had a song of “Willow”; An old thing ’twas; but it expressed her fortune, And she died singing it. That song to-night Will not go from my mind; I have much to do 30 But to go hang my head all at one side And sing it like poor Barbary. Prithee dispatch.

Emilia: Shall I go fetch your nightgown?° Desdemona: No, unpin me here.

This Lodovico is a proper man. Emilia: A very handsome man. 35 Desdemona: He speaks well. Emilia: I know a lady in Venice would have walked barefoot to

Palestine for a touch of his nether lip. Desdemona (sings): “The poor soul sat sighing by a sycamore tree

Sing all a green willow; 40 Her hand on her bosom, her head on her knee, Sing willow, willow, willow. The fresh streams ran by her and murmured her moans;

Scene III. 11 incontinent: At once. 19 stubbornness: Roughness; checks: Rebukes. 26 mad: Wild, faithless. 33 nightgown: Dressing gown.

act iv • scene 1ii shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 771

Sing willow, willow, willow; Her salt tears fell from her, and soft’ned the stones” — 45 Lay by these. “Sing willow, willow, willow” — Prithee hie thee;° he’ll come anon. “Sing all a green willow must be my garland. Let nobody blame him; his scorn I approve” — 50 Nay, that’s not next. Hark! who is’t that knocks?

Emilia: It’s the wind. Desdemona (sings): “I call my love false love; but what said he then?

Sing willow, willow, willow: If I court moe women, you’ll couch with moe men.” 55 So get thee gone; good night. Mine eyes do itch. Doth that bode weeping?

Emilia: ’Tis neither here nor there. Desdemona: I have heard it said so. O, these men, these men!

Dost thou in conscience think — tell me, Emilia — That there be women do abuse their husbands 60 In such gross kind?

Emilia: There be some such, no question. Desdemona: Wouldst thou do such a deed for all the world? Emilia: Why, would not you? Desdemona: No, by this heavenly light! Emilia: Nor I neither by this heavenly light.

I might do’t as well i’ th’ dark. 65 Desdemona: Wouldst thou do such a deed for all the world? Emilia: The world’s a huge thing; it is a great price for a small vice. Desdemona: In troth, I think thou wouldst not.

70 Emilia: In troth, I think I should; and undo’t when I had done it.

Marry, I would not do such a thing for a joint-ring,° nor for measures of lawn, nor for gowns, petticoats, nor caps, nor any petty exhibition;° but, for all the whole world — ’Ud’s pity! who would not make her husband a cuckold to make him a mon- arch? I should venture purgatory for’t.

Desdemona: Beshrew me if I would do such a wrong 75 For the whole world.

Emilia: Why, the wrong is but a wrong i’ th’ world; and having the world for your labor, ’tis a wrong in your own world, and you might quickly make it right.

Desdemona: I do not think there is any such woman. 80 Emilia: Yes, a dozen; and as many to th’ vantage° as

would store° the world they played for. But I do think it is their husbands’ faults

48 hie thee: Hurry. 70 joint-ring: Ring made in separable halves. 72 exhibition: Gift. 81 to th’ vantage: Besides. 82 store: Populate.

772 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act iv • scene ii1

If wives do fall. Say that they slack their duties And pour our treasures into foreign laps; 85 Or else break out in peevish° jealousies, Throwing restraint upon us; or say they strike us, Or scant our former having° in despite — Why, we have galls;° and though we have some grace, Yet have we some revenge. Let husbands know 90 Their wives have sense like them. They see, and smell, And have their palates both for sweet and sour, As husbands have. What is it that they do When they change us for others? Is it sport? I think it is. And doth affection breed it? 95 I think it doth. Is’t frailty that thus errs? It is so too. And have not we affections, Desires for sport, and frailty, as men have? Then let them use us well; else let them know, The ills we do, their ills instruct us so. 100

Desdemona: Good night, good night. God me such usage° send, Not to pick bad from bad, but by bad mend! Exeunt.

AC T V

Scene I: A street in Cyprus.

Enter Iago and Roderigo.

Iago: Here, stand behind this bulk;° straight will he come. Wear thy good rapier bare, and put it home. Quick, quick! Fear nothing; I’ll be at thy elbow. It makes us, or it mars us — think on that, And fi x most fi rm thy resolution. 5

Roderigo: Be near at hand; I may miscarry in’t. Iago: Here, at thy hand. Be bold, and take thy stand.

[Stands aside.]

Roderigo: I have no great devotion to the deed, And yet he hath given me satisfying reasons. ’Tis but a man gone. Forth my sword! He dies! 10

Iago: I have rubbed this young quat° almost to the sense,° And he grows angry. Now whether he kill Cassio, Or Cassio him, or each do kill the other, Every way makes my gain. Live Roderigo,

86 peevish: Senseless. 88 having: Allowance. 89 galls: Spirits to resent. 101 usage: Habits. Act V, Scene I. 1 bulk: Projecting shop-front. 11 quat: Pimple; sense: Quick.

act v • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 773

He calls me to a restitution large 15 Of gold and jewels that I bobbed° from him As gifts to Desdemona. It must not be. If Cassio do remain, He hath a daily beauty in his life That makes me ugly; and besides, the Moor 20 May unfold me to him; there stand I in much peril. No, he must die. Be’t so! I hear him coming.

Enter Cassio.

Roderigo: I know his gait. ’Tis he. Villain, thou diest!

[Makes a pass at Cassio.]

Cassio: That thrust had been mine enemy indeed But that my coat° is better than thou know’st. 25 I will make proof of thine.

[Draws, and wounds Roderigo.]

Roderigo: O, I am slain!

[Iago darts from concealment behind Cassio, wounds him in the leg , and exit.]

Cassio: I am maimed for ever. Help, ho! Murder! murder!

[Falls.] Enter Othello.

Othello: The voice of Cassio. Iago keeps his word. Roderigo: O, villain that I am! Othello: It is even so. Cassio: O, help, ho! light! a surgeon! 30 Othello: ’Tis he. O brave Iago, honest and just,

That hast such noble sense of thy friend’s wrong! Thou teachest me. Minion,° your dear lies dead, And your unblest fate hies.° Strumpet, I come. Forth of my heart those charms, thine eyes, are blotted. 35 Thy bed, lust-stained, shall with lust’s blood be spotted.

Exit Othello.

Enter Lodovico and Gratiano.

Cassio: What, ho? No watch? No passage?° Murder! murder! Gratiano: ’Tis some mischance. The cry is very direful. Cassio: O, help! Lodovico: Hark! 40 Roderigo: O wretched villain! Lodovico: Two or three groan. It is a heavy° night.

16 bobbed: Swindled. 25 coat: Undershirt of mail. 33 Minion: Mistress. 34 hies: Hurries on. 37 passage: Passersby. 42 heavy: Cloudy, dark.

774 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1

These may be counterfeits. Let’s think’t unsafe To come in to the cry without more help.

Roderigo: Nobody come? Then shall I bleed to death. 45 Lodovico: Hark!

Enter Iago, with a light.

Gratiano: Here’s one comes in his shirt, with light and weapons. Iago: Who’s there? Whose noise is this that cries on° murder? Lodovico: We do not know. Iago: Did not you hear a cry? Cassio: Here, here! For heaven’s sake, help me! Iago: What’s the matter? 50 Gratiano: This is Othello’s ancient, as I take it. Lodovico: The same indeed, a very valiant fellow. Iago: What are you here that cry so grievously? Cassio: Iago? O, I am spoiled, undone by villains!

Give me some help. 55 Iago: O me, lieutenant! What villains have done this? Cassio: I think that one of them is hereabout

And cannot make° away. Iago: O treacherous villains!

[To Lodovico and Gratiano.]

What are you there? Come in, and give some help. Roderigo: O, help me here! 60 Cassio: That’s one of them. Iago: O murd’rous slave! O villain!

[Stabs Roderigo.]

Roderigo: O damned Iago! O inhuman dog! Iago: Kill men i’ th’ dark? — Where be these bloody thieves? —

How silent is this town! — Ho! murder! murder! — What may you be? Are you of good or evil? 65

Lodovico: As you shall prove us, praise us. Iago: Signior Lodovico? Lodovico: He, sir. Iago: I cry you mercy. Here’s Cassio hurt by villains. Gratiano: Cassio? 70 Iago: How is’t, brother? Cassio: My leg is cut in two. Iago: Marry,° heaven forbid!

Light, gentlemen. I’ll bind it with my shirt.

Enter Bianca.

Bianca: What is the matter, ho? Who is’t that cried?

48 cries on: Raises the cry of. 58 make: Get. 73 Marry: (From “By Mary”).

act v • scene 1 shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 775

Iago: Who is’t that cried? 75 Bianca: O my dear Cassio! my sweet Cassio!

O Cassio, Cassio, Cassio! Iago: O notable strumpet! — Cassio, may you suspect

Who they should be that have thus mangled you? Cassio: No. 80 Gratiano: I am sorry to fi nd you thus. I have been to seek you. Iago: Lend me a garter. So. O for a chair°

To bear him easily hence! Bianca: Alas, he faints! O Cassio, Cassio, Cassio! Iago: Gentlemen all, I do suspect this trash 85

To be a party in this injury. — Patience a while, good Cassio. — Come, come! Lend me a light. Know we this face or no? Alas, my friend and my dear countryman Roderigo? No — Yes, sure. — O heaven, Roderigo! 90

Gratiano: What, of Venice? Iago: Even he, sir. Did you know him? Gratiano: Know him? Ay. Iago: Signior Gratiano? I cry your gentle pardon.

These bloody accidents must excuse my manners That so neglected you.

Gratiano: I am glad to see you. 95 Iago: How do you, Cassio? — O, a chair, a chair! Gratiano: Roderigo? Iago: He, he, ’tis he!

[A chair brought in.]

O, that’s well said;° the chair. Some good man bear him carefully from hence. 100 I’ll fetch the general’s surgeon. [To Bianca.] For you, mistress, Save you your labor. — He that lies slain here, Cassio, Was my dear friend. What malice was between you?

Cassio: None in the world; nor do I know the man. Iago [to Bianca]: What, look you pale? — O, bear him out o’ th’ air. 105

[Cassio and Roderigo are borne off.]

Stay you, good gentlemen. — Look you pale, mistress? — Do you perceive the gastness° of her eye? — Nay, if you stare, we shall hear more anon. Behold her well; I pray you look upon her. Do you see, gentlemen? Nay, guiltiness will speak. 110 Though tongues were out of use.

Enter Emilia.

82 chair: Litter. 99 well said: Well done. 107 gastness: Terror.

776 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene i

Emilia: ’Las, what’s the matter? What’s the matter, husband? Iago: Cassio hath here been set on in the dark

By Roderigo, and fellows that are scaped. He’s almost slain, and Roderigo dead. 115

Emilia: Alas, good gentlemen! alas, good Cassio! Iago: This is the fruits of whoring. Prithee, Emilia,

Go know of Cassio where he supped to-night.

[To Bianca.]

What, do you shake at that? Bianca: He supped at my house; but I therefore shake not. 120 Iago: O, did he so? I charge you go with me. Emilia: Fie, fi e upon thee, strumpet! Bianca: I am no strumpet, but of life as honest°

As you that thus abuse me. Emilia: As I? Foh! fi e upon thee! Iago: Kind gentlemen, let’s go see poor Cassio dressed. 125

[To Bianca.]

Come, mistress, you must tell ’s another tale. Emilia, run you to the citadel And tell my lord and lady what hath happed. [Exit Emilia.] Will you go on afore? Exeunt [all but Iago]. This is the night That either makes me or fordoes° me quite. [Exit.] 130

Scene II: A bedchamber in the castle.

Desdemona [asleep] in her bed. Enter Othello with a light.

Othello: It is the cause, it is the cause,° my soul. Let me not name it to you, you chaste stars! It is the cause. Yet I’ll not shed her blood, Nor scar that whiter skin of hers than snow, And smooth as monumental alabaster. 5 Yet she must die, else she’ll betray more men. Put out the light, and then put out the light. If I quench thee, thou fl aming minister,° I can again thy former light restore, Should I repent me; but once put out thy light, 10 Thou cunning’st pattern of excelling nature, I know not where is that Promethean heat° That can thy light relume.° When I have plucked the rose,

123 honest: Chaste. 130 fordoes: Destroys. Scene II. 1 cause: Cause of justice. 8 minister: Servant. 12 Promethean heat: Divine fi re. 13 relume: Relight.

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 777

I cannot give it vital growth again; It needs must wither. I’ll smell thee on the tree. 15

(He kisses her.)

O balmy breath, that dost almost persuade Justice to break her sword! One more, one more! Be thus when thou art dead, and I will kill thee, And love thee after. One more, and that’s the last! So sweet was ne’er so fatal. I must weep, 20 But they are cruel tears. This sorrow’s heavenly; It strikes where it doth love. She wakes.

Desdemona: Who’s there? Othello? Othello: Ay, Desdemona. Desdemona: Will you come to bed, my lord? Othello: Have you prayed to-night, Desdemon? Desdemona: Ay, my lord. 25 Othello: If you bethink yourself of any crime°

Unreconciled as yet to heaven and grace, Solicit for it straight.

Desdemona: Alack, my lord, what may you mean by that? Othello: Well, do it, and be brief; I will walk by. 30

I would not kill thy unpreparèd spirit. No, heaven forfend!° I would not kill thy soul.

Desdemona: Talk you of killing? Othello: Ay, I do. Desdemona: Then heaven

Have mercy on me! Othello: Amen, with all my heart! Desdemona: If you say so, I hope you will not kill me. 35 Othello: Hum! Desdemona: And yet I fear you; for you’re fatal then

When your eyes roll so. Why I should fear I know not, Since guiltiness I know not; but yet I feel I fear.

Othello: Think on thy sins. Desdemona: They are loves I bear to you. 40 Othello: Ay, and for that thou diest. Desdemona: That death ’s unnatural that kills for loving.

Alas, why gnaw you so your nether lip? Some bloody passion shakes your very frame. These are portents,° but yet I hope, I hope, 45 They do not point on me.

Othello: Peace and be still! Desdemona: I will so. What’s the matter? Othello: That handkerchief which I so loved and gave thee

26 crime: Sin. 32 forfend: Forbid. 45 portents: Signs of impending violence.

778 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1i

Thou gav’st to Cassio. Desdemona: No, by my life and soul!

Send for the man and ask him. Othello: Sweet soul, take heed, 50

Take heed of perjury; thou art on thy deathbed. Desdemona: Ay, but not yet to die. Othello: Yes, presently.°

Therefore confess thee freely of thy sin; For to deny each article with oath Cannot remove nor choke the strong conception° 55 That I do groan withal. Thou art to die.

Desdemona: Then Lord have mercy on me! Othello: I say amen. Desdemona: And have you mercy too! I never did

Offend° you in my life; never loved Cassio But with such general warranty of heaven 60 As I might love. I never gave him token.

Othello: By heaven, I saw my handkerchief in’s hand! O perjured woman! thou dost stone my heart,° And mak’st me call what I intend to do A murder, which I thought a sacrifi ce. 65 I saw the handkerchief.

Desdemona: He found it then. I never gave it him. Send for him hither. Let him confess a truth.

Othello: He hath confessed. Desdemona: What, my lord? Othello: That he hath used thee. Desdemona: How? Unlawfully? Othello: Ay. 70 Desdemona: He will not say so. Othello: No, his mouth is stopped.

Honest Iago hath ta’en order° for’t. Desdemona: O, my fear interprets. What, is he dead? Othello: Had all his hairs been lives, my great revenge

Had stomach for them all. 75 Desdemona: Alas, he is betrayed, and I undone! Othello: Out, strumpet! Weep’st thou for him to my face? Desdemona: O, banish me, my lord, but kill me not! Othello: Down, strumpet! Desdemona: Kill me to-morrow; let me live to-night! 80 Othello: Nay, if you strive — Desdemona: But half an hour! Othello: Being done, there is no pause.

52 presently: At once. 55 conception: Belief. 59 Offend: Wrong. 63 stone my heart: Turn my heart to stone. 72 ta’en order: Taken measures.

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 779

Desdemona: But while I say one prayer! Othello: It is too late.

(Smothers her.)

[Desdemona: O Lord, Lord, Lord!]

Emilia at the door.

Emilia (calls within): My lord, my lord! What, ho! my lord, my lord! 85 Othello: What noise is this? Not dead? not yet quite dead?

I that am cruel am yet merciful; I would not have thee linger in thy pain. So, so.

Emilia (within): What, ho! my lord, my lord! Othello: Who’s there? 90 Emilia (within): O, good my lord, I would speak a word with you! Othello: Yes, ’tis Emilia. — By and by.° — She’s dead. —

’Tis like she comes to speak of Cassio’s death. The noise was here. Ha! no more moving? Still as the grave. — Shall she come in? Were’t good! — 95 I think she stirs again. No. — What’s best to do? If she come in, she’ll sure speak to my wife. My wife! my wife! what wife? I have no wife. O, insupportable! O heavy hour! Methinks it should be now a huge eclipse 100 Of sun and moon, and that th’ affrighted globe Should yawn° at alteration.

Emilia (within): I do beseech you That I may speak with you, O good my lord!

Othello: I had forgot thee. O, come in, Emilia. Soft, by and by. — Let me the curtains draw. — 105

[Closes the bed-curtains.]

Where art thou?

[Opens the door.] Enter Emilia.

What’s the matter with thee now? Emilia: O my good lord, yonder’s foul murder done! Othello: What? Now? Emilia: But now, my lord. Othello: It is the very error° of the moon. 110

She comes more nearer earth than she was wont And makes men mad.

Emilia: Cassio, my lord, hath killed a young Venetian Called Roderigo.

92 By and by: Just a moment (addressed to Emilia). 102 yawn: Open, as in an earthquake. 110 error: Straying off course.

780 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1i

Othello: Roderigo killed? And Cassio killed?

Emilia: No, Cassio is not killed. 115 Othello: Not Cassio killed? Then murder’s out of tune,

And sweet revenge grows harsh. Desdemona: O, falsely, falsely murdered? Emilia: O, Lord! what cry is that? Othello: That? What? Emilia: Out and alas! that was my lady’s voice. 120

Help! help, ho! help! O lady, speak again! Sweet Desdemona! O sweet mistress, speak!

Desdemona: A guiltless death I die. Emilia: O, who hath done this deed? Desdemona: Nobody — I myself. Farewell. 125

Commend° me to my kind lord. O, farewell!

(She dies.)

Othello: Why, how should she be murd’red? Emilia: Alas, who knows? Othello: You heard her say herself, it was not I. Emilia: She said so. I must needs report the truth. Othello: She’s like a liar gone to burning hell! 130

’Twas I that killed her. Emilia: O, the more angel she,

And you the blacker devil! Othello: She turned to folly, and she was a whore. Emilia: Thou dost belie her, and thou art a devil. Othello: She was false as water.° Emilia: Thou art rash as fi re to say 135

That she was false. O, she was heavenly true! Othello: Cassio did top her. Ask thy husband else.

O, I were damned beneath all depth in hell But that I did proceed upon just grounds To this extremity. Thy husband knew it all. 140

Emilia: My husband? Othello: Thy husband. Emilia: That she was false to wedlock? Othello: Ay, with Cassio. Nay, had she been true,

If heaven would make me such another world 145 Of one entire and perfect chrysolite,° I’ld not have sold her for it.

Emilia: My husband? Othello: Ay ’twas he that told me fi rst.

126 Commend: Remember. 135 water: (Which is yielding). 146 chrysolite: (Precious topaz).

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 781

An honest man he is, and hates the slime That sticks on fi lthy deeds.

Emilia: My husband? 150 Othello: What needs this iterance,° woman? I say thy husband. Emilia: O mistress, villainy hath made mocks with love!

My husband say that she was false? Othello: He, woman.

I say, thy husband. Dost understand the word? My friend, thy husband; honest, honest Iago. 155

Emilia: If he say so, may his pernicious soul Rot half a grain a day! he lies to th’ heart. She was too fond of her most fi lthy bargain.

Othello: Ha! Emilia: Do thy worst. 160

This deed of thine is no more worthy heaven Than thou wast worthy her.

Othello: Peace, you were best. Emilia: Thou hast not half the power to do me harm

As I have to be hurt.° O gull! O dolt! As ignorant as dirt! thou hast done a deed — 165 I care not for thy sword; I’ll make thee known, Though I lost twenty lives. Help! help! Ho! help! The Moor hath killed my mistress! Murder! murder!

Enter Montano, Gratiano, Iago, and others.

Montano: What is the matter? How now, general? Emilia: O, are you come, Iago? You have done well, 170

That men must lay their murders on your neck. Gratiano: What is the matter? Emilia: Disprove this villain, if thou be’st a man.

He says thou told’st him that his wife was false. I know thou didst not; thou’rt not such a villain. 175 Speak, for my heart is full.

Iago: I told him what I thought, and told no more Than what he found himself was apt and true.

Emilia: But did you ever tell him she was false? Iago: I did. 180 Emilia: You told a lie, an odious damnèd lie!

Upon my soul, a lie! a wicked lie! She false with Cassio? Did you say with Cassio?

Iago: With Cassio, mistress. Go to, charm° your tongue. Emilia: I will not charm my tongue; I am bound to speak: 185

My mistress here lies murdered in her bed —

151 iterance: Repetition. 164 to be hurt: To endure hurt. 184 charm: Cast a spell on.

782 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1i

All: O heavens forfend! Emilia: And your reports have set the murder on. Othello: Nay, stare not, masters. It is true indeed. Gratiano: ’Tis a strange truth. 190 Montano: O monstrous act! Emilia: Villainy, villainy, villainy!

I think upon’t — I think I smell’t! — O villainy! I thought so then. — I’ll kill myself for grief. — O villainy, villainy!

Iago: What, are you mad? I charge you get you home. 195 Emilia: Good gentlemen, let me have leave to speak.

’Tis proper I obey him, but not now. Perchance, Iago, I will ne’er go home.

Othello: O! O! O! (Falls on the bed.) Emilia: Nay, lay thee down and roar!

For thou hast killed the sweetest innocent 200 That e’er did lift up eye.

Othello: O, she was foul!

[Rises.]

I scarce did know you, uncle. There lies your niece, Whose breath, indeed, these hands have newly stopped. I know this act shows° horrible and grim.

Gratiano: Poor Desdemon! I am glad thy father’s dead. 205 Thy match was mortal to him, and pure grief Shore his old thread in twain. Did he live now, This sight would make him do a desperate turn;° Yea, curse his better angel from his side, And fall to reprobation.° 210

Othello: ’Tis pitiful; but yet Iago knows That she with Cassio hath the act of shame A thousand times committed. Cassio confessed it; And she did gratify° his amorous works With that recognizance° and pledge of love 215 Which I fi rst gave her. I saw it in his hand. It was a handkerchief, an antique token My father gave my mother.

Emilia: O God! O heavenly God! Iago: Zounds, hold your peace! Emilia: ’Twill out, ’twill out! I peace? 220

No, I will speak as liberal as the north,° Let heaven and men and devils, let them all,

204 shows: Appears. 208 turn: Act. 210 reprobation: Rejection by God, dam- nation. 214 gratify: Reward. 215 recognizance: Token. 221 liberal as the north: Unchecked as the north wind blows.

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 783

All, all, cry shame against me, yet I’ll speak. Iago: Be wise, and get you home. Emilia: I will not.

[Iago draws and threatens Emilia.]

Gratiano: Fie! Your sword upon a woman? 225

Emilia: O thou dull Moor, that handkerchief thou speak’st of I found by fortune, and did give my husband; For often with a solemn earnestness — More than indeed belonged to such a trifl e — He begged of me to steal’t.

Iago: Villainous whore! 230 Emilia: She give it Cassio? No, alas, I found it,

And I did give’t my husband. Iago: Filth, thou liest! Emilia: By heaven, I do not, I do not, gentlemen.

O murd’rous coxcomb! what should such a fool Do with so good a wife?

Othello: Are there no stones° in heaven 235 But what serves for the thunder? Precious villain!

The Moor runs at Iago [but is disarmed by Montano]. Iago kills his wife.

Gratiano: The woman falls. Sure he hath killed his wife. Emilia: Ay, ay. O, lay me by my mistress’ side. Exit Iago. Gratiano: He’s gone, but his wife’s killed. Montano: ’Tis a notorious° villain. Take you this weapon, 240

Which I have here recovered from the Moor. Come, guard the door without. Let him not pass, But kill him rather. I’ll after that same villain, For ’tis a damnèd slave.

Exit [Montano, with all but Othello and Emilia].

Othello: I am not valiant neither; But every puny whipster° gets my sword. 245 But why should honor outlive honesty? Let it go all.

Emilia: What did thy song bode, lady? Hark, canst thou hear me? I will play the swan, And die in music. [Sings.] “Willow, willow, willow.” Moor, she was chaste. She loved thee, cruel Moor: 250 So come my soul to bliss as I speak true. So speaking as I think, alas, I die.

235 stones: Bolts like those used for thunderbolts. 240 notorious: Notable. 245 puny whipster: Whippersnapper.

784 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1i

(She dies.) Othello: I have another weapon in this chamber;

It is a sword of Spain, the ice brook’s° temper. O, here it is. — Uncle, I must come forth. 255

Gratiano (within): If thou attempt it, it will cost thee dear. Thou hast no weapon, and perforce must suffer.

Othello: Look in upon me then and speak with me, Or, naked° as I am, I will assault thee. [Enter Gratiano.]

Gratiano: What is the matter? Othello: Behold, I have a weapon; 260

A better never did itself sustain Upon a soldier’s thigh. I have seen the day That with this little arm and this good sword I have made my way through more impediments Than twenty times your stop.° But O vain boast! 265 Who can control his fate? ’Tis not so now. Be not afraid, though you do see me weaponed. Here is my journey’s end, here is my butt,° And very seamark° of my utmost sail: Do you go back dismayed? ’Tis a lost° fear. 270 Man but a rush° against Othello’s breast, And he retires. Where should Othello go? Now, how dost thou look now? O ill-starred wench! Pale as thy smock! When we shall meet at compt,° This look of thine will hurl my soul from heaven, 275 And fi ends will snatch at it. Cold, cold, my girl? Even like thy chastity. O cursèd, cursèd slave! Whip me, ye devils, From the possession of this heavenly sight! Blow me about in winds! roast me in sulphur! 280 Wash me in steep-down gulfs of liquid fi re! Oh Desdemon! dead Desdemon! dead! Oh! Oh! Enter Lodovico, Montano, Iago [as prisoner], and Offi cers; Cassio in a chair.

Lodovico: Where is this rash and most unfortunate man? Othello: That’s he that was Othello. Here I am. Lodovico: Where is that viper? Bring the villain forth. 285 Othello: I look down towards his feet° — but that’s a fable.

If that thou be’st a devil, I cannot kill thee.

254 ice brook: i.e., a Spanish blade, tempered in cold running water. 259 naked: Disarmed. 265 stop: Power to stop. 268 butt: Limit. 269 seamark: Beacon, destination. 270 lost: Wasted. 271 Man but a rush: Wield only a reed. 274 compt: Final accounting, Last Judgment. 286 I . . . feet: i.e., to see if they are cloven, like the Devil’s.

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 785

[Wounds Iago.] Lodovico: Wrench his sword from him.

[Othello is disarmed.] Iago: I bleed, sir, but not killed. Othello: I am not sorry neither. I’ld have thee live;

For in my sense, ’tis happiness to die. 290 Lodovico: O thou Othello that wert once so good,

Fall’n in the practice° of a damnèd slave, What shall be said to thee?

Othello: Why, anything; An honorable murderer, if you will; For naught did I in hate, but all in honor. 295

Lodovico: This wretch hath part confessed his villainy. Did you and he consent in° Cassio’s death?

Othello: Ay. Cassio: Dear general, I never gave you cause. Othello: I do believe it, and I ask your pardon. 300

Will you, I pray, demand that demi-devil Why he hath thus ensnared my soul and body?

Iago: Demand me nothing. What you know, you know. From this time forth I never will speak word.

Lodovico: What, not to pray? Gratiano: Torments will ope your lips. 305 Othello: Well, thou dost best. Lodovico: Sir, you shall understand what hath befall’n,

Which, as I think, you know not. Here is a letter Found in the pocket of the slain Roderigo; And here another. The one of them imports 310 The death of Cassio to be undertook By Roderigo.

Othello: O villain! Cassio: Most heathenish and most gross! Lodovico: Now here’s another discontented paper

Found in the pocket too; and this, it seems, 315 Roderigo meant t’ have sent this damnèd villain; But that, belike, Iago in the nick° Came in and satisfi ed him.

Othello: O thou pernicious caitiff! — How came you, Cassio, by that handkerchief That was my wife’s?

Cassio: I found it in my chamber; 320 And he himself confessed but even now That there he dropped it for a special purpose Which wrought to his desire.

292 practice: Plot. 297 consent in: Agree upon. 317 nick: Nick of time.

786 william shakespeare and elizabethan drama act v • scene 1i

Othello: O fool! fool! fool! Cassio: There is besides in Roderigo’s letter,

How he upbraids Iago that he made him 325 Brave me upon the watch; whereon it came That I was cast;° and even but now he spake, After long seeming dead — Iago hurt him, Iago set him on.

Lodovico: You must forsake this room and go with us. 330 Your power and your command is taken off, And Cassio rules in Cyprus. For this slave, If there be any cunning cruelty That can torment him much and hold him long, It shall be his. You shall close prisoner rest 335 Till that the nature of your fault be known To the Venetian state. Come, bring away.

Othello: Soft you! a word or two before you go. I have done the state some service, and they know’t. No more of that. I pray you, in your letters, 340 When you shall these unlucky° deeds relate, Speak of me as I am. Nothing extenuate, Nor set down aught in malice. Then must you speak Of one that loved not wisely, but too well; Of one not easily jealous, but, being wrought, 345 Perplexed° in the extreme; of one whose hand, Like the base Judean,° threw a pearl away Richer than all his tribe; of one whose subdued° eyes, Albeit unusèd to the melting mood, Drop tears as fast as the Arabian trees 350 Their med’cinable gum. Set you down this. And say besides that in Aleppo once, Where a malignant and a turbaned Turk Beat a Venetian and traduced the state, I took by th’ throat the circumcisèd dog 355 And smote him — thus.

(He stabs himself.)

Lodovico: O bloody period!° Gratiano: All that’s spoke is marred. Othello: I kissed thee ere I killed thee. No way but this,

Killing myself, to die upon a kiss.

(He [falls upon the bed and] dies.)

327 cast: Dismissed. 341 unlucky: Fatal. 346 Perplexed: Distracted. 347 Judean: Judas Iscariot (?) (quarto reads “Indian”). 348 subdued: i.e., conquered by grief. 357 period: Ending.

act v • scene 1i shakespeare / othello, the moor of venice 787

Cassio: This did I fear, but thought he had no weapon; 360 For he was great of heart.

Lodovico [to Iago]: O Spartan dog, More fell° than anguish, hunger, or the sea! Look on the tragic loading of this bed. This is thy work. The object poisons sight; Let it be hid.° Gratiano, keep the house, 365 And seize upon° the fortunes of the Moor, For they succeed on you. To you, lord governor, Remains the censure° of this hellish villain, The time, the place, the torture. O, enforce it! Myself will straight aboard, and to the state 370 This heavy act with heavy heart relate.

Exeunt.

362 fell: Cruel. 365 Let it be hid: i.e., draw the bed curtains. 366 seize upon: Take legal possession of. 368 censure: Judicial sentence.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. Characterize Othello. In what ways is he presented as having a jealous disposition as well as a noble one? Why is he so vulnerable to Iago’s villainy?

2. Explain how Iago presents himself to the world. What is beneath the surface of his public identity? Why does he hate Othello so passion- ately? What makes Iago so effective at manipulating people? What do other characters, besides Othello, think of him?

3. Explain why you think Othello’s racial background does or doesn’t affect events in the play.

4. How does Othello change during the course of the play? Do you feel the same about him from beginning to end? Trace your response to his character as it develops, paying particular attention to Othello’s fi nal speech.

5. Consider how women — Desdemona, Emilia, and Bianca — are pre- sented in the play. What characteristics do they have in common? How do they relate to the men in their lives?

6. Despite its grinding emotional impact and bleak ending, Othello does have its humorous moments. Locate a scene that includes humor and describe its tone and function in the play.

7. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Here’s a long reach but a poten- tially interesting one: Write an essay that considers Desdemona as a wife alongside Nora in Henrik Ibsen’s A Doll House (p. 792). How responsible are they to themselves and to others? Can they be dis- cussed in the same breath, or are they from such different worlds that nothing useful can be said about comparing them? Either way, explain your response.

788

A play should give you something to think about. When I see a play and understand it the fi rst time, then I know it can’t be much good.

— T. S.ELIOT 1

REALISM Realism is a literary technique that attempts to create the appearance of life as it is actually experienced. Characters in modern realistic plays (written during and after the last quarter of the nineteenth century) speak dialogue that we might hear in our daily lives. These characters are not larger than life but representative of it; they seem to speak the way we do rather than in highly poetic language, formal declarations, asides, or soliloquies. It is impossible to imagine a heroic fi gure such as Oedipus inhabiting a comfortably furnished living room and chatting about his wife’s household budget the way Torvald Helmer does in Henrik Ibsen’s A Doll House. Realism brings into focus commonplace, everyday life rather than the extraordinary kinds of events that make up Sophocles’ Oedipus the King or Shakespeare’s Othello. Realistic characters can certainly be heroic, but like Nora Helmer, they fi nd that their strength and courage are tested in the context of events ordinary people might experience. Work, love, marriage, children,

26 Henrik Ibsen

and Modern Drama

1Photograph reprinted by permission of the Houghton Library, Harvard University.

realism 789

and death are often the focus of realistic dramas. These subjects can also constitute much of the material in nonrealistic plays, but modern realis- tic dramas present such material in the realm of the probable. Confl icts in realistic plays are likely to refl ect problems in our own lives. Hence, making ends meet takes precedence over saving a kingdom; middle- and lower-class individuals take center stage as primary characters in main plots rather than being secondary characters in subplots. Thus we can see why the nineteenth-century movement toward realism paralleled the rise of a middle class eagerly seeking representations of its concerns in the theater. Before the end of the nineteenth century, however, few attempts were made in the theater to present life as it is actually lived. The chorus’s role in Sophocles’ Oedipus the King, the allegorical fi gures in morality plays, the remarkable mistaken identities in Shakespeare’s comedies, or the rhymed couplets spoken in seventeenth-century plays such as Molière’s Tartuffe represent theatrical conventions rather than life. Theatergoers have understood and appreciated these conventions for centuries — and still do — but in the nineteenth century social, political, and industrial revolutions helped create an atmosphere in which some playwrights found it necessary to create works that more directly refl ected their audi- ences’ lives. Playwrights such as Henrik Ibsen and Anton Chekhov refused to join the ranks of their romantic contemporaries, who they felt falsely idealized life. The most popular plays immediately preceding the works of these realistic writers consisted primarily of love stories and action- packed plots. Such melodramas offer audiences thrills and chills as well as happy endings. They typically include a virtuous individual strug- gling under the tyranny of a wicked oppressor, who is defeated only at the last moment. Suspense is reinforced by a series of pursuits, captures, and escapes that move the plot quickly and de-emphasize character or theme. These representations of extreme confl icts enjoyed wide popu- larity in the nineteenth century — indeed, they still do — because their formula was varied enough to be entertaining yet their outcomes were always comforting to the audience’s sense of justice. From the realists’ perspective, melodramas were merely escape fantasies that distorted life by refusing to examine the real world closely and objectively. Realists attempted to open their audiences’ eyes; to their minds, the only genuine comfort was in knowing the truth. Many of their plays con- cern controversial issues of the day and focus on people who fall prey to indifferent societal institutions. English dramatist John Galsworthy (1867–1933) examined social values in Strife (1909) and Justice (1910), two plays whose titles broadly suggest the nature of his concerns. British playwright George Bernard Shaw (1856–1950) often used comedy and irony as means of awakening his audiences to contemporary problems: Arms and the Man (1894) satirizes romantic attitudes toward war, and Mrs. Warren’s Profession (1898) indicts a social and economic system that drives

790 henrik ibsen and modern drama

a woman to prostitution. Chekhov’s major plays are populated by char- acters frustrated by their social situations and their own sensibilities; they are ordinary people who long for happiness but become entangled in everyday circumstances that limit their lives. Ibsen also took a close look at his characters’ daily lives. His plays attack social conventions and challenge popular attitudes toward marriage; he stunned audiences by dramatizing the suffering of a man dying of syphilis. With these kinds of materials, Ibsen and his contemporaries popu- larized the problem play, a drama that represents a social issue in order to awaken the audience to it. These plays usually reject romantic plots in favor of holding up a mirror that refl ects not simply what audiences want to see but what the playwright sees in them. Nineteenth-century realistic theater was no refuge from the social, economic, and psycho- logical problems that melodrama ignored or sentimentalized.

THEATRICAL CONVENTIONS OF MODERN DR AMA The picture-frame stage that is often used for realistic plays typically reproduces the setting of a room in some detail. Within the stage, framed by a proscenium arch (from which the curtain hangs), scenery and props are used to create an illusion of reality. Whether the “small bookcase with richly bound books” described in the opening scene of Ibsen’s A Doll House is only painted scenery or an actual case with books, it will probably look real to the audience. Removing the fourth wall of a room so that an audi- ence can look in fosters the illusion that the actions onstage are real events happening before unseen spectators. The texture of Nora’s life is commu- nicated by the set as well as by what she says and does. That doesn’t hap- pen in a play like Sophocles’ Oedipus the King. Technical effects can make us believe there is wood burning in a fi replace or snow falling outside a win- dow. Outdoor settings are made similarly realistic by props and painted sets. In one of Chekhov’s full-length plays, for example, the second act opens in a meadow with the faint outline of a city on the horizon. In addition to lifelike sets, a particular method of acting is used to create a realistic atmosphere. Actors address each other instead of direct- ing formal speeches toward the audience; they act within the setting, not merely before it. At the beginning of the twentieth century, Konstantin Stanislavsky (1863–1938), a Russian director, teacher, and actor, developed a system of acting that was an important infl uence in realistic theater. He trained actors to identify with the inner emotions of the characters they played. They were encouraged to recall from their own lives emotional responses similar to those they were portraying. The goal was to present a role truthfully by fi rst feeling and then projecting the character’s situa- tion. Among Stanislavsky’s early successes in this method were the plays of Chekhov.

theatrical conventions of modern drama 791

There are, however, degrees of realism on the stage. Tennessee Wil- liams’s The Glass Menagerie, for example, is a partially realistic portrayal of characters whose fragile lives are founded on illusions. Williams’s dialogue rings true, and individual scenes resemble the kind of real- life action we would imagine such vulnerable characters engaging in, but other elements of the play are nonrealistic. For instance, Williams uses Tom as a major character in the play as well as narrator and stage manager. Here is part of Williams’s stage directions: “The narrator is an undisguised convention of the play. He takes whatever license with dra- matic convention as is convenient to his purposes.” Although this play can be accurately described as including realistic elements, Williams, like many other contemporary playwrights, does not attempt an absolute fi delity to reality. He uses fl ashbacks — as does Arthur Miller in Death of a Salesman — to present incidents that occurred before the opening scene because the past impinges so heavily on the present. Most playwrights don’t attempt to duplicate reality, since that can now be done so well by motion pictures. Realism needn’t lock a playwright into a futile attempt to make everything appear as it is in life. There is no way to avoid theatrical con- ventions: Actors impersonate characters in a setting that is, after all, a stage. Indeed, even the dialogue in a realistic play is quite different from the pauses, sentence fragments, repetitions, silences, and incoherencies that characterize the way people usually speak. Realistic dialogue may seem like ordinary speech, but it, like Shakespeare’s poetic language, is constructed. If we remember that realistic drama represents only the appearance of reality and that what we read on a page or see and hear onstage is the result of careful selecting, editing, and even distortion, then we are more likely to appreciate the playwright’s art.

A Doll House

Henrik Ibsen was born in Skien, Norway, to wealthy parents, who lost their money while he was a young boy. His early experi- ences with small-town life and genteel pov- erty sensitized him to the problems that he sub sequently dramatized in a number of his plays. At age sixteen he was apprenticed to a druggist; he later thought about study- ing medicine, but by his early twenties he was earning a living writing and direct- ing plays in various Norwegian cities. By the time of his death he enjoyed an inter- national reputation for his treatment of social issues related to middle-class life.

popperfoto/Alamy.

792 henrik ibsen and modern drama

Ibsen’s earliest dramatic works were historical and romantic plays, some in verse. His fi rst truly realistic work was The Pillars of Society (1877), whose title ironically hints at the corruption and hypocrisy exposed in it. The realistic social-problem plays for which he is best known followed. These dramas at once fascinated and shocked international audiences. Among his most produced and admired works are A Doll House (1879), Ghosts (1881), An Enemy of the People (1882), The Wild Duck (1884), and Hedda Gabler (1890). The common denominator in many of Ibsen’s dramas is his interest in individuals struggling for an authentic identity in the face of tyrannical social conventions. This confl ict often results in his char- acters’ being divided between a sense of duty to themselves and their responsibility to others. Ibsen used such external and internal confl icts to propel his plays’ action. Like many of his contemporaries who wrote realistic plays, he adopted the form of the well-made play. A dramatic structure popularized in France by Eugène Scribe (1791–1861) and Victorien Sardou (1831–1908), the well-made play employs conventions including plenty of suspense created by meticulous plotting. Extensive exposition explains past events that ultimately lead to an inevitable climax. Tension is released when a secret that reverses the protagonist’s fortunes is revealed. Ibsen, having directed a number of Scribe’s plays in Norway, knew their cause-to-effect plot arrangements and used them for his own purposes in his problem plays. A Doll House dramatizes the tensions of a nineteenth-century middle-class marriage in which a wife struggles to step beyond the lim- ited identity imposed on her by her husband and society.

Henrik Ibsen (1828–1906)

A Doll House 1879 TRANSLATED BY ROLF FJELDE

the characters

Torvald Helmer, a lawyer Nora, his wife Dr. Rank Mrs. Linde Nils Krogstad, a bank clerk The Helmers’ three small children Anne-Marie, their nurse Helene, a maid A Delivery Boy

scene: The action takes place in Helmer’s residence.

act i ibsen / a doll house 793

AC T I

A comfortable room, tastefully but not expensively furnished. A door to the right in the back wall leads to the entryway; another to the left leads to Helmer’s study. Between these doors, a piano. Midway in the left-hand wall a door, and further back a window. Near the window a round table with an armchair and a small sofa. In the right-hand wall, toward the rear, a door, and nearer the foreground a porcelain stove with two armchairs and a rocking chair beside it. Between the stove and the side door, a small table. Engravings on the walls. An etagère with china fi gures and other small art objects; a small bookcase with richly bound books; the fl oor carpeted; a fi re burning in the stove. It is a winter day. A bell rings in the entryway; shortly after we hear the door being unlocked. Nora comes into the room, humming happily to herself; she is wearing street clothes and carries an armload of packages, which she puts down on the table to the right. She has left the hall door open; and through it a Delivery Boy is seen, holding a Christmas tree and a basket, which he gives to the Maid who let them in.

Nora: Hide the tree well, Helene. The children mustn’t get a glimpse of it till this evening, after it’s trimmed. (To the Delivery Boy, taking out her purse.) How much?

A Doll House: Owen Teale and Janet McTeer in the 1997 Bill Kenwright London production of A Doll House performed at New York’s Belasco Theater — winner of the 1997 Tony Award for Best Revival of a Play. © Joan Marcus.

794 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Delivery Boy: Fifty, ma’am. Nora: There’s a crown. No, keep the change. (The Boy thanks her and leaves.

Nora shuts the door. She laughs softly to herself while taking off her street things. Drawing a bag of macaroons from her pocket, she eats a couple, then steals over and listens at her husband’s study door.) Yes, he’s home. (Hums again as she moves to the table right.)

Helmer (from the study): Is that my little lark twittering out there? Nora (busy opening some packages): Yes, it is. Helmer: Is that my squirrel rummaging around? Nora: Yes! Helmer: When did my squirrel get in? Nora: Just now. (Putting the macaroon bag in her pocket and wiping her

mouth.) Do come in, Torvald, and see what I’ve bought. Helmer: Can’t be disturbed. (After a moment he opens the door and peers in,

pen in hand.) Bought, you say? All that there? Has the little spend- thrift been out throwing money around again?

Nora: Oh, but Torvald, this year we really should let ourselves go a bit. It’s the fi rst Christmas we haven’t had to economize.

Helmer: But you know we can’t go squandering. Nora: Oh yes, Torvald, we can squander a little now. Can’t we? Just a

tiny, wee bit. Now that you’ve got a big salary and are going to make piles and piles of money.

Helmer: Yes — starting New Year’s. But then it’s a full three months till the raise comes through.

Nora: Pooh! We can borrow that long. Helmer: Nora! (Goes over and playfully takes her by the ear.) Are your scatter-

brains off again? What if today I borrowed a thousand crowns, and you squandered them over Christmas week, and then on New Year’s Eve a roof tile fell on my head and I lay there —

Nora (putting her hand on his mouth): Oh! Don’t say such things! Helmer: Yes, but what if it happened — then what? Nora: If anything so awful happened, then it just wouldn’t matter if I

had debts or not. Helmer: Well, but the people I’d borrowed from? Nora: Them? Who cares about them! They’re strangers. Helmer: Nora, Nora, how like a woman! No, but seriously, Nora, you

know what I think about that. No debts! Never borrow! Something of freedom’s lost — and something of beauty, too — from a home that’s founded on borrowing and debt. We’ve made a brave stand up to now, the two of us; and we’ll go right on like that the little while we have to.

Nora (going toward the stove): Yes, whatever you say, Torvald. Helmer (following her): Now, now, the little lark’s wings mustn’t droop.

Come on, don’t be a sulky squirrel. (Taking out his wallet.) Nora, guess what I have here.

Nora (turning quickly): Money!

act i ibsen / a doll house 795

Helmer: There, see. (Hands her some notes.) Good grief, I know how costs go up in a house at Christmastime.

Nora: Ten — twenty — thirty — forty. Oh, thank you, Torvald; I can man- age no end on this.

Helmer: You really will have to. Nora: Oh yes, I promise I will! But come here so I can show you every-

thing I bought. And so cheap! Look, new clothes for Ivar here — and a sword. Here a horse and a trumpet for Bob. And a doll and a doll’s bed here for Emmy; they’re nothing much, but she’ll tear them to bits in no time anyway. And here I have dress material and hand- kerchiefs for the maids. Old Anne-Marie really deserves something more.

Helmer: And what’s in that package there? Nora (with a cry): Torvald, no! You can’t see that till tonight! Helmer: I see. But tell me now, you little prodigal, what have you thought

of for yourself ? Nora: For myself ? Oh, I don’t want anything at all. Helmer: Of course you do. Tell me just what — within reason — you’d

most like to have. Nora: I honestly don’t know. Oh, listen, Torvald — Helmer: Well ? Nora (fumbling at his coat buttons, without looking at him): If you want to

give me something, then maybe you could — you could — Helmer: Come on, out with it. Nora (hurriedly): You could give me money, Torvald. No more than you

think you can spare; then one of these days I’ll buy something with it. Helmer: But Nora — Nora: Oh please, Torvald darling, do that! I beg you, please. Then I could

hang the bills in pretty gilt paper on the Christmas tree. Wouldn’t that be fun?

Helmer: What are those little birds called that always fl y through their fortunes?

Nora: Oh yes, spendthrifts: I know all that. But let’s do as I say, Torvald; then I’ll have time to decide what I really need most. That’s very sen- sible, isn’t it?

Helmer (smiling): Yes, very — that is, if you actually hung onto the money I give you, and you actually used it to buy yourself something. But it goes for the house and for all sorts of foolish things, and then I only have to lay out some more.

Nora: Oh, but Torvald — Helmer: Don’t deny it, my dear little Nora. (Putting his arm around her

waist.) Spendthrifts are sweet, but they use up a frightful amount of money. It’s incredible what it costs a man to feed such birds.

Nora: Oh, how can you say that! Really, I save everything I can. Helmer (laughing): Yes, that’s the truth. Everything you can. But that’s

nothing at all.

796 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Nora (humming, with a smile of quiet satisfaction): Hm, if you only knew what expenses we larks and squirrels have, Torvald.

Helmer: You’re an odd little one. Exactly the way your father was. You’re never at a loss for scaring up money; but the moment you have it, it runs right out through your fi ngers; you never know what you’ve done with it. Well, one takes you as you are. It’s deep in your blood. Yes, these things are hereditary, Nora.

Nora: Ah, I could wish I’d inherited many of Papa’s qualities. Helmer: And I couldn’t wish you anything but just what you are, my

sweet little lark. But wait; it seems to me you have a very — what should I call it? — a very suspicious look today —

Nora: I do? Helmer: You certainly do. Look me straight in the eye. Nora (looking at him): Well? Helmer (shaking an admonitory fi nger): Surely my sweet tooth hasn’t been

running riot in town today, has she? Nora: No. Why do you imagine that? Helmer: My sweet tooth really didn’t make a little detour through the

confectioner’s? Nora: No, I assure you, Torvald — Helmer: Hasn’t nibbled some pastry? Nora: No, not at all. Helmer: Not even munched a macaroon or two? Nora: No, Torvald, I assure you, really — Helmer: There, there now. Of course I’m only joking. Nora (going to the table, right): You know I could never think of going

against you. Helmer: No, I understand that; and you have given me your word. (Going

over to her.) Well, you keep your little Christmas secrets to yourself, Nora darling. I expect they’ll come to light this evening, when the tree is lit.

Nora: Did you remember to ask Dr. Rank? Helmer: No. But there’s no need for that: it’s assumed he’ll be dining

with us. All the same, I’ll ask him when he stops by here this morn- ing. I’ve ordered some fi ne wine. Nora, you can’t imagine how I’m looking forward to this evening.

Nora: So am I. And what fun for the children, Torvald! Helmer: Ah, it’s so gratifying to know that one’s gotten a safe, secure job,

and with a comfortable salary. It’s a great satisfaction, isn’t it? Nora: Oh, it’s wonderful! Helmer: Remember last Christmas? Three whole weeks before, you shut

yourself in every evening till long after midnight, making fl owers for the Christmas tree, and all the other decorations to surprise us. Ugh, that was the dullest time I’ve ever lived through.

Nora: It wasn’t at all dull for me. Helmer (smiling): But the outcome was pretty sorry, Nora.

act i ibsen / a doll house 797

Nora: Oh, don’t tease me with that again. How could I help it that the cat came in and tore everything to shreds.

Helmer: No, poor thing, you certainly couldn’t. You wanted so much to please us all, and that’s what counts. But it’s just as well that the hard times are past.

Nora: Yes, it’s really wonderful. Helmer: Now I don’t have to sit here alone, boring myself, and you don’t

have to tire your precious eyes and your fair little delicate hands — Nora (clapping her hands): No, is it really true, Torvald, I don’t have

to? Oh, how wonderfully lovely to hear! (Taking his arm.) Now I’ll tell you just how I’ve thought we should plan things. Right after Christmas — (The doorbell rings.) Oh, the bell. (Straightening the room up a bit.) Somebody would have to come. What a bore!

Helmer: I’m not home to visitors, don’t forget. Maid (from the hall doorway): Ma’am, a lady to see you — Nora: All right, let her come in. Maid (to Helmer): And the doctor’s just come too. Helmer: Did he go right to my study? Maid: Yes, he did.

Helmer goes into his room. The Maid shows in Mrs. Linde, dressed in travel- ing clothes, and shuts the door after her.

Mrs. Linde (in a dispirited and somewhat hesitant voice): Hello, Nora. Nora (uncertain): Hello — Mrs. Linde: You don’t recognize me. Nora: No, I don’t know — but wait, I think — (Exclaiming.) What! Kris-

tine! Is it really you? Mrs. Linde: Yes, it’s me. Nora: Kristine! To think I didn’t recognize you. But then, how could I?

(More quietly.) How you’ve changed, Kristine! Mrs. Linde: Yes, no doubt I have. In nine — ten long years. Nora: Is it so long since we met? Yes, it’s all of that. Oh, these last eight

years have been a happy time, believe me. And so now you’ve come in to town, too. Made the long trip in the winter. That took courage.

Mrs. Linde: I just got here by ship this morning. Nora: To enjoy yourself over Christmas, of course. Oh, how lovely! Yes,

enjoy ourselves, we’ll do that. But take your coat off. You’re not still cold? (Helping her.) There now, let’s get cozy here by the stove. No, the easy chair there! I’ll take the rocker here. (Seizing her hands.) Yes, now you have your old look again; it was only in that fi rst moment. You’re a bit more pale, Kristine — and maybe a bit thinner.

Mrs. Linde: And much, much older, Nora. Nora: Yes, perhaps a bit older: a tiny, tiny bit; not much at all. (Stopping

short; suddenly serious.) Oh, but thoughtless me, to sit here, chattering away. Sweet, good Kristine, can you forgive me?

Mrs. Linde: What do you mean, Nora?

798 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Nora (softly): Poor Kristine, you’ve become a widow. Mrs. Linde: Yes, three years ago. Nora: Oh, I knew it, of course: I read it in the papers. Oh, Kristine, you

must believe me; I often thought of writing you then, but I kept postponing it, and something always interfered.

Mrs. Linde: Nora dear, I understand completely. Nora: No, it was awful of me, Kristine. You poor thing, how much you

must have gone through. And he left you nothing? Mrs. Linde: No. Nora: And no children? Mrs. Linde: No. Nora: Nothing at all, then? Mrs. Linde: Not even a sense of loss to feed on. Nora (looking incredulously at her): But Kristine, how could that be? Mrs. Linde (smiling wearily and smoothing her hair): Oh, sometimes it hap-

pens, Nora. Nora: So completely alone. How terribly hard that must be for you. I

have three lovely children. You can’t see them now; they’re out with the maid. But now you must tell me everything —

Mrs. Linde: No, no, no, tell me about yourself. Nora: No, you begin. Today I don’t want to be selfi sh. I want to think

only of you today. But there is something I must tell you. Did you hear of the wonderful luck we had recently?

Mrs. Linde: No, what’s that? Nora: My husband’s been made manager in the bank, just think! Mrs. Linde: Your husband? How marvelous! Nora: Isn’t it? Being a lawyer is such an uncertain living, you know,

especially if one won’t touch any cases that aren’t clean and decent. And of course Torvald would never do that, and I’m with him com- pletely there. Oh, we’re simply delighted, believe me! He’ll join the bank right after New Year’s and start getting a huge salary and lots of commissions. From now on we can live quite differently — just as we want. Oh, Kristine, I feel so light and happy! Won’t it be lovely to have stacks of money and not a care in the world?

Mrs. Linde: Well, anyway, it would be lovely to have enough for necessities. Nora: No, not just for necessities, but stacks and stacks of money! Mrs. Linde (smiling): Nora, Nora, aren’t you sensible yet? Back in school

you were such a free spender. Nora (with a quiet laugh): Yes, that’s what Torvald still says. (Shaking her

fi nger.) But “Nora, Nora” isn’t as silly as you all think. Really, we’ve been in no position for me to go squandering. We’ve had to work, both of us.

Mrs. Linde: You too? Nora: Yes, at odd jobs — needlework, crocheting, embroidery, and such —

(Casually.) and other things too. You remember that Torvald left the

act i ibsen / a doll house 799

department when we were married? There was no chance of promo- tion in his offi ce, and of course he needed to earn more money. But that fi rst year he drove himself terribly. He took on all kinds of extra work that kept him going morning and night. It wore him down, and then he fell deathly ill. The doctors said it was essential for him to travel south.

Mrs. Linde: Yes, didn’t you spend a whole year in Italy? Nora: That’s right. It wasn’t easy to get away, you know. Ivar had just

been born. But of course we had to go. Oh, that was a beautiful trip, and it saved Torvald’s life. But it cost a frightful sum, Kristine.

Mrs. Linde: I can well imagine. Nora: Four thousand, eight hundred crowns it cost. That’s really a lot of

money. Mrs. Linde: But it’s lucky you had it when you needed it. Nora: Well, as it was, we got it from Papa. Mrs. Linde: I see. It was just about the time your father died. Nora: Yes, just about then. And, you know, I couldn’t make that trip out

to nurse him. I had to stay here, expecting Ivar any moment, and with my poor sick Torvald to care for. Dearest Papa, I never saw him again, Kristine. Oh, that was the worst time I’ve known in all my marriage.

Mrs. Linde: I know how you loved him. And then you went off to Italy? Nora: Yes. We had the means now, and the doctors urged us. So we left

a month after. Mrs. Linde: And your husband came back completely cured? Nora: Sound as a drum! Mrs. Linde: But — the doctor? Nora: Who? Mrs. Linde: I thought the maid said he was a doctor, the man who came

in with me. Nora: Yes, that was Dr. Rank — but he’s not making a sick call. He’s our

closest friend, and he stops by at least once a day. No, Torvald hasn’t had a sick moment since, and the children are fi t and strong, and I am, too. (Jumping up and clapping her hands.) Oh, dear God, Kris- tine, what a lovely thing to live and be happy! But how disgusting of me — I’m talking of nothing but my own affairs. (Sits on a stool close by Kristine, arms resting across her knees.) Oh, don’t be angry with me! Tell me, is it really true that you weren’t in love with your husband? Why did you marry him, then?

Mrs. Linde: My mother was still alive, but bedridden and helpless — and I had my two younger brothers to look after. In all conscience, I didn’t think I could turn him down.

Nora: No, you were right there. But was he rich at the time? Mrs. Linde: He was very well off, I’d say. But the business was shaky, Nora.

When he died, it all fell apart, and nothing was left. Nora: And then — ?

800 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Mrs. Linde: Yes, so I had to scrape up a living with a little shop and a little teaching and whatever else I could fi nd. The last three years have been like one endless workday without a rest for me. Now it’s over, Nora. My poor mother doesn’t need me, for she’s passed on. Nor the boys, either; they’re working now and can take care of themselves.

Nora: How free you must feel — Mrs. Linde: No — only unspeakably empty. Nothing to live for now.

(Standing up anxiously.) That’s why I couldn’t take it any longer out in that desolate hole. Maybe here it’ll be easier to fi nd something to do and keep my mind occupied. If I could only be lucky enough to get a steady job, some offi ce work —

Nora: Oh, but Kristine, that’s so dreadfully tiring, and you already look so tired. It would be much better for you if you could go off to a bathing resort.

Mrs. Linde (going toward the window): I have no father to give me travel money, Nora.

Nora (rising): Oh, don’t be angry with me. Mrs. Linde (going to her): Nora dear, don’t you be angry with me. The

worst of my kind of situation is all the bitterness that’s stored away. No one to work for, and yet you’re always having to snap up your opportunities. You have to live; and so you grow selfi sh. When you told me the happy change in your lot, do you know I was delighted less for your sakes than for mine?

Nora: How so? Oh, I see. You think maybe Torvald could do something for you.

Mrs. Linde: Yes, that’s what I thought. Nora: And he will, Kristine! Just leave it to me; I’ll bring it up so deli-

cately — fi nd something attractive to humor him with. Oh, I’m so eager to help you.

Mrs. Linde: How very kind of you, Nora, to be so concerned over me — dou- bly kind, considering you really know so little of life’s burdens yourself.

Nora: I — ? I know so little — ? Mrs. Linde (smiling): Well, my heavens — a little needlework and such — Nora,

you’re just a child. Nora (tossing her head and pacing the fl oor): You don’t have to act so

superior. Mrs. Linde: Oh? Nora: You’re just like the others. You all think I’m incapable of anything

serious — Mrs. Linde: Come now — Nora: That I’ve never had to face the raw world. Mrs. Linde: Nora dear, you’ve just been telling me all your troubles. Nora: Hm! Trivia! (Quietly.) I haven’t told you the big thing. Mrs. Linde: Big thing? What do you mean? Nora: You look down on me so, Kristine, but you shouldn’t. You’re

proud that you worked so long and hard for your mother.

act i ibsen / a doll house 801

Mrs. Linde: I don’t look down on a soul. But it is true: I’m proud — and happy, too — to think it was given to me to make my mother’s last days almost free of care.

Nora: And you’re also proud thinking of what you’ve done for your brothers.

Mrs. Linde: I feel I’ve a right to be. Nora: I agree. But listen to this, Kristine — I’ve also got something to be

proud and happy for. Mrs. Linde: I don’t doubt it. But whatever do you mean? Nora: Not so loud. What if Torvald heard! He mustn’t, not for anything

in the world. Nobody must know, Kristine. No one but you. Mrs. Linde: But what is it, then? Nora: Come here. (Drawing her down beside her on the sofa.) It’s true — I’ve

also got something to be proud and happy for. I’m the one who saved Torvald’s life.

Mrs. Linde: Saved — ? Saved how? Nora: I told you about the trip to Italy. Torvald never would have lived if

he hadn’t gone south — Mrs. Linde: Of course; your father gave you the means — Nora (smiling): That’s what Torvald and all the rest think, but — Mrs. Linde: But — ? Nora: Papa didn’t give us a pin. I was the one who raised the money. Mrs. Linde: You? That whole amount? Nora: Four thousand, eight hundred crowns. What do you say to that? Mrs. Linde: But Nora, how was it possible? Did you win the lottery? Nora (disdainfully): The lottery? Pooh! No art to that. Mrs. Linde: But where did you get it from then? Nora (humming, with a mysterious smile): Hmm, tra-la-la-la. Mrs. Linde: Because you couldn’t have borrowed it. Nora: No? Why not? Mrs. Linde: A wife can’t borrow without her husband’s consent. Nora (tossing her head): Oh, but a wife with a little business sense, a wife

who knows how to manage — Mrs. Linde: Nora, I simply don’t understand — Nora: You don’t have to. Whoever said I borrowed the money? I could

have gotten it other ways. (Throwing herself back on the sofa.) I could have gotten it from some admirer or other. After all, a girl with my ravishing appeal —

Mrs. Linde: You lunatic. Nora: I’ll bet you’re eaten up with curiosity, Kristine. Mrs. Linde: Now listen here, Nora — you haven’t done something in-

discreet? Nora (sitting up again): Is it indiscreet to save your husband’s life? Mrs. Linde: I think it’s indiscreet that without his knowledge you — Nora: But that’s the point: he mustn’t know! My Lord, can’t you under-

stand? He mustn’t ever know the close call he had. It was to me the

802 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

doctors came to say his life was in danger — that nothing could save him but a stay in the south. Didn’t I try strategy then! I began talk- ing about how lovely it would be for me to travel abroad like other young wives; I begged and I cried; I told him please to remember my condition, to be kind and indulge me; and then I dropped a hint that he could easily take out a loan. But at that, Kristine, he nearly exploded. He said I was frivolous, and it was his duty as man of the house not to indulge me in whims and fancies — as I think he called them. Aha, I thought, now you’ll just have to be saved — and that’s when I saw my chance.

Mrs. Linde: And your father never told Torvald the money wasn’t from him? Nora: No, never. Papa died right about then. I’d considered bringing

him into my secret and begging him never to tell. But he was too sick at the time — and then, sadly, it didn’t matter.

Mrs. Linde: And you’ve never confi ded in your husband since? Nora: For heaven’s sake, no! Are you serious? He’s so strict on that sub-

ject. Besides — Torvald, with all his masculine pride — how painfully humiliating for him if he ever found out he was in debt to me. That would just ruin our relationship. Our beautiful, happy home would never be the same.

Mrs. Linde: Won’t you ever tell him? Nora (thoughtfully, half smiling): Yes — maybe sometime, years from now,

when I’m no longer so attractive. Don’t laugh! I only mean when Torvald loves me less than now, when he stops enjoying my danc- ing and dressing up and reciting for him. Then it might be wise to have something in reserve — (Breaking off.) How ridiculous! That’ll never happen — Well, Kristine, what do you think of my big secret? I’m capable of something too, hm? You can imagine, of course, how this thing hangs over me. It really hasn’t been easy meeting the pay- ments on time. In the business world there’s what they call quar- terly interest and what they call amortization, and these are always so terribly hard to manage. I’ve had to skimp a little here and there, wherever I could, you know. I could hardly spare anything from my house allowance, because Torvald has to live well. I couldn’t let the children go poorly dressed; whatever I got for them, I felt I had to use up completely — the darlings!

Mrs. Linde: Poor Nora, so it had to come out of your own budget, then? Nora: Yes, of course. But I was the one most responsible, too. Every time

Torvald gave me money for new clothes and such, I never used more than half; always bought the simplest, cheapest outfi ts. It was a god- send that everything looks so well on me that Torvald never noticed. But it did weigh me down at times, Kristine. It is such a joy to wear fi ne things. You understand.

Mrs. Linde: Oh, of course. Nora: And then I found other ways of making money. Last winter I was

lucky enough to get a lot of copying to do. I locked myself in and sat

act i ibsen / a doll house 803

writing every evening till late in the night. Ah, I was tired so often, dead tired. But still it was wonderful fun, sitting and working like that, earning money. It was almost like being a man.

Mrs. Linde: But how much have you paid off this way so far? Nora: That’s hard to say, exactly. These accounts, you know, aren’t easy

to fi gure. I only know that I’ve paid out all I could scrape together. Time and again I haven’t known where to turn. (Smiling.) Then I’d sit here dreaming of a rich old gentleman who had fallen in love with me —

Mrs. Linde: What! Who is he? Nora: Oh, really! And that he’d died, and when his will was opened,

there in big letters it said, “All my fortune shall be paid over in cash, immediately, to that enchanting Mrs. Nora Helmer.”

Mrs. Linde: But Nora dear — who was this gentleman? Nora: Good grief, can’t you understand? The old man never existed; that

was only something I’d dream up time and again whenever I was at my wits’ end for money. But it makes no difference now; the old fossil can go where he pleases for all I care; I don’t need him or his will — because now I’m free. (Jumping up.) Oh, how lovely to think of that, Kristine! Carefree! To know you’re carefree, utterly carefree; to be able to romp and play with the children, and to keep up a beautiful, charming home — everything just the way Torvald likes it! And think, spring is coming, with big blue skies. Maybe we can travel a little then. Maybe I’ll see the ocean again. Oh yes, it is so marvelous to live and be happy!

The front doorbell rings.

Mrs. Linde (rising): There’s the bell. It’s probably best that I go. Nora: No, stay. No one’s expected. It must be for Torvald. Maid (from the hall doorway): Excuse me, ma’am — there’s a gentleman here

to see Mr. Helmer, but I didn’t know — since the doctor’s with him — Nora: Who is the gentleman? Krogstad (from the doorway): It’s me, Mrs. Helmer.

Mrs. Linde starts and turns away toward the window.

Nora (stepping toward him, tense, her voice a whisper): You? What is it? Why do you want to speak to my husband?

Krogstad: Bank business — after a fashion. I have a small job in the invest- ment bank, and I hear now your husband is going to be our chief —

Nora: In other words, it’s — Krogstad: Just dry business, Mrs. Helmer. Nothing but that. Nora: Yes, then please be good enough to step into the study. (She nods

indifferently as she sees him out by the hall door, then returns and begins stir- ring up the stove.)

Mrs. Linde: Nora — who was that man? Nora: That was a Mr. Krogstad — a lawyer. Mrs. Linde: Then it really was him.

804 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Nora: Do you know that person? Mrs. Linde: I did once — many years ago. For a time he was a law clerk in

our town. Nora: Yes, he’s been that. Mrs. Linde: How he’s changed. Nora: I understand he had a very unhappy marriage. Mrs. Linde: He’s a widower now. Nora: With a number of children. There now, it’s burning. (She closes the

stove door and moves the rocker a bit to one side.) Mrs. Linde: They say he has a hand in all kinds of business. Nora: Oh? That may be true; I wouldn’t know. But let’s not think about

business. It’s so dull.

Dr. Rank enters from Helmer’s study.

Rank (still in the doorway): No, no really — I don’t want to intrude, I’d just as soon talk a little while with your wife. (Shuts the door, then notices Mrs. Linde.) Oh, beg pardon. I’m intruding here too.

Nora: No, not at all. (Introducing him.) Dr. Rank, Mrs. Linde. Rank: Well now, that’s a name much heard in this house. I believe I

passed the lady on the stairs as I came. Mrs. Linde: Yes, I take the stairs very slowly. They’re rather hard on me. Rank: Uh-hm, some touch of internal weakness? Mrs. Linde: More overexertion, I’d say. Rank: Nothing else? Then you’re probably here in town to rest up in a

round of parties? Mrs. Linde: I’m here to look for work. Rank: Is that the best cure for overexertion? Mrs. Linde: One has to live, Doctor. Rank: Yes, there’s a common prejudice to that effect. Nora: Oh, come on, Dr. Rank — you really do want to live yourself. Rank: Yes, I really do. Wretched as I am, I’ll gladly prolong my torment

indefi nitely. All my patients feel like that. And it’s quite the same, too, with the morally sick. Right at this moment there’s one of those moral invalids in there with Helmer —

Mrs. Linde (softly): Ah! Nora: Who do you mean? Rank: Oh, it’s a lawyer, Krogstad, a type you wouldn’t know. His character

is rotten to the root — but even he began chattering all-importantly about how he had to live.

Nora: Oh? What did he want to talk to Torvald about? Rank: I really don’t know. I only heard something about the bank. Nora: I didn’t know that Krog — that this man Krogstad had anything to

do with the bank. Rank: Yes, he’s gotten some kind of berth down there. (To Mrs. Linde.)

I don’t know if you also have, in your neck of the woods, a type of person who scuttles about breathlessly, sniffi ng out hints of moral

act i ibsen / a doll house 805

corruption, and then maneuvers his victim into some sort of key position where he can keep an eye on him. It’s the healthy these days that are out in the cold.

Mrs. Linde: All the same, it’s the sick who most need to be taken in. Rank (with a shrug): Yes, there we have it. That’s the concept that’s turn-

ing society into a sanatorium.

Nora, lost in her thoughts, breaks out into quiet laughter and claps her hands.

Rank: Why do you laugh at that? Do you have any real idea of what soci- ety is?

Nora: What do I care about dreary old society? I was laughing at some- thing quite different — something terribly funny. Tell me, Doctor — is everyone who works in the bank dependent now on Torvald?

Rank: Is that what you fi nd so terribly funny? Nora (smiling and humming): Never mind, never mind! (Pacing the fl oor.)

Yes, that’s really immensely amusing: that we — that Torvald has so much power now over all those people. (Taking the bag out of her pocket.) Dr. Rank, a little macaroon on that?

Rank: See here, macaroons! I thought they were contraband here. Nora: Yes, but these are some that Kristine gave me. Mrs. Linde: What? I — ? Nora: Now, now, don’t be afraid. You couldn’t possibly know that Tor-

vald had forbidden them. You see, he’s worried they’ll ruin my teeth. But hmp! Just this once! Isn’t that so, Dr. Rank? Help yourself! (Puts a macaroon in his mouth.) And you too, Kristine. And I’ll also have one, only a little one — or two, at the most. (Walking about again.) Now I’m really tremendously happy. Now there’s just one last thing in the world that I have an enormous desire to do.

Rank: Well! And what’s that? Nora: It’s something I have such a consuming desire to say so Torvald

could hear. Rank: And why can’t you say it? Nora: I don’t dare. It’s quite shocking. Mrs. Linde: Shocking? Rank: Well, then it isn’t advisable. But in front of us you certainly can.

What do you have such a desire to say so Torvald could hear? Nora: I have such a huge desire to say — to hell and be damned! Rank: Are you crazy? Mrs. Linde: My goodness, Nora! Rank: Go on, say it. Here he is. Nora (hiding the macaroon bag): Shh, shh, shh!

Helmer comes in from his study, hat in hand, overcoat over his arm.

Nora (going toward him): Well, Torvald dear, are you through with him? Helmer: Yes, he just left. Nora: Let me introduce you — this is Kristine, who’s arrived here in town.

806 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Helmer: Kristine — ? I’m sorry, but I don’t know — Nora: Mrs. Linde, Torvald dear. Mrs. Kristine Linde. Helmer: Of course. A childhood friend of my wife’s, no doubt? Mrs. Linde: Yes, we knew each other in those days. Nora: And just think, she made the long trip down here in order to talk

with you. Helmer: What’s this? Mrs. Linde: Well, not exactly — Nora: You see, Kristine is remarkably clever in offi ce work, and so she’s

terribly eager to come under a capable man’s supervision and add more to what she already knows —

Helmer: Very wise, Mrs. Linde. Nora: And then when she heard that you’d become a bank manager — the

story was wired out to the papers — then she came in as fast as she could and — Really, Torvald, for my sake you can do a little some- thing for Kristine, can’t you?

Helmer: Yes, it’s not at all impossible. Mrs. Linde, I suppose you’re a widow? Mrs. Linde: Yes. Helmer: Any experience in offi ce work? Mrs. Linde: Yes, a good deal. Helmer: Well, it’s quite likely that I can make an opening for you — Nora (clapping her hands): You see, you see! Helmer: You’ve come at a lucky moment, Mrs. Linde. Mrs. Linde: Oh, how can I thank you? Helmer: Not necessary. (Putting his overcoat on.) But today you’ll have to

excuse me — Rank: Wait, I’ll go with you. (He fetches his coat from the hall and warms it at

the stove.) Nora: Don’t stay out long, dear. Helmer: An hour; no more. Nora: Are you going too, Kristine? Mrs. Linde (putting on her winter garments): Yes, I have to see about a room

now. Helmer: Then perhaps we can all walk together. Nora (helping her): What a shame we’re so cramped here, but it’s quite

impossible for us to — Mrs. Linde: Oh, don’t even think of it! Good-bye, Nora dear, and thanks

for everything. Nora: Good-bye for now. Of course you’ll be back this evening. And you

too, Dr. Rank. What? If you’re well enough? Oh, you’ve got to be! Wrap up tight now.

In a ripple of small talk the company moves out into the hall; children’s voices are heard outside on the steps.

Nora: There they are! There they are! (She runs to open the door. The chil- dren come in with their nurse, Anne-Marie.) Come in, come in! (Bends

act i ibsen / a doll house 807

down and kisses them.) Oh, you darlings — ! Look at them, Kristine. Aren’t they lovely!

Rank: No loitering in the draft here. Helmer: Come, Mrs. Linde — this place is unbearable now for anyone but

mothers.

Dr. Rank, Helmer, and Mrs. Linde go down the stairs. Anne-Marie goes into the living room with the children. Nora follows, after closing the hall door.

Nora: How fresh and strong you look. Oh, such red cheeks you have! Like apples and roses. (The children interrupt her throughout the follow- ing.) And it was so much fun? That’s wonderful. Really? You pulled both Emmy and Bob on the sled? Imagine, all together! Yes, you’re a clever boy, Ivar. Oh, let me hold her a bit, Anne-Marie. My sweet little doll baby! (Takes the smallest from the nurse and dances with her.) Yes, yes, Mama will dance with Bob as well. What? Did you throw snow- balls? Oh, if I’d only been there! No, don’t bother, Anne-Marie — I’ll undress them myself. Oh yes, let me. It’s such fun. Go in and rest; you look half frozen. There’s hot coffee waiting for you on the stove. (The nurse goes into the room to the left. Nora takes the children’s winter things off, throwing them about, while the children talk to her all at once.) Is that so? A big dog chased you? But it didn’t bite? No, dogs never bite little, lovely doll babies. Don’t peek in the packages, Ivar! What is it? Yes, wouldn’t you like to know. No, no, it’s an ugly something. Well? Shall we play? What shall we play? Hide-and-seek? Yes, let’s play hide-and-seek. Bob must hide fi rst. I must? Yes, let me hide fi rst. (Laughing and shouting, she and the children play in and out of the living room and the adjoining room to the right. At last Nora hides under the table. The children come storming in, search, but cannot fi nd her, then hear her muffl ed laughter, dash over to the table, lift the cloth up and fi nd her. Wild shouting. She creeps forward as if to scare them. More shouts. Meanwhile, a knock at the hall door; no one has noticed it. Now the door half opens, and Krogstad appears. He waits a moment; the game goes on.)

Krogstad: Beg pardon, Mrs. Helmer — Nora (with a strangled cry, turning and scrambling to her knees): Oh! What do

you want? Krogstad: Excuse me. The outer door was ajar; it must be someone forgot

to shut it — Nora (rising): My husband isn’t home, Mr. Krogstad. Krogstad: I know that. Nora: Yes — then what do you want here? Krogstad: A word with you. Nora: With — ? (To the children, quietly.) Go in to Anne-Marie. What? No,

the strange man won’t hurt Mama. When he’s gone, we’ll play some more. (She leads the children into the room to the left and shuts the door after them. Then, tense and nervous:) You want to speak to me?

Krogstad: Yes, I want to.

808 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Nora: Today? But it’s not yet the fi rst of the month — Krogstad: No, it’s Christmas Eve. It’s going to be up to you how merry a

Christmas you have. Nora: What is it you want? Today I absolutely can’t — Krogstad: We won’t talk about that till later. This is something else. You

do have a moment to spare, I suppose? Nora: Oh yes, of course — I do, except — Krogstad: Good. I was sitting over at Olsen’s Restaurant when I saw your

husband go down the street — Nora: Yes? Krogstad: With a lady. Nora: Yes. So? Krogstad: If you’ll pardon my asking: wasn’t that lady a Mrs. Linde? Nora: Yes. Krogstad: Just now come into town? Nora: Yes, today. Krogstad: She’s a good friend of yours? Nora: Yes, she is. But I don’t see — Krogstad: I also knew her once. Nora: I’m aware of that. Krogstad: Oh? You know all about it. I thought so. Well, then let me ask

you short and sweet: is Mrs. Linde getting a job in the bank? Nora: What makes you think you can cross-examine me, Mr. Krogstad —

you, one of my husband’s employees? But since you ask, you might as well know — yes, Mrs. Linde’s going to be taken on at the bank. And I’m the one who spoke for her, Mr. Krogstad. Now you know.

Krogstad: So I guessed right. Nora (pacing up and down): Oh, one does have a tiny bit of infl uence, I

should hope. Just because I am a woman, don’t think it means that — When one has a subordinate position, Mr. Krogstad, one really ought to be careful about pushing somebody who — hm —

Krogstad: Who has infl uence? Nora: That’s right. Krogstad (in a different tone): Mrs. Helmer, would you be good enough to

use your infl uence on my behalf ? Nora: What? What do you mean? Krogstad: Would you please make sure that I keep my subordinate posi-

tion in the bank? Nora: What does that mean? Who’s thinking of taking away your

position? Krogstad: Oh, don’t play the innocent with me. I’m quite aware that your

friend would hardly relish the chance of running into me again; and I’m also aware now whom I can thank for being turned out.

Nora: But I promise you — Krogstad: Yes, yes, yes, to the point: there’s still time, and I’m advising

you to use your infl uence to prevent it.

act i ibsen / a doll house 809

Nora: But Mr. Krogstad, I have absolutely no infl uence. Krogstad: You haven’t? I thought you were just saying — Nora: You shouldn’t take me so literally. I! How can you believe that I

have any such infl uence over my husband? Krogstad: Oh, I’ve known your husband from our student days. I don’t

think the great bank manager’s more steadfast than any other mar- ried man.

Nora: You speak insolently about my husband, and I’ll show you the door.

Krogstad: The lady has spirit. Nora: I’m not afraid of you any longer. After New Year’s, I’ll soon be

done with the whole business. Krogstad (restraining himself ): Now listen to me, Mrs. Helmer. If necessary,

I’ll fi ght for my little job in the bank as if it were life itself. Nora: Yes, so it seems. Krogstad: It’s not just a matter of income; that’s the least of it. It’s some-

thing else — All right, out with it! Look, this is the thing. You know, just like all the others, of course, that once, a good many years ago, I did something rather rash.

Nora: I’ve heard rumors to that effect. Krogstad: The case never got into court; but all the same, every door was

closed in my face from then on. So I took up those various activi- ties you know about. I had to grab hold somewhere; and I dare say I haven’t been among the worst. But now I want to drop all that. My boys are growing up. For their sakes, I’ll have to win back as much respect as possible here in town. That job in the bank was like the fi rst rung in my ladder. And now your husband wants to kick me right back down in the mud again.

Nora: But for heaven’s sake, Mr. Krogstad, it’s simply not in my power to help you.

Krogstad: That’s because you haven’t the will to — but I have the means to make you.

Nora: You certainly won’t tell my husband that I owe you money? Krogstad: Hm — what if I told him that? Nora: That would be shameful of you. (Nearly in tears.) This secret — my

joy and my pride — that he should learn it in such a crude and disgusting way — learn it from you. You’d expose me to the most horrible unpleasantness —

Krogstad: Only unpleasantness? Nora (vehemently): But go on and try. It’ll turn out the worse for you, be-

cause then my husband will really see what a crook you are, and then you’ll never be able to hold your job.

Krogstad: I asked if it was just domestic unpleasantness you were afraid of ?

Nora: If my husband fi nds out, then of course he’ll pay what I owe at once, and then we’d be through with you for good.

810 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Krogstad (a step closer): Listen, Mrs. Helmer — you’ve either got a very bad memory, or else no head at all for business. I’d better put you a little more in touch with the facts.

Nora: What do you mean? Krogstad: When your husband was sick, you came to me for a loan of

four thousand, eight hundred crowns. Nora: Where else could I go? Krogstad: I promised to get you that sum — Nora: And you got it. Krogstad: I promised to get you that sum, on certain conditions. You

were so involved in your husband’s illness, and so eager to fi nance your trip, that I guess you didn’t think out all the details. It might just be a good idea to remind you. I promised you the money on the strength of a note I drew up.

Nora: Yes, and that I signed. Krogstad: Right. But at the bottom I added some lines for your father to

guarantee the loan. He was supposed to sign down there. Nora: Supposed to? He did sign. Krogstad: I left the date blank. In other words, your father would have

dated his signature himself. Do you remember that? Nora: Yes, I think — Krogstad: Then I gave you the note for you to mail to your father. Isn’t

that so? Nora: Yes. Krogstad: And naturally you sent it at once — because only some fi ve, six

days later you brought me the note, properly signed. And with that, the money was yours.

Nora: Well, then; I’ve made my payments regularly, haven’t I? Krogstad: More or less. But — getting back to the point — those were hard

times for you then, Mrs. Helmer. Nora: Yes, they were. Krogstad: Your father was very ill, I believe. Nora: He was near the end. Krogstad: He died soon after? Nora: Yes. Krogstad: Tell me, Mrs. Helmer, do you happen to recall the date of your

father’s death? The day of the month, I mean. Nora: Papa died the twenty-ninth of September. Krogstad: That’s quite correct; I’ve already looked into that. And now we

come to a curious thing — (Taking out a paper.) which I simply cannot comprehend.

Nora: Curious thing? I don’t know — Krogstad: This is the curious thing: that your father co-signed the note

for your loan three days after his death. Nora: How — ? I don’t understand. Krogstad: Your father died the twenty-ninth of September. But look. Here

your father dated his signature October second. Isn’t that curious,

act i ibsen / a doll house 811

Mrs. Helmer? (Nora is silent.) Can you explain it to me? (Nora remains silent.) It’s also remarkable that the words “October second” and the year aren’t written in your father’s hand, but rather in one that I think I know. Well, it’s easy to understand. Your father forgot per- haps to date his signature, and then someone or other added it, a bit sloppily, before anyone knew of his death. There’s nothing wrong in that. It all comes down to the signature. And there’s no question about that, Mrs. Helmer. It really was your father who signed his own name here, wasn’t it?

Nora (after a short silence, throwing her head back and looking squarely at him): No, it wasn’t. I signed Papa’s name.

Krogstad: Wait, now — are you fully aware that this is a dangerous confes- sion?

Nora: Why? You’ll soon get your money. Krogstad: Let me ask you a question — why didn’t you send the paper to

your father? Nora: That was impossible. Papa was so sick. If I’d asked him for his sig-

nature, I also would have had to tell him what the money was for. But I couldn’t tell him, sick as he was, that my husband’s life was in danger. That was just impossible.

Krogstad: Then it would have been better if you’d given up the trip abroad.

Nora: I couldn’t possibly. The trip was to save my husband’s life. I couldn’t give that up.

Krogstad: But didn’t you ever consider that this was a fraud against me? Nora: I couldn’t let myself be bothered by that. You weren’t any concern

of mine. I couldn’t stand you, with all those cold complications you made, even though you knew how badly off my husband was.

Krogstad: Mrs. Helmer, obviously you haven’t the vaguest idea of what you’ve involved yourself in. But I can tell you this: it was nothing more and nothing worse that I once did — and it wrecked my whole reputation.

Nora: You? Do you expect me to believe that you ever acted bravely to save your wife’s life?

Krogstad: Laws don’t inquire into motives. Nora: Then they must be very poor laws. Krogstad: Poor or not — if I introduce this paper in court, you’ll be judged

according to law. Nora: This I refuse to believe. A daughter hasn’t a right to protect her

dying father from anxiety and care? A wife hasn’t a right to save her husband’s life? I don’t know much about laws, but I’m sure that somewhere in the books these things are allowed. And you don’t know anything about it — you who practice the law? You must be an awful lawyer, Mr. Krogstad.

Krogstad: Could be. But business — the kind of business we two are mixed up in — don’t you think I know about that? All right. Do what you want now. But I’m telling you this: if I get shoved down a second

812 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

time, you’re going to keep me company. (He bows and goes out through the hall.)

Nora (pensive for a moment, then tossing her head): Oh, really! Trying to frighten me! I’m not so silly as all that. (Begins gathering up the chil- dren’s clothes, but soon stops.) But — ? No, but that’s impossible! I did it out of love.

The Children (in the doorway, left): Mama, that strange man’s gone out the door.

Nora: Yes, yes, I know it. But don’t tell anyone about the strange man. Do you hear? Not even Papa!

The Children: No, Mama. But now will you play again? Nora: No, not now. The Children: Oh, but Mama, you promised. Nora: Yes, but I can’t now. Go inside; I have too much to do. Go in, go in,

my sweet darlings. (She herds them gently back in the room and shuts the door after them. Settling on the sofa, she takes up a piece of embroidery and makes some stitches, but soon stops abruptly.) No! (Throws the work aside, rises, goes to the hall door and calls out.) Helene! Let me have the tree in here. (Goes to the table, left, opens the table drawer, and stops again.) No, but that’s utterly impossible!

Maid (with the Christmas tree): Where should I put it, ma’am? Nora: There. The middle of the fl oor. Maid: Should I bring anything else? Nora: No, thanks. I have what I need.

The Maid, who has set the tree down, goes out.

Nora (absorbed in trimming the tree): Candles here — and fl owers here. That terrible creature! Talk, talk, talk! There’s nothing to it at all. The tree’s going to be lovely. I’ll do anything to please you, Torvald. I’ll sing for you, dance for you —

Helmer comes in from the hall, with a sheaf of papers under his arm.

Nora: Oh! You’re back so soon? Helmer: Yes. Has anyone been here? Nora: Here? No. Helmer: That’s odd. I saw Krogstad leaving the front door. Nora: So? Oh yes, that’s true. Krogstad was here a moment. Helmer: Nora, I can see by your face that he’s been here, begging you to

put in a good word for him. Nora: Yes. Helmer: And it was supposed to seem like your own idea? You were to hide

it from me that he’d been here. He asked you that, too, didn’t he? Nora: Yes, Torvald, but — Helmer: Nora, Nora, and you could fall for that? Talk with that sort of

person and promise him anything? And then in the bargain, tell me an untruth.

act i ibsen / a doll house 813

Nora: An untruth — ? Helmer: Didn’t you say that no one had been here? (Wagging his fi nger.)

My little songbird must never do that again. A songbird needs a clean beak to warble with. No false notes. (Putting his arm about her waist.) That’s the way it should be, isn’t it? Yes, I’m sure of it. (Releas- ing her.) And so, enough of that. (Sitting by the stove.) Ah, how snug and cozy it is here. (Leafi ng among his papers.)

Nora (busy with the tree, after a short pause): Torvald! Helmer: Yes. Nora: I’m so much looking forward to the Stenborgs’ costume party,

day after tomorrow. Helmer: And I can’t wait to see what you’ll surprise me with. Nora: Oh, that stupid business! Helmer: What? Nora: I can’t fi nd anything that’s right. Everything seems so ridiculous,

so inane. Helmer: So my little Nora’s come to that recognition? Nora (going behind his chair, her arms resting on its back): Are you very busy,

Torvald? Helmer: Oh — Nora: What papers are those? Helmer: Bank matters. Nora: Already? Helmer: I’ve gotten full authority from the retiring management to make

all necessary changes in personnel and procedure. I’ll need Christ- mas week for that. I want to have everything in order by New Year’s.

Nora: So that was the reason this poor Krogstad — Helmer: Hm. Nora (still leaning on the chair and slowly stroking the nape of his neck): If you

weren’t so very busy, I would have asked you an enormous favor, Torvald.

Helmer: Let’s hear. What is it? Nora: You know, there isn’t anyone who has your good taste — and I

want so much to look well at the costume party. Torvald, couldn’t you take over and decide what I should be and plan my costume?

Helmer: Ah, is my stubborn little creature calling for a lifeguard? Nora: Yes, Torvald, I can’t get anywhere without your help. Helmer: All right — I’ll think it over. We’ll hit on something. Nora: Oh, how sweet of you. (Goes to the tree again. Pause.) Aren’t the red

fl owers pretty — ? But tell me, was it really such a crime that this Krogstad committed?

Helmer: Forgery. Do you have any idea what that means? Nora: Couldn’t he have done it out of need? Helmer: Yes, or thoughtlessness, like so many others. I’m not so heart-

less that I’d condemn a man categorically for just one mistake. Nora: No, of course not, Torvald!

814 henrik ibsen and modern drama act i

Helmer: Plenty of men have redeemed themselves by openly confessing their crimes and taking their punishment.

Nora: Punishment — ? Helmer: But now Krogstad didn’t go that way. He got himself out by

sharp practices, and that’s the real cause of his moral breakdown. Nora: Do you really think that would — ? Helmer: Just imagine how a man with that sort of guilt in him has to lie

and cheat and deceive on all sides, has to wear a mask even with the nearest and dearest he has, even with his own wife and children. And with the children, Nora — that’s where it’s most horrible.

Nora: Why? Helmer: Because that kind of atmosphere of lies infects the whole life of

a home. Every breath the children take in is fi lled with the germs of something degenerate.

Nora (coming closer behind him): Are you sure of that? Helmer: Oh, I’ve seen it often enough as a lawyer. Almost everyone who

goes bad early in life has a mother who’s a chronic liar. Nora: Why just — the mother? Helmer: It’s usually the mother’s infl uence that’s dominant, but the

father’s works in the same way, of course. Every lawyer is quite famil- iar with it. And still this Krogstad’s been going home year in, year out, poisoning his own children with lies and pretense; that’s why I call him morally lost. (Reaching his hands out toward her.) So my sweet little Nora must promise me never to plead his cause. Your hand on it. Come, come, what’s this? Give me your hand. There, now. All settled. I can tell you it’d be impossible for me to work alongside of him. I literally feel physically revolted when I’m anywhere near such a person.

Nora (withdraws her hand and goes to the other side of the Christmas tree): How hot it is here! And I’ve got so much to do.

Helmer (getting up and gathering his papers): Yes, and I have to think about getting some of these read through before dinner. I’ll think about your costume, too. And something to hang on the tree in gilt paper, I may even see about that. (Putting his hand on her head.) Oh you, my darling little songbird. (He goes into his study and closes the door after him.)

Nora (softly, after a silence): Oh, really! It isn’t so. It’s impossible. It must be impossible.

Anne-Marie (in the doorway, left): The children are begging so hard to come in to Mama.

Nora: No, no, no, don’t let them in to me! You stay with them, Anne-Marie.

Anne-Marie: Of course, ma’am. (Closes the door.) Nora (pale with terror): Hurt my children — ! Poison my home? (A mo-

ment’s pause; then she tosses her head.) That’s not true. Never. Never in all the world.

act ii ibsen / a doll house 815

AC T I I

Same room. Beside the piano the Christmas tree now stands stripped of orna- ment, burned-down candle stubs on its ragged branches. Nora’s street clothes lie on the sofa. Nora, alone in the room, moves restlessly about; at last she stops at the sofa and picks up her coat.

Nora (dropping the coat again): Someone’s coming! (Goes toward the door, listens.) No — there’s no one. Of course — nobody’s coming today, Christmas Day — or tomorrow, either. But maybe — (Opens the door and looks out.) No, nothing in the mailbox. Quite empty. (Coming for- ward.) What nonsense! He won’t do anything serious. Nothing ter- rible could happen. It’s impossible. Why, I have three small children.

Anne-Marie, with a large carton, comes in from the room to the left.

Anne-Marie: Well, at last I found the box with the masquerade clothes. Nora: Thanks. Put it on the table. Anne-Marie (does so): But they’re all pretty much of a mess. Nora: Ahh! I’d love to rip them in a million pieces! Anne-Marie: Oh, mercy, they can be fi xed right up. Just a little patience. Nora: Yes, I’ll go get Mrs. Linde to help me. Anne-Marie: Out again now? In this nasty weather? Miss Nora will catch

cold — get sick. Nora: Oh, worse things could happen. How are the children? Anne-Marie: The poor mites are playing with their Christmas presents,

but — Nora: Do they ask for me much? Anne-Marie: They’re so used to having Mama around, you know. Nora: Yes, but Anne-Marie, I can’t be together with them as much as I

was. Anne-Marie: Well, small children get used to anything. Nora: You think so? Do you think they’d forget their mother if she was

gone for good? Anne-Marie: Oh, mercy — gone for good! Nora: Wait, tell me, Anne-Marie — I’ve wondered so often — how could

you ever have the heart to give your child over to strangers? Anne-Marie: But I had to, you know, to become little Nora’s nurse. Nora: Yes, but how could you do it? Anne-Marie: When I could get such a good place? A girl who’s poor and

who’s gotten in trouble is glad enough for that. Because that slip- pery fi sh, he didn’t do a thing for me, you know.

Nora: But your daughter’s surely forgotten you. Anne-Marie: Oh, she certainly has not. She’s written to me, both when

she was confi rmed and when she was married. Nora (clasping her about the neck): You old Anne-Marie, you were a good

mother for me when I was little.

816 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Anne-Marie: Poor little Nora, with no other mother but me. Nora: And if the babies didn’t have one, then I know that you’d — What

silly talk! (Opening the carton.) Go in to them. Now I’ll have to — Tomorrow you can see how lovely I’ll look.

Anne-Marie: Oh, there won’t be anyone at the party as lovely as Miss Nora. (She goes off into the room, left.)

Nora (begins unpacking the box, but soon throws it aside): Oh, if I dared to go out. If only nobody would come. If only nothing would happen here while I’m out. What craziness — nobody’s coming. Just don’t think. This muff — needs a brushing. Beautiful gloves, beautiful gloves. Let it go. Let it go! One, two, three, four, fi ve, six — (With a cry.) Oh, there they are! (Poises to move toward the door, but remains irresolutely standing. Mrs. Linde enters from the hall, where she has removed her street clothes.)

Nora: Oh, it’s you, Kristine. There’s no one else out there? How good that you’ve come.

Mrs. Linde: I hear you were up asking for me. Nora: Yes, I just stopped by. There’s something you really can help me

with. Let’s get settled on the sofa. Look, there’s going to be a cos- tume party tomorrow evening at the Stenborgs’ right above us, and now Torvald wants me to go as a Neapolitan peasant girl and dance the tarantella that I learned in Capri.

Mrs. Linde: Really, are you giving a whole performance? Nora: Torvald says yes, I should. See, here’s the dress. Torvald had it

made for me down there; but now it’s all so tattered that I just don’t know —

Mrs. Linde: Oh, we’ll fi x that up in no time. It’s nothing more than the trimmings — they’re a bit loose here and there. Needle and thread? Good, now we have what we need.

Nora: Oh, how sweet of you! Mrs. Linde (sewing): So you’ll be in disguise tomorrow, Nora. You know

what? I’ll stop by then for a moment and have a look at you all dressed up. But listen, I’ve absolutely forgotten to thank you for that pleasant evening yesterday.

Nora (getting up and walking about): I don’t think it was as pleasant as usual yesterday. You should have come to town a bit sooner, Kristine — Yes, Torvald really knows how to give a home elegance and charm.

Mrs. Linde: And you do, too, if you ask me. You’re not your father’s daughter for nothing. But tell me, is Dr. Rank always so down in the mouth as yesterday?

Nora: No, that was quite an exception. But he goes around critically ill all the time — tuberculosis of the spine, poor man. You know, his father was a disgusting thing who kept mistresses and so on — and that’s why the son’s been sickly from birth.

Mrs. Linde (lets her sewing fall to her lap): But my dearest Nora, how do you know about such things?

act ii ibsen / a doll house 817

Nora (walking more jauntily): Hmp! When you’ve had three children, then you’ve had a few visits from — from women who know something of medicine, and they tell you this and that.

Mrs. Linde (resumes sewing; a short pause): Does Dr. Rank come here every day?

Nora: Every blessed day. He’s Torvald’s best friend from childhood, and my good friend, too. Dr. Rank almost belongs to this house.

Mrs. Linde: But tell me — is he quite sincere? I mean, doesn’t he rather enjoy fl attering people?

Nora: Just the opposite. Why do you think that? Mrs. Linde: When you introduced us yesterday, he was proclaiming that he’d

often heard my name in this house; but later I noticed that your husband hadn’t the slightest idea who I really was. So how could Dr. Rank — ?

Nora: But it’s all true, Kristine. You see, Torvald loves me beyond words, and, as he puts it, he’d like to keep me all to himself. For a long time he’d almost be jealous if I even mentioned any of my old friends back home. So of course I dropped that. But with Dr. Rank I talk a lot about such things, because he likes hearing about them.

Mrs. Linde: Now listen, Nora; in many ways you’re still like a child. I’m a good deal older than you, with a little more experience. I’ll tell you something: you ought to put an end to all this with Dr. Rank.

Nora: What should I put an end to? Mrs. Linde: Both parts of it, I think. Yesterday you said something about

a rich admirer who’d provide you with money — Nora: Yes, one who doesn’t exist — worse luck. So? Mrs. Linde: Is Dr. Rank well off? Nora: Yes, he is. Mrs. Linde: With no dependents? Nora: No, no one. But — Mrs. Linde: And he’s over here every day? Nora: Yes, I told you that. Mrs. Linde: How can a man of such refi nement be so grasping? Nora: I don’t follow you at all. Mrs. Linde: Now don’t try to hide it, Nora. You think I can’t guess who

loaned you the forty-eight hundred crowns? Nora: Are you out of your mind? How could you think such a thing! A

friend of ours, who comes here every single day. What an intolerable situation that would have been!

Mrs. Linde: Then it really wasn’t him. Nora: No, absolutely not. It never even crossed my mind for a

moment — And he had nothing to lend in those days; his inheritance came later.

Mrs. Linde: Well, I think that was a stroke of luck for you, Nora dear. Nora: No, it never would have occurred to me to ask Dr. Rank — Still,

I’m quite sure that if I had asked him — Mrs. Linde: Which you won’t, of course.

818 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Nora: No, of course not. I can’t see that I’d ever need to. But I’m quite positive that if I talked to Dr. Rank —

Mrs. Linde: Behind your husband’s back? Nora: I’ve got to clear up this other thing; that’s also behind his back. I’ve

got to clear it all up. Mrs. Linde: Yes, I was saying that yesterday, but — Nora (pacing up and down): A man handles these problems so much bet-

ter than a woman — Mrs. Linde: One’s husband does, yes. Nora: Nonsense. (Stopping.) When you pay everything you owe, then you

get your note back, right? Mrs. Linde: Yes, naturally. Nora: And can rip it into a million pieces and burn it up — that fi lthy

scrap of paper! Mrs. Linde (looking hard at her, laying her sewing aside, and rising slowly): Nora,

you’re hiding something from me. Nora: You can see it in my face? Mrs. Linde: Something’s happened to you since yesterday morning.

Nora, what is it? Nora (hurrying toward her): Kristine! (Listening.) Shh! Torvald’s home.

Look, go in with the children a while. Torvald can’t bear all this snipping and stitching. Let Anne-Marie help you.

Mrs. Linde (gathering up some of the things): All right, but I’m not leaving here until we’ve talked this out. (She disappears into the room, left, as Torvald enters from the hall.)

Nora: Oh, how I’ve been waiting for you, Torvald dear. Helmer: Was that the dressmaker? Nora: No, that was Kristine. She’s helping me fi x up my costume. You

know, it’s going to be quite attractive. Helmer: Yes, wasn’t that a bright idea I had? Nora: Brilliant! But then wasn’t I good as well to give in to you? Helmer: Good — because you give in to your husband’s judgment? All

right, you little goose, I know you didn’t mean it like that. But I won’t disturb you. You’ll want to have a fi tting, I suppose.

Nora: And you’ll be working? Helmer: Yes. (Indicating a bundle of papers.) See. I’ve been down to the

bank. (Starts toward his study.) Nora: Torvald. Helmer (stops): Yes. Nora: If your little squirrel begged you, with all her heart and soul, for

something — ? Helmer: What’s that? Nora: Then would you do it? Helmer: First, naturally, I’d have to know what it was. Nora: Your squirrel would scamper about and do tricks, if you’d only be

sweet and give in.

act ii ibsen / a doll house 819

Helmer: Out with it. Nora: Your lark would be singing high and low in every room — Helmer: Come on, she does that anyway. Nora: I’d be a wood nymph and dance for you in the moonlight. Helmer: Nora — don’t tell me it’s that same business from this morning? Nora (coming closer): Yes, Torvald, I beg you, please! Helmer: And you actually have the nerve to drag that up again? Nora: Yes, yes, you’ve got to give in to me; you have to let Krogstad keep

his job in the bank. Helmer: My dear Nora, I’ve slated his job for Mrs. Linde. Nora: That’s awfully kind of you. But you could just fi re another clerk

instead of Krogstad. Helmer: This is the most incredible stubbornness! Because you go and

give an impulsive promise to speak up for him, I’m expected to — Nora: That’s not the reason, Torvald. It’s for your own sake. That man

does writing for the worst papers; you said it yourself. He could do you any amount of harm. I’m scared to death of him —

Helmer: Ah, I understand. It’s the old memories haunting you. Nora: What do you mean by that? Helmer: Of course, you’re thinking about your father. Nora: Yes, all right. Just remember how those nasty gossips wrote in the

papers about Papa and slandered him so cruelly. I think they’d have had him dismissed if the department hadn’t sent you up to investi- gate, and if you hadn’t been so kind and open-minded toward him.

Helmer: My dear Nora, there’s a notable difference between your father and me. Your father’s offi cial career was hardly above reproach. But mine is; and I hope it’ll stay that way as long as I hold my position.

Nora: Oh, who can ever tell what vicious minds can invent? We could be so snug and happy now in our quiet, carefree home — you and I and the children, Torvald! That’s why I’m pleading with you so —

Helmer: And just by pleading for him you make it impossible for me to keep him on. It’s already known at the bank that I’m fi ring Krog- stad. What if it’s rumored around now that the new bank manager was vetoed by his wife —

Nora: Yes, what then — ? Helmer: Oh yes — as long as our little bundle of stubbornness gets her

way — ! I should go and make myself ridiculous in front of the whole offi ce — give people the idea I can be swayed by all kinds of outside pressure. Oh, you can bet I’d feel the effects of that soon enough! Besides — there’s something that rules Krogstad right out at the bank as long as I’m the manager.

Nora: What’s that? Helmer: His moral failings I could maybe overlook if I had to — Nora: Yes, Torvald, why not? Helmer: And I hear he’s quite effi cient on the job. But he was a crony

of mine back in my teens — one of those rash friendships that crop

820 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

up again and again to embarrass you later in life. Well, I might as well say it straight out: we’re on a fi rst-name basis. And that tactless fool makes no effort at all to hide it in front of others. Quite the contrary — he thinks that entitles him to take a familiar air around me, and so every other second he comes booming out with his “Yes, Torvald!” and “Sure thing, Torvald!” I tell you, it’s been excruciating for me. He’s out to make my place in the bank unbearable.

Nora: Torvald, you can’t be serious about all this. Helmer: Oh no? Why not? Nora: Because these are such petty considerations. Helmer: What are you saying? Petty? You think I’m petty! Nora: No, just the opposite, Torvald dear. That’s exactly why — Helmer: Never mind. You call my motives petty; then I might as well be

just that. Petty! All right! We’ll put a stop to this for good. (Goes to the hall door and calls.) Helene!

Nora: What do you want? Helmer (searching among his papers): A decision. (The maid comes in.) Look

here; take this letter; go out with it at once. Get hold of a messen- ger and have him deliver it. Quick now. It’s already addressed. Wait, here’s some money.

Maid: Yes, sir. (She leaves with the letter.) Helmer (straightening his papers): There, now, little Miss Willful. Nora (breathlessly): Torvald, what was that letter? Helmer: Krogstad’s notice. Nora: Call it back, Torvald! There’s still time. Oh, Torvald, call it back!

Do it for my sake — for your sake, for the children’s sake! Do you hear, Torvald; do it! You don’t know how this can harm us.

Helmer: Too late. Nora: Yes, too late. Helmer: Nora dear, I can forgive you this panic, even though basically

you’re insulting me. Yes, you are! Or isn’t it an insult to think that I should be afraid of a courtroom hack’s revenge? But I forgive you anyway, because this shows so beautifully how much you love me. (Takes her in his arms.) This is the way it should be, my darling Nora. Whatever comes, you’ll see; when it really counts, I have strength and courage enough as a man to take on the whole weight myself.

Nora (terrifi ed): What do you mean by that? Helmer: The whole weight, I said. Nora (resolutely): No, never in all the world. Helmer: Good. So we’ll share it, Nora, as man and wife. That’s as it should

be. (Fondling her.) Are you happy now? There, there, there — not these frightened dove’s eyes. It’s nothing at all but empty fantasies — Now you should run through your tarantella and practice your tambou- rine. I’ll go to the inner offi ce and shut both doors, so I won’t hear a thing; you can make all the noise you like. (Turning in the doorway.) And when Rank comes, just tell him where he can fi nd me. (He nods to her and goes with his papers into the study, closing the door.)

act ii ibsen / a doll house 821

Nora (standing as though rooted, dazed with fright, in a whisper): He really could do it. He will do it. He’ll do it in spite of everything. No, not that, never, never! Anything but that! Escape! A way out — (The door- bell rings.) Dr. Rank! Anything but that! Anything , whatever it is! (Her hands pass over her face, smoothing it; she pulls herself together, goes over and opens the hall door. Dr. Rank stands outside, hanging his fur coat up. During the following scene, it begins getting dark.)

Nora: Hello, Dr. Rank. I recognized your ring. But you mustn’t go in to Torvald yet; I believe he’s working.

Rank: And you? Nora: For you, I always have an hour to spare — you know that. (He has

entered, and she shuts the door after him.) Rank: Many thanks. I’ll make use of these hours while I can. Nora: What do you mean by that? While you can? Rank: Does that disturb you? Nora: Well, it’s such an odd phrase. Is anything going to happen? Rank: What’s going to happen is what I’ve been expecting so long — but I

honestly didn’t think it would come so soon. Nora (gripping his arm): What is it you’ve found out? Dr. Rank, you have

to tell me! Rank (sitting by the stove): It’s all over for me. There’s nothing to be done

about it. Nora (breathing easier): Is it you — then — ? Rank: Who else? There’s no point in lying to one’s self. I’m the most mis-

erable of all my patients, Mrs. Helmer. These past few days I’ve been auditing my internal accounts. Bankrupt! Within a month I’ll prob- ably be laid out and rotting in the churchyard.

Nora: Oh, what a horrible thing to say. Rank: The thing itself is horrible. But the worst of it is all the other hor-

ror before it’s over. There’s only one fi nal examination left; when I’m fi nished with that, I’ll know about when my disintegration will begin. There’s something I want to say. Helmer with his sensitivity has such a sharp distaste for anything ugly. I don’t want him near my sickroom.

Nora: Oh, but Dr. Rank — Rank: I won’t have him in there. Under no condition. I’ll lock my door

to him — As soon as I’m completely sure of the worst, I’ll send you my calling card marked with a black cross, and you’ll know then the wreck has started to come apart.

Nora: No, today you’re completely unreasonable. And I wanted you so much to be in a really good humor.

Rank: With death up my sleeve? And then to suffer this way for somebody else’s sins. Is there any justice in that? And in every single family, in some way or another, this inevitable retribution of nature goes on —

Nora (her hands pressed over her ears): Oh, stuff! Cheer up! Please — be gay! Rank: Yes, I’d just as soon laugh at it all. My poor, innocent spine, serv-

ing time for my father’s gay army days.

822 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Nora (by the table, left): He was so infatuated with asparagus tips and pâté de foie gras, wasn’t that it?

Rank: Yes — and with truffl es. Nora: Truffl es, yes. And then with oysters, I suppose? Rank: Yes, tons of oysters, naturally. Nora: And then the port and champagne to go with it. It’s so sad that all

these delectable things have to strike at our bones. Rank: Especially when they strike at the unhappy bones that never

shared in the fun. Nora: Ah, that’s the saddest of all. Rank (looks searchingly at her): Hm. Nora (after a moment): Why did you smile? Rank: No, it was you who laughed. Nora: No, it was you who smiled, Dr. Rank! Rank (getting up): You’re even a bigger tease than I’d thought. Nora: I’m full of wild ideas today. Rank: That’s obvious. Nora (putting both hands on his shoulders): Dear, dear Dr. Rank, you’ll never

die for Torvald and me. Rank: Oh, that loss you’ll easily get over. Those who go away are soon

forgotten. Nora (looks fearfully at him): You believe that? Rank: One makes new connections, and then — Nora: Who makes new connections? Rank: Both you and Torvald will when I’m gone. I’d say you’re well under

way already. What was that Mrs. Linde doing here last evening? Nora: Oh, come — you can’t be jealous of poor Kristine? Rank: Oh yes, I am. She’ll be my successor here in the house. When I’m

down under, that woman will probably — Nora: Shh! Not so loud. She’s right in there. Rank: Today as well. So you see. Nora: Only to sew on my dress. Good gracious, how unreasonable you

are. (Sitting on the sofa.) Be nice now, Dr. Rank. Tomorrow you’ll see how beautifully I’ll dance; and you can imagine then that I’m danc- ing only for you — yes, and of course for Torvald, too — that’s under- stood. (Takes various items out of the carton.) Dr. Rank, sit over here and I’ll show you something.

Rank (sitting): What’s that? Nora: Look here. Look. Rank: Silk stockings. Nora: Flesh-colored. Aren’t they lovely? Now it’s so dark here, but

tomorrow — No, no, no, just look at the feet. Oh well, you might as well look at the rest.

Rank: Hm — Nora: Why do you look so critical? Don’t you believe they’ll fi t? Rank: I’ve never had any chance to form an opinion on that.

act ii ibsen / a doll house 823

Nora (glancing at him a moment): Shame on you. (Hits him lightly on the ear with the stockings.) That’s for you. (Puts them away again.)

Rank: And what other splendors am I going to see now? Nora: Not the least bit more, because you’ve been naughty. (She hums a

little and rummages among her things.) Rank (after a short silence): When I sit here together with you like this,

completely easy and open, then I don’t know — I simply can’t imagine — whatever would have become of me if I’d never come into this house.

Nora (smiling): Yes, I really think you feel completely at ease with us. Rank (more quietly, staring straight ahead): And then to have to go away

from it all — Nora: Nonsense, you’re not going away. Rank (his voice unchanged): — and not even be able to leave some poor

show of gratitude behind, scarcely a fl eeting regret — no more than a vacant place that anyone can fi ll.

Nora: And if I asked you now for — ? No — Rank: For what? Nora: For a great proof of your friendship — Rank: Yes, yes? Nora: No, I mean — for an exceptionally big favor — Rank: Would you really, for once, make me so happy? Nora: Oh, you haven’t the vaguest idea what it is. Rank: All right, then tell me. Nora: No, but I can’t, Dr. Rank — it’s all out of reason. It’s advice and

help, too — and a favor — Rank: So much the better. I can’t fathom what you’re hinting at. Just

speak out. Don’t you trust me? Nora: Of course. More than anyone else. You’re my best and truest

friend, I’m sure. That’s why I want to talk to you. All right, then, Dr. Rank: there’s something you can help me prevent. You know how deeply, how inexpressibly dearly Torvald loves me; he’d never hesitate a second to give up his life for me.

Rank (leaning close to her): Nora — do you think he’s the only one — Nora (with a slight start): Who — ? Rank: Who’d gladly give up his life for you. Nora (heavily): I see. Rank: I swore to myself you should know this before I’m gone. I’ll never

fi nd a better chance. Yes, Nora, now you know. And also you know now that you can trust me beyond anyone else.

Nora (rising, natural and calm): Let me by. Rank (making room for her, but still sitting): Nora — Nora (in the hall doorway): Helene, bring the lamp in. (Goes over to the

stove.) Ah, dear Dr. Rank, that was really mean of you. Rank (getting up): That I’ve loved you just as deeply as somebody else?

Was that mean?

824 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Nora: No, but that you came out and told me. That was quite unnecessary —

Rank: What do you mean? Have you known — ?

The Maid comes in with the lamp, sets it on the table, and goes out again.

Rank: Nora — Mrs. Helmer — I’m asking you: have you known about it? Nora: Oh, how can I tell what I know or don’t know? Really, I don’t

know what to say — Why did you have to be so clumsy, Dr. Rank! Everything was so good.

Rank: Well, in any case, you now have the knowledge that my body and soul are at your command. So won’t you speak out?

Nora (looking at him): After that? Rank: Please, just let me know what it is. Nora: You can’t know anything now. Rank: I have to. You mustn’t punish me like this. Give me the chance to

do whatever is humanly possible for you. Nora: Now there’s nothing you can do for me. Besides, actually, I don’t

need any help. You’ll see — it’s only my fantasies. That’s what it is. Of course! (Sits in the rocker, looks at him, and smiles.) What a nice one you are, Dr. Rank. Aren’t you a little bit ashamed, now that the lamp is here?

Rank: No, not exactly. But perhaps I’d better go — for good? Nora: No, you certainly can’t do that. You must come here just as you

always have. You know Torvald can’t do without you. Rank: Yes, but you? Nora: You know how much I enjoy it when you’re here. Rank: That’s precisely what threw me off. You’re a mystery to me. So many

times I’ve felt you’d almost rather be with me than with Helmer. Nora: Yes — you see, there are some people that one loves most and other

people that one would almost prefer being with. Rank: Yes, there’s something to that. Nora: When I was back home, of course I loved Papa most. But I always

thought it was so much fun when I could sneak down to the maids’ quarters, because they never tried to improve me, and it was always so amusing, the way they talked to each other.

Rank: Aha, so it’s their place that I’ve fi lled. Nora (jumping up and going to him): Oh, dear, sweet Dr. Rank, that’s not

what I meant at all. But you can understand that with Torvald it’s just the same as with Papa —

The Maid enters from the hall.

Maid: Ma’am — please! (She whispers to Nora and hands her a calling card.) Nora (glancing at the card): Ah! (Slips it into her pocket.) Rank: Anything wrong? Nora: No, no, not at all. It’s only some — it’s my new dress — Rank: Really? But — there’s your dress.

act ii ibsen / a doll house 825

Nora: Oh, that. But this is another one — I ordered it — Torvald mustn’t know —

Rank: Ah, now we have the big secret. Nora: That’s right. Just go in with him — he’s back in the inner study.

Keep him there as long as — Rank: Don’t worry. He won’t get away. (Goes into the study.) Nora (to the Maid): And he’s standing waiting in the kitchen? Maid: Yes, he came up by the back stairs. Nora: But didn’t you tell him somebody was here? Maid: Yes, but that didn’t do any good. Nora: He won’t leave? Maid: No, he won’t go till he’s talked with you, ma’am. Nora: Let him come in, then — but quietly. Helene, don’t breathe a word

about this. It’s a surprise for my husband. Maid: Yes, yes, I understand — (Goes out.) Nora: This horror — it’s going to happen. No, no, no, it can’t happen, it

mustn’t. (She goes and bolts Helmer’s door. The Maid opens the hall door for Krogstad and shuts it behind him. He is dressed for travel in a fur coat, boots, and a fur cap.)

Nora (going toward him): Talk softly. My husband’s home. Krogstad: Well, good for him. Nora: What do you want? Krogstad: Some information. Nora: Hurry up, then. What is it? Krogstad: You know, of course, that I got my notice. Nora: I couldn’t prevent it, Mr. Krogstad. I fought for you to the bitter

end, but nothing worked. Krogstad: Does your husband’s love for you run so thin? He knows every-

thing I can expose you to, and all the same he dares to — Nora: How can you imagine he knows anything about this? Krogstad: Ah, no — I can’t imagine it either, now. It’s not at all like my

fi ne Torvald Helmer to have so much guts — Nora: Mr. Krogstad, I demand respect for my husband! Krogstad: Why, of course — all due respect. But since the lady’s keeping it

so carefully hidden, may I presume to ask if you’re also a bit better informed than yesterday about what you’ve actually done?

Nora: More than you could ever teach me. Krogstad: Yes, I am such an awful lawyer. Nora: What is it you want from me? Krogstad: Just a glimpse of how you are, Mrs. Helmer. I’ve been thinking

about you all day long. A cashier, a night-court scribbler, a — well, a type like me also has a little of what they call a heart, you know.

Nora: Then show it. Think of my children. Krogstad: Did you or your husband ever think of mine? But never mind. I

simply wanted to tell you that you don’t need to take this thing too seriously. For the present, I’m not proceeding with any action.

826 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Nora: Oh no, really! Well — I knew that. Krogstad: Everything can be settled in a friendly spirit. It doesn’t have to

get around town at all; it can stay just among us three. Nora: My husband must never know anything of this. Krogstad: How can you manage that? Perhaps you can pay me the

balance? Nora: No, not right now. Krogstad: Or you know some way of raising the money in a day or two? Nora: No way that I’m willing to use. Krogstad: Well, it wouldn’t have done you any good, anyway. If you stood

in front of me with a fi stful of bills, you still couldn’t buy your sig- nature back.

Nora: Then tell me what you’re going to do with it. Krogstad: I’ll just hold onto it — keep it on fi le. There’s no outsider who’ll

even get wind of it. So if you’ve been thinking of taking some desper- ate step —

Nora: I have. Krogstad: Been thinking of running away from home — Nora: I have! Krogstad: Or even of something worse — Nora: How could you guess that? Krogstad: You can drop those thoughts. Nora: How could you guess I was thinking of that? Krogstad: Most of us think about that at fi rst. I thought about it too, but

I discovered I hadn’t the courage — Nora (lifelessly): I don’t either. Krogstad (relieved): That’s true, you haven’t the courage? You too? Nora: I don’t have it — I don’t have it. Krogstad: It would be terribly stupid, anyway. After that fi rst storm at

home blows out, why, then — I have here in my pocket a letter for your husband —

Nora: Telling everything? Krogstad: As charitably as possible. Nora (quickly): He mustn’t ever get that letter. Tear it up. I’ll fi nd some

way to get money. Krogstad: Beg pardon, Mrs. Helmer, but I think I just told you — Nora: Oh, I don’t mean the money I owe you. Let me know how much

you want from my husband, and I’ll manage it. Krogstad: I don’t want money from your husband. Nora: What do you want, then? Krogstad: I’ll tell you what. I want to recoup, Mrs. Helmer; I want to get

on in the world — and there’s where your husband can help me. For a year and a half I’ve kept myself clean of anything disreputable — all that time struggling with the worst conditions; but I was satisfi ed, working my way up step by step. Now I’ve been written right off, and I’m just not in the mood to come crawling back. I tell you, I want to

act ii ibsen / a doll house 827

move on. I want to get back in the bank — in a better position. Your husband can set up a job for me —

Nora: He’ll never do that! Krogstad: He’ll do it. I know him. He won’t dare breathe a word of pro-

test. And once I’m in there together with him, you just wait and see! Inside of a year, I’ll be the manager’s right-hand man. It’ll be Nils Krogstad, not Torvald Helmer, who runs the bank.

Nora: You’ll never see the day! Krogstad: Maybe you think you can — Nora: I have the courage now — for that. Krogstad: Oh, you don’t scare me. A smart, spoiled lady like you — Nora: You’ll see; you’ll see! Krogstad: Under the ice, maybe? Down in the freezing coal-black water?

There, till you fl oat up in the spring, ugly, unrecognizable, with your hair falling out —

Nora: You don’t frighten me. Krogstad: Nor do you frighten me. One doesn’t do these things, Mrs.

Helmer. Besides, what good would it be? I’d still have him safe in my pocket.

Nora: Afterwards? When I’m no longer — ? Krogstad: Are you forgetting that I’ll be in control then over your fi nal

reputation? (Nora stands speechless, staring at him.) Good; now I’ve warned you. Don’t do anything stupid. When Helmer’s read my let- ter, I’ll be waiting for his reply. And bear in mind that it’s your hus- band himself who’s forced me back to my old ways. I’ll never forgive him for that. Good-bye, Mrs. Helmer. (He goes out through the hall.)

Nora (goes to the hall door, opens it a crack, and listens): He’s gone. Didn’t leave the letter. Oh no, no, that’s impossible too! (Opening the door more and more.) What’s that? He’s standing outside — not going downstairs. He’s thinking it over? Maybe he’ll — ? (A letter falls in the mailbox; then Krogstad’s footsteps are heard, dying away down a fl ight of stairs. Nora gives a muffl ed cry and runs over toward the sofa table. A short pause.) In the mailbox. (Slips warily over to the hall door.) It’s lying there. Torvald, Torvald — now we’re lost!

Mrs. Linde (entering with costume from the room, left): There now, I can’t see anything else to mend. Perhaps you’d like to try —

Nora (in a hoarse whisper): Kristine, come here. Mrs. Linde (tossing the dress on the sofa): What’s wrong? You look upset. Nora: Come here. See that letter? There! Look — through the glass in the

mailbox. Mrs. Linde: Yes, yes, I see it. Nora: That letter’s from Krogstad — Mrs. Linde: Nora — it’s Krogstad who loaned you the money! Nora: Yes, and now Torvald will fi nd out everything. Mrs. Linde: Believe me, Nora, it’s best for both of you. Nora: There’s more you don’t know. I forged a name.

828 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Mrs. Linde: But for heaven’s sake — ? Nora: I only want to tell you that, Kristine, so that you can be my witness. Mrs. Linde: Witness? Why should I — ? Nora: If I should go out of my mind — it could easily happen — Mrs. Linde: Nora! Nora: Or anything else occurred — so I couldn’t be present here — Mrs. Linde: Nora, Nora, you aren’t yourself at all! Nora: And someone should try to take on the whole weight, all of the

guilt, you follow me — Mrs. Linde: Yes, of course, but why do you think — ? Nora: Then you’re the witness that it isn’t true, Kristine. I’m very much

myself; my mind right now is perfectly clear; and I’m telling you: nobody else has known about this; I alone did everything. Remem- ber that.

Mrs. Linde: I will. But I don’t understand all this. Nora: Oh, how could you ever understand it? It’s the miracle now that’s

going to take place. Mrs. Linde: The miracle? Nora: Yes, the miracle. But it’s so awful, Kristine. It mustn’t take place,

not for anything in the world. Mrs. Linde: I’m going right over and talk with Krogstad. Nora: Don’t go near him; he’ll do you some terrible harm! Mrs. Linde: There was a time once when he’d gladly have done anything

for me. Nora: He? Mrs. Linde: Where does he live? Nora: Oh, how do I know? Yes. (Searches in her pocket.) Here’s his card.

But the letter, the letter — ! Helmer (from the study, knocking on the door): Nora! Nora (with a cry of fear): Oh! What is it? What do you want? Helmer: Now, now, don’t be so frightened. We’re not coming in. You

locked the door — are you trying on the dress? Nora: Yes, I’m trying it. I’ll look just beautiful, Torvald. Mrs. Linde (who has read the card): He’s living right around the corner. Nora: Yes, but what’s the use? We’re lost. The letter’s in the box. Mrs. Linde: And your husband has the key? Nora: Yes, always. Mrs. Linde: Krogstad can ask for his letter back unread; he can fi nd some

excuse — Nora: But it’s just this time that Torvald usually — Mrs. Linde: Stall him. Keep him in there. I’ll be back as quick as I can.

(She hurries out through the hall entrance.) Nora (goes to Helmer’s door, opens it, and peers in): Torvald! Helmer (from the inner study): Well — does one dare set foot in one’s own

living room at last? Come on, Rank, now we’ll get a look — (In the doorway.) But what’s this?

act ii ibsen / a doll house 829

Nora: What, Torvald dear? Helmer: Rank had me expecting some grand masquerade. Rank (in the doorway): That was my impression, but I must have been

wrong. Nora: No one can admire me in my splendor — not till tomorrow. Helmer: But Nora dear, you look so exhausted. Have you practiced too

hard? Nora: No, I haven’t practiced at all yet. Helmer: You know, it’s necessary — Nora: Oh, it’s absolutely necessary, Torvald. But I can’t get anywhere

without your help. I’ve forgotten the whole thing completely. Helmer: Ah, we’ll soon take care of that. Nora: Yes, take care of me, Torvald, please! Promise me that? Oh, I’m so

nervous. That big party — You must give up everything this evening for me. No business — don’t even touch your pen. Yes? Dear Torvald, promise?

Helmer: It’s a promise. Tonight I’m totally at your service — you little helpless thing. Hm — but fi rst there’s one thing I want to — (Goes toward the hall door.)

Nora: What are you looking for? Helmer: Just to see if there’s any mail. Nora: No, no, don’t do that, Torvald! Helmer: Now what? Nora: Torvald, please. There isn’t any. Helmer: Let me look, though. (Starts out. Nora, at the piano, strikes the fi rst

notes of the tarantella. Helmer, at the door, stops.) Aha! Nora: I can’t dance tomorrow if I don’t practice with you. Helmer (going over to her): Nora dear, are you really so frightened? Nora: Yes, so terribly frightened. Let me practice right now; there’s still

time before dinner. Oh, sit down and play for me, Torvald. Direct me. Teach me, the way you always have.

Helmer: Gladly, if it’s what you want. (Sits at the piano.) Nora (snatches the tambourine up from the box, then a long, varicolored shawl,

which she throws around herself, whereupon she springs forward and cries out): Play for me now! Now I’ll dance!

Helmer plays and Nora dances. Rank stands behind Helmer at the piano and looks on.

Helmer (as he plays): Slower. Slow down. Nora: Can’t change it. Helmer: Not so violent, Nora! Nora: Has to be just like this. Helmer (stopping): No, no, that won’t do at all. Nora (laughing and swinging her tambourine): Isn’t that what I told you? Rank: Let me play for her. Helmer (getting up): Yes, go on. I can teach her more easily then.

830 henrik ibsen and modern drama act ii

Rank sits at the piano and plays; Nora dances more and more wildly. Hel- mer has stationed himself by the stove and repeatedly gives her directions; she seems not to hear them; her hair loosens and falls over her shoulders; she does not notice, but goes on dancing. Mrs. Linde enters.

Mrs. Linde (standing dumbfounded at the door): Ah — ! Nora (still dancing): See what fun, Kristine! Helmer: But Nora darling, you dance as if your life were at stake. Nora: And it is. Helmer: Rank, stop! This is pure madness. Stop it, I say!

Rank breaks off playing , and Nora halts abruptly.

Helmer (going over to her): I never would have believed it. You’ve forgotten everything I taught you.

Nora (throwing away the tambourine): You see for yourself. Helmer: Well, there’s certainly room for instruction here. Nora: Yes, you see how important it is. You’ve got to teach me to the very

last minute. Promise me that, Torvald? Helmer: You can bet on it. Nora: You mustn’t, either today or tomorrow, think about anything else

but me; you mustn’t open any letters — or the mailbox — Helmer: Ah, it’s still the fear of that man — Nora: Oh yes, yes, that too. Helmer: Nora, it’s written all over you — there’s already a letter from him

out there. Nora: I don’t know. I guess so. But you mustn’t read such things now;

there mustn’t be anything ugly between us before it’s all over. Rank (quietly to Helmer): You shouldn’t deny her. Helmer (putting his arms around her): The child can have her way. But

tomorrow night, after you’ve danced — Nora: Then you’ll be free. Maid (in the doorway, right): Ma’am, dinner is served. Nora: We’ll be wanting champagne, Helene. Maid: Very good, ma’am. (Goes out.) Helmer: So — a regular banquet, hm? Nora: Yes, a banquet — champagne till daybreak! (Calling out.) And some

macaroons, Helene. Heaps of them — just this once. Helmer (taking her hands): Now, now, now — no hysterics. Be my own little

lark again. Nora: Oh, I will soon enough. But go on in — and you, Dr. Rank. Kris-

tine, help me put up my hair. Rank (whispering , as they go): There’s nothing wrong — really wrong, is

there? Helmer: Oh, of course not. It’s nothing more than this childish anxiety I

was telling you about. (They go out, right.) Nora: Well? Mrs. Linde: Left town.

act iii ibsen / a doll house 831

Nora: I could see by your face. Mrs. Linde: He’ll be home tomorrow evening. I wrote him a note. Nora: You shouldn’t have. Don’t try to stop anything now. After all, it’s

a wonderful joy, this waiting here for the miracle. Mrs. Linde: What is it you’re waiting for? Nora: Oh, you can’t understand that. Go in to them; I’ll be along in a

moment.

Mrs. Linde goes into the dining room. Nora stands a short while as if compos- ing herself; then she looks at her watch.

Nora: Five. Seven hours to midnight. Twenty-four hours to the mid- night after, and then the tarantella’s done. Seven and twenty-four? Thirty-one hours to live.

Helmer (in the doorway, right): What’s become of the little lark? Nora (going toward him with open arms): Here’s your lark!

AC T I I I

Same scene. The table, with chairs around it, has been moved to the center of the room. A lamp on the table is lit. The hall door stands open. Dance music drifts down from the fl oor above. Mrs. Linde sits at the table, absently paging through a book, trying to read, but apparently unable to focus her thoughts. Once or twice she pauses, tensely listening for a sound at the outer entrance.

Mrs. Linde (glancing at her watch): Not yet — and there’s hardly any time left. If only he’s not — (Listening again.) Ah, there he is. (She goes out in the hall and cautiously opens the outer door. Quiet footsteps are heard on the stairs. She whispers:) Come in. Nobody’s here.

Krogstad (in the doorway): I found a note from you at home. What’s back of all this?

Mrs. Linde: I just had to talk to you. Krogstad: Oh? And it just had to be here in this house? Mrs. Linde: At my place it was impossible; my room hasn’t a private

entrance. Come in; we’re all alone. The maid’s asleep, and the Helm- ers are at the dance upstairs.

Krogstad (entering the room): Well, well, the Helmers are dancing tonight? Really?

Mrs. Linde: Yes, why not? Krogstad: How true — why not? Mrs. Linde: All right, Krogstad, let’s talk. Krogstad: Do we two have anything more to talk about? Mrs. Linde: We have a great deal to talk about. Krogstad: I wouldn’t have thought so. Mrs. Linde: No, because you’ve never understood me, really.

832 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Krogstad: Was there anything more to understand — except what’s all too common in life? A calculating woman throws over a man the moment a better catch comes by.

Mrs. Linde: You think I’m so thoroughly calculating? You think I broke it off lightly?

Krogstad: Didn’t you? Mrs. Linde: Nils — is that what you really thought? Krogstad: If you cared, then why did you write me the way you did? Mrs. Linde: What else could I do? If I had to break off with you, then it

was my job as well to root out everything you felt for me. Krogstad (wringing his hands): So that was it. And this — all this, simply for

money! Mrs. Linde: Don’t forget I had a helpless mother and two small brothers.

We couldn’t wait for you, Nils; you had such a long road ahead of you then.

Krogstad: That may be; but you still hadn’t the right to abandon me for somebody else’s sake.

Mrs. Linde: Yes — I don’t know. So many, many times I’ve asked myself if I did have that right.

Krogstad (more softly): When I lost you, it was as if all the solid ground dissolved from under my feet. Look at me; I’m a half-drowned man now, hanging onto a wreck.

Mrs. Linde: Help may be near. Krogstad: It was near — but then you came and blocked it off. Mrs. Linde: Without my knowing it, Nils. Today for the fi rst time I

learned that it’s you I’m replacing at the bank. Krogstad: All right — I believe you. But now that you know, will you step aside? Mrs. Linde: No, because that wouldn’t benefi t you in the slightest. Krogstad: Not “benefi t” me, hm! I’d step aside anyway. Mrs. Linde: I’ve learned to be realistic. Life and hard, bitter necessity have

taught me that. Krogstad: And life’s taught me never to trust fi ne phrases. Mrs. Linde: Then life’s taught you a very sound thing. But you do have to

trust in actions, don’t you? Krogstad: What does that mean? Mrs. Linde: You said you were hanging on like a half-drowned man to a

wreck. Krogstad: I’ve good reason to say that. Mrs. Linde: I’m also like a half-drowned woman on a wreck. No one to

suffer with; no one to care for. Krogstad: You made your choice. Mrs. Linde: There wasn’t any choice then. Krogstad: So — what of it? Mrs. Linde: Nils, if only we two shipwrecked people could reach across to

each other. Krogstad: What are you saying?

act iii ibsen / a doll house 833

Mrs. Linde: Two on one wreck are at least better off than each on his own. Krogstad: Kristine! Mrs. Linde: Why do you think I came into town? Krogstad: Did you really have some thought of me? Mrs. Linde: I have to work to go on living. All my born days, as long as I

can remember, I’ve worked, and it’s been my best and my only joy. But now I’m completely alone in the world; it frightens me to be so empty and lost. To work for yourself — there’s no joy in that. Nils, give me something — someone to work for.

Krogstad: I don’t believe all this. It’s just some hysterical feminine urge to go out and make a noble sacrifi ce.

Mrs. Linde: Have you ever found me to be hysterical? Krogstad: Can you honestly mean this? Tell me — do you know every-

thing about my past? Mrs. Linde: Yes. Krogstad: And you know what they think I’m worth around here. Mrs. Linde: From what you were saying before, it would seem that with

me you could have been another person. Krogstad: I’m positive of that. Mrs. Linde: Couldn’t it happen still? Krogstad: Kristine — you’re saying this in all seriousness? Yes, you are! I

can see it in you. And do you really have the courage, then — ? Mrs. Linde: I need to have someone to care for; and your children need a

mother. We both need each other. Nils, I have faith that you’re good at heart — I’ll risk everything together with you.

Krogstad (gripping her hands): Kristine, thank you, thank you — Now I know I can win back a place in their eyes. Yes — but I forgot —

Mrs. Linde (listening): Shh! The tarantella. Go now! Go on! Krogstad: Why? What is it? Mrs. Linde: Hear the dance up there? When that’s over, they’ll be coming

down. Krogstad: Oh, then I’ll go. But — it’s all pointless. Of course, you don’t

know the move I made against the Helmers. Mrs. Linde: Yes, Nils, I know. Krogstad: And all the same, you have the courage to — ? Mrs. Linde: I know how far despair can drive a man like you. Krogstad: Oh, if I only could take it all back. Mrs. Linde: You easily could — your letter’s still lying in the mailbox. Krogstad: Are you sure of that? Mrs. Linde: Positive. But — Krogstad (looks at her searchingly): Is that the meaning of it, then? You’ll

save your friend at any price. Tell me straight out. Is that it? Mrs. Linde: Nils — anyone who’s sold herself for somebody else once isn’t

going to do it again. Krogstad: I’ll demand my letter back. Mrs. Linde: No, no.

834 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Krogstad: Yes, of course. I’ll stay here till Helmer comes down; I’ll tell him to give me my letter again — that it only involves my dismissal — that he shouldn’t read it —

Mrs. Linde: No, Nils, don’t call the letter back. Krogstad: But wasn’t that exactly why you wrote me to come here? Mrs. Linde: Yes, in that fi rst panic. But it’s been a whole day and night

since then, and in that time I’ve seen such incredible things in this house. Helmer’s got to learn everything; this dreadful secret has to be aired; those two have to come to a full understanding; all these lies and evasions can’t go on.

Krogstad: Well, then, if you want to chance it. But at least there’s one thing I can do, and do right away —

Mrs. Linde (listening): Go now, go quick! The dance is over. We’re not safe another second.

Krogstad: I’ll wait for you downstairs. Mrs. Linde: Yes, please do; take me home. Krogstad: I can’t believe it; I’ve never been so happy. (He leaves by way of

the outer door; the door between the room and the hall stays open.) Mrs. Linde (straightening up a bit and getting together her street clothes): How

different now! How different! Someone to work for, to live for — a home to build. Well, it is worth the try! Oh, if they’d only come! (Listening.) Ah, there they are. Bundle up. (She picks up her hat and coat. Nora’s and Helmer’s voices can be heard outside; a key turns in the lock, and Helmer brings Nora into the hall almost by force. She is wearing the Italian costume with a large black shawl about her; he has on evening dress, with a black domino open over it.)

Nora (struggling in the doorway): No, no, no, not inside! I’m going up again. I don’t want to leave so soon.

Helmer: But Nora dear — Nora: Oh, I beg you, please, Torvald. From the bottom of my heart,

please — only an hour more! Helmer: Not a single minute, Nora darling. You know our agreement.

Come on, in we go; you’ll catch cold out here. (In spite of her resistance, he gently draws her into the room.)

Mrs. Linde: Good evening. Nora: Kristine! Helmer: Why, Mrs. Linde — are you here so late? Mrs. Linde: Yes, I’m sorry, but I did want to see Nora in costume. Nora: Have you been sitting here, waiting for me? Mrs. Linde: Yes. I didn’t come early enough; you were all upstairs; and

then I thought I really couldn’t leave without seeing you. Helmer (removing Nora’s shawl): Yes, take a good look. She’s worth look-

ing at, I can tell you that, Mrs. Linde. Isn’t she lovely? Mrs. Linde: Yes, I should say — Helmer: A dream of loveliness, isn’t she? That’s what everyone thought

at the party, too. But she’s horribly stubborn — this sweet little thing.

act iii ibsen / a doll house 835

What’s to be done with her? Can you imagine, I almost had to use force to pry her away.

Nora: Oh, Torvald, you’re going to regret you didn’t indulge me, even for just a half hour more.

Helmer: There, you see. She danced her tarantella and got a tumultu- ous hand — which was well earned, although the performance may have been a bit too naturalistic — I mean it rather overstepped the proprieties of art. But never mind — what’s important is, she made a success, an overwhelming success. You think I could let her stay on after that and spoil the effect? Oh no; I took my lovely little Capri girl — my capricious little Capri girl, I should say — took her under my arm; one quick tour of the ballroom, a curtsy to every side, and then — as they say in novels — the beautiful vision disappeared. An exit should always be effective, Mrs. Linde, but that’s what I can’t get Nora to grasp. Phew, it’s hot in here. (Flings the domino on a chair and opens the door to his room.) Why’s it dark in here? Oh yes, of course. Excuse me. (He goes in and lights a couple of candles.)

Nora (in a sharp, breathless whisper): So? Mrs. Linde (quietly): I talked with him. Nora: And — ? Mrs. Linde: Nora — you must tell your husband everything. Nora (dully): I knew it. Mrs. Linde: You’ve got nothing to fear from Krogstad, but you have to

speak out. Nora: I won’t tell. Mrs. Linde: Then the letter will. Nora: Thanks, Kristine. I know now what’s to be done. Shh! Helmer (reentering): Well, then, Mrs. Linde — have you admired her? Mrs. Linde: Yes, and now I’ll say good night. Helmer: Oh, come, so soon? Is this yours, this knitting? Mrs. Linde: Yes, thanks. I nearly forgot it. Helmer: Do you knit, then? Mrs. Linde: Oh yes. Helmer: You know what? You should embroider instead. Mrs. Linde: Really? Why? Helmer: Yes, because it’s a lot prettier. See here, one holds the embroi-

dery so, in the left hand, and then one guides the needle with the right — so — in an easy, sweeping curve — right?

Mrs. Linde: Yes, I guess that’s — Helmer: But, on the other hand, knitting — it can never be anything but

ugly. Look, see here, the arms tucked in, the knitting needles going up and down — there’s something Chinese about it. Ah, that was really a glorious champagne they served.

Mrs. Linde: Yes, good night, Nora, and don’t be stubborn anymore. Helmer: Well put, Mrs. Linde! Mrs. Linde: Good night, Mr. Helmer.

836 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Helmer (accompanying her to the door): Good night, good night. I hope you get home all right. I’d be very happy to — but you don’t have far to go. Good night, good night. (She leaves. He shuts the door after her and returns.) There, now, at last we got her out the door. She’s a deadly bore, that creature.

Nora: Aren’t you pretty tired, Torvald? Helmer: No, not a bit. Nora: You’re not sleepy? Helmer: Not at all. On the contrary, I’m feeling quite exhilarated. But

you? Yes, you really look tired and sleepy. Nora: Yes, I’m very tired. Soon now I’ll sleep. Helmer: See! You see! I was right all along that we shouldn’t stay longer. Nora: Whatever you do is always right. Helmer (kissing her brow): Now my little lark talks sense. Say, did you

notice what a time Rank was having tonight? Nora: Oh, was he? I didn’t get to speak with him. Helmer: I scarcely did either, but it’s a long time since I’ve seen him

in such high spirits. (Gazes at her a moment, then comes nearer her.) Hm — it’s marvelous, though, to be back home again — to be com- pletely alone with you. Oh, you bewitchingly lovely young woman!

Nora: Torvald, don’t look at me like that! Helmer: Can’t I look at my richest treasure? At all that beauty that’s

mine, mine alone — completely and utterly. Nora (moving around to the other side of the table): You mustn’t talk to me

that way tonight. Helmer (following her): The tarantella is still in your blood, I can see — and

it makes you even more enticing. Listen. The guests are beginning to go. (Dropping his voice.) Nora — it’ll soon be quiet through this whole house.

Nora: Yes, I hope so. Helmer: You do, don’t you, my love? Do you realize — when I’m out at

a party like this with you — do you know why I talk to you so little, and keep such a distance away; just send you a stolen look now and then — you know why I do it? It’s because I’m imagining then that you’re my secret darling, my secret bride-to-be, and that no one sus- pects there’s anything between us.

Nora: Yes, yes; oh, yes, I know you’re always thinking of me. Helmer: And then when we leave and I place the shawl over those fi ne

young rounded shoulders — over that wonderful curving neck — then I pretend that you’re my young bride, that we’re just coming from the wedding, that for the fi rst time I’m bringing you into my house — that for the fi rst time I’m alone with you — completely alone with you, your trembling young beauty! All this evening I’ve longed for nothing but you. When I saw you turn and sway in the taran- tella — my blood was pounding till I couldn’t stand it — that’s why I brought you down here so early —

act iii ibsen / a doll house 837

Nora: Go away, Torvald! Leave me alone. I don’t want all this. Helmer: What do you mean? Nora, you’re teasing me. You will, won’t

you? Aren’t I your husband — ?

A knock at the outside door.

Nora (startled): What’s that? Helmer (going toward the hall): Who is it? Rank (outside): It’s me. May I come in a moment? Helmer (with quiet irritation): Oh, what does he want now? (Aloud.) Hold

on. (Goes and opens the door.) Oh, how nice that you didn’t just pass us by!

Rank: I thought I heard your voice, and then I wanted so badly to have a look in. (Lightly glancing about.) Ah, me, these old familiar haunts. You have it snug and cozy in here, you two.

Helmer: You seemed to be having it pretty cozy upstairs, too. Rank: Absolutely. Why shouldn’t I? Why not take in everything in life?

As much as you can, anyway, and as long as you can. The wine was superb —

Helmer: The champagne especially. Rank: You noticed that too? It’s amazing how much I could guzzle

down. Nora: Torvald also drank a lot of champagne this evening. Rank: Oh? Nora: Yes, and that always makes him so entertaining. Rank: Well, why shouldn’t one have a pleasant evening after a well-spent

day? Helmer: Well spent? I’m afraid I can’t claim that. Rank (slapping him on the back): But I can, you see! Nora: Dr. Rank, you must have done some scientifi c research today. Rank: Quite so. Helmer: Come now — little Nora talking about scientifi c research! Nora: And can I congratulate you on the results? Rank: Indeed you may. Nora: Then they were good? Rank: The best possible for both doctor and patient — certainty. Nora (quickly and searchingly): Certainty? Rank: Complete certainty. So don’t I owe myself a gay evening

afterwards? Nora: Yes, you’re right, Dr. Rank. Helmer: I’m with you — just so long as you don’t have to suffer for it in

the morning. Rank: Well, one never gets something for nothing in life. Nora: Dr. Rank — are you very fond of masquerade parties? Rank: Yes, if there’s a good array of odd disguises — Nora: Tell me, what should we two go as at the next masquerade? Helmer: You little featherhead — already thinking of the next!

838 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Rank: We two? I’ll tell you what: you must go as Charmed Life — Helmer: Yes, but fi nd a costume for that! Rank: Your wife can appear just as she looks every day. Helmer: That was nicely put. But don’t you know what you’re going to

be? Rank: Yes, Helmer, I’ve made up my mind. Helmer: Well? Rank: At the next masquerade I’m going to be invisible. Helmer: That’s a funny idea. Rank: They say there’s a hat — black, huge — have you never heard of the

hat that makes you invisible? You put it on, and then no one on earth can see you.

Helmer (suppressing a smile): Ah, of course. Rank: But I’m quite forgetting what I came for. Helmer, give me a cigar,

one of the dark Havanas. Helmer: With the greatest pleasure. (Holds out his case.) Rank: Thanks. (Takes one and cuts off the tip.) Nora (striking a match): Let me give you a light. Rank: Thank you. (She holds the match for him; he lights the cigar.) And now

good-bye. Helmer: Good-bye, good-bye, old friend. Nora: Sleep well, Doctor. Rank: Thanks for that wish. Nora: Wish me the same. Rank: You? All right, if you like — Sleep well. And thanks for the light.

(He nods to them both and leaves.) Helmer (his voice subdued): He’s been drinking heavily. Nora (absently): Could be. (Helmer takes his keys from his pocket and goes out

in the hall.) Torvald — what are you after? Helmer: Got to empty the mailbox; it’s nearly full. There won’t be room

for the morning papers. Nora: Are you working tonight? Helmer: You know I’m not. Why — what’s this? Someone’s been at the

lock. Nora: At the lock — ? Helmer: Yes, I’m positive. What do you suppose — ? I can’t imagine one

of the maids — ? Here’s a broken hairpin. Nora, it’s yours — Nora (quickly): Then it must be the children — Helmer: You’d better break them of that. Hm, hm — well, opened it after

all. (Takes the contents out and calls into the kitchen.) Helene! Helene, would you put out the lamp in the hall. (He returns to the room shut- ting the hall door, then displays the handful of mail.) Look how it’s piled up. (Sorting through them.) Now what’s this?

Nora (at the window): The letter! Oh, Torvald, no! Helmer: Two calling cards — from Rank. Nora: From Dr. Rank?

act iii ibsen / a doll house 839

Helmer (examining them): “Dr. Rank, Consulting Physician.” They were on top. He must have dropped them in as he left.

Nora: Is there anything on them? Helmer: There’s a black cross over the name. See? That’s a gruesome

notion. He could almost be announcing his own death. Nora: That’s just what he’s doing. Helmer: What! You’ve heard something? Something he’s told you? Nora: Yes. That when those cards came, he’d be taking his leave of us.

He’ll shut himself in now and die. Helmer: Ah, my poor friend! Of course I knew he wouldn’t be here much

longer. But so soon — And then to hide himself away like a wounded animal.

Nora: If it has to happen, then it’s best it happens in silence — don’t you think so, Torvald?

Helmer (pacing up and down): He’d grown right into our lives. I simply can’t imagine him gone. He with his suffering and loneliness — like a dark cloud setting off our sunlit happiness. Well, maybe it’s best this way. For him, at least. (Standing still.) And maybe for us too, Nora. Now we’re thrown back on each other, completely. (Embrac- ing her.) Oh you, my darling wife, how can I hold you close enough? You know what, Nora — time and again I’ve wished you were in some terrible danger, just so I could stake my life and soul and everything, for your sake.

Nora (tearing herself away, her voice fi rm and decisive): Now you must read your mail, Torvald.

Helmer: No, no, not tonight. I want to stay with you, dearest. Nora: With a dying friend on your mind? Helmer: You’re right. We’ve both had a shock. There’s ugliness between

us — these thoughts of death and corruption. We’ll have to get free of them fi rst. Until then — we’ll stay apart.

Nora (clinging about his neck): Torvald — good night! Good night! Helmer (kissing her on the cheek): Good night, little songbird. Sleep well,

Nora. I’ll be reading my mail now. (He takes the letters into his room and shuts the door after him.)

Nora (with bewildered glances, groping about, seizing Helmer’s domino, throwing it around her, and speaking in short, hoarse, broken whispers): Never see him again. Never, never. (Putting her shawl over her head.) Never see the chil- dren either — them, too. Never, never. Oh, the freezing black water! The depths — down — Oh, I wish it were over — He has it now; he’s reading it — now. Oh no, no, not yet. Torvald, good-bye, you and the chil- dren — (She starts for the hall; as she does, Helmer throws open his door and stands with an open letter in his hand.)

Helmer: Nora! Nora (screams): Oh — ! Helmer: What is this? You know what’s in this letter? Nora: Yes, I know. Let me go! Let me out!

840 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Helmer (holding her back): Where are you going? Nora (struggling to break loose): You can’t save me, Torvald! Helmer (slumping back): True! Then it’s true what he writes? How hor-

rible! No, no, it’s impossible — it can’t be true. Nora: It is true. I’ve loved you more than all this world. Helmer: Ah, none of your slippery tricks. Nora (taking one step toward him): Torvald — ! Helmer: What is this you’ve blundered into! Nora: Just let me loose. You’re not going to suffer for my sake. You’re

not going to take on my guilt. Helmer: No more play-acting. (Locks the hall door.) You stay right here and

give me a reckoning. You understand what you’ve done? Answer! You understand?

Nora (looking squarely at him, her face hardening): Yes. I’m beginning to understand everything now.

Helmer (striding about): Oh, what an awful awakening! In all these eight years — she who was my pride and joy — a hypocrite, a liar — worse, worse — a criminal! How infi nitely disgusting it all is! The shame! (Nora says nothing and goes on looking straight at him. He stops in front of her.) I should have suspected something of the kind. I should have known. All your father’s fl imsy values — Be still! All your father’s fl imsy values have come out in you. No religion, no morals, no sense of duty — Oh, how I’m punished for letting him off! I did it for your sake, and you repay me like this.

Nora: Yes, like this. Helmer: Now you’ve wrecked all my happiness — ruined my whole future.

Oh, it’s awful to think of. I’m in a cheap little grafter’s hands; he can do anything he wants with me, ask for anything, play with me like a puppet — and I can’t breathe a word. I’ll be swept down miserably into the depths on account of a featherbrained woman.

Nora: When I’m gone from this world, you’ll be free. Helmer: Oh, quit posing. Your father had a mess of those speeches too.

What good would that ever do me if you were gone from this world, as you say? Not the slightest. He can still make the whole thing known; and if he does, I could be falsely suspected as your accom- plice. They might even think that I was behind it — that I put you up to it. And all that I can thank you for — you that I’ve coddled the whole of our marriage. Can you see now what you’ve done to me?

Nora (icily calm): Yes. Helmer: It’s so incredible, I just can’t grasp it. But we’ll have to patch

up whatever we can. Take off the shawl. I said, take if off! I’ve got to appease him somehow or other. The thing has to be hushed up at any cost. And as for you and me, it’s got to seem like everything between us is just as it was — to the outside world, that is. You’ll go right on living in this house, of course. But you can’t be allowed to bring up the children; I don’t dare trust you with them — Oh, to have to say this to someone I’ve loved so much! Well, that’s done

act iii ibsen / a doll house 841

with. From now on happiness doesn’t matter; all that matters is saving the bits and pieces, the appearance — (The doorbell rings. Hel- mer starts.) What’s that? And so late. Maybe the worst — ? You think he’d — ? Hide, Nora! Say you’re sick. (Nora remains standing motionless. Helmer goes and opens the door.)

Maid (half dressed, in the hall): A letter for Mrs. Helmer. Helmer: I’ll take it. (Snatches the letter and shuts the door.) Yes, it’s from him.

You don’t get it; I’m reading it myself. Nora: Then read it. Helmer (by the lamp): I hardly dare. We may be ruined, you and I.

But — I’ve got to know. (Rips open the letter, skims through a few lines, glances at an enclosure, then cries out joyfully.) Nora! (Nora looks inquir- ingly at him.) Nora! Wait — better check it again — Yes, yes, it’s true. I’m saved. Nora, I’m saved!

Nora: And I? Helmer: You too, of course. We’re both saved, both of us. Look. He’s

sent back your note. He says he’s sorry and ashamed — that a happy development in his life — oh, who cares what he says! Nora, we’re saved! No one can hurt you. Oh, Nora, Nora — but fi rst, this ugli- ness all has to go. Let me see — (Takes a look at the note.) No, I don’t want to see it; I want the whole thing to fade like a dream. (Tears the note and both letters to pieces, throws them into the stove and watches them burn.) There — now there’s nothing left — He wrote that since Christmas Eve you — Oh, they must have been three terrible days for you, Nora.

Nora: I fought a hard fi ght. Helmer: And suffered pain and saw no escape but — No, we’re not going to

dwell on anything unpleasant. We’ll just be grateful and keep on repeat- ing: it’s over now, it’s over! You hear me, Nora? You don’t seem to real- ize — it’s over. What’s it mean — that frozen look? Oh, poor little Nora, I understand. You can’t believe I’ve forgiven you. But I have, Nora; I swear I have. I know that what you did, you did out of love for me.

Nora: That’s true. Helmer: You loved me the way a wife ought to love her husband. It’s sim-

ply the means that you couldn’t judge. But you think I love you any the less for not knowing how to handle your affairs? No, no — just lean on me; I’ll guide you and teach you. I wouldn’t be a man if this feminine helplessness didn’t make you twice as attractive to me. You mustn’t mind those sharp words I said — that was all in the fi rst con- fusion of thinking my world had collapsed. I’ve forgiven you, Nora; I swear I’ve forgiven you.

Nora: My thanks for your forgiveness. (She goes out through the door, right.) Helmer: No, wait — (Peers in.) What are you doing in there? Nora (inside): Getting out of my costume. Helmer (by the open door): Yes, do that. Try to calm yourself and collect

your thoughts again, my frightened little songbird. You can rest easy now; I’ve got wide wings to shelter you with. (Walking about close by

842 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

the door.) How snug and nice our home is, Nora. You’re safe here; I’ll keep you like a hunted dove I’ve rescued out of a hawk’s claws. I’ll bring peace to your poor, shuddering heart. Gradually it’ll happen, Nora; you’ll see. Tomorrow all this will look different to you; then everything will be as it was. I won’t have to go on repeating I forgive you; you’ll feel it for yourself. How can you imagine I’d ever conceiv- ably want to disown you — or even blame you in any way? Ah, you don’t know a man’s heart, Nora. For a man there’s something inde- scribably sweet and satisfying in knowing he’s forgiven his wife — and forgiven her out of a full and open heart. It’s as if she belongs to him in two ways now: in a sense he’s given her fresh into the world again, and she’s become his wife and his child as well. From now on that’s what you’ll be to me — you little, bewildered, helpless thing. Don’t be afraid of anything, Nora; just open your heart to me, and I’ll be conscience and will to you both — (Nora enters in her regular clothes.) What’s this? Not in bed? You’ve changed your dress?

Nora: Yes, Torvald, I’ve changed my dress. Helmer: But why now, so late? Nora: Tonight I’m not sleeping. Helmer: But Nora dear — Nora (looking at her watch): It’s still not so very late. Sit down, Torvald; we

have a lot to talk over. (She sits at one side of the table.) Helmer: Nora — what is this? That hard expression — Nora: Sit down. This’ll take some time. I have a lot to say. Helmer (sitting at the table directly opposite her): You worry me, Nora. And I

don’t understand you. Nora: No, that’s exactly it. You don’t understand me. And I’ve never

understood you either — until tonight. No, don’t interrupt. You can just listen to what I say. We’re closing out accounts, Torvald.

Helmer: How do you mean that? Nora (after a short pause): Doesn’t anything strike you about our sitting

here like this? Helmer: What’s that? Nora: We’ve been married now eight years. Doesn’t it occur to you that

this is the fi rst time we two, you and I, man and wife, have ever talked seriously together?

Helmer: What do you mean — seriously? Nora: In eight whole years — longer even — right from our fi rst acquain-

tance, we’ve never exchanged a serious word on any serious thing. Helmer: You mean I should constantly go and involve you in problems

you couldn’t possibly help me with? Nora: I’m not talking of problems. I’m saying that we’ve never sat down

seriously together and tried to get to the bottom of anything. Helmer: But dearest, what good would that ever do you? Nora: That’s the point right there: you’ve never understood me. I’ve been

wronged greatly, Torvald — fi rst by Papa, and then by you.

act iii ibsen / a doll house 843

Helmer: What! By us — the two people who’ve loved you more than any- one else?

Nora (shaking her head): You never loved me. You’ve thought it fun to be in love with me, that’s all.

Helmer: Nora, what a thing to say! Nora: Yes, it’s true now, Torvald. When I lived at home with Papa, he

told me all his opinions, so I had the same ones too; or if they were different I hid them, since he wouldn’t have cared for that. He used to call me his doll-child, and he played with me the way I played with my dolls. Then I came into your house —

Helmer: How can you speak of our marriage like that? Nora (unperturbed): I mean, then I went from Papa’s hands into yours.

You arranged everything to your own taste, and so I got the same taste as you — or I pretended to; I can’t remember. I guess a little of both, fi rst one, then the other. Now when I look back, it seems as if I’d lived here like a beggar — just from hand to mouth. I’ve lived by doing tricks for you, Torvald. But that’s the way you wanted it. It’s a great sin what you and Papa did to me. You’re to blame that noth- ing’s become of me.

Helmer: Nora, how unfair and ungrateful you are! Haven’t you been happy here?

Nora: No, never. I thought so — but I never have. Helmer: Not — not happy! Nora: No, only lighthearted. And you’ve always been so kind to me. But

our home’s been nothing but a playpen. I’ve been your doll-wife here, just as at home I was Papa’s doll-child. And in turn the chil- dren have been my dolls. I thought it was fun when you played with me, just as they thought it fun when I played with them. That’s been our marriage, Torvald.

Helmer: There’s some truth in what you’re saying — under all the raving exaggeration. But it’ll all be different after this. Playtime’s over; now for the schooling.

Nora: Whose schooling — mine or the children’s? Helmer: Both yours and the children’s, dearest. Nora: Oh, Torvald, you’re not the man to teach me to be a good wife to

you. Helmer: And you can say that? Nora: And I — how am I equipped to bring up children? Helmer: Nora! Nora: Didn’t you say a moment ago that that was no job to trust me

with? Helmer: In a fl are of temper! Why fasten on that? Nora: Yes, but you were so very right. I’m not up to the job. There’s another

job I have to do fi rst. I have to try to educate myself. You can’t help me with that. I’ve got to do it alone. And that’s why I’m leaving you now.

Helmer (jumping up): What’s that?

844 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Nora: I have to stand completely alone, if I’m ever going to discover myself and the world out there. So I can’t go on living with you.

Helmer: Nora, Nora! Nora: I want to leave right away. Kristine should put me up for the night — Helmer: You’re insane! You’ve no right! I forbid you! Nora: From here on, there’s no use forbidding me anything. I’ll take

with me whatever is mine. I don’t want a thing from you, either now or later.

Helmer: What kind of madness is this! Nora: Tomorrow I’m going home — I mean, home where I came from.

It’ll be easier up there to fi nd something to do. Helmer: Oh, you blind, incompetent child! Nora: I must learn to be competent, Torvald. Helmer: Abandon your home, your husband, your children! And you’re

not even thinking what people will say. Nora: I can’t be concerned about that. I only know how essential this is. Helmer: Oh, it’s outrageous. So you’ll run out like this on your most

sacred vows. Nora: What do you think are my most sacred vows? Helmer: And I have to tell you that! Aren’t they your duties to your hus-

band and children? Nora: I have other duties equally sacred. Helmer: That isn’t true. What duties are they? Nora: Duties to myself. Helmer: Before all else, you’re a wife and mother. Nora: I don’t believe in that anymore. I believe that, before all else, I’m a

human being, no less than you — or anyway, I ought to try to become one. I know the majority thinks you’re right, Torvald, and plenty of books agree with you, too. But I can’t go on believing what the majority says, or what’s written in books. I have to think over these things myself and try to understand them.

Helmer: Why can’t you understand your place in your own home? On a point like that, isn’t there one everlasting guide you can turn to? Where’s your religion?

Nora: Oh, Torvald, I’m really not sure what religion is. Helmer: What — ? Nora: I only know what the minister said when I was confi rmed. He told

me religion was this thing and that. When I get clear and away by myself, I’ll go into that problem too. I’ll see if what the minister said was right, or, in any case, if it’s right for me.

Helmer: A young woman your age shouldn’t talk like that. If religion can’t move you, I can try to rouse your conscience. You do have some moral feeling? Or, tell me — has that gone too?

Nora: It’s not easy to answer that, Torvald. I simply don’t know. I’m all confused about these things. I just know I see them so differently from you. I fi nd out, for one thing, that the law’s not at all what I’d

act iii ibsen / a doll house 845

thought — but I can’t get it through my head that the law is fair. A woman hasn’t a right to protect her dying father or save her hus- band’s life! I can’t believe that.

Helmer: You talk like a child. You don’t know anything of the world you live in.

Nora: No, I don’t. But now I’ll begin to learn for myself. I’ll try to dis- cover who’s right, the world or I.

Helmer: Nora, you’re sick; you’ve got a fever. I almost think you’re out of your head.

Nora: I’ve never felt more clearheaded and sure in my life. Helmer: And — clearheaded and sure — you’re leaving your husband and

children? Nora: Yes. Helmer: Then there’s only one possible reason. Nora: What? Helmer: You no longer love me. Nora: No. That’s exactly it. Helmer: Nora! You can’t be serious! Nora: Oh, this is so hard, Torvald — you’ve been so kind to me always.

But I can’t help it. I don’t love you anymore. Helmer (struggling for composure): Are you also clearheaded and sure

about that? Nora: Yes, completely. That’s why I can’t go on staying here. Helmer: Can you tell me what I did to lose your love? Nora: Yes, I can tell you. It was this evening when the miraculous thing

didn’t come — then I knew you weren’t the man I’d imagined. Helmer: Be more explicit; I don’t follow you. Nora: I’ve waited now so patiently eight long years — for, my Lord,

I know miracles don’t come every day. Then this crisis broke over me, and such a certainty fi lled me: now the miraculous event would occur. While Krogstad’s letter was lying out there, I never for an instant dreamed that you could give in to his terms. I was so utterly sure you’d say to him: go on, tell your tale to the whole wide world. And when he’d done that —

Helmer: Yes, what then? When I’d delivered my own wife into shame and disgrace —

Nora: When he’d done that, I was so utterly sure that you’d step forward, take the blame on yourself and say: I am the guilty one.

Helmer: Nora — ! Nora: You’re thinking I’d never accept such a sacrifi ce from you? No, of

course not. But what good would my protests be against you? That was the miracle I was waiting for, in terror and hope. And to stave that off, I would have taken my life.

Helmer: I’d gladly work for you day and night, Nora — and take on pain and deprivation. But there’s no one who gives up honor for love.

Nora: Millions of women have done just that.

846 henrik ibsen and modern drama act iii

Helmer: Oh, you think and talk like a silly child. Nora: Perhaps. But you neither think nor talk like the man I could join

myself to. When your big fright was over — and it wasn’t from any threat against me, only for what might damage you — when all the danger was past, for you it was just as if nothing had happened. I was exactly the same, your little lark, your doll, that you’d have to handle with double care now that I’d turned out so brittle and frail. (Gets up.) Torvald — in that instant it dawned on me that for eight years I’ve been living here with a stranger, and that I’ve even con- ceived three children — oh, I can’t stand the thought of it! I could tear myself to bits.

Helmer (heavily): I see. There’s a gulf that’s opened between us — that’s clear. Oh, but Nora, can’t we bridge it somehow?

Nora: The way I am now, I’m no wife for you. Helmer: I have the strength to make myself over. Nora: Maybe — if your doll gets taken away. Helmer: But to part! To part from you! No, Nora no — I can’t imagine it. Nora (going out, right): All the more reason why it has to be. (She reenters

with her coat and a small overnight bag , which she puts on a chair by the table.)

Helmer: Nora, Nora, not now! Wait till tomorrow. Nora: I can’t spend the night in a strange man’s room. Helmer: But couldn’t we live here like brother and sister — Nora: You know very well how long that would last. (Throws her shawl

about her.) Good-bye, Torvald. I won’t look in on the children. I know they’re in better hands than mine. The way I am now, I’m no use to them.

Helmer: But someday, Nora — someday — ? Nora: How can I tell? I haven’t the least idea what’ll become of me. Helmer: But you’re my wife, now and wherever you go. Nora: Listen, Torvald — I’ve heard that when a wife deserts her husband’s

house just as I’m doing, then the law frees him from all responsibil- ity. In any case, I’m freeing you from being responsible. Don’t feel yourself bound, any more than I will. There has to be absolute free- dom for us both. Here, take your ring back. Give me mine.

Helmer: That too? Nora: That too. Helmer: There it is. Nora: Good. Well, now it’s all over. I’m putting the keys here. The maids

know all about keeping up the house — better than I do. Tomorrow, after I’ve left town, Kristine will stop by to pack up everything that’s mine from home. I’d like those things shipped up to me.

Helmer: Over! All over! Nora, won’t you ever think about me? Nora: I’m sure I’ll think of you often, and about the children and the

house here. Helmer: May I write you?

act iii ibsen / a doll house 847

Nora: No — never. You’re not to do that. Helmer: Oh, but let me send you — Nora: Nothing. Nothing. Helmer: Or help you if you need it. Nora: No. I accept nothing from strangers. Helmer: Nora — can I never be more than a stranger to you? Nora (picking up her overnight bag): Ah, Torvald — it would take the great-

est miracle of all — Helmer: Tell me the greatest miracle! Nora: You and I both would have to transform ourselves to the point

that — Oh, Torvald, I’ve stopped believing in miracles. Helmer: But I’ll believe. Tell me! Transform ourselves to the point

that — ? Nora: That our living together could be a true marriage. (She goes out down

the hall.) Helmer (sinks down on a chair by the door, face buried in his hands): Nora!

Nora! (Looking about and rising.) Empty. She’s gone. (A sudden hope leaps in him.) The greatest miracle — ?

From below, the sound of a door slamming shut.

Considerations for Critical Thinking and Writing

1. FIRST RESPONSE. What is the signifi cance of the play’s title? 2. Why is Nora “pale with terror” at the end of Act I? What is the sig-

nifi cance of the description of the Christmas tree now “stripped of ornament, [with] burned-down candle stubs on its ragged branches” that opens Act II? What other symbols are used in the play?

3. What is Dr. Rank’s purpose in the play? 4. How does the relationship between Krogstad and Mrs. Linde empha-

size certain qualities in the Helmers’ marriage? 5. Would you describe the ending as essentially happy or unhappy? Is

the play more like a comedy or a tragedy? 6. Ibsen believed that a “dramatist’s business is not to answer ques-

tions, but only to ask them.” What questions are raised in the play? Does Ibsen propose any specifi c answers?

7. CONNECTION TO ANOTHER SELECTION. Explain how Torvald’s atti- tude toward Nora is similar to the men’s attitudes toward women in Susan Glaspell’s Trifl es (p. 595). Write an essay exploring how the assumptions the men make about women in both plays contribute to the plays’ confl icts.

This page intentionally left blank

849

27. Plays for Further Reading 851

A Collection of Plays

849

This page intentionally left blank

Mistaken Identity

Born in Massachusetts and raised in Virginia, Sharon E. Cooper has been writing plays since she was in high school. She studied at the Kennedy Center Playwriting Intensive Pro- gram and lives in New York, where she is a Resident Playwright at the CRY HAVOC Company, a collec- tive of playwrights and directors who provide readings, workshops, and productions for their plays. Her plays produced include Door of Hope (2003), Running (2007), In The Meantime (2008), and The Cook- ing King (2009). Mistaken Identity, which premiered at the Open Space Center in Reistertown, Maryland,

851

27 Plays for Further Reading

I’ve found that the more culturally specifi c you are, the more universal the work is. There’s no confl ict between wanting to reach a large audience and being particular and culturally accurate.

— DAVID HENRY HWANG

Photo courtesy of Julie Fei-Fan Balzer.

852 plays for further reading

in 2003, starts the way a good many shaky blind dates begin but then takes an interesting turn.

Sharon E. Cooper (b. 1975)

Mistaken Identity 2004 (2008 Revised) characters

Kali Patel, 29. Single lesbian Hindu of Indian heritage; social worker who works as much as possible; lives in Leicester, England. Steve Dodd, 32. Single straight guy, desperate to marry, raised Baptist but attends church only on Christmas and Easter; studying abroad for his final year as an undergraduate.

setting: The Castle, a pub in Kirby Muxlowe in Leicester, England.

time: The present.

(Lights up on Steve and Kali in a busy pub on their first date. They are in the middle of dinner.)

Steve: You must get tired of fish and chips all the time. Why do y’all call them “chips”? When they’re french fries, I mean. And you ever notice when people swear, they say, “Excuse my French.” Not me. Nope. I have nothing against the French.

Kali: Right, well, I’m not French, Steve, now am I? Steve: I just didn’t want you to think I was prejudiced against the French

or anyone else. . . . They’re like your neighbors, the French. And your neighbors are like my neighbors. And like a good neighbor, State Farm is there. Have you heard that commercial?

Kali: What? No. Steve — Steve: It’s for insurance. Y’all must not play it here. (Pause.) So I know

that you all do the “arranged marriage thing.” Rashid and I had a long talk about it. Of course, Rashid and I wanted you to approve, too, Kali.

Kali: How twenty-first century of you and my brother. Steve . . . Kali: I’m gay. / Steve: Will you marry me? Kali: Come again? / Steve: What? Kali: How could you ask me to . . . / Steve: Well, I can’t believe this. Kali: Bloody hell, stop talking while I’m talking . . . / Steve: This is very

strange. Kali: So — what? Steve: This new information is, well, new, and changes things, I guess. Kali: You guess? What the hell is wrong with you? I’m sorry, Steve, you

just happened to show up at the end of a very long line of a lot of

cooper / mistaken identity 853

very bad dates. You know, movies where the bloke negotiates hold- ing your hand while you’re just trying to eat popcorn; running across De Montfort University in the pouring rain; dropping a bowl- ing ball on the bloke’s pizza.

Steve: You had me until the bowling ball. Kali, this doesn’t make sense. I invite you out on a lovely date. We eat fish and chips — when I would rather be eating a burger or lasagna —

Kali: Steve, I’m sorry. Steve: I figured we would have a nice long traditional wedding with the

colorful tents. All of my family would be there. We’re more of the Christmas/Easter Christians, so we’d do your religion and I would wear —

Kali: (Overlapping.) You don’t know anything about my people. What are you —

Steve: (Overlapping.) Ooohhh, yes, I do. I saw Monsoon Wedding. And the director’s cut! And I saw Slumdog Millionaire like three times. Three times. Unbelievable!

Kali: Yes, this makes loads of sense at the end of the day. I am a lesbian who has to date every Hindu bloke in England until her brother gets so desperate that he sets her up with a cowboy —

Steve: I take offense to that. Kali: (Overlapping.) But I should feel sorry for you because you watched

two, count them, two movies about Indian people in your entire life and ordered fish when there are hamburgers on the menu! Forgive me for being so insensitive.

Steve: I ordered fish because I wanted you to like me. And I’m sure I’ve seen other Asian movies. Like all those fighting movies. You know, the ones where women are jumping through the air —

Kali: Aaahhh! Do you see how all of this is a moot point now? Steve: I’m confused. Let’s review. Kali: Please, no, bloody hell, let’s not review. Let’s get the waiter. Haven’t

you had enough?

(She gets up. He follows.)

Steve: (Overlapping.) Why is your brother setting up his lesbian sister — Kali: (Overlapping.) Will you please keep your voice down? Steve: (Overlapping.) — up on dates for marriage and tricking well-meaning

men — specifically me — into proposing to her? I’m here to finish my business degree, but I wasn’t born yesterday. So I took a few years off and changed careers a few times, was a fireman —

Kali: (Overlapping.) What does that have to do with anything? Steve: And I’m thirty-two years old, but that doesn’t mean — Kali: Mate, are you going to keep on and on? Steve: Why did your brother put me through this? This isn’t one of

those new reality shows: “Little Brothers Set Up Their Lesbian Sis- ters.” Is there a camera under the table? (He looks.) Let’s talk about this.

854 plays for further reading

(He sits back down.) I’m a good listener. Go ahead. (Pause.) I’m listen- ing. (Pause.) You have to say something if you want this to continue with what we call in America, a conversation.

Kali: Are you done? Steve: Go ahead.

(She sits.)

Kali: I guess I was hoping you wouldn’t tell Rashid. Steve: He doesn’t know? Kali: You are finishing your bachelor’s degree, is that right? Steve: If you’re so “bloody” smart, I’m wondering why you would tell me,

a man that is friends with your brother and sits next to him twice a week in eight A.M. classes — why would you tell me you’re a lesbian and not your brother?

Kali: Maybe for the same reason you would ask a woman you’ve never met before to marry you.

Steve: Your brother made it sound like it would be easy. I’ve been look- ing for that.

Kali: (Overlapping.) Look, you seem very nice, you do. Steve: I am very nice. Kali: And at the end of the day, I hope you find someone you like. Steve: I like how you say “at the end of the day” and I like how you say

“bloke” and “mate.” It’s so endearing. And you’re beautiful and small and your hair falls on your back so.

Kali: Steve, being a lesbian is not negotiable. And don’t start with how sexy it would be to be with me or to watch me and another woman —

Steve: (Overlapping.) Kali, I didn’t say any of that. Kali: You didn’t have to. Up until a few minutes ago, you thought I was

a quiet, subservient Asian toy for sale from her brother. Steve, go get a doll. She can travel with you to America whenever you want. In the meantime, I’ll continue to be a loud, abrasive (Whispering.) lesbian while my brother sets me up with every bloke on the street — and they don’t even have to be Hindu anymore! Do you have any idea what that’s like? (Pause.) How would you know?

Steve: You’re right. I wouldn’t. Kali: Steve, why did you want to be with me? I mean, before. Steve: I figured that we would have visited my family in the winter when

it’s so cold here. I would have been willing to stay here when I’m done with school and we would get a nice little place by the —

Kali: Steve, we hadn’t even shared dessert yet. Steve: Don’t blame me for all of this. Five minutes ago, we were on a date. Kali: We’re just two people in a pub. Steve: Kali, do you remember the last time someone — man, woman, I

don’t care — had their hand down the small of your back or leaned into you like it didn’t matter where you ended and they began?

Kali: Yes, I do remember that. And that was strangely poetic.

cooper / mistaken identity 855

Steve: You don’t have to sound so surprised. Anyway, I remember that feeling. Three years ago, at a Fourth of July celebration — you know, that’s the holiday —

Kali: Yes, Steve, I know the holiday. Steve: She was the only woman I ever really loved. I knew it was ending.

Could taste it. I just held her as the fireworks went off and the dust got in our skin. Figured I would hold on, hoping that would keep me for a while. You know how they say babies will die if they’re left alone too long. Always wondered if it’s true for bigger people, too. Like how long would we last? . . . She left with her Pilates mat and Snoopy slippers a few days later. I bet it hasn’t been three years for you.

Kali: No, it hasn’t. But you wouldn’t want to hear about that. Steve: Why not? Kali: Come on, Steve, I’m not here for your fantasies — Steve: This thing where you assume you know what I’m thinking — it’s

gettin’ old. Kali: I’m . . . sorry. I do have a woman in my life, Michele — She’s a teacher

for people that are deaf. We’ve been together for eleven months. The longest we were away from each other was this one time for three weeks. She was at a retreat where they weren’t allowed to talk — you know, total immersion. So she would call and I would say, “Is it beautiful there, love?” and she would hit a couple of buttons. Some- times she would leave me messages: “beep, beep, beep beep beep beep.” It didn’t matter that she didn’t say anything . . . But I can’t take her home for Diwali.

Steve: What’s that? Kali: It’s a festival of lights where — Steve: You mean like Hanukkah. Kali: No, like Diwali. It’s a New Year’s celebration where we remem-

ber ancestors, family, and friends. And reflect back and look to the future.

Steve: It sounds nice. You know, my mother has been asking me for grandchildren since I turned twenty-seven. Every year at Christmas, it’s the same: “I can’t wait to hang another stocking for my grand- children, if I ever get to have them.”

Kali: Now, imagine that same conversation, well, not about Christmas, and what if you could never give that to them — could never bring someone home for any holiday for the rest of your life?

Steve: Then why don’t you just tell them the truth? Kali: I can’t say, Mum, Daddy, Rashid, I’ve chosen women over men — it’s

not a hamburger over fish. You just don’t know how they’ll react. I’d run the risk of not being allowed to see my nieces. I’m so exhausted from hiding, I can barely breathe.

Steve: So stop hiding. Kali: Have you been listening to what I’ve been saying?

856 plays for further reading

Steve: Have you? Kali: Are you going to tell my brother? Steve: Do you want me to? Kali: I don’t know. Steve: I’ve never thought about that thing that you said. Kali: Which thing would that be? Steve: The one where maybe you can’t see your nieces ’cause you’re gay.

That must suck. Kali: Yes, well, thanks for trying to make me feel better. Steve: Listen, you get to decide what you tell your family and when. As

far as I’m concerned, I’ll tell Rashid tomorrow that we’re getting married. Or I can tell him you’re a lesbian, and if he doesn’t let you be with his kids anymore, I’ll punch him in the face. That was me kidding.

Kali: You’re funny. (Pause.) Maybe I told you because somewhere deep down, I do want him to know. But I don’t know if I can take the risk.

Steve: You don’t have to rush. Kali: I just wish it could be more simple. Like, why can’t what I want be

part of the whole picket-fence thing? That’s pretty ridiculous, huh? Steve: We’re all looking for that. My grandparents met before World

War II, dated for seven days in a row, and my grandfather asked my grandmother to go with him to Louisiana, where he’d be sta- tioned. She said, “Is that a proposal?” And he said, “Of course it is.” And they’ve been together ever since. And I just want that, too. Huh — asking you to marry me on a first date! You must think I’m pretty desperate, huh?

Kali: Not any more than the rest of us . . . Oh, hell, do you want to have some dessert?

Steve: Oh, hell, sure. You know, we’re going to share dessert. Kali: Hey, mate, no one said anything about sharing. Steve: I would go home with you for Diwali. I mean, as friends. If you

ever wanted one around. You’re a nice girl, Kali. I mean woman, mate, bloke. I mean —

Kali: Sssshhhh. Let’s just get some dessert.

(Lights fade as they motion for the waiter. Blackout.)

Trying to Find Chinatown

Born in Los Angeles, David Henry Hwang is the son of immigrant Chinese American parents. Educated at Stanford University, from which he earned a B.A. in English in 1979, his marginal interest in a law career quickly gave way to his involvement in the engaging world of live theater. By his senior year, he had written and produced his fi rst play, FOB (an acronym for “fresh off the boat”), which marked the beginning of a meteoric rise as a playwright.

hwang / trying to find chinatown 857

Although Hwang was successful in having plays produced in the mid-1980s and won prestigious fellowships from the Guggenheim Foundation and the National Endowment for the Arts, it was not until 1988, when M. Butterfl y — a complex treat- ment of social, political, racial, cultural, and sexual issues — was produced on Broad- way, that he achieved astonishing commer- cial success as well as widespread acclaim. His awards for this play include the Outer Critics Circle Award for best Broadway play, the Drama Desk Award for best new play, the John Gassner Award for best American play, and the Tony Award for best play of the year. By the end of 1988, Hwang was regarded by many critics as the most talented young playwright in the United States. Trying to Find Chinatown is a brief but complicated con- frontation between two young men who argue about racial identity in unexpected ways. Hwang’s strategy is to challenge the polemical stereo- typing that often passes for discussions of ethnic and cultural heritage in the United States.

David Henry Hwang (b. 1957)

Trying to Find Chinatown 1996

characters

Benjamin, Caucasian male, early twenties. Ronnie, Asian-American male, mid-twenties.

time and place: A street corner on the Lower East Side, New York City. The present.

note on music: Obviously, it would be foolish to require that the actor portraying Ronnie perform the specifi ed violin music live. The score of this play can be played on tape over the house speakers, and the actor can feign playing the violin using a bow treated with soap. However, in order to effect a convincing illusion, it is desirable that the actor possess some familiarity with the violin or another stringed instrument.

Darkness. Over the house speakers, sound fades in: Hendrix-like virtuoso rock ’n’ roll riffs — heavy feedback, distortion, phase shifting, wah-wah — amplifi ed over a tiny Fender pug-nose.

Lights fade up to reveal that the music’s being played over a solid-body electric violin by Ronnie, a Chinese-American male in his mid-twenties; he is dressed

© Michal Daniel.

858 plays for further reading

in retro-’60s clothing and has a few requisite ’90s body mutilations. He’s playing on a sidewalk for money, his violin case open before him; change and a few stray bills have been left by previous passersby.

Benjamin enters; he’s in his early twenties, blond, blue-eyed, a Midwestern tourist in the big city. He holds a scrap of paper in his hands, scanning street signs for an address. He pauses before Ronnie, listens for a while. With a truly bravura run, Ronnie concludes the number and falls to his knees, gasp- ing. Benjamin applauds.

Benjamin: Good. That was really great. (Pause) I didn’t . . . I mean, a fi ddle . . . I mean, I’d heard them at square dances, on country stations and all, but I never . . . wow, this must really be New York City! (Benjamin applauds, starts to walk on. Still on his knees, Ronnie clears his throat loudly.) Oh, I . . . you’re not just doing this for your health, right? (Benjamin reaches in his pocket, pulls out a couple of coins. Ronnie clears his throat again.) Look, I’m not a millionaire, I’m just . . . (Benjamin pulls out his wallet, removes a dollar bill. Ronnie nods his head and gestures toward the violin case as he takes out a pack of cigarettes, lights one.)

Ronnie: And don’t call it a “fi ddle,” OK? Benjamin: Oh. Well, I didn’t mean to — Ronnie: You sound like a wuss. A hick. A dipshit. Benjamin: It just slipped out. I didn’t really — Ronnie: If this was a fi ddle, I’d be sitting here with a cob pipe, stomping

my cowboy boots and kicking up hay. Then I’d go home and fuck my cousin.

Benjamin: Oh! Well, I don’t really think — Ronnie: Do you see a cob pipe? Am I fucking my cousin? Benjamin: Well, no, not at the moment, but — Ronnie: All right. Then this is a violin, now you give me your money, and

I ignore the insult. Herein endeth the lesson. (Pause.)

Benjamin: Look, a dollar’s more than I’ve ever given to a . . . to someone asking for money.

Ronnie: Yeah, well, this is New York. Welcome to the cost of living. Benjamin: What I mean is, maybe in exchange, you could help me — ? Ronnie: Jesus Christ! Do you see a sign around my neck reading “Big

Apple Fucking Tourist Bureau”? Benjamin: I’m just looking for an address, I don’t think it’s far from here,

maybe you could . . . ? (Benjamin holds out his scrap of paper, Ronnie snatches it away.)

Ronnie: You’re lucky I’m such a goddamn softy. (He looks at the paper) Oh, fuck you. Just suck my dick, you and the cousin you rode in on.

hwang / trying to find chinatown 859

Benjamin: I don’t get it! What are you — ? Ronnie: Eat me. You know exactly what I — Benjamin: I’m just asking for a little — Ronnie: “13 Doyers Street”? Like you don’t know where that is? Benjamin: Of course I don’t know! That’s why I’m asking — Ronnie: C’mon, you trailer-park refugee. You don’t know that’s

Chinatown? Benjamin: Sure I know that’s Chinatown. Ronnie: I know you know that’s Chinatown. Benjamin: So? That doesn’t mean I know where Chinatown — Ronnie: So why is it that you picked me, of all the street musicians in the

city — to point you in the direction of Chinatown? Lemme guess — is it the earring? No, I don’t think so. The Hendrix riffs? Guess again, you fucking moron.

Benjamin: Now, wait a minute. I see what you’re — Ronnie: What are you gonna ask me next? Where you can fi nd the best

dim sum in the city? Whether I can direct you to a genuine opium den? Or do I happen to know how you can meet Miss Saigon for

Trying to Find Chinatown: Richard Thompson as Benjamin and Zar Acayan as Ronnie in Try- ing to Find Chinatown, during the 20th Annual Humana Festival of New American Plays, at the Actors Theatre of Louisville, Kentucky, in 1996. Courtesy of the Actors Theatre of Louisville.

860 plays for further reading

a night of nookie-nookie followed by a good old-fashioned ritual suicide? Now, get your white ass off my sidewalk. One dollar doesn’t even begin to make up for all this aggravation. Why don’t you go back home and race bullfrogs, or whatever it is you do for — ?

Benjamin: Brother, I can absolutely relate to your anger. Righteous rage, I suppose, would be a more appropriate term. To be marginalized, as we are, by a white racist patriarchy, to the point where the accom- plishments of our people are obliterated from the history books, this is cultural genocide of the fi rst order, leading to the fact that you must do battle with all of Euro-America’s emasculating and brutal stereotypes of Asians — the opium den, the sexual objectifi cation of the Asian female, the exoticized image of a tourist’s Chinatown which ignores the exploitation of workers, the failure to unionize, the high rate of mental illness and tuberculosis — against these, each day, you rage, no, not as a victim, but as a survivor, yes, brother, a glorious warrior survivor!

(Silence.)

Ronnie: Say what? Benjamin: So, I hope you can see that my request is not — Ronnie: Wait, wait. Benjamin: — motivated by the sorts of racist assumptions — Ronnie: But, but where . . . how did you learn all that? Benjamin: All what? Ronnie: All that — you know — oppression stuff — tuberculosis . . . Benjamin: It’s statistically irrefutable. TB occurs in the community at a

rate — Ronnie: Where did you learn it? Benjamin: I took Asian-American studies. In college. Ronnie: Where did you go to college? Benjamin: University of Wisconsin. Madison. Ronnie: Madison, Wisconsin? Benjamin: That’s not where the bridges are, by the way. Ronnie: Huh? Oh, right . . . Benjamin: You wouldn’t believe the number of people who — Ronnie: They have Asian-American studies in Madison, Wisconsin?

Since when? Benjamin: Since the last Third World Unity hunger strike. (Pause) Why

do you look so surprised? We’re down. Ronnie: I dunno. It just never occurred to me, the idea of Asian students

in the Midwest going on a hunger strike. Benjamin: Well, a lot of them had midterms that week, so they fasted

in shifts. (Pause) The administration never fi gured it out. The Asian students put that “They all look alike” stereotype to good use.

Ronnie: OK, so they got Asian-American studies. That still doesn’t explain —

hwang / trying to find chinatown 861

Benjamin: What? Ronnie: Well . . . what you were doing taking it? Benjamin: Just like everyone else. I wanted to explore my roots. And, you

know, the history of oppression which is my legacy. After a lifetime of assimilation, I wanted to fi nd out who I really am.

(Pause.)

Ronnie: And did you? Benjamin: Sure. I learned to take pride in my ancestors who built the

railroads, my Popo who would make me a hot bowl of jok with thousand-day-old eggs when the white kids chased me home yelling, “Gook! Chink! Slant-eyes!”

Ronnie: OK, OK, that’s enough! Benjamin: Painful to listen to, isn’t it? Ronnie: I don’t know what kind of bullshit ethnic studies program

they’re running over in Wuss-consin, but did they bother to teach you that in order to fi nd your Asian “roots,” it’s a good idea to fi rst be Asian?

(Pause.)

Benjamin: Are you speaking metaphorically? Ronnie: No! Literally! Look at your skin! Benjamin: You know, it’s very stereotypical to think that all Asian skin

tones conform to a single hue. Ronnie: You’re white! Is this some kind of redneck joke or something?

Am I the fi rst person in the world to tell you this? Benjamin: Oh! Oh! Oh! Ronnie: I know real Asians are scarce in the Midwest, but . . . Jesus! Benjamin: No, of course, I . . . I see where your misunderstanding arises. Ronnie: Yeah. It’s called, “You white.” Benjamin: It’s just that — in my hometown of Tribune, Kansas, and then

at school — see, everyone knows me — so this sort of thing never comes up. (He offers his hand) Benjamin Wong. I forget that a society wedded to racial constructs constantly forces me to explain my very existence.

Ronnie: Ronnie Chang. Otherwise known as “The Bow Man.” Benjamin: You see, I was adopted by Chinese-American parents at birth.

So, clearly, I’m an Asian-American — Ronnie: Even though you’re blond and blue-eyed. Benjamin: Well, you can’t judge my race by my genetic heritage alone. Ronnie: If genes don’t determine race, what does? Benjamin: Perhaps you’d prefer that I continue in denial, masquerading

as a white man? Ronnie: You can’t just wake up and say, “Gee, I feel black today.” Benjamin: Brother, I’m just trying to fi nd what you’ve already got. Ronnie: What do I got?

862 plays for further reading

Benjamin: A home. With your people. Picketing with the laundry work- ers. Taking refuge from the daily slights against your masculinity in the noble image of Gwan Gung.

Ronnie: Gwan who? Benjamin: C’mon — the Chinese god of warriors and — what do you take

me for? There’re altars to him up all over the community. Ronnie: I dunno what community you’re talking about, but it’s sure as

hell not mine.

(Pause.)

Benjamin: What do you mean? Ronnie: I mean, if you wanna call Chinatown your community, OK,

knock yourself out, learn to use chopsticks, big deal. Go ahead, try and fi nd your “roots” in some dim sum parlor with headless ducks hanging in the window. Those places don’t tell you a thing about who I am.

Benjamin: Oh, I get it. Ronnie: You get what? Benjamin: You’re one of those self-hating, assimilated Chinese-Americans,

aren’t you? Ronnie: Oh, Jesus. Benjamin: You probably call yourself “Oriental,” huh? Look, maybe I can

help you. I have some books I can — Ronnie: Hey, I read all those Asian identity books when you were still

slathering on industrial-strength sunblock. (Pause) Sure, I’m Chi- nese. But folks like you act like that means something. Like, all of a sudden, you know who I am. You think identity’s that simple? That you can wrap it all up in a neat package and say, “I have ethnicity, therefore I am”? All you fucking ethnic fundamentalists. Always set- tling for easy answers. You say you’re looking for identity, but you can’t begin to face the real mysteries of the search. So instead, you go skin-deep, and call it a day. (Pause. He turns away from Benjamin and starts to play his violin — slow and bluesy.)

Benjamin: So what are you? “Just a human being”? That’s like saying you have no identity. If you asked me to describe my dog, I’d say more than, “He’s just a dog.”

Ronnie: What — you think if I deny the importance of my race, I’m nobody? There’re worlds out there, worlds you haven’t even begun to understand. Open your eyes. Hear with your ears.

(Ronnie holds his violin at chest level, but does not attempt to play during the following monologue. As he speaks, rock and jazz violin tracks fade in and out over the house speakers, bringing to life the styles of music he describes.)

I concede — it was called a fi ddle long ago — but that was even before the birth of jazz. When the hollering in the fi elds, the rank injus- tice of human bondage, the struggle of God’s children against the

hwang / trying to find chinatown 863

plagues of the devil’s white man, when all these boiled up into that bittersweet brew, called by later generations, the blues. That’s when fi ddlers like Son Sims held their chin rests at their chests, and sawed away like the hillbillies still do today. And with the com- ing of ragtime appeared the pioneer Stuff Smith, who sang as he stroked the catgut, with his raspy, Louis Armstrong–voice — gruff and sweet like the timber of horsehair riding south below the fi n- gerboard — and who fi nally sailed for Europe to fi nd ears that would hear. Europe — where Stephane Grappelli initiated a magical French violin, to be passed from generation to generation — fi rst he, to Jean- Luc Ponty, then Ponty to Didier Lockwood. Listening to Grappelli play “A Nightingale Sang in Berkeley Square” is to understand not only the song of birds, but also how they learn to fl y, fall in love on the wing, and fi nally falter one day, to wait for darkness beneath a London street lamp. And Ponty — he showed how the modern violin man can accompany the shadow of his own lead lines, which cas- cade, one over another, into some nether world beyond the range of human hearing. Joe Venuti. Noel Pointer. Sven Asmussen. Even the Kronos Quartet, with their arrangement of “Purple Haze.” Now, tell me, could any legacy be more rich, more crowded with mythology and heroes to inspire pride? What can I say if the banging of a gong or the clinking of a pickax on the Transcontinental Railroad fails to move me even as much as one note, played through a violin MIDI controller by Michael Urbaniak? (He puts his violin to his chin, begins to play a jazz composition of his own invention) Does it have to sound like Chinese opera before people like you decide I know who I am?

(Benjamin stands for a long moment, listening to Ronnie play. Then, he drops his dollar into the case, turns and exits right. Ronnie continues to play a long moment. Then Benjamin enters downstage left, illuminated in his own spotlight. He sits on the fl oor of the stage, his feet dangling off the lip. As he speaks, Ronnie continues playing his tune, which becomes underscoring for Benjamin’s monologue. As the music continues, does it slowly begin to refl ect the infl uence of Chinese music?)

Benjamin: When I fi nally found Doyers Street, I scanned the buildings for Number 13. Walking down an alley where the scent of freshly steamed char siu bao lingered in the air, I felt immediately that I had entered a world where all things were fi nally familiar. (Pause) An old woman bumped me with her shopping bag — screaming to her friend in Cantonese, though they walked no more than a few inches apart. Another man — shouting to a vendor in Sze-Yup. A youth, in white undershirt, perhaps a recent newcomer, bargain- ing with a grocer in Hokkien. I walked through this ocean of dia- lects, breathing in the richness with deep gulps, exhilarated by the energy this symphony brought to my step. And when I fi nally saw the number 13, I nearly wept at my good fortune. An old tenement,

864 plays for further reading

paint peeling, inside walls no doubt thick with a century of grease and broken dreams — and yet, to me, a temple — the house where my father was born. I suddenly saw it all: Gung Gung, coming home from his sixteen-hour days pressing shirts he could never afford to own, bring- ing with him candies for my father, each sweet wrapped in the hope of a better life. When my father left the ghetto, he swore he would never return. But he had, this day, in the thoughts and memories of his son, just six months after his death. And as I sat on the stoop, I pulled a hua-moi° from my pocket, sucked on it, and felt his spirit returning. To this place where his ghost, and the dutiful hearts of all his descendants, would always call home. (He listens for a long moment) And I felt an ache in my heart for all those lost souls, denied this most important of revelations: to know who they truly are.

(Benjamin sucks his salted plum and listens to the sounds around him. Ron- nie con tinues to play. The two remain oblivious of one another. Lights fade slowly to black.)

End of play

hua-moi: A dry, sour plum that is a Cantonese specialty food.

Rodeo

Jane Martin is a pseudonym. The author’s identity is known only to a handful of administrators at the Actors Theatre of Louisville who handle permissions for productions and reprints of the play. Rodeo is one of eleven monologues in Talking With. . . . Martin has also published other plays conveniently grouped in two volumes: Jane Martin: Collected Plays 1980–1995 (1996) and Jane Martin: Collected Plays 1996–2001 (2001). Although only one character appears in Rodeo, the monologue is sur- prisingly moving as she describes what the rodeo once was, how it has changed, and what it means to her. At fi rst glance the subject matter may not seem very promising for drama, but the character’s energy, forth- rightness, and colorful language transform seemingly trivial details into signifi cant meanings.

Jane Martin

Rodeo 1981

A young woman in her late twenties sits working on a piece of tack. Beside her is a Lone Star beer in the can. As the lights come up we hear the last verse of a Tanya Tucker song or some other female country- western vocalist. She is wearing old worn jeans and boots plus a long- sleeved workshirt with the sleeves rolled up. She works until the song is over and then speaks.

martin / rodeo 865

Big Eight: Shoot — Rodeo’s just goin’ to hell in a handbasket. Rodeo used to be somethin’. I loved it. I did. Once Daddy an’ a bunch of ’em was foolin’ around with some old bronc over to our place and this ol’ red nose named Cinch got bucked off and my Daddy hooted and said he had him a nine-year-old girl, namely me, wouldn’t have no damn trouble cowboyin’ that horse. Well, he put me on up there, stuck that ridin’ rein in my hand, gimme a kiss, and said, “Now there’s only one thing t’ remember Honey Love, if ya fall off you jest don’t come home.” Well I stayed up. You gotta stay on a bronc eight seconds. Otherwise the ride don’t count. So from that day on my daddy called me Big Eight. Heck! That’s all the name I got anymore . . . Big Eight.

Used to be fer cowboys, the rodeo did. Do it in some open fi eld, folks would pull their cars and pick-ups round it, sit on the hoods, some ranch hand’d bulldog him some rank steer and everybody’d wave their hats and call him by name. Ride us some buckin’ stock, rope a few calves, git throwed off a bull, and then we’d jest git us to a bar and tell each other lies about how good we were.

Used to be a family thing. Wooly Billy Tilson and Tammy Lee had them fi ve kids on the circuit. Three boys, two girls and Wooly and Tammy. Wasn’t no two-beer rodeo in Oklahoma didn’t have a Tilson entered. Used to call the oldest girl Tits. Tits Tilson. Never seen a girl that top-heavy could ride so well. Said she only fell off when the gravity got her. Cowboys used to say if she landed face down you could plant two young trees in the holes she’d leave. Ha! Tits Tilson.

Used to be people came to a rodeo had a horse of their own back home. Farm people, ranch people — lord, they knew what they were lookin’ at. Knew a good ride from a bad ride, knew hard from easy. You broke some bones er spent the day eatin’ dirt, at least ya got appreciated.

Now they bought the rodeo. Them. Coca-Cola, Pepsi Cola, Marl- boro damn cigarettes. You know the ones I mean. Them. Hire some New York faggot t’ sit on some ol’ stuffed horse in front of a sagebrush photo n’ smoke that junk. Hell, tobacco wasn’t made to smoke, honey, it was made to chew. Lord wanted ya fi lled up with smoke he would’ve set ya on fi re. Damn it gets me!

There’s some guy in a banker’s suit runs the rodeo now. Got him a pinky ring and a digital watch, honey. Told us we oughta have a watchamacallit, choriographus or somethin’, some ol’ ballbuster used to be with the Ice damn Capades. Wants us to ride around dressed up like Mickey Mouse, Pluto, crap like that. Told me I had to haul my butt through the barrel race done up like Minnie damn Mouse in a tu-tu. Huh uh, honey! Them people is so screwed-up they probably eat what they run over in the road.

Listen, they got the clowns wearin’ Astronaut suits! I ain’t lyin’. You know what a rodeo clown does! You go down, fall off

866 plays for further reading

whatever — the clown runs in front of the bull so’s ya don’t git stomped. Pin-stripes, he got ’em in space suits tellin’ jokes on a microphone. First horse see ’em, done up like the Star Wars went crazy. Best buckin’ horse on the circuit, name of Piss ’N’ Vinegar, took one look at them clowns, had him a heart attack and died. Cow- boy was ridin’ him got hisself squashed. Twelve hundred pounds of coronary arrest jes fell right through ’em. Blam! Vio con dios. Crowd thought that was funnier than the astronauts. I swear it won’t be long before they’re strappin’ ice-skates on the ponies. Big crowds now. Ain’t hardly no ranch people, no farm people, nobody I know. Buncha disco babies and dee-vorce lawyers — designer jeans and day- glo Stetsons. Hell, the whole bunch of ’em wears French perfume. Oh it smells like money now! Got it on the cable T and V — hey, you know what, when ya rodeo yer just bound to kick yerself up some dust — well now, seems like that fogs up the ol’ TV camera, so they told us a while back that from now on we was gonna ride on some

Rodeo: Margo Martindale in Rodeo, during the Sixth Annual Humana Festival of New American Plays, at the Actors Theatre of Louisville, Kentucky, in 1982. Katherine Wisniewski, photog- rapher. Courtesy of the Actors Theatre of Louisville.

the reprimand 867

new stuff called Astro-dirt. Dust free. Artifi cial damn dirt, honey. Lord have mercy.

Banker Suit called me in the other day said “Lurlene . . . ” “Hold it,” I said, “Who’s this Lurlene? Round here they call me Big Eight.” “Well, Big Eight,” he said, “My name’s Wallace.” “Well that’s a real surprise t’ me,” I said, “Cause aroun’ here everybody jes calls you Dumb-ass.” My, he laughed real big, slapped his big ol’ desk, an’ then he said I wasn’t suitable for the rodeo no more. Said they was lookin’ fer another type, somethin’ a little more in the showgirl line, like the Dallas Cowgirls maybe. Said the ridin’ and ropin’ wasn’t the thing no more. Talked on about fl oats, costumes, dancin’ choreog-aphy. If I was a man I woulda pissed on his shoe. Said he’d give me a lifetime pass though. Said I could come to his rodeo any time I wanted.

Rodeo used to be people ridin’ horses for the pleasure of people who rode horses — made you feel good about what you could do. Rodeo wasn’t worth no money to nobody. Money didn’t have noth- ing to do with it! Used to be seven Tilsons riding in the rodeo. Wouldn’t none of ’em dress up like Donald damn Duck so they quit. That there’s the law of gravity!

There’s a bunch of assholes in this country sneak around until they see ya havin’ fun and then they buy the fun and start in sellin’ it. See, they fi gure if ya love it, they can sell it. Well you look out, honey! They want to make them a dollar out of what you love. Dress you up like Minnie Mouse. Sell your rodeo. Turn yer pleasure into Ice damn Capades. You hear what I’m sayin’? You’re jus’ merchan- dise to them, sweetie. You’re jus’ merchandise to them.

Blackout.

The Reprimand

Writer and director Jane Anderson started her career as an actor. She left college at the age of nineteen to pursue acting and was cast in the David Mamet hit play Sexual Perversity in Chicago. The experi- ence familiarized Anderson with script- writing, and eventually she founded a writing group called New York Writers’ Block. She later wrote and performed in a number of one-woman comedic plays, whose success afforded her the oppor- tunity to write for the television sitcoms The Facts of Life and The Wonder Years.

“When you create drama,” Jane Anderson writes, “you look for the best conflict.” Photo by permission of Jilly Wendell.

868 plays for further reading

In 1986, Anderson wrote the play Defying Gravity, a composite of monologues about the space shuttle Challenger explosion. Her first screenplay, The Positively True Adventures of the Alleged Texas Cheerleader- Murdering Mom, was a satirical look at the true story of a Texas mother who tried to hire a contract killer to murder her daughter’s rival (and her mother) for the junior high school cheerleading squad. The HBO movie starred Holly Hunter and gave Anderson instant notoriety as a screen- writer. She has written the screenplays for a number of movies since, in- cluding The Baby Dance, starring Jody Foster, and When Billie Beat Bobby, the story of tennis champion Billie Jean King beating an aging Bobby Riggs. In 2009 she was nominated for the Writer’s Guild of America Award for Best Dramatic Series for her writing on the second season of the television series Mad Men. The Reprimand was one of five “phone plays” that premiered in Feb- ruary 2000 at the annual Humana Festival of New American Plays held at Actors Theatre in Louisville, Kentucky. The phone call is a traditional stage convention that consists of an actor providing one side of a conver- sation, but for the Humana Festival performances, the actors conversed offstage and the audience heard both sides of the three-minute conversa- tion. In The Reprimand, the overheard conversation reveals a complicated power struggle between two women.

Jane Anderson (b. 1954)

The Reprimand 2000

characters

Rhona Mim

Rhona: . . . we need to talk about what you did in the meeting this morning.

Mim: My God, what? Rhona: That reference you made about my weight. Mim: What reference? Rhona: When we came into the room and Jim was making the introduc-

tions, you said, “Oh Rhona, why don’t you take the bigger chair.” Mim: But that was — I thought since this was your project that you

should sit in the better chair. Rhona: But you didn’t say better, you said bigger. Mim: I did? Honest to God, that isn’t what I meant. I’m so sorry if it hurt

your feelings.

anderson / the reprimand 869

Rhona: You didn’t hurt my feelings. This has nothing to do with my feel- ings. What concerns me — and concerns Jim by the way — is how this could have undermined the project.

Mim: Jim said something about it? Rhona: Yes. Mim: What did he say? Rhona: He thought your comment was inappropriate. Mim: Really? How? I was talking about a chair. Rhona: Mim, do you honestly think anyone in that room was really lis-

tening to what I had to say after you made that comment? Mim: I thought they were very interested in what you had to say. Rhona: Honey, there was a reason why Dick and Danny asked you all the

follow-up questions. Mim: But that’s because I hadn’t said anything up to that point. Look,

I’m a little confused about Jim’s reaction, because after the meeting he said he liked what I did with the follow-up.

Rhona: He should acknowledge what you do. And I know the reason why he’s finally said something is because I’ve been telling him that you deserve more credit.

Mim: Oh, thank you. But I think Jim already respects what I do. Rhona: He should respect you. But from what I’ve observed, I

think — because you’re an attractive woman — that he still uses you for window dressing. Especially when you’re working with me. You know what I’m saying?

Mim: Well, if that’s the case, Jim is a jerk. Rhona: I know that. And I know you know that. But I think you still

have a lot of anger about the situation and sometimes it really shows.

Mim: I don’t mean it to show. Rhona: I know that. Look, I consider you — regardless of what Jim

thinks — I think you’re really talented and I really love working with you.

Mim: And I enjoy working with you. Rhona: Thank you. And that’s why I want to keep things clear between

us. Especially when we’re working for men like Jim. Mim: No, I agree, absolutely. Rhona: (To someone off-phone.) Tell him I’ll be right there. (Back to Mim.)

Mim, sorry — I have Danny on the phone. Mim: Oh — do you want to conference me in? Rhona: I can handle it, but thank you. Mim, I’m so glad we had this

talk. Mim: Well, thank you for being so honest with me. Rhona: And thank you for hearing me. I really appreciate it. Let’s talk

later? Mim: Sure. (Rhona hangs up. A beat.) (Mumbling.) Fat pig. (Hangs up.)

870 plays for further reading

This selection has been omitted intentionally from your eBook due to electronic permissions issues. Regrettably, we cannot make this piece available to you in a digital format. You may be able to find a copy at your local or school library.

Text continues on page 168.

904 plays for further reading

No Child . . .

Raised in the multicultural Lower East Side of Manhattan, Nilaja Sun has always been at home with the energy, variety, and ethnic richness that New York City has to offer. A graduate of Franklin and Marshall College, she has appeared in a number of Thos Robinson/Stringer/Getty Images.

sun / no child . . . 905

New York plays and in television shows such as 30 Rock and Law and Order: SVU. She has worked as a teaching artist in New York City’s Epic Theatre Company’s “Journeys” program, which introduces theater to city students through the study and production of a single play in their school. Written and first produced when she was only twenty-six years old, No Child . . . reflects some of Sun’s experience as a teaching artist and has won a number of prizes, including an Outer Critics Circle Award, an Obie Award, a John Gassner Award, and a San Francisco Bay Area Thea- tre Critics Circle Award. The raucous class depicted in this play is both a challenge and an eye-opener into the comic and chaotic lives of students that Sun takes seriously. She manages to teach — and learn from — an unlikely, unpromising group of kids who take for granted that they will be left behind.

Nilaja Sun (b. 1974)

No Child . . . 2007

notes: This play may be performed with one actor or with as many as sixteen actors. The play takes place in several locations but is best staged in a fluid style with lights and sounds suggesting scene changes.

characters

(In order of appearance:) Janitor Baron, eighties, Narrator Ms. Sun, thirties, teaching artist Ms. Tam, twenties, teacher Coca, sixteen, student Jerome, eighteen, student Brian, sixteen, student Shondrika, sixteen, student Xiomara, sixteen, student Jose, seventeen, student Chris, fifteen, student Mrs. Kennedy, school principal Security Guard, any age Phillip, sixteen, student Mrs. Projensky, substitute teacher Mr. Johnson, Teacher Doña Guzman, seventies, grandmother to Jose Guzman

time: Now

place: New York

906 plays for further reading

Scene 1

School. Morning. Janitor enters, mopping floor as he sings.

Janitor: Trouble in mind. I’m Blue. But I won’t be blue always. Cuz the sun’s gonna shine In my back door someday. (To audience.) Hear that? Silence. Beautiful silence, pure silence. The kind of silence

that only comes from spending years in the back woods. We ain’t in the back woods (though I’m thinking ’bout retirin’ there). It’s 8:04 A.M. — five minutes before the start of the day. And, we on the sec- ond floor of Malcolm X High School in the Bronx, U.S.A. Right over there is my Janitor’s closet, just right of the girls’ bathroom where the smell of makeup, hair pomade, and gossip fills the air in the morn- ing light. There’s Mrs. Kennedy’s room — she the principal. For sev- enteen years, been leading this group of delinquents — Oh I’m sorry, academically and emotionally challenged youth. She got a lot to work with! Seventeen feet below my very own, lay one hundred-thousand- dollar worth of a security system. This include two metal-detecting machines, seven metal-detecting wands, five school guards, and three N.Y.C. police officers. All armed. Guess all we missing is a bomb- sniffing dog. Right over there’s Ms. Tam’s class, she one of them new teachers. Worked as an associate in the biggest investment firm in New York then coming home from a long dreary day at work, read an ad on the subway — y’all know the ones that offer you a lifetime of glorious purpose and meaning if you just become a New York City teacher. Uh-huh — the devil’s lair on the IRT. I adore Ms. Tam, she kind, docile, but I don’t think she know what she got herself into. See, I been working here since 1958 and I done seen some teachers come and go, I said I seen teachers come and go. Ah! One more time for good luck, I seen teachers come and go and I do believe it is one of the hardest jobs in the whole wide world. Shoot, I don’t gotta tell you that, y’all look like smart folk! The most underpaid, underappreciated, underpaid job in this crazy universe. But for some miracle, every year God creates people that grow up knowing that’s what they gonna do for the rest of they life. God, ain’t He sometin’! Now, you might say to me, “Jackson Baron Copeford the Third. Boy, what you doin’ up dere on dat stage? You ain’t no actor.” That I know and neither are these kids you about to meet. (He clears his throat.) What you about to see is a story about a play within a play within a play. And a teacher (or as she likes to call herself — a teaching artist — just so as people know she do somethin’ else on her free time). The kids call her Ms. Sun and in two minutes from now she gonna walk up them stairs towards the jani- tor’s room and stop right at Ms. Tam’s class. She gonna be something

sun / no child . . . 907

they done never seen before. Now I know what you’re thinking: “Oh, Baron. I know about the public schools. I watch Eyewitness News.” What I got to say to that? HUSH! You don’t know unless you been in the schools on a day-to-day basis. HUSH! You don’t know unless you been a teacher, administrator, student, or custodial staff. HUSH! Cuz you could learn a little sometin’. Here’s lesson number one: Taking the 6 train, in eighteen minutes, you can go from Fifty-ninth Street, one of the richest congressional districts in the nation, all the way up to Brook Ave. in the Bronx, where Malcolm X High is, the poorest congressional district in the nation. In only eighteen minutes. HUSH!

Scene 2

Before class.

Ms. Sun (On the phone in the hallway.): Mr. Pulaski! Hi, it’s Nilaja Sun from Bergen Street. 280 Bergen. Apartment four? Hey! Mr. Pulaski, thanks for being so patient, I know how late my rent is . . . By the way, how’s your wife Margaret? Cool. And your son Josh? Long Island University. That’s serious. Oh he’s gonna love it and he’ll be close to home. But yes, I apologize for not getting you last month’s rent on time, but see the IRS put a levy on my bank account and I just can’t retrieve any money from it right now. Well, it should be cleared by Tuesday but the real reason why I called was to say I’m startin’ a new teaching program up here in the Bronx and it’s a six- week-long workshop and they’re paying me exactly what I owe you so . . . what’s that? Theater. I’m teaching theater. A play actually. It’s called Our Country’s Good . . . Have you heard of it? Well it’s about a group of convicts that put on a play . . . So the kids are actually gonna be doing a play within a play within . . . What’s that? Ah, yes, kids today need more discipline and less self-expression. Less “lula- lula” and more daily structure like Catholic school during Pope Pious the Twelfth. On the flip side of the matter, having gone to Catholic school for thirteen years, I didn’t even know I was black until college. (She roars her laughter.) Sir? Sir, are you still there? (Bell rings.) I gotta go teach, sir. Are we cool with getting you that money by the twenty-fifth? How about the thirtieth? Thirty-first? I know, don’t push it. You rock. Yes, I’m still an actor. No, not in anything right now. But soon. Yes, sir, happy Lent to you too, sir.

Scene 3

Classroom.

Ms. Tam: Ms. Sun? Come on in. I’m Cindy Tam and I’m so excited to have your program here in our English class. Sorry we weren’t able to meet the last four times you set up a planning meeting but so

908 plays for further reading

much has been going on in my life. Is it true you’ve been a teaching artist for seven years? In New York City? Wow. That’s amazing. I’m a new teacher. They don’t know that. It’s a challenge. The kids are really spirited. Kaswan, where are you going? Well, we’re going to be starting in a few minutes and I would strongly suggest you not leave. (Listens.) OK, but be back in five minutes, um, Veronica, stop hitting Chris and calling him a motherfucker. I’m sorry, please stop hitting Chris and calling him a motherfucker. Thanks, Veronica. Sorry, like I said, very excited you’re here. Where is everyone? The kids usually come in twenty to thirty minutes late because it’s so early. I know it’s only a forty-one-minute class but I’ve been installing harsher penal- ties for anyone who comes in after fifteen. After five? OK, we’ll try that. Well, what we can do today is start the program in ten minutes and wait for the bulk of them to come in, eat their breakfast, and . . . You wanna start now? But there are only seven kids here. The rest of them will ask what’s going on and what am I gonna say to each late student? (Scared out of her wits.) OK. Then, we’ll start. Now. Class! Please welcome Ms. Sun. She’s going to be teaching you a play, and teaching you about acting, and how to act and we’re gonna do a play and it’s gonna be fun.

Coca: Fun? This is stupid already. I don’t wanna act. I wanna do vocabulary.

Jerome: Vocab? Hello, Ms. Sun. Thank you for starting the class on time. Since we usually be the only ones on time.

Brian: Niggah, you ain’t never on time. Jerome: Shut up, bitch motherfucker. Ms. Tam: Jerome, Brian? What did I tell you about the offensive

language? Jerome: Yo, yo. We know. Pork-fried rice wonton coming up. Ms. Tam: I heard that, Jerome. Jerome: Sorry, Ms. Tam. Brian: (Accent.) Solly, Ms. Tam. Ms. Tam: Go on, Ms. Sun! (Beat.) Ms. Sun: Ah, well, I’m Ms. Sun and I will be with you all for the next

six weeks and by the end of those glorious weeks, you would have read a play, analyzed the play, been cast in it, rehearsed it and lastly performed it. It’s gonna be a whirlwind spectacle that I want you to start inviting your parents and friends and loved ones to come see . . . What’s that? No, it’s not Raisin in the Sun . . . No, not West Side Story. It’s a play called Our Country’s Good.

Coca: Ew. This is some patrionism? Ms. Sun: Patriotism? No. It’s a play based in Australia in 1788 and it’s

written by a woman named Timberlake Wertenbaker. Brian: Yo, Justin Timberlake done wrote himself a play. “Gonna rock yo’

body. Today. Dance with me.” Ms. Tam: Brian, focus?

sun / no child . . . 909

Brian: “People say she a gold digga, but she don’t mess with no broke niggas.”

Ms. Tam: Brian!!! Put down the Red Bull. Brian: Beef-fried rice. Ms. Tam: Brian. Brian: Vegetable-fried rice. Jerome: Ay yo! This some white shit. Ain’t this illegal to teach this white

shit no mo’? Ms. Sun: Are you done? Jerome: Huh? Ms. Sun: Are you done? Jerome: What? Ms. Sun: With your spiel? With your little spiel? Jerome: Yeah. Ms. Sun: Because I’m trying to tell you what the play is about and I can’t

when you keep on interrupting. Jerome: Oh my bad. Damn. She got attitude. I like that. Shondrika: I don’t. What’s this play about anyway? Ms. Sun: Well, what’s your name? Shondrika: Shondrika. Ms. Sun: Well, Shondrika . . . Shondrika: Shondrika! Ms. Sun: Shondrika? Shondrika: Shondrika!!! Ms. Sun: Shondrika!!! Shondrika: Close enough. Ms. Sun: Ah-hah . . . Our Country’s Good is about a group of convicts. Xiomara: What are convicts? Jerome: Jailbirds, you dumb in a can. Get it? (Laugh/clap.) Dominican!

Dominican! Ms. Sun: . . . And they put on a play called The Recruiting Officer. You’ll be

reading . . . Coca: We gotta read? Jerome: Aw hell no. Ms. Tam: Yes, you’ll be reading, but you’re also gonna be creating a

community. Jerome: Ay yo! Last time I created a community the cops came. (Latecomers

enter.) Ms. Tam: Kaswan, Jose, Jennifer, Malika, Talifa, Poughkeepsie, come on

in, you’re late. What’s your excuse this time, Jose? Jose: Sorry, Miss. But that faggot Mr. Smith was yelling at us to stop run-

ning to class. Fucking faggot. Ms. Sun: ENOUGH! Jose: Who? Who this? Ms. Sun: Hi. I’m Ms. Sun. Take your seats now. And as of today and for the

next six weeks, when I’m in this classroom, you will not be using the

910 plays for further reading

word faggot or bitch or nigga or motherfucker or motherfuckerniggabitchfaggot. Anymore. Dominicans shall not be called and will not call each other dumb in a cans or platanos.

Coca: Ah, y pero quien e heta? Esa prieta? Ms. Sun: La prieta soy yo, senorita. (Coca is speechless.) Brian: Shwimp fwy why! Shwimp fwy why! Ms. Sun: We will respect our teacher’s ethnicity. Brian: Shwimp fwy why??? (No one else laughs.) Ms. Sun: Ladies will not call each other heifers or hos. Shondrika: Shoot! That’s what I’m talkin’ about. Ms. Sun: We will start class on time. We will eat our breakfast before-

hand. And from now on we are nothing but thespians. Xiomara: Lesbians? I ain’t no Rosie O’Donnell. Ms. Sun: No, no! Thespian! It means actor, citizen, lover of all things

great. Xiomara: I love that hard cash that bling-bling. Ms. Sun: Say it with me, class, thespian. Xiomara: (Bored.) Thespian. Ms. Sun: Thespian! Jerome: (Bored.) Thespian. Ms. Sun: Thespian! Coca: Thespian, already, damn! Ms. Sun: Now, let’s get up and form a circle. Shondrika: Get up? Aw hell no! Jose: Miss, we not supposed to do exercises this early. Ms. Tam: Come on guys, stand up. Stand up. Coca: Miss, this is mad boring. Ms. Sun: Boredom, my love, usually comes from boring people. Brian: OOOOOOOOOOOOH! Coca: (Dissed.) What’s that supposed to mean? Brian: That’s O.D., yo! Oh she played you, yo! Jerome: Ay yo, shut yo trap! Miss, I could be the lovable and charming

leading man that gets all the honies’ numbers? Ms. Sun: We’ll see. Jerome: Miss, can I get your number? (Beat.) Nah, I’m just playing. Let’s

do this, yo. Get up. (They get up.) Ms. Sun: OK, thank you . . . Jerome: Jerome! Ms. Sun: Jerome. Great circle! Let’s take a deep breath in and out. In . . . Brian: Ohm! Nah! I’m just playing. Keep going. Keep going. Keep going.

Keep going. Ms. Sun: . . . and out . . . In . . . Coca: I’m hungry. What time it is? Ms. Sun: . . . and out . . . stretch with me, will you? Now, who here has ever

seen a play? (No one raises their hand . . . but Chris.) Really? Which show? Chris: Star Wars. It was a live reenactment.

sun / no child . . . 911

Ms. Sun: Was it in a theater? Chris: Yeah. We all wore outfits and costumes and acted alongside the

movie. Jerome: Damn, Chris, you like SupaDupaJamaicanNerdNegro. Chris: And for that, I zap you. (To Ms. Sun.) You really gonna make us act

onstage? Ms. Sun: Yup. Chris: I’m scared. Ms. Sun: Yeah, well guess what? Before I walked in here, even with all my

acting and teaching experience, I was scared and nervous too, but you get over it once you get a feel for the audience and you see all of your parents and your friends and your teachers smiling at you. Did you guys know that public speaking is the number one fear for all humans — even greater than death?

Jerome: What? They ain’t never lived in the hood. Jose: But, Miss, you should be scared of this class, cuz we supposed to be

the worst class in the school. Ms. Tam: It’s true. They are. Ms. Sun: Really, well, in the past thirty-five minutes, I’ve met some pretty

amazing young adults, thinkers, debaters, thespians . . . Brian: Lesbians. Ms. Sun: Keep breathing! (Bell rings.) Oh no, listen, read scenes one

through fi ve for the next time. Thanks guys, you are great. Ms. Tam: Wow. That was amazing. You’re really great with the kids.

(Beat.) Just to let you know. They’re probably not going to read the play and they are probably going to lose the handout and probably start to cut your class and their parents probably won’t come to the show. Probably. OK, bye.

Ms. Sun: Bye. (She watches her leave.) For all our sake, Ms. Tam, I hope you’re probably wrong.

Scene 4

School hallway.

Mrs. Kennedy: Ms. Sun, hi, Mrs. Kennedy — the principal, so glad to meet you. Sorry about the attendance, Ms. Tam is a new teacher and we need all these kids to pass five Regents exams in the next two months. The pressure’s on. Let me know when you’ll be need- ing the auditorium. There are four schools in this building and it’s like fighting diseased lions to book a night in it. But, you’re priority. We’ve given you one of the most challenging classes. But I believe in them. I believe in you. Tyesha, can I have a word? (She walks off. Secu- rity guard stops Sun.)

Security Guard: Y’ave pass ta leave. I said do you have a pass to leave? Oh, you a teaching artist? Oh. Cuz you look like one a them. Well, excuse

912 plays for further reading

me for livin’! (To other guards.) Just trying to do mi job. I don’t know the difference ’tween the teachers, teaching artists, parents, Board of Ed people, and these animals comin’ in here. I don’ know da differ- ence. Just tryin’ to do mi job. (To student.) Girl, girl! Whatcha t’ink dis is? You can’t go in wifoot goin’ tru da detector. I don care if you just walked out and now you come back in. Rules are rules. Put ya bag in and yo wallet and your selfish phone.

(Beep.) Go back. Ya belt. (Beep.) Go back. Ya earrings. (Beep.) Go back. Ya shoes. Don’t sass me! (Beep.) Go back. Ya hair . . . t’ings. (Beep.) Go back. Ya jewelry. Oh, oh I don’ have time for your atti-

tude. Open your arms, spread your legs. Oh, oh I don’ care about your science class. Should know betta’ than to just waltz in ’ere ten minutes ’fore class. Got ta give it one whole hour. Lemme see yo I.D. Don’ have? Can’t come in. Excuse?!!! What ya name is? Shondrika Jones! I don’ care about ya Regents. Go, Go, Go back home. Next time don’ bring all dat bling and don’ bring all dat belt and don’ bring all dat sass. Who ya t’ink ya is? The mayor of New York City? Slut! (To another student.) Boy, boy, don’t you pass me! (Light shift.)

Janitor: (To audience.) Your tax dollars at work! As Ms. Sun makes her way back home on the train, she thinks to herself.

Scene 5

Subway car.

Ms. Sun: What will these six weeks bring? How will I persuade them to act onstage? (Beat.) Why did I choose a play about convicts? These kids aren’t convicts. The kids in Rikers are convicts. These kids are just in tenth grade. They’ve got the world telling them they are going to end up in jail. Why would I choose a play about convicts? Why couldn’t I choose a play about kings and queens in Africa or the tri- umphs of the Taino Indian? This totally wouldn’t jive if I were white and trying to do this. How dare I! Why would I choose to do a play about convicts?

Scene 6

Classroom.

Jerome: Because we treated like convicts every day. Ms. Tam: Jerome, raise your hand. Jerome: (Raises hand.) We treated like convicts every day. Ms. Sun: How do you mean? Shondrika: First, we wake up to bars on our windows.

sun / no child . . . 913

Coca: Then, our moms and dads. Shondrika: You got a dad? Coca: Yeah . . . so? Then our mom tells us where to go, what to do, and

blah, blah, blah. Jerome: Then, we walk in a uniformed line towards the subways, cram-

ming into a ten-by-forty-foot cell (Laughs.) checking out the fly honies.

Brian: But there ain’t no honies in jail, know what I’m saying? Jerome: Unless, you there long enough, what, what! Ms. Sun: Then, class, you’ll walk into another line at the bodega at the

corner store, to get what? Xiomara: Breakfast. Ms. Sun: And what’s for breakfast? Xiomara: Welch’s Orange and a Debbie snack cake. Ms. Sun: Exactly, then what? Shondrika: Then, we go to school. Chris: . . . Where a cool electronic object points out our every metal flaw. Jerome: Damn, Chris, you read way too much sci-fi! Shondrika: Then we go to a class they tell us we gotta go to, with a teacher

we gotta learn from and a play we gotta do. Ms. Sun: And now that you feel like prisoners . . . open to page twenty-

seven. Phillip says, “Watkin: Man is born free, and everywhere he is in chains.” What don’t people expect from prisoners?

Jose: For them to succeed in life . . . Ms. Sun: But, in the play . . . Coca: They succeed by doing the exact opposite of what people expect. Ms. Sun: And so . . . how does that relate to your lives? Shondrika: Shoot, don’t nobody expect us to do nothing but drop out,

get pregnant, go to jail . . . Brian: . . . or work for the MTA. Xiomara: My mom works for the MTA, nigga. Sorry, Miss . . . NEGRO. Shondrika: So, dese characters is kinda going through what we kinda

going through right now. Ms. Sun: Kinda, yeah. And so . . . Brian . . . Brian: By us doing the show, see what I’m saying, we could prove some-

thing to ourselves and our moms and her dad and Mrs. Kennedy and Ms. Tam that we is the shi . . . shining stars of the school, see what I’m saying?

Ms. Sun: Great, turn to Act One, Scene Six. Can I have a volunteer to read? (Sun looks around.)

Shondrika: Shoot, I’ll read, give me this: “We are talking about crimi- nals, often hardened criminals. They have a habit of vice and crime. Habits . . .”

Jose: Damn, Ma, put some feeling into that! Shondrika: I don’t see you up here reading, Jose. Jose: Cuz you the actress of the class.

914 plays for further reading

Shondrika: (Realizing she is the “actress” of the class.) “Habits are difficult to BREAK! And it can be more than habit, an I-nate — ”

Ms. Tam: (Correcting.) Innate . . . Shondrika: See, Ms. Tam why you had to mess up my flow? Now I gotta

start from the beginning since you done messed up my flow. (Class sighs.)

Brian: Aw. Come on!!! Ms. Tam: Sorry, Shondrika. Shondrika: Right. “Habits are difficult to break. And it can be more than

habit, an innate tendency. Many criminals seem to have been born that way. It is in their nature.” Thank you. (Applause.)

Ms. Sun: Beautiful, Shondrika. And is it in your nature to live like you’re a convict?

Shondrika: No! Ms. Sun: Well, what is in your nature? Coca? Coca: Love. Ms. Sun: What else? Chris? Chris: Success. And real estate. Ms. Sun: Jose, how about you? Jose: Family. Yo. My brother and my buela.o Ms. Sun: Brian? Brian: And above all, money, see what I’m sayin’, know what I mean, see

what I’m saying? Ms. Sun: Yes, Brian, we see what you’re saying . . . and now that you know

that you actually can succeed, let’s get up and stretch! Coca: Get up? Aw — hell no! Jose: This is mad boring. Xiomara: I just ate. I hate this part. Jerome: Can I go to the bathroom? (Bell rings. Lights shift.) Janitor: Not so bad for a second class. Although, due to discipline issues,

attention problems, lateness and resistance to the project on the whole, Ms. Sun is already behind in her teaching lesson. And, the show is only four weeks away. Let’s watch as Ms. Sun enters her third week of classes. The show must go on! (I’m good at this. I am!)

Scene 7

Classroom.

Coca: Miss. Did you hear? Most of our class is gone for the day . . . They went on an important school trip. To the UniverSoul Circus. There’s only five of us here.

Ms. Sun: That’s OK, Coca. We’ll make do with the five of us, including Ms. Tam.

buela: Short for the Spanish word abuela (grandmother).

sun / no child . . . 915

Ms. Tam: (Tired.) Ewww . . . Ms. Sun: So, we will start the rehearsal section for Our Country’s Good. We

have the lovely Xiomara as Mary Brenham. Xiomara: (Deep voice.) I don’t want to be Mary Brenham, I want to be

Liz . . . the pretty one. Ms. Sun: I think I can make that happen. Chris as the Aborigine. Chris: It’s good. Ms. Sun: And Phillip as . . . Phillip as . . . Ralph! Phillip, do me a favor, go

to page thirty-one and read your big monologue about the presence of women on the stage.

Phillip: (Inaudibly.) “In my own small way in just a few hours I have seen something change. I asked some of the convict women to read me some lines, these women who behave often no better than animals.” (Pause.)

Ms. Sun: Good, Phillip, good. Do me a favor and read the first line again but pretend that you are speaking to a group of a hundred people.

Phillip: (Inaudibly.) “In my own small way in just a few hours I have seen something change.”

Ms. Sun: Thank you, Phillip. You can sit down now. (She goes to work on another student.) No, Phillip, get back up. Someone is stealing your brand new . . . what kind of car do you like, Phillip?

Phillip: (Inaudibly.) Mercedes LX 100, Limited edition. Ms. Sun: That! And, you have to, with that line there, stop him from tak-

ing your prized possession. Read it again. Phillip: (Inaudibly.) “In my own small way I have seen something change.” Ms. Sun: Now open your mouth . . . Phillip: (Inaudibly but with mouth wide.) “In my own small way . . .” Ms. Sun: Your tongue, your tongue is a living breathing animal thrash-

ing about in your mouth — it’s not just lying there on the bottom near your jaw — it’s got a life of its own, man. Give it life.

Phillip: (Full on.) “In my own small way I have seen something change!” (The bell rings.)

Ms. Sun: That’s it. That’s it. Right there . . . (She is alone now.) God, I need a Vicodin.

Scene 8

School. Night.

Janitor: It may not look it, but this school has gone through many trans- formations. When I first arrived at its pristine steps, I marveled at the architecture . . . like a castle. Believe it or not, there were nothin’ but Italian kids here and it was called Robert Moses High back then. Humph! See, I was the first Negro janitor here and ooh that made them other custodians upset. But I did my job, kept my courtesies intact. Them janitors all gone now . . . and I’m still here. Then came

916 plays for further reading

the 60s, civil rights, the assassination of President Kennedy right there on the TV, Vietnam. Those were some hot times. Italians started moving out and Blacks and Puerto Ricans moved right on in. Back then, landlords was burning up they own buildings just so as to collect they insurance. And, the Black Panthers had a break- fast program — would say “Brotha Baron! How you gonna fight the MAN today?” I say “With my broom and my grade D ammonia, ya dig?” They’d laugh. They all gone, I’m still here. Then came the 70s when they renamed the school Malcolm X after our great revolution- ary. I say, “Alright, here we go. True change has got to begin now.” Lesson number two: Revolution has its upside and its downside. Try not to stick around for the downside. Eighties brought Reagan, that goddamn crack (’scuse my cussin’) and hip-hop. Ain’t nothing like my Joe King Oliver’s Creole Jazz Band but what you gonna do. And here we come to today. Building fallin’ apart, paint chipping, water damage, kids running around here talking loud like crazy folk, half of them is raising themselves. Let me tell ya, I don’t know nothing about no No Child, Yes Child, Who Child What Child. I do know there’s a hole in the fourth-floor ceiling ain’t been fixed since ’87, all the bathrooms on the third floor, they all broke. Now, who’s accountable for dat? Heck, they even asked me to give up my closet, make it into some science lab class cuz ain’t got no room. I say, “This my sanctuary. You can’t take away my zen. Shoot, I read O maga- zine.” They complied for now. Phew! Everything’s falling apart . . . But these floors, these windows, these chalkboards — they clean . . . why? Cuz I’m still here!

Scene 9

Classroom.

Coca: Miss, did you hear? Someone stole Ms. Tam’s bag and she quit for good. We got some Russian teacher now.

Mrs. Projensky: Quiet Quiet Quiet Quiet Quiet Quiet Quiet. Quiet! Ms. Sun: Miss, Miss, Miss. I’m the teaching artist for . . . Mrs. Projensky: Sit down, you. Shondrika: Aw, snap, she told her. Mrs. Projensky: Sit down, quiet. Quiet, sit down. Ms. Sun: No, I’m the teaching artist for this period. Maybe Miss Tam or

Mrs. Kennedy told you something about me? Jerome: (Shadowboxes.) Ah, hah, you being replaced, Russian lady. Ms. Sun: Jerome, you’re not helping right now. Jerome: What?! You don’t gotta tell me jack. We ain’t got a teacher no

more or haven’t you heard? (He flings a chair.) We are the worst class in school.

Mrs. Projensky: Sit down! Sit down!

sun / no child . . . 917

Ms. Sun: Guys, quiet down and focus. We have a show to do in a few weeks.

Coca: Ooee, I don’t wanna do this no more. It’s stupid. Chris: I still want to do it. Jerome: Shut the fuck up, Chris. Jose: Yo man, she’s right. This shit is mad fucking boring yo. Coca: Yeah! Xiomara: Yeah! Brian: Yeah! Shondrika: Yeah! Coca: Mad boring. Jerome: Fuckin’ stupid. Mrs. Projensky: Quiet! Quiet! Quiet! Ms. Sun: What has gotten into all you? The first two classes were amaz-

ing, you guys were analyzing the play, making parallels to your lives. So, we missed a week when you went to go see, uh . . .

Shondrika: UniverSoul Circus.

No Child . . . Playwright and actor Nilaja Sun performs a scene from her solo show, No Child . . ., in a 2008 Berkeley Repertory Theatre production. Carol Rosegg.

918 plays for further reading

Ms. Sun: Right! But, just because we missed a week doesn’t mean we have to start from square one. Does it? Jerome, Jerome! where are you going?

Mrs. Projensky: Sit down, sit down, you! Sit down! Jerome: I don’t gotta listen to none of y’all. (He flings another chair.) I’m

eighteen years old. Brian: Yeah, and still in the tenth grade, nigga. (Brian flings a chair.) Ms. Sun: Brian! Jerome: I most definitely ain’t gonna do no stupid-ass motha fuckin’

Australian play from the goddamn seventeen-hundreds! Ms. Sun: Fine, Jerome. You don’t wanna be a part of something really

special? There are others here who do. Jerome: Who? Who in here want to do this show, memorize your lines,

look like stupid fucking dicks on the stage for the whole school to laugh at us like they always do anyhow when can’t none of us speak no goddamn English.

Ms. Sun: Jerome, that’s not fair, no one is saying you don’t speak English. You all invited your parents . . .

Coca: Ooee, my moms can’t come to this. She gotta work. Plus the Met- rocard ends at seven.

Xiomara: My mom ain’t never even been to this school. Jerome: That’s what I’m sayin’! Who the fuck wanna do this? Who the

fuck wanna do this? Ms. Sun: I’ll take the vote, Jerome, if you sit down. Everyone sit down. Mrs. Projensky: Sit down! Ms. Sun: Thank you, ma’am. OK, so, who, after all the hard work we’ve done

so far building a team, analyzing the play in your own words (that is not easy, I know), developing self-esteem y coraje as great thespians . . .

Brian: Lesbians. Ms. Sun: Who wants to quit . . . after all this? (She looks around as they all

raise their hands . . . except for Chris.) I see. Chris: Miss. No. I still wanna do the show. Jerome: That’s cuz you gay, Chris. Yo, I’m out! One. Niggas. (Pause. Ms.

Sun is hurt.) Ms. Sun: OK . . . Well . . . Ms.? Mrs. Projensky: Projensky. Ms. Sun: Ms. Projensky. Mrs. Projensky: Projensky! Ms. Sun: Projensky. Mrs. Projensky: Projensky!!! Ms. Sun: Projensky!!! Mrs. Projensky: Is close. Ms. Sun: Do they have any sample Regents to take? Mrs. Projensky: Yes, they do. Ms. Sun: Great. I’ll alert Mrs. Kennedy of your vote. Phillip: (Audibly.) Ms. Sun? Ms. Sun: Yes, Phillip, what is it? Phillip: Can I still do the show? (Beat.)

sun / no child . . . 919

Scene 10

Principal’s office.

Mrs. Kennedy: So they voted you out? Well, Malcolm X Vocational High School did not get an eight-thousand-dollar grant from the Depart- ment of Education of the City of New York for these students to choose democracy now. They will do the show. Because I will tell them so tomorrow. If they do not do the show, each student in 10F will be suspended and not be able to join their friends in their beloved Great Adventures trip in May. The horror. Look, I under- stand that they consider themselves the worst class in school. News flash — They’re not even close. I know that they’ve had five different teachers in the course of seven months. I also can wrap my brain around the fact that seventy-nine percent of those kids in there have been physically, emotionally, and sexually abused in their tender little sixteen-year-old lives. But that does not give them the right to disrespect someone who is stretching them to give them something beautiful. Something challenging. Something Jay-Z and P Diddly only wish they could offer them. Now, I will call all their parents this weekend and notify them of their intolerable behavior as well as invite them to Our Country’s Good. Done. See you next Wednesday, Ms. Sun?

Ms. Sun: Yes, yes. Thanks! Yes! . . . Uh, no, Mrs. Kennedy. You won’t be seeing me next Wednesday. I quit. I came to teaching to touch lives and educate and be this enchanting artist in the classroom and I have done nothing but lose ten pounds in a month and develop a disgusting smoking habit. Those kids in there? They need some- thing much greater than anything I can give them — they need a miracle . . . and they need a miracle like every day. Sometimes, I dream of going to Connecticut and teaching the rich white kids there. All I’d have to battle against is soccer moms, bulimia, and everyone asking me how I wash my hair. But, I chose to teach in my city, this city that raised me . . . and I’m tired, and I’m not even considered a “real” teacher. I don’t know how I would survive as a real teacher. But they do . . . on what, God knows. And, the worst thing, the worst thing is that all those kids in there are me. Brown skin, brown eyes, stuck. I can’t even help my own people. Really revolutionary, huh?

It seems to me that this whole school system, not just here but the whole system is falling apart from under us and then there are these testing and accountability laws that have nothing to do with any real solutions and if we expect to stay some sort of grand nation for the next fifty years, we got another thing coming. Because we’re not teaching these kids how to be leaders. We’re getting them ready for jail! Take off your belt, take off your shoes, go back, go back, go back. We’re totally abandoning these kids and we have been for thirty years and then we get annoyed when they’re running around

920 plays for further reading

in the subway calling themselves bitches and niggas, we get annoyed when their math scores don’t pair up to a five-year-old’s in China, we get annoyed when they don’t graduate in time. It’s because we’ve abandoned them. And, I’m no different, I’m abandoning them too. (Beat.) I just need a break to be an actor, get health insurance, go on auditions, pay the fucking IRS. Sorry. Look, I’m sorry about the big grant from the Department of Ed. but perhaps we could make it up somehow next year. I can’t continue this program any longer, even if it is for our country’s good. Bye! (Light shift.)

Janitor: (Sings.) I’m gonna lay. Lay my head On some lonesome railroad line. Let that 2:19 train —

Scene 11

Outside of school.

Ms. Sun: (Sings.) Ease my troubled mind — Jerome: Ms. Sun? Ms. Sun: Hi. Jerome. Jerome: You singing? (Beat.) We were talking about you in the cafeteria.

Had a power lunch. (He laughs.) Most of us were being assholes . . . sorry . . . bad thespians when we did that to you.

Ms. Sun: You were the leader, do you know that, Jerome? Do you know that we teachers, we have feelings. And we try our best not to break in front of you all?

Jerome: Yeah, I know, my mom tells me that all the time. Ms. Sun: Listen to her, sweetheart, she’s right. (Beat.) Look, the show is

off. I’ll be here next year, and we’ll start again on another more tan- gible play, maybe even Raisin in the Sun. Now, if you’ll excuse me, I have an audition to prepare for. (She turns to leave.)

Jerome: Ms. Sun, “The theater is an expression of civilization . . .” Ms. Sun: What? Jerome: I said, “The theater is an expression of civilization. We belong to

a great country which has spawned great playwrights: Shakespeare, Marlowe, Jonson, and even in our own time, Sheridan. The convicts will be speaking a refined, literate language and expressing sentiments of a delicacy they are not used to. It will remind them that there is more to life than crime, punishment. And we, this colony of a few hundred, will be watching this together. For a few hours we will no longer be despised prisoners and hated gaolers. We will laugh, we may be moved. We may even think a little. Can you suggest something else that would provide such an evening, Watkin?” (Beat.) Thank you.

Ms. Sun: Jerome, I didn’t know . . .

sun / no child . . . 921

Jerome: . . . that I had the part of Second Lieutenant Ralph Clark memo- rized. I do my thang. Guess I won’t be doing it this year though. Shoot, every teacher we have runs away. (Beat.)

Ms. Sun: Listen, Jerome, you tell all your cafeteria buddies in there, OK, to have all their lines memorized from Acts One and Two and be com- pletely focused when I walk into that room next week — that means no talking, no hidden conversations and blurting out random nonsense, no gum, and for crying out loud, no one should be drinking Red Bull.

Jerome: Aight. So you back? Ms. Sun: . . . Yeah, and I’m bad. (She does some Michael Jackson moves.) Jerome: Miss, you really do need an acting job soon. (Light shift.) Janitor: Things are looking up for our little teaching artist. She got a new

lease on life. Got on a payment plan with the IRS. Stopped smoking, ate a good breakfast, even took the early train to school this mornin’.

Scene 12

Classroom.

Coca: Miss, did you hear? We got a new teacher permanently. He’s kinda . . . good!

Mr. Johnson: What do we say when Ms. Sun walks in? Shondrika: Good morning, Ms. Sun. Mr. Johnson: Hat off, Jerome. Jerome: Damn, he got attitude! (Beat.) I like that! Ms. Sun: Wow, wow. You guys are lookin’ really, really good. Mr. Johnson: Alright, let’s get in the formation that we created. First, the

tableau. Ms. Sun: (Intimate.) Tableau, you got them to do a tableau. Mr. Johnson: (Intimate.) I figured you’d want to see them in a frozen non-

speaking state for a while. Oh, Kaswan, Xiomara, and Brian are in the auditorium building the set.

Ms. Sun: (Intimate.) Wow. This is amazing. Thank you. Mr. Johnson: Don’t thank me. Thank Mrs. Kennedy, thank yourself, thank

these kids. (To class.) And we’re starting from the top, top, top. Only one more week left. Shondrika, let’s see those fliers you’re working on.

Shondrika: I been done. “Come see Our Country’s Good cuz it’s for your own good.”

Ms. Sun: Beautiful, Shondrika. Let’s start from the top. (Sound of noise.) What’s all that noise out in the hallway?

Brian: Ay, yo. Janitor Baron had a heart attack in his closet last night. He died there.

Coca: What? He was our favorite . . . Jerome: How old was he, like a hundred or something? Shondrika: I just saw him yesterday. He told me he would come to the

show. He died all alone, ya’ll. (Long pause.) Ms. Sun: Thespians, I can give you some time . . .

922 plays for further reading

Jerome: Nah, nah we done wasted enough time. Let’s rehearse. Do the show. Dedicate it to Janitor Baron, our pops, may you rest in peace.

Ms. Sun: Alright, then, we’re taking it from the top. Chris, that’s you, sweetheart.

Chris: “A giant canoe drifts onto the sea, clouds billowing from upright oars. This is a dream that has lost its way. Best to leave it alone.” (Light shift.)

Janitor: My, My, My . . . them kids banded together over me. Memorized, rehearsed, added costumes, a small set, even added a rap or two at the end — don’t tell the playwright! And, I didn’t even think they knew my name. Ain’t that something? I think I know what you say- ing to yourselves: I see dead people. Shoot, this is a good story, I wanna finish telling it! Plus, my new friend up here, Arthur Miller, tells me ain’t no rules say a dead man can’t make a fine narrator. Say he wish he thought of it himself. Meanwhile, like most teachers, even after-hours, Ms. Sun’s life just ain’t her own.

Scene 13

Sun’s apartment. Night.

Ms. Sun: (On phone.) Hi. This is Ms. Sun from Malcolm X High. I’m looking for Jose Guzman. He’s a lead actor in Our Country’s Good but I haven’t seen him in class or after-school rehearsals since last week. My number is . . . (Light shift. On phone:) Hi. This is Ms. Sun again from Malcolm X High. I know it’s probably dinner time but I’m still trying to reach Jose or his grandmother, Doña Guzman . . . (Light shift. On phone:) Hi. Ms. Sun here. Sorry, I know it’s early and Mrs. Kennedy called last night, but the show is in less than two days . . . (Light shift. On phone:) Hi. It’s midnight. You can probably imagine who this is. Does anyone answer this phone? Why have a machine, I mean really . . . Hello, hello, yes. This is Ms. Sun from Malcolm X High, oh . . . Puedo hablar con Doña Guzman. Ah Hah! Finally. Doña Guzman, ah ha, bueno, Ingles, OK. I’ve been working with your grandson now for six weeks on a play that you might have heard of. (Beat.) Un espectaculo . . . ah ha, pero Ingles, OK. I haven’t seen him in a week and the show is in twenty-four hours Mañana actually . . . Como? His brother was killed. Ave Maria, Lo siento, señora . . . How? Gangs . . . no, no, olvidate, forget about it. I’ll send out prayers to you y tu familia. Buenas. (She hangs up. Light shift.)

Janitor: Chin up now!

Scene 14

School auditorium.

Janitor: Cuz, it’s opening night in the auditorium . . . I’m not even gonna talk about the logistics behind booking a high school auditorium for a night. Poor Mrs. Kennedy became a dictator.

sun / no child . . . 923

Mrs. Kennedy: I booked this auditorium for the night and no one shall take it from me!!!

Janitor: The stage is ablaze with fear, apprehension, doubt, nervousness, and, well, drama.

Mr. Johnson: Anyone seen Jerome? Ms. Sun: Anyone seen Jerome? Coca: His mom called him at four. Told him he had to babysit for the

night. Ms. Sun: But, he’s got a show tonight. Couldn’t they find someone else?

Couldn’t he just bring the brats? Sorry. Mr. Johnson: What are we going to do now? His part is enormous. Phillip: Ms. Sun? Ms. Sun: What, Phillip? Phillip: . . . I could do his part. Ms. Sun: (With apprehension.) OK, Phillip. You’re on. Just remember . . . Phillip: I know . . . someone is stealing my Mercedes LX one hundred

Limited Edition. Ms. Sun: And . . . ? Phillip: . . . Let my tongue be alive! Doña Guzman: Doña Guzman, buenas. Buenas. Doña Guzman. The

abuela de Jose. Ms. Sun: Jose, you made it. I’m so sorry about your brother. Jose: Yeah, I know. Where’s my costume at? Buela, no ta allí. Doña Guzman: Mira pa ya, muchacho. We had very long week pero he

love this class. He beg me “mami, mami, mami, Our Country Goo, Our Country Goo, Our Country Goo.” What can I do? I say yes. What I can do, you know.

Ms. Sun: Oh señora. It’s parents like you . . . thank you. Muchissima gra- cias por todo. Sit, sit in the audience por favor.

Mrs. Kennedy: Ms. Sun, everyone is in place, there are about seventy-five people in that audience, including some parents I desperately need to speak to. We’re glad you’re back. Good luck!

Shondrika: Miss, you want me to get the kids together before we start? Ms. Sun: Yeah, Shondrika, would you? Shondrika: Uh huh. Janitor: Now, here’s a teacher’s moment of truth. The last speech before

the kids go on! Ms. Sun: Alright. This is it. We’re here. We have done the work. We have

lived this play inside and out. I officially have a hernia. Coca: (Laughing.) She so stupid. I like her. Ms. Sun: We are a success . . . no matter what happens on this stage

tonight. No matter which actors are missing or if your parents couldn’t make it. I see before me twenty-seven amazingly talented young men and women. And I never thought I’d say this but I’m gonna miss you all.

Shondrika: Ooh, she gonna make me cry!

924 plays for further reading

Ms. Sun: Tonight is your night. Coca: Ooee, I’m nervous. Phillip: Me too. Ms. Sun: I am too. That just means you care. Now let’s take a deep breath

in and out. In . . . Brian: OHM! Nah, I’m just kiddin’. Keep going. Focus Focus. Ms. Sun: . . . and out. In and out. Shondrika: Miss, let’s do this for Jose’s brother and Janitor Baron. Ms. Sun: Oh, Shondrika, that’s beautiful. OK, gentlemen, be with us

tonight! PLACES. (Light shift.) Chris: A giant canoe drifts out onto the sea, best to leave it alone. Coca: This hateful hary-scary, topsy-turvy outpost. This is not a

civilization. Xiomara: It’s two hours, possibly of amusement, possibly of boredom.

It’s a waste, an unnecessary waste. Phillip: The convicts will feel nothing has changed and will go back to

their old ways. Jose: You have to be careful OH DAMN. (Nervously, he regains his thought.)

You have to be careful with words that begin with IN. It can turn everything upside down. INjustice, most of that word is taken up with justice, but the IN turns it inside out making it the ugliest word in the English language.

Shondrika: Citizens must be taught to obey the law of their own will. I want to rule over responsible human beings.

Phillip: Unexpected situations are often matched by unexpected virtues in people. Are they not?

Brian: A play should make you understand something new. Shondrika: Human beings — Xiomara: — have an intelligence — Brian: — that has nothing to do — Jose: — with the circumstances — Coca: — into which they were born. Chris: THE END. (Raucous applause. Light shift.) Janitor: And the show did go on. A show that sparked a mini-revolution

in the hearts of everyone in that auditorium. Sure, some crucial lines were fumbled, and some entrances missed and three cell phones went off in the audience. But, my God, if those kids weren’t a success.

Scene 15

Backstage.

Coca: Miss, I did good, right? I did good? I did good. I did my lines right. I did my motivations right. I did good, right. I did good? I did good? I did good? (Assured.) I did good. I did good. I did good. Oh, Miss. I been wantin’ to tell you. You know I’m pregnant right? . . . Oh don’t

sun / no child . . . 925

cry . . . Damn. Why do everyone cry when I say that? No, I wanted to tell you because my baby will not live like a prisoner, like a convict. I mean we still gotta put the baby-proof bars on the windows but that’s state law. But that’s it. We gonna travel, explore, see somethin’ new for a change. I mean I love the Bronx but there’s more to life right? You taught me that. “Man is born free” right . . . I mean, even though it’s gonna be a girl. (Beat.) I know we was mad hard so thank you.

Jose: Ms.? I don’t know but, that class was still mad boring to me. Phillip: (Audibly.) Ms. Sun?! I wanna be an actor now! Security Guard: O, O! We gotta clear out the auditorium. You can’t be

lolly-gagging in here. Clear it out. Clear it out. Clear it out! By the way, I never done seen dem kids shine like they did tonight. They did good. You did good. Now, you got ta clear it out!

Ms. Sun: (To herself.) Jerome . . . Jerome. (Beat.) “And we, this colony of a few hundred, will be watching this together, and we will no longer be despised prisoners and hated gaolers. We will laugh, we may be moved. We may . . .”

Jerome: (Gasping.) “. . . even think a little!” Ms. Sun: Jerome? What are you doing here? Jerome: (Panting.) Mom came home early. Told me to run over here fast

as I could . . . (He realizes.) I missed it. I missed it all. And I worked hard to learn my lines.

Ms. Sun: Yes, you did Jerome. You worked very hard. (Long beat.) Jerome: You gonna be teaching here again next year? Ms. Sun: That’s the plan. But, only tenth-graders again. Sorry. Jerome: Oh no worries. I’m definitely gonna get left back for you. Psyche . . .

Lemme go shout out to all them other thespians. You gonna be around? Ms. Sun: No, actually I have a commercial shoot early tomorrow morning. Jerome: Really, for what? Ms. Sun: (Slurring.) It’s nothing . . . Jerome: Aw, come on you could tell me. Ms. Sun: Really, it’s nothing. Jerome: Lemme know. Lemme know. Come on lemme know. Ms. Sun: It’s for Red Bull, damn it. Red Bull. Jerome: Aight! Ms. Sun’s finally getting paid. (Light shift.)

Scene 16

Janitor: And on to our third and final lesson of the evening: Something interesting happens when you die. You still care about the ones you left behind and wanna see how life ended up for them. Ms. Tam went back to the firm and wound up investing 2.3 million dollars towards arts in education with a strong emphasis on cultural diversity. Phil- lip proudly works as a conductor for the MTA. Shondrika Jones graduated summa cum laude from Harvard University and became the first black woman mayor of New York City. Alright now. Jose

926 plays for further reading

Guzman lost his life a week after the show when he decided to take vengeance on the Blood that killed his brother. Jerome. I might be omnipresent but I sure as heck ain’t omniscient. Some of the bright- est just slip through the cracks sometime. Do me a favor — you ever see him around town, tell him we thinkin’ about him. And Ms. Sun. Well, she went on to win an NAACP Award, a Hispanic Herit- age Award, a Tony Award, and an Academy Award. She was also in charge of restructuring of the nation’s No Child Left Behind law and lives happily with her husband, Denzel Washington. His first wife never had a chance, poor thang. She still comes back every year to teach at Malcolm X High; oh, oh, oh, recently renamed Saint Tupac Shakur Preparatory. Times — they are a-changin’! (He grabs his broom and sings. Lights shift as he walks toward a bright light offstage.)

Trouble in mind It’s true I had almost lost my way (Offstage light brightens as if the heavens await. He knows to walk “into” it.) But, the sun’s gonna shine In my back door someday That’s alright, Lord. That’s alright!

End of play

927

28. Reading and the Writing Process 929

29. Writing about Fiction 942

30. Writing about Poetry 950

31. Writing about Drama 965

32. The Literary Research Paper 973

C R I T I C A L T H I N K I N G

A N D W R I T I N G

927

This page intentionally left blank

THE PURPOSE AND VALUE OF WRIT ING ABOUT LITER ATURE Introductory literature courses typically include three components — reading, discussion, and writing. Students usually fi nd the readings a pleasure, the class discussions a revelation, and the writing assign- ments — at least initially — a little intimidating. Writing an analysis of Melville’s use of walls in “Bartleby, the Scrivener” (p. 85), for example, may seem considerably more daunting than making a case for animal rights or analyzing a campus newspaper editorial that calls for grade reforms. Like Bartleby, you might want to respond with “I would prefer not to.” Literary topics are not, however, all that different from the kinds of papers assigned in English composition courses; many of the same skills are required for both. Regardless of the type of paper, you must develop a thesis and support it with evidence in language that is clear and persuasive. Whether the subject matter is a marketing survey, a political issue, or a literary work, writing is a method of communicating information and perceptions. Writing teaches. But before writing becomes an instru- ment for informing the reader, it serves as a means of learning for the writer. An essay is a process of discovery as well as a record of what has

929

28 Reading and the Writing Process

I can’t write fi ve words but that I change seven.

— DOROTHY PARKER © Mary Evans Picture Library/Alamy.

930 reading and the writing process

been discovered. One of the chief benefi ts of writing is that we frequently realize what we want to say only after trying out ideas on a page and see- ing our thoughts take shape in language. More specifi cally, writing about a literary work encourages us to be better readers because it requires a close examination of the elements of a short story, poem, or play. To determine how plot, character, setting, point of view, style, tone, irony, or any number of other literary elements function in a work, we must study them in relation to one another as well as separately. Speed-reading won’t do. To read a text accurately and validly — neither ignoring nor distorting signifi cant details — we must return to the work repeatedly to test our responses and interpretations. By paying attention to details and being sensitive to the author’s use of language, we develop a clearer understanding of how the work conveys its effects and meanings.

READING THE WORK CLOSELY Know the piece of literature you are writing about before you begin your essay. Think about how the work makes you feel and how it is put together. The more familiar you are with how the various elements of the text convey effects and meanings, the more confi dent you will be explain- ing whatever perspective on it you ultimately choose. Do not insist that everything make sense on a fi rst reading. Relax and enjoy yourself; you can be attentive and still allow the author’s words to work their magic on you. With subsequent readings, however, go more slowly and analytically as you try to establish relations between characters, actions, images, or whatever else seems important. Ask yourself why you respond as you do. Think as you read, and notice how the parts of a work contribute to its overall nature. Whether the work is a short story, poem, or play, you will read relevant portions of it over and over, and you will very likely fi nd more to discuss in each review if the work is rich.

ANNOTATING THE TEXT AND JOURNAL NOTE TAKING As you read, get in the habit of annotating your texts. Whether you write marginal notes, highlight, underline, or draw boxes and circles around important words and phrases, you’ll eventually develop a system that allows you to retrieve signifi cant ideas and elements from the text. Another way to record your impressions of a work — as with any other experience — is to keep a journal. By writing down your reactions to char- acters, images, language, actions, and other matters in a reading journal, you can often determine why you like or dislike a work or feel sympa- thetic or antagonistic to an author or discover paths into a work that

annotating the text and journal note taking 931

might have eluded you if you hadn’t preserved your impressions. Your journal notes and annotations may take whatever form you fi nd use- ful; full sentences and grammatical correctness are not essential (unless they are to be handed in and your instructor requires that), though they might allow you to make better sense of your own refl ections days later. The point is simply to put in writing thoughts that you can retrieve when you need them for class discussion or a writing assignment. Con- sider the following student annotation of the fi rst twenty-four lines of Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” (p. 384) and the journal entry that follows it:

Annotated Text

Had we but world enough, and time, This coyness, lady, were no crime. We would sit down, and think which way To walk, and pass our long love’s day. Thou by the Indian Ganges’ side 5 Shouldst rubies fi nd; I by the tide Of Humber would complain.° I would Love you ten years before the Flood, And you should, if you please, refuse Till the conversion of the Jews. 10 My vegetable love should grow° Vaster than empires, and more slow; An hundred years should go to praise Thine eyes and on thy forehead gaze, Two hundred to adore each breast, 15 But thirty thousand to the rest: An age at least to every part, And the last age should show your heart. For, lady, you deserve this state, Nor would I love at lower rate. 20 But at my back I always hear Time’s wingèd chariot hurrying near; And yonder all before us lie Deserts of vast eternity.

Journal Note

He’d be patient and wait for his “mistress” if they had the time—sing songs, praise

her, adore her, etc. But they don’t have that much time according to him. He seems to be

patient but he actually begins by calling patience—her coyness—a “crime.” Looks to me

like he’s got his mind made up from the beginning of the poem. Where’s her response? I’m

not sure about him.

contrast river and desert images

If we had time . . . Waste life and

you steal from yourself

Measurements of time

This eternity rushes in.

Lines move faster here — tone changes.

932 reading and the writing process

This journal note responds to some of the effects noted in the anno- tations of the poem; it’s an excellent beginning for making sense of the speaker’s argument in the poem. Taking notes will preserve your initial reactions to the work. Many times fi rst impressions are the best. Your response to a peculiar charac- ter in a story, a striking phrase in a poem, or a subtle bit of stage busi- ness in a play might lead to larger perceptions. You should take detailed notes only after you’ve read through the work. If you write too many notes during the fi rst reading, you’re likely to disrupt your response. Moreover, until you have a sense of the entire work, it will be diffi cult to determine how connections can be made among its various elements. In addition to recording your fi rst impressions and noting signifi cant passages, characters, actions, and so on, you should consult the Ques- tions for Responsive Reading and Writing about fi ction (p. 943), poetry (p. 951), and drama (p. 966). These questions can assist you in getting inside a work as well as organizing your notes. Inevitably you will take more notes than you fi nally use in the paper. Note taking is a form of thinking aloud, but because your ideas are on paper you don’t have to worry about forgetting them. As you develop a better sense of a potential topic, your notes will become more focused and detailed.

CHOOSING A TOPIC If your instructor assigns a topic or offers a choice from among an approved list of topics, some of your work is already completed. Instead of being asked to come up with a topic about Oedipus the King, you may be asked to write a three-page essay that specifi cally discusses whether Oedipus’s downfall is a result of fate or foolish pride. You also have the assurance that a specifi ed topic will be manageable within the sug- gested number of pages. Unless you ask your instructor for permission to write on a different or related topic, be certain to address yourself to the assignment. An essay that does not discuss Oedipus’s downfall but instead describes his relationship with his wife, Jocasta, would be miss- ing the point. Notice too that there is room even in an assigned topic to develop your own approach. One question that immediately comes to mind is whether Oedipus’s plight is relevant to a twenty-fi rst-century reader. Assigned topics do not relieve you of thinking about an aspect of a work, but they do focus your thinking. At some point during the course, you may have to begin an essay from scratch. You might, for example, be asked to write about a short story that somehow impressed you or that seemed particularly well written or fi lled with insights. Before you start considering a topic, you should have a sense of how long the paper will be because the assigned length can help to determine the extent to which you should develop

developing a thesis 933

your topic. Ideally, the paper’s length should be based on how much space you deem necessary to present your discussion clearly and convinc- ingly, but if you have any doubts and no specifi c guidelines have been indicated, ask. The question is important; a topic that might be appro- priate for a three-page paper could be too narrow for ten pages. Three pages would probably be adequate for a discussion of why Emily mur- ders Homer in Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily.” Conversely, it would be fu- tile to try to summarize Faulkner’s use of the South in his fi ction in even ten pages; this would have to be narrowed to something like “Images of the South in ‘A Rose for Emily.’ ” Be sure that the topic you choose can be adequately covered in the assigned number of pages.

DEVELOPING A THESIS When you are satisfi ed that you have something interesting to say about a work and that your notes have led you to a focused topic, you can for- mulate a thesis, the central idea of the paper. Whereas the topic indicates what the paper focuses on (the setting in “A & P”), the thesis explains what you have to say about the topic (because the intolerant setting of “A & P” is the antagonist in the story, it is crucial to our understanding of Sammy’s decision to quit his job). The thesis should be a complete sentence (though sometimes it may require more than one sentence) that establishes your topic in clear, unambiguous language. The thesis may be revised as you get further into the topic and discover what you want to say about it, but once the thesis is fi rmly established, it will serve as a guide for you and your reader because all the information and obser- vations in your essay should be related to the thesis. One student on an initial reading of Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” saw that the male speaker of the poem urges a woman to love now before time runs out for them. This reading gave him the impression that the poem is a simple celebration of the pleasures of the fl esh, but on subsequent readings he underlined or noted these images: “Time’s wingèd chariot hurrying near”; “Deserts of vast eternity”; “marble vault”; “worms”; “dust”; “ashes”; and these two lines: “The grave’s a fi ne and private place, / But none, I think, do there embrace.” By listing these images associated with time and death, he estab- lished an inventory that could be separated from the rest of his notes on point of view, character, sounds, and other subjects. Inventorying notes allows patterns to emerge that you might have only vaguely perceived otherwise. Once these images are grouped, they call attention to some- thing darker and more complex in Marvell’s poem than a fi rst impres- sion might suggest. These images may create a different feeling about the poem, but they still don’t explain very much. One simple way to generate a thesis about a literary work is to ask the question “why?” Why do these images

934 reading and the writing process

appear in the poem? Why does Hamlet hesitate to avenge his father’s death? Why does Hemingway choose the Midwest as the setting of “Sol- dier’s Home”? Your responses to these kinds of questions can lead to a thesis. Writers sometimes use freewriting to help themselves explore pos- sible answers to such questions. It can be an effective way of generating ideas. Freewriting is exactly that: The technique calls for nonstop writing without concern for mechanics or editing of any kind. Freewriting for ten minutes or so on a question will result in fragments and repetitions, but it can also produce some ideas. Here’s an example of a student’s response to the question about the images in “To His Coy Mistress”:

He wants her to make love. Love poem. There’s little time. Her crime. He exaggerates.

Sincere? Sly? What’s he want? She says nothing—he says it all. What about deserts, ashes,

graves, and worms? Some love poem. Sounds like an old Vincent Price movie. Full of

sweetness but death creeps in. Death—hurry hurry! Tear pleasures. What passion! Where’s

death in this? How can a love poem be so ghoulish? She does nothing. Maybe frightened?

Convinced? Why death? Love and death—time—death.

This freewriting contains several ideas; it begins by alluding to the poem’s plot and speaker, but the central idea seems to be death. A paper that merely pointed out the death images in “To His Coy Mis- tress” would not contain a thesis, but a paper that attempted to make a case for the death imagery as a grim reminder of how vulnerable fl esh is would involve persuasion. In developing a thesis, remember that you are expected not merely to present information but to argue a point.

ARGUING ABOUT LITER ATURE An argumentative essay is designed to make persuasive your interpre- tation of a work. Arguing about literature doesn’t mean that you’re engaged in an angry, antagonistic dispute (though controversial top- ics do sometimes engender heated debates). Instead, argumentation requires that you present your interpretation of a work (or a portion of it) by supporting your discussion with clearly defi ned terms, ample evi- dence, and a detailed analysis of relevant portions of the text. If you have a choice, it’s generally best to write about a topic that you feel strongly about. If you’re not fascinated by Bartleby the Scriv- ener’s haunting presence in Melville’s short story, then perhaps you’ll fi nd chilling Emily Grierson’s behavior in Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily,” or maybe you can explain why Bartleby’s character is so excruciatingly boring to you. If your essay is to be interesting and convincing, what is important is that it be written from a strong point of view that persua- sively argues your evaluation, analysis, and interpretation of a work. It

organizing a paper 935

is not enough to say that you like or dislike a work; instead you must give your reader some ideas and evidence that can be accepted or rejected based on the quality of the answers to the questions you raise.

ORGANIZING A PAPER After you have chosen a manageable topic and developed a thesis, a cen- tral idea about it, you can begin to organize your paper. Your thesis, even if it is still somewhat tentative, should help you decide what information will need to be included and provide you with a sense of direction. Consider this sample thesis:

On the surface, “To His Coy Mistress” is a celebration of the pleasures of the flesh, but this

witty seduction is tempered by a chilling recognition of the reality of death.

This thesis indicates that the paper can be divided into two parts — the pleasures of the fl esh and the reality of death. It also indicates an order: Because the central point is to show that the poem is more than a simple celebration, the pleasures of the fl esh should be discussed fi rst so that another, more complex, reading of the poem can follow. If the paper began with the reality of death, its point would be anticlimactic. Having established such a broad and informal outline, you can draw on your underlinings, margin notations, and notes for the subheadings and evidence required to explain the major sections of your paper. This next level of detail would look like the following:

1. Pleasures of the flesh

Part of the traditional tone of love poetry

2. Recognition of death

Ironic treatment of love

Diction

Images

Figures of speech

Symbols

Tone

This list was initially a jumble of terms, but the student arranged the items so that each of the two major sections leads to a discussion of tone. (The student also found it necessary to drop some biographical infor- mation from his notes because it was irrelevant to the thesis.) The list indicates that the fi rst part of the paper will establish the traditional tone of love poetry that celebrates the pleasures of the fl esh, while the second part will present a more detailed discussion about the ironic

936 reading and the writing process

recognition of death. The emphasis is on the latter because that is the point to be argued in the paper. Hence, the thesis has helped to organize the parts of the paper, establish an order, and indicate the paper’s proper proportions. The next step is to fi ll in the subheadings with information from your notes. Many experienced writers fi nd that making lists of informa- tion to be included under each subheading is an effi cient way to develop paragraphs. For a longer paper (perhaps a research paper), you should be able to develop a paragraph or more on each subheading. On the other hand, a shorter paper may require that you combine several subhead- ings in a paragraph. You may also discover that while an informal list is adequate for a brief paper, a ten-page assignment could require a more detailed outline. Use the method that is most productive for you.

WRIT ING A DR AF T Be fl exible. Your outline should smoothly conduct you from one point to the next, but do not permit it to railroad you. If a relevant and impor- tant idea occurs to you now, work it into the draft. By using the fi rst draft as a means of thinking about what you want to say, you will very likely discover more than your notes originally suggested. Plenty of good writers don’t use outlines at all but discover ordering principles as they write. Do not attempt to compose a perfectly correct draft the fi rst time around. Grammar, punctuation, and spelling can wait until you revise. Concentrate on what you are saying. Good writing most often occurs when you are in hot pursuit of an idea rather than in a nervous search for errors. Once you have a fi rst draft on paper, you can delete material that is unrelated to your thesis and add material necessary to illustrate your points and make your paper convincing. The student who wrote “John Updike’s ‘A & P’ as a State of Mind” (p. 947) wisely dropped a paragraph that questioned whether Sammy displays chauvinistic attitudes toward women. Although this is an interesting issue, it has nothing to do with the thesis, which explains how the setting infl uences Sammy’s decision to quit his job. Instead of including that paragraph, she added one that described Lengel’s crabbed response to the girls so that she could lead up to the A & P “policy” he enforces. Remember that your initial draft is only that. You should go through the paper many times — and then again — working to substantiate and clarify your ideas. You may even end up with several entire versions of the paper. Rewrite. The sentences within each paragraph should be related to a single topic. Transitions should connect one paragraph to the next so that there are no abrupt or confusing shifts. Awkward or wordy phras- ing or unclear sentences and paragraphs should be mercilessly poked and prodded into shape.

writing a draft 937

Writing the Introduction and Conclusion

After you have clearly and adequately developed the body of your paper, pay particular attention to the introductory and concluding paragraphs. It’s probably best to write the introduction — at least the fi nal version of it — last, after you know precisely what you are introducing. Because this paragraph is crucial for generating interest in the topic, it should engage the reader and provide a sense of what the paper is about. There is no formula for writing effective introductory paragraphs because each writing situation is different — depending on the audience, topic, and approach — but if you pay attention to the introductions of the essays you read, you will notice a variety of possibilities. The introductory para- graph to “John Updike’s ‘A & P’ as a State of Mind,” for example, is a straightforward ex planation of why the story’s setting is important for understanding Updike’s treatment of the antagonist. The rest of the paper then offers evidence to support this point. Concluding paragraphs demand equal attention because they leave the reader with a fi nal impression. The conclusion should pro- vide a sense of closure instead of starting a new topic or ending abruptly. In the final paragraph about the significance of the setting in “A & P,” the student brings together the reasons Sammy quit his job by referring to his refusal to accept Lengel’s store policies. At the same time she makes this point, she also explains the significance of Sammy ringing up the “No Sale” mentioned in her introductory paragraph. Thus, we are brought back to where we began, but we now have a greater understanding of why Sammy quits his job. Of course, the body of your paper is the most important part of your presenta- tion, but do remember that first and last impressions have a powerful impact on readers.

Using Quotations

Quotations can be a valuable means of marshaling evidence to illustrate and support your ideas. A judicious use of quoted material will make your points clearer and more convincing. Here are some guidelines that should help you use quotations effectively.

Brief and lengthy quotations

Brief quotations (four lines or fewer of prose or three lines or fewer of poetry) should be carefully introduced and integrated into the text of your paper with quotation marks around them:

According to the narrator, Bertha “had a reputation for strictness.” He tells us that she

always “wore dark clothes, dressed her hair simply, and expected contrition and obedience

from her pupils.”

938 reading and the writing process

For brief poetry quotations, use a slash to indicate a division between lines:

The concluding lines of Blake’s “The Tyger” pose a disturbing question: “What immortal

hand or eye / Dare frame thy fearful symmetry?”

Lengthy quotations should be separated from the text of your paper. More than three lines of poetry should be double spaced and centered on the page. More than four lines of prose should be double spaced and indented ten spaces from the left margin, with the right margin the same as for the text. Do not use quotation marks for the passage; the indentation indicates that the passage is a quotation. Lengthy quotations should not be used in place of your own writing. Use them only if they are absolutely necessary.

Brackets and ellipses

If any words are added to a quotation, use brackets to distinguish your addition from the original source:

“He [Young Goodman Brown] is portrayed as self-righteous and disillusioned.”

Any words inside quotation marks and not in brackets must be precisely those of the author. Brackets can also be used to change the grammatical structure of a quotation so that it fi ts into your sentence:

Smith argues that Chekhov “present[s] the narrator in an ambivalent light.”

If you drop any words from the source, use ellipses to indicate the omission:

“Early to bed . . . makes a man healthy, wealthy, and wise.”

Use ellipses following a period to indicate an omission at the end of a sentence:

“Early to bed and early to rise makes a man healthy. . . .”

Use a single line of spaced periods to indicate the omission of a line or more of poetry or more than one paragraph of prose:

Nothing would sleep in that cellar, dank as a ditch,

Bulbs broke out of boxes hunting for chinks in the dark,

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Nothing would give up life:

Even the dirt kept breathing a small breath.

Punctuation

You will be able to punctuate quoted material accurately and confi dently if you observe these conventions. Place commas and periods inside quotation marks:

revising and editing 939

“Even the dirt,” Roethke insists, “kept breathing a small breath.”

Even though a comma does not appear after “dirt” in the original quota- tion, it is placed inside the quotation mark. The exception to this rule occurs when a parenthetical reference to a source follows the quotation:

“Even the dirt,” Roethke insists, “kept breathing a small breath” (11).

Punctuation marks other than commas or periods go outside the quotation marks unless they are part of the material quoted:

What does Roethke mean when he writes that “the dirt kept breathing a small breath”?

Yeats asked, “How can we know the dancer from the dance?”

REVISING AND EDIT ING Put some distance — a day or so if you can — between yourself and each draft of your paper. The phrase that seemed just right on Wednesday may be revealed as all wrong on Friday. You’ll have a better chance of detecting lum- bering sentences and thin paragraphs if you plan ahead and give yourself the time to read your paper from a fresh perspective. Through the process of revision, you can transform a competent paper into an excellent one. Begin by asking yourself if your approach to the topic requires any rethinking. Is the argument carefully thought out and logically presented? Are there any gaps in the presentation? How well is the paper organized? Do the paragraphs lead into one another? Does the body of the paper deliver what the thesis promises? Is the interpretation sound? Are any relevant and important elements of the work ignored or distorted to advance the thesis? Are the points supported with evidence? These large questions should be addressed before you focus on more detailed matters. If you uncover seri- ous problems as a result of considering these questions, you’ll probably have quite a lot of rewriting to do, but at least you will have the opportunity to correct the problems — even if doing so takes several drafts. The following checklist offers questions to ask about your paper as you revise and edit it. Most of these questions will be familiar to you; however, if you need help with any of them, ask your instructor or review the appropriate section in a composition handbook.

1. Is the topic manageable? Is it too narrow or too broad? 2. Is the thesis clear? Is it based on a careful reading of the work? 3. Is the paper logically organized? Does it have a fi rm sense of

direction?

Questions for Writing: A Revision Checklist

(continued)

940 reading and the writing process

4. Is your argument persuasive? 5. Should any material be deleted? Do any important points

require further illustration or evidence? 6. Does the opening paragraph introduce the topic in an interesting

manner? 7. Are the paragraphs developed, unifi ed, and coherent? Are any too

short or long? 8. Are there transitions linking the paragraphs? 9. Does the concluding paragraph provide a sense of closure? 10. Is the tone appropriate? Is it unduly fl ippant or pretentious? 11. Is the title engaging and suggestive? 12. Are the sentences clear, concise, and complete? 13. Are simple, complex, and compound sentences used for

variety? 14. Have technical terms been used correctly? Are you certain of

the meanings of all the words in the paper? Are they spelled correctly?

15. Have you documented any information borrowed from books, articles, or other sources? Have you quoted too much instead of summarizing or paraphrasing secondary material?

16. Have you used a standard format for citing sources (see p. 980)?

17. Have you followed your instructor’s guidelines for the manuscript format of the fi nal draft?

18. Have you carefully proofread the fi nal draft?

When you proofread your fi nal draft, you may fi nd a few typo- graphical errors that must be corrected but do not warrant reprinting an entire paper. Provided there are not more than a handful of such errors throughout the paper, they can be corrected as shown in the following passage. This example condenses a short paper’s worth of errors; no single passage should be this shabby in your essay:

To add a letter or word, use a caret on the line where the addition needed. To delete a

word draw a single line through through it. Run-on words are separated by a verticalline,

and inadvertent spaces are closed like t his. Transposed letters are indicated this wya.

New paragraphs are noted with the sign ¶ in front of where the next paragraph is to

begin. Unless you . . .

is

>

types of writing assignments 941

You can minimize these sorts of errors by proofreading on the screen and simply entering your corrections as you go along.

T YPES OF WRIT ING ASSIGNMENTS The types of papers most frequently assigned in literature classes are explication, analysis, and comparison and contrast. Most writing about literature involves some combination of these skills. For genre-based assignments, see the following sample papers: for analysis (Chapter 29, “Writing about Fiction,” p. 947), for explication (Chapter 30, “Writing about Poetry,” p. 958), for comparison and contrast (Chapter 31, “Writing about Drama,” p. 970). For a sample research paper that demonstrates a variety of strategies for documenting outside sources, see page 987.

FROM READING TO WRIT ING There’s no question about it: Writing about fiction is a different experi- ence than reading it. The novelist William Styron amply concedes that writing to him is not so much about pleasure as it is about work: “Let’s face it, writing is hell.” Although Styron’s lament concerns his own feel- ings about writing prose fiction, he no doubt speaks for many other writers, including essayists. Writing is, of course, work, but it is also a pleasure when it goes well — when ideas feel solid and the writing is fluid. You can experience that pleasure as well if you approach writing as an intellectual and emotional opportunity rather than merely a sentence. Just as reading fiction requires an imaginative, conscious response, so does writing about fiction. Composing an essay is not just recording your interpretive response to a work because the act of writing can change your response as you explore, clarify, and discover relationships you hadn’t previously considered or recognized. Most writers discover new ideas and connections as they move through the process of rereading and annotat- ing the text, taking notes, generating ideas, developing a thesis, and orga- nizing an argumentative essay (these matters are detailed in Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process”). To become more conscious of the writing process, first study the following questions specifically aimed at sharpening your re sponse to reading and writing about fiction. Then examine the student’s analysis of John Updike’s short story “A & P.”

942

29 Writing about Fiction

Writing permits me to experience life as any number of strange creations.

— ALICE WALKER

from reading to writing 943

The following questions can help you consider important elements of fiction that reveal your responses to a story’s effects and mean- ings. The questions are general, so they will not always be relevant to a particular story. Many of them, however, should prove useful for thinking, talking, and writing about a work of fiction.

plot

1. Does the plot conform to a formula? Is it like those of any other stories you have read? Did you find it predictable?

2. What is the source and nature of the conflict for the protago- nist? Was your major interest in the story based on what hap- pens next or on some other concern? What does the title reveal now that you’ve finished the story?

3. Is the story told chronologically? If not, in what order are its events told, and what is the effect of that order on your response to the action?

4. What does the exposition reveal? Are flashbacks used? Did you see any foreshadowings? Where is the climax?

5. Is the conflict resolved at the end? Would you characterize the ending as happy, unhappy, or somewhere in between?

6. Is the plot unified? Is each incident somehow related to some other element in the story?

character

7. Do you identify with the protagonist? Who (or what) is the antagonist?

8. Did your response to any characters change as you read? What do you think caused the change? Do any characters change and develop in the course of the story? How?

9. Are round, flat, or stock characters used? Is their behavior motivated and plausible?

10. How does the author reveal characters? Are they directly described or indirectly presented? Are the characters’ names used to convey something about them?

11. What is the purpose of the minor characters? Are they indi- vidualized, or do they primarily represent ideas or attitudes?

setting

12. Is the setting important in shaping your response? If it were changed, would your response to the story’s action and mean- ing be significantly different?

Questions for Responsive Reading and Writing

(continued)

944 writing about fiction

13. Is the setting used symbolically? Are the time, place, and atmo- sphere related to the theme?

14. Is the setting used as an antagonist?

point of view

15. Who tells the story? Is it a first-person or third-person narrator? Is it a major or minor character or one who does not participate in the action at all? How much does the narrator know? Does the point of view change at all in the course of the story?

16. Is the narrator reliable and objective? Does the narrator appear too innocent, emotional, or self-deluded to be trusted?

17. Does the author directly comment on the action? 18. If it were told from a different point of view, how would your

re sponse to the story change? Would anything be lost?

symbolism

19. Did you notice any symbols in the story? Are they actions, characters, settings, objects, or words?

20. How do the symbols contribute to your understanding of the story?

theme

21. Did you find a theme? If so, what is it? 22. Is the theme stated directly, or is it developed implicitly

through the plot, characters, or some other element? 23. Is the theme a confirmation of your values, or does it challenge

them?

style, tone, and irony

24. Do you think the style is consistent and appropriate through- out the story? Do all the characters use the same kind of lan- guage, or did you hear different voices?

25. Would you describe the level of diction as formal or informal? Are the sentences short and simple, long and complex, or some combination?

26. How does the author’s use of language contribute to the tone of the story? Did it seem, for example, intense, relaxed, senti- mental, nostalgic, humorous, angry, sad, or remote?

27. Do you think the story is worth reading more than once? Does the author’s use of language bear close scrutiny so that you feel and experience more with each reading?

a sample student analysis 945

Analysis

An analysis usually examines only a single element — such as plot, char- acter, point of view, symbol, tone, or irony — and relates it to the entire work. An analytic topic separates the work into parts and focuses on a specifi c one; you might, for example, consider “Point of View in ‘A Rose for Emily.’ ” The specifi c element must be related to the work as a whole or it will appear irrelevant. Whether an analytic paper is just a few pages or many, it cannot at tempt to discuss everything about the work it is considering. Only those elements that are relevant to the topic can be treated. This kind of focusing makes the topic manageable; this is why most papers that you write will probably be some form of analysis.

A SAMPLE STUDENT ANALYSIS John Updike’s “A & P” as a State of Mind

Nancy Lager’s paper analyzes the setting in John Updike’s “A & P” (the entire story appears on p. 334). The assignment simply asked for an essay of approximately 750 words on a short story written in the twentieth century. The approach was left to the student. The idea for this essay began with Lager asking herself why Updike used “A & P” as the title. The initial answer to the question was that “the setting is important in this story.” This answer was the rough beginning of a tentative thesis. What still had to be explained, though, was how the set- ting is important. To determine the signifi cance of the setting, Lager jot- ted down some notes based on her underlinings and marginal notations:

A & P

“usual traffic”

lights and tile

“electric eye”

shoppers like “sheep,” “houseslaves,” “pigs”

“Alexandrov and Petrooshki”—Russia

New England Town

typical: bank, church, etc.

traditional

conservative

proper

near Salem—witch trials

puritanical

intolerant

Lengel

“manager”

“doesn’t miss that much”

(like lady shopper)

Sunday school

“It’s our policy”

spokesman for A & P values

946 writing about fiction

From these notes Lager saw that Lengel serves as the voice of the A & P. He is, in a sense, a personifi cation of the intolerant atmosphere of the setting. This insight led to another version of her thesis statement: “The setting of ‘A & P’ is the antagonist of the story.” That explained at least some of the setting’s importance. By seeing Lengel as a spokesman for “A & P” policies, she could view him as a voice that articulates the mor- ally smug atmosphere created by the setting. Finally, she considered why it is signifi cant that the setting is the antagonist, and this generated her last thesis: “Because the intolerant setting of ‘A & P’ is the antagonist in the story, it is crucial to our understanding of Sammy’s decision to quit his job.” This thesis sentence does not appear precisely in these words in the essay, but it is the backbone of the introductory paragraph. The remaining paragraphs consist of details that describe the A & P in the second paragraph, the New England town in the third, Lengel in the fourth, and Sammy’s reasons for quitting in the concluding paragraph. Paragraphs 2, 3, and 4 are largely based on Lager’s notes, which she used as an outline once her thesis was established. The essay is sharply focused, well organized, and generally well written. In addition, it sug- gests a number of useful guidelines for analytic papers:

1. Only the points related to the thesis are included. In another type of paper the role of the girls in the bathing suits, for example, might have been considerably more prominent.

2. The analysis keeps the setting in focus while at the same time indicating how it is signifi cant in the major incident in the story — Sammy’s quitting.

3. The title is a useful lead into the paper; it provides a sense of what the topic is. In addition, the title is drawn from a sentence (the fi nal one of the fi rst paragraph) that clearly explains its meaning.

4. The introductory paragraph is direct and clearly indicates the paper will argue that the setting serves as the antagonist of the story.

5. Brief quotations are deftly incorporated into the text of the paper to illustrate points. We are told what we need to know about the story as evidence is provided to support ideas. There is no unnecessary plot summary. Even though “A & P” is only a few pages in length and is an assigned topic, page numbers are included after quoted phrases. If the story were longer, page numbers would be especially helpful for the reader.

6. The paragraphs are well developed, unifi ed, and coherent. They fl ow naturally from one to another. Notice, for example, the smooth transition worked into the fi nal sentence of the third paragraph and the fi rst sentence of the fourth paragraph.

7. Lager makes excellent use of her careful reading and notes by fi nding revealing connections among the details she has observed. The store’s “electric eye,” for instance, is related to the woman’s and Lengel’s watchfulness.

a sample student analysis 947

8. As events are described, the present tense is used. This avoids awkward tense shifts and lends an immediacy to the discussion.

9. The concluding paragraph establishes the signifi cance of why the setting should be seen as the antagonist and provides a sense of closure by referring again to Sammy’s “No Sale,” which has been mentioned at the end of the fi rst paragraph.

10. In short, Lager has demonstrated that she has read the work closely, has understood the relation of the setting to the major action, and has argued her thesis convincingly by using evidence from the story.

Lager 1

Nancy Lager

Professor Taylor

English 102-12

April 2, 2010

John Updike’s “A & P” as a State of Mind

The setting of John Updike’s “A & P” is crucial to our understanding of

Sammy’s decision to quit his job. Although Sammy is the central character in

the story and we learn that he is a principled, good-natured nineteen-year-old

with a sense of humor, Updike seems to invest as much effort in describing the

setting as he does in Sammy. The setting is the antagonist and plays a role

that is as important as Sammy’s. The title, after all, is not “Youthful Rebellion”

or “Sammy Quits” but “A & P.” Even though Sammy knows that his quitting

will make life more dif ficult for him, he instinctively insists on rejecting what

the A & P comes to represent in the story. When he rings up a “No Sale” and

“saunter[s]” (Updike 338) out of the store, he leaves behind not only a job but

the rigid state of mind associated with the A & P.

Sammy’s descriptions of the A & P present a setting that is ugly,

monotonous, and rigidly regulated. The fluorescent light is as blandly cool as

the “checker-board green-and-cream rubber-tile floor” (335). We can see the

uniformity Sammy describes because we have all been in chain stores. The

“usual traffic” moves in one direction (except for the swimsuited girls, who

move against it), and everything is neatly ordered and categorized in tidy

aisles. The dehumanizing routine of this environment is suggested by Sammy’s

offhand references to the typical shoppers as “sheep” (335), “houseslaves”

(335), and “pigs” (338). They seem to pace through the store in a stupor; as

Sammy tells us, not even dynamite could move them.

948 writing about fiction

Lager 2

The A & P is appropriately located “right in the middle” (336) of a

proper, conservative, traditional New England town north of Boston. This

location, coupled with the fact that the town is only five miles from Salem,

the site of the famous seventeenth-century witch trials, suggests a narrow,

intolerant social atmosphere in which there is no room for stepping beyond

the boundaries of what is regarded as normal and proper. The importance of

this setting can be appreciated even more if we imagine the action taking

place in, say, a mellow suburb of southern California. In this prim New

England setting, the girls in their bathing suits are bound to offend some-

body’s sense of propriety.

As soon as Lengel sees the girls, the inevitable conflict begins. He

embodies the dull conformity represented by the A & P. As “manager” (337),

he is both the guardian and enforcer of “policy” (337). When he gives the girls

“that sad Sunday-school-superintendent stare” (337), we know we are in the

presence of the A & P version of a dreary bureaucrat who “doesn’t miss that

much” (337). He is as unsympathetic and unpleasant as the woman “with rouge

on her cheekbones and no eyebrows” (334) who pounces on Sammy for ringing

up her “HiHo crackers” twice. Like the “electric eye” (338) in the doorway,

her vigilant eyes allow nothing to escape their notice. For Sammy the logical

extension of Lengel’s “policy” is the half-serious notion that one day the A & P

might be known as the “Great Alexandrov and Petrooshki Tea Company” (336).

Sammy’s connection between what he regards as mindless “policy” (337) and

Soviet oppression is obviously an exaggeration, but the reader is invited to

entertain the similarities anyway.

The reason Sammy quits his job has less to do with defending the girls

than with his own sense of what it means to be a decent human being. His

decision is not an easy one. He doesn’t want to make trouble or disappoint

his parents, and he knows his independence and self-reliance (the other side

of New England tradition) will make life more complex for him. In spite of his

own hesitations, he finds himself blurting out “Fiddle-de-doo” (338) to Lengel’s

policies and in doing so knows that his grandmother “would have been pleased”

(338). Sammy’s “No Sale” rejects the crabbed perspective on life that Lengel

represents as manager of the A & P. This gesture is more than just a negative,

however, for as he punches in that last entry on the cash register, “the machine

whirs ‘pee-pul’ ” (338). His decision to quit his job at the A & P is an expression

of his refusal to regard policies as more important than people.

a sample student analysis 949

Lager 3

Work Cited

Updike, John. “A & P.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston: Bedford/

St. Martin’s, 2011. 334-38. Print.

FROM READING TO WRIT ING Writing about poetry can be a rigorous means of testing the validity of your own reading of a poem. Anyone who has been asked to write several pages about a fourteen-line poem knows how intellectually challenging this exercise is, because it means paying close attention to language. Such scrutiny of words, however, sensitizes you not only to the poet’s use of language but also to your own use of language. At first you may feel intimidated by having to compose a paper that is longer than the poem you’re writing about, but a careful reading will reveal that there’s plenty to write about what the poem says and how it says it. Keep in mind that your job is not to produce a definitive reading of the poem — even Carl Sandburg once confessed that “I’ve written some poetry I don’t understand myself.” It is enough to develop an interesting thesis and to present it clearly and persuasively. An interesting thesis will come to you if you read and reread, take notes, annotate the text, and generate ideas (for a discussion of this pro- cess, see Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process”). Although it requires energy to read closely and to write convincingly about the charged language found in poetry, there is nothing mysterious about such reading and writing. This chapter provides a set of questions designed to sharpen

950

30 Writing about Poetry

Poems reveal secrets when they are analyzed. The poet’s pleasure in finding ingenious ways to enclose her secrets should be matched by the reader’s pleasure in unlocking and revealing secrets.

— DIANE WAKOSKI © Robert Turney.

from reading to writing 951

your reading and writing about poetry. Following these questions are two sample papers that offer explication of John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” and Emily Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light.”

The following questions can help you respond to important ele- ments that reveal a poem’s effects and meanings. The questions are general, so not all of them will necessarily be relevant to a particu- lar poem. Many, however, should prove useful for thinking, talk- ing, and writing about each poem in this collection.

Before addressing these questions, read the poem you are studying in its entirety. Don’t worry about interpretation on a first reading; allow yourself the pleasure of enjoying whatever makes itself apparent to you. Then on subsequent readings, use the ques- tions to understand and appreciate how the poem works.

1. Who is the speaker? Is it possible to determine the speaker’s age, sex, sensibilities, level of awareness, and values?

2. Is the speaker addressing anyone in particular? 3. How do you respond to the speaker? Favorably? Negatively?

What is the situation? Are there any special circumstances that inform what the speaker says?

4. Is there a specific setting of time and place? 5. Does reading the poem aloud help you to understand it? 6. Does a paraphrase reveal the basic purpose of the poem? 7. What does the title emphasize? 8. Is the theme presented directly or indirectly? 9. Do any allusions enrich the poem’s meaning? 10. How does the diction reveal meaning? Are any words repeated?

Do any carry evocative connotative meanings? Are there any puns or other forms of verbal wit?

11. Are figures of speech used? How does the figurative language contribute to the poem’s vividness and meaning?

12. Do any objects, persons, places, events, or actions have alle- gorical or symbolic meanings? What other details in the poem support your interpretation?

13. Is irony used? Are there any examples of situational irony, verbal irony, or dramatic irony? Is understatement or paradox used?

14. What is the tone of the poem? Is the tone consistent? 15. Does the poem use onomatopoeia, assonance, consonance, or

alliteration? How do these sounds affect you?

Questions for Responsive Reading and Writing

(continued)

952 writing about poetry

EXPLICATION The purpose of this approach to a literary work is to make the implicit ex plicit. Explication is a detailed explanation of a passage of poetry or prose. Because explication is an intensive examination of a text line by line, it is mostly used to interpret a short poem in its entirety or a brief pas- sage from a long poem, short story, or play. Explication can be used in any kind of paper when you want to be specifi c about how a writer achieves a certain effect. An explication pays careful attention to language — the con- notations of words, allusions, fi gurative language, irony, symbol, rhythm, sound, and so on. These elements are examined in relation to one another and to the overall effect and meaning of the work. The simplest way to organize an explication is to move through the passage line by line, explaining whatever seems signifi cant. It is wise to avoid, however, an assembly-line approach that begins each sentence with “In line one (two, three) . . .” Instead, organize your paper in what- ever way best serves your thesis. You might fi nd that the right place to

16. What sounds are repeated? If there are rhymes, what is their effect? Do they seem forced or natural? Is there a rhyme scheme? Do the rhymes contribute to the poem’s meaning?

17. Do the lines have a regular meter? What is the predominant meter? Are there significant variations? Does the rhythm seem appropriate for the poem’s tone?

18. Does the poem’s form — its overall structure — follow an estab- lished pattern? Do you think the form is a suitable vehicle for the poem’s meaning and effects?

19. Is the language of the poem intense and concentrated? Do you think it warrants more than one or two close readings?

20. Did you enjoy the poem? What, specifically, pleased or dis- pleased you about what was expressed and how it was expressed?

21. How might biographical information about the author help to determine the poem’s central concerns?

22. How might historical information about the poem provide a useful context for interpretation?

23. To what extent do your own experiences, values, beliefs, and assumptions inform your interpretation?

24. What kinds of evidence from the poem are you focusing on to support your interpretation? Does your interpretation leave out any important elements that might undercut or qualify your interpretation?

a sample paper-in-progress 953

start is with the fi nal lines, working your way back to the beginning of the poem or passage. The sample explication on Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light,” beginning on page 962 in this chapter, does just that. The student’s opening paragraph refers to the fi nal line of the poem in order to present her thesis. She explains that though the poem begins with an image of light, it is not a bright or cheery poem but one concerned with “the look of Death.” Since the last line prompted her thesis, that is where she begins the explication. You might also fi nd it useful to structure a paper by discussing various elements of literature. The following sample explication on John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud” is organized in this manner. However your paper is organized, keep in mind that the aim of an explication is not simply to sum- marize the passage but to comment on the effects and meanings produced by the author’s use of language in it. An effective explication (the Latin word explicare means “to unfold”) displays a text to reveal how it works and what it signifi es. Although writing an explication requires some patience and sensi- tivity, it is an excellent method for coming to understand and appreciate the elements and qualities that constitute literary art.

A SAMPLE PAPER-IN-PROGRESS Mapping a Poem

When you write about a poem, you are, in some ways, providing a guide for a place that might otherwise seem unfamiliar and remote. Put simply, writing enables you to chart a work so that you can comfortably move around in it to discuss or write about what interests you. Your paper represents a record and a map of your intellectual journey through the poem, pointing out the things worth noting and your impressions about them. Your role as writer is to offer insights into the challenges, pleasures, and discoveries that the poem harbors. These insights are a kind of sightseeing as you navigate the various elements of the poem to make some overall point about it. This section shows you how one student, Rose Bostwick, moves through the stages of writing about how a poem’s elements combine for a final effect. Included here are Rose’s first response, her informal outline, and the final draft of an explication of John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud.” After reviewing the elements of poetry covered in Chapters 11 through 19, Rose read the poem (which follows) several times, paying careful attention to diction, figurative language, irony, symbol, rhythm, sound, and so on. Her final paper is more concerned with the overall effect of the combination of elements than with a line-by-line break- down. As you read and reread “Death Be Not Proud,” keep notes on how you think the elements of this poem work together and to what overall effect.

954 writing about poetry

John Donne (1572–1631)

Death Be Not Proud 1611

Death be not proud, though some have callèd thee

Mighty and dreadful, for thou art not so; For those whom thou think’st thou dost

overthrow Die not, poor Death, nor yet canst thou

kill me. From rest and sleep, which but thy

pictures° be, images Much pleasure; then from thee much more

must flow, And soonest our best men with thee do go, Rest of their bones, and soul’s delivery.° deliverance Thou art slave to Fate, Chance, kings, and desperate men, And dost with Poison, War, and Sickness dwell; 10 And poppy or charms can make us sleep as well, And better than thy stroke; why swell’st° thou then? swell with pride One short sleep past, we wake eternally And death shall be no more; Death, thou shalt die.

Asking Questions about the Elements

After reading a poem, use the Questions for Responsive Reading and Writing (pp. 951–52) to help you think, talk, and write about it. Before you do, though, be sure that you have read the poem several times without worrying actively about interpretation. With poetry, as with all literature, it’s important to allow yourself the pleasure of enjoying whatever makes itself apparent to you. On subsequent readings, use the questions to understand and appreciate how the poem works; remember to keep in mind that not all questions will necessarily be relevant to a particular poem. A good starting point is to ask yourself what elements are exemplified in the parts of the poem that especially interest you. Then ask the Questions for Responsive Reading and Writing that relate to those elements. Finally, as you begin to get a sense of what elements are important to the poem and how those elements fit together, it often helps to put your impressions on paper.

A SAMPLE F IRST RESPONSE First Response to John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

After Rose carefully read “Death Be Not Proud” and had a sense of how the elements work, she took the first step toward a formal explication by writing informally about the relevant elements and addressing the

Courtesy of the National Portrait Gallery, London.

a sample first response 955

question Why doesn’t the speaker fear death? Explain why you find the argument convincing or not. Note that at this point, she was not as concerned with textual evidence and detail as she would need to be in her final paper.

Bostwick 1

Rose Bostwick

English 101

Professor Hart

January 28, 2010

First Response to John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

I’ve read the poem “Death Be Not Proud” by John Donne a few times now,

and I have a sense of how it works. The poem is a sonnet, and each of the three

quatrains presents a piece of the argument that Death should not be proud,

because it is not really all-powerful, and may even be a source of pleasure. As

a reader, I resist this seeming paradox at first, but I know it must be a trick,

a riddle of some sort that the poem will proceed to untangle. I think one of

the reasons the poem comes off as such a powerful statement is that Donne

at first seems to be playful and paradoxical in his characterizations of Death.

He’s almost teasing Death. But beneath the teasing tone you feel the strong

foundation of the real reason Death should not be proud—Donne’s faith in the

immortality of the soul. The poem begins to feel more solemn as it progresses,

as the hints at the idea of immortality become more clearly articulated.

Donne utilizes two literary conventions to increase the effect of this

poem: he uses the convention of personifying death, so that he can address it

directly, and he uses the metaphor of death as a kind of sleep. These two things

determine the tone and the progression from playful to solemn in the poem.

The last clause of the poem (line 14) plays with the paradoxical-seeming

character of what he’s been declaring. Ironically, it seems the only thing

susceptible to death is death itself. Or, when death becomes powerless is when

it only has power over itself.

Organizing Your Thoughts

Showing in a paper how different elements of a particular poem work together is often quite challenging. While you may have a clear intuitive sense of what elements are important to the poem and how they complement one another, it is important to organize your thoughts in such a way as to make the relationships clear to your audience. The simplest way is to go line by line, but that can quickly become rote for

956 writing about poetry

writer and reader. Because you will want to organize your paper in the way that best serves your thesis, it may help to write an informal outline that charts how you think the argument moves. You may find, for example, that the argument is not persuasive if you start with the final lines and go back to the beginning of the poem or passage. However you decide to organize your argument, keep in mind that a single idea, or thesis, will have to run throughout the entire paper.

A SAMPLE INFORMAL OUTLINE Proposed Outline for Paper on John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

In her informal outline (following), Rose discovers that her argument works best if she begins at the beginning. Note that, though her later paper concerns itself with how several elements of poetry contribute to the poem’s theme and message, her informal outline concerns itself much more with what that message is and how it develops as the poem progresses. She will fill in the details later.

Bostwick 1

Rose Bostwick

English 101

Professor Hart

February 6, 2010

Proposed Outline for Paper on

John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

Thesis: From the very first word, addressing “Death” directly, Donne

uses the literary conventions of personifying death and comparing it to

sleep to begin an argument that Death should not be proud of its might or

dreadfulness. But these two elements of his argument come to be seen as the

superficial points when the true reason for death’s powerlessness becomes clear.

The Christian belief in the immortality of the soul is the reason for death’s

powerlessness and likeness to sleep.

Body of essay: Show how argument proceeds by quatrains from playful

address to Death, and statement that Death is much like sleep, its “picture,”

to statement that Death is “slave” to other forces (and so should not be proud

of being the mightiest), to the couplet, which articulates clearly the idea of

immortality and gives the final paradox, “Death, thou shalt die.”

final paper: a sample explication 957

Bostwick 2

Conclusion: Donne’s faith in the immortality of the soul enables

him to “prove” in this argument that Death is truly like its metaphorical

representation, sleep. Faith allows him to derive a source for this conventional

trope, and it allows him to state his truth in paradoxes. He relies on the

conventional idea that death is an end, and a conqueror, and the only all-

powerful force, to make the paradoxes that lend his argument the force of

mystery—the mystery of faith.

The Elements and Theme

As you create an informal outline, your understanding of the poem will grow, change, and finally, solidify. You will develop a much clearer sense of what the poem’s elements combine to create, and you will have chosen a scheme for organizing your argument. The next step before drafting is to determine the paper’s thesis, which will not only keep your paper focused but will also help you center your thoughts. For papers that discuss how the elements of poetry come together, the thesis is a single and concise statement of what the elements combine to create — the idea around which all the elements revolve. In the earlier discussion of Robert Herrick’s “Delight in Disorder,” for example, the two elements, rhythm and rhyme, work together to create the speaker’s self-directed irony. To state this as a thesis, we might say that by making his own rhythm and rhyme “too precise,” Herrick’s speaker is making fun of himself while complimenting a certain type of woman. (You may ask yourself if he’s doing a little flirting.) Once you understand how all of the elements of the poem fit together and have articulated your understanding in the thesis state- ment, the next step is to flesh out your argument. By including quota- tions from the poem to illustrate the points you will be making, you will better explain exactly how each element relates to the others and, more specifically, to your thesis, and you will have created a finished paper that helps readers navigate the poem’s geography.

FINAL PAPER: A SAMPLE EXPLICATION The Use of Conventional Metaphors for Death in John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

In Rose’s final draft, she focuses on the use of metaphor in “Death Be Not Proud.” Her essay provides a coherent reading that relates each line of the poem to the speaker’s intense awareness of death. Although the essay discusses each stanza in order, the introductory paragraph provides a brief

958 writing about poetry

overview explaining how the poem’s metaphor and arguments contribute to its total meaning. In addition, Rose does not hesitate to discuss a line out of sequence when it can be usefully connected to another phrase. She also works quotations into her sentences to support her points. When she adds something to a quotation to clarify it, she encloses her words in brackets so that they will not be mistaken for the poet’s, and she uses a slash to indicate line divisions: “soonest . . . with thee do go, / [for] Rest of their bones, and soul’s delivery.” Finally, Rose is sure to cite the line numbers for any direct quotations from the poem. As you read through her final draft, remember that the word explication comes from the Latin explicare, “to unfold.” How successful do you think Rose is at unfolding this poem to reveal how its elements — here ranging from metaphor, structure, meter, personification, paradox, and irony to theme — contribute to its meaning?

Thesis providing interpretation of the poem’s use of metaphor and how it contributes to the poem’s central argument.

Discussion of how form and meter contribute to the poem’s central argument.

Bostwick 1

Rose Bostwick

English 101

Professor Hart

February 24, 2010

The Use of Conventional Metaphors for Death

in John Donne’s “Death Be Not Proud”

In the sonnet that begins “Death be not proud . . .” John Donne argues that

death is not “mighty and dreadful” but is more like its metaphorical representation,

sleep. Death, Donne puts forth, is even a source of pleasure and rest. The poet builds

this argument on two foundations. One is made up of the metaphors and literary

conventions for death: Death is compared with sleep and is often personified so that

it can be addressed directly. The poem is an address to death that at first seems

paradoxical and somewhat playful, but which then rises in all the emotion of faith

as it reveals the second foundation of the argument—the Christian belief in the

immortality of the soul. Seen against the backdrop of this belief, death loses its

powerful threat and is seen as only a metaphorical sleep, or rest.

The poem is an ironic argument that proceeds according to the

structure of the sonnet form. Each quatrain contains a new development or

aspect of the argument, and the final couplet serves as a conclusion. The

metrical scheme is mainly iambic pentameter, but in several places in the

poem, the stress pattern is altered for emphasis. For example, the first foot

of the poem is inverted, so that “Death,” the first word, receives the stress.

final paper: a sample explication 959

Bostwick 2

This announces to us right away that Death is being personified and

addressed. This inversion also serves to begin the poem energetically and

forcefully. The second line behaves in the same way. The first syllable of

“Mighty” receives the stress, emphasizing the meaning of the word and its

assumed relation to Death.

This first quatrain offers the first paradox and sets up the argument

that death has been conventionally personified with the wrong attributes,

might and dreadfulness. The poet tells death not to be proud, “though some

have called thee / Mighty and dreadful,” because, he says, death is “not so”

(lines 1-2). Donne will turn this conventional characterization of death on

its head with the paradox of the third and fourth lines: he says the people

overthrown by death (as if by a conqueror) “Die not, poor Death, nor yet

canst thou kill me.” These lines establish the paradox of death not being

able to cause death.

The next quatrain will not begin to answer the question of why this

paradox is so, but will posit another slight paradox—the idea of death as

pleasurable. In lines 5-8, Donne uses the literary convention of describing

death as a metaphorical sleep, or rest, to construct the argument that death

must give pleasure: “From rest and sleep, which but thy pictures be, / Much

pleasure; then from thee much more must flow” (5-6). At this point, the

argument seems almost playful, but is carefully hinting at the solemnity of

the deeper foundation of the belief in immortality. The metaphor of sleep

for death includes the idea of waking; one doesn’t sleep forever. The next

two lines put forth the idea that death is pleasurable enough to be desired

by “our best men” who “soonest . . . with thee do go, / [for] Rest of their

bones, and soul’s delivery” (7-8). This last line comes closer to announcing

the true reason for death’s powerlessness and pleasure: It is the way to

the “soul’s delivery” from the body and life on earth, and implicitly, into

another, better realm.

A new reason for death’s powerlessness arises in the next four lines. The

poet says to death:

Thou art slave to Fate, Chance, kings, and desperate men,

And dost with Poison, War, and Sickness dwell;

And poppy or charms can make us sleep as well,

And better than thy stroke; why swell’st thou then? (9-12)

Discussion of how personifica- tion contri- butes to the poem’s central argument.

Discussion of how meta- phor of sleep and idea of immortality support the poem’s central argument.

960 writing about poetry

Bostwick 3

Donne argues here that there are forces more powerful than death that actually

control it. Fate and chance determine when death occurs, and to whom it

comes. Kings, with the powers of law and war, can summon death and throw it

on whom they wish. And desperate men, murderers or suicides, can also summon

death with the strength of their emotions. In lines 11 and 12, Donne again uses

the metaphor of death as a kind of sleep, but says that drugs or “charms” give

one a better sleep than death. And he asks playfully why death should be so

proud, after all these illustrations of its weakness have been given: “why swell’st

thou then?” (12).

Finally, with the last couplet, Donne reveals the true, deeper reason

behind his argument that death should not be proud of its power. These lines

also offer an explanation of the metaphor for death of sleep, or rest: “One short

sleep past, we wake eternally / And death shall be no more; Death, thou shalt

die” (13-14). After death, the soul lives on, according to Christian theology

and belief. In the Christian heaven, where the soul is immortal, death will no

longer exist, and so this last paradox, “Death, thou shalt die,” becomes true.

Again in this line, a significant inversion of metrical stress occurs. “Death,” in

the second clause, receives the stress, recalling the first line, emphasizing that

it is an address and giving the clause a forceful sense of finality. His belief in

the immortality of the soul enables Donne to “prove” in this argument that

death is in actuality like its metaphorical representation, sleep. His faith allows

him to derive a source for this conventional metaphor and to “disprove” the

metaphor of death as an all-powerful conqueror. His Christian beliefs also allow

him to state his truth in paradoxes, the mysteries that are justified by the

mystery of faith.

Bostwick 4

Work Cited

Donne, John. “Death Be Not Proud.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston:

Bedford/St. Martin’s, 2011. 954. Print.

Discussion of how language and tone contribute to the poem’s central argument.

Discussion of function of religious faith in the poem and how word order and meter create emphasis.

Conclusion supporting thesis in context of poet’s beliefs.

a sample student explication 961

A SAMPLE STUDENT EXPLICATION A Reading of Emily Dickinson’s “There’s a certain Slant of light”

The sample paper by Bonnie Katz is the result of an assignment calling for an explication of about 750 words on any poem by Emily Dickinson. Katz selected “There’s a certain Slant of light.”

Emily Dickinson (1830–1886)

There’s a certain Slant of light c. 1861

There’s a certain Slant of light, Winter Afternoons — That oppresses, like the Heft Of Cathedral Tunes —

Heavenly Hurt, it gives us — 5 We can fi nd no scar, But internal difference, Where the Meanings, are —

None may teach it — Any — ’Tis the Seal Despair — 10 An imperial affl iction Sent us of the Air —

When it comes, the Landscape listens — Shadows — hold their breath — When it goes, ’tis like the Distance 15 On the look of Death —

Bonnie Katz’s essay comments on every line of the poem and provides a coherent reading that relates each line to the speaker’s intense aware- ness of death. Although the essay discusses each stanza in the order that it ap pears, the introductory paragraph provides a brief overview explain- ing how the poem’s images contribute to its total meaning. In addition, the student does not hesitate to discuss a line out of sequence when it can be usefully connected to another phrase. This is especially apparent in the third paragraph, in her discussion of stanzas 2 and 3. The fi nal paragraph describes some of the formal elements of the poem. It might be argued that this discussion could have been integrated into the previous paragraphs rather than placed at the end, but the student does make a connection in her concluding sentence between the pattern of language and its meaning. Several other matters are worth noticing. The student works quota- tions into her own sentences to support her points. She quotes exactly

962 writing about poetry

as the words appear in the poem, even Dickinson’s irregular use of cap- ital letters. When something is added to a quotation to clarify it, it is enclosed in brackets so that the essayist’s words will not be mistaken for the poet’s: “Seal [of] Despair.” A slash is used to indicate line divisions as in “imperial affl iction / Sent us of the Air.”

Thesis providing overview of explication.

Line-by-line explication of fi rst stanza, focusing on connotations of words and imagery, in relation to mood and meaning of poem as a whole; supported with references to the text.

Katz 1

Bonnie Katz

Professor Quiello

English 109–2

March 23, 2010

A Reading of Emily Dickinson’s

“There’s a certain Slant of light”

Because Emily Dickinson did not provide titles for her poetry, editors

follow the customary practice of using the first line of a poem as its title.

However, a more appropriate title for “There’s a certain Slant of light,” one that

suggests what the speaker in the poem is most concerned about, can be drawn

from the poem’s last line, which ends with “the look of Death” (Dickinson,

line 16). Although the first line begins with an image of light, nothing bright,

carefree, or cheerful appears in the poem. Instead, the predominant mood

and images are darkened by a sense of despair resulting from the speaker’s

awareness of death.

In the first stanza, the “certain Slant of light” is associated with “Winter

Afternoons” (2), a phrase that connotes the end of a day, a season, and even

life itself. Such light is hardly warm or comforting. Not a ray or beam, this

slanting light suggests something unusual or distorted and creates in the

speaker a certain slant on life that is consistent with the cold, dark mood that

winter afternoons can produce. Like the speaker, most of us have seen and felt

this sort of light: it “oppresses” (3) and pervades our sense of things when we

encounter it. Dickinson uses the senses of hearing and touch as well as sight

to describe the overwhelming oppressiveness that the speaker experiences.

The light is transformed into sound by a simile that tells us it is “like the Heft /

Of Cathedral Tunes” (3-4). Moreover, the “Heft” of that sound—the slow,

solemn measures of tolling church bells and organ music—weighs heavily on our

spirits. Through the use of shifting imagery, Dickinson evokes a kind of spiritual

numbness that we keenly feel and perceive through our senses.

a sample student explication 963

Katz 2

By associating the winter light with “Cathedral Tunes,” Dickinson lets us

know that the speaker is concerned about more than the weather. Whatever it

is that “oppresses” is related by connotation to faith, mortality, and God. The

second and third stanzas offer several suggestions about this connection. The

pain caused by the light is a “Heavenly Hurt” (5). This “imperial affliction /

Sent us of the Air” (11-12) apparently comes from God above, and yet it seems

to be part of the very nature of life. The oppressiveness we feel is in the air,

and it can neither be specifically identified at this point in the poem nor be

eliminated, for “None may teach it—Any” (9). All we know is that existence

itself seems depressing under the weight of this “Seal [of] Despair” (10). The

impression left by this “Seal” is stamped within the mind or soul rather than

externally. “We can find no scar” (6), but once experienced this oppressiveness

challenges our faith in life and its “Meanings” (8).

The final stanza does not explain what those “Meanings” are, but it does

make clear that the speaker is acutely aware of death. As the winter daylight

fades, Dickinson projects the speaker’s anxiety onto the surrounding landscape

and shadows, which will soon be engulfed by the darkness that follows this

light: “the Landscape listens— / Shadows—hold their breath” (13-14).

This image firmly aligns the winter light in the first stanza with darkness.

Paradoxically, the light in this poem illuminates the nature of darkness.

Tension is released when the light is completely gone, but what remains

is the despair that the “imperial affliction” has imprinted on the speaker’s

sensibilities, for it is “like the Distance / On the look of Death—” (15-16).

There can be no relief from what that “certain Slant of light” has revealed

because what has been experienced is permanent—like the fixed stare in the

eyes of someone who is dead.

The speaker’s awareness of death is conveyed in a thoughtful, hushed

tone. The lines are filled with fluid l and smooth s sounds that are appropriate

for the quiet, meditative voice in the poem. The voice sounds tentative and

uncertain—perhaps a little frightened. This seems to be reflected in the slightly

irregular meter of the lines. The stanzas are trochaic with the second and fourth

lines of each stanza having five syllables, but no stanza is identical because

each works a slight variation on the first stanza’s seven syllables in the first and

third lines. The rhymes also combine exact patterns with variations. The first

and third lines of each stanza are not exact rhymes, but the second and fourth

lines are ex act so that the paired words are more closely related: Afternoons,

Explication of second, third, and fourth stanzas, focusing on connotations of words and imagery in relation to mood and meaning of poem as a whole. Supported with referen- ces to the text.

Explication of the elements of rhythm and sound throughout poem.

Conclusion tying explica- tion of rhythm and sound with explication of words and imagery in previous paragraphs.

964 writing about poetry

Katz 3

Tunes; scar, are; Despair, Air; and breath, Death. There is a pattern to the poem,

but it is unobtrusively woven into the speaker’s voice in much the same way

that “the look of Death” (16) is subtly present in the images and language of

the poem.

Katz 4

Work Cited

Dickinson, Emily. “There’s a certain Slant of light.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael

Meyer. Boston: Bedford/St. Martin’s, 2011. 961. Print.

FROM READING TO WRIT ING Because dramatic literature is written to be performed, writing about read- ing a play may seem twice removed from what playwrights intend the expe- rience of drama to be: a live audience responding to live actors. Although reading a play creates distance between yourself and a performance of it, reading a play can actually bring you closer to understanding that what supports a stage production of any play is the literary dimension of a script. Writing about that script — examining carefully how the language of the stage directions, setting, exposition, dialogue, plot, and other dra- matic elements serve to produce effects and meanings — can enhance an imaginative re-creation of a performance. In a sense, writing about a play gauges your own interpretative response as an audience member — the dif- ference, of course, is that instead of applauding, you are typing. “There’s the rub,” as Hamlet might say, because you’re working with the precision of your fi ngertips rather than with the hearty response of your palms. Composing an essay about drama records more than your response to a play; writing also helps you explore, clarify, and discover di mensions of the play you may not have perceived by simply watch- ing a performance of it. Writing is work, of course, but it’s the kind of work that brings you closer to your own imagination as well as to the play. That process is more accessible if you read carefully, take notes, and annotate the text to generate ideas (for a discussion of this process see

965

31 Writing about Drama

When you create drama, you look for the best confl ict.

— JANE ANDERSON

966 writing about drama

Chapter 28, “Reading and the Writing Process”). This chapter offers a set of questions to help you read and write about drama

The questions in this chapter can help you consider important ele- ments that reveal a play’s effects and meanings. These questions are general and will not, therefore, always be relevant to a particular play. Many of them, however, should prove to be useful for think- ing, talking, and writing about drama.

1. Did you enjoy the play? What, specifi cally, pleased or displeased you about what was expressed and how it was expressed?

2. What is the signifi cance of the play’s title? How does it suggest the author’s overall emphasis?

3. What information do the stage directions provide about the characters, ac tion, and setting? Are these directions primarily descriptive, or are they also interpretive?

4. How is the exposition presented? What does it reveal? How does the playwright’s choice not to dramatize certain events on stage help to determine what the focus of the play is?

5. In what ways is the setting important? Would the play be altered signifi cantly if the setting were changed?

6. Are foreshadowings used to suggest what is to come? Are fl ashbacks used to dramatize what has already happened?

7. What is the major confl ict the protagonist faces? What com- plications constitute the rising action? Where is the climax? Is the confl ict resolved?

8. Are one or more subplots used to qualify or complicate the main plot? Is the plot unifi ed so that each incident somehow has a function that relates it to some other element in the play?

9. Does the author purposely avoid a pyramidal plot structure of rising action, climax, and falling action? Is the plot experimen- tal? Is the plot logically and chronologically organized, or is it fantastical or absurd? What effects are produced by the plot? How does it refl ect the author’s view of life?

10. Who is the protagonist? Who (or what) is the antagonist? 11. By what means does the playwright reveal character? What do

the characters’ names, physical qualities, actions, and words con- vey about them? What do the characters reveal about each other?

12. What is the purpose of the minor characters? Are they indi- vidualized, or do they primarily represent ideas or attitudes? Are any character foils used?

Questions for Responsive Reading and Writing

from reading to writing 967

13. Do the characters all use the same kind of language, or is their speech differentiated? Is it formal or informal? How do the characters’ diction and manner of speaking serve to character- ize them?

14. Does your response to the characters change in the course of the play? What causes the change?

15. Are words and images repeated in the play so that they take on special meanings? Which speeches seem particularly impor- tant? Why?

16. How does the playwright’s use of language contribute to the tone of the play? Is the dialogue, for example, predominantly light, humorous, relaxed, sentimental, sad, angry, intense, or violent?

17. Are any symbols used in the play? Which actions, charac- ters, settings, objects, or words convey more than their literal meanings?

18. Are any unfamiliar theatrical conventions used that present problems in understanding the play? How does knowing more about the nature of the theater from which the play originated help to resolve these problems?

19. Is the theme stated directly, or is it developed implicitly through the plot, characters, or some other element? Does the theme confi rm or challenge most people’s values?

20. How does the play refl ect the values of the society in which it is set and in which it was written?

21. How does the play refl ect or challenge your own values? 22. Is there a recording, fi lm, or videocassette of the play available

in your library or media center? How does this version com- pare with your own reading?

23. How would you produce the play on a stage? Consider scen- ery, costumes, casting, and characterizations. What would you emphasize most in your pro duction?

24. How might biographical information about the author help the reader to grasp the central concerns of the play?

25. How might historical information about the play provide a useful context for interpretation?

26. To what extent do your own experiences, values, beliefs, and assumptions inform your interpretation?

27. What kinds of evidence from the play are you focusing on to support your interpretation? Does your interpretation leave out any important elements that might undercut or qualify your interpretation?

28. Given that there are a variety of ways to interpret the play, which one seems the most useful to you?

968 writing about drama

Comparison and Contrast

An essay assignment in literature courses often combined with ana- lytic topics is the type that requires you to write about similarities and differences between or within works. You might be asked to discuss “How Sounds Express Meanings in May Swenson’s ‘A Nosty Fright’ and Lewis Carroll’s ‘Jabberwocky,’ ” or “Sammy’s and Stokesie’s Atti- tudes about Conformity in Updike’s ‘A & P.’ ” A comparison of either topic would emphasize their similarities, while a contrast would stress their differences. It is pos sible, of course, to include both perspectives in a paper if you fi nd signifi cant likenesses and differences. A compar- ison of Andrew Marvell’s “To His Coy Mistress” and Ann Lauinger’s “Marvell Noir” would, for example, yield similarities because each poem describes a man urging his lover to make the most of their pre- cious time together; however, important differences also exist in the tone and theme of each poem that would constitute a contrast. (You should, incidentally, be aware that the term comparison is sometimes used inclusively to refer to both similarities and differences. If you are assigned a comparison of two works, be sure that you understand what your instructor’s expectations are; you may be required to include both approaches in the essay.) There is no single way to organize comparative papers since each topic is likely to have its own particular issues to resolve, but it is use- ful to be aware of two basic patterns that can be helpful with a com- parison, a contrast, or a combination of both. One method that can be effective for relatively short papers consists of dividing the paper in half, fi rst discuss ing one work and then the other. Here, for example, is a par- tial informal outline for a discussion of Sophocles’ Oedipus the King and Shakespeare’s Othello; the topic is a comparison and contrast: “Oedipus and Othello as Tragic Figures.”

1. Oedipus

a. The nature of the conflict

b. Strengths and stature

c. Weaknesses and mistakes

d. What is learned

2. Othello

a. The nature of the conflict

b. Strengths and stature

c. Weaknesses and mistakes

d. What is learned

This organizational strategy can be effective provided that the second part of the paper combines the discussion of Othello with references to

969

Oedipus so that the thesis is made clear and the paper unifi ed without being repetitive. If the two characters were treated entirely separately, then the discussion would be merely parallel rather than integrated. In a lengthy paper, this organization probably would not work well because a reader would have diffi culty remembering the points made in the fi rst half as he or she reads on. Thus, for a longer paper it is usually better to create a more inte- grated structure that discusses both works as you take up each item in your outline. Here is the second basic pattern using the elements in the partial outline just cited:

1. The nature of the conflict

a. Oedipus

b. Othello

2. Strengths and stature

a. Oedipus

b. Othello

3. Weaknesses and mistakes

a. Oedipus

b. Othello

4. What is learned

a. Oedipus

b. Othello

This pattern allows you to discuss any number of topics without requir- ing your reader to recall what you fi rst said about the confl ict Oedipus confronts before you discuss Othello’s confl icts fi fteen pages later. How- ever you structure your comparison or contrast paper, make certain that a reader can follow its elements and keep track of its thesis.

970 writing about drama

971

972 writing about drama

973

Does anyone know a good poet who’s a vegetarian?

— DONALD HALL

A close reading of a primary source such as a short story, poem, or play can give insights into a work’s themes and effects, but sometimes you will want to know more. A published commentary by a critic who knows the work well and is familiar with the author’s life and times can provide insights that otherwise may not be available. Such comments and interpretations — known as secondary sources — are, of course, not a substitute for the work itself, but they often can take you into a work further than if you made the journey by yourself.

After imagination, good sense, and energy, perhaps the next most im portant quality for writing a research paper is the ability to organize material. A research paper on a literary topic requires a writer to take account of quite a lot at once: The text, ideas, sources, and documentation techniques all make demands on one’s efforts to present a topic clearly and convincingly. The following list should give you a sense of what goes into creating a research paper. Although some steps on the list can be folded into one another, they offer an overview of the work that will involve you:

1. Choosing a topic 2. Finding sources 3. Evaluating sources 4. Taking notes

32 The Literary

Research Paper

© Nancy Crampton.

974 the literary research paper

5. Developing a thesis 6. Organizing an outline 7. Writing drafts 8. Revising 9. Documenting sources 10. Preparing the final draft and proofreading

WEB

more help with research and documentation A Research and Documentation Guide at Re:Writing for Literature (www.bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit) gives concrete advice for working with sources — how to find, evaluate, summarize, interpret, and document them. Advice for avoiding plagiarism and scorable exercises help you evaluate and improve your research and documentation practices.

Even if you have never written a research paper, you most likely have al ready had experience choosing a topic, developing a thesis, organizing an outline, and writing a draft that you then revised, proofread, and handed in. Those skills represent six of the ten items on the list. This chapter briefly reviews some of these steps and focuses on the remaining tasks, unique to research paper assignments.

CHOOSING A TOPIC Chapter 28 discussed the importance of reading a work closely and taking careful notes as a means of generating topics for writing about literature. If you know a work well and record your understanding of it in notes, you’ll have impressions and ideas to choose from for potential topics. The student author of the sample research paper “How the Narrator Cultivates a Rose for Emily” (p. 987) was asked to write a five-page paper that demonstrated some familiarity with published critical perspectives on a Faulkner story of his choice. Before looking into critical discussions of the story, he read “A Rose for Emily” several times, taking notes and making comments in the margin of his textbook on each reading. What prompted his choice of “A Rose for Emily” was a class discussion in which many of his classmates found the story’s title inappropriate or misleading because they could not understand how and why the story

finding sources 975

constituted a tribute to Emily given that she murdered a man and slept with his dead body over many years. The gruesome surprise ending revealing Emily as a murderer and necrophiliac hardly seemed to warrant a rose and a tribute for the central character. Why did Faulkner use such a title? Only after having thoroughly examined the story did the student go to the li brary to see what professional critics had to say about this question.

FINDING SOURCES Whether your college library is large or small, its reference librarians can usually help you locate secondary sources about a particular work or au thor. Unless you choose a very recently published story, poem, play, or essay about which little or nothing has been written, you should be able to find out more about a literary work efficiently and quickly. Even if a work has been published recently, you can probably find relevant information on the Internet (see Electronic Sources, below).

Electronic Sources

Researchers can locate materials in a variety of sources, including library online catalogs, specialized encyclopedias, bibliographies, and indexes to periodicals. Libraries also provide online databases that you can access from home. This can be an efficient way to establish a bibliography on a specific topic. Consult a reference librarian about how to use your library’s online re sources and to determine how they will help you research your topic. In addition to the many electronic databases ranging from your li brary’s computerized holdings to the many specialized CD-ROMs available, such as MLA International Bibliography (a major source for articles and books on literary topics), the Internet also connects millions of sites with primary sources (the full texts of stories, poems, plays, and essays) and secondary sources (biography or criticism). If you have not had practice with research on the Web, it is a good idea to get guidance from your instructor or a librarian, and by using your library’s home page as a starting point. Browsing on the Internet can be absorbing as well as informative, but unless you have plenty of time to spare, don’t wait until the last minute to locate your electronic sources. You might find yourself trying to find reliable, professional sources among thousands of sites if you enter an unqualified entry such as “Charles Dickens.” Here are several especially useful electronic databases that will provide you with bibliographic information in literature studies. Your school’s English Department home page may offer online support as well. Internet Public Library Online Criticism. <http://www.ipl.org/div/litcrit>. Maintained by the University of Michigan, this site provides links to literary criticism by author, work, country, or period.

976 the literary research paper

JSTOR. An index that also offers abstracts of journal articles on language and literature. A Literary Index. <http://www.vanderbilt.edu/AnS/english/flackcj/ LitIndex.html>. An extensive list of Internet literary resources for students and scholars. MLA International Bibliography. This is a standard resource for articles and books on literary subjects that allows topical and keyword searches. Voice of the Shuttle. <http://vos.ucsb.edu>. Maintained by the Univer- sity of California, this site is a wide-ranging resource for British and American literary studies. Do remember that your own college library offers a broad range of electronic sources. If you’re feeling uncertain, intimidated, and profoundly unplugged, your reference librarians are there to help you to get started.

EVALUATING SOURCES AND TAKING NOTES Evaluate your sources for their reliability and the quality of their evidence. Check to see whether an article or book has been superseded by later studies; try to use up-to-date sources. A popular magazine article will probably not be as authoritative as an article in a scholarly journal. Sources that are well documented with primary and secondary materials usually in dicate that the author has done his or her homework. Books printed by univer sity presses and established trade presses are preferable to books privately printed. But there are always exceptions. If you are uncertain about how to assess a book, try to find out something about the author. Are there any other books listed in the online catalog that indicate the author’s expertise? What do book reviews say about the work? Three valuable indexes to book reviews of literary studies are Book Review Digest, Book Review Index, and Index to Book Reviews in the Humanities. Your reference librarian can show you how to use these important tools for evaluating books. Reviews can be a quick means to gain a broad perspective on writers and their works because reviewers often survey previous approaches to the topic under discussion. A cautionary note: Assessing online sources can be more problematic than evaluating print sources because anyone with a computer and online access can publish on the Internet. Be sure to determine the nature of your sources and their authority. Is the site the work of a professional or an amateur? Is the information likely to be reliable? Is it documented? Before placing your trust in an Internet source, make sure that it warrants your confidence. As you prepare a list of reliable sources relevant to your topic, record the necessary bibliographic information so that it will be available when you make up the list of works cited for your paper. For a book, include the author, complete title, place of publication, publisher, and

Brought to you by LibraryPirate... developing a thesis and organizing the paper 977

date. For an article, include author, complete title, name of periodical, volume number, date of issue, and page numbers. For an Internet source, include the author, complete title, database title, periodical or site name, date of posting of the site (or last update), name of the institution or organization, and date when you accessed the source. Once you have assembled a tentative bibliography, you will need to take notes on your readings. Be sure to keep track of where the information comes from by writing the author’s name and page number. If you use more than one work by the same author, include a brief title as well as the author’s name.

WEB

more help with evaluating and working with sources In addition to the Research and Documentation Guide (see p. 974), more Bedford/St. Martin’s resources for evaluating, working with, and doc u menting sources are available at www.bedfordstmartins.com/ rewritinglit.

DEVELOPING A THESIS AND ORGANIZING THE PAPER As the notes on “A Rose for Emily” accumulated, the student sorted them into topics:

1. Publication history of the story

2. Faulkner on the title of “A Rose for Emily”

3. Is Emily simply insane?

4. The purpose of Emily’s servant

5. The narrator

6. The townspeople’s view of Emily

7. The surprise ending

8. Emily’s admirable qualities

9. Homer’s character

The student quickly saw that items 1, 4, and 9 were not directly related to his topic concerning the significance of the story’s title. The remain- ing numbers (2, 3, 5, 6, 7, 8) are the topics taken up in the paper. The

978 the literary research paper

student had begun his reading of secondary sources with a tentative thesis that stemmed from his question about the appropriateness of the title. That “why” shaped itself into the expectation that he would have a thesis something like this: “The title justifies Emily’s murder of Homer because . . .” The assumption was that he would find information that indicated some specific reason. But the more he read, the more he discovered that it was possible to speak only about how the narrator prevents the reader from making a premature judgment about Emily rather than justifying her actions. Hence, he wisely changed his tentative thesis to this final statement — “The narrator describes incidents and withholds information in such a way as to cause the reader to sympathize with Emily before her crime is revealed.” This thesis helped the student explain why the title is accurate and useful rather than misleading. Because the assignment was relatively brief, the student did not write up a formal outline but instead organized his notes and proceeded to write the first draft from them.

REVISING After writing your first draft, you should review the advice and revision checklist on pages 939–40 so that you can read your paper with an objective eye. Two days after writing his next-to-last draft, the writer of “How the Narrator Cultivates a Rose for Emily” realized that he had allotted too much space for critical discussions of the narrator that were not directly related to his approach. He wanted to demonstrate a familiarity with these studies, but it was not essential that he summarize or discuss them. He corrected this by consolidating parenthetical references: “Though a number of studies discuss the story’s narrator (see, for example, Curry; Kempton; Sullivan; and Watkins). . . .” His earlier draft had included summaries of these studies that were tangential to his argument. The point is that he saw this himself after he took some time to approach the paper from a fresh perspective.

DOCUMENTING SOURCES AND AVOIDING PL AGIARISM You must acknowledge the use of a source when you (1) quote someone’s exact words, (2) summarize or borrow someone’s opinions or ideas, or (3) use information and facts that are not considered to be common knowledge. The purpose of this documentation is to acknowledge your sources, to demonstrate that you are familiar with what others have thought about the topic, and to provide your reader access to

documenting sources and avoiding plagiarism 979

the same sources. If your paper is not adequately documented, it will be vulnerable to a charge of plagiarism — the presentation of someone else’s work as your own. Conscious plagiarism is easy to avoid; honesty takes care of that for most people. However, there is a more problematic form of plagiarism that is often inadvertent. Whether inadequate documentation is conscious or not, plagiarism is a serious matter and must be avoided. Papers can be evaluated only by what is on the page, not by their writers’ intentions. Let’s look more closely at what constitutes plagiarism. Consider the following passage quoted from John Gassner’s introduction to Four Great Plays by Henrik Ibsen (New York: Bantam, 1959, p. viii):

Today it seems incredible that A Doll’s House° should have created the furor it did. In exploding Victorian ideals of feminine dependency the play seemed revolutionary in 1879. When its heroine Nora left her home in search of self- development it seemed as if the sanctity of marriage had been fl outed by a playwright treading the stage with cloven-feet.

Now read this plagiarized version:

A Doll’s House created a furor in 1879 by blowing up Victorian ideals about a woman’s place

in the world. Nora’s search for self-fulfillment outside her home appeared to be an attack

on the sanctity of marriage by a cloven-footed playwright.

Though the writer has shortened the passage and made some changes in the wording, this paragraph is basically the same as Gassner’s. Indeed, several of his phrases are lifted almost intact. Even if a parenthetical reference had been included at the end of the passage and the source included in “Works Cited,” the language of this passage would still be plagiarism be cause it is presented as the writer’s own. Both language and ideas must be acknowledged. Here is an adequately documented version of the passage:

John Gassner has observed how difficult it is for today’s readers to comprehend the intense

reaction against A Doll’s House in 1879. When Victorian audiences watched Nora walk out of

her stifling marriage, they assumed that Ibsen was expressing a devilish contempt for the

“sanctity of marriage” (viii).

This passage makes absolutely clear that the observation is Gassner’s, and it is written in the student’s own language with the exception of one quoted phrase. Had Gassner not been named in the passage, the parenthetical reference would have included his name: (Gassner viii).

°Rolf Fjelde, whose translation is included in Chapter 26, renders the title as A Doll House in order to emphasize that the whole household, including Torvald as well as Nora, lives an unreal, doll-like existence.

980 the literary research paper

Some mention should be made of the notion of common knowledge before we turn to the standard format for documenting sources. Observations and facts that are widely known and routinely included in many of your sources do not require documentation. It is not necessary to cite a source for the fact that Alfred, Lord Tennyson was born in 1809 or that Ernest Hemingway loved to fish and hunt. Sometimes it will be difficult for you to determine what common knowledge is for a topic that you know little about. If you are in doubt, the best strategy is to supply a reference. There are two basic ways to document sources. Traditionally, sources have been cited in footnotes at the bottom of each page or in endnotes grouped together at the end of the paper. Here is how a portion of the sample paper would look if footnotes were used instead of parenthetical documentation:

As Heller points out, before we learn of Emily’s bizarre behavior we see her as a

sympathetic—if antiquated—figure in a town whose life and concerns have passed

her by; hence, “we are disposed to see Emily as victimized.”1

1Terry Heller, “The Telltale Hair: A Critical Study of William Faulkner’s ‘A Rose for

Emily,’ ” Arizona Quarterly 28.4 (1972): 306. Print.

Unlike endnotes, which are double spaced throughout under the title of “Notes” on separate pages at the end of the paper, footnotes appear four spaces below the text. They are single spaced with double spaces between notes. No doubt you will have encountered these documentation methods in your reading. A different style is recommended, however, in the Modern Language Association’s MLA Handbook for Writers of Research Papers, 7th ed. (New York: MLA, 2009). This style employs parenthetical references within the text of the paper; these are keyed to an alphabetical list of works cited at the end of the paper. This method is designed to be less distracting for the reader. Unless you are instructed to follow the footnote or endnote style for documentation, use the parenthetical method explained in the next section.

The List of Works Cited

Items in the list of works cited are arranged alphabetically according to the author’s last name and indented a half inch after the first line. This allows the reader to locate quickly the complete bibliographic information for the author’s name cited within the parenthetical reference in the text. The following are common entries for literature papers and should be used as models. If some of your sources are of a different nature, consult the MLA Handbook for Writers of Research Papers,

documenting sources and avoiding plagiarism 981

7th ed. (New York: MLA, 2009); or, for the latest updates, check MLA’s Web site at <www.mlahandbook.org>. The following entries include examples to follow when citing electronic sources. For electronic sources, include as many of the following elements as apply and as are available:

• Author’s name • Title of work (if it’s a book, italicize the title; if it’s a short work,

such as an article or poem, use quotation marks) • Title of the site (or of the publication, if you’re citing an online

periodical, for example), italicized • Sponsor or publisher of the site (if not named as the author) • Date of publication or last update • Medium of publication • Date you accessed the source

A book by one author

Hendrickson, Robert. The Literary Life and Other Curiosities. New York: Viking, 1981. Print.

An online book

Frost, Robert. A Boy’s Will. New York: Holt, 1915. Bartleby.com: Great Books Online. Web.

11 May 2009.

Part of an online book

Frost, Robert. “Into My Own.” A Boy’s Will. New York: Holt, 1915. N. pag. Bartleby.com:

Great Books Online. Web. 11 May 2009.

Notice that the author’s name is in reverse order. This information, along with the full title, place of publication, publisher, and date, should be taken from the title and copyright pages of the book. The title is italicized and is also followed by a period. If the city of publication is well known, it is unnecessary to include the state. Use the publication date on the title page; if none appears there, use the copyright date (after ©) on the back of the title page. Include the medium of publication (print, Web).

A book by two authors

Horton, Rod W., and Herbert W. Edwards. Backgrounds of American Literary Thought. 3rd ed.

Englewood Cliffs: Prentice, 1974. Print.

Only the first author’s name is given in reverse order. The edition number appears after the title.

982 the literary research paper

A book with more than three authors

Gates, Henry Louis, Jr., et al., eds. The Norton Anthology of African American Literature. New

York: Norton, 1997. Print.

(Note: The abbreviation et al. means “and others.”)

A work in a collection by the same author

O’Connor, Flannery. “Greenleaf.” The Complete Stories. By O’Connor. New York: Farrar, 1971.

311-34. Print.

Page numbers are given because the reference is to only a single story in the collection.

A work in a collection by a different writer

Frost, Robert. “Design.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston: Bedford/St. Martin’s,

2011. 372. Print.

Sun, Nilaja. No Child. . . . Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer. Boston: Bedford/St. Martin’s,

2011. 905-26. Print.

The titles of poems and short stories are enclosed in quotation marks; plays and novels are italicized.

Cross-reference to a collection

Frost, Robert. “Design.” Meyer. 372.

Meyer, Michael, ed. Literature to Go. Boston: Bedford/St. Martin’s, 2011. Print.

O’Connor, Flannery. “A Good Man Is Hard to Find.” Meyer. 261-73.

Sun, Nilaja. No Child. . . . Meyer. 905-26.

When citing more than one work from the same collection, use a cross- reference to avoid repeating the same bibliographic information that ap pears in the main entry for the collection.

A translated book

Grass, Günter. The Tin Drum. Trans. Ralph Manheim. New York: Vintage-Random, 1962.

Print.

An introduction, preface, foreword, or afterword

Johnson, Thomas H. Introduction. Final Harvest: Emily Dickinson’s Poems. By Emily

Dickinson. Boston: Little, Brown, 1961. vii-xiv. Print.

documenting sources and avoiding plagiarism 983

This cites the introduction by Johnson. Notice that a colon is used between the book’s main title and subtitle. To cite a poem in this book, use this method:

Dickinson, Emily. “A Tooth upon Our Peace.” Final Harvest: Emily Dickinson’s Poems. Ed.

Thomas H. Johnson. Boston: Little, Brown, 1961. 110. Print.

An entry in an encyclopedia

“Wordsworth, William.” The New Encyclopedia Britannica. 1984 ed. Print.

Because this encyclopedia is organized alphabetically, no page number or other information is given, only the edition number (if available) and date.

An article in a magazine

Morrow, Lance. “Scribble, Scribble, Eh, Mr. Toad.” Time 24 Feb. 1986: 84. Print.

An article from an online magazine

Wasserman, Elizabeth. “The Byron Complex.” Atlantic Online. The Atlantic Monthly Group,

22 Sept. 2002. Web. 4 Feb. 2004.

The citation for an unsigned article would begin with the title and be al phabetized by the first word of the title other than “a,” “an,” or “the.”

An article in a scholarly journal with continuous pagination beyond a single issue

Mahar, William J. “Black English in Early Blackface Minstrelsy: A New Interpretation of the

Sources of Minstrel Show Dialect.” American Quarterly 37.2 (1985): 260-85. Print.

Regardless of whether the journal uses continuous pagination or separate pagination for each issue, it is necessary to include the volume number and the issue number for every entry (for example, “11.5” indicates volume 11, issue 5). If a journal does not offer an issue number, use only the volume number, as in the next entry. If a journal uses only issue numbers, use that in place of the volume number.

An article in a scholarly journal with separate pagination for each issue

Updike, John. “The Cultural Situation of the American Writer.” American Studies

International 15 (1977): 19-28. Print.

In the following citation, noting the winter issue helps a reader find the correct article among all of the articles published by the online journal in 2004.

984 the literary research paper

An article from an online scholarly journal

Mamet, David. “Secret Names.” The Threepenny Review 96 (Winter 2004): n. pag. Web.

4 Feb. 2004.

The following citation indicates that the article appears on page 1 of section 7 and continues onto another page.

An article in a newspaper

Ziegler, Philip. “The Lure of Gossip, the Rules of History.” New York Times 23 Feb. 1986:

sec. 7: 1+. Print.

An article from an online newspaper

Brantley, Ben. “Souls Lost and Doomed Enliven London Stages.” New York Times. New York

Times, 4 Feb. 2004. Web. 5 Feb. 2004.

A lecture

Tilton, Robert. “The Beginnings of American Studies.” English 270 class lecture. University

of Connecticut, Storrs. 12 Mar. 2004. Lecture.

Letter, e-mail, or interview

Vellenga, Carolyn. Letter to the author. 9 Oct. 1997.

Harter, Stephen P. E-mail to the author. 28 Dec. 1997.

McConagha, Bill. Personal interview. 9 May 2009.

Following are additional examples for citing electronic sources.

Work from a subscription service

Libraries pay for access to databases such as Lexis-Nexis, ProQuest Direct, and Expanded Academic ASAP. When you retrieve an article or other work from a subscription database, cite your source based on this model:

Vendler, Helen Hennessey. “The Passion of Emily Dickinson.” New Republic 3 Aug. 1992:

34-8. Expanded Academic ASAP. Web. 4 Feb. 2004.

A document from a Web site

When citing sources from the Internet, include as much publication information as possible (see guidelines on p. 981). In some cases, as in the following example, a date of publication for the document

documenting sources and avoiding plagiarism 985

“Dickens in America” is not available. The entry provides the author, title of document, title of site, sponsor of the site, medium, and access date:

Perdue, David. “Dickens in America.” David Perdue’s Charles Dickens Page. David A. Perdue,

1 Apr. 2009. Web. 13 Apr. 2009.

An entire Web site

Perdue, David. David Perdue’s Charles Dickens Page. David A. Perdue, 1 Apr. 2009. Web.

13 Apr. 2009.

Treat a CD-ROM as you would any other source, but name the medium at the end of the entry.

A work from a CD-ROM

Aaron, Belèn V. “The Death of Theory.” Scholarly Book Reviews 4.3 (1997): 146-47. CD-ROM.

ERIC. SilverPlatter. Dec. 1997.

An online posting

Shuck, John. “Hamlet.” PBS Discussions. PBS, 16 May 2005. Web. 13 Apr. 2009.

Parenthetical References

A list of works cited is not an adequate indication of how you have used sources in your paper. You must also provide the precise location of quotations and other information by using parenthetical references within the text of the paper. You do this by citing the author’s name (or the source’s title if the work is anonymous) and the page number:

Collins points out that “Nabokov was misunderstood by early reviewers of his work” (28).

or

Nabokov’s first critics misinterpreted his stories (Collins 28).

Either way a reader will find the complete bibliographic entry in the list of works cited under Collins’s name and know that the information cited in the paper appears on page 28. Notice that the end punctuation comes after the parentheses. If you have listed more than one work by the same author, you would add a brief title to the parenthetical reference to distinguish between them. You could also include the full title in your text:

986 the literary research paper

Nabokov’s first critics misinterpreted his stories (Collins, “Early Reviews” 28).

or

Collins points out in “Early Reviews of Nabokov’s Fiction” that Nabokov’s early work was

misinterpreted by reviewers (28).

For electronic sources, provide the author’s name. Unless your online source is a stable, paginated document (such as a pdf file), do not include page numbers in your parenthetical references. The following example shows an in-text citation to William Faulkner’s acceptance speech for the Nobel Prize in Literature, found at the Nobel Web site.

William Faulkner believed that it was his duty as a writer to “help man endure by lifting his

heart” (Faulkner).

This reference would appear in the works cited list as follows:

Faulkner, William. “Banquet Speech: The Nobel Prize in Literature.” The Nobel E-Museum.

The Nobel Foundation, 10 Dec. 1950. Web. 4 Feb. 2009.

There can be many variations on what is included in a parenthetical reference, depending on the nature of the entry in the list of works cited. But the general principle is simple enough: Provide enough parenthetical information for a reader to find the work in “Works Cited.” Examine the sample research paper for more examples of works cited and strategies for including parenthetical references. If you are puzzled by a given situation, refer to the MLA Handbook.

A SAMPLE STUDENT RESEARCH PAPER How William Faulkner’s Narrator Cultivates a Rose for Emily

The following research paper by Tony Groulx follows the format described in the MLA Handbook for Writers of Research Papers, 7th ed. (2009). Though the sample paper is short, it illustrates many of the techniques and strategies useful for writing an essay that includes secondary sources. (Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily” is reprinted on p. 55.)

a sample student research paper 987

Groulx 1

Tony Groulx

Professor Hugo

English 109-3

February 4, 2010

How William Faulkner’s Narrator

Cultivates a Rose for Emily

William Faulkner’s “A Rose for Emily” is an absorbing mystery story whose

chilling ending contains a gruesome surprise. When we discover, along with the

narrator and townspeople, what was left of Homer Barron’s body, we may be

surprised or not, depending on how carefully we have been reading the story

and keeping track of details such as Emily Grierson’s purchase of rat poison and

Homer’s disappearance. Probably most readers anticipate finding Homer’s body

at the end of the story because Faulkner carefully prepares the groundwork for

the discovery as the townspeople force their way into that mysterious upstairs

room where a “thin, acrid pall as of the tomb seemed to lie everywhere” (62).

But very few readers, if any, are prepared for the story’s final paragraph, when

we realize that the strand of “iron-gray hair” (the last three words of the story)

on the second pillow indicates that Emily has slept with Homer since she

murdered him. This last paragraph produces the real horror in the story and an

extraordinary revelation about Emily’s character.

The final paragraph seems like the right place to begin a discussion of this

story because the surprise ending not only creates a powerful emotional effect

in us but also raises an important question about what we are to think of Emily.

Is this isolated, eccentric woman simply mad? All the circumstantial evidence

indicates that she is a murderer and necrophiliac, and yet Faulkner titles the

story “A Rose for Emily,” as if she is due some kind of tribute. The title somehow

qualifies the gasp of horror that the story leads up to in the final paragraph. Why

would anyone offer this woman a “rose”? What’s behind the title?

Faulkner was once directly asked the meaning of the title and replied:

Oh it’s simply the poor woman had had no life at all. Her father had

kept her more or less locked up and then she had a lover who was

about to quit her, she had to murder him. It was just “A Rose for

Emily”—that’s all. (qtd. in Gwynn and Blotner 87-8)

This reply explains some of Emily’s motivation for murdering Homer, but it

doesn’t actually address the purpose and meaning of the title. If Emily killed

Homer out of a kind of emotional necessity—out of a fear of abandonment —

Reference to text of the story.

Reference to secondary source (Gwynn and Blotner).

988 the literary research paper

Groulx 2

how does that explain the fact that the title seems to suggest that the story is a

way of paying respect to Emily? The question remains.

Whatever respect the story creates for Emily cannot be the result of

her actions. Surely there can be no convincing excuse made for murder and

necrophilia; there is nothing to praise about what she does. Instead, the tribute

comes in the form of how her story is told rather than what we are told about

her. To do this Faulkner uses a narrator who tells Emily’s story in such a way as

to maximize our sympathy for her. The grim information about Emily’s “iron-gray

hair” on the pillow is withheld until the very end and not only to produce a

surprise but to permit the reader to develop a sympathetic understanding of her

before we are shocked and disgusted by her necrophilia.

Significantly, the narrator begins the story with Emily’s death rather

than Homer’s. Though a number of studies discuss the story’s narrator (see,

for example, Curry; Kempton; Sullivan; and Watkins), Terry Heller’s is one of

the most comprehensive in its focus on the narrator’s effects on the readers’

response to Emily. As Heller points out, before we learn of Emily’s bizarre

behavior we see her as a sympathetic—if antiquated—figure in a town whose

life and concerns have passed her by; hence, “we are disposed to see Emily

as victimized” (306). Her refusal to pay her taxes is an index to her isolation

and eccentricity, but this incident also suggests a degree of dignity and power

lacking in the town officials who fail to collect her taxes. Her encounters with

the officials of Jefferson—whether in the form of the sneaking aldermen who

try to cover up the smell around her house or the druggist who unsuccessfully

tries to get her to conform to the law when she buys arsenic—place her in

an admirable light because her willfulness is based on her personal strength.

Moreover, it is relatively easy to side with Emily when the townspeople are

described as taking pleasure in her being reduced to poverty as a result of her

father’s death because “now she too would know the old thrill and the old

despair of a penny more or less” (Faulkner 58). The narrator’s account of their

pettiness, jealousy, and inability to make sense of Emily causes the reader

to sympathize with Emily’s eccentricities before we must judge her murderous

behavior. We admire her for taking life on her own terms, and the narrator makes

sure this response is in place prior to our realization that she also takes life.

We don’t really know much about Emily because the narrator arranges the

details of her life so that it’s difficult to know what she’s been up to. We learn,

for example, about the smell around the house before she buys the poison

Reference to secondary sources (Curry; Kempton; Sullivan; Watkins) with signal phrase for Heller.

Reference to secondary source (Heller) with signal phrase (“As Heller points out . . .”).

Reference to text of the story.

a sample student research paper 989

Groulx 3

and Homer disappears, so that the cause-and-effect relationship among these

events is a bit slippery (for a detailed reconstruction of the chronology, see

McGlynn and Nebecker’s revision of McGlynn’s work), but the effect is to suspend

judgment of Emily. By the time we realize what she has done, we are already

inclined to see her as outside community values almost out of necessity. That’s

not to say that the murdering of Homer is justified by the narrator, but it is

to say that her life maintains its private—though no longer secret—dignity.

Despite the final revelation, Emily remains “dear, inescapable, impervious,

tranquil, and perverse” (Faulkner 61).

The narrator’s “rose” to Emily is his recognition that Emily is all these

things—including “perverse.” She evokes “a sort of respectful affection for a

fallen monument” (Faulkner 55). She is, to be sure, “fallen,” but she is also

somehow central—a “monument”—to the life of the community. Faulkner does

not offer a definitive reading of Emily, but he does have the narrator pay tribute

to her by attempting to provide a complex set of contexts for her actions—

contexts that include a repressive father, resistance to a changing South and

impinging North, the passage of time and its influence on the present, and

relations between men and women as well as relations between generations.

Robert Crosman discusses the narrator’s efforts to understand Emily:

The narrator is himself a “reader” of Emily’s story, trying to put

together from fragments a complete picture, trying to find the

meaning of her life in its impact upon an audience, the citizens of

Jefferson, of which he is a member. (212)

The narrator refuses to dismiss Emily as simply mad or to treat her life as merely

a grotesque, sensational horror story. Instead, his narrative method brings

us into her life before we too hastily reject her, and in doing so it offers us a

complex imaginative treatment of fierce determination and strength coupled

with illusions and shocking eccentricities. The narrator’s rose for Emily is paying

her the tribute of placing that “long strand of iron-gray hair” in the context of

her entire life.

Reference to secondary sources (McGlynn and Nebecker).

References to text of the story.

Reference to secondary source (Crosman).

990 the literary research paper

Groulx 4

Works Cited

Crosman, Robert. “How Readers Make Meaning.” College Literature 9.3 (1982):

207-15. Print.

Curry, Renee R. “Gender and Authorial Limitation in Faulkner’s ‘A Rose for

Emily.’ ” The Mississippi Quarterly 47.3 (1994): 391-402. Expanded Academic

ASAP. Web. 4 Feb. 2004.

Faulkner, William. “A Rose for Emily.” Literature to Go. Ed. Michael Meyer.

Boston: Bedford/St. Martin’s, 2011. 55-62. Print.

Gwynn, Frederick, and Joseph Blotner, eds. Faulkner in the University: Class

Conferences at the University of Virginia, 1957-58. Charlottesville: U of

Virginia P, 1959. Print.

Heller, Terry. “The Telltale Hair: A Critical Study of William Faulkner’s ‘A Rose for

Emily.’ ” Arizona Quarterly 28.4 (1972): 301-18. Print.

Kempton, K. P. The Short Story. Cambridge: Harvard UP, 1954. 104-06. Print.

McGlynn, Paul D. “The Chronology of ‘A Rose for Emily.’ ” Studies in Short Fiction

6.4 (1969): 461-62. Print.

Nebecker, Helen E. “Chronology Revised.” Studies in Short Fiction 8.4 (1971):

471-73. Print.

Sullivan, Ruth. “The Narrator in ‘A Rose for Emily.’ ” Journal of Narrative

Technique 1.3 (1971): 159-78. Print.

Watkins, F. C. “The Structure of ‘A Rose for Emily.’ ” Modern Language Notes 69.6

(1954): 508-10. Print.

Glossary of Literary Terms

Accent The emphasis, or stress, given a syllable in pronunciation. We say “syllable” not “syllable,” “emphasis” not “emphasis.” Accents can also be used to emphasize a particular word in a sentence: Is she content with the contents of the yellow package? See also meter.

Act A major division in the action of a play. The ends of acts are typically indicated by lowering the curtain or turning up the houselights. Play- wrights frequently employ acts to accommodate changes in time, setting, characters onstage, or mood. In many full-length plays, acts are further divided into scenes, which often mark a point in the action when the location changes or when a new character enters. See also scene.

Allegory A narration or description usually restricted to a single mean- ing be cause its events, actions, characters, settings, and objects repre- sent specifi c abstractions or ideas. Although the elements in an allegory may be interesting in themselves, the emphasis tends to be on what they ultimately mean. Characters may be given names such as Hope, Pride, Youth, and Charity; they have few if any personal qualities beyond their abstract meanings. These personifi cations are not symbols because, for instance, the meaning of a character named Charity is precisely that vir- tue. See also symbol.

Alliteration The repetition of the same consonant sounds in a sequence of words, usually at the beginning of a word or stressed syllable: “descend- ing dew drops”; “luscious lemons.” Alliteration is based on the sounds of letters, rather than the spelling of words; for example, “keen” and “car” allit- erate, but “car” and “cite” do not. Used sparingly, alliteration can intensify ideas by emphasizing key words, but when used too self-consciously, it can be distracting, even ridiculous, rather than effective. See also assonance, consonance.

Allusion A brief reference to a person, place, thing, event, or idea in history or literature. Allusions conjure up biblical authority, scenes from Shake- speare’s plays, historic fi gures, wars, great love stories, and anything else that might enrich an author’s work. Allusions imply reading and cul- tural experiences shared by the writer and reader, functioning as a kind of shorthand whereby the recalling of something outside the work sup- plies an emotional or intellectual context, such as a poem about current racial struggles calling up the memory of Abraham Lincoln.

991

992 glossary of literary terms

Ambiguity Allows for two or more simultaneous interpretations of a word, phrase, action, or situation, all of which can be supported by the context of a work. Deliberate ambiguity can contribute to the effectiveness and richness of a work, for example, in the open-ended conclusion to Haw- thorne’s “Young Goodman Brown.” However, unintentional ambiguity obscures meaning and can confuse readers.

Anagram A word or phrase made from the letters of another word or phrase, as “heart” is an anagram of “earth.” Anagrams have often been considered merely an exercise of one’s ingenuity, but sometimes writers use anagrams to conceal proper names or veiled messages, or to suggest important con- nections between words, as in “hated” and “death.”

Anapestic meter See foot.

Antagonist The character, force, or collection of forces in fi ction or drama that opposes the protagonist and gives rise to the confl ict of the story; an opponent of the protagonist, such as Iago in Shakespeare’s play Othello. See also character, confl ict.

Apostrophe An address, either to someone who is absent and therefore can- not hear the speaker or to something nonhuman that cannot comprehend. Apostrophe often provides a speaker the opportunity to think aloud.

Approximate rhyme See rhyme.

Aside In drama, a speech directed to the audience that supposedly is not audible to the other characters onstage at the time. Iago’s asides in Othello, for example, serve to reveal his sinister character. See also soliloquy.

Assonance The repetition of internal vowel sounds in nearby words that do not end the same, for example, “asleep under a tree,” or “each evening.” Similar endings result in rhyme, as in “asleep in the deep.” Assonance is a strong means of emphasizing important words in a line. See also allit- eration, consonance.

Ballad Traditionally, a ballad is a song, transmitted orally from generation to generation, that tells a story and that eventually is written down. As such, ballads usually cannot be traced to a particular author or group of authors. Typically, ballads are dramatic, condensed, and impersonal nar- ratives. A literary ballad is a narrative poem that is written in deliberate imitation of the language, form, and spirit of the traditional ballad, such as Keats’s “La Belle Dame sans Merci.” See also stanza, quatrain.

Ballad stanza A four-line stanza, known as a quatrain, consisting of alter- nating eight- and six-syllable lines. Usually only the second and fourth lines rhyme (an abcb pattern). Coleridge adopted the ballad stanza in “The Rime of the Ancient Mariner.”

All in a hot and copper sky The bloody Sun, at noon, Right up above the mast did stand, No bigger than the Moon.

See also ballad, quatrain.

glossary of literary terms 993

Blank verse Unrhymed iambic pentameter. Blank verse is the English verse form closest to the natural rhythms of English speech and therefore is the most common pattern found in traditional English narrative and dramatic poetry from Shakespeare to the early twentieth century. Shake- speare’s plays use blank verse extensively. See also iambic pentameter.

Cacophony Language that is discordant and diffi cult to pronounce, such as this line from John Updike’s “Player Piano”: “never my numb plunker fumbles.” Cacophony (“bad sound”) may be unintentional in the writer’s sense of music, or it may be used consciously for deliberate dramatic effect. See also euphony.

Caesura A pause within a line of poetry that contributes to the rhythm of the line. A caesura can occur anywhere within a line and need not be indicated by punctuation. In scanning a line, caesuras are indicated by a double vertical line (||). See also meter, rhythm, scansion.

Canon Those works generally considered by scholars, critics, and teachers to be the most important to read and study, which collectively constitute the “masterpieces” of literature. Since the 1960s, the traditional English and American literary canon, consisting mostly of works by white male writers, has been rapidly expanding to include many female writers and writers of varying ethnic backgrounds.

Carpe diem The Latin phrase meaning “seize the day.” This is a very com- mon literary theme, especially in lyric poetry, which emphasizes that life is short, time is fl eeting, and that one should make the most of pres- ent pleasures. Robert Herrick’s poem “To the Virgins, to Make Much of Time” employs the carpe diem theme.

Catharsis Meaning “purgation,” catharsis describes the release of the emo- tions of pity and fear by the audience at the end of a tragedy. In his Poet- ics, Aristotle discusses the importance of catharsis. The audience faces the misfortunes of the protagonist, which elicit pity and compassion. Simultaneously, the audience also confronts the failure of the protag- onist, thus receiving a frightening reminder of human limitations and frailties. Ultimately, however, both these negative emotions are purged, because the tragic protagonist’s suffering is an affi rmation of human val- ues rather than a despairing denial of them. See also tragedy.

Character, characterization A character is a person presented in a dra- matic or narrative work, and characterization is the process by which a writer makes that character seem real to the reader. A hero or heroine, often called the protagonist, is the central character who engages the reader’s interest and empathy. The antagonist is the character, force, or collection of forces that stands directly opposed to the protagonist and gives rise to the confl ict of the story. A static character does not change throughout the work, and the reader’s knowledge of that character does not grow, whereas a dynamic character undergoes some kind of change because of the action in the plot. A fl at character embodies one or two qualities, ideas, or traits that can be readily described in a brief summary. Flat characters are not psychologically complex characters and therefore

994 glossary of literary terms

are readily accessible to readers. Some fl at characters are recognized as stock characters; they embody stereotypes such as the “dumb blonde” or the “mean stepfather.” They become types rather than individuals. Round characters are more complex than fl at or stock characters, and often display the inconsistencies and internal confl icts found in most real people. They are more fully developed, and therefore are harder to sum- marize. Authors have two major methods of presenting characters: show- ing and telling. Showing allows the author to present a character talking and acting, and lets the reader infer what kind of person the character is. In telling, the author intervenes to describe and sometimes evaluate the character for the reader. Characters can be convincing whether they are presented by showing or by telling, as long as their actions are motivated. Motivated action by the characters occurs when the reader or audience is offered reasons for how the characters behave, what they say, and the decisions they make. Plausible action is action by a character in a story that seems reasonable, given the motivations presented. See also plot.

Chorus In Greek tragedies (especially those of Aeschylus and Sophocles), a group of people who serve mainly as commentators on the characters and events. They add to the audience’s understanding of the play by expressing traditional moral, religious, and social attitudes. The role of the chorus in dramatic works evolved through the sixteenth century, and the chorus occasionally is still used by modern playwrights such as T. S. Eliot in Murder in the Cathedral. See also drama.

Cliché An idea or expression that has become tired and trite from over- use, its freshness and clarity having worn off. Clichés often anesthetize readers, and are usually a sign of weak writing. See also sentimentality, stock responses.

Climax See plot.

Closet drama A play that is written to be read rather than performed on stage. In this kind of drama, literary art outweighs all other consider- ations. See also drama.

Colloquial Refers to a type of informal diction that refl ects casual, conver- sational language and often includes slang expressions. See also diction.

Comedy A work intended to interest, involve, and amuse the reader or audience, in which no terrible disaster occurs and that ends happily for the main characters. High comedy refers to verbal wit, such as a pun, whereas low comedy is generally associated with physical action and is less intellectual. Romantic comedy involves a love affair that meets with various ob stacles (like disapproving parents, mistaken identities, decep- tions, or other sorts of misunderstandings) but overcomes them to end in a blissful union. Shakespeare’s comedies, such as A Midsummer Night’s Dream, are considered romantic comedies.

Comic relief A humorous scene or incident that alleviates tension in an otherwise serious work. In many instances these moments enhance the thematic signifi cance of the story in addition to providing laughter. In

glossary of literary terms 995

Othello, Desdemona’s brief encounter with the clown reveals her gullible nature (III.i).

Confl ict The struggle within the plot between opposing forces. The pro- tagonist engages in the confl ict with the antagonist, which may take the form of a character, society, nature, or an aspect of the protagonist’s personality. See also character, plot.

Connotation Associations and implications that go beyond the literal meaning of a word, which derive from how the word has been commonly used and the associations people make with it. For example, the word eagle connotes ideas of liberty and freedom that have little to do with the word’s literal meaning. See also denotation.

Consonance A common type of near rhyme that consists of identical con- sonant sounds preceded by different vowel sounds: home, same; worth, breath. See also alliteration, assonance, rhyme.

Contextual symbol See symbol.

Controlling metaphor See metaphor.

Convention A characteristic of a literary genre (often unrealistic) that is understood and accepted by audiences because it has come, through usage and time, to be recognized as a familiar technique. For example, the division of a play into acts and scenes is a dramatic convention, as are soliloquies and asides. fl ashbacks and foreshadowing are examples of literary conventions.

Conventional symbol See symbol.

Cosmic irony See irony.

Couplet Two consecutive lines of poetry that usually rhyme and have the same meter. A heroic couplet is a couplet written in rhymed iambic pentameter.

Crisis A turning point in the action of a story that has a powerful effect on the protagonist. Opposing forces come together decisively to lead to the climax of the plot. See also plot.

Dactylic meter See foot.

Denotation The dictionary meaning of a word. See also connotation.

Dénouement A French term meaning “unraveling” or “unknotting,” used to describe the resolution of the plot following the climax. See also plot, resolution.

Dialect A type of informational diction. Dialects are spoken by defi nable groups of people from a particular geographic region, economic group, or social class. Writers use dialect to contrast and express differences in educational, class, social, and regional backgrounds of their characters. See also diction.

Dialogue The verbal exchanges between characters. Dialogue makes the characters seem real to the reader or audience by revealing fi rsthand their thoughts, responses, and emotional states. See also diction.

996 glossary of literary terms

Diction A writer’s choice of words, phrases, sentence structures, and fi gura- tive language, which combine to help create meaning and style. Formal diction consists of a dignifi ed, impersonal, and elevated use of language; it follows the rules of syntax exactly and is often characterized by com- plex words and lofty tone. Middle diction maintains correct language usage, but is less elevated than formal diction; it refl ects the way most educated people speak. Informal diction represents the plain language of everyday use, and often includes idiomatic expressions, slang, contrac- tions, and many simple, common words. Poetic diction refers to the way poets sometimes employ an elevated diction that deviates signifi cantly from the common speech and writing of their time, choosing words for their supposedly inherent poetic qualities. Since the eighteenth century, however, poets have been incorporating all kinds of diction in their work and so there is no longer an automatic distinction between the language of a poet and the language of everyday speech. See also colloquial, dialect, dialogue.

Didactic poetry Poetry designed to teach an ethical, moral, or religious lesson. John Donne’s poem “Death Be Not Proud” is an example of didactic poetry.

Doggerel A derogatory term used to describe poetry whose subject is trite and whose rhythm and sounds are monotonously heavy-handed.

Drama Derived from the Greek word dram, meaning “to do” or “to per- form,” the term drama may refer to a single play, a group of plays (“Jac- obean drama”), or to all plays (“world drama”). Drama is designed for performance in a theater; actors take on the roles of characters, perform indicated actions, and speak the dialogue written in the script. Play is a general term for a work of dramatic literature, and a playwright is a writer who makes plays.

Dramatic irony See irony.

Dramatic monologue A type of lyric poem in which a character (the speaker) addresses a distinct but silent audience imagined to be present in the poem in such a way as to reveal a dramatic situation and, often unintentionally, some aspect of his or her temperament or personality. See also lyric.

Dynamic character See character.

Editorial omniscience See narrator.

Elegy A mournful, contemplative lyric poem written to commemorate someone who is dead, often ending in a consolation; see, for example, Theodore Roethke’s “Elegy for Jane.” Elegy may also refer to a serious meditative poem produced to express the speaker’s melancholy thoughts. See also lyric.

End rhyme See rhyme.

End-stopped line A poetic line that has a pause at the end. End-stopped lines refl ect normal speech patterns and are often marked by punctuation. The fi rst line of Keats’s “Endymion” is an example of an end-stopped line;

glossary of literary terms 997

the natural pause coincides with the end of the line, and is marked by a period:

A thing of beauty is a joy forever.

English sonnet See sonnet.

Enjambment In poetry, when one line ends without a pause and continues into the next line for its meaning. This is also called a run-on line. The transition between the fi rst two lines of Wordsworth’s poem “My Heart Leaps Up” demonstrates enjambment:

My heart leaps up when I behold A rainbow in the sky:

Envoy See sestina.

Epigram A brief, pointed, and witty poem that usually makes a satiric or humorous point. Epigrams are most often written in couplets, but take no prescribed form.

Epiphany In fi ction, when a character suddenly experiences a deep real- ization about himself or herself; a truth that is grasped in an ordinary rather than a melodramatic moment.

Escape literature See formula fi ction.

Euphony Euphony (“good sound”) refers to language that is smooth and musically pleasant to the ear. See also cacophony.

Exact rhyme See rhyme.

Exposition A narrative device, often used at the beginning of a work, that provides necessary background information about the characters and their circumstances. Exposition explains what has gone on before, the relationships between characters, the development of a theme, and the introduction of a confl ict. See also fl ashback.

Extended metaphor See metaphor.

Eye rhyme See rhyme.

Falling action See plot.

Falling meter See meter.

Feminine rhyme See rhyme.

Figures of speech Ways of using language that deviate from the literal, denotative meanings of words in order to suggest additional meanings or effects. Figures of speech say one thing in terms of something else, such as when an eager funeral director is described as a vulture. See also hyperbole, metaphor, simile, understatement.

First-person narrator See narrator.

Fixed form A poem that may be categorized by the pattern of its lines, meter, rhythm, or stanzas. A sonnet is a fi xed form of poetry because by defi nition it must have fourteen lines. Other fi xed forms include lim- erick, sestina, and villanelle. However, poems written in a fi xed form

998 glossary of literary terms

may not always fi t into categories precisely, because writers sometimes vary traditional forms to create innovative effects. See also open form.

Flashback A narrated scene that marks a break in the narrative in order to inform the reader or audience member about events that took place before the opening scene of a work. See also exposition.

Flat character See character.

Foil A character in a work whose behavior and values contrast with those of another character in order to highlight the distinctive temperament of that character (usually the protagonist). In Hawthorne’s “The Birthmark,” the grossly physical Aminadab is a foil to the idealistic Aylmer.

Foot The metrical unit by which a line of poetry is measured. A foot usu- ally consists of one stressed and one or two unstressed syllables. An iam- bic foot, which consists of one unstressed syllable followed by one stressed syllable (“away”), is the most common metrical foot in English poetry. A trochaic foot consists of one stressed syllable followed by an unstressed syllable (“lovely”). An anapestic foot is two unstressed syllables followed by one stressed one (“understand”). A dactylic foot is one stressed syllable fol- lowed by two un stressed ones (“desperate”). A spondee is a foot consisting of two stressed syllables (“dead set”), but is not a sustained metrical foot and is used mainly for variety or emphasis. See also iambic pentameter, line, meter.

Foreshadowing The introduction early in a story of verbal and dramatic hints that suggest what is to come later.

Form The overall structure or shape of a work, which frequently follows an established design. Forms may refer to a literary type (narrative form, short story form) or to patterns of meter, lines, and rhymes (stanza form, verse form). See also fi xed form, open form.

Formal diction See diction.

Formula fi ction Often characterized as “escape literature,” formula fi ction follows a pattern of conventional reader expectations. Romance novels, westerns, science fi ction, and detective stories are all examples of formula fi ction; while the details of individual stories vary, the basic ingredients of each kind of story are the same. Formula fi ction offers happy endings (the hero “gets the girl,” the detective cracks the case), entertains wide audiences, and sells tremendously well.

Found poem An unintentional poem discovered in a nonpoetic context, such as a conversation, news story, or advertisement. Found poems serve as reminders that everyday language often contains what can be consid- ered poetry, or that poetry is defi nable as any text read as a poem.

Free verse Also called open form poetry, free verse refers to poems charac- terized by their nonconformity to established patterns of meter, rhyme, and stanza. Free verse uses elements such as speech patterns, grammar, emphasis, and breath pauses to decide line breaks, and usually does not rhyme. See also open form.

glossary of literary terms 999

Genre A French word meaning kind or type. The major genres in literature are poetry, fi ction, drama, and essays. Genre can also refer to more specifi c types of literature such as comedy, tragedy, epic poetry, or science fi ction.

Haiku A style of lyric poetry borrowed from the Japanese that typically pre- sents an intense emotion or vivid image of nature, which, traditionally, is designed to lead to a spiritual insight. Haiku is a fi xed poetic form, con- sisting of seventeen syllables organized into three unrhymed lines of fi ve, seven, and fi ve syllables. Today, however, many poets vary the syllabic count in their haiku. See also fi xed form, lyric.

Hamartia A term coined by Aristotle to describe “some error or frailty” that brings about misfortune for a tragic hero. The concept of hamartia is closely related to that of the tragic fl aw: Both lead to the downfall of the protagonist in a tragedy. Hamartia may be interpreted as an internal weakness in a character (like greed or passion or hubris); however, it may also refer to a mistake that a character makes that is based not on a per- sonal failure, but on circumstances outside the protagonist’s personality and control. See also tragedy.

Hero, heroine See character.

Heroic couplet See couplet.

Hubris or Hybris Excessive pride or self-confi dence that leads a protago- nist to disregard a divine warning or to violate an important moral law. In tragedies, hubris is a very common form of hamartia. See also hamar- tia, tragedy.

Hyperbole A boldly exaggerated statement that adds emphasis without in- tending to be literally true, as in the statement “He ate everything in the house.” Hyperbole (also called overstatement) may be used for serious, comic, or ironic effect. See also fi gures of speech, understatement.

Iambic meter See foot.

Iambic pentameter A metrical pattern in poetry that consists of fi ve iambic feet per line. (An iamb, or iambic foot, consists of one unstressed syllable followed by a stressed syllable.) See also blank verse, foot, meter.

Image A word, phrase, or fi gure of speech (especially a simile or a meta- phor) that addresses the senses, suggesting mental pictures of sights, sounds, smells, tastes, feelings, or actions. Images offer sensory impres- sions to the reader and also convey emotions and moods through their verbal pictures. See also fi gures of speech.

Implied metaphor See metaphor.

In medias res See plot.

Informal diction See diction.

Internal rhyme See rhyme.

Irony A literary device that uses contradictory statements or situations to reveal a reality different from what appears to be true. It is ironic for a

1000 glossary of literary terms

fi rehouse to burn down, or for a police station to be burglarized. Verbal irony is a fi gure of speech that occurs when a person says one thing but means the opposite. Sarcasm is a strong form of verbal irony that is cal- culated to hurt someone through, for example, false praise. Dramatic irony creates a discrepancy between what a character believes or says and what the reader or audience member knows to be true. Tragic irony is a form of dramatic irony found in tragedies such as Oedipus the King, in which Oedipus searches for the person responsible for the plague that ravishes his city and ironically ends up hunting himself. Situational irony exists when there is an incongruity between what is expected to happen and what actually happens due to forces beyond human compre- hension or control. The suicide of the seemingly successful main charac- ter in Edwin Arlington Robinson’s poem “Richard Cory” is an example of situational irony. Cosmic irony occurs when a writer uses God, destiny, or fate to dash the hopes and expectations of a character or of human- kind in general. In cosmic irony, a discrepancy exists between what a character aspires to and what universal forces provide. Stephen Crane’s poem “A Man Said to the Universe” is a good example of cosmic irony, because the universe acknowledges no obligation to the man’s assertion of his own existence. See also hyperbole, satire, understatement.

Italian sonnet See sonnet.

Limerick A light, humorous style of fi xed form poetry. Its usual form con- sists of fi ve lines with the rhyme scheme aabba; lines 1, 2, and 5 contain three feet, while lines 3 and 4 usually contain two feet. Limericks range in subject matter from the silly to the obscene, and since Edward Lear popularized them in the nineteenth century, children and adults have enjoyed these comic poems. See also fi xed form.

Limited omniscient narrator See narrator.

Line A sequence of words printed as a separate entity on the page. In poetry, lines are usually measured by the number of feet they contain. The names for various line lengths are as follows:

monometer: one foot pentameter: fi ve feet dimeter: two feet hexameter: six feet trimeter: three feet heptameter: seven feet tetrameter: four feet octameter: eight feet

The number of feet in a line, coupled with the name of the foot, describes the metrical qualities of that line. See also end-stopped line, enjamb- ment, foot, meter, scansion.

Literary ballad See ballad.

Literary symbol See symbol.

Low comedy See comedy.

Lyric A type of brief poem that expresses the personal emotions and thoughts of a single speaker. It is important to realize, however, that although the lyric is uttered in the fi rst person, the speaker is not necessarily the poet.

glossary of literary terms 1001

There are many varieties of lyric poetry, including the dramatic mono- logue, elegy, haiku, ode, and sonnet forms.

Masculine rhyme See rhyme.

Melodrama A term applied to any literary work that relies on implausible events and sensational action for its effect. The confl icts in melodramas typically arise out of plot rather than characterization; often a virtuous individual must somehow confront and overcome a wicked oppressor. Usually, a melodramatic story ends happily, with the protagonist defeat- ing the antagonist at the last possible moment. Thus, melodramas enter- tain the reader or audience with exciting action while still conforming to a traditional sense of justice. See also sentimentality.

Metafi ction The literary term used to describe a work that explores the na ture, structure, logic, status, and function of storytelling.

Metaphor A metaphor is a fi gure of speech that makes a comparison between two unlike things, without using the word like or as. Metaphors assert the identity of dissimilar things, as when Macbeth asserts that life is a “brief candle.” Metaphors can be subtle and powerful, and can trans- form people, places, objects, and ideas into whatever the writer imagines them to be. An implied metaphor is a more subtle comparison; the terms being compared are not so specifi cally explained. For example, to describe a stubborn man unwilling to leave, one could say that he was “a mule standing his ground.” This is a fairly explicit metaphor; the man is being compared to a mule. But to say that the man “brayed his refusal to leave” is to create an implied metaphor, because the subject (the man) is never overtly identifi ed as a mule. Braying is associated with the mule, a notoriously stubborn creature, and so the comparison between the stubborn man and the mule is sustained. Implied metaphors can slip by inattentive readers who are not sensitive to such carefully chosen, highly concentrated language. An extended metaphor is a sustained comparison in which part or all of a poem consists of a series of related metaphors. Robert Francis’s poem “Catch” relies on an extended meta- phor that compares poetry to playing catch. Synecdoche is a kind of metaphor in which a part of something is used to signify the whole, as when a gossip is called a “wagging tongue,” or when ten ships are called “ten sails.” Sometimes synecdoche refers to the whole being used to sig- nify the part, as in the phrase “Boston won the baseball game.” Clearly, the entire city of Boston did not participate in the game; the whole of Boston is being used to signify the individuals who played and won the game. Metonymy is a type of metaphor in which something closely asso- ciated with a subject is substituted for it. In this way, we speak of the “sil- ver screen” to mean motion pictures, “the crown” to stand for the king, “the White House” to stand for the activities of the president. See also fi gures of speech, personifi cation, simile.

Meter When a rhythmic pattern of stresses recurs in a poem, it is called meter. Metrical patterns are determined by the type and number of feet in a line of verse; combining the name of a line length with the name of

1002 glossary of literary terms

a foot concisely describes the meter of the line. Rising meter refers to metrical feet which move from unstressed to stressed sounds, such as the iambic foot and the anapestic foot. Falling meter refers to metrical feet that move from stressed to unstressed sounds, such as the trochaic foot and the dactylic foot. See also accent, caesura, foot, iambic pentameter, line, scansion.

Metonymy See metaphor.

Middle diction See diction.

Motivated action See character.

Naive narrator See narrator.

Narrative poem A poem that tells a story. A narrative poem may be short or long, and the story it relates may be simple or complex. See also ballad.

Narrator The voice of the person telling the story, not to be confused with the author’s voice. With a fi rst-person narrator, the I in the story pre- sents the point of view of only one character. The reader is restricted to the perceptions, thoughts, and feelings of that single character. For example, in Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener,” the lawyer is the fi rst-person narrator of the story. First-person narrators can play either a major or a minor role in the story they are telling. An unreliable narrator reveals an interpretation of events that is somehow different from the author’s own interpretation of those events. Often, the unreliable narrator’s per- ception of plot, characters, and setting becomes the actual subject of the story, as in Melville’s “Bartleby, the Scrivener.” Narrators can be unreli- able for a number of reasons: They might lack self-knowledge (like Mel- ville’s lawyer), they might be inex perienced, they might even be insane. A naive narrator is usually char acterized by youthful innocence, such as Mark Twain’s Huck Finn or J. D. Salinger’s Holden Caulfi eld. An omni- scient narrator is an all-knowing narrator who is not a character in the story and who can move from place to place and pass back and forth through time, slipping into and out of characters as no human being possibly could in real life. Omniscient narrators can report the thoughts and feelings of the characters, as well as their words and actions. The narrator of The Scarlet Letter is an omniscient narrator. Editorial omni- science refers to an intrusion by the narrator in order to evaluate a character for a reader, as when the narrator of The Scarlet Letter describes Hester’s relationship to the Puritan community. Narration that allows the characters’ actions and thoughts to speak for themselves is called neutral omniscience. Most modern writers use neutral omniscience so that readers can reach their own conclusions. Limited omniscience occurs when an author restricts a narrator to the single perspective of either a major or minor character. The way people, places, and events appear to that character is the way they appear to the reader. Sometimes a limited omniscient narrator can see into more than one character, par- ticularly in a work that focuses on two characters alternately from one chapter to the next. Short stories, however, are frequently limited to a

glossary of literary terms 1003

single character’s point of view. See also persona, point of view, stream- of-consciousness technique.

Near rhyme See rhyme.

Neutral omniscience See narrator.

Objective point of view See point of view.

Octave A poetic stanza of eight lines, usually forming one part of a sonnet. See also sonnet, stanza.

Ode A relatively lengthy lyric poem that often expresses lofty emotions in a dignifi ed style. Odes are characterized by a serious topic, such as truth, art, freedom, justice, or the meaning of life; their tone tends to be for- mal. There is no prescribed pattern that defi nes an ode; some odes repeat the same pattern in each stanza, while others introduce a new pattern in each stanza. See also lyric.

Off rhyme See rhyme.

Omniscient narrator See narrator.

One-act play A play that takes place in a single location and unfolds as one continuous action. The characters in a one-act play are presented eco- nomically and the action is sharply focused. See also drama.

Onomatopoeia A term referring to the use of a word that resembles the sound it denotes. Buzz, rattle, bang, and sizzle all refl ect onomatopoeia. Onomatopoeia can also consist of more than one word; writers some- times create lines or whole passages in which the sound of the words helps to convey their meanings.

Open form Sometimes called free verse, open form poetry does not con- form to established patterns of meter, rhyme, and stanza. Such poetry de rives its rhythmic qualities from the repetition of words, phrases, or grammatical structures, the arrangement of words on the printed page, or by some other means. The poet E. E. Cummings wrote open form poetry; his poems do not have measurable meters, but they do have rhythm. See also fi xed form, picture poem, prose poem.

Organic form Refers to works whose formal characteristics are not rigidly predetermined but follow the movement of thought or emotion being expressed. Such works are said to grow like living organisms, following their own individual patterns rather than external fi xed rules that gov- ern, for example, the form of a sonnet.

Overstatement See hyperbole.

Oxymoron A condensed form of paradox in which two contradictory words are used together, as in “sweet sorrow” or “original copy.”

Paradox A statement that initially appears to be contradictory but then, on closer inspection, turns out to make sense. For example, John Donne ends his sonnet “Death, Be Not Proud” with the paradoxical statement “Death, thou shalt die.” To solve the paradox, it is necessary to dis- cover the sense that underlies the statement. Paradox is useful in poetry

1004 glossary of literary terms

because it arrests a reader’s attention by its seemingly stubborn refusal to make sense.

Paraphrase A prose restatement of the central ideas of a poem, in your own language.

Parody A humorous imitation of another, usually serious, work. It can take any fi xed or open form, because parodists imitate the tone, language, and shape of the original in order to defl ate the subject matter, making the original work seem absurd. Parody may also be used as a form of literary criticism to expose the defects in a work. But sometimes parody becomes an affectionate acknowledgment that a well-known work has become both institutionalized in our culture and fair game for some fun. For example, Ann Lauinger’s “Marvell Noir” gently mocks Andrew Mar- vell’s “To His Coy Mistress.” See also satire.

Persona Literally, a persona is a mask. In literature, a persona is a speaker cre- ated by a writer to tell a story or to speak in a poem. A persona is not a char- acter in a story or narrative, nor does a persona necessarily directly refl ect the author’s personal voice. A persona is a separate self, created by and dis- tinct from the author, through which he or she speaks. See also narrator.

Personifi cation A form of metaphor in which human characteristics are attributed to nonhuman things. Personifi cation offers the writer a way to give the world life and motion by assigning familiar human behav- iors and emotions to animals, inanimate objects, and abstract ideas. For example, in Keats’s “Ode on a Grecian Urn,” the speaker refers to the urn as an “unravished bride of quietness.” See also metaphor.

Petrarchan sonnet See sonnet.

Picture poem A type of open form poetry in which the poet arranges the lines of the poem so as to create a particular shape on the page. The shape of the poem embodies its subject; the poem becomes a picture of what the poem is describing. Michael McFee’s “In Medias Res” is an example of a picture poem. See also open form.

Plausible action See character.

Play See drama.

Playwright See drama.

Plot An author’s selection and arrangement of incidents in a story to shape the action and give the story a particular focus. Discussions of plot include not just what happens, but also how and why things happen the way they do. Stories that are written in a pyramidal pattern divide the plot into three essential parts. The fi rst part is the rising action, in which complication creates some sort of confl ict for the protagonist. The second part is the climax, the moment of greatest emotional tension in a narrative, usually marking a turning point in the plot at which the ris- ing action reverses to become the falling action. The third part, the fall- ing action (or resolution), is characterized by diminishing tensions and the resolution of the plot’s confl icts and complications. In medias res is

glossary of literary terms 1005

a term used to describe the common strategy of beginning a story in the middle of the action. In this type of plot, we enter the story on the verge of some important mo ment. See also character, crisis, dénouement, resolution, reversal, subplot.

Poetic diction See diction.

Point of view Refers to who tells us a story and how it is told. What we know and how we feel about the events in a work are shaped by the author’s choice of point of view. The teller of the story, the narrator, inevitably affects our understanding of the characters’ actions by fi lter- ing what is told through his or her own perspective. The various points of view that writers draw upon can be grouped into two broad catego- ries: (1) The third-person narrator uses he, she, or they to tell the story and does not participate in the action; and (2) the fi rst-person narra- tor uses I and is a major or minor participant in the action. In addition, a second-person narrator, you, is also possible, but is rarely used because of the awkwardness of thrusting the reader into the story, as in “You are minding your own business on a park bench when a drunk steps out and demands your lunch bag.” An objective point of view employs a third- person narrator who does not see into the mind of any character. From this detached and impersonal perspective, the narrator reports action and dia- logue without telling us directly what the characters think and feel. Since no analysis or interpretation is provided by the narrator, this point of view places a premium on dialogue, actions, and details to reveal character to the reader. See also narrator, stream-of-consciousness technique.

Problem play Popularized by Henrik Ibsen, a problem play is a type of drama that presents a social issue in order to awaken the audience to it. These plays usually reject romantic plots in favor of holding up a mir- ror that refl ects not simply what the audience wants to see but what the playwright sees in them. Often a problem play will propose a solution to the problem that does not coincide with prevailing opinion. The term is also used to refer to certain Shakespeare plays that do not fi t the catego- ries of tragedy, comedy, or romance.

Prologue The opening speech or dialogue of a play, especially a classic Greek play, that usually gives the exposition necessary to follow the sub- sequent action. Today the term also refers to the introduction to any lit- erary work. See also drama, exposition.

Prose poem A kind of open form poetry that is printed as prose and rep- resents the most clear opposite of fi xed form poetry. Prose poems are densely compact and often make use of striking imagery and fi gures of speech. See also fi xed form, open form.

Prosody The overall metrical structure of a poem. See also meter.

Protagonist The main character of a narrative; its central character who engages the reader’s interest and empathy. See also character.

Pun A play on words that relies on a word’s having more than one meaning or sounding like another word. Shakespeare and other writers use puns

1006 glossary of literary terms

extensively, for serious and comic purposes; in Romeo and Juliet (III.i.101), the dying Mercutio puns, “Ask for me tomorrow and you shall fi nd me a grave man.” Puns have serious literary uses, but since the eighteenth century, puns have been used almost purely for humorous effect. See also comedy.

Pyramidal pattern See plot.

Quatrain A four-line stanza. Quatrains are the most common stanzaic form in the English language; they can have various meters and rhyme schemes. See also meter, rhyme, stanza.

Recognition The moment in a story when previously unknown or with- held information is revealed to the protagonist, resulting in the discov- ery of the truth of his or her situation and, usually, a decisive change in course for that character. In Oedipus the King, the moment of recogni- tion comes when Oedipus fi nally realizes that he has killed his father and married his mother.

Resolution The conclusion of a plot’s confl icts and complications. The resolution, also known as the falling action, follows the climax in the plot. See also dénouement, plot.

Reversal The point in a story when the protagonist’s fortunes turn in an unexpected direction. See also plot.

Rhyme The repetition of identical or similar concluding syllables in dif- ferent words, most often at the ends of lines. Rhyme is predominantly a function of sound rather than spelling; thus, words that end with the same vowel sounds rhyme, for instance, day, prey, bouquet, weigh, and words with the same consonant ending rhyme, for instance vain, feign, rein, lane. Words do not have to be spelled the same way or look alike to rhyme. In fact, words may look alike but not rhyme at all. This is called eye rhyme, as with bough and cough, or brow and blow. End rhyme is the most common form of rhyme in poetry; the rhyme comes at the end of the lines:

It runs through the reeds And away it proceeds, Through meadow and glade, In sun and in shade.

The rhyme scheme of a poem describes the pattern of end rhymes. Rhyme schemes are mapped out by noting patterns of rhyme with small letters: The fi rst rhyme sound is designated a, the second becomes b, the third c, and so on. Thus, the rhyme scheme of the stanza above is aabb. Internal rhyme places at least one of the rhymed words within the line, as in “Dividing and gliding and sliding” or “In mist or cloud, on mast or shroud.” Masculine rhyme describes the rhyming of single-syllable words, such as grade or shade. Masculine rhyme also occurs with rhym- ing words of more than one syllable, when the same sound occurs in a fi nal stressed syllable, as in defend and contend, betray and away. Feminine rhyme consists of a rhymed stressed syllable followed by one or more

glossary of literary terms 1007

identical unstressed syllables, as in butter, clutter; gratitude, attitude; quiv- ering, shivering. All the examples so far have illustrated exact rhymes, because they share the same stressed vowel sounds as well as sharing sounds that follow the vowel. In near rhyme (also called off rhyme, slant rhyme, and approximate rhyme), the sounds are almost but not exactly alike. A common form of near rhyme is consonance, which con- sists of identical consonant sounds preceded by different vowel sounds: home, same; worth, breath.

Rhyme scheme See rhyme.

Rhythm A term used to refer to the recurrence of stressed and unstressed sounds in poetry. Depending on how sounds are arranged, the rhythm of a poem may be fast or slow, choppy or smooth. Poets use rhythm to create pleasurable sound patterns and to reinforce meanings. Rhythm in prose arises from pattern repetitions of sounds and pauses that create looser rhythmic effects. See also meter.

Rising action See plot.

Rising meter See meter.

Romantic comedy See comedy.

Round character See character.

Run-on line See enjambment.

Sarcasm See irony.

Satire The literary art of ridiculing a folly or vice in order to expose or correct it. The object of satire is usually some human frailty; people, institutions, ideas, and things are all fair game for satirists. Satire evokes attitudes of amusement, contempt, scorn, or indignation toward its faulty subject in the hope of somehow improving it. See also irony, parody.

Scansion The process of measuring the stresses in a line of verse in order to determine the metrical pattern of the line. See also caesura, line, meter.

Scene In drama, a scene is a subdivision of an act. In modern plays, scenes usually consist of units of action in which there are no changes in the setting or breaks in the continuity of time. According to traditional con- ventions, a scene changes when the location of the action shifts or when a new character enters. See also act, convention.

Script The written text of a play, which includes the dialogue between characters, stage directions, and often other expository information. See also exposition, prologue, stage directions.

Sentimentality A pejorative term used to describe the effort by an author to induce emotional responses in the reader that exceed what the situ- ation warrants. Sentimentality especially pertains to such emotions as pathos and sympathy; it cons readers into falling for the mass murderer who is devoted to stray cats, and it requires that readers do not exam- ine such illogical responses. Clichés and stock responses are the key

1008 glossary of literary terms

ingredients of sentimentality in literature. See also cliché, melodrama, stock responses.

Sestet A stanza consisting of exactly six lines. See also stanza.

Sestina A type of fi xed form poetry consisting of thirty-six lines of any length divided into six sestets and a three-line concluding stanza called an envoy. The six words at the end of the fi rst sestet’s lines must also appear at the ends of the other fi ve sestets, in varying order. These six words must also appear in the envoy, where they often resonate impor- tant themes. An example of this highly demanding form of poetry is Eliz- abeth Bishop’s “Sestina.” See also sestet.

Setting The physical and social context in which the action of a story occurs. The major elements of setting are the time, the place, and the social environment that frames the characters. Setting can be used to evoke a mood or atmosphere that will prepare the reader for what is to come, as in Nathaniel Hawthorne’s short story “Young Goodman Brown.” Sometimes writers choose a particular setting because of tradi- tional associations with that setting that are closely related to the action of a story. For example, stories fi lled with adventure or romance often take place in exotic locales.

Shakespearean sonnet See sonnet.

Showing See character.

Simile A common fi gure of speech that makes an explicit comparison between two things by using words such as like, as, than, appears, and seems: “A sip of Mrs. Cook’s coffee is like a punch in the stomach.” The effec- tiveness of this simile is created by the differences between the two things compared. There would be no simile if the comparison were stated this way: “Mrs. Cook’s coffee is as strong as the cafeteria’s coffee.” This is a literal translation because Mrs. Cook’s coffee is compared with something like it — another kind of coffee. See also fi gures of speech, metaphor.

Situational irony See irony.

Slant rhyme See rhyme.

Soliloquy A dramatic convention by means of which a character, alone onstage, utters his or her thoughts aloud. Playwrights use soliloquies as a convenient way to inform the audience about a character’s motiva- tions and state of mind. Shakespeare’s Hamlet delivers perhaps the best known of all soliloquies, which begins: “To be or not to be.” See also aside, convention.

Sonnet A fi xed form of lyric poetry that consists of fourteen lines, usu- ally written in iambic pentameter. There are two basic types of son- nets, the Italian and the English. The Italian sonnet, also known as the Petrarchan sonnet, is divided into an octave, which typically rhymes abbaabba, and a sestet, which may have varying rhyme schemes. Com- mon rhyme patterns in the sestet are cdecde, cdcdcd, and cdccdc. Very often the octave presents a situation, attitude, or problem that the sestet

glossary of literary terms 1009

comments upon or resolves, as in John Keats’s “On First Looking into Chapman’s Homer.” The English sonnet, also known as the Shake- spearean sonnet, is organized into three quatrains and a couplet, which typically rhyme abab cdcd efef gg. This rhyme scheme is more suited to English poetry because English has fewer rhyming words than Italian. English sonnets, because of their four-part organization, also have more fl exibility with respect to where thematic breaks can occur. Frequently, however, the most pronounced break or turn comes with the conclud- ing couplet, as in Shakespeare’s “Shall I compare thee to a summer’s day?” See also couplet, iambic pentameter, line, octave, quatrain, sestet.

Speaker The voice used by an author to tell a story or speak a poem. The speaker is often a created identity, and should not automatically be equated with the author’s self. See also narrator, persona, point of view.

Spondee See foot.

Stage directions A playwright’s written instructions about how the actors are to move and behave in a play. They explain in which direction charac- ters should move, what facial expressions they should assume, and so on. See also drama, script.

Stanza In poetry, stanza refers to a grouping of lines, set off by a space, that usually has a set pattern of meter and rhyme. See also line, meter, rhyme.

Static character See character.

Stock character See character.

Stock responses Predictable, conventional reactions to language, charac- ters, symbols, or situations. The fl ag, motherhood, puppies, God, and peace are common objects used to elicit stock responses from unsophis- ticated audiences. See also cliché, sentimentality.

Stream-of-consciousness technique The most intense use of a central consciousness in narration. The stream-of-consciousness technique takes a reader inside a character’s mind to reveal perceptions, thoughts, and feelings on a conscious or unconscious level. This technique suggests the fl ow of thought as well as its content; hence, complete sen- tences may give way to fragments as the character’s mind makes rapid associations free of conventional logic or transitions. James Joyce’s novel Ulysses makes extensive use of this narrative technique. See also narra- tor, point of view.

Stress The emphasis, or accent, given a syllable in pronunciation. See also accent .

Style The distinctive and unique manner in which a writer arranges words to achieve particular effects. Style essentially combines the idea to be expressed with the individuality of the author. These arrangements include individual word choices as well as matters such as the length of sentences, their structure, tone, and use of irony. See also diction, irony, tone.

1010 glossary of literary terms

Subplot The secondary action of a story, complete and interesting in its own right, that reinforces or contrasts with the main plot. There may be more than one subplot, and sometimes as many as three, four, or even more, running through a piece of fi ction. Subplots are generally either analogous to the main plot, thereby enhancing our understanding of it, or extraneous to the main plot, to provide relief from it. See also plot.

Suspense The anxious anticipation of a reader or an audience as to the out- come of a story, especially concerning the character or characters with whom sympathetic attachments are formed. Suspense helps to secure and sustain the interest of the reader or audience throughout a work.

Symbol A person, object, image, word, or event that evokes a range of additional meaning beyond and usually more abstract than its literal signifi cance. Symbols are educational devices for evoking complex ideas without having to resort to painstaking explanations that would make a story more like an essay than an experience. Conventional symbols have meanings that are widely recognized by a society or culture. Some conventional symbols are the Christian cross, the Star of David, a swas- tika, or a nation’s fl ag. Writers use conventional symbols to reinforce meanings. Kate Chopin, for example, emphasizes the spring setting in “The Story of an Hour” as a way of suggesting the renewed sense of life that Mrs. Mallard feels when she thinks herself free from her husband. A literary or contextual symbol can be a setting, character, action, object, name, or anything else in a work that maintains its literal signifi cance while suggesting other meanings. Such symbols go beyond conventional symbols; they gain their symbolic meaning within the context of a spe- cifi c story. For example, the white whale in Melville’s Moby-Dick takes on multiple symbolic meanings in the work, but these meanings do not automatically carry over into other stories about whales. The mean- ings suggested by Melville’s whale are specifi c to that text; therefore, it becomes a contextual symbol. See also allegory.

Synecdoche See metaphor.

Syntax The ordering of words into meaningful verbal patterns such as phrases, clauses, and sentences. Poets often manipulate syntax, changing conventional word order, to place certain emphasis on particular words. Emily Dickinson, for instance, writes about being surprised by a snake in her poem “A narrow Fellow in the Grass,” and includes this line: “His notice sudden is.” In addition to the alliterative hissing s-sounds here, Dickinson also effectively manipulates the line’s syntax so that the verb is appears unexpectedly at the end, making the snake’s hissing presence all the more “sudden.”

Telling See character.

Tercet A three-line stanza. See also stanza, triplet.

Terza rima An interlocking three-line rhyme scheme: aba, bcb, cdc, ded, and so on. Frost’s “Acquainted with the Night” is written in terza rima. See also rhyme, tercet.

glossary of literary terms 1011

Theme The central meaning or dominant idea in a literary work. A theme provides a unifying point around which the plot, characters, setting, point of view, symbols, and other elements of a work are organized. It is important not to mistake the theme for the actual subject of the work; the theme refers to the abstract concept that is made concrete through the images, characterization, and action of the text. In nonfi ction, how- ever, the theme generally refers to the main topic of the discourse.

Thesis The central idea of an essay. The thesis is a complete sentence (al though sometimes it may require more than one sentence) that establishes the topic of the essay in clear, unambiguous language.

Tone The author’s implicit attitude toward the reader or the people, places, and events in a work as revealed by the elements of the author’s style. Tone may be characterized as serious or ironic, sad or happy, private or public, angry or affectionate, bitter or nostalgic, or any other attitudes and feelings that human beings experience. See also style.

Tragedy A story that presents courageous individuals who confront pow- erful forces within or outside themselves with a dignity that reveals the breadth and depth of the human spirit in the face of failure, defeat, and even death. Tragedies recount an individual’s downfall; they usually begin high and end low. Shakespeare is known for his tragedies, including Mac- beth, King Lear, Othello, and Hamlet. A tragic fl aw is an error or defect in the tragic hero that leads to his downfall, such as greed, pride, or ambition. This fl aw may be a result of bad character, bad judgment, an inherited weakness, or any other defect of character. Tragic irony is a form of dra- matic irony found in tragedies such as Oedipus the King, in which Oedipus ironically ends up hunting himself. See also comedy, drama, hamartia.

Tragic fl aw See tragedy.

Tragic irony See irony, tragedy.

Triplet A tercet in which all three lines rhyme. See also tercet.

Trochaic meter See foot.

Understatement The opposite of hyperbole, understatement (or litotes) refers to a fi gure of speech that says less than is intended. Understate- ment usually has an ironic effect, and sometimes may be used for comic purposes, as in Mark Twain’s statement, “The reports of my death are greatly exaggerated.” See also hyperbole, irony.

Unreliable narrator See narrator.

Verbal irony See irony.

Verse A generic term used to describe poetic lines composed in a measured rhythmical pattern that are often, but not necessarily, rhymed. See also line, meter, rhyme, rhythm.

Villanelle A type of fi xed form poetry consisting of nineteen lines of any length divided into six stanzas: fi ve tercets and a concluding quatrain. The fi rst and third lines of the initial tercet rhyme; these rhymes are

1012 glossary of literary terms

repeated in each subsequent tercet (aba) and in the fi nal two lines of the quatrain (abaa). Line 1 appears in its entirety as lines 6, 12, and 18, while line 3 reappears as lines 9, 15, and 19. Dylan Thomas’s “Do not go gen- tle into that good night” is a villanelle. See also fi xed form, quatrain, rhyme, tercet.

Well-made play A realistic style of play that employs conventions includ- ing plenty of suspense created by meticulous plotting. Well-made plays are tightly and logically constructed, and lead to a logical resolution that is favorable to the protagonist. This dramatic structure was popularized in France by Eugène Scribe (1791–1861) and Victorien Sardou (1831–1908) and was adopted by Henrik Ibsen. See also character, plot.

acknowledgments 1013

Acknowledgments (continued from p. iv)

fiction (cont.) May-lee Chai. “Saving Sourdi,” ZYZZYVA, no. 3 (Winter 2001), pp. 139–58. Copyright © 2001 by

May-lee Chai. Used by permission of the author. Anton Chekhov. “The Lady with the Pet Dog,” translated by Avrahm Yarmolinsky, from The

Portable Chekhov by Anton Chekhov, edited by Avrahm Yarmolinsky. Copyright 1947, © 1968 by Viking Penguin, Inc., renewed © 1975 by Avrahm Yarmolinsky. Used by permission of Viking Penguin, a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.

Colette. “The Hand” from The Collected Stories of Colette, edited by Robert Phelps and translated by Matthew Ward. Translation copyright © 1983 by Farrar, Straus & Giroux, LLC. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus & Giroux, LLC.

Chitra Banerjee Divakaruni. “Clothes” from Arranged Marriage by Chitra Divakaruni. Copyright © 1995 by Chitra Divakaruni. Used by permission of Doubleday, a division of Random House, Inc.

Ralph Ellison. “Battle Royal” from Invisible Man by Ralph Ellison. Copyright © 1948 by Ralph Ellison. Used by permission of Random House, Inc.

William Faulkner. “A Rose for Emily” from Collected Stories of William Faulkner by William Faulkner. Copyright 1930 and renewed 1958 by William Faulkner. Used by permission of Random House, Inc.

Dagoberto Gilb. “Love in L.A.” from The Magic of Blood by Dagoberto Gilb. Copyright © 1993. Story originally published in Buffalo. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Gail Godwin. “A Sorrowful Woman,” published in 1971 by Esquire Magazine. Copyright © 1971 by Gail Godwin. Reprinted by permission of John Hawkins & Associates, Inc.

Ernest Hemingway. “Soldier’s Home” from In Our Time by Ernest Hemingway. Copyright © 1925 by Charles Scribner’s Sons. Copyright renewed 1953 by Ernest Hemingway. Reprinted with the permission of Scribner, a division of Simon & Schuster, Inc. All rights reserved.

Claire Katz. “The Function of Violence in O’Connor’s Fiction” from “Flannery O’Connor’s Rage of Vision,” American Literature 46, no. 1 (March 1974), pp. 545–67. Copyright 1974, Duke University Press. All rights reserved. Used by permission of the publisher.

Jamaica Kincaid. “Girl” from At the Bottom of the River by Jamaica Kincaid. Copyright © 1983 by Jamaica Kincaid. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus & Giroux, LLC.

Ian McEwan. “The Use of Poetry” excerpted from Solar by Ian McEwan. Copyright © 2010 by Ian McEwan. Excerpt fi rst appeared in the December 7, 2009, issue of The New Yorker. Used by permission of Nan A. Talese, an imprint of The Doubleday Broadway Publishing Group, a division of Random House, Inc., and by permission of Knopf Canada.

Peter Meinke. “The Cranes.” Copyright © 1999 by Peter Meinke. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Susan Minot. “Lust” from Lust and Other Stories by Susan Minot. Copyright © 1989 by Susan Minot. Reprinted by permission of Houghton Miffl in Harcourt Publishing Company. All rights reserved.

Alice Munro. “An Ounce of Cure” from Dance of the Happy Shades by Alice Munro. Copyright © 1968 by Alice Munro. Reprinted by permission of William Morris Endeavor Entertainment, Inc., on behalf of the author.

Joyce Carol Oates. “The Lady with the Pet Dog” from Marriages and Infi delities by Joyce Carol Oates (Vanguard Press, 1972). Copyright © 1972 by Ontario Review. Reprinted by permission of John Hawkins & Associates, Inc.

Tim O’Brien. “How to Tell a True War Story.” Copyright © 1987 by Tim O’Brien. Originally published in Esquire Magazine. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Flannery O’Connor. “A Good Man Is Hard to Find,” copyright © 1953 by Flannery O’Connor and renewed 1981 by Regina O’Connor, from A Good Man Is Hard to Find and Other Stories. Reprinted by permission of Houghton Miffl in Harcourt Publishing Company. “On the Use of Exaggeration and Distortion” excerpted from “Novelist and Believer” in Mystery and Manners by Flannery O’Connor. Copyright © 1969 by the Estate of Mary Flannery O’Connor. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus & Giroux, LLC.

Annie Proulx. “55 Miles to the Gas Pump.” Reprinted with the permission of Scribner, a division of Simon & Schuster, Inc., from Close Range: Wyoming Stories by Annie Proulx. Copyright © 1999 by Dead Line Ltd. All rights reserved.

John Updike. “A & P” from Pigeon Feathers and Other Stories by John Updike. Copyright © 1962 and renewed 1990 by John Updike. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

Karen van der Zee. “A Secret Sorrow.” Text copyright © 1981 by Karen van der Zee. Permission to reproduce text granted by Harlequin Books S.A.

Alice Walker. “The Flowers” from In Love & Trouble: Stories of Black Women by Alice Walker. Copyright © 1973 by Alice Walker. Reprinted by permission of Houghton Miffl in Harcourt Publishing Company.

1014 acknowledgments

Fay Weldon. “IND AFF, or Out of Love in Sarajevo.” Copyright © 1988 by Fay Weldon. First published in The Observer magazine (7 August 1988). Reprinted by permission of the author.

poetry Fleur Adcock. “The Video” from Poems 1960–2000 by Fleur Adcock (Bloodaxe Books, 2000).

Copyright © 2000 by Fleur Adcock. Reprinted by permission of Bloodaxe Books Ltd. Julia Alvarez. “Queens, 1963” from The Other Side/El Otro Lado. Copyright © 1995 by Julia Alvarez.

Published by Plume/Penguin, a division of Penguin Group (USA), and originally in hardcover by Dutton. Reprinted by permission of Susan Bergholz Literary Services, New York, NY, and Lamy, NM. All rights reserved.

“Julia Alvarez.” © Daniel Cima. (Photo) A. R. Ammons. “Coward” from Diversifi cations by A. R. Ammons. Copyright © 1975 by A. R.

Ammons. Used by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc. Richard Armour. “Going to Extremes” from Light Armour by Richard Armour. Permission to reprint

this material is given courtesy of the family of Richard Armour. Margaret Atwood. “you fi t into me” from Power Politics by Margaret Atwood. Copyright © 1971, 1996

by Margaret Atwood. Reprinted by permission of House of Anansi Press. www.anansi.ca Jimmy Santiago Baca. “Green Chile” from Black Mesa Poems by Jimmy Santiago Baca. Copyright ©

1989 by Jimmy Santiago Baca. Reprinted by permission of New Directions Publishing Corp. Regina Barreca. “Nighttime Fires” from The Minnesota Review (Fall 1986). Reprinted by permission

of the author. Matsuo Bash−o. “Under cherry trees” from Japanese Haiku, trans. by Peter Beilenson, Series I, ©

1955–56, Peter Beilenson, Editor. Reprinted by permission of Peter Pauper Press. Elizabeth Bishop. “The Fish” from The Complete Poems, 1927–1979 by Elizabeth Bishop. Copyright ©

1979, 1983 by Alice Helen Methfessel. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus and Giroux, LLC. “Elizabeth Bishop.” © Bettman/CORBIS. (Photo) Gwendolyn Brooks. “We Real Cool” from Blacks by Gwendolyn Brooks. Copyright © 1991 by

Gwendolyn Brooks. Reprinted by consent of Brooks Permissions. Helen Chasin. “The Word Plum” from Coming Close and Other Poems by Helen Chasin. Copyright ©

1968 by Yale University Press. Reprinted by permission of Yale University Press. Kelly Cherry. “Alzheimer’s” from Death and Transfi guration by Kelly Cherry. Copyright © 1997 by

Kelly Cherry. Reprinted by permission of Louisiana State University Press. John Ciardi. “Suburban” from For Instance by John Ciardi. Copyright © 1979 by John Ciardi. Used

by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc. Lucille Clifton. “this morning (for the girls of eastern high school)” from Good Woman: Poems and a

Memoir 1969–1980. Copyright © 1987 by Lucille Clifton. Reprinted with the permission of BOA Editions, Ltd., www.boaeditions.org.

Billy Collins. “Building with Its Face Blown Off ” from The Trouble with Poetry and Other Poems by Billy Collins. Copyright © 2005 by Billy Collins. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “On ‘Building with Its Face Blown Off,’ ” copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “How Do Poems Travel?” Copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “Introduction to Poetry” from The Apple That Astonished Paris. Copyright © 1988, 1996 by Billy Collins. Reprinted with the permission of the University of Arkansas Press, www.uapress.com. “Litany” from Nine Horses by Billy Collins. Copyright © 2002 by Billy Collins. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “On Writing ‘Litany,’ ” copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “Nostalgia” and “Questions About Angels” from Questions About Angels by Billy Collins. Copyright © 1991. Reprinted by permission of the University of Pittsburgh Press. “On Writing ‘Nostalgia’ ” and “On Writing ‘Questions About Angels,’ ” copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “Osso Buco” from The Art of Drowning by Billy Collins. Copyright © 1995. Reprinted by permission of the University of Pittsburgh Press. “On Writing ‘Osso Buco,’ ” copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of SLL/Sterling Lord Literistic, Inc. “Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s Clothes” from Picnic, Lightning by Billy Collins. Copyright © 1998. Reprinted by permission of the University of Pittsburgh Press. First appeared in the May 1998 issue of Harper’s Magazine.

Edmund Conti. “Pragmatist” from Light Year ’86. Reprinted by permission of the author. Sally Croft. “Home-Baked Bread” from Light Year ’86. Reprinted by permission of Bruce Croft. E. E. Cummings. “in Just-”, copyright © 1923, 1951, © 1991 by the Trustees for the E. E. Cummings

Trust. Copyright © 1976 by George James Firmage. “l(a”, copyright © 1958, 1986, 1991 by the Trustees for the E. E. Cummings Trust. “next to of course god america i”, copyright © 1926, 1954, © 1991 by the Trustees for the E. E. Cummings Trust. Copyright © 1985 by George James Firmage. From Complete Poems: 1904–1962 by E. E. Cummings, edited by George J. Firmage. Used by permission of Liveright Publishing Corporation.

acknowledgments 1015

Emily Dickinson. “A Bird came down the Walk —,” “A narrow Fellow in the Grass,” “Because I could not stop for Death —,” “He fumbles at your Soul,” “I felt a Funeral, in my Brain,” “I heard a Fly buzz — when I died —,” “I started Early — Took my Dog —,” “My Life had stood — a Loaded Gun —,” and “There’s a certain Slant of light.” Reprinted by permission of the publishers and the Trustees of Amherst College from The Poems of Emily Dickinson, Thomas H. Johnson, ed., Cambridge, Mass.: The Belknap Press of Harvard University Press. Copyright © 1951, 1955, 1979, 1983 by the President and Fellows of Harvard College.

“Emily Dickinson.” Amherst College Archives and Special Collections. Used by permissions of the Trustees of Amherst College. (Photo)

Rita Dove. “Fox Trot Fridays” from American Smooth by Rita Dove. Copyright © 2004 by Rita Dove. Used by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc.

Martín Espada. “The Community College Revises Its Curriculum in Response to Changing Demographics” from A Mayan Astronomer in Hell’s Kitchen by Martín Espada. Copyright © 2000 by Martín Espada. Used by permission of the author and W. W. Norton & Company, Inc. “Latin Night at the Pawn Shop” from Rebellion Is the Circle of a Lover’s Hands / Rebelión es el giro de manos del amante by Martín Espada. Willimantic: Curbstone Press, 1990. Copyright © 1990 by Martín Espada. Reprinted with permission of the Northwestern University Press.

Blanche Farley. “The Lover Not Taken” from Light Year ’86. Reprinted by permission of the author. Kenneth Fearing. “AD” from Complete Poems by Kenneth Fearing, ed. by Robert Ryely (Orono, ME:

National Poetry Foundation, 1997). Copyright © 1938 by Kenneth Fearing, renewed in 1966 by the Estate of Kenneth Fearing. Reprinted by the permission of Russell & Volkening as agents for the author.

Robert Francis. “Catch” and “The Pitcher” from The Orb Weaver. Copyright © 1960 by Robert Francis. Reprinted by permission of Wesleyan University Press, www.wesleyan.edu/wespress.

Robert Frost. “Acquainted with the Night,” “Design,” “Fire and Ice,” “Neither Out Far nor In Deep,” “Nothing Gold Can Stay,” “Stopping by Woods on a Snowy Evening,” and “Unharvested,” from The Poetry of Robert Frost, edited by Edward Connery Lathem. Copyright © 1923, 1928, 1936, 1969 by Henry Holt and Company, copyright © 1936, 1951, 1956 by Robert Frost, copyright © 1964 by Lesley Frost Ballantine. Reprinted by arrangement with Henry Holt and Company, LLC.

Brendan Galvin. “An Evel Knievel Elegy” from Shenandoah 58, no. 2 (2008), p. 6. Copyright © 2008. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Jeffrey Harrison. “The Names of Things” from Incomplete Knowledge. Copyright © 2006 by Jeffrey Harrison. Reprinted with the permission of Four Way Books, www.fourwaybooks.com.

William Hathaway. “Oh, Oh” from Light Year ’86. This poem was originally published in The Cincinnati Poetry Review. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Robert Hayden. “Those Winter Sundays,” copyright © 1966 by Robert Hayden, from Collected Poems of Robert Hayden by Robert Hayden, edited by Frederick Glaysher. Used by permission of Liveright Publishing Corporation.

Judy Page Heitzman. “The Schoolroom on the Second Floor of the Knitting Mill.” Copyright © 1991 by Judy Page Heitzman. Originally appeared in The New Yorker, December 2, 1992, p. 102. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Bob Hicok. “Making it in poetry,” copyright © 2004 by Bob Hicok. “Making it in poetry” fi rst appeared in the Georgia Review 58, no. 2 (Summer 2004), and is reprinted here with the acknowledgment of the editors and the permission of the author.

Langston Hughes. “Harlem” from The Collected Poems of Langston Hughes by Langston Hughes, edited by Arnold Rampersad with David Roessel, Associate Editor. Copyright © 1994 by the Estate of Langston Hughes. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

“Langston Hughes.” © 2002 United States Postal Service. All Rights Reserved. Used with permis- sion. Hughes stamp image by permission of Harold Ober Associates, Incorporated. (Photo)

Paul Humphrey. “Blow” from Light Year ’86. Reprinted with the permission of Eleanor Humphrey. Mark Jarman. “Unholy Sonnet” from Questions for Ecclesiastes by Mark Jarman (Story Line

Press, 1997). Copyright © 1997 by Mark Jarman. Reprinted with permission of the author. Randall Jarrell. “The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner” from The Complete Poems by Randall Jarrell.

Copyright © 1969, renewed 1997 by Mary von S. Jarrell. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus and Giroux, LLC.

Louis Jenkins. “The Prose Poem” from The Winter Road. Copyright © 2000 by Louis Jenkins. Reprinted with the permission of Holy Cow! Press, www.holycowpress.org.

Alice Jones. “The Foot” from Anatomy by Alice Jones (San Francisco: Bullnettle Press, 1997). Copyright © 1997 by Alice Jones. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Donald Justice. “Order in the Streets” from Losers Weepers: Poems Found Practically Everywhere, edited by George Hitchcock. Reprinted by permission of the Estate of Donald Justice.

X. J. Kennedy. “On a Young Man’s Remaining an Undergraduate for Twelve Years.” First published in the Sewanee Review 114, no. 1 (Winter 2006). Copyright © 2006 by X. J. Kennedy. Reprinted with the permission of the editor and the author. “ ‘The Purpose of Time Is to Prevent Everything from

1016 acknowledgments

Happening at Once’ ” from The Lords of Misrule, p. 5. Copyright © 2002 The Johns Hopkins University Press. Reprinted with permission of The Johns Hopkins University Press.

Galway Kinnell. “After Making Love We Hear Footsteps” and “Blackberry Eating” from Three Books by Galway Kinnell. Copyright © 1993 by Galway Kinnell. Reprinted by permission of Houghton Miffl in Harcourt Publishing Company. All rights reserved.

Carolyn Kizer. “After Bash−o” from Cool, Calm & Collected: Poems 1960–2000. Copyright © 2001 by Carolyn Kizer. Reprinted with the permission of Copper Canyon Press, www.coppercanyonpress.org.

Philip Larkin. “A Study of Reading Habits” from Collected Poems by Philip Larkin. Copyright © 1988, 2003 by the Estate of Philip Larkin. Reprinted by permission of Farrar, Straus and Giroux, LLC. In Canada: from The Whitsun Weddings. Copyright © 1964 by Philip Larkin. Reprinted by permission of Faber and Faber Ltd.

Ann Lauinger. “Marvell Noir.” First appeared in Parnassus: Poetry in Review 28, no. 1 & 2 (2005). Copyright © 2005 by Ann Lauinger. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Tato Laviera. “AmeRícan” from AmeRícan by Tato Laviera is reprinted with permission from the publisher (© 2003 Arte Público Press–University of Houston).

J. Patrick Lewis. “The Unkindest Cut” from Light 5 (Spring 1993). Reprinted with permission of the author. Li Ho. “A Beautiful Girl Combs Her Hair,” translated by David Young, from Five T’ang Poets.

Copyright © 1990 by Oberlin College. Reprinted with the permission of Oberlin College Press, www .oberlin.edu/ocpress/.

Thomas Lux. “Commercial Leech Farming Today” from New and Selected Poems, 1975–1995 by Thomas Lux. Copyright © 1997 by Thomas Lux. Reprinted by permission of Houghton Miffl in Harcourt Publishing Company. All rights reserved.

Katharyn Howd Machan. “Hazel Tells LaVerne” from Light Year ’85. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Elaine Magarrell. “The Joy of Cooking” from Sometime the Cow Kick Your Head, Light Year 88/89. Reprinted with the permission of the author.

Julio Marzán. “Ethnic Poetry.” Originally appeared in Parnassus: Poetry in Review. Reprinted by permission of the author. “The Translator at the Reception for Latin American Writers.” Reprinted by permission of the author.

Florence Cassen Mayers. “All-American Sestina,” © 1996 Florence Cassen Mayers, as fi rst published in The Atlantic Monthly. Reprinted with permission of the author.

David McCord. “Epitaph on a Waiter” from Odds Without Ends, copyright © 1954 by David T. W. McCord. Reprinted by permission of Arthur B. Page, executor of the estate of David McCord.

Michael McFee. “In Medias Res” from Colander by Michael McFee. Copyright © 1996 by Michael McFee. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Peter Meinke. “The ABC of Aerobics” from Night Watch on the Chesapeake by Peter Meinke. Copyright © 1987. Reprinted by permission of the University of Pittsburgh Press.

James Merrill. “Casual Wear” from Selected Poems, 1946–1985 by James Merrill. Copyright © 1992 by James Merrill. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

Edna St. Vincent Millay. “I will put Chaos into fourteen lines” from Collected Poems, HarperCollins. Copyright © 1954, 1982 by Norma Millay Ellis. All rights reserved. Reprinted with the permission of Elizabeth Barnett, The Millay Society.

Elaine Mitchell. “Form” from Light 9 (Spring 1994). Reprinted by permission of the author. Janice Townley Moore. “To A Wasp” fi rst appeared in Light Year, Bits Press. Reprinted by

permission of the author. Robert Morgan. “Mountain Graveyard” from Sigodlin. Copyright © 1990 by Robert Morgan.

Reprinted by permission of the author. Joan Murray. “Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes,” copyright © 1998 by Joan Murray. First appeared

in the August 1998 issue of Harper’s Magazine. Reprinted by permission of the author. “We Old Dudes,” copyright © 2006 by Joan Murray. First appeared in the July/August 2006 issue of Poetry magazine. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Howard Nemerov. “Walking the Dog” from Trying Conclusions: New and Selected Poems 1961–1991. Copyright © 1991. Reprinted by permission.

John Frederick Nims. “Love Poem” from Selected Poems. Copyright © 1982 by the University of Chicago. Reprinted by permission of the University of Chicago Press.

Alden Nowlan. “The Bull Moose” from Alden Nowlan: Selected Poems by Alden Nowlan. Copyright © 1967. Reprinted by permission of House of Anansi Press. www.anansi.ca

Sharon Olds. “Last Night” from The Wellspring by Sharon Olds. Copyright © 1996 by Sharon Olds. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

Mary Oliver. “The Poet with His Face in His Hands” from New and Selected Poems, Volume Two, by Mary Oliver. Copyright © 2005 by Mary Oliver. Reprinted by permission of Beacon Press, Boston.

Lisa Parker. “Snapping Beans” from Parnassus 23, no. 2 (1998). Reprinted by permission of the author.

acknowledgments 1017

Linda Pastan. “Jump Cabling” from Light Year: The Quarterly of Light Verse. Copyright © 1984 by Linda Pastan. Reprinted by permission of Jean V. Naggar Literary Agency, Inc. “Marks” from PM/AM: New and Selected Poems by Linda Pastan. Copyright © 1978 by Linda Pastan. Used by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc.

Molly Peacock. “Desire” from Cornucopia: New and Selected Poems by Molly Peacock. Copyright © 2002 by Molly Peacock. Used by permission of W. W. Norton & Company, Inc.

Peter Pereira. “Anagrammer” from What’s Written on the Body. Copyright © 2007 by Peter Pereira. Reprinted with the permission of Copper Canyon Press, www.coppercanyonpress.org.

Laurence Perrine. “The limerick’s never averse.” Reprinted by permission of Douglas Perrine. Kevin Pierce. “Proof of Origin” from Light 50 (Autumn 2005). Copyright © 2005 by Kevin Pierce.

Reprinted with the permission of the author. Ezra Pound. “In a Station of the Metro” from Personae. Copyright © 1926 by Ezra Pound. Reprinted

by permission of New Directions Publishing Corp. Alberto Ríos. “Seniors” from Five Indiscretions. Copyright © 1985 by Alberto Ríos. Reprinted by

permission of the author. Theodore Roethke. “Elegy for Jane,” copyright © 1950 by Theodore Roethke. “My Papa’s Waltz,”

copyright 1942 by Hearst Magazines, Inc. “Root Cellar,” copyright 1943 by Modern Poetry Association, Inc. From Collected Poems of Theodore Roethke by Theodore Roethke. Used by permission of Doubleday, a division of Random House, Inc.

Kay Ryan. “Hailstorm” from The Niagara River by Kay Ryan. Copyright © 2005 by Kay Ryan. Used by permission of Grove/Atlantic, Inc.

Sonia Sanchez. “c’mon man hold me” from Like the Singing Coming Off the Drums: Love Poems by Sonia Sanchez. Copyright © 1998 by Sonia Sanchez. Reprinted by permission of Beacon Press, Boston.

Peter Schmitt. “Friends with Numbers” from Hazard Duty. Copyright © 1995 by Peter Schmitt. Used by permission of Copper Beech Press.

Louis Simpson. “In the Suburbs” from At the End of the Open Road by Louis Simpson. Wesleyan UP, 1963. Reprinted by permission of the author.

David R. Slavitt. “Titanic” from Change of Address: Poems New and Selected by David R. Slavitt. Copyright © 2005 by David R. Slavitt. Reprinted by permission of Louisiana State University Press.

Ernest Slyman. “Lightning Bugs” from Sometime the Cow Kick Your Head, Light Year 88/89. Reprinted by permission of the author.

Gary Snyder. “How Poetry Comes to Me” from No Nature by Gary Snyder. Copyright © 1992 by Gary Snyder. Used by permission of Pantheon Books, a division of Random House, Inc.

Bruce Springsteen. “You’re Missing.” Copyright © 2002 by Bruce Springsteen (ASCAP). Reprinted by permission. International copyright secured. All rights reserved.

William Stafford. “Traveling through the Dark” from The Way It Is: New & Selected Poems. Copyright © 1970, 1998 by William Stafford and the Estate of William Stafford. Reprinted with the permission of Graywolf Press, Minneapolis, Minnesota, www.graywolfpress.org.

Timothy Steele. “Waiting for the Storm” from Sapphics and Uncertainties: Poems, 1970–1986. Copyright © 1986, 1995 by Timothy Steele. Reprinted with the permission of the University of Arkansas Press, www.uapress.com.

Wallace Stevens. “Anecdote of the Jar” from The Collected Poems of Wallace Stevens by Wallace Stevens. Copyright © 1954 by Wallace Stevens and renewed 1982 by Holly Stevens. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

May Swenson. “A Nosty Fright” from In Other Words by May Swenson, 1987. Copyright © 1984 by May Swenson. Used with permission of the Literary Estate of May Swenson.

Dylan Thomas. “Do not go gentle into that good night,” copyright © 1952 by Dylan Thomas. “The Hand That Signed the Paper,” copyright © 1939 by New Directions Publishing Corporation. From The Poems of Dylan Thomas. Reprinted by permission of New Directions Publishing Corp.

Jim Tilley. “Richter 7.8.” First appeared in Tar River Poetry 49 (Fall 2009). Copyright © 2009. Reprinted by permission of the author.

John Updike. “Dog’s Death” from Midpoint and Other Poems by John Updike. Copyright © 1969 and renewed 1997 by John Updike. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc. “Player Piano” from Collected Poems, 1953–1993 by John Updike. Copyright © 1993 by John Updike. Used by permission of Alfred A. Knopf, a division of Random House, Inc.

Marilyn Nelson Waniek. “Emily Dickinson’s Defunct” from For the Body: Poems by Marilyn Nelson Waniek. Copyright © 1978 by Marilyn Nelson Waniek. Reprinted by permission of the author and Louisiana State University Press.

William Carlos Williams. “Poem (As the cat),” “The Red Wheelbarrow,” and “This Is Just to Say,” from The Collected Poems, Volume 1: 1909–1939. Copyright © 1938 by New Directions Publishing Corp. Reprinted by permission of New Directions Publishing Corp.

Baron Wormser. “Labor” from Scattered Chapters: New and Selected Poems. Copyright © 2008 by Baron Wormser. Reprinted with the permission of Sarabande Books, www.sarabandebooks.org.

1018 acknowledgments

William Butler Yeats. “Leda and the Swan.” Reprinted with the permission of Scribner, a division of Simon & Schuster, Inc., from The Collected Works of W. B. Yeats, Volume I: The Poems, Revised, ed. Richard J. Finneran. Copyright © 1928 by the Macmillan Company. Copyright renewed © 1956 by Bertha Georgie Yeats. All rights reserved.

drama Joan Ackermann. Quiet Torrential Sound from Ten-Minute Plays: Volume 3 from Actors Theatre Of

Louisville, ed. by Michael Bigelow Dixon and Michele Volansky (New York: Samuel French, 1995). Copyright © 1994 by Joan Ackermann. Reprinted by permission of Bret Adams Ltd.

Jane Anderson. The Reprimand. Copyright © 2000 by Jane Anderson. All rights reserved. Sharon E. Cooper. Mistaken Identity. Copyright © 2003, 2009 by Sharon E. Cooper. Originally

published by Vintage Press in the anthology Laugh Lines: Short Comic Plays, ed. by Eric Lane and Nina Shengold. Reprinted by permission of the author. For inquiries regarding producing, please contact the author at [email protected].

Larry David. Episode entitled “The Pitch” from the television series Seinfeld © 1992 Castle Rock Entertainment, written by Larry David. All Rights Reserved. Reprinted by permission of Castle Rock Entertainment.

David Henry Hwang. Trying to Find Chinatown from Trying to Find Chinatown: The Selected Plays of David Henry Hwang. Copyright © 2000 by David Henry Hwang. Published by Theatre Communications Group. Used by permission of Theatre Communications Group.

Henrik Ibsen. A Doll House from The Complete Major Prose Plays of Henrik Ibsen by Henrik Ibsen, translated by Rolf Fjelde, copyright © 1965, 1970, 1978 by Rolf Fjelde. Used by permission of Dutton Signet, a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.

Jane Martin. Rodeo. Copyright © 1982 by Alexander Speer, as Trustee. Reprinted by permission. CAUTION: Professionals and amateurs are hereby warned that Rodeo is subject to a royalty. It is fully protected under the copyright laws of the United States of America, the British Commonwealth, including Canada, and all other countries of the Copyright Union. All rights, including professional, amateur, motion pictures, recitation, lecturing, public reading, radio broadcasting, television, and the rights of translation into foreign languages are strictly reserved. In its present form the play is dedicated to the reading public only. Particular emphasis is laid on the question of amateur or professional readings, permission and terms for which must be secured in writing from Samuel French, Inc., 45 West 25th Street, New York, NY 10010.

William Shakespeare. Othello (notes and commentary), edited by Gerald Eades Bentley. Copyright © 1958, 1970 by Penguin Books, © 2000 Penguin Putnam Inc. Used by permission of Penguin, a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.

John Patrick Shanley. Doubt. Copyright © 2005 by John Patrick Shanley. Published by Theatre Communications Group. Used by permission of Theatre Communications Group.

Sophocles. Oedipus the King from Three Theban Plays by Sophocles, translated by Robert Fagles. Copyright © 1982 by Robert Fagles. Used by permission of Viking Penguin, a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.

Nilaja Sun. No Child. . . . Copyright © 2008 by Nilaja Sun. No Child . . . was fi rst produced at the Epic Theatre Center in New York, USA, in May 2006. All rights reserved. CAUTION: Professionals and ama- teurs are hereby warned that No Child . . . is subject to a royalty. It is fully protected under the copyright laws of the United States of America and of all countries covered by the International Copyright Union (including the Dominion of Canada and the rest of the British Commonwealth), the Berne Conven- tion, the Pan-American Copyright Convention, and the Universal Copyright Convention as well as all countries with which the United States has reciprocal copyright relations. All rights, including profession/amateur stage rights, motion picture, recitation, lecturing, public reading, radio broadcasting, television, video or sound recording, all other forms of mechanical or electronic reproduction, such as CD-ROM, CD-I, information storage and retrieval systems, and photocopying, and the rights of translation into foreign languages, are strictly reserved. Particular emphasis is laid upon the matter of readings, permission for which must be secured from the Author’s agent in writing. Inquiries concern- ing rights should be addressed to William Morris Endeavor Entertainment, LLC., 1325 Avenue of the Americas, New York, NY 10019, attn: Val Day.

Index of First Lines

1019

1. 2. 3., 520

A Bird came down the Walk — , 450 A line in long array where they wind

betwixt green islands, 400 A man said to the universe:, 436 A narrow Fellow in the Grass, 2 A slumber did my spirit seal;, 586 A sudden blow: the great wings

beating still, 587 A sweet disorder in the dress, 474 After the praying, after the

hymn-singing, 489 Air-conditioned introductions, 514 Air seeps through alleys and our

diaphragms, 519 Allons! the road is before us!, 465 Although it never rivaled wheat,

soybean, 555 Apocalypse soon, 416 As the cat, 400 As virtuous men pass mildly away, 423 Awake at dawn, 370

Because I could not stop for Death — , 565

Behold her, single in the fi eld, 586 Bent double, like old beggars under

sacks, 407 Bravery runs in my family, 494 Break, break, break, 471 Breeze sent a wrinkling darkness, 470 By and by, 494

c’mon man hold me, 496 Cold, wet leaves, 405 Committed to one, she wanted

both, 503

Dear critic, who my lightness so deplores, 382

Death be not proud, though some have callèd thee, 954

Do not go gentle into that good night, 491

Down from the purple mist of trees on the mountain, 441

Drink to me only with thine eyes, 577

Everyone seemed more American, 515

First, her tippet made of tulle, 396 For I can snore like a bullhorn, 511 From low to high doth dissolution

climb, 587 From my mother’s sleep I fell into the

State, 378

Gather ye rose-buds while ye may, 383 Glory be to God for dappled

things — , 575 Go and catch a falling star, 461

Had we but world enough, and time, 384

He Fumbles at your Soul, 565 He stands at the door, a crazy old

man, 512 Her skirt was lofted by the gale;, 462 His art is eccentricity, his aim, 462 His waist, 504 Hog Butcher for the World, 477 “How does the water, 454 How suddenly the private, 541

I ask them to take a poem, 364 I caught a tremendous fi sh, 355 I felt a Funeral, in my Brain, 566 I found a dimpled spider, fat and

white, 372 I have been one acquainted with the

night, 429

1020 index of first lines

I have been watching the war map slammed up for advertising in front, 438

I have eaten, 585 I have prepared my sister’s tongue, 426 I heard a Fly buzz — when I died — , 459 I love the sound of the bone against

the plate, 532 I love to go out in late September, 452 I met a traveler from an antique

land, 582 I placed a jar in Tennessee, 438 I prefer red chile over my eggs, 404 I remember the neckcurls limp and

damp as tendrils, 497 I snapped beans into the silver

bowl, 344 I spent a couple of years during my

undestined, 502 I started Early — Took my Dog —, 566 I took off Billy Collins’ clothes —, 397 I wander through each chartered

street, 405 I will put Chaos into fourteen

lines, 488 If but some vengeful god would call

to me, 574 If you believe in the magic of

language, 371 In a solitude of the sea, 389 in Just-, 507 In my backyard, 421 In the greenest of our valleys, 431 In Xanadu did Kubla Khan, 563 It comes blundering over the, 420 It doesn’t speak and it isn’t

schooled, 489 It little profi ts that an idle king,

582

Knives can harm you, heaven forbid, 420

l(a, 359 last night, 380 Let us go then, you and I, 569 Like a storm, 425 Little Lamb, who made thee?, 475 Loveliest of trees, the cherry

now, 482

Mark but this fl ea, and mark in this, 568

Milton! thou should’st be living at this hour:, 422

Much have I traveled in the realms of gold, 485

My clumsiest dear, whose hands ship- wreck vases, 366

My girl and I amble a country lane, 348 My heart leaps up when I behold, 468 My husband gives me an A, 425 My Life had stood — a Loaded

Gun — , 567 My mistress’ eyes are nothing like the

sun;, 487 My mother groand! my father wept,

561 My stick fi ngers click with a snicker,

448

“next to of course god america i, 435 Not like the brazen giant of Greek

fame, 579 Nothing would sleep in that cellar,

dank as a ditch, 401

O my body! I dare not desert the likes of you in other men and women, 508

O my luve’s like a red, red rose, 561 O what can ail thee, knight-at-arms, 577 O wild West Wind, thou breath of

Autumn’s being, 499 Of all the questions you might want

to ask, 537 One nation, indivisible, 492 1. 2. 3., 520 Our improbable support, erected, 472

Presentiment — is that long Shadow — on the lawn — , 415

Remember the 1340s? We were doing a dance called the Catapult, 534

Season of mists and mellow fruitful- ness, 409

Shake and shake, 453 Shall I compare thee to a summer’s

day?, 487

index of first lines 1021

She lived in storm and strife, 470 She must have been kicked unseen or

brushed by a car., 346 She used to, 513 She walks in Beauty, like the night,

562 Shirts in the closet, shoes in the hall,

368 so much depends, 513 Some keep the Sabbath going to

Church — , 393 Some ladies dress in muslin full and,

580 Some say the world will end in fi re,

423 Something there is that doesn’t love

a wall, 573 Still to be neat, still to be dressed, 474 stone notes, 358 Such a waste to spend a life thinking,

439 Sundays too my father got up early,

345 Suppose your life a folded telescope,

490 Sweet scent of pot, the mellow smell

of beer, 557 Sweetheart, if we had the time, 387

Tears, idle tears, I know not what they mean, 584

Tentatively, you, 496 Thank the stars there’s a day, 473 That time of year thou mayst in me

behold, 581 That’s my last Duchess painted on

the wall, 444 The apparition of a salsa band, 381 The apparition of these faces in the

crowd, 411 The Bishop tells us: “When the boys

come back, 581 The buzz-saw snarled and rattled in

the yard, 478 The church bells toll a melancholy

round, 579 The course, 555 The ethnic poet said: “The earth is

maybe, 442 The hand that signed the paper felled

a city, 417

The limerick’s never averse, 495 The next day, I am almost afraid., 388 The prose poem is not a real poem,

of course. One of the major differ- ences is, 510

The roldengod and the soneyhuckle, 449

The sea is calm tonight, 402 The time you won your town the race,

575 The whiskey on your breath, 479 The word plum is delicious, 463 The world is charged with the gran-

deur of God, 457 The world is too much with us; late

and soon, 486 The young teller, 437 There is a heaven, for ever, day by day,

494 There was a young lady named Bright,

495 There’s a certain Slant of light, 961 There’s a wonderful gift that can give

you a lift, 366 There’s no way out, 393 They are not hard to get to know:,

554 this morning, 563 Thou still unravished bride of quiet-

ness, 394 Though close to their hearts is the

version that starts, 437 Tomorrow, and tomorrow, and

tomorrow, 413 Traveling through the dark I found a

deer, 440 ’Twas brillig, and the slithy toves,

458 Two boys uncoached are tossing a

poem together, 350 Two roads diverged in a yellow wood,

574 Two universes mosey down the street,

552 Tyger! Tyger! burning bright, 476

Under cherry trees, 496

Wanted: Men;, 434 we gave birth to a new generation, 517 We have all felt our parachutes, 498

1022 index of first lines

We old dudes. We, 392 We real cool. We, 391 Western wind, when wilt thou blow,

360 What a wonderful bird the frog are!,

515 What happens to a dream deferred?,

576 What is an epigram? A dwarfi sh

whole;, 494 What is it she is not saying?, 408 When, in disgrace with Fortune and

men’s eyes, 581 When by thy scorn, O murderess, I

am dead, 568 When getting my nose in a

book, 357 When I consider how my light is

spent, 580 When I heard the learn’d astronomer,

585 When I was fi ve in Louisville, 361 When Laura was born, Ceri

watched, 551

When my mother died I was very young, 445

When our cars touched, 553 Whenas in silks my Julia goes, 483 Whenever Richard Cory went down

town, 433 While most of us copied letters out of

books, 421 Who does not love the Titanic?, 391 Whose woods these are I think I

know., 460 Wild Nights — Wild Nights!, 406 William cut a hole in his Levi’s

pocket, 369

Yesterday Mrs. Friar phoned. “Mr. Ciardi, 552

You are the bread and the knife, 539

you fi t into me, 414 You must have chortled, 418 You want to cry aloud for

your, 373 Your average tourist: Fifty. 2.3, 443

Index of Authors and Titles

1023

A & P, 334 ABC of Aerobics, The, 519 Ackermann, Joan

Quiet Torrential Sound, 612 Acquainted with the Night, 429 AD, 434 Adcock, Fleur

The Video, 551 After Bashō, 496 After Making Love We Hear Foot-

steps, 511 All-American Sestina, 492 Alvarez, Julia

Queens, 1963, 515 Alzheimer’s, 512 AmeRícan, 517 Ammons, A. R.

Coward, 494 Anagrammer, 371 Anderson, Jane

The Reprimand, 868 Anecdote of the Jar, 438 Anonymous

The Frog, 515 There was a young lady named

Bright, 495 Western Wind, 360

Apparition, The, 568 Armour, Richard

Going to Extremes, 453 Arnold, Matthew

Dover Beach, 402 Atwood, Margaret

you fi t into me, 414

Baca, Jimmy Santiago Green Chile, 404

Baglady, 131 Barreca, Regina

Nighttime Fires, 361 Bartleby, the Scrivener, 85

Bashō, Matsuo Under cherry trees, 496

Battle Royal, 184 Beautiful Girl Combs Her Hair, A, 370 Because I could not stop for

Death — , 565 Bird came down the Walk — , A, 450 Birthmark, The, 289 Bishop, Elizabeth

The Fish, 355 Blackberry Eating, 452 Blake, William

Infant Sorrow, 561 London, 405 The Chimney Sweeper, 445 The Lamb, 475 The Tyger, 476

Blow, 462 Boyle, T. Coraghessan

Carnal Knowledge, 237 Break, Break, Break, 471 Bride Comes to Yellow Sky, The, 209 Brooks, Gwendolyn

We Real Cool, 391 Browning, Robert

My Last Duchess, 444 Building with Its Face Blown

Off, 541 Bull Moose, The, 441 Burns, Robert

A Red, Red Rose, 561 Burroughs, Edgar Rice

Tarzan of the Apes, From, 46 Buttons, 438 Byatt, A. S.

Baglady, 131

Carnal Knowledge, 237 Carroll, Lewis [Charles Lutwidge

Dodgson] Jabberwocky, 458

1024 index of authors and titles

Carver, Raymond Popular Mechanics, 227

Casual Wear, 443 “Cataract of Lodore, The,” From, 454 Catch, 350 Cavalry Crossing a Ford, 400 Chai, May-lee

Saving Sourdi, 69 Chasin, Helen

The Word Plum, 463 Chekhov, Anton

The Lady with the Pet Dog, 139

Cherry, Kelly Alzheimer’s, 512

Chicago, 477 Chimney Sweeper, The, 445 Chopin, Kate

The Story of an Hour, 13 Ciardi, John

Suburban, 552 Clifton, Lucille

this morning (for the girls of eastern high school), 563

Clothes, 280 c’mon man hold me, 496 Coleridge, Samuel Taylor

Kubla Khan: or, a Vision in a Dream, 563

What Is an Epigram?, 494

Collins, Billy Building with Its Face

Blown Off, 541 “How Do Poems Travel?” 531 Introduction to Poetry, 364 Litany, 539 Nostalgia, 534 On Writing “Litany,” 540 On Writing “Nostalgia,” 535 On Writing “Osso Buco,” 533 On Writing “Questions About

Angels,” 538 Osso Buco, 532 Questions About Angels, 537 Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s

Clothes, 396 Commercial Leech Farming

Today, 555

Community College Revises Its Curriculum in Response to Changing Demographics, The, 555

Conti, Edmund Pragmatist, 416

Convergence of the Twain, The, 389 Cooper, Sharon E.

Mistaken Identity, 852 Coward, 494 Crane, Stephen

A Man Said to the Universe, 436 The Bride Comes to Yellow Sky,

209 Cranes, The, 196 Croft, Sally

Home-Baked Bread, 408 Cummings, E. E.

in Just-, 507 l(a, 359 next to of course god america i,

435

David, Larry “The Pitch,” a Seinfeld episode, 622

Death Be Not Proud, 954 Death of the Ball Turret Gunner, The,

378 Delight in Disorder, 474 Design, 372 Desire, 489 Dickens, Charles

Hard Times, From, 65 Dickinson, Emily

A Bird came down the Walk — , 450 A narrow Fellow in the Grass, 2 Because I could not stop for

Death — , 565 He Fumbles at your Soul, 565 I felt a Funeral, in my Brain, 566 I heard a Fly buzz — when I

died — , 459 I started Early — Took my Dog — ,

566 My Life had stood — a Loaded

Gun — , 567 Presentiment — is that long

Shadow — on the lawn — , 415 Some keep the Sabbath going to

Church — , 393

index of authors and titles 1025

There’s a certain Slant of light, 961 Wild Nights — Wild Nights!, 406

Divakaruni, Chitra Banerjee Clothes, 280

Dog’s Death, 346 Doll House, A, 792 Donne, John

A Valediction: Forbidding Mourn- ing, 423

Death Be Not Proud, 954 Song, 461 The Apparition, 568 The Flea, 568

Do Not Go Gentle into That Good Night, 491

Dove, Rita Fox Trot Fridays, 473

Dover Beach, 402 Dulce et Decorum Est, 407 Dunbar, Paul Laurence

Theology, 494 To a Captious Critic, 382

Elegy for Jane, 497 Eliot, T. S.

The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock, 569

Ellison, Ralph Battle Royal, 184

Emily Dickinson’s Defunct, 513 Epitaph on a Waiter, 494 Espada, Martín

Latin Night at the Pawnshop, 381 The Community College Revises

Its Curriculum in Response to Changing Demographics, 555

Ethnic Poetry, 442 Eveline, 302 Evel Knievel Elegy, An, 498

Farley, Blanche The Lover Not Taken, 503

Farries, Helen Magic of Love, 366

Faulkner, William A Rose for Emily, 55

Fearing, Kenneth AD, 434

55 Miles to the Gas Pump, 329

Fire and Ice, 423 Fish, The, 355 Flea, The, 568 Flowers, The, 53 Foot, The, 472 Fox Trot Fridays, 473 Francis, Robert

Catch, 350 The Pitcher, 462

Friends with Numbers, 554 Frog, The, 515 Frost, Robert

Acquainted with the Night, 429 Design, 372 Fire and Ice, 423 Mending Wall, 573 “Out, Out — ”, 478 Stopping by Woods on a Snowy

Evening, 460 The Road Not Taken, 574

Galvin, Brendan An Evel Knievel Elegy, 498

Gilb, Dagoberto Love in L.A., 219

Girl, 306 Glaspell, Susan

Trifl es, 595 God’s Grandeur, 457 Godwin, Gail

A Sorrowful Woman, 38 Going to Extremes, 453 Good Man Is Hard to Find, A, 261 Gordon, George, Lord Byron

She Walks in Beauty, 562 Green Chile, 404

Hailstorm, 425

Hand That Signed the Paper, The, 417

Hap, 574 Hard Times, From, 65 Hardy, Thomas

Hap, 574 The Convergence of the Twain,

389 Harlem, 576 Hathaway, William

Oh, Oh, 348

1026 index of authors and titles

Haunted Palace, The, 431 Hawthorne, Nathaniel

The Birthmark, 289 Hayden, Robert

Those Winter Sundays, 345 Hazel Tells LaVerne, 380 He Fumbles at your Soul, 565 Heitzman, Judy Page

The Schoolroom on the Second Floor of the Knitting Mill, 421

Hemingway, Ernest Soldier’s Home, 117

Herrick, Robert Delight in Disorder, 474 To the Virgins, to Make Much of

Time, 383 Upon Julia’s Clothes, 483

Hicok, Bob Making it in poetry, 437

Home-Baked Bread, 408 Hopkins, Gerard Manley

God’s Grandeur, 457 Pied Beauty, 575

Housman, A. E. Loveliest of trees, the cherry now,

482 To an Athlete Dying Young, 575

“How Do Poems Travel?” 531 How Poetry Comes to Me, 420 How to Tell a True War Story, 318 Hughes, Langston

Harlem, 576 Humphrey, Paul

Blow, 462 Hwang, David Henry

Trying to Find Chinatown, 857

Ibsen, Henrik A Doll House, 792

I felt a Funeral, in my Brain, 566 I heard a Fly buzz — when I died — , 459 In a Station of the Metro, 411 IND AFF, or Out of Love in Sarajevo,

124 Infant Sorrow, 561 in Just-, 507 In Medias Res, 505 In the Suburbs, 393 Introduction to Poetry, 364 “I Sing the Body Electric,” From, 508

I started Early — Took my Dog —, 566 I will put Chaos into fourteen lines, 488

Jabberwocky, 458 Jarman, Mark

Unholy Sonnet, 489 Jarrell, Randall

The Death of the Ball Turret Gunner, 378

Jenkins, Louis, The Prose Poem, 510

Jones, Alice The Foot, 472

Jonson, Ben Still to Be Neat, 474 To Celia, 577

Joyce, James Eveline, 302

Joy of Cooking, The, 426 Jump Cabling, 553 Justice, Donald

Order in the Streets, 520

Keats, John La Belle Dame sans Merci, 577 Ode on a Grecian Urn, 394 On First Looking into Chapman’s

Homer, 485 To Autumn, 409 Written in Disgust of Vulgar

Superstition, 579 Kennedy, X. J.

On a Young Man’s Remaining an Undergraduate for Twelve Years, 557

“The Purpose of Time Is to Prevent Everything from Happening at Once,” 490

Kincaid, Jamaica Girl, 306

Kinnell, Galway After Making Love We Hear Foot-

steps, 511 Blackberry Eating, 452

Kizer, Carolyn After Bashō, 496

Kubla Khan: or, a Vision in a Dream, 563

l(a, 359 La Belle Dame sans Merci, 577

index of authors and titles 1027

Labor, 502 Lady with the Pet Dog, The (by Anton

Chekhov), 139

Lamb, The, 475 Larkin, Philip

A Study of Reading Habits, 357 Last Night, 388 Latin Night at the Pawnshop, 381 Lauinger, Ann

Marvell Noir, 387 Laviera, Tato

AmeRícan, 517 Lazarus, Emma

The New Colossus, 579 Leda and the Swan, 587 Lewis, J. Patrick

The Unkindest Cut, 420 Li Ho

A Beautiful Girl Combs Her Hair, 370

Lightning Bugs, 421 limerick’s never averse, The, 495 Litany, 539 London, 405 London, 1802, 422 Love in L.A., 219 Loveliest of trees, the cherry now, 482 Love Poem, 366 Lover Not Taken, The, 503 Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock, The, 569 Lowell, Amy

The Pond, 405 Lust, 229 Lux, Thomas

Commercial Leech Farming Today, 555

Macbeth (Act V, Scene v), From, 413 Machan, Katharyn Howd

Hazel Tells LaVerne, 380 Magarrell, Elaine

The Joy of Cooking, 426 Magic of Love, 366 Making it in poetry, 437 Man Said to the Universe, A, 436 Marks, 425 Martin, Jane

Rodeo, 864

Marvell, Andrew To His Coy Mistress, 384

Marvell Noir, 387 Marzán, Julio

Ethnic Poetry, 442 The Translator at the Reception

for Latin American Writers, 514 Maupassant, Guy de

The Necklace, 202 Mayers, Florence Cassen

All-American Sestina, 492 McCord, David

Epitaph on a Waiter, 494 McEwan, Ian

The Use of Poetry, 308 McFee, Michael

In Medias Res, 505 Meinke, Peter

The ABC of Aerobics, 519 The Cranes, 196

Melville, Herman Bartleby, the Scrivener, 85

Mending Wall, 573 Merrill, James

Casual Wear, 443 Millay, Edna St. Vincent

I will put Chaos into fourteen lines, 488

Milton, John When I consider how my light is

spent, 580 Minot, Susan

Lust, 229 Mistaken Identity, 852 Moore, Janice Townley

To a Wasp, 418 Morgan, Robert

Mountain Graveyard, 358 Mountain Graveyard, 358 Munro, Alice

An Ounce of Cure, 168 Murray, Joan

Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes, 397

We Old Dudes, 392 Mutability, 587 My Heart Leaps Up, 468 My Last Duchess, 444 My Life had stood — a Loaded Gun —,

567

1028 index of authors and titles

My mistress’ eyes are nothing like the sun, 487

My Papa’s Waltz, 479

narrow Fellow in the Grass, A, 2 Necklace, The, 202 Nemerov, Howard

Walking the Dog, 552 New Colossus, The, 579 next to of course god america i, 435 Nighttime Fires, 361 Nims, John Frederick

Love Poem, 366 No Child . . . , 905 Nostalgia, 534 Nosty Fright, A, 449 Nowlan, Alden

The Bull Moose, 441

O’Brien, Tim How to Tell a True War Story, 318

O’Connor, Flannery A Good Man Is Hard to

Find, 261 Ode on a Grecian Urn, 394 Ode to the West Wind, 499 Oedipus the King, 639 Oh, Oh, 348 Olds, Sharon

Last Night, 388 Oliver, Mary

The Poet with His Face in His Hands, 373

On a Young Man’s Remaining an Undergraduate for Twelve Years, 557

On First Looking into Chapman’s Homer, 485

On Writing “Litany,” 540 On Writing “Nostalgia,” 535 On Writing “Osso Buco,” 533 On Writing “Questions About

Angels,” 538 Order in the Streets, 520 Osso Buco, 532 Othello, The Moor of Venice, 698 Ounce of Cure, An, 168 “Out, Out — ”, 478

Owen, Wilfred Dulce et Decorum Est, 407

Ozymandias, 582

Parker, Lisa Snapping Beans, 344

Pastan, Linda Jump Cabling, 553 Marks, 425

Peacock, Molly Desire, 489

Pereira, Peter Anagrammer, 371

Perrine, Laurence The limerick’s never averse, 495

Pied Beauty, 575 Pierce, Kevin

Proof of Origin, 437 “Pitch, The,” a Seinfeld episode, 622 Pitcher, The, 462 Player Piano, 448 Poe, Edgar Allan

The Haunted Palace, 431 Poem, 400 Poet with His Face in His

Hands, The, 373 Pond, The, 405 Popular Mechanics, 227 Pound, Ezra

In a Station of the Metro, 411 Pragmatist, 416 Presentiment — is that long

Shadow — on the lawn — , 415 Proof of Origin, 437 Prose Poem, The, 510 Proulx, E. Annie

55 Miles to the Gas Pump, 329 “Purpose of Time Is to Prevent Every-

thing from Happening at Once, The,” 490

Queens, 1963, 515 Questions About Angels, 537 Quiet Torrential Sound, 612

Red, Red Rose, A, 561 Red Wheelbarrow, The, 513 Reprimand, The, 868 Richard Cory, 433 Richter 7.8, 439

index of authors and titles 1029

Ríos, Alberto Seniors, 369

Road Not Taken, The, 574 Robinson, Edwin Arlington

Richard Cory, 433 Rodeo, 864 Roethke, Theodore

Elegy for Jane, 497 My Papa’s Waltz, 479 Root Cellar, 401

Root Cellar, 401 Rose for Emily, A, 55 Rossetti, Christina Georgina

Some Ladies Dress in Muslin Full and White, 580

Ryan, Kay Hailstorm, 425

Sanchez, Sonia c’mon man hold me, 496

Sandburg, Carl Buttons, 438 Chicago, 477

Sassoon, Siegfried “They,” 581

Saving Sourdi, 69 Schmitt, Peter

Friends with Numbers, 554 Schoolroom on the Second Floor of

the Knitting Mill, The, 421 Secret Sorrow, A, From, 28 Seniors, 369 Shakespeare, William

Macbeth (Act V, Scene v), From, 413 My mistress’ eyes are nothing like

the sun, 487 Othello, The Moor of Venice, 698 Shall I compare thee to a sum-

mer’s day?, 487 That time of year thou mayst in

me behold, 581 When, in disgrace with Fortune

and men’s eyes, 581 Shall I compare thee to a summer’s

day?, 487

Shelley, Percy Bysshe Ode to the West Wind, 499 Ozymandias, 582

She Walks in Beauty, 562 Simpson, Louis

In the Suburbs, 393 Slavitt, David R.

Titanic, 391 Slumber Did My Spirit Seal, A, 586 Slyman, Ernest

Lightning Bugs, 421 Snapping Beans, 344 Snyder, Gary

How Poetry Comes to Me, 420 Soldier’s Home, 117 Solitary Reaper, The, 586 Some keep the Sabbath going to

Church —, 393 Some Ladies Dress in Muslin Full and

White, 580 Song, 461 “Song of the Open Road,” From, 465 Sophocles

Oedipus the King , 639 Sorrowful Woman, A, 38 Southey, Robert

“The Cataract of Lodore,” From, 454

Springsteen, Bruce You’re Missing, 368

Stafford, William Traveling through the Dark, 440

Steele, Timothy Waiting for the Storm, 470

Stevens, Wallace Anecdote of the Jar, 438

Still to Be Neat, 474 Stopping by Woods on a Snowy

Evening, 460 Story of an Hour, The, 13 Story of the Good Little Boy, The, 330 Study of Reading Habits, A, 357 Suburban, 552 Sun, Nilaja

No Child . . . , 905 Swenson, May

A Nosty Fright, 449

Taking Off Billy Collins’ Clothes, 397 Taking Off Emily Dickinson’s

Clothes, 396 Tarzan of the Apes, From, 46 Tears, Idle Tears, 584

1030 index of authors and titles

Tennyson, Alfred, Lord Break, Break, Break, 471 Tears, Idle Tears, 584 Ulysses, 582

That the Night Come, 470 That time of year thou mayst in me

behold, 581 Theology, 494 There’s a certain Slant of light, 961 There was a young lady named

Bright, 495 “They,” 581 This Is Just to Say, 585 this morning (for the girls of eastern

high school), 563 Thomas, Dylan

Do Not Go Gentle into That Good Night, 491

Hand That Signed the Paper, The, 417

Those Winter Sundays, 345 Tilley, Jim

Richter 7.8, 439 Titanic, 391 To a Captious Critic, 382 To an Athlete Dying Young, 575 To Autumn, 409 To a Wasp, 418 To Celia, 577 To His Coy Mistress, 384 To the Virgins, to Make Much of

Time, 383 Translator at the Reception for Latin

American Writers, The, 514 Traveling through the Dark, 440 Trifl es, 595 Trying to Find Chinatown, 857 Twain, Mark

The Story of the Good Little Boy, 330

Tyger, The, 476

Ulysses, 582 Under cherry trees, 496 Unholy Sonnet, 489 Unkindest Cut, The, 420 Updike, John

A & P, 334 Dog’s Death, 346 Player Piano, 448

Upon Julia’s Clothes, 483 Use of Poetry, The, 308

Valediction: Forbidding Mourning, A, 423

van der Zee, Karen A Secret Sorrow, From, 28

Video, The, 551

Waiting for the Storm, 470 Walker, Alice

The Flowers, 53 Walking the Dog, 552 Waniek, Marilyn Nelson

Emily Dickinson’s Defunct, 513 Weldon, Fay

IND AFF, or Out of Love in Sarajevo, 124

We Old Dudes, 392 We Real Cool, 391 Western Wind, 360 What Is an Epigram?, 494 When, in disgrace with Fortune and

men’s eyes, 581 When I consider how my light is

spent, 580 When I Heard the Learn’d

Astronomer, 585 Whitman, Walt

Cavalry Crossing a Ford, 400 “I Sing the Body Electric,”

From, 508 “Song of the Open Road,”

From, 465 When I Heard the Learn’d

Astronomer, 585 Wild Nights — Wild Nights!, 406 Williams, William Carlos

Poem, 400 The Red Wheelbarrow, 513 This Is Just to Say, 585

Word Plum, The, 463 Wordsworth, William

A Slumber Did My Spirit Seal, 586 London, 1802, 422 Mutability, 587 My Heart Leaps Up, 468 The Solitary Reaper, 586 The World Is Too Much

with Us, 486

index of authors and titles 1031

World Is Too Much with Us, The, 486 Wormser, Baron

Labor, 502 Written in Disgust of Vulgar Supersti-

tion, 579

Yeats, William Butler Leda and the Swan, 587 That the Night Come, 470

you fi t into me, 414 You’re Missing, 368

This page intentionally left blank

This page intentionally left blank

Index of Terms Boldface numbers refer to the Glossary of Literary Terms

1034

absurdist literature, 67 accent, 465, 991 act, 608, 991 allegory, 180, 431, 991 alliteration, 451, 991 allusion, 386, 991 ambiguity, 379, 992 anagram, 359, 992 analysis, 941, 945 anapestic meter, 466,

992 antagonist, 51, 609, 992 apostrophe, 418, 992 approximate rhyme, 456,

992 aside, 692, 992 assonance, 452, 992

ballad, 448, 992 ballad stanza, 484, 992 blank verse, 467, 993 buskins, 635

cacophony, 452, 993 caesura, 468, 993 canon, 6, 993 carpe diem, 383, 993 catharsis, 637, 993 character, 45, 993 characterization, 64, 993 chorus, 634, 994 cliché, 367, 994 climax, 51, 610, 994 closet drama, 594, 994 colloquial, 376, 994 comedy, 694, 994 comic relief, 694, 994 comparison and contrast,

941, 968 confl ict, 50, 609, 995 connotation, 377, 995 consistent action, 67 consonance, 456, 995

contextual symbol, 430, 995

convention, 608, 995 conventional symbol, 179,

430, 995 cosmic irony, 436, 995 cothurni, 635 couplet, 483, 995 crisis, 610, 995

dactylic meter, 466, 995 denotation, 377, 995 dénouement, 51, 610, 995 dialect, 376, 995 dialogue, 608, 995 diction, 223, 375, 996 didactic poetry, 431, 996 doggerel, 348, 996 drama, 594, 996 dramatic irony, 435, 638,

996 dramatic monologue, 380,

996 dynamic character, 68,

996

editorial omniscience, 136, 996

elegy, 497, 996 end rhyme, 455, 996 end-stopped line, 468,

996 English sonnet, 486, 997 enjambment, 468, 997 envoy, 492, 997 epic, 361 epigram, 493, 997 epiphany, 997 episodia, 636 euphony, 452, 997 exact rhyme, 456, 997 exodus, 636 explication, 941, 952, 997

exposition, 50, 608, 997 extended metaphor, 416,

997 eye rhyme, 453, 997

falling action, 610, 997 falling meters, 467, 997 feminine rhyme, 456, 997 fi gures of speech, 412,

997 fi rst-person narrator, 138,

997 fi xed form, 481, 997 fl ashback, 45, 791, 998 fl at character, 68, 998 foil, 68, 611, 998 foot, 466, 998 foreshadowing, 50, 998 form, 481, 998 formal diction, 376, 998 formula fi ction, 22, 998 found poem, 520, 998 free verse, 481, 507, 998

genre, 999

haiku, 496, 999 hamartia, 637, 999 hero, heroine, 51, 999 heroic couplet, 483, 999 high comedy, 695, 999 hubris, hybris, 637, 999 hyperbole, 419, 999

iambic meter, 466, 999 iambic pentameter, 467,

999 image, 399, 999 implied metaphor, 415,

999 in medias res, 45, 999 informal diction, 376, 999 internal rhyme, 456, 999

index of terms 1035

irony, 225, 433, 999 Italian sonnet, 484, 1000

jargon, 377

limerick, 495, 1000 limited omniscient

narrator, 136, 1000 line, 467, 1000 literary ballad, 448, 1000 literary symbol, 179,

430, 1000 low comedy, 695, 1000 lyric, 360, 1000

masculine rhyme, 456, 1001

melodrama, 789, 1001 metafi ction, 1001 metaphor, 351, 415, 1001 meter, 465, 1001 metonymy, 417, 1002 middle diction, 376, 1002 miracle play, 690 morality play, 690 motivated action, 67, 1002 mystery play, 690

naive narrator, 138, 1002 narrative poem, 361, 1002 narrator, 135, 1002 near rhyme, 456, 1003 neutral omniscience, 136,

1003

objective point of view, 137, 1003

octave, 484, 1003 ode, 499, 1003 off rhyme, 456, 1003 omniscient narrator, 136,

1003 one-act play, 607, 1003 onomatopoeia, 451, 1003 open form, 481, 507, 1003 orchestra, 634 organic form, 1003 overstatement, 419, 1003 oxymoron, 420, 1003

parados, 635 paradox, 419, 1003 paraphrase, 350, 1004 parody, 503, 1004 persona, 379, 1004 personifi cation, 418, 1004 Petrarchan sonnet, 484,

1004 picture poem, 505, 1004 plausible action, 67, 1004 plays, 593, 1004 playwrights, 593, 1004 plot, 44, 609, 1004 poetic diction, 376, 1005 point of view, 135, 1005 problem play, 790, 1005 prologue, 635, 1005 prose poem, 510, 1005 prosody, 465, 1005 protagonist, 51, 609, 1005 pun, 416, 1005 pyramidal pattern, 610,

1006

quatrain, 484, 1006

realism, 788 recognition, 638, 1006 resolution, 51, 610, 1006 reversal, 638, 1006 rhyme, 453, 1006 rhyme scheme, 482, 1007 rhythm, 464, 1007 rising action, 50, 610, 1007 rising meter, 467, 1007 romantic comedy, 694,

1007 round character, 68, 1007 run-on line, 468, 1007

sarcasm, 226, 1007 satire, 435, 695, 1007 scansion, 465, 1007 scene, 608, 1007 script, 594, 1007 sentimentality, 367, 1007 sestet, 484, 1008 sestina, 492, 1008 setting, 115, 608, 1008

Shakespearean sonnet, 486, 1008

showing, 66, 1008 simile, 414, 1008 situational irony, 226, 434,

1008 slant rhyme, 456, 1008 soliloquy, 692, 1008 sonnet, 484, 1008 speaker, 357, 1009 spondee, 467, 1009 stage directions, 610,

1009 stanza, 482, 1009 stasimon, 636 static character, 68, 1009 stock character, 68, 1009 stock responses, 367, 1009 stream-of-consciousness

technique, 1009 stress, 465, 1009 style, 223, 1009 subplot, 609, 1010 suspense, 51, 608, 1010 symbol, 178, 428, 1010 synecdoche, 416, 1010 syntax, 380, 1010

telling, 66, 1010 tercet, 483, 1010 terza rima, 484, 1010 theme, 199, 359, 611, 1011 thesis, 933, 1011 tone, 225, 380, 1011 tragedy, 636, 695, 1011 tragic fl aw, 637, 1011 tragic irony, 638, 1011 triplet, 483, 1011 trochaic meter, 466, 1011

understatement, 419, 1011 unreliable narrator, 138,

1011

verbal irony, 225, 434, 1011 verse, 358, 1011 villanelle, 491, 1011

well-made play, 792, 1012

This page intentionally left blank